Hidden 10 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Casey nodded calmly, leaning his lower body up against the bar and letting her slide into him gently. He slowly let his consciousness split positions, with the right ear’s hearing collapsing for a moment. It was odd experiencing full deafness; and the only thing more strange was picking the audio feed back up from a new location using only one. It wasn’t the same as putting a single earbud in. That didn’t give you the sensation of the atmosphere or air of a place. You didn’t get vague gusts of air brushing against your non-existent flesh.

That entire ear was as close to being back up at his chair as it could be without legs.

”-and I have incredibly fond memories of working with-”

She had to be stalling. Or something. He felt like a federal wiretapper at this point, hoping to catch the hardened criminal blabbing about business on the phone. She was scheduled for fifteen minutes, but because of how short Casey cut it, it seemed like she was taking advantage of the gap, which he could contextually accept. She was stalling. Because of him!

”I really doomed us… How long was I on stage? Three minutes? Maybe four, because of the proposal? I gave this bitch an extra ten minutes… She’s just yappin’ away! he vaguely tipped his hand, absentmindedly keying Trisha into a conversation that had been only in his mind.

Trisha frowned, trying her best not to reactively tense when he spilled that he was listening in on something entirely different. Sure, they weren't immediately talking about anything. Maybe it was unrealistic to expect him to just be in the moment with her, ready to pay attention if she said anything. But she was doing that for him! Even if she had spying magic, she wouldn't be using it.

And sure, he was listening in on a public speech they'd walked away from. But what if Cass and Leon were having a more private conversation and he picked up that too? She still… Really didn't like spying at all.

“It’s just talking." Trisha managed to say, trying to stay calm. To not get too tense. But it was hard.
“It’s not like you have to listen, Casey. Nobody's forcing you to. You're not even there. We came here for some quiet, and you're listening in somewhere else."

Casey reflexively frowned. There were a lot of reasons he figured she may be understanding at this point, but it was a cold realization that he had to be online almost always. Maybe someday, he’d be able to slack… But this duty of maintaining some level of guarded veiling was tiresome. He wasn’t used to it. He didn’t want to do it with his family, and he didn’t want to do it with her.

But he’d just proposed officially in front of a lot of people. More to the point was the proposal itself: So important that it was worth remembering that this was all going to get better. He’d ask forgiveness for now, not permission. But, maybe she’d be willing to see his side if he explained it even half-correct.

”This could be the last time she speaks publicly. And, y’know, maybe she’ll leave something cryptic behind! Some kind of hint or clue about what her plans are for the coming days. And yeah, there’s other people there listening, but I can’t trust them like I trust me! I trust me to really hear it! And, besides, we came back here to make a phone call, and I said ‘Lets take a breath.’. Nowhere did I say- Y’know, no. I’m sorry, Trisha. I’m not doing this. Sit here and be mad at me all you want, but I’m just gonna fuckin-”

He tucked his hand down his pants, pulling up the tucked in shirt until he had a grip on his glove Channeler before pulling it out and tossing it on the floor a couple feet away.

”-take care of the problem. It’s the only thing I can imagine will actually work at this point.”

Trisha reactively flinched, frown deepening.
“I’m not mad at you."

She wasn't. At least, she hadn't been. Upset and annoyed, maybe. It was creeping more towards being mad though with how he reacted. Like she was being unreasonable to be upset about it… maybe she was! But he didn't need to throw his channeler away. He was acting like she was a child throwing a tantrum.

Which only made her feel worse. He didn't even bother finishing his explanation cause he didn't think she'd understand. Maybe she wouldn't! But she didn't think she was being unreasonable. He knew she didn't like the spying. She accepted it for certain safety things, but… she still didn't like it.

“If you wanted to listen to Lynette's speech, you could've said. We didn't need to make the call right now. I was fine with waiting. You didn't need to resort to magical spying. I could've talked to Cass and Leon and Gin if you wanted to pay attention to it."

Casey gently shook his head in response.

”You'd have wound up getting sassy toward someone who doesn't deserve it because you were feeling bad about the situation. So we came back here with the plan to take care of things.”

His voice was incredibly calm. At first, he felt that he probably shouldn't have jumped the gun like this. But the channeler on the ground meant she had his full attention no matter what. Which is clearly what she wanted.

”I made the presumption that, since we were just relaxing and not talking about anything, that I'd slide one side of the headphones on. It's no different than that, Trisha. I'm not spying, or anything malicious. I'm just doing two things at once. I'm comforting my fiance, and listening to my Mom's last public speech. I know I shouldn't care, she's a walking corpse. I get it. I'm sorry.”

“I didn’t say you shouldn’t care. You’re twisting my words, Casey.” Trisha’s hands curled into fists as she tried to stay calm. But it felt like he was just doubling down on thinking she was unreasonable and just apologising because he had to. Because she was making a big deal of something she shouldn’t.

He thought she would’ve snapped at someone else, too. Like she couldn’t control herself at all. Maybe she couldn’t… But the expectation didn’t help.
“You… could’ve asked. I don’t know, it takes five seconds to say ‘oh can I listen in’ or something. Because I’m not doing anything else. And why do you think I’d just snap at someone! Because I’m so unreasonable all the time? I’m sorry for caring about things so much.”

She sucked in a breath, closing her eyes for a moment. She knew she was just proving that as she spiraled. But even when she thought that, she couldn’t prevent it.

”And it takes me a literal eye blink to tune in.”

She was right, of course. But, this visceral reaction to the situation every single time was something that was growing difficult to not actively target. The idea that self improvement was a glacially paced process didn't help when she spun herself into anxiety attacks every other day. She could be as right as she wanted about a couple minor things, but it'd never change the fact that her rawness didn't feel right. Like she was always ready to find a beast to claw into from behind.

”Sometimes I do it without thinking. But I can't right now! Look! I'm right here with you, and we're talking, and I'm not paying attention to anything else but you! My fiance!” he pleaded, hoping the word fiance would become some kind of defusal tool. Bomb squad technology…

“But you don’t want to be! You’d rather be paying attention to something else. You’re only paying attention because you think I’m causing a problem and being unreasonable!” Trisha jumped to wild conclusions with no foundation, the anxiety she’d been trying and failing to suppress spilling out.

But it was true, wasn’t it? That he thought she was being unreasonable, at least, and was annoyed about it. Why wouldn’t he be? But it wasn’t like she’d attacked him. She’d just voiced being upset that he was listening to something else.

“Just like everyone else does.”

Casey's face twisted with vague disgust.

”You're so quick to accuse me of being like everyone else. That's fine, Trish. You can say whatever it is you want about me, but we sleep in the same bed. Tonight, we'll go to bed next to one another, no matter how pissy you are at me. And then tomorrow, you'll wake up next to me, no matter how pissy you are. And every day after that, barring any small period where we're separated by distance for a reason, we'll be together no matter how fucking pissy you can possibly get.” he chided, stepping closer until his hands could reach out to hers.

They tried to intertwine fingers, abutting against hers without any mutuality.

”Thats the only way I'll ever prove to you that I'm not like anyone else you've ever met… But you go ahead and be upset. It's natural, I guess. I'll live.”

“Why’s- Why’s it all on me being pissy. I wasn’t even that upset until you doubled down and threw your glove away. I- I-” She closed her eyes so she didn’t have to see his expression, her own a mix of anguish and irritation.

”Because I don't have these reactions to things, Babe! I don't need plans and preparation- If I freak out over something, I-”
This was pointless. Arguing with her like this was pointless. He took a deep breath.

”-Just… Come back to me, Trisha. We were having a nice night, right? We were doing good? Let's make it twenty more minutes, please… he pleaded in return.

Trisha’s eyes were still squeezed shut, her head shaking slightly.
“I told you- that I’d always be like this, and you still proposed! This is me. I-”

She didn’t want to get upset or mad at him, just like she didn’t want to panic over things and have reactions. But it was so hard not to when it was all she’d done for all of her life, and normally people just fucked off because of it! And she still lashed out at the one person who didn’t because of everything that had happened before- and she loved him. Which only made her more scared and upset.

“I need to go on a walk. To clear my head.” Before she ruined things more.

”I don't want you to leave, Trisha… I really don't think its fair when I-” have to make sure I don't show you my back anytime I walk away.

He didn't let the whole sentence leave his throat, catching it and coughing it out in a single sputter.

”-thought I was trying to apologize. But, at this point, I feel like whatever move I make is gonna be the wrong one. So, I guess you do what you have to do. I won't spy on you or anything… Will you at least meet me back here when you feel like you can look at me? I love you.”

Trisha nodded, eyes slowly opening, hazy with tears. She didn’t quite look at him- because she was worried about what she’d see. Even though he was trying to defuse the situation, she still felt so worried.

“This is me trying to be better, Casey. So I don’t just get more upset.” She whispered, not sounding all that confident about it. But it wasn’t exactly something she’d tried before- stepping away, that was. Outside of the one time Casey had basically forced her to. They had ended up having a big conversation because of it.

Maybe it wouldn’t work. But she felt so tense and agitated, and underneath it all she knew it was unreasonable. And she still wanted to go home and propose herself and enjoy his company. But she couldn’t if she got more mad! Maybe she really would be able to clear her head.

Or spiral more. But at least she’d be getting upset at herself rather than him, right?

“I love you too. You really-” deserve better. She sucked in a sharp breath.
“I’ll come back.”

”I don't see anything better than you. You'll have to wait until we have kids for that…” he replied simply, putting his hand up in a weak wave.

He really didn't want her to go anywhere. But, if she thought that walking around here would make her feel better, then maybe it would. He had no qualms about the quality of security, at least. There were so many eyes watching everything; all he really had to do was pull a bunch of Recollections and deal with parsing out the collective memories.

But, still… Walk away? To avoid getting upset? Sounded like the opposite of how Trisha worked.

”I'm gonna hold you to coming back… Big trouble if you disappear.” he tried to joke as she took another step away from him.

”I… already miss you.”

Why would he already miss her? She’d just been arguing with him, she just been pissy and unreasonable and-
“I won’t disappear.”

She couldn’t bring herself to say anything else, because she’d probably break down. But that was a problem too! She snapped at him then made him comfort her. Wouldn’t he just get annoyed again if all the self doubts- self hatred- just spilled out?

And she’d probably just snap again. She could feel it, the building resentment that she wanted to- needed to- get rid of. Or try to… Because he shouldn’t have to deal with it.

So while she didn’t plan to disappear entirely, she did disappear back out the side door they’d come in.

She didn’t want to go far, or out of the actual tents. Thankfully it was quietening down a bit- less devout members and those with younger children leaving before all the speeches were done. There were more quiet areas. Nobody tried to talk to her either, thankfully, as she made her way about as far as she could from the box without leaving the canopies. She’d hadn’t brought her coat, after all, just her bag.

And she really didn’t want to run away. She really was trying to do what she said she would- to stop and think things through alone.

So she found herself another quiet spot. Less private, less nice, but hidden away enough between staff areas and the main tables that she felt that she could stop. Stop, think, and hold her head in her hands.

Because she had reacted badly again. Casey may still be putting up with it, but how long would he be able to? She wasn’t exactly improving. If anything, she felt like she was getting worse. Fuck.

They'd already dealt with so much tonight. The proposal and after it was meant to be good. They should've just left. Then she wouldn't have gotten upset.

But there’d be something else, wouldn’t there? Because the problem was her, not the situation. It was all her. Maybe she should go back and apologise. No, no, she was still touchy. She might just make things worse. Did she even deserve to go back and see Casey right now? She didn’t-

There was a shift inside her mind. A subtle stir of the Queen normally sleeping within. Not quite awake, but enough to get Trisha’s attention. She turned her head away from the ground she was looking at towards the nearest table her attention was being tugged towards.

Just in time to see a woman standing up, skin eerily shifting. It wasn’t like a Green Adept, or any other transformative magic she’d seen. It was more disturbing. Like the skin it wore wasn’t quite its, but was enough part of it that changing it wasn’t right either. A blanker, less human version, pulling out a knife to attack the man next to it.

Trisha’s breath caught in her throat, multiple screams echoing in her ears. It wasn’t just one. Was it- It was what Casey had spoken about, wasn’t it? The Doppelgangers- and they’d waited until the end of the night. When things were getting quieter. There were less innocent members left, sure, but some strong Adepts had left too.

But none of the truly important ones.

Shit, shit, shit- Trisha crouched, dropping her bag to pull Princess out. Slightly trembling hands didn’t stop her from willing the plush toy alive, increasing her size back to her normal, large and round size. It was easier thanks to the bread… And the bees immediately responded to her call through it.

Thousands of bees streamed out of Princess’ bright orange fluff, Trisha’s phone ringing with the alarm from the app. She ignored it- it didn’t matter, everyone else was already here. A dense cloud of bees filled the air in front of her as the nearest Doppelganger turned towards her with an eerie gaze, seeming to sniff the air.

Were they targetting specific people? No, that made no sense- why would it come for her now? They were killing everyone, right? Otherwise their targets would be people like Lynette- Or Casey and Leon!

Shit, Casey- He was so far away. But- He’d be safe, he’d be fine, he was a better fighter than she was. She needed to- Ah!

A bee got caught on the blade, another group squashed in the Doppelganger’s hand as it advanced on her. The jolt of pain in her mind was enough to get her to focus, stopping the bees from aimlessly swarming and stinging something that didn’t seem to feel pain. If it did, it didn’t care.

Trisha shuffled back, pulling on the threads that connected her to the increasing amount of bees nearby. Still not all of them… Princess was mobile, at least, and moved out of the way.

It takes at least five hundred stings to kill someone.

One cloud of bees formed a sharp wall in front of Trisha as she retreated, able to block and avoid getting crushed under her command. She’d spent enough time with Casey now to start organising things better, even if it was all under her orders. The main wall was a distraction, the occasional buzz to her mind as one died manageable. But each new group that came out of Princess was sent to sting another area before joining it.

Unpredictable attacks… The kind a living, thinking person could probably figure out. But this was a Doppelganger with orders, not a full fledged human. Not yet, at least.

She hardly had to worry. In a one versus one her bees were overwhelming. The tactics were to minimise deaths- enough stings to kill were easy to reach with thousands at her command. It didn’t stop her heart from pounding in her chest as the first Doppelganger that had come for her fell dead.

Because there were so many more. And she was alone.

Things moved incredibly fast. Like the old days, when a peaceful moment suddenly became filled with chaos due to the Stygian Snake and its many pawns. Some screams weren’t just the deaths of innocent Blinds either; psionic screeches echoed and bounced off one connecting signal to the other as the random violence landed partially upon the Mauteo spread throughout the audience.

White Lux dying in droves was a powerful indicator for any Paranormal individual to take a cue from. Especially when they were all connected like this, as the cacophonous bursting of their spells battered the Emotional Fields of all present. Massive white eyes materialized by the dozens, only to burst into gaseous nothing and climb into the sky. Screaming smoke signals serving as alarm bells in the drone of the evening.

But they weren’t entirely helpless either. Many escaped the initial burst of violence which saw each Undesired pawn twisting their bodies to the right and burying whatever cutlery they had deep into the chest of the unsuspecting victim aside. Some were on the left, or on the other side of the table, leaving them poised to make a counterattack. Most Mauteo didn’t carry blades anymore, but their culture was born of great deeds. They didn’t hesitate to evolve the same tactic as the Undesired, forks and knives plummeting into hollow wooden bodies.

Flesh was flesh, bone was bone, but once it all stopped working, it became clear that some quality of these puppets were never really human at all. That the skin they crawled within had been some incredible illusion, and that all which writhed in agony to the bitter end beneath their killing blows was a shell. A hollow thing that stared blankly, no eyes to speak of. Gears within whirred loudly, then exploded into metal shrapnel that ripped their wooden frames apart with loud pops.
As the one Trisha killed hadn’t exploded, there was a chance it was circumstantial, or otherwise a condition wasn’t met. And certainly not a thing to be cleared up now, as two more were approaching, coated in blood as they’d successfully made it through the opening gambit and noticed a Paranormal target to prioritize.

Trisha grimaced, continuing to back away from the 'body'. Maybe it wouldn't explode, but maybe it would- and she couldn't take something like that! It'd kill far too many bees protecting her.

And now she had two more to worry about. The bees split into three groups now. Each Undesired approaching her was swarmed, doing her best to slow them down. But they weren't really living breathing things. The faux humanity was stripped away and with it any feeling of pain. Where a human would be stopped by thousands of bee stings, they weren't.

The cutlery they'd picked up wasn't exactly efficient against bees, but there was enough strength that they could crush the bees swarming them underneath their hands. Each death was another mental jolt to Trisha's mind, blood beginning to drip from her nose. But while there was just a shell underneath, they still started to succumb to the venom in her bees stings all the same.

But they were faster than she was, with half her mind on controlling the bees and the other half on trying to retreat. The fuzzier her mind got from bee loss the harder it got. A hand practically stripped of all flesh grabbed her, a fork stabbing towards her bee covered neck. Sharp jolts exploded in her mind as her bees swarmed up and pushed back at the metal implement, more fiercely stinging her attacker. She kicked at it, feeling herself pulled to the ground as it tried to get her in its death throes.

She wasn't physically strong enough to stop it, but the venom was quickly killing it. It made it easier to twist and kick it away, even as she hit the ground on her side. She flipped onto her back to start scrambling away, kicking at the grasping hands of two rapidly dying Undesired.

There were a lot of loud pops at this point, not just from the chest cavities exploding from the Undesired perishing, but gunshots filling the surrounding area of the park. The noise was growing to an incredible level as people left without a fight in them began to really scream and break for an exit. Any side would do, as the entire platform was only raised so high that it could hide the crab buried in the sand beneath.

Which is exactly what Trisha needed most right now: In retaliation to the backlash caused by its favored people being killed off by the handfuls, the Crab below the boards had started to raise its temperature to an immense degree. Now, as it sucked water from the surrounding earth and soil, erosion began to occur that exposed its gaping maw and left a newly formed ravine that allowed sea water to travel down the passage and be sucked in rapidly.

And then the crab began to boil. And in doing so, it allowed super concentrated jets of steam to push from its joints and pores in its shell. One of these jets, its trajectory situated just right, buckled the wooden boards above it and absolutely shredded the two Undesired apart before ripping into a crowd. The first few innocents were split in half with a burst of brine, while those surrounding them suffered salty, scalding burns across their exposed flesh as they tried to run.

While they were scary, it also seemed to have a rhythm like a heartbeat. The jets would pulse hard, die off, be dead for a moment, then rage back to life leaving a massive plume of steam to block vision every time.
This wasn’t a safe place for bees. But, it also wasn’t really a safe place for anyone. With patience and a little confidence, the jets spraying out all over the place would work wonders as improvised weaponry, but that was asking quite a lot from people who’d never seen combat and chaos before.

Trisha winced as the splattered, residual spray hit her kicking feet, scrambling and rolling away from the boiling jet stream. She'd escaped the worst of it- the burns on her legs just surface damage, painful but not debilitating. The bees that couldn't get off the Undesired in time were left worse off, burning up with sharp jolts to her mind.

It was bad… But it gave her something else to work with. All of the bees were called back to her and Princess, covering both. Princess stayed hovered beside Trisha- easily moved but not in the way. One hand moved up to try and wipe away the blood streaming from her nose before giving up. The corners of her vision were slightly fuzzy, but not enough to impede her. She'd dealt with worse situations before. Times when she ended up alone against the Stygian Snake's minions too. These weren't so bad. She was older now, more capable.

There were more approaching her now, two close and a few more further. It was easier for them to target the Paranormals where the innocents were fleeing. Anyone who stayed and fought was a target. The jet nearby blasted again as she pushed herself to her feet, mentally counting in her head.

Deep breaths, staying calm, counting down. Let them get close enough to grab… Trisha leapt back in a sudden movement when her internal countdown ended, as the Undesired went for her right over a jet. She landed on her ass and immediately rolled away, bees quickly protecting her in case she mistimed it.

The thing surged forward in response, but tripped when the expected blast of air didn’t happen. One foot fell into the broken boards, causing the Undesired to slip and crack itself open before getting wholesale blasted by an extra-cooked jet of pressurized boiling water.

Several of Casey’s presumed cousins stepped in around Trisha for a brief moment, seeing her struggling on the ground. One of them hoisted her up, and she’d be able to see that his face was completely covered by his shirt so people couldn’t see it. Yet, he moved like he could see everything, and passed her just as quickly as he’d come with the rest of his small group in tow as they hunted for vulnerable dolls to destroy.

Out ahead, Trisha would be able to see the box and the stage in the short distance. It looked like the end of a superhero movie, with lights and flashing colors, massive weapons and gunshots ringing out like life inside a combustion engine. It seemed like anyone who said they cared about her wouldn’t be able to help… Until-

Triiisshhaaa!

Cass was still a bit away, fighting through the Undesired that just kept coming. She was a constantly shifting animal hybrid, swapping parts in and out as necessary. Extra limbs grew to block something then disappeared just as quickly. Scales covered her body up to her slightly elongated face, sharp teeth stained with whatever it was those things had in them. Blood? Tasted close enough. Her legs imitated a cheetah’s for speed, with a strong flexible tail that didn’t seem to be from any animal adding yet another weapon she could use.

Of course, there were the signature wolf ears poking out the top of her head.

She dodged and caught the next Undesired that came at her, ripping it in two with a burst of strength. Her veins glowed green with the act, quickly throwing the separated parts in two different directions before it exploded. She’d learnt that the hard way when one exploded right in her face! It was only thanks to her super Green Lux healing factor she was alive and in one piece.

It was easy to heal and recreate. For now. Even with her massive reserves, she was using a shit ton. The closer she got to Trisha the more she was having to exercise some amount of control, rather than just letting her magic run wild.

Trisha was filled with relief at the sight of Cass, no matter how weird she looked right now. She wasn’t being left alone… Not that she thought Casey would do that, even when they were fighting. Or Cass herself, for that matter. But she didn’t have to fight by herself. Thank fuck.

There were more Undesired circling in around her even as Cass tore her way through them. Trisha knew where the jets were now, at least. But it was an extra mental strain to command her bees to attack the closed doppelganger while keeping them out of burning hot steam. They were beginning to flag, the increased heat and humidity in the air not conductive for them. But they were strong, like her. They could keep going.

As Trisha’s gaze was taken by Cass, and the Undesired began to circle around her tighter, the edges of the canopies were starting to get darker and darker, like the night outside was growing moonless. It was; and like being trapped inside an eclipse, the open sides became closed and illuminated from the rear to beam hellish red light which cast writhing shadows along every possible angle. The event lights dimmed, and even the plumes of steam climbing toward the canopy ceiling were subject to blocking weak light and causing amorphous shadows to grow across the floor.

The sensation was all too familiar: And there were only two constants when something like this happened… One, was that there was an Apparition somewhere nearby channeling the energy of the Stygian Snake, and could most likely be found within the arena along with the general populace. And two: Anyone left inside would be fighting to the death. Against the light, and the dark. Against the shadows. Against their own friends, and eventually their senses until all went dark.

Thus, the power of an Archserpent: One of the Stygian Snake’s most trusted lieutenants and creations of its own vast shadowy complex. And that Archserpent didn’t hesitate in manifesting through every single shadow it possibly could. Looking deep enough into any shadow nearby, and one would see the hundred piercing eyes and burning tongue flicking out and waiting for a chance to strike. Some lengths of shadows materialized as serpentine forms without prompting, rushing to constrict and devour anyone they could.

This was bad. It may not have happened to Trisha very often, but there was a wolf’s howling in the near distance that turned into cacophonous rage. He knew. And there was immediate reactions as magical lights and flares all tried to drown out the opportunities for shadow to exist in large, open swaths.

Just like Leon had directed them to do all those years ago.

No, no, no, it couldn’t be. The Stygian Snake was sealed, and all its creation with it. How could it- unless it was free?! Panic clutched Trisha as there seemed to be shadows everywhere she looked. It didn’t matter that lights and flares lit up the area- she’d backed herself into a corner where it was so much easier for the darkness to thrive.

Just like then. Just like all the times she fought its lesser shadow constructs. Various scars flared up in phantom pain as her breathing quickened, each breath getting stuck in her throat. It was like she was doused in cold water. All she could hear was screams and shouts, shadows covering everything. She was fourteen again. Losing the fight for her life. Losing the only people that mattered then.

Her legs buckled underneath her as she struggled to breath. The past and present overlapped into a nightmarish cacophony. Panic pheromones blasted into the air around her and the bees went mad, buzzing and stinging anything that came nearby. There was no more direction, even as the Undesired continued to close in, and shadows began to slither towards her.

I can’t go through that again. Fuck, no, I can’t.

She couldn’t move. Trapped in fear, unable to do anything as an Undesired got close enough to make a stab at her throat.

Blood splattered across her face, but there was no pain that came with it.

”Trisha, snap outta it- Fuck!” Cass had taken the knife to the abdomen, ripping it out and stabbing the Undesired in the eye with it. She quickly tossed that one towards another group to explode them. But there were even more coming. Three lunging at once was difficult for her to handle, even with all of her magic. She let them hit her instead of Trisha, tearing out their fake flesh while they tore at her.

As she went to toss the last one away, seconds ticking down before it exploded, a cold pain burnt through her arm. A shadow serpent had its teeth in her wrist, beginning to devour from hand up.

Fuck, fuck!

Green Lux pumped rapidly around Cass’ body, veins filling with a neon green glow as she rapidly grew. She was large enough to completely block Trisha as the Undesired exploded into deadly shrapnel. It tore off her whole arm and the shadowy serpent with it, more ripping through her abdomen and lodging into various parts of her body.

The pain was intense as she shrunk back down. Natural Green Lux started to heal the wounds as she tore out sharp metal pieces with her one hand- but she seized full control of the magic flow to stop it from healing more than was necessary. All major wounds knit up just as painfully as they formed, her arm rapidly healing but not regrowing. She didn’t have enough magic to keep fighting and properly heal everything. Every wound was clotted, she wasn’t going to die… She was just one arm down now, and covered in a lot of barely scabbed wounds.

As blood mixed with shadows and gore from torn limbs hit Trisha, her panic only increased. Her vision was getting blurry, her extremities going numb as she heaved in sharp, shallow breaths. Tears spilled down her cheeks and panicked whimpers escaped her lips. Not again, no, not again…

She could see them in the writhing shadows. The limp bodies of her friends… The two she hadn’t been able to save that first night. Rose and Samantha… Their wide, blank eyes stared at her from the darkness. There were more- him, Cass- no, not Cass, she hadn’t just died, had she?! It was all her fault. She just got people killed. No, no, no, no-

”Trisha, please, snap outta it! We gotta move!” Cass was doing her best, unable to change her body as much as she was used to. One clawed hand, clawed feet and sharp teeth were what she was left with… But the depleted magic and injuries were taking their toll. It was so fucking hard to protect someone like this. Especially when the fucking shadows attacked!

Trisha barely heard her over the static ringing in her ears. She couldn’t see beyond the images her brain was imposing over her vision, aided by the Archserpent’s shadows. She got them killed, she got them all killed. She was going to die here, too, they all were, they couldn’t fight it, not anymore, not with what they had left-

There was a whizzing noise punctuated by the echoing of metal as sparks burst into life like a flint and steel lighting a bonfire. The spiraling umbrella of raven colored hair could almost be mistaken for Casey, or one of the other siblings at first… But as the slender blade of a long, medieval style longsword struggle against the metal-plated scales of the Archserpent, the acrobatic technique of entry was revealed to be a true Lynette Richoux special.

She didn’t look normal, per se. Whatever drugs and magical stimulants that had been on those tables had left her looking swollen, pumped like a steroid-addicted gym rat. She had some kind of apparatus strapped to her face as well, which was totally blocking her eyesight and leaving her almost certainly blind. She didn’t make a sound, no wincing nor sign of struggle as the Archserpent’s armored scales ground against her sword.

Then, as if nothing had kept her held there to begin with, the Archserpent disappeared into the shadows again, snaking off to cause havoc as it desperately attempted to avoid the White Lux user hunting it down. This was one of the few times Lynette couldn’t talk: She was too busy trying to see the immediate future with as much speed and precision as possible.
For most, battle meditation as a skill was a big guessing game: Parse out a hundred million possibilities and play a probability game while processing an active combat situation simultaneously, and you’ve got the basic gist of this technique. It took a truly powerful or, in this case, accurate maestro of predeterminational probability to make it work.

Few people expected such accuracy. Such impactful judgement and decision making. And normally one would be right: Lynette simply didn’t have the concentration. But all the drugs made it so much easier. Here, she was at her best, and therefore was so locked into her meditative stance, that there was no chance to speak. She was dedicating every possible instance of thought to what was coming.
So that when an oncoming group of Undesired dared to press the once-vulnerable position that Trisha and Cass had been in, she only took a solitary second to consider which angle was best before splitting them to the gears.

She killed them so quickly and so thoroughly, the spell inciting their self-destruct sequence had to catch up. Yet, in a moment’s pause, her eyeless masked face stared down at Trisha in an unblinking facade of black satin.
Get to the center! Now! her voice echoed through Trisha’s mind entirely unconcerned with the nearly shattered emotional field protecting her.

Where external sounds hadn’t pierced through the panic, it was impossible for Trisha to miss a voice in her own mind. It didn’t reduce the panic clutching her, but it broke her out of her catatonic state enough to start moving. Her trembling hands rubbed vigorously at her face, trying to wipe away the tears and blood to no avail.

The potent pheromones in the air sucked back in, the bees following to defend rather than attack. It was still so hard to breath, like glass had shattered in her lungs. The dead bodies were still there flickering in her vision. But her survival mechanism- what had saved her every other time- kicked in and had her managing to get to her feet.

”Thank fuck- Let’s go, let’s go!” Cass didn’t hear what Lynette said to Trisha, nor did she bother thanking her in the heat of the moment- there’d be time after! Because that sword thing had been pretty fucking cool… But not right now.

But even without direction, Cass grabbed Trisha’s arm and started pulling her towards the centre of the tents. Where the magical lights shone brightest, and the shadows seemed to be kept at bay.

“I’m sorry, I’m sorry, I’m sorry.” Trisha’s whispered pleas were barely audible over the fighting, especially as Cass had to focus her senses precisely without so much Lux to pump through her body. She was running of her own accord, but there was still very little control. Intense panic dulled to heavy emptiness and sharp self hatred as the magical lights and flares burned away the images haunting her. But they were still there, in her mind.

Cass was still there, covered in injuries as she pulled Trisha along with the only hand she had left.

The panic attack was by no means over. Just shifted. The bees still didn’t know what to do, trying to sting Cass through hard scales.

Thankfully only a few got through, something Cass could just ignore.
”Don’t be- just stay here with me!”

They were almost at the center now, the path relatively clear- and what few Undesired there were between them were quickly dispatched by Cass and the bees following her attacks to swarm them. Finally reaching a place where they could both hopefully take a breath.

There was a viscous amount of howling as they got closer to the stage. In fact, it was a form of Leon that Cass and Trisha would never have seen before: Rather than some hybrid between man, woman and beast, the monstrosity ripping at and sinking its teeth into the fabric of reality was truly all beast. A massive Canid form, huge bushy tails swinging in several directions to compliment the multiple heads that gnashed and bit and crushed into nothingness. One head seemed to peel back the layers, another diving into the hole, and the third bit directly at whatever wriggled out.

Great paws with claws the size of fork truck tongs pressed into the edges of the hole, ripping it bigger and bigger as jets of hot water blasted into his flanks. Somehow, the massive Aberration was managing to play tug of war against the Archserpent in its own pocket domain… And it looked like he was winning!

As they ascended the platform, they’d be met with rushing waves of Orange and Pink Lux meant to bolster the mind and spirit of any who entered the square. It was a stronghold, and at the head of it was Casey. At some point, the group had stacked the tables, and he stood up on a chair above it all. His arms flicked and twitched, and it became clear that a great deal of the gunfire that was happening was being done through his power alone. Gunlines, like revolutionary soldiers, surrounded the perimeter of the box at mid-height angles, firing at targets all determined by the controller.

To control like this, it took an incredible amount of White Lux. Not so much that he couldn’t do it, just… Not naturally. Probably something he’d have to deal with later, and he was certain Trisha wouldn’t let him live it down. But, it was for the best. Leon could handle the problem: He knew best how to fight them. And Casey knew how to direct and save people. Both were happening, as his sky-eyes utilized two very real lights above the box to act as spotlights, which he’d enchanted to brighten and tighten like prison spotlights.

Mia was the first to see the two of them, and she rushed to Trisha and Cass with her arms out. A couple of “living” bench seats wormed their way up behind her, ready to act as makeshift stretchers should the need arise.

”Oh thank fucking God Cass! Oh fuck, I could kiss you right no-Oh fuck!
Mia’s face wasn’t a wince so much as it was a full on gag. She’d rarely seen a state of half-healing like that. But, if Cass wasn’t partial to the good shit, even she’d only be able to last so long.

Once everything had started to go crazy, none of the siblings remaining were above huffing down half a shaker worth of Oblivium salts and cracking a nice piece of Glass between their teeth. The true nature of the VIP Box had revealed itself, as looking around, some of the boards were pulled up neatly and crates of gear and supplies were now strewn about them in states of half-empty. Green, red, the chocolate pudding, and half a dozen other iridescent gel packs were available; and people were pulling pit stops from the battle outside to juice up before bouncing back out again.

It was chaos.

”Fuck, Andy!? Doc!? Maybe you should look at this!” Mia called as she tried to move around Cass to see Trisha.
”Sis!? Are you hurt!?”

“I’m fine.” Trisha said, voice incredibly quiet. The wave of Pink and Orange was enough to dampen her panic, but not enough for positivity of any form to replace it. Just emptiness and clear thoughts- which only went down towards how awful she was. How she’d put Cass into danger- and been useless.

It wasn’t possible for Mia to get close to Trisha. Not because she made any particular moves away, but her bees were covering her body completely. Princess hovered right behind her, just as covered in buzzing bees.

”I’m fine too! It ain’t as bad as it looks! It’s all, like, totally healed to the point I ain’t gonna bleed out. Soon as my magic replenishes in a couple’ve days I’ll be all good!” Cass said with far more energy than someone as wounded as her should have. She shuffled further into the box, letting go of Trisha’s arm and finally being free from bees trying to sting her.

”Good God, woman! Are you hollow? Did it carve you out like a mountain? Jesus Almighty, at least finish your fuckin’ meal, Cass!” Andy snapped as she pressed her way toward Cass with a bag of something mixed up in her hands.
”You and I both know you can fix this, but if you let it wait too long, there’s complications- And we’re gonna need all the energy we can get for any other wounded soon! So fucking suck the bag!

Casey had only a brief moment to split his concentration and look back down at the area he knew to be safe. He could see Cass and Trisha after having lost sight of them when directing Lynette. She’d been lost in a trance at this point, and he could only hope she was driving the vestigial coils of the Archserpent toward Lelou’s gaping maw…
Conveniently, Andrade had made himself scarce, thus the sealing of such a beast could only be done in a primal fashion. In a final act of desperation, the Archserpent splayed its torso in full, arms unbuckling from its ribcage in shadowy masses to try and reverse the flow of swallowing. To try and oroborous itself while sucking Lelou down into nothingness in the process.

A life for a mad, insane existence.

But just as quickly as it had all started, so too did it end: The mistake of leaving itself open in desperation was just that. A desperate mistake played by a fool. Both front paws of the giant wolf slipped up, powerful hind quarters bearing the weight of the beast within, and planted themselves on either side of the wide open ribcage.
With one singular flex, Lelou ripped the entirety of the Archserpent’s upper torso apart. She splayed it like a spatchcocked turkey, pinning it to grounded reality and beginning to devour it from the inside.

Around them, the illusion faded. The shadows all around them melted into reality as the screaming crowds outside were once more able to reunite with the remaining living who had been trapped inside. But as light flooded back all around them, it was clear that there were few happy endings left.
What bodies hadn’t been ripped apart by the shadow serpents and remaining Undesired had been torn apart by the many spells and hailing magical bullets that had secured the area to begin with.

Outer perimeter security had at least done their own job, and secured the perimeter as intended. The few Undesired that escaped confines had been handled, and the only thing that was left to deal with was the massive wolf Apparition consuming the equally massive snake Apparition in the middle of the event space.
Casey didn’t waste any more time than he had to in dropping every spell he had and rushing down to Trisha like she was the only thing on the planet. The truth was, he couldn’t look at the scene outside that box any more than she could. None of it was okay.

No. He didn’t want to be here. And he was desperately praying that his guardian angel was still alive to uphold her end of the bargain. A pulse of White Magic wriggled its way across the entire place, hitting a small signal in the outside crowd. In an automatic response, a hole opened up below the two of them just as Casey dropped to his knees and hugged around her.
The speed at which they fell was rapid, like they were being dragged through the floor until they were in their dark, quiet apartment again placed softly on the wooden floor by the front door.

And then they were suddenly alone. Thank God they were alone… Save for the absolutely hellish torrent of bees reflecting in and out of itself as Princess managed to wriggle itself through the hole with a massive swarm behind it. It was like being consumed by a jet engine…

The sudden darkness, even natural in a familiar setting, was enough for Trisha’s panic to start climbing again. There was no more Pink Lux to keep all the emotions at bay, and they crashed back into her. The massive swarm of bees responded with confused buzzing, starting to crawl across Trisha and Casey where he held her.

Thankfully, they still recognised his smell and all the pheromones she constantly soaked him in. Enough to not start stinging him like they had Cass.

She gripped onto his shoulders, managing to push through the ice cold grip enough to call them off. The bees detached and moved up to the roof plants, buzzing still filling the air.

There was momentary relief that Casey was alright and alive. But then, the residual fear took full hold and everything else that had followed it. Her disgust at herself for panicking, still panicking when she’d made it out just fine. But she hadn’t deserved to… Someone else’s blood was shed in her place.

She’d panicked and broken- far worse than she ever had before. During the Stygian Snake years everything was driven by survival. There were plenty of panic attacks in the moments they weren’t fighting, but freezing up meant she was as good as dead. Since… She thought she was fine. She had been fine! Until she saw it again.

They’d known to use flares and light. Just like Leon had told them to ten years ago. He’d known…

“Why…” Trisha whispered, voice hoarse. She coughed, throat sore and dry from harsh breathing and blood running down it from her nose. The tears that had only briefly stopped were flowing again. Her look down at him was incredibly raw, filled with all the harsh emotions she felt weighing on her. Continued panic and horror, despair, self-disgust, and a slowly encroaching anger. She couldn’t hide any of it as her body trembled, breathing growing harsh again. But she managed to push quiet words through it.

“Why didn’t you tell me? You- You knew it’d be that, didn’t you? I- I- Cass almost died. It was my fault… cause I didn’t know.”

He almost didn’t hear her. And he certainly didn’t want to reply with any kind of negative response. What he really wanted, and had prayed for, was that dearest Trisha wouldn’t have the energy to be upset. No such luck. But just like she was having a hard time as the influence of all that Pink Lux faded, so was he. And just like Trisha, Casey had been dealing with his own moment of past-to-present anxiety. Had Harietta not been so close by, and had he not been more than willing to slurp down a cocktail of the Temple’s finest Oblivium suspensions, he probably would’ve succumbed to it just like she had.

But nothing prepared him for feeling actual anger at her response.

”What… the fuck are you asking me right now, Trisha? Are you serious? he asked quietly, almost too calmly in response to what she’d said.

The truth was, he couldn’t fathom it. He couldn’t fathom that she was somehow bringing all of what had just happened back to herself. Not even the blame for it all either; just the sheer tragedy of the situation, and everything he was feeling in that moment. He probably should have been yelling. But the Glass made his mind sharp in spite of the grief.

Trisha reactively flinched, breath catching in her throat. She wasn’t sure what she’d expected. An apology? Some clear emotion, even if it was negative? But of course. He was probably disappointed in her too. Because it was her fault she’d been out of the safe area, and her fault she’d frozen up.

“I’m- I’m asking why you didn’t tell me about something that would’ve stopped me being a liability!” She managed to choke out, a light citrus scent filling the air as her panic flared and her pheromones with it. Not enough to get through any Emotional Field with her mental state, but they were there.

Her panic and agitation was raw, the natural shadows around them seeming to flicker in her vision. All the dead- real and past. Why had she deserved saving?
“Cass got her- her arm ripped off. She should’ve died and I- I- wouldn’t have been so useless if I knew.”

”You are a fucking priority, not a liability. You can fucking afford not knowing everything, Trisha! I have your fucking back! Casey huffed, practically wheezed, his response into life.

The way he saw things, Trisha could only be a liability acting like this. Like a child. Like she was the only one who mattered, and that she’d have made so much of a difference.

”God damn it all, Trisha, I fucking love you! But people are fucking dead! There’s gotta be hundreds of casualties, and you want to ask me why I didn’t inform you better like it would’ve made much of a difference? This isn’t asinine, it’s ghoulish!”

“I know I’m useless, Casey! But- But Cass could’ve helped other people, she wouldn’t have wasted so much magic in a fucking explosion, she’s actually strong enough to help!” Trisha wasn’t shouting, because she didn’t have the breath to. Everything came out in short, sharp bites.

She started trying to wriggle away from him, finding it easier now that he wasn’t holding her as tightly. She didn’t want to be near him, to feel the disgust towards her practically radiating off him and feeding into her own.

“She could’ve saved people that actually deserved it… Should’ve anyway!”

”We saved everyone we could! Stop-”

As if taking his own advice, as she tried to wriggle away, Casey drew back and took as deep a breath as he could before his eyes started to well up.

”-I mean… What the fuck? No ’Thank God we made it!’ or anything? Not a single iota of gratitude that we managed to get anyone out alive? No big fucking hug or affection? You just go straight for the jugular, don’t you Trisha?!” he snapped again.

How was she supposed to do any of that when panic was gripping her so tightly? She felt so much disdain towards herself, she struggled to feel grateful towards something she didn’t feel she deserved right now. Maybe that was why she was arguing with Casey now- hurting him to hurt herself.

“I’m sorry! I’m fucking sorry!” The way it came out didn’t sound apologetic at all, or any less harsh that how she’d been speaking before.
“I- I don’t choose my emotions! I’m sorry, I don’t fucking deserve- You don’t- I- I- Fuck, just- just- can we please turn on the fucking lights?!”

He had to accept that at least. He smacked his fist off the floor of the room and let the shockwave of Orange Lux rock across the house until each and every light came on in succession. Suddenly, they were in a world of light again, and Casey’s arms were open. He was still on his knees, scooting forward toward her slightly. Bit by bit.

”There! There, it’s okay, Trisha! Just, come here, Baby! Please, don’t let it be like this! I love you!” he pleaded to her, holding his arms up toward her.
”Nothing’s gonna hurt you now!”

Trisha sniffed, trying to wipe away her tears as she trembled and hesitated. The light banished the panic inducing shadows, leaving heavy guilt in its wake. But Casey didn’t deserve to be punished for that…

“I’m- I'm not only worried about myself.” She whispered, shuffling forward before crouching to bundle herself into his arms.
“It’s others too! I- I always get people killed, Casey! I don’t want to… But it keeps happening. Even when I try. I’m- I’m no better than I was ten years ago. I’m sorry, I’m sorry, I should’ve kept it all in. I love you, I’m sorry.”

”Baby, you’re not fuckin’ hearing me! he breathily asserted, lowering the volume of his voice to avoid sounding like he was snapping at her.

But his grasp on her, his hold, was shaking. His entire body was shaking as the adrenaline in his system was left with nothing to circulate toward. No goals, no necessity. It was driving his biochemical reserves into the ground. Trying not to make it too obvious, he cracked the capsule he was keeping tucked between his lip and gums, letting the anti-magic substance race through his bloodstream. The Lux-laden compounds bind to chemical receptors, restricting the flow of Lux-laden chemicals through the brain.

He wanted to come down. He wanted it to be over. There was no patience when the woman in his arms was who he had to satisfy and protect. She was everything to him, and all he wanted was to convey himself to her. But everything was collapsing. He had to get it out now, before everything was gone.

”Some people are not meant to fight wars! Defending yourself? That’s one thing: Everyone always feels comfortable defending themselves. There’s nothing else on the line! But damn this entire world if you think for a second that I’m going to let you think that the people who are meant for that kind of thing aren’t willing to fucking die for people who aren’t. It’s not a fucking choice, just like how you feel about shit isn’t a fucking choice!”

Ultimately, it was her ego. It gnashed and clawed and ripped at the presence of acknowledgement in any shape it could grasp, because all her life had been spent being told to suppress that. And, now he was doing it too. He wasn’t telling her to be different, nor to suppress what she was feeling.

But he was telling her it was wrong. Outwardly so, in a manner he couldn’t take back. So, why try?

”I couldn’t fucking get to you! I was trying to keep that fucking box secure! You didn’t fucking see them all! You only saw what was in front of you, and that was fucking enough! It was me who directed Cass toward you. I put her on that fucking track because I wasn’t strong enough to do it my goddamn self! And I should’ve sent more, because maybe Cass wouldn’t be fucking hurt! There! Isn’t it easy for us to redirect blame onto ourselves because we’re fucking hurt!?” he snapped, tears starting to stream down his face as images of places full of bodies flooded back to him.

”You can’t fucking account for everything! You can’t! You get sent into a fucking hellscape with no information, or fucking bad information, and people just get slaughtered! Dead! Gone! It fucking happens, and rather than loving me like I want to love you, it’s immediate fucking accusations! Yeah! I didn’t fucking tell you, because my point fucking stands! My Mother saw the fucking future, and she couldn’t organize anyone well enough to prevent that shit!” he seethed, his hands flattening out and purposefully avoiding tensing up so she didn’t feel any unwarranted aggression.

Trisha bit down on her lip hard, trying to clamp down on the reactive snapping. She didn't want to fight, she just wanted him to see. To understand what she was saying and feeling. But he wasn't going to. And she was making it all about herself. She shouldn't. She should just suppress it all… because she was wrong. She knew that, he'd told her that, and she hated it. Wrong for existing as she did and feeling like she did… Always.

The normal gut reaction was quenched as she trembled silently against him. Panic was still there, but it was being overwhelmed by all that aggression turning inwards and pushing her towards despondency.

“I know I'm not a soldier. I know. But I'm a survivor, I- I survived against the Snake before. I know what it's like! I've see it, we never had enough, most of us died- but I didn't… I didn't freeze up like that in the moment I…" She bit down on her lip again, shaking her head.
“It doesn't matter. You're right. I don't understand. You did everything you could. Sorry. I didn't need to know, it wouldn't have helped, I'm sorry for making it all about me. Sorry."

Casey’s fingers bent. All ten curled slightly, betraying every bit of pained anxiety trapped in his mind.

”There’s… Just a lot more, Trisha. For once, you literally can’t be the only thing on my mind… But you were. You were every single second that something was happening, and I could ignore it all because I knew you were out there. But once I saw you were safe? That was it… And I ran. And we’re here now, because every bit of me screamed to get the fuck out. I haven’t done everything I could, Trisha. Not even fucking close. I can’t even comfort you like you need to be comforted, because I keep fucking hoping and praying that for once something will go my way and it hasn’t!”

He didn’t want to look at her face. He just buried his head in her neck and began to sob.

”I know I was wrong, and we’ll fucking get there! But god dammit, Trisha, just… Fucking cry for once! If neither of us are doing good, then just fucking sit here with me and be together… Let’s forget for five fucking seconds…” he pleaded through heady sobs.

Trisha nodded, curling her head forward towards his. Her arms wrapped around Casey, hands gripping onto his back. She wasn't crying like he was. All of the extreme, all consuming emotion had happened during her panic attack, then when they got back. Now it was all draining away.

But she still hugged him with a tightness that didn't betray the despondency that was digging its claws into her. She shouldn't have said. Because this was what always happened when she brought up her feelings. She hurt people, and then they left her. He wasn't leaving yet… but she couldn't let him. She'd gotten too comfortable with just letting it out, but she shouldn't have! Not- not that she could always control it. But she had to try.

“I know." She whispered, closing her eyes and clinging to him.
“I shouldn't have said. I should've waited. I'm sorry, I knew it would hurt you but I still did, I should've waited till we were both better. I was so caught up in my feelings I only thought about myself. I- I was wrong to. I won't talk about it anymore. Not until you feel better. I love you, I swear, I really do, I won't do it again. I'll try not to… I'm here… I love you…"

She didn't know how to actually comfort him beyond hugging into him, and admitting she was wrong. She didn't even know how to help herself. But he just asked to be with her. She could do that, it was the least she could do. Anything he wanted… Maybe then he wouldn't realise how she really wasn't worth dealing with when his mind was clearer.


The night was full of quiet after that. Mostly the sound of one or another having a breakdown, punctuated at first by the dull vibration of Casey and Trisha's phones. People calling to check on them. At one point in the middle of the night, Casey's hall sensors went off, forcing him into coherence long enough to reset them and ward off those who were coming up to check on them. Thankfully, they were satisfied when they saw the lights of the house blazing, and nobody really bothered them for the time being.

Casey had presumed that there would be big issues for his reticence. But, even Lynette had the wherewithal to stop by. Even if she didn't come up to check on her son and future daughter-in-law, Casey felt her magic crawling up to the edge of his emotional field. There were no insults or breaching questions. Just tender care, and vague anxiety to remain somewhat separate.
But then, after all that, it was completely quiet. Casey knew she wasn't going to sleep, and he couldn't either. But the E-Vac pill he took had at least left him feeling less like a slab of mourning and more like a statue of marble.

The sun was coming up to wash away the dark. But he knew he couldn't shut all the lights off. He'd been staring at her back for almost an hour now, knowing that on the other side, she was stark awake and breathing just like him. Thinking about everything wrong.

And finally, he reached out. Casey's fingers gently fueled against Trisha's shirt, and tugged ever so slightly. He couldn't feel anything emotionally. It was all numb. But he knew that he loved her.

”You're everything to me…” he said quietly in the off chance she was sleeping.
”Everything. I can't live without you now. Please be real…” he pleaded almost silently, not entirely sure he was actually still alive to begin with.

Trisha wasn't asleep. She couldn't sleep. Every time she closed her eyes the shadows began to flicker across her vision. Then, images of the long dead and other horrors. So she couldn't. The nightmare of the waking mind was better. Spiralling further and further. She regretted how she'd reacted when they got back. All the times she'd snapped at him earlier in the day too.

It kept happening. How long would he be able to stay based on promises of improvement she wasn't confident would come? They probably wouldn't. She wasn't that strong. She was someone who failed over and over again. Worthless.

But Casey was still there. She could hear his breathing. He hadn't left. Yet.

At the gentle tug she startled, surprised by his movement after such a long period of silent stillness. She shuffled back towards him, before flipping around to face her. There wasn't any more hesitation as she buried herself against him.

“I’m real." Trisha whispered.
“You don't need to live without me. Ever. I'm here. I'm not going anywhere."

What little emotional energy she had she channeled towards comforting him. It was the least she deserved. She had too, anyway. She had to prove that she could help him. It wasn't just him being there for her, it wasn't unequal, she could support him. She had to try to be better. Even if she’d fail in the end… she couldn't leave him.

“I’m real, Casey." She pulled back a bit, hands reaching up to hold his face. Her expression was blanker than normal- more tired, despondent- but her love for him still managed to push through. Even in the darkest places it was there.
“See. I'm with you."

The rising sun would never shine through their windows. The entire apartment faced the sea, and they’d only ever share sunsets from this bed. At least there was nothing beautiful to miss. He could focus. His arms held onto Trisha for dear life as Casey took a deep, rattling breath.

”I made mistakes. I’m constantly making mistakes.” he started, taking a deep breath.
”I like to think one day I’ll stop making them. But often enough, its the same mistake. The same bad choice. Like, thinking something won’t be relevant, or won’t be important. Or, fuck, it may stress you out- clearly it doesn’t matter. But I don’t know what to fucking do, Trisha. I don’t know what to do to make it all better…” he quietly groaned, not sure of where he was going, and knowing he had to leave it there before he ramped things up too quickly.

Trisha shook her head. She wanted him to tell her things, because she wanted him to trust her, but how could he when she always reacted the same way. Wasn't that the root cause? It was normal to have some secrets. She was the one who got so triggered by it. Because of everything that had happened before… even though she was so closed off. Hypocritical.

But if she brought it all back on herself, then he'd get upset again. She couldn't do that.

“I keep making the same mistake too. I assume the worst thing." She said quietly, any emotion dampened. Maybe there'd been enough time for her to calm down. Or maybe she'd fallen so far down she didn't see a way back up yet.
“We… I don't know… We keep working on it together? And we- we accept that we both make bad choices sometimes? Because we love each other and when you love someone you- you react more, don't you?"

He didn’t respond to that concept immediately, rather hugging her closer.
”But I keep… Lying. And withholding. And promising you that things will be different soon, but how can I make that promise and then keep… Doing this. I can’t keep doing this to you, Trisha. I just fucking can’t… I feel like a fucking idiot. Like, fuck, I don’t even know for certain how you’ll react to things. I just assume its bad and leave things as they are. I never ask. I never consider. I just do what I think will protect you, and it’s so fucking dumb…”

If nothing else, he could absolutely nail himself to the cross over his behavior. Noble or not, he felt like a liar… And Casey Richoux wasn’t a liar. He’d never liked liars… Until he realized his life was full of them. Then, suddenly, it seemed a whole lot more appealing. It was the exact kind of behavior he’d left to escape. And now he was here, and it was still so damn natural.

”And all this over a fucking… No. No, see, that’s… Where we’ve gotta stop. The attack didn’t happen because I withheld the information from you. I can’t feel like it’s my fault, and you can’t feel like its your fault. That shit would’ve happened. It would’ve happened whether you were with Sycamore or not, because… It was just set up to happen. We couldn’t avoid Dollhouse striking out at us. We couldn’t…” he grimaced.

Dollhouse… It was a name Trisha vaguely knew. From her time in the Elite, rare moments where she actually looked over the information they'd bought. A Miami group, some presence here. But not enough that anyone in the Elite was worried. Then again, nothing worried Blake. The others didn't bother voicing their concerns to anyone but their kin. Maybe some were working with them.

“They’re… behind the murders?" She asked just to mentally confirm it herself more than anything.
“It’s- it's definitely not our fault… If they wanted just you or me they would've done it before. It was the Temple right, but- but-"

She shook her head, cutting off her panic as memories of more documents filled her mind. Information about the group being dangerous- more mafia than coven, at least. But the Temple was dangerous too. Plenty of groups in the city were dangerous. It was fine. No more scary knowing who it was who'd killed so many of her former covenmates that it had been not knowing.

“I… Don't care who it was. I don't care if you keep hiding things and I keep getting upset about it, because I can handle it as long as it's us. Even- even if we have to deal with more stuff like that. I'll be stronger. It just has to be us, whoever's trying to kill us." She bit her lip, hiding her face against him. Great job at not making it about her and keeping it all in…

It didn't matter if she didn't entirely believe what she said. She didn't think the attack was her fault. She wasn't the only Sycamore member present, anyway. But Cass getting hurt? That wasted resource? It still weighed on her. But she could pretend she wasn't still stuck in a mire of self doubt.
“It really wasn't our fault… You’re right… I'm sorry for lashing out last night."

”I love you… Stop apologizing… You deserve to have your time, Trisha. You deserve to be angry. I’m just… I saw everything. All the shit I never wanted to see again. I can deal with… With it being hallways. One, two people… The drugs make it so much easier. Not like in the military, where we had to see everything raw. But… It’s all stuck there now. I’m in fucking agony, and I… I feel like a failure. Because I knew I wouldn’t be able to comfort you, and rather than try, I just… Pushed you away.”

He was more than willing to spill everything he’d had the time to think about. But, it wasn’t going to stop being a problem for a few weeks at least. He needed time to decompress, and debrief. He had to know that the big problems, the new exposures, the people who may’ve kindled… And all the dead innocents… Were taken care of and put in their proper place.

”I… I… Didn’t even hear the end of Mom’s speech. They didn’t attack until they saw Leon on stage. Then, I was separated from everyone. I didn’t know where the fuck you were, I didn’t know where Leon was. Thank God I had the blade with me, otherwise I’d… Be real hurt. I’d never let them kill me… Not before I got back to you.” he curled into her in the same way she tried to curl into him. Suddenly, they were two shrimp with their heads bumped together.

Trisha bit down another apology was something she felt was her fault. She’d stopped him listening to Lynette because she was upset at him. But he’d said to stop apologising, so she should. For now. She even managed to catch and stop the fizzling reaction when he mentioned drugs. She… knew about them. She could understand taking them in this situation. Just about. As long as it was only this situation.

She could be supportive. She really could.
“I feel the same about Princess. If I hadn’t brought her… The bees wouldn’t reach me fast enough.” Though if she didn’t have Princess, she would have brought a group of bees with her. She only didn’t because she knew she could call them so quickly.

“I’m glad you weren’t hurt.” After some head bumping, Trisha managed to embrace their joint shrimp status, legs curling right up against her chest so they could slot together. Her forehead rested on his… Though it was a little difficult to look into his eyes still.

“I don’t think you’re a failure. I… thought you looked cool… When I got to the box. It just got lost in all my other thoughts then. I- I know that doesn’t fix anything. We still both… saw stuff we didn’t want to see again…” She didn’t want to keep thinking about it, even though it was there at the surface of her mind. Constantly intruding.

“But we’re safe.” If only that was enough to push away the guilt and lowness dragging her down.
“I can’t live without you either.”

”We… Found them. Everything. Leon, the others. Greyson’s dying. They’re gonna use him to bait out Dollhouse. Hopefully put an end to this bullshit, so we can at least feel good about you being safe… I’m asking you now if you want to be involved. If you feel like you should be with your Coven when the end comes. I… I would like to be. To make sure it goes smoothly as it can. Especially now… Because we deserve revenge. To take back our agency.” he intoned quietly, looking a little distant before refixing his gaze on her.

”But, I’ll do whatever you want… And that’s as honest as I can be.”

Trisha didn’t feel like Sycamore was her coven. It had been once. But they didn’t want her, and she cut all ties when it ended. They’d never wanted her… But they needed every member for a while. And she was never quite bad enough she got kicked out. Maybe they just didn’t care enough to.

But she wanted to be with Casey. And she didn’t want to keep him from something he wanted to be at because of her selfish feelings. It wasn’t like she hated all of them. How many would show, anyway? Couldn’t be many.

“I… can’t say I really want to when it involves Sycamore so heavily. But I should be there. With you, not them. They’re not really my coven anymore.” It was close enough to the truth. She wasn’t lying about feeling like she should, nor was she saying she wanted to. Just that she would. It didn’t matter that she agreed because he wanted to, did it?

“Maybe at a distance. I don’t know… We’ll figure it out. So long as it’s finally sorted. I honestly… didn’t expect it to be. Because we only ever worked together when the threat was right there, knife at our throat.” She admitted flatly. The implication that came with what she said- that she’d expected and accepted the killer would get her eventually- went unsaid. She sort of had. Had also hoped being with Casey would just keep the threat away.

“I guess some people managed to pull their weight.” But not her. She probably did everyone a favour by not returning, anyway.

”Then we’ll sort it out… But I’m… I’m not lying anymore. Im not hiding anything. I’ll fucking deal with you being anxious, and if you like it less than being kept in the dark, we’ll find a happy medium. And, then, once everything is taken care of, we won’t need to worry anymore. We’ll get a house, move far away, and disappear.” he shook his head.

”I’m not even sure it’s everyone involved in the plan. Some people- Greyson, and Linqian, mostly, are supposed to be pushing things along. If I’m being honest, uh… Well, I’m certain Greyson was a mole. Like Andrade was to us. Yet, now… We’ve got to trust the two ex-moles to make a plan come together. Maybe you can understand why I’m so tense over it in that context.” he explained.

“Andrade was a mole?” Trisha’s eyes started to widen, her breath catching in her throat. She didn’t even get a chance to tell him she was glad he wasn’t going to be lying before getting anxious just like he’d predicted.

Greyson wasn’t a surprise to her. It was obvious how much he hated them when they kicked him out. And he was a scumbag. The fact he’d seemingly changed surprised her more- and the Linqian was one of the people pushing things. Then again, her precious brother had been killed…

But Andrade? He’d been so… warm. He was close to Casey. He made all of his bread! He was in business with her! The whole time, he’d been leaking information? He’d been part of the organisation that wanted her dead? Had… wanted it too?

She’d started to trust him, as much as she ever could anyone within the Temple that wasn’t Leon, Elise and the girls. She shouldn’t have let herself… And if it was a shock to her, it must’ve been worse for Casey.

“I… I understand. I do. That’s… hard to do…” Hard to trust that it would work, and they wouldn’t end up- well, what? Dead, probably.
“Has he been… this whole time?”

Casey sighed deeply.

”When Dad found him, he never had anything to say about his family. He just… Stuck around. So, no. I don’t. He’d been around way too long. We… Didn’t ask. I don’t think Leon or I wanted to know. But, we’re trusting that his current attitude is genuine because of that.” he admitted calmly, thinking about how Andrade had been so reticent and remorseful when he’d been confronted. It wasn’t like him…

”But, it turns out, the asshole in charge is his twin brother. Their relationship is… The reason that the Temple’s been working with Greyson to begin with. That started a couple years ago. But, it turns out, our biggest material buyer has been Dollhouse the entire time.” he cleared his throat.

“O-Oh.” It was a lot of information for her to process all at once, especially when she was struggling to just pretend to be functioning right now. But she’d wanted to know. It wasn’t his fault the pull of that rare depressive low meant she really just wanted to stick her head in the sand, and had to really push to process it all.

“So the Temple was always involved. In that- I mean, like we- Sycamore- were. Maybe not quite the same… Sorry, it’s a lot. They were really everywhere.” She bit her lip, struggling with what to say that wasn’t jumbled or panicked. Because Casey seemed calm, at least.

“If you trust him… I trust you. That… can’t have been easy for you to find out, right? I couldn’t comfort you then but… I can now? Because that’s a big involvement from someone you’re close to.”

Casey was about to deny her the opportunity when his brain hitched onto a concept and stopped dead. He had no feelings about it at this point: Couldn’t. Not until they knew what was coming next. Not until the problems that Andrade was a part of were taken care of. Yet, he couldn’t take this chance away from her. He could see and feel what she was trying to do. She was trying to act strong. And, that was good. He felt comfortable about that…

So, he tucked his head a little more and pressed it against her chest. Casey knew what had to be done… He wouldn’t lie, but he didn’t have to act like he couldn’t see the right path just to protect the sanctity of the agreement. If there was something simple he thought could exist, that would make her feel better? He’d do it.

”I’m… Grateful to you. That you’re willing to listen. It’s hard, because if Andrade comes through with what he says, then there’s no way for me to hate him. But, honestly, I feel like a moron. I’m putting my trust in someone who’s been undercover for at least a couple of years now! Every part of me wants to break everything off and just run, but… I have to be courageous. Because it’s ultimately your problem, and that makes it very much my problem. I’ll never let anything happen to you.” he admitted, trying to let every suppressed feeling bubble up, just so Trisha had something to mow the proverbial lawn over.

Trisha hadn’t expected him to spill so much. She gently nuzzled her face against the top of his head as he spoke, trying her best to think of something to say that wasn’t just agreement. Because it was crazy to put his- their- trust in someone like that. But what other choice did they have? At least, she didn’t have a choice. She was tied to any Dollhouse plan thanks to being a former Sycamore member.

“I… Honestly, if we could, I’d want to run away too. But we can’t because of me so… I’m really glad you’re staying with me and love me that much. I think… It's really impressive that you can trust him. You’re giving all of us a chance because of it, aren’t you? Most people wouldn’t be able to step back… They’d already hate him. So… I don’t think you’re a moron. You’re doing what you think will work.” She pressed a kiss against the top of his head, closing her eyes for a moment. If things didn’t work out in the end, and the worst- whatever that was, presumably involving the Stygian Snake- happened? At least they’d die together.

Casey didn’t know what Trisha had in her mind exactly, but he quietly smiled and shook his head against her kiss. He’d not say it either, but… Thank God they’d die together.

”You’ve seen how things get when I do what I feel will work. You end up feeling hurt, and like I don’t trust you. There hasn’t been anything I’ve felt like I’ve done well regarding how I’ve handled all of this. Like, uh… Besides you. Getting together with you was probably the last good decision I’ve made in a while.” he admitted to her, chuckling to himself.

It wasn’t entirely true, but it was the last island decision. The last port the ship had rolled into that wasn’t attached to a floatsome barge or some kind of ship graveyard. The port was solid, the boat got repaired, there was time to breathe… It was a good choice. But everything since then had been rocky. Rough sailing, choppy water. Unknown territory. Places he’d never been, things he’d never done.

”I love you so much… It’s so fucking hard. I don’t want to make these decisions. That’s why I didn’t take the fucking promotion. God forbid another war came up and I was career Brass! I’d probably fucking hang myself knowing I was sending young men to fucking die! And, my God, the fucking… I don’t even know about my Cousins! My family! My whole fucking… I’m… I just don’t fucking want to do this, Trisha! I really don’t want these responsibilities! But it’ll put us in the best position we can be in for when it all falls down!”

He cleared his throat again, finally tilting his head and looking up at her with tears again.

”And it’s my fault for being selfish… For… Not wanting to deal with you. When you’re stressed like that, it makes… It gets more difficult for me to deal with things when I know you’re stressed. Even if you lie to me, I’ll just assume you’re not good. It’s not because I don’t believe you, it’s a disconnect between my time in the service, and my time outside of it. And it’s a complete disservice to you. You don’t fucking deserve my worst. You deserve my best, and I’m struggling so hard to have the chance to give it to you… And I feel like a dog for it.”

“But you hardly get my best. You get my worst all the time… How does that make me deserve only your best?” Trisha questioned back, managing to stop herself from just straight up telling him she didn’t deserve that. But she wanted him to see that… it was a two way street! They both dealt with each other.

Even if it was hard to hear that he didn’t want to deal with her like that. Of course it made things more difficult for him, of course he assumed… Because the assumptions had been correct so often in the past month. She had to do better at hiding it, at least. So she didn’t put so much stress on him.

“We’re going to be together a long time… We’re going to see a lot of bests and worsts! Hopefully… there’ll be more bests in the future. When it’s all done and you don’t have everything on your shoulders, I- I don’t want you to carry it all alone, Casey. Because you’re doing it for us but… If this has been your worst? Even if it’s just a fraction of it? It’s never going to make me stop loving you.” She managed to dredge up enough emotion to sound confident towards the end. Because that was one thing she did believe, even if she doubted so many other things.

Nothing Casey had shown her was intolerable. All of the good outweighed any bad. He treated her better than anyone ever had in her life… And then still felt bad for it.

”God I hope that’s really the fucking case, Trisha… Because all I want is to do better. And lead by example, rather than the bullshit of planning and pushing and directing these people beneath me to be just as incompetent as they can be without collapsing their jobs. I’m filtering and funneling everything they do back up to Mom so she can’t ever pin down anything specific. It’s the most nerve wracking game of chess I’ve ever played.” he tried to explain his circumstance, not sure if she’d be able to really pick it up at all.

”I just want things to be fucking… Quiet. Finally quiet. No reason for you to worry, and no reason to be worried in turn. And I know it’ll happen, it’s just a matter of fucking when. The answer is soon… But soon is so fucking abstract, I can’t keep telling you soon and expect you to trust me! But, you’re insistent that you do! So, I… I won’t fucking fight you on that! But, even you can admit that it’s stressful!” he asserted, frowning.

”I don’t want you to feel like you can’t tell me anything, just like you don’t want to feel that way… So, don’t hold back.”

“I do trust you… it is stressful, but I’ve never really had hope for a future before you. I can wait however long. Stressed is better than…” How she got the longer she was alone. The days that blended into each other, the struggle to motivate herself to do anything because it all felt so pointless. Until anxiety kicked her out of bed and towards attempted socialisation, and the next partner.

It was harder to accept that she could tell him anything when he’d already snapped at her earlier. She knew deep down it was the circumstances… But it was always so hard for her. Baby steps forward didn’t get her that far from the cliff’s edge behind her.

What did she even have to say right now? Admit that she could feel her mood was low in a way he hadn’t experienced before? Easier for her to hide, but lingering. Depression like… but she didn’t have depression. It was never that bad. But what did she even say? It wasn’t really explainable.

She couldn’t say nothing, because then he’d worry just as much as he might if she spilled something incredibly heavy. An explanation, maybe?

“Earlier, I was… Well, this probably sounds like nothing compared to what you saw but… Before I first joined the Coven I was at the mall with friends. It’s a common story but… it wasn’t the Archserpent. Something similar, but not as powerful. Loads of shadows, and they- my friends were torn apart and devoured by them. I couldn’t do anything. I just wasn’t strong enough. I was only fourteen- they were too. That’s why I reacted how I did.” While there was stuttering here and there, she spoke relatively evenly. Detached in that moment. The severe panic attack had been had, and without the current external triggers it was easier to… suppress the feelings. Like it wasn’t her experience.

Casey took a deep breath doing his best not to immediately snap back into redirection mode. It was a true instinct, and even if she didn’t have a problem with it, other people certainly did. It was that built in Richoux complex; that they simply had to convince everyone else that they were right no matter what. It wasn’t always true. It wasn’t even mostly true. He had to hand it to Leon for breaking things apart in that sector. He’d really busted up his ego, and learned to take a back seat in arguments.

But he didn’t want her to escape their connection. Not when he knew that what he said was unfair.

”People who aren’t meant to fight get put into situations where they’re forced to see shit like that. There’s nothing wrong with… With not being strong enough. Y’think I’m gonna be tough enough to go eat-”
He paused, catching his breath for a moment.
”-y’know… Red meat? After this? No fucking way. Because it’s traumatic. It’s horrifying. Thinking about it makes me feel ill. Why? Because I saw some things I never should have. And so did you, Trisha. You saw shit that a young woman should never ever have to see… But, do you realize we have the same kind of scar? The same deep psychological wounds?”

He untucked his hands, bringing them up to cup her face.

”You think I don’t notice how you get with all the lights out? How sometimes you’ll leave your phone screen on next to your face when you go to sleep? It’s stuck with you forever… And I won’t ignore it now. You’ve gone through senseless Hell, because the Paranormal adults of this city were selfish, cruel and unusual individuals who allowed you to experience it. It wasn’t fair, and it wasn’t right. And we’ll take back that agency. Together.” he asserted.

Trisha nodded very slowly, cheeks rubbing against his hands. She wasn't sure how they'd take back agency over past traumatic events. How was it not that same as just getting over it? But he said it so confidently… she had to believe it.

“Together." She echoed quietly.

“When everything first started, I thought there weren't many Paranormal adults. I didn't know any… My dad was, but I didn't find out until right before he was killed how involved he was. Guess he doesn't get shittiest adult in the world, since he wasn't alive to leave a bunch of teenagers to fight it." She let out a quiet, hollow laugh.
“It wasn't until I really talked to more Adepts… whose family was alive but not doing anything… that I realised it was unfair."

Though she hadn't realised her reaction to the dark was so obvious. It was dampened when she wasn't alone, so she always thought she hid it well. There were plenty of easy excuses for the phone thing that no one had ever questioned. Then again, Casey had a habit of noticing things others didn't. She didn't even think it was that bad. Sometimes the darkness didn't bother her. Others, it was worse. But it wasn't really that same as what Casey dealt with, was it?

“But it's… we don't really have the same kind of scar, do we? You were a soldier, you fought in a horrible war for years, you- you have proper PTSD, right? I just experienced a few traumatic events, and have some lingering anxiety… it isn't really the same, is it?" She asked genuinely, expecting him to realise and agree. It wasn't even downplaying her own experience so much as it was genuinely believing she wasn't that badly affected. Putting aside the severe panic attack during the fight… Being a little scared of the dark wasn't much worse than how she'd been before. It was just normal for her.

”Trisha, my mind was affected in spite of conditioning. Im lucky to only deal what I deal with because of that. But, I mean, think about war. Think about how, y'know, like… Like, the war went on for years for me! But, for a lot of civilians? The war came and went. A day, a week, at worst a month. But it left their homes devastated. Families broken. Minds shattered from the sheer violence and chaos of conflict around them.”

He took a deep breath, only doing what he felt was ultimately correct. Some people may ultimately praise her for being able to keep such a strong lid on things. But, to Casey, this was rotten pumpkin behavior. The surface never looked better, but try and carve it, and it squished under your fingers. The “goodness” was only skin deep. He didn't have to convince her, however… Not knowing it was a simple fact.

So a keen explanation may help in the end…

”These people often exhibit the same signs of distress that a soldier would. And then, normal soldiers dealt with the same. Hit the front lines, your first time out, it hits you hard. Leaves you too sick to eat, or too scared to fight again. But PTSD isn't some exclusive designer condition for soldiers and refugees to claim disability over. Here at home, terrible things happen too. People are assaulted in all bodily manners, they're harassed, they deal with random tragic loss and infuriating helplessness every day.” he left the explanation lingering in the air a moment before connecting the point fully.

”You spent multiple months, as a fourteen year old girl, dealing with the equivalent of a Paranormal war zone. Trisha… You were an untrained, unconditioned soldier in a brutal conflict, fighting for your life sometimes more than once a day. For months! If it takes a normal person a single instance of something happening for a post-traumatic stress disorder to develop. Post, as in after. Traumatic as in something that has caused significant damage to a vital part of you. And then, y'know, stress! You tense up, you act differently than you would, you treat shit like it's always defcon five. That sounds, to me as someone who isn't an expert, like all the symptoms you deal with over these anxiety spikes. he finished, his hands reaching out to hers more.

”You're not ashamed of me. Nor my condition. So, why are you so afraid of facing yours?” he asked very quietly, doing his best to make the tone sound sad and confused, not accusatory as it could have been.

Trisha's brow furrowed slightly, gripping onto his hands tighter than she meant to. But wasn't it just normal anxiety? Where was the difference? Not that she liked having anxiety either.

Her eyes dropped down and away from Casey as she started to bite her already painfully chapped lips. She was ashamed of all the issues she had and struggled to label. Having anxiety and panic attacks was something negative about her. But if any of it was something like PTSD… then there was another struggle, because she felt she shouldn't be ashamed. Because she wasn't ashamed of Casey or his condition! And it was something reserved for people who'd really done things… But he was saying it wasn't?

“I’m not… I'm… I am embarrassed because it feels like I've always been like this. I don't know if the Stygian Snake really made things worse, or if it's just who I am, I- I don't know, I've always been tense. I guess not with the darkness, but is that any worse than the other anxiety? And then- I hate that. I really hate that about myself. But if it's really something like PTSD- if that's really something I could have- then that makes me a hypocrite, doesn't it?"

She wasn't quite entirely accepting it, but it was hard to deny when Casey put it like that. Her mind wasn't clear at the moment, but her emotions weren't so reactive. She could see reason when something was properly explained to her even when feeling so low otherwise. Because he was right… she'd spent months as a teenager spending every day fighting for her life, seeing people die, and having no one aside from other equal fucked up teens to support her.

”You are naturally anxious, Trish. That's part of you. But, don't you think it just makes sense in the end? That you'd be predisposed to those sorts of issues? You spent your whole childhood being browbeaten by a domineering person, she never gave you the chance to be confident in yourself.”

Not that he was much better right now. He'd hoped that keeping her out of things would give her the chance to build that necessary layer between herself and outside events. To give himself the opportunity to know how to help her when she needed it.
But things all happened so fast, he could only deal with it as it came. So, he couldn't hide. She'd find out too fast, and find out it was all a lie. And then, she'd regress.

She'd probably already mentally regressed, and was subconsciously looking for a reason to lash out. Maybe not today, or tomorrow… But he'd see the results more down the short line. He had confidence enough in her and her habits to make that educated guess.

”I haven't either. And I'm so wrong for that… but, I love you. And it is frustrating: I know plenty of people bigger than you, stronger, tougher, more mentally sound, who didn't escape the horrors around them. Not even close. You aren't a hypocrite for not putting it all together yourself… I… Know enough to know you lost more than friends that summer. Be mad at him all you want, but… Lee told me what happened. The… The boy. You had something ripped away from you. That's bound to leave scars that won't heal right. Hear me?” he asked her calmly, ready for the flood of anger, or sadness, or whatever to unfurl from her mouth and crush him with its pressure.

The… boy? Trisha's breath hitched, curling her legs up even tighter to her chest. Tensing up, but also covering the scar already covered by the oversize t-shirt that swamped her small frame. Leon told him?

“It- It wasn't my fault." She stammered out, clutching onto Casey with sudden panic. Because if Leon was the one that told him… she knew how he felt about it, how everyone else felt about it. They all blamed her, because she had the strength to drag his body out of that forest- she didn't start bleeding out till she was safe. But he wasn't, he'd been dead, and they all thought it was her fault because they didn't like her. But he- he'd been so much better than her, he'd been well liked, it had to be her fault they'd ended up separated from the rest, it was clearly her reckless decision. And she couldn't remember everything… so she couldn't even deny it, but she just knew deep down it wasn't her fault.

“I- I don't know what he told you, but it wasn't, I swear, he- he- we were alone, there were too many of them, I didn't cause it."

Casey was surprised at her reaction. Survivor's guilt usually came with suicidal feelings, a desire to replace or substitute oneself, that they may be the ones taking the loss rather than the actually affected party. A wish that they'd died rather than the victim. And while it was too early to know whether or not she had that kind of feeling too, knowing that she was feeling actual guilt of intention made him really question what the situation had been like.

”Well, he told me you were going steady with a guy at the time. A pretty popular one in your grade, and from what I hear, in the coven too… But, he died. You two were together. Leon said he saved you from whatever it was that killed him, but didn't make it out himself… He said nobody knows what you saw, because you wouldn't let anyone see… I said to myself then, ‘That tracks for Trisha.’ But, that's all! I don't even know the kid's name!”

“Really?" Trisha stared at him with wide eyed panic, trying to find any signs that he was lying. But he wasn't… Why would he? But why wouldn't Leon tell Casey about all the accusations him and everyone else had towards her? She couldn't even blame them for believing it was her fault… There'd been bee stings on his body. Not enough to have really hurt him, but enough for it to be noticeable.

At least, from her memory, Leon hadn't backed any of the wilder accusations. That the two had a fight, and she hurt him before letting him die. That he hadn't really saved her because she pushed him into it. All those people with poor opinions with nothing better to do than to attack her… but everyone had believed it was in some way her fault.

It sort of was. She'd lost control of her bees for a moment… and that moment could've been the difference between him living and dying. It was why he'd had to defend her like that.

“His name was Martin." She spoke again after a moment, voice softer again. There was still that panic she always felt when thinking about him and what happened, but it wasn't as intense as when she thought Casey already had some false account of it. Intertwining with the sorrow she felt towards it that made her more depressively mellow.

“We’d been together for almost a month. A large period of that summer. He was… nice. He was popular because he was nice, not anything superficial like how I was… viewed as ‘popular’. But he wasn't with me for that…" He'd probably been her first genuine partner. Not like the first few, when she'd said yes because it had seemed right and then realised it was a cure to her loneliness. Then the ones after that were going for anyone attracted to her, even if it was just physical. She really had liked him.

“It was a really bad night. We were separated from the rest of our group by hellhounds. They'd… already got me. It's how I got… that…" One hand detached from Casey to point to her left hip, and the bite scar hidden by her shorts. But he'd seen it plenty of times by now.
“He was a Green Adept, so he healed it enough I could keep going. But it- it was really bad that night. A- A new moon, so everything from stronger."

Her breath hitched again, and she tucked her head against Casey as she took deep breaths. She didn't need to tell him. But she'd already started. She should get it out… let him judge her. Maybe then the weight would be less heavy.

“We were exhausted and ambushed. It was… these horrible shadow monsters… the kind from nightmares. And one of them caught me in its gaze, and I couldn't see reality- I lost control of the bees, Casey. And they would've killed me if he didn't step in. They already almost did, after- after he was- was-" She cut herself off, taking a heaving breath and squeezing her eyes shut. But it didn't help. She just saw it all again. Those tall shadowy creatures, with claws like knives.
“There weren't many left. I was already hurt, and one managed to slice under my chest. I- I thought I was going to die… I don't remember how I got away. I just remember when I got to the group looking for us… I'd dragged him as far as I could… then I passed out. When I woke up, everyone was saying he was dead and blaming me. I- I denied it, because I couldn't know b-but, some of it is. I lost control of my bees. And he died protecting me!"

He didn’t say anything to start with. Just held her. Casey’s arms cradled her, head in one hand while the other wrapped around her side to keep her close. Keep her safe. He was trying to figure out how she didn’t associate her situation to some kind of mental breakage. The only option is that she was-

”Wait… They… blamed you?”

Casey was aware that one of the Stygian Snake’s favorite abilities was its talent for breaking up and obscuring Recollections. The magical bodycam which every paranormal entity was capable of reproducing and passing along to others like the Ring tape… It made plenty of sense that they genuinely didn’t know what happened, especially if the two were alone in the middle of the woods.

But… Accusing her of murder? Or, at the very least some kind of serious gross negligence or outright sacrificing with malice?

”If you weren’t a fucking Sycamore Member, I’d almost rather let Dollhouse fucking murder them all. Aw fuck, I can’t fucking believe this! This is what I have to deal with ten years later? These gutterfuckers, how dare they insinuate something like that! The audacity! The ridiculous implication that you were responsible? Even cursorily? You said yourself, you were both separated! He peeled off of them to stick by you! Like a noble person would, when everyone else would’ve just fucking abandoned you like you were garbage!? And they accuse you?!”

He hadn’t quite expected such a visceral reaction of frustration, but there it was. Another reason to be happy they wouldn’t be here much longer… No more bastards. No more fucking Sycamores, or Dollhouses. St. Portwell would be a distant fucking memory soon.

There was something gratifying about Casey so passionately defending her all those years later. No one had at the time. Sure there were her ‘friends’ who didn't say anything one way or the other, and people who ignored it but nobody actually defended her.

“It wasn’t all… wild accusations. Some just assumed I’d started a fight with him or something, because that was how they saw me- and I was like that, but not during shit like that! And they took me not wanting to share my memories as an admission of guilt… But I didn’t want my mind touched anymore than it had to be.” Trisha pressed herself against Casey, trembling.

Part of her agreed, and was resentful about how unfair it was. She wanted to get as angry as he was. But it just made her sad now, and she… couldn’t even blame them. The part of her that hated herself knew she didn’t do herself any favours. Of course they all thought the worst!

“I didn’t do anything they said… but I lost control. And I- the blame isn’t all on them. He- He had stings on him! It was an accident, but of course people started thinking shit. And nobody trusted me. None of them understood why he was with me either. Cause he was too good for me. Like- like-” You.

She took another heaving breath, trying not to let herself spiral into panic again. It was hard.
“When I woke up, I didn’t know he was dead. My mind was so fucked when he protected me- when I dragged him away- that I still thought he was alive. Just injured… So I was pretty hysterical. I was still hurt too. We didn’t have enough magical healers, so they only healed some things to the point of not dying… I don’t think they wanted to heal me more than they had to. But I felt so guilty, and then when I was blamed I just snapped and that made everything worse. There was nobody on my side then, and… I’ve never told anyone about it because I was scared...”

There was a long, long moment of silence before Casey felt like he could speak. There was inescapable fury that needed to be rehoused before he was able to focus on something else. Something better than his incandescence of anger. This kind of emotion never did him any good.

”Honestly? I’m having a really hard time dealing with that. You’ve really gotta point these people out if we see them, because I’m gonna make them hate me just as much as they hate you. But, maybe they’ll think twice. I… just find myself in utter disbelief. I mean, you were Witchhunted in a Coven for Christ’s sake! Is there no sanctity? Truly, this entire system is wrong, it must just be something about this fucking town, Trish. I swear to you. I fucking swear, once we’re gone, it’s not gonna be like this crazy bullshit. It’s just not, we are not gonna let it get like this! Right? You and me? Together!?”

He’d managed to get his hands up to her elbows so he could rest her arms in his as he pulled away enough for them to look squarely at one another again. The look of sincerity was prying through the tears, most apparent in the nearly smug grin. It wasn’t a challenge: It was a guarantee, and he just knew he needed her to confirm it in that moment. In the same moment that one hand slipped down to meet hers again, sliding around the finger and the ring upon it.

”I know you’d never do what they say. Leon didn’t even mention it, so… I think we should confront him about it. See what he has to say for himself ten years later. Maybe we’ll be surprised, or maybe not, but at least it’ll be clear. But, let me be very clear with you… I will die for you. Call me number two, maybe. But, if I thought giving myself up would let you be around longer, I would-”

Sure, if they had to die together, at least it was together… But if there was a way out? He wouldn’t judge her in what came after. He was almost certain he’d leave behind a lifetime widow, but he hoped there’d be impetus to at least continue on with the humdrum of life. Kids, maybe. A legacy. Something that she’d stick with in his honor, to keep going. Anything… Because he could never be sure she’d do it for herself. Who could see that kind of future?

Trisha shook her head, gripping onto Casey’s hand tightly.
“I don’t want that. I didn’t want it then, and I- I really don’t now… I don’t want to live without you. We… Need to get through all this so we can leave and make something better, together. Like you said! I can’t do that alone.”

It was short term thinking when it came to his possible death- but dying and dying for her were very different things. If they really were going to leave the city and have a peaceful life together after this, there’d be no need for him to protect her like that. She only saw it being a possibility in the upcoming months… And if it happened, she wasn’t sure if she could continue.

Maybe after years, if she was stronger. But if he was dying for her? It just made things harder. She didn’t even want to think about it.

“I’d rather die together. I know that’s probably not what you want to hear… But I would! I don’t want to be around longer if you’re not going to be there.” She didn’t even acknowledge anything else he said, so desperate to get that point across.

”Aw, fuck I knew it…” he bemoaned.

”Please, God, I’d never forgive you, Trisha! If you wasted that? If you gave yourself up? We’re gonna-”
He paused, looking up at her face and seeing her eyes welling.

”-Like, someday soon we’ll be in a place where it’s all okay, and we won’t need to worry. But. This is right now. And right now, God forbid, if something happens to me and it saves you? Preserves you so that you can see another sunrise for me? Please, just promise me you won’t dishonor that love… Because if one person does it, maybe they’re just a hero… But if it happens twice? Can’t you see that there’s something fucking special about you!?

“No, I can’t! I don’t see… I really don’t, I don’t understand. I’m not- there’s so many better people out there. I’m difficult and fucked up and I just make everyone’s lives more difficult. I really can’t see it, Casey. And I don’t think I want to, because I don’t want you to die for me!” Trisha shook her head, heaving sobs following her words.

She really didn’t want to imagine a world without him. It wouldn’t be fair. Not when she’d finally found some kind of happiness. Having it ripped away like that… it terrified her more than him leaving her did now. Because she was beginning to believe he’d stay if he could.

“I wouldn’t follow you like that! I’m brave enough to- to do anything myself, but I- I really don’t want to do it, Casey. I only see a future with you… and I still don’t understand why you want that with me.”

”You’re the girl for me, Trisha… I’m not settling. I’ve been home a couple years now; there’s no chance this is me settling for something. People keep asking me stupid ass questions like that. Am I settling? No, I’m not, because I told you. I saw you. Your picture’s always been in my head. Maybe I lost it somewhere in the sands of North Africa, maybe I left it here on my desk before I left that first time… I don’t know. But I’ve never felt so driven to be beside anyone in my fucking life.”

Casey shook his head slightly, both hands having brought her own hands up so they could curl against her chest as she cried. And with it, he hugged around her again once he’d said his piece. He didn’t think there was much else to be said in that regard anyway… She had all the affirmations she needed right there in front of her. He was here. Still.

”Trust me… I’ll live for you long before I die for you. Every day I wake up, I feel like I’m really living for you. With you in mind. I fucking love you.” he gritted through his teeth.

“I love you too. So much that it’s painful sometimes.” Trisha got out between sobs, curling in towards him. She tried to even out her breathing so that she could at least talk without choking on her words.

“I don’t… understand what you see in me. But I know you mean it, even if I can’t… I feel it. I want to be able to see myself how you see me one day. I don’t want to… hate myself like this… but most people have too! I just… I trust you, I really trust you, I believe you. As much as I can. Because I feel it too, and I know you love me, even though I feel so unloveable sometimes. You- You give me a reason to live too… to actually better my life and myself! I really, really love you.”

”Then we can’t leave one another, Babe. We just can’t, and we won’t. I’ve let you go twice, and both times I’ve regretted it. No more… I promise, no more.” he spoke softly, watching her face as the ever-encroaching sun crested the hills in the East to shimmer back off the bay.
Hidden 9 mos ago 9 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Home.

Eventually, Casey had to go to work. They weren’t going to be left alone forever, as much as they might both want that. But he was still the Blade and had to deal with the aftermath of the attack.

Which left Trisha alone in their home. She didn’t make much fuss when he left- she felt she’d already been selfish enough, and didn’t want to make things anymore difficult for him. That wouldn’t be fair, it wasn’t like he wanted to leave either.

Eventually, she got thirsty enough that she had to drag herself out of the safety of bed for something to drink. The sun was properly lighting up the space now, letting her turn off some of the lights on her way down.

A detour to the bathroom found her standing in front of the mirror, staring at herself. Dark bags under her eyes weren’t enough to hide the puffiness from all the crying. Her eyes were bloodshot, turned dull brown in the dim light. Empty, almost… There were still makeup stains here and there, since she hadn’t exactly had the energy to properly take it off last night. Just the blood…

Trisha rubbed her face red and raw with a cleaning cloth, as if she could rub away the dark bags. Or her own skin… Maybe if she peeled it off, she’d find something better underneath. Someone better.

But washing her face that much just hurt. She didn’t bother with anything else. The thought of getting in the shower briefly crossed her mind, before disappearing again. She couldn’t be bothered. She didn’t really care.

She went into the Den rather than going back to bed, glass of water in hand. It was just as comfortable. And there was a television, which she switched on. It was already set on some detective show she vaguely remembered Casey liking. That was fine. It was something.

As the space was filled with more sounds than just her own thoughts, Trisha curled up into a ball at the back of the sofa. In that spot where Casey normally sat, and her with him. It was comfortable enough, but felt empty. She felt empty.

There were things she should do. Coding her website and tending to the bees after last night… But the guilt of unproductivity only made her feel worse, and less willing to move. What was the point, anyway? The one person she had any business with had wanted her dead at one point. And why bother working on her magic? It wasn’t like it would ever be useful.

She’d always be a burden. Worthless. Casey could tolerate it, sure. He was fine to protect her. But that didn’t mean she could…

After a couple of hours, she managed to turn on her laptop. A couple more, she turned it back off. She wasn’t going to do anything on it. But she made sure to keep her phone close, in case he texted. She didn’t want to worry him… or anyone else. A brief bit of energy was given to responding to people. Pretending everything was perfectly fine, and that she didn’t feel like it would be better if she just rotted away on this couch.

She only bothered leaving the Den to go to the bathroom. On the first trip she collected Princess, so she at least had something to hug around. Otherwise, the hours slowly ticked by curled up staring at the TV without taking anything in or the wall behind it. Thoughts crawled in, then slipped away to emptiness at points. There was no energy or motivation to do anything. It all felt pointless, anyway.

Casey hadn’t had much time to text, unfortunately. He hadn’t had much time in general, especially with what he was walking back into. The overall vibe was mixed as he made his way into the site, which had been magically cordoned off in order to keep any unaffected blinds out of the area. Several radial stasis spells were keeping both the event space, as well as the giant crab beneath, relatively time-stable in wait for the Blade’s proper investigation.
It was, of course, Casey’s job to go over everything in order to find out what, why, and how. Which meant that things hadn’t changed more than an hour from the time he left within the bubble.

Powerful Purple Adepts under Clarissa and Furio’s direction maintained the field, while the same duo had taken the mantles of their old jobs with total gusto. Like they’d never been away.
And that caused a fair bit of hostility between the two parties. With Lynette sequestered away, it was left to Clarissa to lead the entire Cult as the Crone-in-Wait, thus there was sudden impetus to discipline for duties shirked. By Lynette’s own demands, the entire stasis plan had been set up in order to give Casey the chance to compress. But, neither Clarissa, nor Furio, seemed entirely happy over it when he arrived.

Which wound up being the least of Casey’s concerns. Surveying the carnage bit by bit made him sick in a literal way, his stomach learning strange new dance moves as he personally verified each and every casualty based on whatever records they could get ahold of. Listings had to be made, cataloguing each of the three-hundred and fifteen dead. The wounded had to be helped earlier, thus were pulled from the field before the stasis was applied. So, a fair count could be made once Casey and the tallytakers had finished their work. Thankfully, most were easily identified by identification cards left in wallets and purses…

The trouble was, three-hundred and fifteen was a large number of dead people. Important, in some cases. Lives would be affected. Jobs. Futures. And suddenly, there had to be a magical solution to this.
A magical solution that the Temple’s reliquary stash was equipped to handle. Tallytakers were important for these situations. With twenty-eight unidentified “Doe’s”, the rest could be targeted by a miracle-craft known by the tongue-in-cheek name of “The Macguffin.” Meant to erase mass death events like this from the public conscience, the many wounded and the fewer dead are able to be catalogued into the machine, then blessed by a pure Adept of each color continuously until all the names were delisted.

Three-hundred and fifteen dead. Another four-hundred and eighty eight wounded. And only twenty eight unknown or otherwise unidentified “loose ends.” The rest would take weeks of continual magic usage to clear up. And in that time, the entire city would be wondering what the fuck happened at Beppo Park on Thanksgiving.
Furio handed the entire bag of problems over to Casey like a man on a mission. The only thing he didn’t do was spit in Casey’s face on the way out. But Clarissa had plenty to say, and damned him in a stern fashion before following her husband out of the space.

There would be lasting consequences if this wasn’t handled properly. The PRA were already there to see them about it, and if it hadn’t been some kind of external attack they had no real proof of instigating, there certainly would’ve been arrests. But, with an organization like the Temple, there was too much red tape for the Federal system to just start kicking doors down and making arrests. For once, they had to yield to a group who knew a little bit more about covering shit up.

Or, at least, the PRA didn’t seem to mind, and had no clear intention of stopping the Temple from handling it themselves… Either they were stretched too thin to handle it themselves, or the incident wasn’t big enough to get dirty with.
Casey got plenty dirty, however… dirty enough that he had to stop at least a dozen times. He’d stopped trying to hide the shakes, which only stopped when someone begged him to take another dose of E-Vac to steady his nerves. And that made it incredibly hard to keep his magic up, or to focus at all…

So, a dose of Glass to pick things back up in the right direction. Not like his time there was short. Eight, ten, twelve… Eighteen hours after he’d left home, he was only now crawling back up the flight of stairs. His arms were laden bags; fresh fruit, and dinner for the two of them. He had to cook, otherwise he wasn’t sure what he was going to do. Having grown quite fond of it, and thankful that the E-Vac was somewhere in the rearview, he knew he’d at least have a moment to feel good about creating something. A necessary change from destroying a thousand thousand other things…

Snowflakes were starting to fall as he made his way into the dark of the rooftop, the canopy leading to the house the only thing lit up… He’d closed most of the blinds that morning, leaving the one shining onto the bed open for Trisha to look out from. And, thankfully, he could see light shining back out from the same place. It’d been incredibly exhausting. He’d eaten some key lime before coming back knowing full well that he’d need any energy he had left to cope in case anything came back up.

Pushing through the door, Casey could easily see the glow from the television down the hall, and cleared his throat.

”S-sweetheart? Perfect pretty princess?” Casey tried to sound playful, but there was a great deal of sadness in his voice. Sadness he couldn’t hide. But he’d always dreamed of coming through the door like this, to a family who would greet him when he called.
”I’m home…”

There wasn't an immediate response. Some quiet shuffling, the soft thud of something soft hitting the floor. Then Trisha herself appeared in the half open door to the Den.

She was wearing the same clothes as when he left- a t-shirt of his she'd stolen a few days before, large enough it covered most of the comfortable shorts underneath. At least the puffiness from crying has finally died down, leaving just the dark bags and red patches where she'd scrubbed her face too vigorously. Her hair was a mess, normally cared for waves turned into an unruly, frizzy tangle. Like she'd just woken up, except she didn't look like she'd slept.

There'd been a few naps in the period of numb TV watching. An hour or two here or there, filled with nightmares and dreams that had her waking up feeling worse. It wasn't exactly restful. But hearing and then seeing him was enough to make her feel just a little bit better. Enough that she was able to get up and off the couch.

“Welcome home." She said softly, voice slightly hoarse from being unused all day. She shuffled towards him, arms beginning to lift up, but paused when she spotted all of the bags he was laden with. There wasn't exactly any room to hug him.

“I missed you. Did you…" She pursed her lips, not sure what to ask.
“Are you alright?"

He was still shuffling by the time she made it out, and he dumped the weight of his parcels onto the counter with a gentle thud. She looked wonderfully comfortable, and he wanted to feel that way too. Thus, rather than worry about any potential shame, he wriggled his pants off of his legs without hesitation. Then, he was free to hug Trisha close. It was apparent as he still hadn’t said anything to the contrary that the day was exactly what she thought.

But did he say?

”No. Definitely not alright. I only have a few hours, then it’s back to all hands on deck. Someone asked me why I was coming home, which I thought was a dumb question. I nearly punched him.” Casey spoke softly, rubbing Trisha’s back as he held her tight.

“You shouldn't punch someone just cause they're stupid." Trisha managed to joke quietly, hugging him back just as tightly. She rubbed her face against him before tilting it again to look up at him. She felt safer with him there, and less consumed by the void filled with guilt and self-loathing. But only a few hours… That wasn't nearly enough.

“Clearly he doesn't have someone he loves to go home to… Uh… only a few hours? Well, uh, is there anything I can do to… help you? I'll do anything you want." As long as it involved being near him, that was. She couldn't bear to be too far away when they didn't have long.

Casey nodded his head.
”Grab the big chef’s knife and the serving platter. I got fruit for the girls.” he half-instructed as he began pulling boxes of strawberries and other sweet fruits from the bags.

”And decide if you want beef, fish, or… Well, I guess just vegetables. I want stir fry, but I want to make it, because I want a lot.” he shrugged, sliding two large watermelons from the bottoms of a couple bags.

Trisha nodded, moving to get the serving platter and knife she'd seen Casey use to cut up fruit out. It was big, so she assumed it was the big chef's knife. She put them down on the counter, immediately making her way back to slot in at Casey's side.

She didn't really want to eat anything. She would if he made it, because she should and she didn't want to worry him. Because she appreciates the effort he put in, too. But it meant she didn't really care what, because she didn't want anything. Beef… didn't seem like a good idea? It was a red meat, wasn't it? She was surprised he'd even suggested it.

“Fish. Or just vegetables if it's easier for you, I don't mind." She answered eventually.
“I’ll eat anything if you make it… but you know I don't really have many preferences. Should I cut up the smaller fruit? There's, uh… still some strawberries in the fridge. I tried dipping them in chocolate and letting it cool, because I thought that'd be nice, if you want any?"

”Oh, yeah! Please, that sounds nice. I’ll do the little shrimp for the stir-fry then. Save the beef for something else.” Casey intoned, nodding his head with a vague excitement.

Trisha smiled slightly, detaching from him again to go into the fridge. She quickly messed the strawberries up from the sappy heart she'd shaped them into before making her way back to him. She put the plate down and picked one up, holding it up to him with a silent smile.

Having his head turned, Casey wasn’t exactly paying attention as he rolled one of the watermelons around to a side for cutting. Yet, as Trisha held the strawberry up and let him bite into it, a combination of sensory factors flooded his brain all at once. The simultaneous crunch of the strawberry, and the knife sinking into the melon. The visual of the white-to-red stem of the strawberry being massive in his vision, the panic of turning only to see the deep red juice dripping down the knife.

He’d come down from the E-Vac almost an hour ago. Now was not a good time. Constitution weakened, the turning motion swept every bit of blood from Casey’s brain, and in a single crumbling motion, he toppled over. The knife dug deeper into the melon, caught there so it didn’t fly away with his hand. But, Casey’s whole head mashed off of the cabinet beneath the island top, causing him to involuntarily grunt in the midst of his unconsciousness.

“Casey?!" Trisha tried to catch him, but she wasn't fast enough or strong enough to stop him from hitting his head on the way down. Panic flared up, but it pushed her to quick action even as her breath grew harsh. She grabbed the knife and pulled it out of the watermelon, putting it safely on the island before dropping to her knees.

What did you normally do when someone fainted? She wasn't sure. It had happened so many times during the Stygian Snake era, but that was normal from injuries and blood loss. Sometimes fear… What if he hit his head? Should she get something for it- No, no, she shouldn't leave him. She definitely shouldn't leave him.

She shuffled forward on her knees, trying her best to carefully turn Casey onto his side before pulling his head up and onto her lap. Having it raised seemed good. She gently felt around his head for any bleeding, holding back tears and panic. He'd wake up… it was just a fainting spell! He'd be fine, she just had to stay calm until he was. Or at least… not let the panic freeze her. She wasn't calm at all, she just wasn't letting the panic attack take full hold.

By the time she was rolling him over, he was at least able to help. It was only temporary, but seeing all the red juice and squidgy liquid surrounding him made him queasy to the point that he had to vomit. Half way up, he surged from Trisha’s arms and pressed for the sink before heaving up the strawberry and the nothing he’d had since Thanksgiving last night.

A fucking travesty. Couldn’t even save the food. Some serving trays were so full of blood they just decided to dump them as is. The thought caused him to hurl up a bit more, head stuffed in the sink. He dared not open his eyes for fear of the lumpy glop of half-digested fruit he’d just eaten. Not to mention the bees were starting to move toward the little bit of juice leaking from the pierced melon on the counter.

Chaos had come again, if not in a slightly more mundane setting.

”I’m- I’m- I’m okay! I’m-” he managed to choke out before his guts tried to purge themselves of their own meaty bits.

“No you're not." Trisha said softly, having moved to comfortingly rubbing his back. There wasn't any accusation in her tone, but it was obvious that he wasn't.

At least he was moving. He wasn't physically dying. She took in a deep breath, nose wrinkling at the harsh smell. But luckily for both her and Casey, she was used to all kinds of shit. Both from growing up in a house full of far too many children, and the summer of hell. She knew Casey well enough now to be able to vaguely figure out what the problem was.

She could sort it. For him. Was functional enough to… for him. Maybe it would help her feel a bit less useless.

“It’s alright, just… give me a moment." Her hand pulled away from his back and she moved around to the watermelon. It was easy to shoo the bees, gently commanding them back to their previous spot in the rafters with a promise of fruit later. She wasn't sure what the right thing was to do with the watermelon… so she moved it into the fridge for just now. Out of sight, out of mind. Any juice that had leaked onto the counter was mopped up along with the knife- as best as she could without access to the sink. There wasn't any visible evidence of the cut made into the fruit anymore, at least.

“Do you… think you can move? I can clean this up." She asked gently as she moved back to Casey, hand going to his back again.

”The strawberry was… Great. I just… I wasn’t thinking, and I saw-”

Bone wrapped in flesh made manifest as the whitest part of the strawberry core gave way to fleshy red edges. Snapped tendon, the inside of the rib. So many places where the human body looked like a cherry cowtail… He heaved again, unable to prevent his mind from wandering back. Back further still, to a time where there was almost no memory. Yet, the oddest, strangest wisp of consciousness calling forward from the past.

A scream. A bone flying at his face.

What the fuck is that?

A bone. The outer rim of red, then the actual pale bone, and the marrow inside. Perfectly grilled. Seasoned to perfection. There was smashing going on in front of him. Glass breaking.

Why the fucking meat!?
Casey reeled back again, giving his whole being up to hurling until the world became gray around him.

Only once he could draw breath again did he moan out in pain.

”I swear, I’ll eat the fucking strawberries, Babe, they’re good! I promise! I pr-”

Bone. Sinew. Tissue. Face.

There was nothing left to give back to the air, yet his gut still tried to give and give. To no avail.

“You don't have to, Casey. They're just strawberries. I don't care about them, I care about you!" Trisha tried her best not to start properly panicking when he just didn't stop heaving. She was worried. Really worried. Was there even anything she could do to help? Did she just have to watch?

She turned her body to properly hug him without constraining him, so he could keep heaving as much as he needed to.
“Its alright… I've put it all away… just tell me how I can help you."

Casey did his best to comfort her as she had to deal with the fact that he was working through this. He had to get the images out of his mind, but it’d all been there the entire day, and he’d just bottled it up behind a gate of drugs that prevented him from noticing it.

His hand gripped hers as gently as it could while he was heaving, and once the action seemed to subside and his thoughts became quiet again, he looked down at her arms around him and spoke weakly.

”I’m sorry… Y-you don’t ha-a-ave to b-be here. But… It’s enough you are. I never ha-ad- Nobody was there like this. I gotta quit thinking about… The tents. G-”
He buckled, doubled until his head bumped against the back of the sink. Wincing in pain, Casey tried to go for as deep a breath as he could get.

”We counted everyone today. All of them. If the greater population knew? If they realized what happened last night? Witchhunts. The Blinds may just wipe us out if they ever realized shit like that happens all the time. Whole communities disappearing from the fucking map. Changing public psyche like we’re in charge… God, please fucking forgive me…” he pleaded, partially to God, but just the same, partially to Trisha.

Trisha still held him as best she could, leaning forward slightly as he did. It hurt to see him suffering so much for something that wasn't his fault. She doubted any of the other people in power within the Temple had the same concerns. She leaned in to rest her face in his hair for a moment, before kissing the back of his head.

“You’re doing it to protect more lives, Casey. So there isn't a witch hunt. It's not your fault. Even if it was… I'm sure God would forgive you. You didn't ask to be put in this position! You're doing what you can." Trisha didn't believe in God, nor did she realise it was her he was partly pleading to. But if saying something like that helped, she would. She knew enough about Catholicism at least to know the core concepts. Forgiveness was a big one from memory, even if it was rarely in practice.

“And I’m not going anywhere. I'm going to stay with you, no matter how you're feeling. You've… been with me through so many panic attacks already! Even if you hadn't- I'm going to be here for you every time I can be. Because I love you and you're my fiancé… I'm here, Casey. You can get it out however you need to. I won't blame you…"

Casey’s anger and anxiety wouldn’t be so easily flushed away. It was easy to get it out, but what did that really do in the end? He’d gotten it out last night, and then there was supposed to be more? Hard to imagine it’d do much if there was more after that. He knew for a fact that it wasn’t just some silly problem to overcome. The ramifications of their actions would be wide spread, and explaining it away simply wasn’t enough.

And the chances were that this would be Lynette’s weakest. She’d be participating as the leader of the ritual to direct the Macguffin’s energies through her own powerful White Lux. It’d be a good time to move on her, just after the completion… But now there were chances other parties would acknowledge the same, and plot against her with that same sparse window in mind. Casey had to be thirty steps ahead in all directions, and trusting Lynette’s judgement of the future was becoming more difficult the closer to the New Year they got.

”Your dinner’s fucking cold!
A mop of black hair swept out of the way.
Marrow, bone, meat, bullseye.

Casey was just staring down. No words, no whimpering. Just faint murmurs, not even close to vibrating the chords. Air to nothing. It wasn’t ten seconds, it wasn’t thirty. Minutes went by as his brain unraveled in all directions. Scrambled eggs growing like molten landmass in a pan, he tried to categorically list everything to spill to her so that he could finally get it out. But, it wasn’t working. It wasn’t coming out the way he thought, because every time he asked himself what the benefit of her knowing any of it was. His own selfish reprieve? A moment to rub it in her face that she didn’t have it so bad in the long run?

Where did that even come from? What a rotten feeling to project, and totally unwarranted to her when she was just trying to do the right thing. Why was he suddenly bitter? He kept thinking about the number, and visualizing all those corpses lined up in neat rows and columns. Three-hundred and fifteen black bags. That wasn’t a night at the ballpark. That wasn’t twenty Adepts vaguely capable of defending themselves without weaponry. That wasn’t a group of magical gangsters protecting some secret documents. Some were Adepts, sure. But, a lot were trapped innocents. People killed brutally in the opening flourish of the attack. People who had no way of knowing what was coming, nor ways of defending themselves.

”Oh, my God Lynn! You cleared him!”
”You, Bastard! You take care of it, since it was meant for you!”

What the fuck is this…

The clock was ticking. He was like a statue, fingers white-knuckled against the metal of the sink. He couldn’t discern the relation. There were obvious surface things, the meat being a source of pain. Dinner, the table, so he stands. Cooks and eats. Couches it. Anywhere that wasn’t the fucking table. Alright. But, why now?

”Trisha… I… Chair. Please?”

“Alright." Trisha quickly confirmed, rubbing his back once more before going to grab him a chair. The ones at the breakfast bar were closest and easiest for her to drag over- they didn't have a dining table, so it was those or couches, which she wasn't going to try to pull over.

Even though she was close enough to a panic attack herself, she was managing to keep it all under the surface. She probably could manage that until he went back to work. She'd done it before… even if recently she'd been quite weak, she could suppress things well if she really put the effort in. Then she'd be there for him, and he wouldn't have to worry about her.

“Here, sit down- do you need anything else?"

As he plopped down onto the seat, he absentmindedly raised his hands, wrapping them around her and pulling her down to cradle her slightly, letting her sit squarely in his lap. She’d be able to feel both his hands trembling terribly.

”Y’got any bee hormones for shit like this? Otherwise… I don’t know. It’s like playing cards in the dark. Tarot with no candles. I just keep coming up with that same fucking image, this same person there. Some fucking Blind, some person I never met, they just came to have a good time. Came with their family or something, was on the outside edge next to a total stranger. The poor fucker. Near decap, a fucking steak knife. Why them!? Was it so fucking hard to leave the innocent fucks out of it? What was the fucking message? Game on? I couldn’t even fucking look at it, Trisha. I couldn’t function, I couldn’t direct anyone in that moment. It was all gone. Like I was a kid again, and I couldn’t do anything. he continued to vent, not quite considering how badly Trisha may be ramping up.

After all, this is what she wanted, right? Transparency. Frankly he couldn’t hold it in, so it was this, or some alternative that didn’t involve the woman who was supposed to love him terribly.

”The fucking… Pattern. Th-” he paused, throwing his hand up over his mouth to suppress a nervous gag.

Trisha turned in his lap to face him, her legs loosely wrapping around his waist. One hand went to his back again, rubbing comfortingly, while she leaned back a little to properly look at him.

She didn't know what to say. What did you say to someone who witnessed horrors that threw them back to other horrors? What did she wish someone said to her whenever someone triggered her? She didn't know.

But she did have bee pheromones. A gentle floral scent filled the air around her, ramping up until it was heavier and strong enough to soak through Casey's emotional field. A calming blanket of pheromones. The same kind she'd used on Tansy earlier to stop her freaking out about magic, but ramped up to work on someone magical.

“They’ve spent months killing people in cold blood from a coven that hasn't existed since we were teenagers, some who left the Paranormal world entirely. I'm… not surprised they're cruel enough to kill innocents like that." She said quietly. But that probably wasn't helpful, was it? What would be?

She leaned forward again, arms wrapping around his shoulders. She tilted her head forward to rest their foreheads together while leaving him room to cover his mouth if he needed to.

It was a lot for her to deal with. The whole situation, when she was so low herself. But of all the lows she could be in, this was the one where she was most able to deal with shit. Good enough at pretending to be alright around everyone else before slumping when alone… Not like the erratic drops or intense panic. On the edge of panicking, sure, but her only motivation right now- her first motivation all day- was to help Casey right now. She'd suppress the heavy knot of emotions in her chest for him. Maybe it would prove that she was just as worth it as he seemed to think…

“No wonder you couldn't function, Casey. That's awful… not something… anyone should suffer or see. Nevermind when you've already suffered through so much before."

Did he not want her to respond? Was it worth it? Did another voice need to be present? Not letting her speak, or asking her to be quiet, would be tantamount to shutting her out, and that was never the goal. She’d simply asked for this, and he was no longer willing to let his baser instincts get the better of him. He was going to share.

”It’s why I… Really want to fucking be there, Trisha. So I can put some of these images back into those evil pricks. I want revenge, no matter how hollow it’ll be. I’m not some common street Adept, I’m not a fucking idiot either. But, it’s so fucking exhausting, Trisha… I’m sorry… I’m so fucking sorry. It’s a nightmare to deal with, and- And- Fuck!”

He tossed his head back absentmindedly and mashed it off the corner of the island counter, causing the sharp reaction as he almost dumped Trisha to the floor instinctively. Instead, in his wincing pain, he curled forward and whimpered like a wounded animal.

”Fuck… I just want this to be over, Trish… Like we’ve talked about! Like we’ve said a thousand times already, like that’s anything other than the fantasy we share… I just want to get there Trisha. I’m less than a dog right now, and it’s killing me!”

Trisha curled her body forward slightly, arms moving to cradle his head and back. She took a deep breath to stop herself from trembling.

“I wish I could just make it all go away for you. We could leave… but it would mean abandoning everyone else. And- And I know you don't want to do that." She didn't entirely either, but she was more on the fence- more selfish. If she thought it wouldn't ruin things between them, maybe she would have pushed for it. To get out, fuck the Temple and everyone else in it.

“We’ll get there. Together! I know I can't do much for you right now- I can't go and do all your duties instead so you don't have to worry about it, but… It won't last forever, Casey. And- And I'll be here for you until it's over and beyond that. I promise." It felt like empty assurances. But what could she say? She couldn't make it all go away as much as she wanted to. The only other option was to say nothing… like she was ignoring him. She couldn't do that. She had to try.

The calming pheromones in the air intensified in an attempt to make them actually useful, Trisha ignoring the dull throbbing at her temple that came with it.

He sat in silence as he let the ponderous effect of the pheromones begin to spread out over his senses. This wasn’t bad… In fact, it was good. He’d had a “good” response to the aggression pheromones, so it only made sense that his reaction to this would be at least lukewarm. It was more than that, thankfully. Something distracting enough to give the images time to fade again.

”You’re… Doing great. I’m sorry I’m like this, Trisha… I feel like a fool.” he cleared his throat gently.
”I know I’m not, but, y’know. Putting all this on you. It ain’t fair. I’m just broken the fuck up about it, and it ain’t fair to either of us.”

Trisha nodded, one hand tangling in his hair and gently rubbing the back of his neck. The floral scent remained in the air even as Casey started to come down, lingering and calming. It was a shame that the space wasn't small enough for them to start affecting her too.

“It isn't fair on either of us… But you don't have to apologise. You don't let me apologise when I have… y'know…" She trailed off, feeling ashamed for a moment to even bring up something that wasn't anywhere near as bad. She really had it easy compared to him…
“So… There's no need to be sorry. You're just lucky I'm used to gross things like vomit."

”I’m just lucky to have you here with me… I should cook, or do something, but I just… God, the Bees. The girls, they need food. Go, go ahead. Wait for me in the den, maybe get the blankets and a pillow, I’ll try to fucking nap after I take care of this.” he grunted, loosening his arms around Trisha to let her get up. He knew he could get through it if he telepathically envisioned the fruit, setting the knife to do it without his interaction.

”Or… Maybe don’t. Maybe don’t go, y’know, maybe this is helping. Its like you’re crawling up into my brain through my nose. So strange. he absentmindedly commented, arms hesitating to tighten again in order to keep her there.

Subtly, but perhaps noticeable to Casey, Trisha tensed up when he told her to go into the den. A momentary stall in her self suppressing brought in a flood of panic that she wasn't wanted there, the pheromones wavering for a moment. But it all stabilised as his arms tightened again.

“I don't want to be more than a few feet away from you." She admitted quietly, leaning in closer to him. He'd have to get up and let go to cook, obviously, but as long as she could be close it was fine.

“The bees don't need to be fed. Don't let their whiny buzzing get to you. They survive off nectar and pollen, which they have plenty of. You're just spoiling them." Her lips pulled up into a soft smile, before her face dropped into his shoulder.
“And the pheromones… are kinda like that. The Queen could mind control people with them, I think."

”We need to get working on that… It’ll make me feel a lot better if you’re better off.” Casey replied gently, taking a deep breath and standing on weak legs with her still clinging to him.

He put her up on the counter next to where the cutting board had been then reached back for his glove. Sliding it on, he tapped the counter and the fridge door opened wide. In the same moment, he had his eyes shut tight, the echoing of the tap radiating like a visual image through his brain. Each step created another echo, and he was able to walk to the fridge and get the platter with a completely colorless rendering of the world around him.

”You call it spoiling, I call it calorie bulking. If we’re gonna get them in shape, they need reserves.” he continued in a calm monotone as he placed everything back down next to Trisha.

Eyes still closed, his gloved hand grasped the knife, using his sonar-like imaging to make a perfect cutting plan for the knife to follow. Which it then proceeded to do completely against the laws of physics.

“They’re bees, Babe, they… Can't calorie bulk. If you want to give them strength… you need to give them a whole pile of pollen to mix in their honey. And the honey is their reserves." Trisha responded gently, giggling softly. Her legs swung slightly where she sat on the counter, watching Casey for any more signs of panic while being impressed- once again- by his magic.

“They’re not people. They have muscles, but it's not the same… it's mainly their wings and thorax. They're not… going to get buff, if that's what you're imagining. These current bees are probably among the strongest and healthiest you'd find. The problem isn't them."

Classically, the joke went over her head. That wasn’t a problem. An involuntary smile broke across Casey’s face as he just couldn’t help but admire her sincerity. How could she expect him to make a joke at this point? Never mind something as great as that. Bulking bees… He got images of those motifs that pilots would have painted on the sides of their planes. Angry Hornets, Black Holes, whatever the squadron had boiled down to an individual’s essential perception. All he could imagine was a cartoon bee with massive little legs and huge burly wings making ten times the amount of noise as it buzzed around.

”Then there’s no problem. They can handle being spoiled.” he nodded to himself gently.

“You’re carrying them around when they get too fat to fly, then." Trisha playfully pouted, glancing away from Casey and up to all the bees waiting patiently in the rafters. It was probably impossible for them to do that… They loved their fruit, but didn't exactly gorge themselves like humans could. And her bees worked hard enough that they'd burn off anything they consumed.

She was pretty sure bees couldn't get fat just as much as they couldn't get bulky, anyway.

“I’m more worried they're going to end up liking you more than me. Which is fine… probably also my fault! I'm blasting you with so many happy and loving pheromones all the time it's no wonder they're falling for you too."

”I’m surprised you don’t do this more often to yourself, or others even… I understand in a sense, that you’d maybe be worried about faking it, but people don’t ever seem to give you the benefit of the doubt. I’d fucking blast them.” he shrugged.

In truth, it was nice. Actually helpful, though he hesitated in overuse. Dependence on any one particular thing wasn’t a good plan to keep. Once the watermelons had been cut and diced, he took a chunk for himself through his blind senses and still managed to eat it. It was a shame that one of his favourite fruits was such a problem to eat sometimes… Usually it wasn’t this bad, and thankfully Trisha’s influence was great for keeping the waking nightmare at bay.

”Thank you… It helps. It’s like I can feel your love inside, in a way. Not, y’know, pervy, but… Like, I breathe, and it’s you.”

As he scraped the fruit off onto the platter, he queued up the knife for a new set of raspberries, which were easy to split down the line. But he had a piece between his fingers and held it out to Trisha with eyes closed.

”Even if I couldn’t kind of see, I’d know where you were. I feel like a bee, I guess.”

Trisha giggled softly, leaning forward to eat the offered raspberry from him.
“Cause you can smell me? Just follow the floral scent… Maybe I'll be able to communicate with you using them one day. Then you'll really be like a bee."

She smiled at him, though she was fairly certain it wouldn't show on whatever magic he was using in place of his sight. But that was fine.
“I didn't mean these pheromones. I meant the subconscious bee ones I'm always giving off that only they smell… And I can't use them on myself unless it's a really tight space. I'm not sure why it works then… I only figured out these ones recently anyway. Before it was just panic or anger inducing pheromones. I'm really glad that these ones are helping you… I like being able to help you."

”You help me every day. Sometimes its in ways you probably wouldn’t like, but you’re a lot harsher than I am sometimes. Y’know, you help me learn more about patience, and about life outside of a base. About what it’s like to live with someone. To get annoyed about something small and dumb, then learning how to smile about it rather than hold it against the other person.” Casey explained calmly, knowing those waters were rocky.

”I’m sure you get annoyed at me. But, then, that presumes that you’d get annoyed at what I’d get annoyed at. Like how you don’t close the toothpaste sometimes, or an area gets cluttered up with stuff and I’ve gotta get it cleaned off before I can relax. But, you do those things. So, chances are, there’s other stuff that I do that bothers you. And, maybe you’re already good at smiling at the stuff I do, but… This is pretty recent for me. The idea that I can positively relate those habits to you. That they’ll make me think of you just the same as a good morning text. Does that make sense?” he asked, tapping the board a few times to get an idea as to how many raspberries were left.

Trisha did her best to not react in any audible or easily visible way. A slight tensing, her smile wavering… But he wasn't properly seeing right now. It was probably just her movements?

She could stop herself from getting upset. She wasn't upset at him... But at herself. Of course he got annoyed by things she did. Of course she managed to fuck up even domestic living. She wasn't careful enough, she left a mess… who wouldn't get annoyed by that? What if it got too much at some point? And he decided he couldn't keep tidying up her clutter? The fact that he was having to learn to smile at it… clearly he was used to people that didn't annoy him. And she did!

So she had to do better. Because she didn't want him seeing something annoying and then thinking about her. He said it was a positive though, but was it really? Wouldn't it end up grating on him? Sure, he did some things that annoyed her too… but it wasn't the same, because she was probably being unreasonable.

“Mhm, I understand." It was much easier to pretend it was the truth when he wasn't looking, and she was so deep in the depth of self hatred everything was immediately internalised. And she didn't want to get upset at him or put anything on him right now… because she needed him there! She didn't want to risk him deciding to leave early.

“It’s my first time living with a partner too. Where everything's shared and there's not a space that's solely mine to leave in whatever state I want to. I used to stay round at partners a lot but… it's not the same. So I'm learning too. Sometimes it's annoying to clear everything up if I'm going back to it the day after, but I'm getting used to… compromise?" She managed to sound calm and reasonable, even though she really wanted to cry about how he found anything about her annoying. So sensitive…

”In the FFL, we were taught to be immaculate. We were supposed to look like toy soldiers as we marched out onto the battlefield. Bunks were clean even on the front. I’d come from a house with Leon and Mia living in it. The only reason Leon doesn’t live like a pig in shit is because someone comes once a week. You’ve never seen Mom with a home. There’s a reason we had to have Clarissa basically living with us as a Nanny all those years.” Casey explained, attempting to highlight the contrast.

”I don’t remember any of the cadets I did Basic with. I just remember the people in the unit I transferred to. The whole, y’know… But, even with them, it’s all blurry. When I was transitioning into the Army, I did a stint in the Marines. Those guys were animals; and when I got into the Army itself, I realized you could actually get worse. Disorganized, messy, chaotic cesspit…”

For a second, Trisha would probably be able to see the eyes beneath the lids roll slightly, bulging from one corner to the other as if he was passing a thoughtful gaze downward.

”But, for what it was worth? That shit became organized. I realized I was wrong about how they lived; that everything we were doing was being done for ease of access and convenience. I learned to live with that mess, so long as I had my eight square feet of private space. A cot to keep clean, a place to stand, a spot to stash my shit in. Anything I didn’t want kept in that space, but still needed out, we just kept out. Nobody gave a shit. You were in charge of your kit. In the end, it made a lot more sense.”

Clearing his throat, he finally tilted the board onto the platter and pushed it on toward the table.

”Let ‘em get started on that. I got rid of all the red fruit.”

“Alright." Trisha nodded, sending out gentle signals to the bees to come feast. They'd been so patient, following her last command to stay in the rafters without any ignoring it.

As a steady stream of bees came down towards the fruit, a matching stream of water began to trip from Trisha's eyes. A small amount at first, before it was a flood of tears that felt out of nowhere even to her. Delayed from being upset by Casey finding things she did annoying- but she'd pushed it down! She really didn't need to cry, she didn't.

Hoping that Casey's magical sight wasn't good enough to see tears, she carefully raised one hand to rub her eye like there was something in it. She didn't want to worry him. She could stop crying before he noticed. She shouldn't make him worry or feel like he had to care for her after he had such a bad episode!

“I’m glad the- the red fruit is done. They'll finish it quickly… I'll clean it up when they're done. Are- are you cutting more, or- or getting started on dinner?" It was a lot harder to sound like she wasn't actively crying when trying to talk.

Casey could only really see with sounds. Except, with so many bees around now, it was like he had a scrambled three dimensional map of his surroundings. He could see her wipe her eyes, and stopped to stare at her without opening his eyes as he tried to figure out why. Was it something he’d said? Or, was she holding something in? What if it was both, then he had to deal with the entire spectrum of issues.

It was worth it. He stepped closer, eyes still closed until he knew the bulk of the bee noise was out of his periphery, then opened them to look directly at her. Deep blue eyes stared expectantly, but with great softness as if he was pleading without words.

”Your turn, Honey. Tell me about it.” he spoke softly, hands cupping her arms so they’d both rest on his while he supported her at the elbow.

“I don't know…" Trisha sniffed, eyes welling up with even more tears. It was sort of true. The previous conversation had been the trigger, but it was just the brick pulled out of the dam she was using to hold back all of her emotions. So it was more than that. But what did she even say? How did she explain it? Something as ridiculous as being pushed into a low, almost depressive episode because of all that had happened when he was still dealing with it all? And she had it so easy?

“I don't want to burden you, Casey. That's not fair. You're dealing with enough. I'll be fine in a few minutes." One hand gripped onto his arm while the other raised to continue wiping away the tears.

”Until you stop thinking of yourself as a burden to others, you’ll never heal, Trisha. I love you, and you’re already helping me. So, keep helping me, and let me help you in return. That’s what support is. I… I just need something to keep the people out of my head. It’s almost a dream you’re still here with me.”

Casey hugged Trisha without any more hesitation, his arms slipping under hers and tugging her close. One hand crawled up and entangled in her hair, rubbing the back of her head in a comforting motion.

”Was it something I said? I’ll explain myself however you want me to…” he cooed.

“Sort of." She answered honestly, head drooping forward as she leaned towards him. If she didn't look she wouldn't see any negative reaction. But it was unfair of her to expect it when he was being so gentle with her… which only made her feel worse.

“I don't like that I do things that annoy you… even though I know that's silly and unrealistic. But… I can't even do simple things and you're going to want to go into the den later and you won't be able to relax because it's a mess from yesterday and I had all day to tidy it but I didn't. I- I- I don't know, Casey, you keep saying I'm not a burden but I just don't understand how I'm not. You barely get a chance to breath before I'm getting upset about something small and then you have to deal with that and it's just not fair."

”Trisha, you didn’t spend sixteen hour days being beaten with a switch and forced to march across France’s worst coastlines. You didn’t grow up being punched around by grown men because you were expected to be stronger…”

He looked at her sincerely, pulling away just enough so that she couldn’t escape him staring at her again with those deep dark blue eyes.

”We have separate thresholds, Baby! I’m so fucking sorry… Y’know there’s spells we can go and have done. Things to totally change your brain; but I know you don’t want that either. And I don’t want that. And if you started cleaning everything up all the time no matter what, this house would become very lonely! If I never saw any sign that we lived here, it’d lack the warmness of what I fought for to begin with. The chance for messy people to have happy lives. Maybe that sounds silly, but it’s not so dumb when you get around to thinking about it like I have.” Casey added gently, trying to make sure that Trisha could have concepts outside of herself directly to grasp ahold of, so she didn’t feel like it was all so centered around her.

Trisha nodded, sniffling silently for a moment. She felt like she looked incredibly pathetic. Her eyes and cheeks had just calmed down from all the breakdowns overnight, red puffiness gone, and now she was at it again.

“O-Okay, I understand, some mess isn't a problem. It should looked lived in… But just because you grew up like that doesn't mean you deserve to be constantly dealing with things. If anything you deserve the break more… I've been so privileged all my life I've barely thought about it… B-But it's not just that. That's… just a bit. T-the trigger, I guess." She shook her head, face scrunching up slightly. She just couldn't stop crying no matter how hard she tried to.

“I th-thought this wouldn't happen when I was with you. It normally doesn't… I'm not single, I have you, I love you… But I just can't do anything. And I'm so scared that I won't get better this time because normally it only happens when I'm alone! But I also feel like it doesn't matter because I'm never going to change anyway…"

It was like she'd decided to be honest with him, but skipped from one issue to the results of another without actually explaining the real problem. It wasn't on purpose. It was normally such a non issue that she entirely skipped over talking about the definitely not depressive but similar episode. Like he should just know, or have guessed she was going through something different.

”Trisha… I love you… Come on, fuck the food. Let’s just… Go. I’ve only got so much time, I don’t want to spend it away from you, or preoccupied.”
He slipped her off the counter, holding her until her feet touched the floor, then he went for her hand.

”We won’t clean the mess either. Because it’s no problem..” he intoned gently, looking down at her now before stepping slightly to the side with his hand still holding hers.

“Go… to the Den?" Trisha asked, looking up at him with tear filled eyes.

”Unless you’d rather go to bed for now…” he replied gently.

Trisha shook her head. She definitely didn't want to go to bed. Then she'd struggle to leave again, and she'd rather be stuck on the couch than the bed.

So she shuffled towards the den, clinging onto Casey's hand like he'd disappear if she let go. It wasn't as messy as she'd made it out to be. Princess was sitting precariously on the edge of the couch, with the blanket they'd got specifically for that room kicked all across it. Her laptop was in the middle, with a few books spread around it. There were a large amount of candles on the floor beside the TV, which was still playing the detective show. Then wrappers from snacks she'd eaten while getting ready before Thanksgiving here and there… it really wasn't that bad.

There were still a few bees in various spots just resting, having been the last group to check in Trisha before she emerged.

Her tears were beginning to run dry, but seeing the couch only made her feel worse. Like there was somehow a big, visible dent from where she'd planted herself for almost sixteen hours.

“I’m sorry for stopping you from cooking…" she mumbled, even though she held his hand in a death grip and had led him in here.
“I’m just too selfish… I spent all day lying around and now I'm just going to keep doing it with you…"

”I think we’re feeling similar, Trisha. You think I’m not feeling like that, maybe. Because I’ve got shit forcing me to go deal with it. But, it’s a lot of therapy to get to that point. Shit maybe you’ve never had to think about.” Casey mused as he looked up at the television. There was a vague smile.

”You started watching Inspector Colimo? Definitely a good one for being down in the dumps. He always catches them, the show holds your hand the whole way. No questions necessary at the end.” he calmly spoke, sliding up into his spot before inviting Trisha into his lap.

”Come on. Come get warm. Tell me more about all the privileges you were privy to when you had nobody who really loved you. We’ll get back to that one for starters, because it’s a good place.” he softly pushed, clearing his throat.

Trisha didn't need much inviting to climb up onto the couch and then Casey. She curled up against his chest, tension easing just slightly. She felt safe here, at least. Warm and safe…

“Not- Not that kind of privelege… I just… I have so much money and I've never had to do anything aside from study and even then… And I'm lazy because of it. Most people can't afford to just… not do anything for days. And I- I just don't have the motivation to fix it because everything's been handed to me on a silver platter aside from actual emotional care." It wasn't true, of course, but it was how so many people viewed her to the point she'd started to internalise it. And she was materially privileged.

“I’ve… never had it that bad! But whenever I'm alone and single I just can't do anything, but I thought it was only then, but it's happening again and- I don't know what lying around doing nothing is except for priveleged?!"

”Comfort? For once in your life, you feel good enough around someone else to act as you would on your own, with all the dirty little details that encompasses. For me, it only ever gets annoying when I know I’m irritable. Sometimes that’s for no reason! But I never want it to be your problem, and so I don’t make it so. I remember how much I love you, and I remember that I’m being unreasonable too! I… It is a discipline thing, maybe. Or, maybe it’s just a wiring thing! Either way, I’m not gonna hold it against you, because I chose to dedicate myself to you in the middle of this. Not some time where you were masking for my sake.” Casey attempted to summarize things succinctly, hoping Trisha would actually hear what he was saying.

”These… Pheromones are really good, Trish. It’s calm…”

“I’m glad." Trisha said softly, while trying to process everything else he'd said.

She couldn't entirely tell if he understood, or was still just talking about the messiness. It was hard… She understood what he was saying. That him getting annoyed was a combination of her bad habits and his irritability, rather than a constant. And there were so many background things that pushed them both into worse states.

“But I… don't want to be how I am when I'm alone. Not- not like this. I don't mean the messiness, or the habits that remind you of me and only annoy you when you're irritable. Not that stuff, I just… I can't do anything. I spend days doing nothing because I can't. It feels like there's no point to any of it, it's like… there's this empty pit in my stomach… I don't know, it feels so lazy, but I get trapped and- and it normally doesn't happen when I'm with someone. And it's not as bad now you're here! But it's… I don't know… I didn't want to make you deal with it. You say you won't hold it against me but you haven't really seen it."

She sniffed again, pressing her face into him.
“Maybe- I'm probably just sensitive after yesterday. I'll probably feel better tomorrow."

[color=577d06]”Trisha? Did… You never ever have access to mental health treatments? Has your doctor never asked you anything about shit like this? Or, do you just… [i]Lie to them?”[/color] he asked very simply, trying to figure out how she managed to avoid the very obvious conclusion that she’d been experiencing literal depressive episodes, probably for a very long time.

“I don't see my doctor that often. I don't really get sick… and I didn't lie to them. It's not like they ask about this? I barely went since I've become an adult, anyway." Trisha pursed her lips, managing to look a little confused.

“Well I've… lied about the panic attacks once or twice… Cause I was having some chest issues as a teenager. My Mom would've found out… But I don't know why they'd ask about this? And it's not like… I guess it's a mental health thing but it's not bad enough to need treatment."

”Oh my God you haven’t been to the Doctor in years, have you? Y’know, before the war, they weren’t asking at every visit. Now, Jesus, it's like they want to know if they can send you to the psych ward before they’ve gotta treat you. Like, have you ever seen one of those questionnaires?” Casey asked, more for the sake of asking than actually needing the answer. That part was clear, after all.

“No, I don't think so?" She shook her head. She vaguely remembered Diyah complaining about some bullshit she kept having to fill in at the doctor's, but she'd never been that specific. Trisha herself had never been given anything like that… Nor questioned like they wanted to send her to a psych ward. Thank fuck… if that happened she'd run and never go back.

”Well, my point was, you’re in no position to do much of anything. And by luxury of your position, Baby, you don’t have to! I’ll never ever get on you for not doing anything if you don’t have to, Trisha! Because, if you did have something to do for someone you love, you’d push through it just like I would!” Casey pressed slightly, tilting his head downward slightly to look Trisha in the eyes.

“I would." Trisha responded, glancing up at him for a moment before looking away. But that didn't entirely seem to be the point… or was it? It didn't really matter if she was miserable and unable to do anything for days on end, as long as it didn't affect anyone else. Especially Casey.

“Is it really alright if I don't do anything? It's not… You don't think it's just me being lazy?"

”No… I think you have some untreated depression that we should have you see someone for, but I know that’s not a lazy behavior. I’m not an ignorant ass, I think. Not in that regard, at least!” he patted her leg with his free hand, squeezing her hand with the other.

”I’ve got so much to do. I can’t let myself hit the slump. But, you can bet your ass that once all of this is over? I’m going into a coma.” he tried to joke, shaking her gently.

Trisha reaction was noticeably delayed as she just stared at him for a moment. Untreated depression? But it wasn't that serious, was it? Didn't you need to be… suicidal for it to really be depression? But if Casey thought it actually was, she wouldn't argue right now. If seeing someone happened, then there'd be no debate whether it was or not anyway.

“As long as I can hug you during the coma." She managed to say back, after visibly thinking for a while. She tried to relax against him- through the shaking- and put the impending many more maybe depressive hours out of her mind. It wasn't really possible, but at least she cuddled up to him better rather than being a tight ball in his lap.

“How long is it going to be like this? With the long hours out and only a few at home?"

Casey was sad to tell her, but this was never something he’d be able to lie about. She’d know one way or another.

”As long as it takes to fix everything. I don’t know. At least a week or two. Really, as long as it takes to settle up with those bastards, and get the victims back on track with whatever magic we can spare. There’s a high chance this delays plans for months, even.” he admitted calmly, knowing full well it wasn’t something she was going to want to hear.

”But, I told you… No more lying or omitting. I know we’re gonna get through this, or it ain’t true love, right? That’s the deciding principle, I feel like. Y’know, hardships and seeing the worst of one another so early is great. It means there’s no surprises! We should just be able to say shit, and accept it, and improve if we need or get over it if we don’t. And we will.” Casey finished with confidence.

A week or two was bad enough, but the chance it could delay things for months. That was incredibly difficult to hear without just starting to cry again. But he was being honest like he said he would, and if she reacted badly then maybe he'd regret it. She didn't want him to regret it, or feel like she couldn't handle things. She could. Even if it meant weeks of barely being able to do anything, it was fine.

She slowly nodded.
“That’s… a long time. Does it mean we won't be able to do anything for my birthday?" She asked, before immediately biting her lip. What a selfish thing to ask. Like it was that important.

“Sorry… I know you don't want to be dealing with this either. That's selfish to ask… I can handle whatever happens. Like you said, we're going to get through this. Seeing you a couple of hours a day is enough…" It wasn't really enough. The bare minimum was maybe a better description. She was still seeing him, at least.

”No, Baby, they’re good questions. The right ones. They pertain to you, and to us, which is what you care about. I won’t hold that against you… And I’m sorry. I’m sorry for what I said, y’know, about how you don’t care. I know you care about the people. But, it’s… Hard to think of it objectively. I understand you…” Casey intoned, knowing that he’d been a little more harsh than necessary over her problems the night previous.

”I’ll make time for you. Hopefully by the time your birthday rolls around, we’ll have things just about wrapped up, actually. I’m really hoping that’s the case. As it is, there’ll be some days where I’m stuck just downstairs in the office coming up… Logistical work requiring my attention. So, you’re not gonna lose me.” he added, hoping she’d be able to accept that.

Trisha nodded again, though she'd tucked her head against him, making it difficult to see her expression. She didn't want him to see that she was teary eyed again… she could handle it. It was just difficult to close the floodgates after they were opened, and she was even more fragile than normal. Pushed towards breakdown as much as she was panic attacks… Maybe the one blessing was that neither tended to explode outwards at him.

“As long as you're alright with me coming down and cuddling you. I don't even need to do anything, so I can be perfectly still." She answered softly. It would be worse if he was there, but she distracted him too much that he ended up sending her away. That would hurt more than just not spending the time with him.

“And it's alright if it's not much time when we get to my birthday. Just a few hours with you will make it better than any in the past." She admitted. It wasn't even a lie… the timing of it meant even when she had friends that cared about her, they couldn't exactly be there for the day. One year the four had called her in the evening, but it barely lasted an hour. It had been well past midnight for Cass and Sal too, with the former having to take the call outside with shitty internet connection and background drunks to avoid getting shouted at by her parents.

It had still been one of the nicest things done for her on the day.

“I can survive with whatever time you can give me."

”I’m not gonna be stingy, Baby. I love you. I’ll be here as much as I can be, Trisha, you understand? I believe in you. And I know you believe in me, so it’ll all work out really well. We both know it will.”

There were plenty of X factors that could take him away, but he figured as much as I can be was a decent enough qualifier that if things started to get bad, he’d have plausible deniability. Not that he wanted to deal with raging inferno Trisha. Frankly, he could deal with smoldering depression way easier; she wasn’t trying to push him off of any mental cliffs at this point.

”So, don’t make it sound like you’ll be neglected. Every chance I get? You’re with me.” he rubbed her head gently with his free hand.

“I’m not trying to make it sound like that…" Trisha whined almost pathetically, lips pursing into pout. She really hadn't been. She knew that Casey didn't want to be spending all of his time away and working either. Sure, the constant anxiety that he preferred being away from her would always creep in when he was away… but it was hard for it to clutch her right now when she was cuddled up to him.
“I know you're not choosing to be away… It's not like you're someone who wants to stay at work longer to avoid your wife at home."

She was still worried he'd have the time to think and reflect on how she'd acted last night. Even though he was sorry for what he said right now, it was all still fresh. Anger tended to go to regret but when it all cooled off maybe it would become disdain. At least if she owned it, maybe it wouldn't reflect so badly.

“I’m not… I don't think we're in some bad place and you're going to avoid me. I don't feel neglected, I… I'm not upset or resentful at you for last night or anything… I know everything you said was right…"

She was so in the moment sometimes. Maybe she didn’t realize he could contextualize both at once.

”Maybe it was right in concept, but it wasn’t right in timing, nor tone. We can both recognize that the moment was hectic, and neither of us were in our right minds, however. So, we’ll call that one a stalemate too, that way nobody needs to feel conflicted about pushing one way or another. Agreed?” he asked her quietly, surprised she could output this level of pheromone control after so much time.

Trisha was silent for a moment. She was trying to decide whether to lie or not. Well, it wasn't entirely a lie. It wasn't like she didn't agree. The moment had been hectic and they hadn't been in their right minds, but he'd been more right than she'd been. He'd just reacted to her being selfish after all. If she hadn't acted like that, then it would have been fine. Agreeing to that didn't alleviate her guilt.

But maybe it shouldn't. Maybe she should continue to feel bad about it. It wasn't on him to make her feel better about it anyway.

It being a stalemate was fine, then. Agreeing wouldn't be a lie at all.

“Agreed." She replied softly, looking up at him for a moment before curling back against him. The floral scent continued to curl off her skin. She was honestly barely thinking about it at this point, the slight throbbing at the back of her skull no worse than when thousands of bees bombarded her at once.

“It… wasn't a good night for either of us. I was…" She trailed off, biting her lip and trying to decide whether to continue with the thought. Well, it wasn't such a bad thing to admit.
“Worried you'd be angry at me when you got back. It would've been understandable… but I'm glad you weren't and we can cuddle like this."

”I’ll never be more upset than I love you, Trisha. I can absolutely promise that.” Casey quietly replied as he planted a gentle kiss on her head.


December 4th. Home.


The next two days followed a similar pattern, with Casey working for most of the day while Trisha spent it trapped in a depressive slump on the couch or in bed. There were moments where she was able to get a little bit done- a couple of lines of code here, some business research there- but it wasn't much.

She'd still barely slept, only catching a good hour or two when she napped with Casey. The other times were filled with various nightmares after a struggle to get to sleep in the first place. At least he said he would be working in the office tomorrow, so she could spend most of the day with him. She'd probably end up sleeping a lot... But that was fine, because it would mean cuddling him without disturbing him at work.

It was another day of just lying half watching Inspector Colimo and half staring at nothing at all while losing herself to her depressive thoughts. Time ticked by slowly, waiting for the brief relief of Casey coming home for a few hours.

But a loud knock on the door broke her relative peace. Trisha rolled over to grasp her phone, checking the time. 3pm… Far too early for Casey to be back. He wouldn’t knock anyway. Hopefully if she ignored it, they’d leave her alone.

No such luck. It was barely a minute before there was another, loud and enthusiastic rap against the glass.

She didn’t want to see anyone. Not in the state she was in. She hadn’t showered, she’d barely managed to change the t-shirt of Casey’s she was wearing, she looked a mess… She couldn’t deal with most people seeing her like this. There was only one other person who had seen her in this state before. It wouldn’t be so bad… Though it didn’t mean she really wanted to see her.

Frowning, Trisha ordered a group of bees with her to go out the half open window to check who it was. A rough shape or even height should be enough to guess, at least…

Outside, Cass was waiting impatiently. She’d finally recovered from Luxal Fatigue the evening before, followed by a great night with Leon. But he had to leave early in the morning, leaving her bored as fuck.

So obviously she grabbed Ed, the one other person not overloaded with work, and dragged her up to try see Trisha. Cass had heard things through the grapevine about what state she was in… Just comments here or there from Leon, mostly. It was enough to guess, at least.

She’d come up absolutely loaded in bags, filled to the brim with tupperware filled with food. Easy to heat up meals, each in a single portion… Or a half portion for everyone but Trisha, really. She’d gotten Ed to carry a bunch too, and one of the bags had fresh food so she could make the three of them lunch.

Cass had commandeered the kitchen in Leon’s apartment from early in the morning- woken up by him getting up, and not the kind of person to go back to sleep once she was properly awake. Driven by a shit ton of energy and sudden despair about how much junk food everyone ate, she’d ended up cooking a bunch of different meals in bulk. Enough to completely fill Leon’s fridge, half fill her own, and probably half fill Casey and Trisha’s too.

Not that any of them really needed to worry about what they consumed. But a home cooked meal was just nicer! And she knew a certain person- Trisha- probably just wasn’t eating at all.

Or coming to the door! Cass went to knock again, absolutely prepared to stand there and knock for hours, when a soft buzzing echoed in her sensitive ears.

A small group of bees started circling the two of them. Cass’ lips pulled into a wide grin.
”Oh shit, look! She’s totally tryna check out who we are! Heh, watch-”

Cass shot a more devious grin towards Ed, before antenna popped out of her head. It took a bit of adjustment to read the signals- she was relying on her natural magic to understand it and didn’t exactly have practice. But she vaguely got it… Then she started to imitate their pheromones. Giving off the friendliest vibes she could, a hint of a fruity smell entering the air.

The group of bees gave a confused buzz, circling her a few times before darting back to their Queen.

”I totally convinced them I’m also a bee! Bet that’ll have her coming out to check who it is herself!”

The last few days had been difficult, but just like Cass, Ed was a quick bounceback. There weren’t many things that a stint of torpor didn’t fix, a “brief” mommy-daughter nap having cleared up most of the initial anxiety and sadness. There weren’t many names related to her that were affected, thankfully. So, she could afford to be with Cass this morning, doubly because of the Temple-Wide lockdown.

The wider Financial offices were all shut down due to the high security veil, and probably would be until the threat was eliminated. Most job-making endeavors were down, leaving any activity to the deepest echelons of the cult’s leadership. People like Elise and Hari took care of big jobs that kept the organization running; paying bills, situating payroll, keeping the on-site facilities stocked and supplied.

The only problem was, they were missing a big revenue stream. And maybe Ed herself wasn't privy to all the relevant info, but she’d worked the After Dark accounts. She knew the illegal or otherwise untaxed goods and services hadn’t been paid. Logistics had made fifteen shipments of various standard goods: Oblivium materials, enchanted weapons and armors, completed goods, even exo-Shimmer materials. Big hauls like that usually came with big returns… But November had been a Red month.

And if it was a red month, then all that shit happened? They’d never have a Black month again.

”Dude! You’re gonna give her a panic attack, she’s gonna think it's some assassin or something tricking her bees. Did you text her?” Ed chided with concern in her voice.

”I can just go in and ask her to let us in…” Serenity half-heartedly offered, her body clipping into the roof itself.
She’d formed antennae on herself just like Cass, and had formed a sweater on herself that had milky little bee-shaped clouds flying around on it.

”I texted her, but she ain’t responded. It’ll be fine, she might just shout at me a lil while…” Cass waved Ed’s concern off, looking up at Serenity with a smile.
”Nah, don’t you worry, she’ll be out soon. Then you can show off your super cute sweater!”

Trisha had, in fact, been given a jolt of panic and confusion when her bees came back to report a massive, human bee was outside. She knew they sort of saw Casey in that way, but it wasn’t him, because she knew how they reported him. Her hand went for her phone, considering whether she should call him or not about the fact there might be some massive bee imitation outside their door.

Only to see a text from Cass in all caps about coming up.

Oh. Of course. Panic dampened back into the same irritation she’d felt about anyone visiting. She really didn’t want to see anyone… But Cass was the one person that wouldn’t give up.

She finally emerged from the den after a brief moment of making herself not look so awful. Her messy, tangled hair was pulled back into a bun to hide how awful a state she was in and she pulled on a sweater that at least hid more of her. Not that Cass hadn’t seen her like this before.

Cass started waving enthusiastically the moment Trisha appeared. Trisha just shot her a glare, managing a half smile towards Ed. She wasn’t particularly happy that there was yet another person seeing her in this state, but… it could be far worse than Ed.

”Fooooddd delivery!” Cass announced cheerfully when Trisha opened the door to let them in.

“Did you have to confuse the bees?” Trisha asked tiredly in return, not even having the energy to really get angry about it. Especially not at the person who’d gotten hurt to protect her…

”Couldn’t help myself! I just got my magic back last night, anyway… Luxal Fatigue sucks balls! It’s pretty cool, isn’t it? We could totally talk via your bees!” Cass babbled, making her way towards the kitchen area with all her bags. Even as she put them down, she didn’t go for a hug like she normally would. She knew that Trisha as she was right now would want to be touched even less than normal.
”Can I just put all this shit in your fridge? I bulk made a bunch of meals- for you and Casey!”

Trisha just nodded, turning towards Ed. After a moment of thinking of nothing better to say, she asked a simple question.
“How are you… doing after everything?”

”Oh, just bolstering myself for when the other two actually make it home. Hari’s usually easy, but she’s putting a lot of Lux into the main magical solution right now, so whenever she’s on leave, she’s got no more energy to help herself… Or Mia, which… Y’know…” Ed gave Trisha a vague smirk. Mia was never not Mia, so there wasn’t much to report on that front.

As she brought her bags in, putting them on the counter for Cass to sort through, Ed ushered Serenity forward and upward. She was still sleepy from the long nap, and was terribly slow to make many motions at all, but she floated up through the floor completely.

”Hi Aunty Trisha… You look like you need a nap. Wa-”
”-No more sleeping, Ren. Show Aunty your sweater.”

Serenity puffed her non-existent cheeks slightly, lifting her ghastly arms with a wisp of smoke following each. The motif within her formulated design used the infinite depths of her ectoplasmic mass, creating infinitely spanning horizons that allowed the fake bee clouds to buzz about too and fro in a three dimensional space for as long as was possible to see, using the optical illusion of distance perspective to add to the illusion.

”It’s a cloud of lazy bees.” Serenity said very simply.

Trisha stared at the fake bee clouds for a longer moment than she probably should have, momentarily captured by the shifting illusion she could mindlessly watch. But she managed to snap out of it to give some kind of response.
“It is… It’s nice. I wish mine were that lazy, sometimes.”

”No you don’t, cause then you’d have nothing to send out to check out guests!” Cass piped up from where she was crouched in front of the fridge, perfectly stacking the tupperwares to make the most of the space.

Trisha didn’t even respond to that beyond a withering stare that Cass grinned in response to.
“So Hari and Mia are about as busy as Casey, then? He’s only home a few hours a day… And it’s mostly spent eating then napping.”

”Leon’s ain’t been quite that bad, I think… Well, I ain’t really been awake the last few days. Still busy, but I think he gets like six hours back or so? Dunno! Last night he was definitely around for more than a few hours… But there sure wasn’t much sleeping going on!” Cass laughed, eyebrows waggling.
”Don’t think he’s involved in the solution thing, just other shit.”

”Oh, yeah. Lee ain’t allowed on the Macguffin. Neither are any mix-color Adepts. Hari’s the main Pink anchor, so she hasn’t been home yet, I’ve just talked to her on the phone. Mia came back for maybe fifteen minutes, but I wasn’t awake. That’ll be an argument later on…” Ed grinned to herself.

”They’ve got her working with the families of magical victims, since they’re not going to be affected by the magical burst once the piece of shit mind-wiper is charged. She makes toys dance, and she loves kids, so she’s working with the children specifically. I guess some of Andy’s people are teaching her medical stuff too, so she’s rather inundated.” she explained to the two outsiders, since they’d never seen the Macguffin actually used before.

Though, Trisha had been around for its usage. Every big battle against the Snake needed some kind of help to keep the people of Shimmer ignorant of the magical undercurrents of the world. Someone had to take care of things.

”I’m guessing Casey’s spending so much time out because security is on level six. Protocol for a war status with an unknown threat. There’s a high chance that he’d be spending a lot more time away if uh… Y’know, he didn’t have you to come home to, Trisha. Things between him and Furio are pretty bad. she frowned, having been told by Casey to not keep Trisha in the dark about things that may affect her. Since there was a chance Casey himself may not have told her, Ed only felt it was right that she upheld her end of the agreement by telling Trisha. After all, in her judgement this was necessary information. She didn’t know what was going to happen now that this was all happening, nor did she know about the Sycamore Flourish to end it all.

”From what Hari tells me, they’re like two bulls constantly smacking against one another. I think a lot of people are worried about it turning into something it doesn’t need to be… Not that there’s anything you can do, but God forbid anything were to get back to you, I-”
She frowned for a moment, looking from Trisha to Cass, then back.

Trisha frowned in return.
“You think… Furio would do something to me because Casey isn’t spending every hour of the day out hunting a threat we already know the source of?” She asked, frown deepening.

They knew it was the Dollhouse. They knew it was the same people after Sycamore, pissed off that the Temple wasn’t playing ball anymore. They even had a plan to end it all… but it made sense that Casey hadn’t told Furio that. Not if they were butting heads, and they’d probably end up… against each other when the Temple collapsed.

“Those shapechanging things have been trying to kill me for months. Of course he’d want to…” She trailed off, hand jerking up in a frustrated motion.
“Sorry. You’re just informing me. I’m not surprised, because of how Casey’s been running things. But I don’t think he’d escalate it… Not yet. I don’t think he would want to properly clash with Furio even after everything collapses unless he’s pushed to. Furio probably thinks Casey’s… slacking by coming home like… There isn’t a plan to end things…”

”Far as I know, either we’re completely fucked or gonna be fine in a few weeks.” Cass finished putting things away and straightened up, rubbing the back of her neck.
”But if Casey really ain’t around much and there’s a possibility of something happening to you, Trisha, I don’t mind camping out on your roof. Ain’t even gonna disturb you, I’ll be like a silent guard dog.”

Trisha shook her head.
“I don’t think it’s that bad.”

”Well, that’s where even I don’t know. Hari’s only going to gossip so much over a recorded line, and uh, like I said I’m out of work. Finance Office closed until further notice. So, I don’t get pipelined like that. She’s not used to what living with Uncle Max and Furio was like as a kid though, so she doesn’t know that he’s just… Like that. Like, she knows, but she’s never really had to deal with him like that. Pretty insulated between their positions, y’know? But, if things got bad, Trisha… He’s Lynette’s assassin! Him and Clarissa, I mean they’ve probably killed hundreds of people for her. If she thought for a second that her plan wasn’t going to work? Aunt Lynn wouldn’t hesitate to send either of them.” Ed explained with a more serious face than she usually had.

”But, I really didn’t mean to bring grief to your door. I know it’s hard enough for you, but Casey said… That we should tell you about things if we feel like they involve you, because he says it’ll keep him accountable too. So, I’m… I’m just gonna do that, and respect what he wants unless you feel like it’s a breach between us… I’m sorry. she almost shrunk as she spoke, realizing that she’d managed to bring what was supposed to be a cheer up session back into the negative world.

The food is really good… I hope you eat a little bit. Casey said we should bring cut fruit for the bees too, so here they are. She tried to move on, rather than forcing Trisha into the awkwardness of accepting or rejecting the apology.

In her right hand were massive tupperware tubs full of cut melons and berries, just like Casey had done a couple nights ago.

Trisha was silent, staring past Ed towards the roof outside. She knew that things could get really bad if Lynette started to really fight back before her death… They wouldn’t have this period of preparation. She expected it to happen eventually. Furio and Clarissa wouldn’t exactly sit back and happily let Lynette get killed… But if it happened soon? When she and Casey were separated?

She wasn’t sure what would happen. And there was that fear that no matter what, Casey would end up sacrificing himself for her, leaving her to live without him. She was already feeling depressive, so the information wasn’t something she could do anything with practically… Even if she still wanted to know. Truth was a double edged sword.

It made her really want to just turn back into the Den, close the door and curl back up into the spot she’d barely moved from again.

”Oh yeah, it’s all food you like, Trish! But you ain’t gotta open any up yet… Cause I’ma make us something! Late lunch or early dinner I guess… Normal meal times ain’t really a thing for me now, I gotta have one every few hours.” Cass filled up the silence as she started getting out fresh food from another bag. Chicken, peppers, onions, and a whole bunch of jars of spices.

”I’m gonna make us fajitas! You ain’t gotta eat much, Trish, but at least have some!” She continued, grabbing plates from where she remembered they were and sliding them towards Ed to put the fruit onto.

It was enough to snap Trisha out of it, her head slowly nodding in a delayed response to Ed. While it was easy for her mood to drop right now, she wasn’t as reactive as she normally would be. Her main reaction was just not wanting to be there at all… But it was easier to push things down in the moment.

“Are you sure? Isn’t Serenity scared of the bees?”

”We talked about it… Ma says they only sting if you scare ‘em. She even showed me videos of this nice lady scooping bees out of people’s houses and stuff like, with her bare hands. They’re probably fine.” Serenity replied calmly, floating about on her back like she was in a pool.

Ed was able to focus on the child as well, and happily so.
”Goddamn, Ma’s proud of you Babe. Look at what we can do when we use our brains to think stuff through?” Ed smiled warmly, letting her free hand brush down to tickle Serenity’s stomach as the hand still laden with bags placed them down.

She went to work setting out a massive portion of each fruit, clearly not aware of how much the indoor swarm actually needed. Leon’s tupperwares weren’t small affairs. They were three gallon buckets, and these buckets were absolutely full of any random assortment of fruit salads.

”I know Casey loves his fruit too, so I cut up like fuckin’, I don’t know, six or eight watermelons. Cantaloupe, fuckin… Cass, what else was in there?” she asked, having long forgotten how many deliveries had been stuffed into Leon’s magical kitchen fridge.

”Strawberries, I know, and blueberries, grapes, uh… Was there any citrus?”

”Wasn’t there some grapefruit? I dunno, I ain’t able to keep track of it all! I just eat and eat.” Cass laughed, smiling over at the other three.
”And you don’t gotta even worry ‘bout scaring these bees, Ren. They only string when Aunty Trisha’s scared!”

Trisha shot Cass a tired side eye, before looking at the insane amount of fruit being plated. She had enough bees to eat it all, but not in the house currently…
“I’m going to have to call in a lot of bees to eat all of that… Maybe we can put some more of it in the fridge? If I call too many at once from the hive all of the alarms Gin set up go off, then I have to say it’s not an emergency and all that. I don’t think right now’s a good time to possibly cause any concern.”

”I can just eat any left!” Cass grinned.
”Before I start… Am I good to use your cooking utensils? I can go get my own shit if you want!”

“So long as you tidy up and wash them.”

”Yeah, of course I will, boss!” Cass saluted Trisha before starting to bustle around the cupboards to find everything she needed.

As she did, Trisha carefully called down the bees mostly resting in the rafters. There was a decent sized group in the den too that flew through the slight ajar door, all settling onto various bits of fruits Ed had laid out. Trisha reached out for a strawberry herself, slowly eating it.

“Casey’s probably going to keel over from happiness when he sees how full of fruit and home cooked meals our fridge is.”

”There’s breakfasts, lunches and dinners. I kinda know what he likes, it hasn’t changed much. Some are just, like, serving tubs? Stuff I know he likes a lot of. Two macaroni and cheeses. There’s a bunch of, like, hotpocket things. We’ve basically been cooking since like, well, Cass was up before me, but I remember seeing the clock at like six in the morning. We’ve been cookin’.”

Ed gave Trisha a smile as Serenity made her slow and plodding way into the swarm of bees. At this point, it was clear to her that they weren’t even actually magical. And, therefore, without Emotional Fields of their own to effect, she never needed to fear anything to begin with. And she filled the room with giggling laughter that brought about a change neither Cass nor Trisha would’ve been privy to previously.

As she floated around in the cloud of bees, the vague trail of smoke she left behind started to grow pink, then red before bursting into petals that rained through the swarm and the island beneath the plates. Like the fuse on a stick of dynamite, the red blossoming explosion trailed up to Serenity herself, where upon arriving, it set her absolutely ablaze with blooming red light.
And she was no longer giggling. She was full on belly laughing as she felt the millions of individual points being tickled by the bees within her vague form. And her hair was strands of blood red poppy blossoms constantly tumbling. And her chest looked like it was burning hot, but in the very center were three poppy flowers entwined together and perfectly preserved.

”Ooooh, someone’s in a good mood after our nap. I guess she deserved it too.” Ed said with almost a hollow voice as she stared up at the lightshow.

The bees were a little confused by the bright lights and not-quite flowers around them, but they were far too engrossed in the sweet smell and taste of the fruit to be that bothered. Trisha wrinkled her nose a little bit as a mix of happy and bewildered pheromones hit her. It was like all of her senses were being bombarded after days of not dealing with much at all.

”Whoa, that’s awesome! Your own magical lightshow!” Cass grinned, pointing to the glowing centre.
”I assume those poppies are you, Mia and Hari, huh? Since there’s three?”

Trisha didn’t say anything, silently reassuring some of her more jumpy bees who were thrown off more than the ones happy to just devour fruit.

”The holiest thing is a trio. Hari says that a lot. Does everything she can in threes. One for the Father, for the Son, and the Holy Spirit. Keep digging, you find out three’s been a number in her life for a lot longer than she’s been religious. It’s probably why she clings so much to it.”

Ed was still looking up at Serenity as the Bloom began to taper out. Color faded from the extremities, ultimately leaving only a faint impression of the one-of-three still twisted deep in her milky form.

”Spot on, obviously. They’re made out of our blood. Each of us, slice under the left boob. Heartblood. Mix it with the rest of the heroin we had, and a few other things I don’t care to mention. Then I took the dose. She was mine then on.” she cleared her throat, looking back down at the food she was trying to pack back up.

Casually, she scooped the couple pieces of fruit that bees had landed on in the bucket and set them down before closing the lid for good.

”I’m just… Glad you don’t think we’re freaks.” Ed finished, hoping that they’d be able to just move on. She figured Cass would, and had high hopes for Trisha, so she wasn’t terribly worried, but all the same didn’t want to linger too long.

“I think you’re lucky to be alive.” Trisha intoned, though it didn’t seem that judgmental… At least, anymore so than she seemed on a constant basis. Not that she was that judgmental, she just tended to look it more than she meant to. It was a genuine comment- taking a mixture of blood, heroin and whatever else didn’t seem safe at all. It was a miracle they’d ended up with a ghost baby instead of losing one of them.

”That’s Trisha’s way of saying she’s glad you’re alive, and she don’t think your a freak!” Cass translated with a bright grin. She’d gotten out two chopping boards, and was utilising her magic to create a second set of very long arms she could use to cut the chicken while also chopping up the vegetables. It took a bit of adjustment in terms of her mind, because she was still controlling both- but after this morning, she was an expert! It had made making the insane quantity of food she did easier, even if she’d had Ed there to help in the end.

“I don’t. But I think you are for growing extra limbs in my kitchen.”

”Awww, I even went to the effort of making proper hands this time! God, no one appreciates my craftsmanship!” Cass joked, finishing cutting the chicken into thin slices quickly. Her extra long, second arms put a large pan on the hob and started heating up some oil.
”Ed’s been watching me do this for hours and she hasn’t complained at all!”

”No, but I did mean to say earlier that it’s a fairly impressive setup you’ve got going on. A bit on the gnarly side, and makes me wonder if you need to start wearing clothes with random holes in them.” Ed joked, shaking her head and laughing as the topic rolled back toward Cass. That was far easier to deal with, after all.

”Y’got any honey left, Trisha? That shit’s delish, I was hoping to dip some strawberries in it.”

Trisha nodded, moving around to one of the cupboard to pull out a jar. It was about half full… But she always made sure to fill it up when it got empty. Both her and Casey enjoyed the honey, and the bees were producing enough to meet what she was contracted to give Andrade while leaving her some spare.

“Here. If you ever want any, just let me know. I can spare a jar or two.”

”Damn, Trish, that’s like ten quid down the drain!” Cass joked, grinning as she started frying chicken with one half and cutting vegetables at a slower rate in another. She twisted her head round for a moment.

”Speaking of the whole holes in clothes thing… I was wondering, can Casey make like enchanted clothes that stretch with me?! Like, I can deal with this cause I just wear tank tops with larger sleeves!” She gestured with a normal hand to the baggy black tank top she was wearing, enough space for another pair of arms to slither out.

”But anything else is a pain! Especially when I start properly body shifting… I gotta basically just wear a bra and shorts. Even then it ain’t perfect!”

Trisha shrugged one shoulder.
“Probably? It seems like something he could do if he ever had time.” She glanced towards Ed for confirmation. Ed had, after all, grown up surrounded by their magic. She’d probably have a better idea than Trisha did about what was and wasn’t possible.

”Oh, I’m sure there’s an orange spell somewhere.” Ed very casually replied, packing the last of the fruit into the spacious bottom drawers.

Casey had clearly taken just as much offence to the size of this fridge as he had the one downstairs, as both were enchanted to have roughly the same volumetric storage capacity. Meaning this was all snug but well organized. So, they were free from ordering out for at least a week.

She left a small plate of strawberries out, and immediately went for a spoon to start scooping honey out onto them.

”Thanks, Trisha. How’ve they been doing in the new environments? I hear you started a new colony in one of the other biomes recently?” Ed asked, knowing that was something Trisha couldn’t avoid putting time into.

“They’re adjusting. It’s a little difficult… Since I haven’t really had time yet to make more the way I wanted to.” It wasn’t really true that she hadn’t had time, so much as she’d planned to start after Thanksgiving and everything had gone to shit. She couldn’t exactly ask Casey to see if the Temple’s main doctor would create soul-less human bodies for her to grow bees in right now.

“I created a new Queen in that colony… Casey hopes I can have ‘Princess’ bees that are between me and the others. This isn’t quite that but… They still obey me while being able to expand their numbers a bit. I’ll demote her when I’ve made up for lost numbers.” She explained it all easily. She’d figured now was the best time to create a Queen to make more bees in the way she had before… Only the colony in the other biome viewed that temporary queen as theirs and had the conflict.

But the rate with which she was creating more, she’d only need to be around a few more days. Then it would be a couple of weeks for them to mature…

”What’s the way you wanted to do it?” Cass asked around crunching on some pepper as she cooked. She really didn’t know much about the intricacies of Trisha’s Abstraction… it seemed like no one did aside from her and Casey, really. Leon certainly hadn’t been able to describe anything beyond what Cass had already witness herself.

Trisha glanced at Ed, then over at Serenity.
“It’s a bit gruesome. Maybe not the best pre meal discussion.”

”Oh, I’d hear about it. Gin’s a big blabbermouth, I’m sorry to say, so I know what you’re talking about already… But, like, damn.” Ed huffed gently, snapping down on a strawberry.

”I heard about the jelly they make. Like, it’s not edible? So, what are they for?” she asked quizzically.

“Well, that… It’s not the same as vulture bees. I could make vulture bees, I think, but not all of the bees eat the flesh.” Trisha replied evenly.
“But the jelly is used for larvae nutrition. Normal bees make something called royal jelly too… Just not from flesh. So technically it is edible, just not to us.”

”Alright, then what is the method?! I’m real curious now!” Cass paused her double armed cooking for a moment to turn around and look at Trisha expectantly.

Since Ed already knew, there was no point holding back. Nothing could kill Cass’ appetite… and Trisha didn’t exactly have one to begin with.
“Growing them in human flesh. Back before she was sealed, the Queen would lure humans to her to grow her colony in them. It has to be human- or possibly apparitional- to work. She doesn’t view animal flesh as good enough. I was… Well, Casey suggested that Doctor Nedia might be able to make essentially soulless cadavers I could grow them in. Obviously we won’t be able to look into that until things calm down.”

”Ohhh… That’s so sick! Andy could totally… Wait!” Cass paused, throwing up one of her four hands.
”Why’s it gotta be her? You got a totally awesome, powerful Green Adept right here with nothing but time on her hands to make you all sorts of grim body replicas. I bet I could do it!”

Trisha didn’t immediately respond, lips pressing together into a thin line. Would she want that?

Ed scrunched her nose.
”Andrea Nedia’s an immoral, vapid cunt for starters, with no real regard for ethics besides what her boss tells her to do.” Ed sounded like she was just joking, but she never actually talked like that about anyone.

Trisha would’ve had a much better idea of Ed’s individual issues with Andy, but those same issues meant that Andy was the most likely candidate. If Cass really wanted to try, Ed couldn’t judge her for it. But, she couldn’t lie and say the whole process didn’t make her a little uncomfortable.

”To be fair, Gin made it sound like it was just, like, imitation flesh. Not full cadavers. Like, what, are they gonna be people? Or, just, y’know, like blank flesh presses? Big silicon sex dolls?” she asked, looking a little worse for wear.

“I don’t know.” Trisha said quietly, gaze shifting from them to the floor. She really didn’t. She’d never tried it before, because the idea had always horrified her. There was easy access to dead bodies when she was fighting the Stygian Snake… she could’ve easily hidden one and grown a whole new army. But she didn’t. She only considered it when it wouldn’t actually be dead people.

“Whatever the Queen would accept. I’m sure it doesn’t have to be… like an actual body. A piece of human flesh is enough but even that… Sounds really unethical doesn’t it? I wanted to make the most of the Temple resources while it’s available to me… So I can help more when it collapses.”

”Oh, it’s just flesh you need? Then that’s easy!” Cass said, throwing all the vegetables into the pan, along with what looked like a random assortment of spices. She only needed her normal arms now, so… She adjusted one of the extra ones until it was just a long tube of flesh rather than an actual arm and hand, then carefully shed it from her body. A free hand caught it, before holding it up towards Trisha.

”There. I make, like, a ton’ve extra parts all the time. It’s about the same if I discard ‘em or suck ‘em back in, honestly.”

Trisha’s eyes went wide, and she covered her mouth with her hands. She wasn’t exactly squeamish. But she’d seen Cass have her arm blown off days before… It was part of what had pushed her into the depressive low. The only thing that saved them all from dealing with a full blown panic attack was that Cass looked fine. There was no sign that the extra limb had been there before.

”Dude! You just, like, plopped it! You’re like a reptile, you just lop your tail off and it just doesn’t matter!” Ed giggled, seeming astonished by the prospect of flesh being so readily available.

”What happens if you, like, eat yourself?” she asked, totally unaware of Trisha’s panic bubbling up as she pondered the wonders of autocannibalism.

”I dunno! Probably ain’t a good idea, though, cause of the Lux I use to make these… I bet it’d make my condition worse, y’know? Clog up my veins faster or some shit!” Cass shrugged, waving what was essentially a massive, human flesh sausage around a bit. Maybe it would give her all the energy back… But she didn’t imagine she tasted nice! She’d rather just eat normal food.

“Can we… Not do it in the kitchen? Or my home, preferably. I’d rather… Try in the Greenhouse. Or anywhere else. Another time.” Trisha managed to speak up, voice quiet as she took a deep breath to calm herself. Cass was fine. She was just as energetic as before… She wasn’t hurt. If Cass could just give her a few flesh discards, it would make things easier… It’d be more sustainable too.

Right now just wasn’t the time she wanted to deal with it.

”Oh, sure, of course! Where do you want me to put this? I can probably just… consume it? It ain’t like cannibalism, Ed, before you suggest that! I ain’t putting it in my mouth.” Cass shrugged, managing to step back from her excitement at being able to help Trisha- and actually have something useful to do!- enough to realise her friend wasn’t really in the mood for it now.

“I don’t know… Anywhere but here.”

Ed was just giggling away as she looked at this floppy lump of Cass being handled before her.

”Jesus… I mean, I could store it in one of the freezers downstairs, if you have plastic wrap? I’ll just package it up like it’s hamburger. Though, maybe… You said the Queen’s picky? Maybe you can check with her and see if it’s good enough before we go taking up storage space?” she asked thoughtfully, licking a bit of honey off of her finger.

Trisha nodded, taking a shaky breath. It didn’t even look like an arm. Cass was fine. They were all fine. She held out a hand silently for the flesh lump, taking it with a slight grimace. It weighed more than she expected. She closed her eyes, slowly urging the Queen awake. She’d gotten more responsive recently, so it didn’t take long until she felt her presence stirring. Enough that she wasn’t going to be repeating her question.

Is this good enough for… hosting bee larvae?

There was silence as she felt the Queen’s own pheromones gently flooding from her body and around the sort of arm in her hands.
Yes. But where did you get this from? It is filled with Lux as if it was alive, but it isn’t. How curious.

Cass made it.

There was another moment of silence before the Queen spoke again.
To sacrifice one’s own flesh… What made her want to do such a thing?

“It’s suitable. The Queen is confused about why you’d do it so willingly, though.” Trisha spoke out loud instead of responding to the Queen internally.

Cass just let out a little laugh.
”Well, I ain’t got use of it after I’m done, do I? May as well make some new life with it! Will that make me, like… Their surrogate parent? Am I gonna be a Mom with you, Trisha?”

“That’s not how it works.”

”But it could be… Not all parenting’s traditional. Right?” Cass asked, looking to Ed for support.

Ed was simultaneously laughing at, but also infatuated with, the concept that Cass was proposing. It was something she had to deal with on her own: Was she really this Ghost’s parent? Did Mia or Hari actually have any connection to her? Of course, she felt they did, and treated it all as such. But that didn’t make it true, just that it sounded nice. But, in her case, all three had been a part of the ritual. In this case?

”I feel like if every bee is being made with bits of Cass, it’s more like… Well, yeah. Honestly, what Cass said makes a bit of sense, Trisha, I’m not gonna lie.” she finally commented.

”She’s giving herself up for them just like a mother does. I’m not gonna say it’s more than what you do, because obviously you’re the one constantly telling them what’s what and making sure they’re cared for. But, I’d argue if you start making Cass-flesh bees, they’re closer to her babies.” Ed bit her lip, not really sure how to not be honest.

”Still, if it’s good, get me the plastic wrap. I’ll bring it downstairs right away. Make sure she’s cool with it having been frozen, otherwise it needs to go in a fridge and get used soonish.”

Trisha didn’t even have to ask herself, because the Queen was awake and actively listening.
As long as it is not ice when it is used, then yes.

“She’s fine with it.” Trisha answered, pressing her lips together when she thought about what Ed said. It didn’t really matter… She only half viewed her bees as her children, rather than… sort of magical companions. They weren’t human, and they couldn’t view her as anything but a Queen. They didn’t have the same concept of Motherhood. They probably wouldn’t recognise Cass at all.

“I guess… Fine… If that’s what you want, Cass. As long as you’re not going to try to wrangle some kind of joint custody agreement out of me.” Trisha managed to joke, pulling her lips up into a thin smile. It wasn’t like the current ones had any part of her either, beyond their magical connection. It was the time she spent with them that really mattered rather than any biological connection.

It felt a bit odd to be thinking that about bees, anyway.

”Course not, they’re all yours. I just want visitation… Hell yes! This is super exciting, getting to make baby bees with you! I can’t wait to tell Leon!”

”I don’t think that there’d be any chance of getting that kind of thing contractualized anyway. Kind of no legal proof that she’s contributing to the business in any sort of meaningful way, so-” Ed kept giggling, shaking her head as she pulled and stretched a long strip of plastic wrap out for this hunk of Cass meat.

”True, you’d destroy me in court! Though I think I’d be laughed out for claiming a bunch of bees were my babies.” Cass laughed, turning back to cooking before everything started burning.

“I think we’d have trouble from the whole growing in flesh thing.” Trisha shook her head. Some of the bees had finished with their fruit and were landing on her now, curious about the meat in her hands. She mentally shooed them away so Ed could easily take it to wrap up.

“You know, when Casey and I first started dating and I was thinking about my business… My brother gave me a hard time for having the bees on this property, since it’s in Casey’s name. He said there was nothing stopping Casey from taking them. I found it pretty funny, considering they’re literally attached to me. No court case is taking them away.”

”There is a magical law culture, but getting a judge in a court where it’s safe to trial something with the use of magic is like getting shit on by a bird that eats gold. Only real big major cities would even think of having something like that buried deep in the state building or something.” Ed replied, only vaguely familiar with the concept of magical law.

It was far more common for covens to sue nowadays, but then it was still rare. Why go through red tape and legal hoops? All sides had to agree with the greatest force, and so magical law was only as good as the peacekeepers who administered it.

”And then, obviously your brother’s going off the idea that humans are inherently greedy. Which Casey isn’t.” she finished confidently.

“I know that. It doesn’t matter if Ezra does or not, anyway… I already said my piece to him at Thanksgiving. He can continue believing the worst in humanity while I live happily with Casey.” Trisha managed to sound confident saying that, because she was beginning to let go of her need for approval from her siblings.

It was more difficult when it came to Ezra and her business, since it was something he specialised in. But she had contracts with Andrade now, and trusted Casey. Finding out her brother had magic just meant that… Well, if he caused problems, she didn’t have to stop Casey from solving it however he thought was best.

”Big business folk tend to think like that. It’s all about money and greed for ‘em… You don’t get that far without being an asshole! Unless you’re born into wealth… Which, uh, I ain’t saying anything against. You ain’t an asshole like your siblings, Trisha. God, if I coulda slapped Tansy at that dinner, I woulda…” Cass shook her head, getting a little mad just thinking back to it.

”Ezra too! Pretending he didn’t have magic like we couldn’t smell it… Family’s hard, huh?!”

”Ahhh, I only heard about that. By the time I was up there, well… Things were already crazy. I’m sorry to hear it went sour, Trisha. I know it sucks, but-”

”-That guy who was your brother? I wish you could’ve seen! I was under the table, and while you guys were talking, his feet were squirming! Like he wanted to start dancing!” Serenity interrupted Ed, floating by Trisha as she spoke.

”At the time I wished I could’ve tickled his feet. That would’ve been real funny with me and Uncle Jay both messin’ with him.”

”Oh, God, hearing you call him that makes me cringe.” Ed made a barfing face before holding out her hand for the big meat, which she began to deftly wrap up tight like a pork loin roast.

”You mean Junior? Fucking hell, he wasn’t much less of an asshole than Trisha’s siblings.” Cass shook her head.

Trisha let out a short laugh.
“We were trapped between assholes… My brother probably wanted to run, Serenity. It’s nice to know he feels enough emotion that it made him feel uncomfortable.”

”Dude’s got the best fucking poker face… Oh, you should probably get that down to a freezer, Ed! I’m pretty much done cooking, and you wanna be here, cause I’ll inhale most of it otherwise!”

”Right! Be right back, so, don’t go anywhere!”
Hidden 9 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Wednesday December 6th.
Home > Greyson’s Apartment (Prison)

Trisha managed to live through the ordeal of having her privacy invaded once again, another trial in the bag as night cast itself over St. Portwell. Casey managed to make it back again, and the usual couple of hours were spent as both did their best to help recharge one another. Emotionally, Casey was able to give enough that he felt like his time at home wasn’t a waste; a big factor in helping him stay attached to the moment rather than letting it all fade into the background.

However, because of his workload the next day being full of progress meetings and debriefings, he had the luxury of calling it an office day. Meaning, rather than losing another day, Trisha was able to crawl herself down to the office and into Casey’s lap. At least, when there wasn’t some super important call where Casey needed privacy.

But Trisha was exhausted. It’d been days since she’d properly slept, and she didn’t have the same supply of magical battlefield stimulants that Casey did. So, the vast majority of her time in his lap was spent snoozing comfortably like a cat. Occasionally, she’d fall asleep, then wake up on the little cot next to Casey’s desk, only to climb directly back into his arms to pass out again.

It was incredibly cute, and worth every moment that he had to deal with some awkward movement to avoid disturbing her. And that was the entirety of their day, with Casey almost completely ignoring the Sycamore business going on downstairs. Though, he didn’t exactly volunteer what was happening to Trisha. But, today was the day Andrade and Greyson both moved into the Cannery: Their prison for the coming days, until Dollhouse was finally finished.

Greyson asked for his own full apartment, so Linqian could stick around and he could invite anyone else he felt necessary. Word was that he’d already sent Britney away, though a deeper word sounded like she left of her own accord. Andrade, on the other hand, was shacked up with Theo. The two having little to no common interactions and no real connection seemed like a good thing in Casey’s mind, as Theo was more than capable of locking down a single Adept in close combat.

In response, the half-empty apartment building had been undergoing inundation as security force members piled into vacant apartments by the dozens. The lot outside was so full, cars were being parked along the front of the Cannery as well as down the vacant side once used for deliveries. Sardine packed, everything was blocked in by large vans set to move out at a moment’s notice.

Casey was able to oversee all this movement thanks to proximity, and kept a tight grip on the internal security of the building. Easy enough that Trisha pretty much missed it all. And so a hectic day became a quiet night, and the two spent their free time once again locked in the comfort of one another.

Only one person in the building was completely incapable of feeling comfort. And the next day was particularly bad for him. The condition, Lux Toxicity, had finally aggregated from his skull, though his cranium was left swollen and pink as the pressure didn’t let up. He could feel his brain turning into a cooked piece of meat with each day that passed, and it was getting harder to cope.

”I hate to say, but you being vulnerable isn’t going to be it. You have a better chance of faking it like you’re healthy.” Andrade commented from his seat across from Greyson’s, very much dressed in casual clothes unlike his typical attire.

”Fuck, sure. I’ll bust a jig for that prick, I’m sure he’ll try to beat me up just for the sake of it.” Greyson replied, his pulsing pink veins a dead giveaway as to the advanced condition.

”Look… Either way, this is going to be painful-”

”-And yet, you're not the one with your ticket punched sitting in line for the last ride.”

Greyson wasn’t doing well with the plan. It sounded like they were putting a lot of trust into Andrade without concrete evidence. Maybe in the world of the Temple, it was common to trust your family to do what needs to be done. But, with this? Greyson’s entire life had been spent understanding that family took care of you until they couldn’t anymore. Until you became a liability, and you had to be put down. Then, they’d do it. Because you’re family.

Casey and Leon spared Andrade over some silver words, and now Greyson was stuck dealing with him.

”I’m just as likely to buy a farm here! What, you think I’ll have some easy time because he’s Adjoined? This thing’s been conditioned for years to be the Snake’s vessel. It's just as dangerous on its own, but the fact that its bootstrapping his Black Lux is just making things worse.” Andrade pleaded, feeling Greyson bridling against the plan.

”For fuck’s sake, Man, I’m just sayin-” Greyson started to reply, but became held up as a spasm shot through his head and forced a shriek of pain out of his lungs.
”Ooooh, fuck! Linqian!? Linqiaaaaan!? I can’t fucking cope, please! Go ask the fucking lady at the fridge if I can have another dose, please!?” he begged, turning in his seat to try and see if Linqian was even sitting with them anymore.

He could barely move without the killer cocktail the Temple was feeding him, but the side effects were just as bad. They put him in a practical stupor, meaning business had to be done sober, or he was a babbling wreck.

”Ace, we’re not done yet, man!” Andrade protested, half looking at Linqian with pleading eyes to prevent the medication from being administered.

Linqian looked up from her phone to stare at them both tiredly from behind the glasses she'd taken to wearing. It was too much effort to bother with her contacts with everything that was happening… or makeup and nice clothes. She wasn't fond of many people seeing her like this, but she was dealing with a lot. That kinda shit fell to the wayside.

She hadn't walked out yet, but was close to it. The only reason she really hadn't was because like Greyson, she didn't trust Andrade. Why would she? He wasn't someone she had any emotional connection to beyond the fact that he'd been part of what killed her brother.

But this plan was also all they had. If it didn't work out, they all died. But if they didn't try, they also all died. So she tolerated him for the plan.

Whatever happened, Greyson himself was going to die. So she did her best to tolerate more from him. She was even willing to play live-in nurse, since she'd sent away the one person who was actually happy to do it. There was no way she was risking Henri being here if it didn't all work out.

”I’ll get it.” She stood up, phone shoved in her sweater pocket. She didn't go right for the door, moving over to Greyson and leaning down towards him.
”But I'm not giving it to you until you're done… Unless you want me to fucking die with the rest of the city? Cause you couldn't fucking tolerate a bit more pain?”

She wasn't above guilt tripping. She didn't give him a chance to respond as she quickly slipped out the door, leaving it ajar behind her. A moment of peace while she went to get another dose… Fucking hell.

But she barely got far before she bumped into someone else she probably should've expected to see. After all, she was dating the Temple's head of security or whatever the fuck he was.

Trisha was shocked to see Linqian when she was on her way to see Cass. Casey hadn't told her anything about her being in the building… Then again, she'd spent most of yesterday sleeping. It was the only reason she felt up for leaving the house today. She still wasn't back to normal, but the extra energy let her shower and drag herself out to at least have company. Spending the day hanging out in Cass' apartment, even if she was deep in coding, was better than being alone, at least.

She just wasn't mentally prepared to bump into another Sycamore member. There was a moment of awkward silence, before Linqian broke it.

”Oh thank fuck, someone else with a low tolerance for bullshit- look, you gotta moment? Help me out, please?” It wasn't really possible for Linqian to look pleading, but she at least didn't look as pissy as she normally did around Trisha.

Not that Trisha wanted to be around her, or anyone that wasn't the few she was comfortable with, more than possible.
“What is it?"

”Just go in there, stare at Greyson judgmentally so he stops fucking whining.” Linqian pointed to the ajar door, before moving forward to go past Trisha. She leaned down to whisper to her.
”I don't fucking like leaving him alone with that fucking Temple traitor… You know what's on the line, right?”

Trisha did, though she didn't particularly want to deal with Greyson and Andrade. But she wanted to live more than she didn't want to tolerate it… and she wanted to be useful. Casey was working so hard right now to sort everything out, she could do this little bit. Especially since it had been her coven… So she nodded.

”Thank fuck. Just ten fucking minutes or whatever.” Linqian didn't give her any opportunity to back down before she was off towards the elevator.

Leaving Trisha to reluctantly push open the door herself. She shuffled in, gaze catching Andrade first. She stared at him with practically empty eyes, moving to stand with a good distance between them. While she was feeling alright enough to be out, the depressive episode was still at the forefront. She was dressed comfortably in sweats, with her hair braided down her back in the hopes to keep it neat for a bit longer. Her expression was fairly blank, erring towards grumpy.

“Linqian asked me to come in to- Fuck." She broke out of her monotonous delivery as she looked over at Greyson, with his large head and constant pink glow.
“Cass wasn't joking about the glowing pink bobblehead thing… You look awful."

Greyson and Andrade had been bickering back and forth when Trisha made her way in and popped the bubble of conversation to two slightly shocked faces. Greyson, for once, couldn’t muster up a hateful thing to say in return. Frankly, he didn’t want to see Trisha anymore than she probably wanted to see him. She was one of the last people he was doing this for. Came after everyone else on planet Earth just about.

But Andrade was far more hopeful in expression, and rose up from the couch to greet Trisha. He was underdressed, much like everyone else in this domestic setting, in some sweatpants and a white tee. Greyson was more covered up by a blanket, but seemed to be wearing some kind of tracksuit underneath. Gaudy as anything else he owned.

”Hey… I’ve asked Casey if I could come up, but… Obviously, that’s not such a good idea right now. I understand it. I’ve just wanted to talk to you about the honey, and about the business. In case anything happens, I want our agreement covered for you. So you don’t feel as though you’ve been screwed over.” Andrade admitted, not exactly loving the idea of writing his last will and testament at this stage in his life.

”The… Honey’s good, Trish.” Greyson quietly spoke, doing his best not to make eye contact with Trisha.

Trisha shifted back on one foot as Andrade got up, not wanting him to try come any closer to her. Casey trusted that he was on their side, but it was harder for Trisha to feel the same way. She trusted Casey's judgment… but that didn't mean she trusted Andrade. It wouldn't have been such a problem if she hadn't been starting to actually like and trust him.

But business was business. They had a contract.

“It’s not been a good time… but we should get something in writing. A contract amendment, I guess. So I'm not screwed over financially as well." She said as evenly as she could, the other ways she felt screwed over going unsaid.
“I have time today. We can get it sorted while I'm out."

Then it was one less thing to worry about. Not that she'd felt particularly worried, because she was too busy feeling like everything was pointless and just assuming it would all collapse.

Her gaze shifted to Greyson, though she didn't quite look at him either. It was difficult to, when he was literally glowing.
“Thanks. I'm surprised Andrade hasn't forced so much on you that you're sick of it… I guess supply’s a bit limited at the moment. At least, uh… You can enjoy something like that still?"

”Enjoy’s a strong fucking word for it. But, yeah, my tastebuds work.” Greyson amended Trisha’s statement, coughing a little before continuing.

”So? Linqian told you that Asshole and Shithole were here, and that you should torture us? Feel free. Last thing I wanna do is sit and listen to this guy go on and on about this shit. The guy who may die talking to the guy who will certainly die about whether or not they can minimize the risk involved is just bullshit at this point.” he snapped the end like a whip, a frustrated stare heading straight for Andrade.

In return, Andrade’s face became sullen and almost frustrated.
”Your situation is the only reason any of us have a chance. I’m just asking you to take my future into consideration! There’s penance for people, Greyson, I’ve seen it! This moment is yours! But, mine? Mine comes later, I pray to God!” he pleaded.

Greyson’s bulbous head tilted slightly to frown at Trisha.

”We’ve been caught in this circle almost an hour now. I’m losing my fuckin’ mind!” Greyson gritted through his teeth.

Trisha folded her arms, staring at them both. When she came in she hadn't expected to end up involved in their argument. No wonder Linqian wanted out for some peace. Trisha had never been on good terms with Greyson- and their last meeting had been the opposite of good. He'd also betrayed them as much as Andrade had… but at least he hadn't hidden that he was a scumbag. It wasn't the only thing that made her slightly inclined to trust him.

That and the fact he was dying.

“Did you give any consideration to all the murdered Sycamore members? At least he-" She half raised a hand from her folded arms to point at Greyson while looking at Andrade.
“- Helped out of some sick, petty want for revenge. I don't see why he has to consider your life at all. He's already dying. He's not going to be there to see whatever ‘penance’ you're talking about."

Perhaps it was surprising that she agreed with Greyson where she rarely did. She wasn't exactly at his side… but even she could recognise he was going to die so the rest of them could live. Or, going to die in a specific way to enable that.

“Also, Linqian sent me in here because she doesn't trust Andrade. I'm not in the mood to be around you both just to torture you."

Andrade couldn’t exactly say much in response to a question like that. Honesty? Was that the best course? He could honestly refrain from making a bigger fool out of himself, maybe…

”Jesus Christ, what a cold room to be in.” Andrade said calmly, almost introspectively. Clearly he was a dead man walking too…
”Y’know, you both may feel a certain way, but Casey and Leon won’t just leave me hanging in the breeze. I’ll get to make up for what I’ve done wrong, and that’s the bottom line. If you don’t want to wear the anchor, then don’t wear the anchor Greyson. I can’t make you.”

Greyson scoffed before a single hand shot up and gripped at his head with a grimacing moan.
”Fuck… This guy’s gonna kill me before we have the chance to put the plan into action. Every little thing has been about making up for wrongs. Like I wanna hear about making up for things at this point?”

It wasn't something Trisha cared much for either. At least, not before Casey… once someone truly wronged her, that was it. It was why her relationship with her ex-covenmates was so bad. They hurt her, and then she resented them forever. She just wasn't quite psychopathic enough to turn to murder over it. As for Andrade… she wouldn't stop Casey from doing whatever he wanted there. If Casey wanted to save him from possible death, that was fine. She could prioritise his wants over her own.

But the good opinion she'd had of Andrade was never coming back.

“It’s a big part of their religion. They have a whole system of penance for Aberrations who act out." Trisha shrugged one shoulder. While she'd calmed down a bit on her Temple distaste thanks to her love for Casey- or more accurately, the actual religion behind it- it didn't mean she had positive views of it.

“What Casey and Leon do is up to them. I'm not going to influence Casey… but I'm not going to change how I feel either." She spoke calmly, not particularly worked up about all of this. Not externally, at least. Not right now.

She even managed a half smile towards Greyson.
“You ‘sacrificing’ yourself is probably enough to make up for everything, right? Not that I have much of a say. I'm alive, and I didn't lose anyone. So… you won’t hear more about it from me. Not that I imagine you want to hear much of anything from me."

”Yet people look at this glaring parallel and say that I’m the wrong one? He dies, and everyone remembers him for at least doing this one last thing right. Me? Years spent doing anything I could to make sure my dreams came true, ruined by a choice I made to try and stick with a man who I thought loved me? So, I die, and it’s whatever?

Andrade actually had tears in his eyes, an amazing emotion to see from someone who was usually so upbeat and happy. He was positively ready to weep with frustration. It wasn’t like Greyson couldn’t empathize…

”Jesus Christ! Alright! Sure, tell me there’s an option where I get a couple extra days to live after, then tell me it’ll be better if I don’t take that? He’s going to punch me to fucking death. You’re consigning me to inhumanity, a brutal execution once he realizes what’s happening. His hands around my neck. My eyes bulged out and exploding under the pressure.”

It also didn’t mean he was above throwing everything right back in Andrade’s face.

”Which you’ll happily negate! I know exactly what’s going to happen. Same thing as any good Pink Adept before they die.”

”What’s that, if you’re so fucking smart!?”

”Nirvana! You fuckers… You catalyze your brain, stretch an instant into a hundred years. Experience your own happy ending before everything fades to black, intrinsically timing your death in a big comfy bed surrounded by your family? I’ve heard! I’ve heard and I’ve seen it in the Apparitions who devour those moments!”

The idea wasn’t hard to imagine, but the inner workings of it were a magical nightmare. There was just one problem. And Greyson listed forward in his chair, bulbous head bobbing slightly like a fish.

”Who on Earth would be so base as to settle with that ending? Manufactured? The good ending is earned, and you’ll have the chance to get there. One day, when you’ve got Grandkids of your own, and you die in that big comfy bed surrounded by your loving family and your millions built on stacks of blood money from your younger days.” Greyson grinned, and revealed nearly-clear pink teeth with it.

Andrade frowned, sighed, and turned his head back to Trisha.
”And yet I still have to act like I’m gonna die. And so, by law, I have to link you into this fucking emergency will.”

”Be happy you ain’t getting anything from me, Trish. This list has been a bitch to put together-” Greyson finished before starting to hack up a lung again.

Trisha listened to everything they said with a slightly glazed look in her eyes, hearing it all but still zoning out. She could really understand why Linqian had left… but she also hoped she'd come back soon so she could fuck off. But then they were talking to her again instead of bickering about the best way to live or die.

“If you left me something, I'd probably die of shock." She laughed slightly, a hollow sound more than anything. She should probably feel a bit more sympathy towards Greyson in his current state… But it was difficult when he'd been so much of an asshole the whole time she knew him.

She looked back at Andrade.
“If it's easier, just don't. I have enough money. You have no actual shares in my business… And if it fails because I lose my single customer, I'll figure something out." It was a rich person solution, but only one she'd offered when depressed as she was. Her honey business was the first time she was doing something for herself and actually making something of herself. She wanted it to work, but her expectations right now were that it wouldn’t. It didn't help that one of the two people who'd so vehemently supported it turned out to be part of the plot to kill her and her coven.

“Surely we should all be drafting emergency wills, anyway. If you both fail, we all die too." She shrugged. Not that it was something she needed to worry about. Her immediate assets, maybe, but there was already something built into the fund she got money out of every month. It went back to the family.

But that aside, there was one thing she was curious about. Didn't care about particularly, but she may as well ask.

“I’m surprised you're not just leaving everything to Britney, Greyson. From all I've heard, I'd expect you to." Coven gossip still travelled, but Trisha never got the full picture. Only bits and pieces, mainly from a pipeline of Leon to Cass to her. At least now Casey was telling her important information.

Greyson sighed.
”Someome in my line of work leaves behind some pretty toxic assets. All I left Britney was a letter telling her where all the money I was keeping for retirement is buried. She's on her way to the Caribbean, my folks will protect her until she has the baby.” he casually dropped the idea that she was carrying his baby.

”Turns out, it's a lot easier for me to hand out assets under the table. I’m having the hardest time trying to get people in action who won’t just rape my corpse for the valuables. The fuckin’ plantation, the travel company, the accounts in the Isle of Man that my banker is suddenly telling me dont exist anymore.” He went on and on about the complex web of legal and illegal business ventures he was part of.

”Has Casey uh… Said anything to you about what comes after, Trisha? Obviously, there’ll be a period between now and this… Fucking family rebellion.” Andrade asked shyly, knowing his place and not wanting to rock the boat back onto himself.

“I know some of it.” Trisha said, though she wasn’t really sure if she did. What came after? Beyond preparing for the rebellion? Casey barely had time to tell her about what was going on now.
“I assumed preparation for that rebellion. Is there anything else big that comes after?”

Then she glanced at Greyson, unable to hold back the comment in the back of her mind. She felt she was owed it after listening to him complain about his fucking business shit for a whole few seconds.
“You got Britney pregnant? Poor woman…”

”Yeah, and she's one of the only women who never treated the situation like that. She loves me. And she’s gonna love that kid too. And she’ll make it better than I ever was, because she knows me.” Greyson gave Trisha his full attention as he defended his position.

But Andrade’s concerns were just as clear.

”Yes! We have lives to carry on with! Opportunities! Listen, I understand that you’re all gonna have a hard time dealing with me, but… Come on! Others have done worse, y’know? This little hiccup won’t exclude us from doing business, will it?” he asked, practically shaking.

Greyson laughed aloud.

”Dude, what the fuck have they been telling you in private?”

”N-nothing! Nothing! It’s just… This type of thing wouldn’t be happening if Lynette was the one handling it. She would’ve just killed me… So, I’m having a hard time dealing with the chance that I may make it out of this and have more life to go.” Andrade replied.

”Oh, there he fucking goes again, talking to a dead guy about how excited he is to have a nice, long life. Putz.” Greyson shook his head again before tilting it and groaning.

“I can see why Linqian walked out if you keep going around like this. It’s fucking annoying.” Trisha intoned, glancing towards the door and frowning. Surely she could just leave. Andrade probably wouldn’t kill Greyson. But… she should do something. Then she could tell Casey she was sort of involved! She didn’t even end up with a covenmate trying to hurt her- not that Greyson was in a position where he could right now.

She didn’t have much sympathy for either, but it would always err slightly towards the asshole who was dying.
“And yeah, sure, I’m sure Britney will do a great job. She’s more sensible than a lot of Sycamore.”

Then her gaze moved back to Andrade, sharp and almost devoid of emotion.
“We can still do business. But that’s it. A purely business relationship. If Casey wants something close to what you had before after all this, that’s his choice. But my trust doesn’t just come back after it’s been broken… Even if you think others have done worse.”

”This… None of this changes my value. I’m not asking you to trust me, Trisha. The opposite. I’m asking you to take advantage. My knowledge doesn’t evaporate just because you don’t trust me. But my desire to please? My willingness to accomodate? My need to be something for someone… Those are real!!” Andrade pressed, causing Greyson to scoff.

“Sure, as long as there’s the right legal contracts in place to keep me protected.” Trisha responded evenly. For a moment, she channeled Ezra as best as she could- which wasn’t particularly well, when she was still learning about business. But when things were in writing, there was a paper trail she could use if Andrade decided those feelings weren’t enough.

“I’ll take advantage, because it’s useful to me. I’m not going to trust any of those emotions… And I certainly don’t want you to be anything for me that doesn’t aid my business. Even then… I’m not going to be dependent on someone else for it.”

Andrade’s most basic anxieties were being plucked like strings every single day. Every time Casey made his way there was another browbeating session. And now Trisha was here doing it too. Shame. Utter shame consumed him, and he couldn’t do anything else besides shake his head and shrink into himself as he contemplated if this was any better than dealing with Luis.

It was, of course. These people put him up in an apartment, gave him a bed, let him keep cooking and in contact with his restaurant management so that none of his external revenue sources were interrupted. Luis probably would’ve absorbed him wholesale. Life wouldn’t exist for him anymore.

This was still the right choice, no matter how unsure he felt.

Greyson noticed immediately, and mustered up enough Lux to bash Andrade’s emotional field with.

”Oh thank God, he’s down for the fucking count. Are we done!? I’ll wear the fucking anchor for you.” he snapped at Andrade.

Andrade didn’t speak, replying only in a solemn nod.

”Thank fuck. Now, where’s Linqian with that fucking cocktail?” he practically begged.

“Fuck if I know.” Trisha responded, even though it felt like Greyson was asking God or something rather than either of them in the room. She sighed, feeling like she couldn’t leave until the other woman was back.

A single bee crawled out from underneath her sweater before buzzing off out of the ajar door. She closed her eyes, following the bee with a pheromonal thread. It was a practice for her, really. She couldn’t see through it, but she could communicate with the bee and roughly sense what it was seeing.

Enough to find a vague human shape smoking outside. The smoke was particularly clear as the bee accidentally flew through it before beginning to circle the person’s head. There was the slightest hint of Trisha’s pheromones on her… The kind that barely lingered after she brushed past people, as she was always giving them off. The bee started buzzing louder and more insistently around probably Linqian’s head.

“Outside smoking. Hopefully the bee will annoy her enough… Then you can get whatever your cocktail is, and I can leave.”

”Fuck! Y’know Cass? Or Theo? Maybe, maybe Theo will do it! Let her smoke, please… God… Its so fucking miserable. I should… Just let her go too, man! Fuck!” Greyson spazzed, both hands lifting to cup his face and drag downward in frustration.

”Stop! Stop, just, pull the bee off. Fucking… Don’t force yourself to be here. Nobody needs to fucking see me like this, God damn everything…”

“Too late." Trisha intoned, meaning both the bee and anyone seeing him like that. Though the mention of Cass… She supposed it made sense. Cass had been at the raid, and she had first hand experience with Luxal poisoning- just hers wasn't killing her.
“Is Cass helping out too? You know… if I go and get her, then I'll be stuck here for even longer. Probably even after Linqian gets back."

She sighed, a sliver of pity managing to wriggle its way through the pit of depressive apathy that was clinging to her.
“I know it's been years, but I think I know Linqian well enough to know you couldn't force her to stay- or leave- anywhere she didn't want to be. But I can go and get Cass if you'd rather."

”She’s down the hall… Linqian likes her. Sometimes she’ll come and sit if Lin’s taking a break. It's about convenience, more than she’s stuck helping or anything… Don’t get the wrong idea.” he explained.

”But, she’s nice. Funny. You managed to make better friends somewhere else. Makes me think that maybe there’s something wrong with this city, rather than there being something wrong with you…”

“Oh, there's plenty wrong with me." Trisha admitted, without much hesitation for once. It was the mood she was in, and the fact he was dying anyway. What would he do with that? Rub it in her face?

She pulled out her phone, sending a quick message to Cass to come here- not because she wanted to be around longer, but because Cass had told her to message when she was outside in the first place. Because she ‘wouldn’t hear a knock on the door over her music' like she didn't have super senses. Easier to just message in the first place.

“I’m just lucky I found people who tolerate it elsewhere. When you actually think about it, it isn't surprising the way things went. We were all fucked up fighting the Stygian Snake." She spoke while staring at her phone, getting a fairly instant ‘ok hand' emoji response from Cass.
“Takes someone like Cass to deal with it. Seems every Sycamore member that meets her likes her."

”Well, yeah you get fucked up when the guy available to fix shit like that is a guy nobody likes or trusts. I’m not saying it’s my fault half of you are walking around with untreated PTSD, but maybe things would’ve come out a bit different if we all played a little nicer. Not that we can blame anyone, really. None of our brains were fully developed. Nobody, not even the elders. Fucking nineteen, twenty. No less a child than one is at sixteen. We were bound to be fucked over.” Greyson cleared his throat, following it with another coughing fit.

”I never would’ve expected you to have anything done about it anyway. It would’ve had to have been a decision others made on your behalf. There was a weird dynamic when it came to “Froshies”. How people like Leon and the other Grads referred to you guys, the youngest members. Plenty of decisions got made without you guys having much say. We figured we couldn’t trust the judgement. But, uh, obviously that left a big group of people who are all fucked up.” he continued to admit.

Trisha's brow furrowed, as a few things began to click into place for her. It explained how a lot of fights had been set up. There were times when the groups were a mix of ages, others when they seemed to be forced together. But she'd never had a say. Sometimes she'd been sent places that had ended up far worse than she was told they'd be. And it was always ‘unexpected.’

“I wouldn't let anyone use magic to fix me, no matter how much I liked them or how much someone else insisted." Trisha shook her head, frowning.
“I always suspected something like that was happening. Old enough to fight and die, but not old enough to have a say. Typical coven bullshit. Like I didn't see enough people die, and kill enough, to be more mature than most fourteen year olds… Leon still treats me like that, sometimes. No wonder if so many decisions were made for us."

”Hey, don’t act like I got the golden spoon. Maybe I earned a bit of the ire I got, but after a while it was a total principle that I got overruled by just about anyone. Eventually, I got relegated to fucking piggybank. Greyson scowled.

”And I don’t really get that either. Why wouldn’t you let someone fix you up? Leon did! And he’s, I’d say, much improved despite whatever small problems he may still cause. I’m not saying you can’t do it yourself, but why bother?” he asked, knowing full well exactly what a hypocrite he was in asking a question like that.

“Oh, like you'd willingly let someone else in your brain without control." Trisha rolled her eyes, tone more blunt than it was snappy.
“I don't trust it. I don't trust anyone enough to let them in like that, and I certainly don't want to risk something I don't want touched being changed. I could never trust it. A me without any of my problems wouldn't be me at all."

Her mind was so closely guarded, she barely opened up by choice nevermind letting someone in like that. Casey was the most she could tolerate with his White Lux… getting things fixed like that felt like cheating, anyway.

“And I'm especially distrustful of mind magic after the Snake that fucked with our minds."

”And all under the Dove suffer your prejudice duly. Shame.” Greyson half smiled, taking a breath in and holding it for a moment.

”You haven’t even done it to yourself, Greyson.” Andrade piped up slightly, eyes turning up from the notepad he was writing in.

”What? Sure I did. Just because I didn’t see every red flag as a negative thing, doesn’t mean I didn’t give myself plenty of work. You don’t see me getting jumpy and fucking bubbling up like the rest of these apes when trouble comes. I act. And that’s specifically because I’m capable of scrubbing the fear out of myself. Was…” Greyson replied with a bit of sadness in his voice, hand coming up to gently rub the painful pink bulge in his skull.

”Fuck of a way to go, I guess.”

“Yeah, most people manage to not fuck their brain with their own magic." Trisha intoned.
“But I'm perfectly capable of acting. I killed an assassin just weeks ago, and-"

But she was cut off by the door opening, two possible medication administrators walking in.

Cass had maybe been listening in just a little bit. She couldn't help it, she was just so proud of Trisha for holding a conversation with someone else from her coven! But she couldn't really keep it up when Linqian appeared at the other end of the corridor.

"Looks like I ain't even needed! Unless you want me to administer it anyway?! It's good practice for when I gotta do shit for myself!" Cass immediately filled the space with noise, beelining for Trisha and slinging and arm around her shoulders. Trisha leaned away, but didn't push her off.

”Are you going to deal with him after, when he starts fucking sobbing about whatever he's sad about now?” Linqian asked back, the smell of smoke still lingering on her clothes as she moved towards Greyson with the one thing relieving his pain in hand.

"Nope! I gotta date with my girl! He's all yours today! We can stick around a bit, though!"

”Then I got it.” Linqian looked over at Andrade, before staring down at Greyson. While she looked tired, and had the same resting bitch face as normal, her eyes did soften slightly.
”Is all of the actual serious shit done? I wasn't joking about not giving it to you till then.”

”It’s done. I’ll play ball with him, if it gets all this shit to fade away for a few more hours. I just wanna be with you.” Greyson looked back up at Linqian almost pathetically.

Andrade looked up at Linqian like a guilty party before averting to Trisha.

”That… Kind of reassures me that I’ll be around. So, maybe we can avoid the painful shit, Trish. If it all goes well without me, just get in touch with Bruno Coburg. He’s the one in charge of running my shit: He’ll hash out a new supplier deal with you, so long as the restaurants don’t suddenly collapse.” Andrade nodded, knowing that he didn’t want to keep two perfectly healthy people trapped in this mire that he was stuck in.

Trisha nodded in return.
“I will, if it works out that way. I'm trying not to assume things will work out one way or another." Though she was struggling not to just think there was little chance of whatever they had planned working. The negative spiral of hopelessness, not exactly helped by the state things were in here.

Linqian put her free hand on Greyson's shoulder, very gently rubbing it.
”Alright, alright, I'll give it to you in a moment…” She looked away from him for a moment to address everyone else.
”You guys should all leave, better we get some peace while we still fucking can.”

"Oh yeah, I ain't gonna third- or fifth- wheel you guys getting your time! But if you need anything, y'know I'm just along the corridor. Food, a break, whatever! I'm sure Trisha won't mind." Cass grinned, half shuffling with Trisha towards the door.

Not that Trisha needed much encouragement. She did stare at Greyson and Linqian for a moment, before saying something she wouldn't have said before all of this. Her hands clasped together, fiddling with her engagement ring.
“Thank you. For what you're both doing… I know it isn't for me, or even all of Sycamore, but it'll still save the people I care about."

Greyson stopped shuffling out of his seat to stare up at Trisha with both eyes. He furrowed what he could of his brow.

”Nobody’s ever sorry until it’s too late. I’m-” he cut himself off, huffing.
”-you know. Sorry. For treating you poorly, for… For that time I hit on you. That was really scummy too. And that time I tried to blackmail you and Jason Fornier. And, y’know, the trashcan thing. Everything I did. And it’s too late, so… Spit when you think of me.” he tried to put on a brave face despite the globby pink tears that were forming around his eyes and starting to cloud his vision with their viscous clinging.

It was true that nobody was ever sorry until it was too late… Trisha knew Greyson never would've apologised if he wasn't dying like this. Not to her, at least. Dealing with your own mortality tends to make most people reflect a bit… but he was right that it was too late. Probably would have been even if he was going to live.

“I don't forgive you for those things. But I'm not going to spit when I think of you." She said, trying her best to sound calm rather than pissy and petty. Especially since Cass was there.
“Instead I'm going to try not to think of you at all. I'm going to live a happy life… I'll get married to my fiance, have children with him, and one day happily die surrounded by them and their children. And I won't have the time to think about the people who hurt me anymore."

”Fuck, did you really have to say all that shit right now, Trisha? Now he's gonna start sobbing like a fucking baby.” Linqian groaned. But like normal for her, her actions were contrary to her words. She leant down to help him get out of his seat, one arm slipping around his back.

But he didn’t start blubbering. Rather, Greyson held Linqian tight as he made it up to his wobbly legs. And, amazingly, a smile cracked his lips fully for a second time today.

”Oh… You’ll think of me. he grinned, shaking his head before nodding with confidence.
”When you’re shitting out a thirteen pound Richoux brat. You’ll see this moment, and you’ll see my smug grin. And you’ll spit on the hospital floor. And I’ll see, and I’ll laugh. And it’ll be the only real moment of friendship we ever have.”

Maybe he was delusional. Maybe he was right. Or, maybe he was fishing for the setup from the beginning. Leaving an impression that’ll last in whoever has to deal with him. Lynn Serenelight had taken him through all of the possible endings, every single scenario they imagined from the influence of White Lux.
And this had been his least-favored outcome. There was one where he’d lived to see the aftermath, only to die by Covenmate a few days later.

But nothing good involved him directly. This sacrifice was the last thing he could do where people may remember his good, rather than everything else. He couldn’t let that happen. He needed as many people to believe and remember him as possible…

Because he didn’t intend on this life being the end. He’d see his son grow. He’d see sunrises. He’d make love again. But, nobody needed to know what he and Andrade discussed in the small, quiet hours. About the magic necessary to transform the human soul into something more…

”Cass? Send Lee over when he gets home please. Time doesn’t matter, if I’m asleep he’ll be able to talk to Andrade… Thank you in advance.”

"You're asking a lot of me here, dude, y'know how little time I get with him?" Cass groaned jokingly, before smiling.
"I'll send him round, don't worry!"

Trisha stared at Greyson, before letting out a slight laugh.
“If I see your smug grin while giving birth, I think I'll throw up before I spit. But sure. If that happens, I guess it's one moment we'll… share."

She shook her head, moving towards the door. It wasn't something she could imagine… but she still could barely imagine the eventual future where she had a child with Casey. Even though it was what she wanted, it seemed so far away.
“If you do end up some kind of ghost, please don't bother visiting me."

”Don’t curse me to a jealous haunting.” Linqian grumbled, pretty much wholly supporting Greyson. It was easier after Cass had taught her a handy little, subtle strength spell that she actually understood.

”Go fucking enjoy your girls date or whatever, I gotta get this future ghost creep to bed and drugged outta his mind.”

”Geeze, I want to spend time with you, you want me sedated? Christ…” Greyson retorted, starting his slow shuffle toward the bedroom the two shared.

There was a lot Andrade still wanted to say. Stuff he wanted to get cleared up. It wasn’t going to happen here, most likely.

”It’s uh… Just about some logistical problems, Cass, it probably won’t take more than twenty minutes. He’s gotta move some physical assets, and he's curious about whether or not Leon will burn the cash to get them sent where they need to go.” he tried to be informative and helpful.

”Fucking hell, you're the one that wanted fucking sedated. My company won't be enough in five minutes and you'll start fucking whining again!” Linqian bickered back, as if they were already in private rather than making the slow journey towards it. Not that she particularly cared, though.

"Oh whatever it is ain't a problem! I ain't so clingy I can't deal with less time with Leon!" Cass managed to respond around half laughing at the old married couple act going on in front of her.
"Twenty minutes, an hour… I'm a patient gal, just means less sleep for him."

Trisha side-eyed Cass. She was now hovering at the door, clearly wanting to leave but feeling trapped by each conversation that started.
“I’ve never heard anyone describe you as patient, Cass."

"Eh well… Willing to fill the time with other shit waiting then!"
[Hr]
[right]Home.[/right]
Trisha spent the rest of the day at Cass', swapping between watching shit together and just chilling in the same space. She didn't leave until it was fairly late, when Cass got a text from Leon saying he was heading back. While the two of them had been on alright terms recently, Trisha had already filled her capacity of seeing people for the day… she didn't exactly want to interrupt their time either.

So she went back up to her own house, choosing to sit in the main room on her phone rather than falling back into the soft grasp of the couch she'd spent so many days rotting in. Tomorrow she'd probably be back there, as her exhaustion would come back, but today she felt at least functional.

When she got a text from him that he was heading back, one of a few that day- he seemed to message whenever he could, but there was rarely time for a conversation or response to hers- she moved from where she'd been sitting towards the fridge. It was still filled with food Cass had made, and she pulled out one of the big tubs of macaroni cheese left. Cass had given her instructions on how to cook it to taste almost as good as it was fresh… and she was fairly confident she wouldn't fuck that up. It wasn't actual cooking.

Just putting the oven at the right temperature, grating a bit more cheese to sprinkle over the top, and putting it in. She set a timer for the exact time Cass had given her. It should be ready just after Casey got home. She didn't really want to eat herself, but she knew she probably should. She'd had bits and pieces forced on her throughout the day by Cass, but she was trying her best to have something when Casey got home and ate.

She pulled out a tomato based pasta dish Cass had also made, scooping a small portion of it into another container and putting that in the oven. The same amount of time as the macaroni cheese would probably be fine… If it burnt she'd just pick out the bits that were fine.

With food in the oven, the most she could do cooking wise, Trisha perched on one of the chairs at the breakfast bar. She stared at the timer on her phone as she waited, watching the minutes slowly tick down.

It took a while longer than she probably anticipated. He hadn’t exactly written anything more than “soon”, so fifteen minutes turned into twenty five. Then another ten. The mac and cheese was long hated up and turned off by the time he made it through the door almost an hour later. He’d clearly been doing things. Not just walking around, or supervising something.

Not to mention, he was dressed for work. The scent of blood and death clung to him, the odd sulfur smell made by the gas blowing off from spent cartridges. But he didn’t look awful. He wasn’t weeping or sullen. Only, his eyes were like big, blue saucers in his head. Two disks of cobalt rolling around in their skull fixtures.

He could see her through the slit windows in the actual door, and saw her standing up to greet him, which caused him to slump a bunch of gear on the floor by the door. His plate carrier unbuckled, shuffling itself off of him like a living creature to hit the floor with a loud thud.
As he sauntered forward a little more, his arms opened wide for Trisha. He didn’t say anything, expecting she’d fill the gap without much prompting.

Trisha immediately moved forward and into his arms, hugging him silently for a moment before pulling her head back to look up at him. She was a little sad that her plan to have dinner hot and ready for him getting back hadn't worked out, but it was fine. He'd clearly been busy… her nose wrinkled slightly, though the smell didn't actually bother her. Not enough for her to stop hugging so close to him, at least. She'd probably smelt much worse yesterday, anyway.

“Welcome home… I heated up some mac and cheese for you, but it's probably already cold. What… happened to your eyes?" She couldn't help but ask about the obvious. It was hard to miss how blown up they were, like he'd gone through some strange photo filter. Magic use, she assumed.

He hadn’t caught himself in the mirror, but he knew the Glass was still working. Everything had a crispy, crunchy background to it, like he was trapped in a bag of potato chips and sand. This would probably be an argument… But Casey was serious about making sure that what Trisha wanted became real. And if she wanted constant honesty, and to not be left out, fine. She’d hear.

”A combat stimulant. Glass. The more it gets used, the more Lux floods the iris and other photoreceptors in the eyes. It dilates the pupils, inflates the irises, but gives you a secondary channeling source that doesn’t cause Lux Toxin. It's just hard to see in bright lights.” he explained the odd side effect, totally skipping over the fact that the main reaction was something similar to Cocaine or Methamphetamine.

”Found out Dollhouse was moving some physical money through mundane means. Spent the last six hours in one of their transport facilities…” he rubbed her shoulder and back as he hugged her, but patted her off so he could move for his backpack.

He could obviously smell the mac and cheese. It was delicious, and he wanted some, but he was excited to show her what he brought regardless.

”Check this shit out.”

From his satchel, he carefully slid an intricate looking glass sphere from its place and held it up in one hand. It was roughly the size of a volleyball, and seemed to have some kind of liquid within.

”The experts are telling me this is a fucking egg.

Trisha furrowed her brow, shuffling after him. She wasn't particularly happy about the whole drug use thing, but he'd already moved past it… if she brought it back up she'd just look like she was being difficult. They only had so much time together. They could talk about it later. As long it was just being used for this period… or combat where needed… she felt it was pretty reasonable for her to be worried about these things. Anything that might be addictive!

But she wanted tonight to be as nice as it could be. So she managed to not say anything, eyes narrowing as she stared at the sphere.

“An… egg? Really? From what? A massive glass chicken?" The more she stared at it, the less she saw how it was an egg. There certainly didn't look like there was some embryo growing inside it. Unless it was in the liquid… But wouldn't it be obvious?

”Well, uh… How are you feeling? Do you think you could see something scary?” he asked her very simply, putting one hand around her shoulders and the other on top of the sphere.

Trisha wasn't entirely sure, because it depended on what scary entailed. Most scary things didn't actually bother her, because she'd seen worse. But if it was a magical egg…
“That depends… is it related to the Stygian Snake?"

She leaned towards him, lips pressing together as she stared at the egg. She was doing better today. She'd managed to sleep yesterday without nightmares. Only because Casey was there, but he was here now too.
“Actually, I'm feeling a bit better so… I think I can handle it."

Casey nodded, then knocked on the counter, causing the lights in the immediate area to fade away. Yet, the lights seemed to still exist within the egg, trapped and reflected inside until it all slowly faded. As it did, something brushed up against the sheer side of the interior. Something scaley, and long.

The deep, billowing cloud of shadow inside… The coils. The little snake’s head finally bumped against the glass, showing itself fully. Now, Trisha would’ve easily recognized the form of the Stygian Snake. It was something crossed between a viper and a constrictor, having massive spiky horns and a deep black coloration with massive gold and amber eyes.

This wasn’t that. It was… Green? Maybe green in the darkness, some stray light catching it and shimmering off its scales. Its eyes were milky, periwinkle in color, with deep white pupil slits staring up from the shadows. Its little tongue flicked out.

”I don’t suppose you ever got to see those ancient scrolls about the Snake? About how it devoured its clutch and spat them out into the Void? They’re telling me this one is called the Gloomserpent. One of the long lost clutch.” he stared down at the little monstrosity trapped in its own world of shadow.

“We saw… Murals of it in one of the dreams, I think. But not scrolls. I didn't know what it meant. Does that mean…" Trisha trailed off, shuddering slightly. She pressed closer to Casey, taking a deep breath.

She wasn't terrified in that same way she had been when the Archserpent attacked, or in the aftermath then. There wasn't a risk of a full blown panic attack. But that didn't mean she felt no fear at all. It was impossible not to after everything she'd been through. Thankfully, she'd never had associative attacks because of normal snakes like she did with the dark. But this wasn't a normal snake. It didn't look quite like the Stygian Snake, but there were signs. It’s gaze was unnerving.

“Could it be as powerful as the Stygian Snake? It can't get out of there, can it?"

”Sure it can. But they weren’t all born of malice. Just darkness. Stygian, Gloom, Twilight, Dusk, Murk. Chances are, because of what happened, they’re all pretty stunted. But, I bet if we gave the poor thing its day in court, we probably wouldn’t wind up surprised by its conduct.” Casey giggled, wriggling his finger at the trapped demigod within and watching as it just stared back.

It couldn’t, or didn’t, speak. But, its eyes spoke for it, begging Casey to overstep the boundary.

”This one was the only one they had. Whether that means the others are gone, or they just couldn’t find them? Hell, maybe this one’s the only important one. It wasn’t even like, enshrined or anything. It was getting used like a paperweight in that office, someone nearly knocked it off the desk.” he continued, knocking and forcing the lights back on.

The serpent promptly dove back into its gloomy obstruction as light filled the sphere and turned everything inside back into a foamy, pearlescent liquid inside. Casey cleared his throat.

”Makes me want to crack the fucker open and cook it…”

Trisha stared up at Casey, before a giggle pushed its way through her nervous exterior.
“There can't be that much meat on it, can there? I know there's some places where eating snakes is common… but it seems like a lot of effort. Not that it's a normal snake."

She shook her head, still giggling at the prospect of him cracking it open and making an omelette out of it. It helped ignore the fear the little creature instilled in her. Not so bad she couldn't deal with it… but not something she enjoyed feeling.

“You’re not going to keep it here, are you? I'm not sure I can handle a Stygian Snake spawn paperweight. Even if it's trapped in there…"

”The big debate is whether or not keeping it in the dark is better, or in the light. Intense light like this makes it turn into, y’know, liquid egg. But it eats the light whenever it transitions from one state to another. So, everyone’s worried that turning it into this is giving it nutrition, rather than denying it a physical form. Honestly speaking, we’re all stumped. But, unfortunately, there's no place to hide it tonight. Most I can do is bring it down to Leon until we know what to do with it.” Casey admitted solemnly.

It wasn’t ideal, but who else could he trust? The Vault at the Temple was just as vulnerable to an attack as this place was, in Casey’s estimation. And worse, there were plenty of people there with loose morals who would happily run tests on this thing.

”Unless you’ve got any ideas, I say it goes in the freezer.”

Trisha didn't have any better ideas. At least she didn't go into the freezer that much. She could avoid it completely if needed. She hardly went into the fridge right now.

“As long as I don't have to see it… I guess that's fine. It's fine when you're here, just when I'm alone, I can't really handle seeing something like that. Even if it's hidden in the light." She replied quietly, with a slight nod. She understood that there wasn't really an alternative.

Putting it on Leon didn't seem fair, when he probably had his own share of Stygian Snake trauma. That he'd gotten scrubbed by Greyson, sure… but Cass didn't deserve to have an evil snake egg around either. Though…
“If you gave it to Leon, Cass would probably try to crack it open to fight or eat- so I guess it is safest here, for now. In the freezer. Where we can't see it."

She looked up at him, forcing herself to be brave about it while fiddling with her ring to calm herself down. She could do it. She'd dealt with worse ten years ago. Sure, that was why something like this freaked her out now. But she'd survived then. She could survive dark snake spawn being in her freezer.

“At least it's too cold to want ice cream anyway." She managed to joke, lips pulling back up to a slight smile.

Casey nodded in agreement and went back to his bag to pull out a small string of LEDs attached to a little battery pack, which he wrapped around the egg and turned on before popping open the freezer and wedging the thing inside. The freezer door closed with a thump, and Casey turned back to look at Trisha.

”Very strong of you, Babe. I love you, I missed you!” he said, moving forward to wrap around her again now that the surprise was over.

”Y’know you can figure out the quality of the mac and cheese by its heat retention properties?” he asked, wobbling back and forth with Trisha gently as he eyed the pan on the stove.

He did his best to subtly shuffle them over to it before dipping his finger into the center. It was still hot enough to be delicious in the middle, with the bottom having rested on the stove and reflected its own heat back up.
”I’d say it’s pretty damn good. Who made it?” he asked, licking the bit on his finger off.

“Would you believe me if I said I did?" Trisha said, managing a deep pan expression for a few seconds before cracking and laughing.
“Cass did. She filled the fridge up… not yesterday, but when she visited the day before. I guess you didn't have a chance to look yet? She went on a crazy cooking spree the moment she'd recovered her Lux and was left alone, I think."

She smiled, one arm wriggling away from hugging him to point at the honestly tiny portion of tomatoey pasta that was in another pan. It was probably cold, but maybe she could just heat it up a bit too.
“That’s mine. Cass forced me to eat something every time she did today… so it's not much, but I still wanted to eat with you." She felt she had to explain, as some proof that she was doing a little better. Not that she would've eaten much if Cass wasn't there shoving food at her… but she'd pulled something out for herself here too.

Casey nodded gently, kissing the top of Trisha’s head and patting her shoulder before pulling away to move toward the stove. He clicked the burner on, hoping to heat Trisha’s food back up enough that she’d actually eat it.

”Thank you… Dinner together is good. It’s almost a benefit that you’re not a glutton, I get to share moments like this with you instead of just eating half a chicken pot pie standing in front of the sink.” he commented, flicking the pan around trying to get the spaghetti to loosen up off the bottom so it didn’t burn.

”But, also, y’know if you’ve been eating all day, you can just sit with me. I’m not gonna, like, force you into eating or anything.”

“I’ve only been eating small bits. Cass eats every two hours now… but I only had a little bit. I'll try to eat something." Trisha responded, her smile towards him only turning softer.

She was used to people just forcing it on her. It was part of why she had such a bad relationship with food in the first place… meals she didn't want to eat were forced on her growing up until she hit a certain age, and no one bothered anymore because she was ‘old enough' to look after herself. Then she just forgot or chose to skip them. She knew people now cared… and she could deal with it with someone like Cass, who, along with Diyah, had seen the effects of times when she was particularly bad. At least Cass didn't really force her so much as just hand her food and hope she ate it.

But Casey seemed to understand and was more patient about it, while still clearly caring.

“Why would you ever have to eat standing in front of the sink, though? Because if I was a glutton you'd be worried I'd steal it from you? "

Casey shook his head, giggling slightly.

”You’d have already eaten and been full. Why take more time for an unnecessary ritual? At that point, it’s brevity. I eat where the dishes go, then leave again. That’s why it’s… Extra nice. Obviously, you care about our time together. But, it’s more. Like I can trust you’ll always want that first, and I can maneuver around that. Work with it. Eventually, it’ll be second nature and, maybe, make the dangerous transition from assumption to expectation… A future argument, even. One where maybe we’re drifting apart a little, and it comes back to this emotion. The feeling of having someone to wait. And, moreso, waiting for one another specifically, not just anyone who’ll do.”

It was hard to explain the necessity of nostalgia in his life. Holding tightly to memories and feelings like this were paramount for his slowly expanding list of available White Lux spells. It seemed like every day, a new memory made a new form of telepathy, or some other way to observe a remote location in a different dimension… He needed these memories more than ever.

”I’m saying a lot without saying the thing I mean… That I love you, and I’m thankful for you.” he finished.

Trisha nodded, smiling gently at him. As he reheated her pasta she drifted towards the fridge, pulling out a soda for each of them.

“I feel the same about you, Casey. I love you a lot. And I don't think I'll ever mind waiting for you for something like this. If it becomes an expectation, that's fine. I don't want to imagine us drifting but… even then… I don't think I'll mind. I'm always going to love you and want to spend time with you. You know I get more upset when I can't. I really think I will always want that first…"

As she spoke, she moved back towards where she'd been sitting, perching in the chair again to watch him.
“Well… I can see there being an exception when we have children, and they start crying about how hungry they are. It'll be a little harder then."

”Eh, they can eat. I won’t deny growing children. But, knowing you, I bet you’ll just watch them eat and still wait for me.”

Steam was curling up from the pasta now, little plumes ascending each time he moved the mass around in the pan. Plenty warm now, he made for a small bowl and filled it up for her before letting the pan fall back onto a cool burner. Then, he grabbed a bigger plate, looked at the pan of macaroni, and shrugged before sliding it back into its place and picking up a spoon and the entire tray.

”Only problem is we can’t cuddle and eat at the same time… C’mon, lets go see how Colima’s gonna catch the bad guys today.”

“We could technically cuddle and eat, it'd just get messy quickly." Trisha shot back with a smile, moving to take her bowl from him so he didn't have to carry it and his mass of macaroni. She grabbed a fork and her soda before making her way through to the den.

There was nothing playing on the TV already like there had been the last few days, since Trisha had spent most of the day out. Not that she'd done much more with Cass. Instead of Colima, Cass had shown her some goofy, old sci-fi sitcom she liked. Black Hole or something…

Since they weren't going to be able to cuddle until they were done eating, Trisha climbed up onto the middle of the couch and picked up the remote she'd discarded early. Switching the TV on, it was left at the end of the last episode she'd been half watching… so it was easy to click play and just let it move to the next.

She started to pick at her pasta, looking at the TV as she spoke quietly.
“I… bumped into Linqian today. When I was visiting Cass."

Casey frowned slightly as he made his way into his spot and got comfy, both legs crossing to hold the tray up like a platform for him to dig into.

”Oh… Shit, I didn’t mention it did I? Sorry, that one kind of slipped through the cracks, I left it for Leon to kind of deal with. I probably should’ve told you yesterday, but you were so sleepy… I was, y’know, kind of just wanting to let you sleep without rubbing your nerves.” he admitted, half trying to faust the blame before accepting that he could have told her and simply didn’t. He didn’t even know why this time.

”Kinda like the egg, y’know? Better they’re here where we can observe them, than somewhere where they’re obscured in turn.”

Trisha nodded slowly, chewing on a piece of pasta. It made sense that they were staying here. The security of the place was relatively robust, and Casey himself lived here… as did Leon, the one other Sycamite who seemed involved in the plan.

“I understand why they're here. I would've liked to know before being shocked with it but I… also understand why you didn't say anything yesterday. I did spend a lot of time sleeping. Cass said they just moved in, at least. So I know you haven't been keeping it from me for days or anything." She managed to say relatively evenly.

She didn't want to get annoyed at him, after all. And it was easier when she was still in that depressed slump, no matter how much she'd started to crawl out. She was more likely to just start crying thinking he didn't trust her. But that wasn't the case here, at least.

“I talked to Greyson. Linqian basically strong-armed me into going in… But it was pretty civil. I think it was as good as it ever could go with him." She finally turned her gaze away from the television towards Casey. Between the little dregs of upset over him not telling her, no matter how much she understood it, there was something else that shone through. Pride, maybe? Or more looking for approval.

The kind of look someone gives after doing something well, waiting to be praised for it.

”Dying young people tend to get sappy and sentimental. I held the hands of a lot of dead kids who spent their last precious breaths apologizing for shit I didn’t have anything to do with. The need to confess, I think, and purge the soul before exiting.” Casey absently replied, thinking about what it must’ve been like to know your life was on a string between two halves of a pair of scissors.

”Y’said she strong-armed you? I guess that makes sense for a Gangster’s girlfriend to do. At least it’s not something you’re going to need to worry about much longer, Babe. All these people just fade out of our world after this… Again, I’m real proud of you. For, uh, y’know, being in your slump, you’re doing well. I’m impressed.” he happily reassured her, a smile crossing his face as he moved his foot out to press against her leg in a playful manner. Like he was poking her, or patting her shoulder all the same.

The little pout that had started to form when Casey didn't immediately praise her disappeared, replaced by a giggle and sappy smile. She swayed her body towards him, wriggling the leg he was poking with another giggle.

“I managed to stay there for like… fifteen minutes. Which considering my track record…" She continued, still smiling at him. It was such a small thing to be proud of, but considering all the history she had with Sycamore- and especially Greyson- it felt like a big thing. Even if they'd eventually be out of her life completely when this was all done.

“But Linqian's always been like that. I think she's actually… better now that she's with Greyson? Most of her really snappy comments were directed at him. Cass has been helping out, and she said it's like a live sitcom sometimes." Trisha paused to eat another bit of pasta, looking down at her bowl again.

“He actually… did apologise, like you said. Sentimental now that he's dying. He apologised for all the things he did to me. Hitting on me, blackmailing me and another guy, another incident… But I was surprised he did it at all. I didn't forgive him, but I just… really didn't expect it."

Casey smiled, completely unfurling and making his scooting way over to her on the couch, so she could rest against him as she pleased. It’d only be until they were done eating anyway, so he wasn’t worried about joint stiffness. His shoulder brushed against her, and finally he leaned down to kiss her again before straightening out and starting to eat again.

”Well… He is who he is. I don’t know, Leon loves the guy. I asked him recently, y’know, and he’s just… Kind of avoidant about it. Like he thinks I’ll judge him for being friends with a guy like that.” he commented, shrugging before smiling.
”But, still… Fifteen minutes with Sycamites, and I’m not checking your face for bruising. We’ve really come far, haven’t we Love?” he giggled.

Trisha laughed in response, one hand going up to squish her own cheek upwards.
“Maybe I got Cass to heal me… I'm kidding. I don't think Greyson could've even if he wanted to… If Linqian had, you'd be checking for burning. But it was really fine. Not that I'll be rushing to see them again, but… tolerable. So, yeah. Come pretty far."

She smiled, before leaning fully against him as she ate a bit more.
“Honestly, especially with those two. Most encounters with Linqian end up with someone getting burnt. Greyson's never hit me before… It's just all words and blackmail. And the one time he… emptied a trash can on me…"

Casey’s first reaction should not have been a little chuckle, but it was more out of shock than humor.
”Jesus… You’re telling me I need to go beat up a dying guy? What do you… Aw, fuck it, you’ll tell me if you want. Jesus… A trashcan? Casey shook his head in disbelief.

Trisha nodded slowly. It was one of the odder ones to look back on, and would've been a bit funny retrospectively if it hadn't all been so fucked up at the time. But it wasn't something she felt reluctant to tell Casey the full story about. While it had started as both of their fault, Greyson had escalated it way more than she had. From a lot of harsh words both ways to that.

“A trashcan. I don't… entirely remember how the argument started. There were a lot of spectators… like it was a schoolyard fight and everyone was watching for entertainment. I definitely remember telling he was just upset I rejected him, and from there it really descended into name calling. I called him trash after he used a bunch of names for me and then he… grabbed the nearest trashcan and emptied it over me. It was full as well." Trisha grimaced, nose wrinkling as she remembered.

It had been in the evening too, with only a couple of hours until sunset. Not enough time for her to get home and shower before they had to go on their nightly patrols. One of the few times there'd ended up being a derogatory nickname based on what she actually liked to go by… Trashy Trisha.

“Someone did try to step in and got hit in the face with it after. I can't remember who I was too busy trying to get rotten food out of my hair."

Casey shook his head trying to remember what being that age was like. The only thing that popped up consistently was fear. There was no assuming, then, what a scenario like that could’ve been as a leadup. It all seemed so silly, so childish. He dumped a whole trashcan on her? What if someone had disposed of something improperly? Some kind of medical waste, or the refuse of some addict stuffing the can with dirty needles and shit… She could’ve been seriously hurt, even in a group of magical people.

”Well… That dude’s gonna be dead soon. The moment dies with him, whether or not he apologized.” Casey nodded in a satisfied fashion.

”Nobody’ll ever hurt you like that ever again. Not without serious consequences.” he asserted.

“I know.” Trisha replied softly, turning her head and leaning up to kiss his cheek. She knew that as long as they were together- which was hopefully the rest of their lives- Casey wouldn’t let anyone hurt her if he was there. And if he wasn’t and heard about it… Serious consequences.

“I believe you… I do, sort of get… Well, I wouldn’t say it was revenge? But I was quite petty when he apologised. I said I wouldn’t forgive him, but I also wasn’t going to think about him after he died. That I was going to get happily married to you and have children, and live to see them have children. Y’know… All the things he won’t get to do.”

Casey nodded enthusiastically.
”On the one hand, I’d remember the next couple of weeks being an important part of your life… But on the other, why let him hijack one more thing?” Casey paused, smiling and taking a bite of food.
”You’re coming along, Babe… One day, you’ll look back and not even recognize you in this moment. I’m so proud, and thankful to be a part of that.”

Trisha nodded, smiling back at him.
“I hope so… I really do. I wouldn’t be able to imagine getting there without you here.”
Hidden 9 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Friday December 8th.
Greyson's Apartment (Prison)

Trisha had hoped that was the last time she had to deal with Sycamore problems… But she'd agreed to be there at the end. And whether she liked it or not, she was involved now. At least involvement meant more time with Casey. Silver linings and all that.

A meeting with seven people wasn't ideal. Though the day long sleep was still keeping her going, she hadn't had much since. Not when Casey was out so much, and every time she closed her eyes some nightmare came to haunt her. But she could at least pretend to be human. She put on makeup for the first time since Thanksgiving, mainly to try cover up the dark bags underneath her eyes, and dressed up in something other than just sweats (which had already been an upgrade on Casey t-shirts and not much else). It still wasn't a major upgrade- a tank top and some dark jeans- but at least it was something she'd go outside in.

Not that she probably needed to, remembering the state Linqian and Greyson had been in last time. Even Andrade was dressed down… But there were too many people there for her to look like a slob, even with the lingering depressive episode making normal self care difficult.

She wanted to wholeheartedly believe it would be fine, but the doubts always crept in.

“This is my first sort of Sycamore meeting in ten years." She took the opportunity of the short elevator ride down, when it was just her and Casey, to at least seek some comfort. She was already close to him, but she shuffled closer still, leaning into him.

“They… never normally went well. I'm sure this'll be fine. You and Cass are there to balance it out but… I haven't seen Leon since Thanksgiving. Is he- has he said anything about what happened?" She was anxious about the whole thing, but equally anxious about facing the one person she hadn't seen since. The Leon she'd known ten years ago wouldn't exactly tolerate someone panicking like she did and getting someone else hurt. He'd improved since, but they still clashed over a lot. Mainly over how she was. And since he was dating Cass… she assumed he wouldn't be too happy about it.

Casey wasn’t much less tired. The bags under his eyes couldn’t be hidden, and he was very clearly in a half-alert state as his black jumpsuit was tied by the arms at his waist. It wasn’t worth getting out of completely, as any moment there could be another Dollhouse attack that he had to respond to. There’d already been plenty, and he knew there’d probably be more before things finished. But, their measured responses had been necessary. The plan was clear enough until this point; a feigned defense, weak and disorganized as they tried to subvert knowledge of troop movement through the organisation.

They’d even kept Andrade in the dark about it, so that the famous double agent-quadruple cross wouldn’t end up being a problem. After all, there was only so much they could trust right now. At least Casey had Trisha. He’d seemed a little cold and distant this morning, as he’d only made it back in the very early morning hours. Exhausted, he had to admit that the fatigue was strong enough for him to need relief. It felt strange, confessing to something he didn’t necessarily feel wrong about. They were drugs, sure… But he wasn’t broken like other people. He only needed the stuff as a pick-me-up, after all…

But still, it affected Trisha. So she had every right to that info. At least she seemed to get over it relatively quickly. Now she was more worried about what other people’s problems were. Which was already getting to be classic Trisha in his mind. It was a good way to be…

”Leon’s got a lot on his own plate, Babe. Uh… Fuck! Listen, he… Whatever, listen, you may end up noticing something a little different. He broke the magic seal keeping him and his Apparition separate.” Casey explained both vaguely, yet ominously.

Trisha furrowed her brow, looking up at him with a little confusion. She didn't entirely understand how it had worked for Leon in the first place. She knew it was different from other Adjoined, considering there was a seal in the first place. Most didn't have that… Which resulted in people like Lila and Luca, whose Apparition ran their lives.

At least the Queen was never that interested in blurring the lines between them.

“So he's more like a… Normal Adjoined now? Not like how the Temple seems to do it, but outside. Where people just get ghosts attached to them and have no… seals, or suppressants." She asked softly, trying to figure out what differences that'd make for Leon. Cass hadn't said anything about it… But she also hadn't talked about Leon any differently from normal.

“So she can influence him however she pleases, but he also just has access to her magic? I guess… I can see how that difference might affect him." She nibbled on her lip, not liking the thought of dealing with someone who could be different from what she'd grown to expect.
“Cass’ll be there, though, so it'll probably be alright, right?"

Casey cleared his throat and gritted his teeth. Did he have to explain it all? It’d probably help her by being on guard, but did he want her on guard like that? She already was…

”The main thing is: The last six years, that seal’s been suppressing him. His instincts, his ambition, his will to be combative and unruly. Every primal part of him was locked away. He’s been incredibly docile and willing to follow people like me… And it was all manipulation again. All artificial. He seems to be uninterested in holding that grudge, but the difference in his attitude is pretty stark. He… The only thing he said to me about you is that there weren’t enough apologies.” Casey explained with full honesty, not hiding it even if Leon probably could hear them clear through the walls over the din of the elevator.

“Weren’t enough apologies… To me?" Trisha's eyes widened slightly. It shocked her almost as much as the whole seal suppressing both the host and the Apparition thing. She shouldn't be surprised, when the Temple was involved, with what they did to other Adjoined. But she'd assumed Leon got some amount of better treatment because he was Lynette's son.

Instead it seemed he was made into a malleable puppet.

She felt sympathy for him as much as she did concern about how the meeting might go. But she didn't want to start spiralling- not when Casey was already dealing with enough. So she nodded, reaching out to take his hand and squeezing it.

“That’s good to know. Thank you, Casey. It sounds… really messy, and messed up. I'll just expect him to be… more how he was when I knew him before, and deal with it like that. I can do that. I've been doing a little better at dealing with people... And we're together in it." She managed a smile, eyes creasing softly as she looked at him. Even through the depression and the anxiety, seeing him- and being near him- helped her feel it was possible to get through things she'd normally avoid, even if they were painful.

“I’d drag myself to any number of Sycamore meetings with you… Not that this one's too bad. Barely a majority of us anyway."

”It’s preliminary, frankly. A meeting for Linqian and Leon to bring to the ones who haven't split or disappeared. Numbers are really down… You guys are a dying breed at this point.” he frowned slightly.

At least the Noble Coven was a fucking myth. He didn’t have to think about “the good fight” that he was missing out on or anything equally dumb. He wasn’t fourteen. He wasn’t desperate to be a part of the herd anymore. But, he still pained for Trisha. There were mountains of closure she could’ve had the chance of getting before… But not from corpses.

The elevator pinged, the doors sliding open to release them into the hall. Casey could hear Leon’s voice yapping away in the other room, but Linqian seemed to be pretty much waiting for them as the doors opened.

”Oh… Hey.” Casey looked at the unfamiliar woman, her dishevelled appearance accentuated by the cigarette burning between her fingers.
”Deathbed Nurse-maid. Crazy temporary job description.” he absently spoke, not quite awake enough to give a shit if it didn’t go over well.

Trisha frowned worriedly, shuffling closer to Casey to press into his side. Linqian had always been one of the quickest to anger, whether it was over something valid or tiny comments. There'd never been any chance the two of them would get on- even when Linqian was fun and chill, she often said stuff that would then trigger Trisha. But she really didn't want her to snap at Casey!

”One that doesn't pay enough.” Linqian grumbled, too tired to get set off by the kind of comment that'd always go one of two ways depending on her mood. Normally she'd either get pissed, or find it funny and laugh. But right now she was in some vague form of a work mode- the kind of mode that'd gotten her through years upon years of customer service jobs on minimal sleep. Just pushing herself through shit as much as possible.

She was saving most of her actual energy and emotion for Greyson. It meant he still got snapped at, but he also got all the rest of her that actually made her good to be around. Not that she was suppressing herself or anything, just dulled with all the shit she was dealing with. All the caring on top of that constantly simmering grief.

It was difficult enough to dredge up a bit of Joy and Rage to turn a patch of her arm ice cold, putting the rest of the cigarette out on that.
”Guess I can go back in now that you're here. Y'know how it is when the two of them start going. It's giving me a headache already.”

Trisha let out a slight sigh of relief, tense frame relaxing slightly. Her hand dropped to take Casey's.

“I’m surprised Greyson has the energy to talk much."

”It’s all he has the energy for. He really can't do much else! It's a fucking nightmare.” She shoved her hands in the pocket of her sweater, turning around and beginning to make her way back down the corridor with the assumption the couple would follow.

Holding Trisha as tight as he could in comfort, Casey followed Linqian back down the hall toward the apartment with the open door. Not much of a prison, but the entire building was really the prison. There was no staircase up to the top floor, so as long as they kept the elevator magically bound to certain people, there was no need to worry about Andrade doing much. And Edict, at least, wasn’t a prisoner. It was a pretty ironic thing for Casey, that the professional was the one people were nervous about now.

Entering the room, there were extra chairs centered around the couch that Greyson and Andrade were sat on next to each other. The last seat on the other side of him was obviously for Linqian, leaving four chairs for the others. Two, of course, were already occupied.

”-aking you go through with something like that, Cass. I get that you want to help, and I love that. But, I’m not just going to let you participate in a plan I think is stupid.”

Casey almost shuddered at Leon’s tone. The first time he came back from the military after Leon had adjoined, he was surprised to find that his attitude had changed so much. He’d always attributed it to being humbled, but he knew better now. Had known better since he’d received the Mautec Transfer from Lynette. Every detail of the bindings had been laid out for him to see, and every string one could pull to get his older brother to dance like a puppet.

It made him quietly sick then, but at the same time, it was therapeutic. For once, Casey really felt like he’d been in charge of the people in his personal life, rather than being the unheard cat-wrangler that his own personality led him to be naturally. Now, Leon didn't even turn his head to greet them. Casey had to accept that Leon’s laser-focus was back, along with his proclivity toward thoughtless behavior rather than a pre-programmed set of defaults.

At least he would’ve stopped himself to greet Casey and Trisha before… But Cass was in his focus.

"And I've told you that I'm an adult who gets to choose what I participate in or not! They need a Green Adept to make sure Mr Bobblehead doesn't look like… he's two steps away from death! Who else you gonna trust with that, huh? It's-" Cass cut herself off, head jerking up past Leon to the two coming in.

It was a delayed reaction, as the sound of them walking in registered after she got out most of what was in her head. She jumped up out of her seat, one hand jerked out to hit Leon's arm.

"We can get back to arguing ‘bout this shit in a moment… Trishhhaaa ! Casey! Good to see you!" She bounded around her stubborn boyfriend to launch herself at Trisha, in turn catching Casey in the hug too with how close they both were. It was a quick one for once.

“You saw me a day ago…" Trisha responded quietly, managing a slight smile.

"Yeah, but I always miss you! And I ain't seen Casey in like… a week! You look like shit, dude! Wait, that came out wrong- like exhausted shit! Uh, y'know. Like you ain't ever slept before!"

”Y’know I haven’t. Hey, Cass…” he did his best to embrace her without seeming like he was a dead body walking around.

Leon didn’t get up at first. Just like Greyson the day before, Leon was having his own crisis of conscience over Trisha. He’d been so wrapped up in false or otherwise hazy memories that he’d only really managed to look like a mellow version of what he had been. Maybe it helped ease her back into being around him, but it wasn’t useful for him to express himself about how he actually felt.

Never mind the fact that he was still trying to find a healthy way to express his disappointment toward his younger Brother. He’d stepped up. But, in doing so, he maintained lies and deceit that Leon didn’t think he could. It was partly insulting, partly impressive, and totally disruptive to Leon’s train of thought.

Unexpectedly, or maybe totally expectantly, Andrade also stood and moved to pass affection toward the final arrivals. His arms wrapped around Casey, though he avoided getting touchy with Trisha. He couldn’t know which of the two would rip his arm off first, after all.

”Oh, you are shot… Do you want me to whip you up something?” he asked Casey quietly.

”You’re making food for everyone if you do that!” Greyson snapped, for once his body was not totally wrapped up in blankets.

Like Trisha, Greyson was feeling uncomfortable without his nice clothes in front of so many others. So, as a personal request and in spite of the pain, Linqian had helped him shower and properly dress himself with a tie and all. It was a sharp suit with pink accents.

But, he didn’t get up.

”Hey again, Trish… Casey…” he nodded from the couch, hand trailing up to take Linqian’s. He could intrinsically feel the love in the room in spite of everyone's exhaustion.

Linqian didn't stop Greyson, even loosely threading her fingers through his as she sat down next to him. Of course, her words weren't so gentle.
“Do we have fucking time for cooking? We gotta get through this shit before your pain gets bad enough you're begging for medication again."

"There's always time for food!" Cass piped up, bouncing away from Trisha and Casey and back over to Leon. She was as full of energy as normal- it was easy with the constant Green Lux pumping round her body, even if she hadn't figured out her whole Lux wastage thing yet. But the basic spells were there to keep her awake no matter how much sleep she got… An ability she'd already had mundanely, just enhanced by magic!

She put a hand on Leon's shoulder, squeezing it. They may have been sort of arguing before the others stepped in, but she wasn't exactly upset about it, and didn't want him worrying about it.

“Hi Greyson… Andrade, Leon." Trisha intoned each name in turn, visibly twisting away from Andrade even as he didn't go in for the same hug he did for Casey. Thankfully. She wasn't here for it… not that she enjoyed being hugged by many people at all. But she was getting used to it with people she was growing to care about- just Andrade was no longer in that category.

Of course, she slotted right back in beside Casey when there was no longer a risk of a hug she didn't want, looking up at him.
“If you think food from him will help, you should have some."

Maybe it was surprising to hear, since they'd had so many arguments about the food. But right now she was more concerned Casey would get hurt because he was so exhausted… It was the root of all of her concerns with that stuff. How it would negatively affect him. But it didn't matter if he got called out in a few hours and was too tired to stay alive…

Casey didn’t really have much of a say.

”He doesn’t care, Trish! Andrade, I mean… He only cares if he’s living past this week. Go, Andrade, fucking cook and be free.” Greyson waved him off like some Don of a mafia family letting a junior member do his bidding.

Casey cleared his throat, eyes sliding down toward Leon who was mostly focused on Cass. But, he felt the look in turn, and met his brother’s eyes with a look of fire.

”Save it for the dead guy, Dre… I’ll be alright.” he quietly intoned, taking a deep breath as Leon’s eyes almost immediately softened.

This wasn’t a dynamic he’d missed. That judgemental look. The one that made you feel not just foolish for thinking something, but utterly devoid of grace and intelligence. The same look their Father had when you were caught doing something wrong. Casey cleared his throat.

”What was the problem we walked into?” he asked, fishing for information that he hadn’t paid attention to down the hall.

”Lanternfish head here needs to look like he’s not already on death’s door. We need vulnerable, not actually worthless. So, we were thinking of ways to get people in close with him.” Leon explained.

”I floated the idea of keeping Cass as a false hostage. Someone Luis knows Leon cares about, and may draw Sycamore out through his influence. We’re already basing this on the fact that we’re- Nghhhh!-” Greyson paused, a surge of blood rushing through his swollen head.
”-We’re… already supposed to be hitting the negotiation table. Andrade’s got Luis thinking that he’s got me in a secret interrogation in the Temple. That y’all found out I was a rat, and I’m compromised, and that-”

”-It’s complicated! But, the point is, he thinks that having Cass there is gonna make things better, when in reality, there’s no fucking way that it’ll do anything except put three of you in immediate danger, rather than two. It’s just not going to happen, no. I refuse.” Leon growled, interrupting Greyson and causing the latter to toss a hand up in frustration.

”Another one… Is that how you guys got taught to argue in the Temple? Just keep going in an infinite loop and piss the other people off until they tell you that you win?” Greyson snapped slowly.

Casey just giggled and nodded his head.

”Sounds about right, yeah.”

“I’m getting a sense of deja vu." Trisha mumbled under her breath. Both to Greyson and Andrade fought the last time she was here, but also… so many arguments Leon was involved in ten years ago. Argument was maybe generous, because that would suggest it wasn't fairly one sided. Fuzzy, unpleasant memories.

"Well that ain't happening here… Cause I keep saying, Babe, it ain't just your decision to make! You can't just refuse on my behalf… What you gonna do, try lock me in a fucking apartment on the day?" Cass threw that thought away quickly, because it wasn't useful to go down hypotheticals.
"It's a group decision… And we gotta do what's best to make shit work. Cause if it don't? We're all gonna be in danger anyway! There ain't much different."

She had both her hands on Leon's shoulders now, pressing into them with enough pressure to be noticeable without hurting. Mostly meant to be comforting, and to keep her own frustrating minimal by gripping at those very nice muscles…

"And right now, they're gonna take one look at him and know he's a step away from death's door! I can fix that, but I ain't confident I can do it then not be there to maintain it."

Trisha frowned slightly.
“Can’t Linqian? She's a Green Adept too."

Linqian raised her eyebrows, before letting out a short laugh.
”I see whose life's more important… But no, not unless you want him fucking burnt to a crisp from the outside too.”

”Why the Hell do you need to make it a point to toss yourself into danger, Cass!? God forbid anything happens to you, do you know how I’ll feel? That I brought you into this and let you just fucking-” Leon started up again, but Casey cleared his throat as the warm smell of oil and garlic started to waft from the kitchen.

”-Be honest, Leon. You don’t care how much damage she throws herself in so long as it’s got nothing to do with your problems. You don’t want anything getting back to someone else here…” He turned his head to look at Trisha before smiling slightly.

Leon clenched his jaw and shook his head.

”Am I crazy for not wanting either of us to have to deal with those potential ramifications?” Leon snapped back, hand gripping in frustration.

Of course he didn’t want to get bombarded by Trisha. It was probably the worst possible outcome for anything short of Cass actually dying. But, that was the ultimate bad ending…

”But, still, you’re not fucking right Case! Sure, her getting banged up a bit wouldn’t be the end of the world; she got her fucking arm blown off and she’s here, fine…-” he paused, gaze turning back up to Cass. He’d done his best to avoid becoming emotional in a heartfelt way, but Casey implying he didn’t care was suddenly getting to him.

”-But if I fucking really lost you? I’m sorry, but I’m not even gonna give a shit about Trisha at that point! Because if I lose you, I… I lose…”

Greyson half smiled.

”Gets a lot harder when you love someone, doesn’t it? Big Guy?” he chided calmly.

Cass let out a long breath, grip on Leon's shoulders loosening so her hands were flat. She frowned a little bit. There was conflict, because she understood his care. Just because she didn't love him in the same way yet didn't mean she would be able to lose him either- or Trisha, or anyone else she cared about. But there was concern, and there was control.

"I get it, Leon, I really do… But I ain't throwing myself into something I think would kill me. I don't wanna die either! It's something I think I can help with and survive. You love me and don't want to lose me, I know, but you gotta trust me too! You can't just use it to stop me from doing shit."

Trisha wasn't particularly happy that she was being used as some kind of consequence. If Cass got badly hurt or died… Well, maybe she would be pissed at Leon for the former. But the latter? She'd be too broken over it to come for anyone. Though she understood why Casey had pointed it out… She was shocked too that Leon already seemed to feel that way about Cass. Was it really some kind of family trait?

“That’s not what he's saying, Cass." Trisha spoke up, trying to stay neutral. She didn't like being constrained either. She'd had arguments with Casey over the whole not wanting her to go out alone thing… but they'd come to some form of agreement over it. She knew he just didn't want her to get hurt.

“He’s worried. Because you do throw yourself into things recklessly and get hurt. I bet you agreed as soon as they asked, and didn't even listen to the whole plan. You can't really guarantee you'll be alright."

Cass didn't say anything, because Trisha had hit the nail on the head.

“I think it's… reasonable that Leon doesn't want you to. But- But I don't think it's just his decision. You can come to an agreement, right?" Trisha did her best to sound reasonable, and like she wasn't hypocritically delivering advice she struggled to follow herself. But she was trying! She shuffled even closer to Casey, not actually looking at anyone and getting a bit tenser, like waiting for some pushback.

"Fucking… I know… Alright, alright! I ain't backing down, but… we can discuss it! Figure it out!" She slumped forward slightly, arms dangling over Leon before wrapping into a loose hug. She looked at him directly now, with a gaze filled with both her own determination but also the deep feelings she had for him. Not quite love… But she cared a lot.

"I don't wanna worry you like that, Lee. I just ain't alright with being told I ain't allowed to do shit, y'know… but I don't wanna hurt you like that. I really ain't tryna be reckless, I swear… I don't plan to throw my life away or force you to go through losing me, Baby, but- I also want this to work, so we can all live. If it don't there ain't gonna be any future anyway, is there?"

Before Leon could get another word in, Greyson cleared his throat and brought the attention back toward himself.
”Look, you two… There’s only two people who deserve being put in this position. But… I think there’s only one person whose actually trying to be helpful.” his eyes narrowed across the apartment as Andrade looked up and frowned.

”I already don’t want to be there. Obviously.” Andrade pouted slightly.

”You lost that privilege when you went AWOL on your people, so… Get cracking with the fucking food ideas so we can keep Cass out of the trenches and make everyone happy.” Greyson pushed, prompting Casey’s gaze to land squarely on his uncle.

It wasn’t a real blood connection, but he did really feel like Andrade was his family. Bonds were sometimes thicker than blood, and only that blood spilled could bring things closer still.

”This is a pretty dumb thing to let them get hung up on…” Casey spoke softly, sauntering off toward the middle of the room toward Andrade.
”You’ve got the sauce for shit like this.”

”Well… How about you just let me cook?” Andrade responded with an almost snobby tone.

But Casey knew what that meant. He shook his head and turned back.

”Fine, fine… We let him cook. We’ll come back to this… What else is on the docket for this shit?” he asked, not bothering to look at anyone else but Linqian to be actually helpful.

”What the fuck to tell the remaining Sycamore members, for a start.” Linqian answered after a pause, when neither Leon nor Greyson immediately filled the silence.
”Most of the meetings since figuring out the shit in the notebooks have gone… Badly. All of them do. And I've been very vague about what's going on… Cause even with so few remaining, someone will fuck something up! But we gotta tell 'em something.”

She put her hands up in a half shrug.
”Not the kind of shit I'm good at. That's normally his job.” Her head jerked towards Greyson.

”Aside from that… The Snake. What do we do about that? Cause sure, maybe its location dies with him… or maybe it doesn't. Having it locked in a random tree somewhere doesn't seem so fucking smart now we're adults being actively hunted for it.”

”Linqian… That’s the best place for it! Once the knowledge is gone, it’d take a miracle or a big fucking coincidence to uproot that shit.” Greyson asserted.

”That’s something I can probably help with, at least… I have to agree with Linqian. But, we’ve got reason to believe there’s a natural order of things.” Casey implied in a calm fashion, with Leon looking at him with disapproval again.

”If you’re thinking what I think, then stop. That’s not a good plan either, and you know it. There’s no telling what-”

”Yes there is! The Eternal Ouroboros! The snake devours the snake, who devours the snake, and so on in the endless cycle of night! That’s part of what Luis and I studied as boys. The Endless Night was an Ancient who was rejected and cast aside by the others, and so his shadow never developed light. Never developed color. All we know, is that there’s a state where they were once whole, but because of what’s happened, it’ll never be the case again.” Andrade piped up as he tossed around some pasta in a thick red sauce.

Casey looked at Trisha with a sly grin. They had a piece of that puzzle currently stuck in their freezer… But he wasn’t going to just outright talk about it. He only hoped that Trisha wouldn’t bring it up directly.

“Who’s they?" Trisha asked carefully, glancing over at Casey and suppressing a slight shudder. She could guess. The Stygian Snake and it's off spring… just like the creature upstairs that she wished wasn't there… But she'd never even heard of this Endless Night. So maybe she was wrong about that.

“You’d plan to let the Stygian Snake out to… Eat another horrifying Snake? And be eaten?" She did frown a little at that thought. It seemed… like something that wouldn't work, even if Casey was the one that brought it up. Why would they do that?

”I’m not happy ‘bout leaving it in some fucking uprootable tree- remember you won't be here to suffer the fucking consequences.” Linqian stared at Greyson, leg bumping lightly against his. The most she could do to express her disagreement now… Gone when the days of grabbing him and burning him, because she'd be the one to clean up and deal with the aftermath too. It was a fucking pain. But then she couldn't help but roll her eyes at Andrade as he went off again.

”But I dunno any of this shit about natural orders and Eternal Ouroboros. I was thinking fucking… sealing it in some shit and throwing it into that fucking deep trench thing in the ocean. Anywhere that isn't this fucking city.”

"I wanna know about this Ouroboros thing! Like Trisha said, who's eating it?" Cass added, trying to suppress her excitement at the thought of yet another cool magical tale. She was still standing and hugging Leon from behind, resisting the urge to just climb up onto his shoulders or into his lap. Not exactly an appropriate time… But she wasn't exactly in the mood for sitting nicely in her own chair either. Standing was the ultimate compromise!

Andrade sighed, shaking his head. He didn’t want to be involved. He didn’t want to make the suggestion. He wanted his brother back, and his life as it had been. But nothing was going to go right. It never had… They were Blue children, after all… Blue, and Black. He tilted the pasta onto the plate, spinning it with a fork before pushing past Casey to serve it up. Everyone in the room would be able to hear the pasta dish as it faintly shrieked in abject agony on the plate. Everyone except for Greyson, whose Emotional Field and connection to Lux was so tenuous that he didn’t know if he could even cast anymore. But he could absolutely pick up that fork and slurp a noodle down while Andrade spoke.

They are the five pieces of the Night. The Dusk Adder, the Twilight Krait, the Boa of the Murk, the Gloomslang, and the Stygian Viper. You all just call it snake because there’s no reason to distinguish for you. Again, at one point, the five of them were one being. An Ancient… Which, for the uneducated-”

”-Are a group of supernatural, Godlike beings responsible for propagating Lux across the many realities which exist beyond our own. The Dove-” Leon interrupted, looking at Greyson.

”-Yeah, yeah, the dove, the fuckin’ deer, the asshole dog or whatever.”

Andrade nodded as he stared at Greyson waiting for a reaction. Anything to happen telling him the formula and ratio were right. Casey was watching too, knowing that if anyone had a trick up their sleeve to keep everyone happy, it was him. Which made Greyson’s near-instant head deflation rather fucking shocking for everyone except the person eating… Because he didn’t even notice.

Andrade stared at the seemingly cured Greyson and nodded.
”I… don’t know how long that will last.”

Linqian had zoned out when Leon had taken over talking about Ancients, only half checking back in when Greyson thankfully interrupted. But she was completely shocked out of it by Greyson's sudden transformation into a normal looking person rather than the biggest headed asshole in the room.

”What the fuck- You couldn't have said the food was gonna do some shit?!” Linqian half snapped as she stared at Greyson in shock. She didn't like that the food screamed, but… it did the fucking job… She couldn't really complain. She just didn't appreciate the fucking suprise.

"Holy shit!" Cass ceased hugging Leon to half jump into the air, staring at Greyson with wide eyes.
"That's what he looks like with a normal sized head?! Damn- even more fucking smug, how's that shit possible?!"

Trisha didn't have much of an overt reaction to the transformation, already tense the moment there was quietly screaming food around. She did subtly flinch in surprise, her lips pressing together into a thin line.

“So… Cass doesn't need to be there, then?" She asked.
“If it lasts long enough."

Greyson was surprised by everyone’s reaction. He didn’t feel any different. His head still felt like a watermelon in a hot car, and his bones ached like they were solidified at the joints.

”It’s completely illusory. Skinwalker sausage and phantom-egg pasta. Casey, check him?”

Casey did so, using his powerful White Lux to wash across Greyson looking for any sign of the illusion.

”It’s not gonna hold up under intensive scrutiny. Either make it better, or start thinking of ways to minimize them checking on him.”

”It should be distracting for Luis’ Apparition. Familiar ingredients to its own composition, it’ll get confused and ignore the forest for the trees in a manner of speaking.”

Greyson’s brow furrowed.
”Wait… You’re tellin’ me I… Look fine?” he asked almost pathetically. ”But… But I don’t feel no different!”

”He just said it was fucking illusory! Course you don't feel fucking different… Fucking hell, you can't have many braincells left if I'm having to educate you about fucking English words.” Linqian rolled her eyes at him, absolutely not holding back. She never did.

”God dammit, I fucking heard him! But… Fuck… Greyson looked rather dejected.

”You turned your brain into a neon bulb. Not us. It’s gonna be alright. The day of, we’ll hit you with a couple other stimulants. You’ll be a walking Pink bomb waiting to go off. You’ll have your day, Greyson.” Andrade reassured him.

”You agreed to wear the Anchor. You need to entice Brutakus, and any other Viperblood, by being enough of a target. Six, maybe eight entities to bind to?”

”You can’t give me something so that I can at least get a hard-on for ten more minutes of my life!?” he snapped, unable to perceive the change to himself as he tried to use the camera in his phone…

To Greyson, there was no illusion. He could still feel the pain, and it was enough of a connection to remove all belief that he was okay from his own mind. It was the easiest way to see past the illusion, but only useful if one had an inclination to begin with. Casey’s test had been just that: A test to see how easy it would be to gain awareness of the illusion in order to break it from the outside. Though, because they were outside, they weren’t constantly reminded that he was how he was, so the illusion managed to fade back into view after a few seconds for them.

”That’s all you’re thinking about?” Leon asked calmly, looking at Greyson with a frown. He could easily smell the problems still existing inside, but knew that his incredibly keen sense wouldn’t always be available to their enemies.

”God… I don’t even want to get into this in front of other people…” Greyson shook his head, completely dejected.

He looked pathetic enough that Linqian took enough sympathy in him to shuffle closer and carefully put an arm around him. She could be pretty fucking affectionate when she wanted to be, but it was rarely a thing around a larger group of people… or people she disliked… there was long list of reasons against it when it was gross and sappy affection like hugging and that shit.

"I can get you hard, if you want!" Cass blurted out in the absolute worst possible way she could, immediately receiving a death stare from Trisha.
"I mean, give you like a magical boost! But I ain't sure I can pump enough Lux in that you could do anything with it. So maybe that'd just be more depressing… I know it would be for me!"

”Ace… We’ve been over this. What you want is dangerous. I think you should consider yourself lucky that one person let you carry on a legacy in their womb. You don’t need to do that to a second woman, and you really don’t need to pass your genes on like this. Doctor Andy even said, remember? It’s in your blood, in all the nutrients you hold… Pink’s especially toxic.” Andrade said rather dispassionately, both interjecting and revealing Greyson’s deepest wish without much concern.

Leon narrowed his eyes, passing them from Linqian to Greyson, then back.

”You… Son of a bitch… Conception!? That’s what’s concerning you? You’re fucking rich, Greyson, I tell ‘ya.”

”I said that this isn’t a topic for here and now! It’s personal! Greyson snapped as a reply at Leon, whose head craned back slightly in surprise.

”Look, sweet as all that is, we didn’t come down here to talk about the status of Edict’s sailors. We came here to figure out what the plan is, and what our part is.” Casey asserted through the bullshit.
”If Linqian says one of our concerns should be what to do with the rest of the Sycamites, I say you gather the useful ones, and fuck the rest. Maybe it’d be even better if we just told ‘em the world was ending and there was no chance.”

”Yeah, right. Then people like Luca would just go on a fucking deathmarch for St. Portwell. We can’t just hide it…” Leon frowned, shaking his head.
”We need to tell everyone… But it needs to be something like the old days. We need a new Pink Bridger.”

”Which we don't have. The only half fucking Pink Adept we have left would sooner make us all her puppets if she could- not that she can, cause she’s only able to do shit in our dreams.” Linqian said with a frown. She was fairly certain there'd come a point where Anya stopped turning up anyway, when saving face in front of Sloane wasn't important enough. The day couldn't come sooner…

"We could ask-"

“No. I'm not bringing someone else into this… And she has a job, and other things she can't just drop. But we're also not bringing someone else in." Trisha interrupted before Cass suggested the only Pink Adept outside of the Temple itself that they knew. Like it would even work… Trisha herself hadn't been attending meetings, so nobody would be happy if she turned up with a Pink Adept willing to bridge that no one knew.

Cass held up her hands.
"Well I'm outta suggestions."

”It’s gotta be Hari then… Sycamore needs to learn that whatever they think the Temple is, it ain’t gonna be around much longer. And anyone still in St. Portwell should be more than willing to play ball.” Casey asserted, seeing no other way to keep their plan from just leaking out into the morning air.

”To be fair… It’s really only Luca and those goobers from the art collective who are still making moves. Are they really gonna turn down the help?” Leon asked, shrugging and turning toward Linqian.
”Call Aryin! See if they’ve got any pink adepts lined up…”

”God, I'm not your fucking servant, you've got her number.” Linqian reactively snapped, though she went to pull out her phone anyway. It was an excuse to get out of the room for a moment, and Aryin was her best friend at the end of the day… She patted Greyson's shoulder as she stood up.
”Try not to talk enough shit that someone tries to punch your head off while I'm gone.”

Not that she went very far… She didn't plan to go shouting on the phone call, she just couldn't be bothered making it in front of so many people. So she slipped into the bedroom and pushed the door shut to make it.

"Well… that's maybe one problem sorted!" Cass said enthusiastically.

“Are there really so few left?" Trisha asked, glancing between Leon and Greyson. Not that she expected much from Sycamore anyway… They'd never been able to work together unless things were really dire, like they had been ten years ago.

Leon was quicker to confirm than Greyson.

”The last meeting was grim. Whoever wasn’t attached at the hip already scattered to the four winds. Ken and Drake are still MIA with Jack spending just about all his spare time searching for them, Greyson sent Britney off, Alizee and Layla are effectively retired… Stormy. He’s still here, but after the last raid, he’s definitely not looking great. Sully… I don’t want to talk about Sully…

Greyson frowned at Leon as he listed off names of the contemporaries who had stuck around to this point. He wasn’t even mentioning all the people who hadn’t made it this far. Casey looked at Trisha with an equally empathetic frown, wrapping his arm around her and pulling her close.

”We should find Adora… Thank her for accidentally introducing us.”

Leon shook his head grimly, causing a more pronounced frown on Casey’s face.

”Shit…”

Greyson wished he felt sad like them… But there was always going to be a part of him that reveled in the fact that he made it further. It was pure evil, but he didn’t deny that. Simply, it was kept to himself.

”Yep… No more heroes, they say.” he looked at Leon.
”Last of a dead kind.”

Leon gritted his teeth. The eldest and most skilled adepts had really been lynchpins. Now, Greyson was right. They were a dead breed of Sycamites…

”That doesn’t fill me with confidence.” he replied softly.

”It wasn’t supposed to.”

Trisha leaned into Casey, frowning and closing her eyes for a moment. There was bad blood between her and a lot of Sycamore members, but that didn't stop her from feeling sad about how many had died. Because she'd been friends with many at one point, no matter how short that had lasted. And when she first joined the coven she'd really wanted it to be something her family hadn't been… But it wasn't. Just like her family, everyone hated her by the end.

And there'd never be a chance to resolve it now. Even if it was her own fault for not going back in the first place.

“I thought that… Maybe less would die after everyone came together." She whispered. So many people gone… Even Adora, who she'd had an inkling to apologise to. And thank, like Casey said.

"Hey now, don't go tryna tempt fate to take another life." Cass shook a finger at Greyson at his ominous title for Leon, going back to hugging her boyfriend. She rubbed her face in his hair for a moment before continuing.
"There ain't gonna be any heroic sacrifices or shit anyway. Well, aside from yours."

Trisha knew what Greyson meant more than Cass did… There'd been plenty of heroes in the coven of all ages, some of whom seemed to still be alive. But the oldest group… the leaders and organisers… They were all gone. Except for Leon. But with things coming to an end, he probably would only die if everything went wrong and they all did anyway.

“What about… the rich clique? I haven't heard from them in a while… they aren't all… are they?" She couldn't help but ask, none of that group listed. Like her, they hadn't gone back. Unlike her, they'd really stuck together. They were technically her friends. Or, she considered them as friends, even if things were quite combative with some of them. The more time she spent with Casey and talked about things, the more she realised they probably didn't feel anywhere near the same way.

Casey shrugged at Trisha’s question.
”No clue… We stopped tracking after the Elite crashed out with the notes. Chances are, some of them were already Undesired by the time they showed themselves. No telling who until the dust settles and people show back up.”

Leon knew a bit more, but he had to weigh whether or not it was worth saying.
”Maybe it’s best to forget ‘em, Trisha… The Valos’ tried to sell us for the magical equivalent of a corn chip.”

Casey frowned back at his brother, looking down at Trisha to gauge her reaction. He did brace her, hoping she’d not immediately crawl up Leon’s ass over it.

Trisha frowned at Leon, tensing up in Casey's arms.
“They’re not their parents, Leon. Most of them weren't even part of Elite! Jake and Jaska are hardly like Jason… And Gabe's a bitch, sure, but even she's not that bad."

Of the whole group, Gabe was probably the one Trisha clashed with the most. It was hard for them to be considered friends… From an outsider perspective, it was difficult to consider any of them Trisha's friends. Only Sage and Lin vaguely kept in touch, but Trisha saw the group infrequently enough to not feel so put out she cut them all off.

“Jason Valos hates my family far more than he does Sycamore… He's said shit to me that'd make Casey want to kill him if he wasn't already dead- but they're still my friends! They- They may be shit friends, but I'm allowed to want them to at least be alive." She bit her lip, leaning against Casey to try not get more riled up about it. But it was hard. She had so few connections… Of course she'd cling to what little she had, no matter how lacking.
“And I know they weren't part of stealing the notes. I was more involved than them in any of the Elite's shit, so if anyone should be forgotten it's me anyway."

Casey gave a desperate glance to Cass as if begging to be saved before Leon made the-

”Trisha… Don’t do this. Spare yourself, for Christ’s sake, it’s not like you need any more sadness and heartache from the past coming back to punch you.” Leon half-snapped.

Using that wording, Casey knew Leon had something in his head.

”You’re withholding…”

”At the Farm… When the PRA showed up… The old lady told me a few of ‘em had been rescued from some kind of Hex. A prison spell. Not everyone, I guess, but… They feel like it was Dollhouse’s game as well. Maybe in conjunction with House of Cards, maybe not. Pimm was dead on the scene, and Liu was critical. Gabe was stable, but there’s still no sign of Jake. Apparently, the youngest Schmidt was nailed in chunks to a giant dartboard.”

Trisha felt physically sick, turning around to hide her face against Casey for a moment. She wasn't friendly with the Schmidt children. They hadn't been part of Sycamore, and always viewed themselves as… Superior, somehow. Like they all weren't from equally rich families. But that didn't mean Daniel Schmidt deserved that.

Nevermind Sage and Lin, who she had been friendly with. Sage was the most easygoing of the whole group… They'd stayed until the end with Trisha. Sure, they weren't close, but they'd been closer to an actual friend than almost all of the coven. Someone who didn't seem to hate her, at least.

“They- They didn't deserve that." She whispered, squeezing her eyes shut. Her shoulders trembled slightly. There were no tears, but she was struggling with it. It didn't matter how badly they'd treated her or would have continued to treat her, if they didn't keep in touch often and always ended up talking shit at her when she actually attended- or crashed- parties the group had… They were still her friends.

“That… Would've been me too… if I hadn't met you, Casey… Wouldn't it?"

"That ain't the thing to dwell on, Trish. It wasn't you… I mean that shits fucked, but they've clearly been targeting everyone." Cass spoke up, glancing between Leon and Casey. She wasn't really sure what else to say right now. It was a lot of death for all of these Sycamore members to deal with… She knew Leon had lost plenty close to him too. What could you even say?!

”All we can do is stay strong and work together. We’ll push and push until the deed’s done. For everyone we’ve loved and lost along the way.” Leon intoned with clear sadness in his voice.

He didn’t like thinking about the dead either. To him, especially now, they were all still kids in his care. People who he had to make decisions for, and who should’ve been protected under his wing rather than trying to make raw moves with a group of real magical monsters. This wasn’t gangland shit, this was real evil. Actual consequences beyond Greyson’s petty protection rackets.

But Casey could feel every bit of Trisha’s quaking. Her heart and soul, the moment that Leon told the truth… And there was only really one person there who could’ve known more. Yet, he was suspiciously absent from the conversation. He let his head dip slightly, his voice low enough to keep the question between he and Trisha.

”If anyone knows more, it's Andrade. Do you want me to press him?” he asked, eyes focused on the top of her head rather than giving away his feelings to the others.

“I don't know." Trisha whispered. She honestly didn’t. Did she want to find out more, when it would probably only be bad news? If Jake was still missing, what were the chances of him being alright? It seemed slim. And did she really want to know why the fuck that had been done to all of them, rather than any traditional killing? Was it just because they were Elite and Sycamore- Schmidt aside?

“Maybe… Not now. I'll think about it." Trisha shook her head against him, not feeling ready to withdraw from the warm security of hiding against him. She didn't know what her face looked like, and she didn't want to show it to anyone else. And the shaking would only be more obvious without someone to cling to.

Cass was doing her part to comfort Leon too, having moved to fully hug him from the side. She didn't say anything, cause there wasn't shit to say. It didn't bring them back.

Linqian chose that moment to walk back in, phone still in her hand. She paused in the doorway, quickly surveyed the state of things. Very gloomy. Trisha and Casey seemed caught up in their own world- whatever it was, Trisha was clearly upset- then Cass was hugging round Leon like she was trying to imitate how Casey was holding Trisha. At least Greyson seemed to still be… The normal Greyson.

”What the fuck did I miss?”

”Living people thinking about dead people. The usual in this city… What’d Aryin say, any luck on their end?” Greyson asked, clearly a bit detached once people started getting sentimental.

”Ah… The usual.” Linqian didn't have the energy in that moment to jab at Greyson how she was one of those people who quite frequently thought about dead people- or one dead person. There'd been shouting matches over her grief and other shit before, and she wasn't about to join some group sadness session.

”They’ve got someone, thank fuck. It'll be way easier to convince the coven to work with someone from 317 than the Temple… Not that I think you'd throw some weirdo at us, but easier is better right now. I don't have the fucking energy to deal with that shit. Aryin's convinced they'll help, specially since y'know… Jasper's the leaders little brother, and still in danger.” Linqian said, properly walking back in and towards her spot beside Greyson. She did point to Leon on the way past.

”She also asked when we're next going for a drink- fucking bitch has too much time on her hands, I've gotta start sending her on more errands. Obviously I said not right now... Much as I'd love a fucking drink or five. She knows the shit we're dealing with!” Unlike the rest of the Sycamites, Aryin was being kept fairly in the loop. She lived with Linqian, after all, and Linqian trusted her more than she did anyone else. Though they hadn't seen each other since Linqian moved here with Greyson, they'd kept in enough touch to vaguely know what the other was doing.

Greyson snapped his fingers loudly, causing a boney echo.
”You made sure they could do what we need? We need a plan locked away in our heads, and I can’t train anyone to do it the way I-”

”-I think… Once this is over, Linqian. Cass and I can meet, she’ll- You’ll-” Leon redirected toward Cass, cutting Greyson’s nitpicking off at the root before he could spread it too far. After all, he wasn’t the only Pink Adept in the world.
”-love them. They’re a Changeling, a natural bodyshifter.” Leon tried to sound a bit more enthusiastic.

With Casey and Trisha locked out, Greyson was the only one still on the plan. It was the only way he’d get more rest before too long.

”Yeah, thanks Leon. Plan your fucking date after. Not on my time. There’s only a few big moving pieces in this machine, the rest is backup for the cleaning duty. We should handle it all before the PRA has a chance to sweep in, which means cleaning up Dollhouse as thoroughly as you can with that time you have. Which means every single combat Adept and Aberration we can get should be poised for a battle after our plan works… Or doesn’t.

Cass had been nodding along to Leon, before snapping her attention to Greyson with a half grin.
"Oh, so I am gonna get to fight some of those assholes? Awesome! But I don't think you gotta tell us that… Far as I'm aware, super sappy guy over there's been organising that kinda shit since Dollhouse tried to murder us all at Thanksgiving. Right?" She glanced at Leon for confirmation.

And we don't have to worry so much about the PRA. Not them being efficient, at least. I've… Been in touch with Bianca. She got promoted, for some fucking reason, but… Whatever the fuck she did, she's convinced her boss to turn a bit of a blind eye to whatever happens here. For a bit.” Linqian admitted, looking at Leon and Cass rather than Greyson. She'd not exactly mentioned still being in active contact with Bianca, after all. But it was something he'd pushed her to do in the first place- when shit was different- so he couldn’t get that pissy about it.

”She doesn't know shit about the plan, just that there is one.”

Greyson had no qualms about her talking to Bianca. “Run, wild horses.” they said. Once he was gone, there wasn’t a damn thing he could do. There really wasn’t a damn thing he could do right now, either. But, Linqian was a good person. She wouldn’t leave him alone in the lurch… Though, he really wasn’t looking forward to actually saying goodbye.

”Jesus… You trying to earn a night off or something? Working so hard…”

They were all being terribly nonchalant about this. All except Andrade, who seemed to be enraptured by something by his feet. Greyson’s eyes turned downward to look, yet saw nothing.

”I mean, I guess Linqian’s got it all figured out, Guys. We can all go home.” he joked, weakly raising a finger to poke her in the side. ”Meds tiiiiiime…”

”Night off? To do fucking what? Like anyone else could handle your whiny ass for a whole night.” Linqian rolled her eyes. It was like it would kill her to admit she wanted to spend what little time was left together. There'd be plenty of time after for her to go back to pursuing meaningless flings in order to fuck the feelings and nights away.

”You wish I had everything fucking figured out… Y'know as well as I do that I'm not made for fucking sorting out this shit. So no drugs for you yet.”
She caught his hand before he got a chance to poke her a second time, tired gaze towards him softening a bit. Then she turned her head to look at Leon, Cass and Andrade.

”So we've sorted the making him look less ugly shit… Then, dealing with Sycamore is about as planned as if fucking can be. Meeting’s tomorrow morning so… That's enough time for Aryin to sort shit out with 317. We already know the actual plan, after will be dealt with by Temple, remaining Sycamore and 317… I guess we gotta figure out where the fuck to point Sycamore to avoid clashing. But we don't have to worry ‘bout the PRA for a few days. Then the Snake- Viper, fucking whatever. We can figure that shit out after if we really gotta.” Linqian rattled everything off, going through it herself to see if there was really anything else Greyson needed to be around for.

”Anything I've missed we've gotta talk about?”

Cass shrugged, looking at Leon.

By this point, Trisha had calmed down enough to at least tune into the conversation. But it only made her feel worse again… Because she was useless. She might as well have not been at the meeting. What did she contribute? A few words, then a breakdown? She'd been out of the loop so long she didn't have anything useful to say… but she couldn't blame anyone but herself for that. Now that she was trying to get involved, she remembered just how shit she was at helping in the first place. She always just caused more problems than she solved.

She was just as worthless as she was ten years ago.

“Is there anything you need to discuss?" Trisha asked Casey softly, not withdrawing much from him even as she checked back into what was going on outside their bubble.

Casey had one topic that made him nervous. Paranormal combat was always a lid tosser, but this was something that would slow burn right alongside the dissolution of the Temple.

”We’re here in agreement that our intention is to shatter the Dollhouse. That’s really it. Beyond that, I mean… Are we finally dismantling Sycamore? Hardly a coven there to begin with, the only Hold that the group still has is that abandoned bar… But, you guys are still holding the bag on serious shit. Not to mention all the illicitly gathered artifacts that we shouldn’t trust a bunch of shirkers to keep safe.” he asked, doing his best to not let his tone sound upset or frustrated.

The idea that Sycamore could, and may, always be a target was something that hadn’t escaped Leon’s frame of reference. It was worth thinking about, though the way Casey made it sound, one would think there was the possibility of a coven in the future. For Greyson, it was something he’d always wanted… But not like that. Not a whimper. He wanted chaos. He wanted screaming and blood and everyone fighting for it until their last breath.

But Leon wanted that too…

”We can’t just dismantle the Sycamore Tree Coven. There’s too much at stake, and the way I see it, there’s innocent people involved in it that really didn’t even have a choice to be a part of it. They should have a resource to come to for help and support, even if-”

”Leon… That’s real noble, but think about what the fuck you’re saying, man. What is it with cultists thinking that people want to seek comfort in their abusers? People seek comfort from those they admire, and the abuse just further contextualizes the honeymoon periods. Go read a psych book; the last thing some random Sycamite wants is to call you up when they’re being hunted by some puppeteer freak.” Greyson interrupted Leon, shaking his head.
”And I’d ask your opinion, Trisha, but Lord knows you’re the last person who would come to people claiming to be Friends of Sycamore. You’d probably sprint the other way if you heard that shit!”

Trisha frowned, even though Greyson was right. She just didn't want him talking for her. She tensed up a bit, while doing her best to sound calm.
“I would. I don't trust most of Sycamore, nevermind someone claiming to be friends of us. But that doesn't mean everyone else would avoid it… There should be some offer of help. For people like Luca and Lila, who might actually take it and need it."

Linqian couldn't quite hold back a laugh as they discussed if Sycamore should be dismantled or not, as if it was ever really a discussion in the first place.
”None of that fucking matters cause Sycamore's gonna die soon as this shit is done. It died ten years ago! Right now it's just a group of people tryna save their fucking lives, forced together cause they just happen to be tryna kill all of us. Threats gone, everyone leaves, simple as. Offer help, fucking whatever you want, just don't be hurt when it ends up how Greyson says. Either way, there's no point talking about that shit like it's something that’ll even be possible. Just sit back and watch it fucking crumble.”

”That’s not what he meant, Q.” Greyson had taken to shortening her name down to the unique little center.
”This… This shit came ten years after. What makes you think it ain’t coming again? It just takes another jumped up asshole who knows the Stygian Cunt is buried-”

Andrade practically leaned in as if Greyson was about to give up the secret to the air and ruin their plan in an absent minded stupor… But he paused, taking a deep breath.

”All it takes is someone linking it to you guys, and to St. Portwell, to keep all of you and this place in danger. Remember… If this plan really works? Then the spell keeping the resting place locked up tightens. It gets better. But it’ll never be a permanent solution. As long as its in your head, people are in danger…”

”So… Wait. What’re you suggesting then? Leon asked with deep conspiracy in his voice.

Casey looked past his brother to the dying man in the chair, who looked back at the two brothers with a grim smile.

”Erase it all. Like it never happened. If there never was a Sycamore, then the Snake would, by all modern accounts, still be wherever the fuck they unearthed it to start. Nobody would have any reason to realize-”

”Ace… You’re talking about the Record here… How-”

”-The fucking Macguffin!

The same tool that they were using to strip public consciousness of the Beppo Park Incursion… One of the most powerful artifacts bound to the plane of Shimmer, whose very name was a joke because it was so old and esoteric that they couldn’t find the real one… It was at least a fitting name.

”And what the fuck is this Macguffin shit? It can just erase all that? You wanna fucking erase that much of all of our lives.” Linqian frowned, eyes narrowed as they went from Casey to Greyson. Sure, safety would be great. Protecting the city was great.

Protecting Henri led her to even consider doing something so insane.
”That doesn't just erase it's location in our heads. That's a shit ton of relationships- Erase Sycamore, none of us here even fucking met. My parents… Died to nothing. A shit ton of people did. That's erasing a lot’ve important memories for a lot've people.”

Trisha's own frown was equally harsh, arms crossing over her chest as her whole frame tightened. As much as there was so much trauma for her around the Stygian Snake and Sycamore, she didn't want to lose it. She hated the idea of having her mind tampered with on that scale- it was bad enough she had to allow it to lock up the memory of where it was sealed in the first place. There'd been so much bad, but that summer was still so important for who she was. And there were people she didn't want erased like that.

“No way. We're not doing that. Because… It'll have to affect people with Emotional Fields, won't it? Otherwise we'll still be in danger. I'm not losing a whole summer of my life!"

”You both don’t understand!-” Casey became visually excited, perking up and practically leaning forward into Trisha as both his hands came up to cup an invisible force.
”-You’d be-”

”-Absolutely not. You know the toll it takes. The price we pay for covering up things that don’t matter? Think about what it’s asking us for, just to scrub Beppo Park from the Blinds!” Leon pushed, frustration in his voice being incredibly apparent.

”There’s only one real option. You find the other four snakes, and we form the Ouroboros.” Andrade asserted, referring back to his earlier plan.
”If you think for one second that the Akashic Record is going to let go of its knowledge for the sake of your safety, you’re insane. We’ve got a far greater chance of finding the other four ourselves.”

Casey looked down at Trisha, then back at Andrade.

”And we’re supposed to trust that this wasn’t yours and Luis’ plan all along? Reunite the five snakes and usher forth the Eleventh Lux?Become Gods?” he asked, narrowing his eyes.

”Ask Tamara! Ask any of the Second Council! They’ll happily tell you that my logic is sound based on all the information we have as Adepts!” Andrade asserted in return, truly tired of having his judgement questioned in spite of earning every little bit of scrutiny he received.

Trisha frowned, arms tightening around herself. She didn’t like either option. Erase everything, or find and free all the snakes in the hope some insane myth was right. And if they don't do anything, risk people coming after them again… It all sucked. She didn’t even know what to say that wasn’t spilling out negativity that just wasn’t helpful.

”I’m not trusting some fucking ancient record that could be bullshit anyway, even if he’s telling the truth.” Linqian scoffed, cynicism on full display. It was the kind of shit Jinhai always dealt with. Too smart for her, but as soon as it got to abstract shit she struggled to believe it at all.

”I still think throwing the fucking tree its sealed in to the deepest part of the ocean is the best bet.”

”Well it wouldn’t hurt to ask Tamara and that, would it? To see if Andrade ain’t lying and all, no matter what's decided?” Cass piped up, having mostly stayed silent. It didn’t feel like her place to speak on Sycamore or anything.

Trisha frowned slightly, head dropping to stare at her feet as she one upped Linqian’s cynicism, pushing into paranoia.
“What if they want it too? The Snake. To use for what’s… Going to happen.”

”Dadonda’s no friend of the Serpent! The snake! Ancient myth says that the Testudi were just another serpent, but they rebelled themselves! And, and, the story says they forged their homes to travel as Nomads, locking away the evil inside their shells so that they could do good across the Shimmer! They wouldn’t!” Andrade asserted.

Casey and Leon both had to agree with that sentiment… There were few among even the most radical in the Temple who would rationalize an alliance with any of the evil Squamata that still slithered their bellies across the realm.

”That’s no lie as far as I’m concerned. We’re all raised with the story of Adam and Eve, and even if it’s told a Hell of a lot differently than some normal Church, we all get indoctrinated into the idea that snakes are fucking evil. There’s no chance they’d turn on us like that. I think we can trust the input if we wanted to seek it out.” Leon tried to sound like he was sure, even if it came off a little shaky.

Trisha hoped that was true. She didn’t have any reason to distrust Tamara and Dadonda. The Queen knew Dadonda from a time long gone… But Trisha was naturally untrusting and paranoid. Especially when she had some kind of life and future to protect.

But if she pushed back against every solution, that would just reflect badly on her.
“I guess… We should ask. We’ll have some time, if the spell tightens after the plan. We don’t have to decide right now.”

Cass vigorously nodded her agreement at that. Rushing into a solution for something so major in one meeting didn’t seem smart at all! Especially when all the solutions were so drastic.

”Right, cause it’ll be easy to find these other Snakes- if they exist. I’m really struggling to believe that shit… But whatever. I know you probably won’t be including me in these lil meetings after the plan’s finished anyway, since there won’t be an important guy for me to keep from death's door.” Linqian rolled her eyes as her head jerked towards Greyson.

”Why the fuck do you do this to yourself, Linqian?!” Greyson snapped upward, hand balling a weak fist that smashed against his own leg in frustration.
You dictate the terms of your own involvement! You always have!”

He actually pushed up, weakly standing now and turning his whole body to nearly block the two of them off from the rest of the people in the room.

”If you care… If you give even a single solitary fuck about anything left on this planet, then you’ll stick it out until the end! In fact… On my fucking deathbed, I demand that you stay with these fucking people and keep them honest! You’re the most honest person I know! The only person who wouldn’t lie to someone’s face to make them feel better! Quit selling yourself short and take your fucking agency back! I love you! So… So fucking much, Linny… Don’t fucking do this for me, or for Jinhai’s memory, don’t even do it for Henri… Take back your fucking life for yourself! I’m leaving you all the shit you need to be financially secure and successful, but it’ll never be enough if you can’t learn to break this evil fucking cycle!”

He had both of her hands in his, fingers wrapped between one another and squeezing with all the loving force he could muster. He didn’t care that there were others here… Hearing her talk like that, discluding herself from the conversation preemptively… It was just like her.

And Casey listened to it all, only to place a soft look at Trisha. He wasn’t going to say anything, but the similarities were glaring. Two women with no self confidence, just veiled layers of defense piled on top of themselves and painted to look like a structure. But, he couldn’t not speak up.

Except Leon got to the same conclusion first.

”That’s honestly pretty fucking touching, Greyson… But, that just makes me wonder why you two chicks were never fucking friends! Sounds like you both have the same bottom line ass issue.” Leon absently intoned to both Trisha and Linqian, half a dumb smile forming on his face…

After all, he knew exactly what he was doing with a comment like that.

“I don’t have the same issue as-”
”Don’t fucking compare me to that prickly-”
Trisha and Linqian snapped at the same time, stopping midsentence to stare at each other- as much as was possible around Greyson.

”Babe, don’t say that!” Cass spoke at the same time too, voice cutting above the rest as she lightly hit Leon’s shoulder. She didn’t know Linqian well, but she knew how Trisha reacted to things… And she knew exactly why they weren’t friends! Cause yeah, they had the same issue, and they were both reactive. In different ways, from what she’d seen, but she imagined they’d exploded at each other once, Trisha had held onto that… Then that resentment just pissed Linqian off every time they talked. At least that was what Cass guessed to be the case.

“Even if we do have the same issue, that doesn’t mean we’re similar or get on.” Trisha said, pouting slightly. She didn’t think Linqian was a bad person, or anything, but she didn’t exactly want to be compared to the person who got so angry all the time. Sure, Trisha knew she was reactive, but it wasn’t the same.

”Fine, fine, see whatever similarities you want.” Linqian jerked her head dismissively at Leon. She had more important things to focus on… Mainly the lovesick idiot standing on his barely working legs!

”If you fucking love me that much, then sit the fuck down, Greyson! You don’t have to hurt yourself to prove your point!” Linqian half stood herself with genuine concern in her eyes, trying to wrangle Greyson back down onto the sofa as carefully as possible. He made it difficult with how tightly he was holding onto her hands. Not strong enough she couldn’t break it… But she didn’t want to.

She just also didn’t want him to fall over and hurt himself!

She frowned slightly, voice dropping to something quieter and softer.
”I’ll stick it out. But y’know how fucking hard it is for me to live for myself when I’ve never even had the chance to. Fucking hard to do shit you don’t know.”

Trisha went from pouting up at Casey to look at the side, pretending she didn’t hear something very similar- just more curse filled- to things she’d said previously.

”It’s called standing on fucking business! God dammit, I’m… I’m injured, I’m not a fucking cripple!” the crippled man snarled, no longer strong enough to prevent being ragdolled and absolutely pissed off about it.

His masculinity had never been a problem. Confident as he usually was, it was only now that there’d been so much time spent practically invalid that he was becoming sore over it. Actively upset, even. He hated that he couldn’t promise that he’d give her anything else to live for… But he desperately wanted her to make it.

”In the end… We die alone. Nobody else is inside you to see you off.” he mumbled as he tried to catch his breath, finally back down on the sofa after a small struggle.

Casey clutched at Trisha, having felt the shifting over her head and watching as her gaze left him. There was shame he couldn’t prevent.

”My point was: If there’s two people more qualified to work together and build a support network for, essentially, abused Covenmates… Then I don’t know them. Because, I know you two… No bullshit women who’ve been hurt by the system before, and know enough to make it better.” Leon gritted his teeth, hoping he’d be able to get his true point across.

”What’re you saying?”

”That the original leadership is gone… But there’s still people like Luca out there who are gonna need people’s help and support long beyond this bullshit. I can’t be the person… But, you two can. Because nobody will ever believe that you’re there to help them for someone else’s purposes. Essentially, you’re both totally uncorrupted by power and influence.” Leon’s words hung in the air.

”Oh, Luca won’t be coming to me for help.” Linqian laughed slightly at the suggestion she’d be in any way good at helping other people. She could barely help herself! Sure, maybe it would be easier when she wasn’t struggling to keep her head above the water thanks to Greyson leaving her financially secure for the first time in ten years.

She sighed, sitting back down herself, one hand subtly moving to take Greyson’s again.
”Y’know him and Lila- the one other person with a bad fucking Apparition problem- are friends with Evelynn. She hates my guts. The feeling is fucking mutual… But that doesn’t exactly make me approachable, does it? I get what you’re saying, Leon, but we’re also both disliked than more than half the coven. I’m planning to stay in the city, so if people really need help? Sure, I’ll do it. But I don’t expect anyone to ask.”

”I think most of the coven would rather punch me than ask for help, if we’re going by my track record.” Trisha said quietly, gaze dropping from the side to her feet. She wanted to believe what Leon was saying. That she could be there for people in the coven who needed help like she had. Nobody else had offered it to her until Casey had… But she didn’t know if she could be. Because what did she know that could help? What could she really offer?

She chewed her bottom lip anxiously.
“I want to try. But I don’t think anyone likes me enough to ask for my help either.”

”There’s fucking… Nobody left! What, two dozen people? What the fuck is your sentiment toward them in the first place!?” Casey finally piped up, teeth gritted together.

He was a little sick of this past that he’d never had the chance to be a part of. As an outsider, the Sycamore Tree Coven only seemed to do more damage than it did any good. That was the legacy: One of pain. No better than the Temple in his estimation, just innocent because eighty percent of the membership couldn’t formulate enough thought coherence to successfully mount a defensive operation against a large-scale Apparitional incursion…

As if that was something simple in the first place…

”Let it die a death! Fuck helping! And, honestly, I think that’s bullshit especially coming from you, Leon! When you were always the asshole who wanted to keep your finger on the pulse. Because you’re just as much of a control freak as our Mother!” Casey finished, and Trisha would be able to feel his breath getting quicker.

Leon frowned, shaking his head. But before he could pipe up, Casey continued.

”I wouldn’t stay in this fucking city if he was paying me to either, Linqian. Ten-to-one, once the Temple collapses, the few serious Covens left will swoop in like vultures and engorge themselves on the remains! And then, Emily G. Reed gets everything she ever wanted! You’re not gonna want to be here for that!” he asserted.

Linqian stared at Casey, before letting out a short laugh.
”Now it’s starting to feel like a real fucking Sycamore meeting! Arguments and just getting stuck with shit… But I’m not staying in the city for him. I’m staying- at least part time- cause the one bitch I got left in my life lives here, and they don’t seem to want to move. If I happen to help any remnants of the coven? Great! But it’s not for that. And like I said before… The coven itself will fucking die anyway! But the people and their problems won’t. Well, they might, with the way poor Luca was looking. I can take a bitch like Emily, though.”

Trisha frowned, shrinking into herself and Casey. She knew it was stupid to have any kind of sentiment towards them, or to think about helping… Or that she could help. She didn’t even plan to stay after the Temple was gone. They were going to go somewhere else… So she was just lying to herself and everyone else that she wanted to try. Because she wanted a future with Casey more than anything else.

She didn’t want him to get any more upset than he was. At least, that’s what she assumed he was. Upset or angry. She didn’t look up to see Casey’s expression, but she could feel his tension and breathing.

Trisha nodded slightly, speaking incredibly quietly.
“Casey’s right. Sycamore isn’t worth that… Effort.”

Cass’ head jerked between everyone, trying to keep up with what the fuck was happening. Kill it, don’t, help, don’t… What the hell?!
”Hey, c’mon Casey, that ain’t fair. It ain’t like Leon’s telling anyone to put their life on the line by offering some help! Like Linqian said- Sycamore may die, but people that need help won’t!”

”You’re a good person, Cass… You’re naturally inclined to help people, and that’s great. But, this ain’t Trisha’s fight… So, all I want to know is: Are we trapping the snake, or are we just hiding it better. If it makes any difference, we already have one of the other snakes.” Casey’s voice lingered for a moment as Andrade’s eyes got wide.

”What!?-” Andrade asked aloud, panic in his voice.
”-W-w-which!? How!?”

Casey waved Andrade off.
”Classified. Leon? Can we trust you to get the scoop from Tamara and Dadonda? Or should Trisha and I-”

Leon could feel his brother’s own desire to escape starting to resemble Trisha’s more and more… Maybe it was reflective.

”Trisha… You should be the one. Dadonda hates Lelou. But, he and Seillean seemed close.” Leon said, trying not to emotionally grab hold of them both to pin them into the spot.

”Wait! Wait, wait, wait… Trisha… Ask the Queen! Andrade’s voice hung in the air, eyes staring up at Trisha with baited breath.

Casey didn’t want to force Trisha into it, but if there was concern over who was going to tell the truth, it could easily be put to bed here. Casey’s hands gently rubbed against Trisha as he took a deep breath.

”Maybe that’s not such a bad idea… Worst case, she doesn’t know whether or not the Ouroboros story is real… Right?”

Trisha pressed her lips together. She didn’t want to right now. She wanted this whole thing to be done. But she wanted to go and talk to Tamara and Dadonda less. Because they’d expect her to do it soon, when she was struggling to deal with all these people she knew better for any amount of time.

But the thought of doing it while they all watched her made her feel incredibly uncomfortable, even if Casey would be there.

“I’ll do it if we can go somewhere else. Another room, or apartment… I don’t care, just somewhere the two of us. I don’t want to do it in front of everyone.” She admitted eventually, leaning into Casey and taking a deep breath.

Casey didn’t even give anyone time to dispute her request. With her still tucked into his arms, he slipped backward and turned his body to prompt her onward.

”Borrowing your apartment!” Casey managed to look at Cass as he was shuffling Trisha off, disappearing around the doorframe and pushing up so that he was next to Trisha and holding her with both arms. He didn’t say anything until they were both inside Cass’ apartment with the door closed behind them all alone.

His hand swept up against the door, Orange Lux crashing across its surface and onward through the surface of the walls, completely soundproofing the apartment from the outside. As he did so, he looked down at Trisha.

”You don’t need to fucking do this, Trisha… However they make you feel. It’s okay to not want to help them…” Casey asserted, jaw clenched in anger as he’d seen what the candor of Sycamore did to her constantly.

Trisha shuffled around to face him, hugging close to him. It was difficult. Because some of the people that needed help were the ones she really didn’t hate. Luca, even Lila after their fight… But nobody there had ever been there for her. It didn’t matter they’d had their own problems then, or hadn’t actively participated in hurting her.

“But doesn’t that make me a bad person?” She asked quietly.
“Because… Some of them really do need help. More than I do- did. And they don’t have you like I do.”

”They never took the chance on you. You were just a fucking kid Trisha… Fuck them! Fuck these people! Don’t do this for anyone else besides yourself, and to Hell with their concerns. What happened to you wasn’t right!” he asserted, knowing full well that if he had it his way, they’d nuke St. Portwell just to bury the sycamore tree under a pile of radioactive ash.

”If some asshole wants the Snake bad enough, they’re gonna find a way to get it one way or another. This doesn’t need to be your fight. When we’re gone, it’ll be so fucking far away… You’ll never see any of these people ever again… And if Leon ever tries to make you feel bad, it’ll be far away. And then, you can ask him why he’s not here, sticking around trying to help out some magical fucking charity cases…”

Trisha nodded slowly, trying not to panic just at the thought of that. Because even though she’d always spat back in his face, Leon had always been that righteous enforcer back in the day. His judgment wasn’t easy for her to deal with… And she thought he was easier to get on with now, but it turned out that was just because of the seal’s suppressing. There was Cass to think about too.

She didn’t want her stuck in the middle. More than that, Trisha feared that Cass would judge her too…

“I know… I didn’t go back for a reason. I didn’t want any of this. Just because I helped fight that fucking Snake so long ago, I’m expected to be stuck with this? It isn’t fair.” Trisha sniffed.
“Nobody would’ve helped me or cared if I died. Leon wouldn’t. But it’s hard… Because I feel like I’m fourteen again. When he started talking like that, and Linqian and Greyson just… Being themselves. It’s everything I wanted to avoid. But it’s fine, I can do this much because you’re involved! But I’m not helping here because I care about Sycamore. It’s because I care about you, and Cass, and Mia, Hari and Ed, who won’t leave this city. I just… It makes me feel selfish. But why? I shouldn’t have these responsibilities from something I joined at fourteen!”

It came spilling out, especially now that they were alone. In the face of his anger towards Sycamore she couldn’t keep her own conflicting feelings inside. It was difficult. Because there was everything she’d wanted from Sycamore, but never gotten. Deep and heavy resentment contrasted by pitiful hope they’d all suddenly like and include her.

”You should not be forced into feeling this way… Some people step up, and that’s great. But some people never asked, and never wanted. You stood when you were asked… When the danger was there. Now? Well…”

He couldn’t help feeling like he at least wanted to protect the city based on the principle that it was his childhood home. For all the nightmares, there were dreams here too… Keeping the city safe felt like an objectively good goal, but he could never ask her to have that same connection. Nor did he want to convince her over it. It was her call, and if all this pain was just that? Why push harder?

”I’ll convince Leon that it’s his job. You just… Do this last thing for them, then we’re going upstairs. Because I’ve had it with these sadsops.” Casey asserted, gripping Trisha’s hand in confidence.
”No matter what the Queen’s answer is, it ain’t our job to find a solution.”

“I don't… I still don't mind helping with this plan as much as I can. I don't want the city destroyed- or us with it. But when the Temple's gone, that's it. When we leave I'm not coming back." Trisha responded with as much confidence as she could muster, holding Casey's hand tightly in return.

Because if they really did make it that far, she believed it would happen. She'd be able to properly leave it all behind. Permanently, unlike when she went to University.

“Alright… I'll ask her."
Taking a deep breath, Trisha closed her eyes, fully leaning against Casey as she did. A gentle knock where she knew the Queen could hear, getting an eventual sleepy greeting in response.

Do you know about it? About the Stygian Snake, and the other four. The… Ouroboros?

There was a pause before the Queen responded.
I do. I did not recognise it at first back then. Nor have I ever seen the form it took before it was split. But I know.

Will getting all of the Snakes… stop them? Or will it make things worse?

Another pause.
They are beholden to their nature.

What does that mean.

It is not a path to Godhood as you are concerned about. But I have not witnessed it myself, so I cannot be sure the inclination to eat themselves will outweigh that to destroy others. I have only ever seen their destructive nature.

Alright… Thank you.

Trisha pulled out of her mind, blinking rapidly as she squinted against the light of the outside world.
“She knows about the Ouroboros, but she doesn't know if it'll work. Just that it won't help Andrade get Godhood or anything."

So what if a new Ancient somehow formed? Was that worse than Andrade and Luis holding the power?

”Well shit… I can’t say that fills me with a lot of confidence, but… I don’t know, my assumption is that if we go with uh, what’s her name… Linqian? If we go with her plan, then there’s even less of a chance of it being safe. And if we already have one of the puzzle pieces…-”

Say it. Be honest.

”I’m honestly invested in seeing what the fuck happens. Even if it somehow winds up worse… At least we had the best of intentions. Hell, maybe, if it goes bad and the snakes form a new Ancient, it’ll choose us as its chosen.” he laughed, a rather morbid thought to have run through his head.

Trisha managed a half laugh, shaking her head at him.
“I’d have to get over my… Trauma really quickly if that happened. I also don't think either of us would be good evil Ancient chosen."

She smiled slightly at him. She didn't feel much better about the whole thing, but she was at least somewhat convinced it wasn't her burden to bear. If it went wrong… well it was just as likely to go wrong otherwise.

“You’re right, we did. Maybe by the time we find them all we'll have a better idea… I doubt we'll find all of them before the plans done, since Greyson doesn't look like someone with… all that long to live. So then we'll know if we can at least trust Andrade a little bit. And we'll have to stick around until the Temple's gone anyway."

”We’ll work out what we can, then. Everything else, we’ll get through it. We love platitudes around here.” Casey sarcastically giggled, smiling down at Trisha before bending and placing a long kiss on her lips.

”Whatever comes, I’m so fucking proud of you… And happy I’m yours. C’mon, let’s just tell them, then head back upstairs… We’re not gonna be there in the middle of everything when it happens, after all, and anything else, I can get from Leon or Cass directly. I’ve got a few hours before there’s another meeting about the fresh Kindles from Beppo…”
Hidden 8 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Home

After passing on what the Queen knew, Trisha and Casey escaped home for half an hour of quiet time spent together. Just cuddling silently in the Den, with Trisha making it clear Casey could snooze if he wanted to. They didn't get much time together, but he'd also barely slept… and she really didn't mind as long as she could be snuggled up to him.

But their peace was always going to be interrupted. Especially when they'd already agreed to talk to Cass and Leon afterwards.

Quite the opposite of almost everyone else involved, Cass was still a bundle of energy as her and Leon piled into the elevator to go up for a post meeting debrief. Or whatever the fuck it was going to end up. Maybe Trisha and Casey would decide they didn't want to do it at all and tell them to fuck off at the door! Neither had exactly looked up for company… But there was shit they had to talk about without all the others' involvement. As the group that'd still be around each other when shit finished.

Cass had even bought them a bit of time by pulling Linqian aside to quickly teach her a neat little Green spell to help in certain areas. Not one that Cass had ever had to use practically, but she was all about exploring whatever Green Lux shit she could!

It'd been an opportunity for Cass to give Linqian a bit of a boost too. Just some light spells to reduce tiredness and help her keep going without getting more and more miserable. Like caffeine but better and longer lasting! Because while shit was rough for everyone- the whole situation was rough- she was the one looking after the dying loved one. Greyson himself had magical drugs, so it only seemed fair Cass tried to give Linqian a little help in the same area.

Doing what she could where she could, because she was involved now whether people like it or not. Though she understood why Leon didn't want her in active danger… They'd just have to have more talks and probably arguments about how he went about saying that shit now!

But not now. Cass did her best to do the one thing she did best- staying positive, sharing good vibes… Keeping things light while it was just her and Leon, rather than dwelling on the shit they'd just talked about.

"What're the chances Casey's sleeping like a baby when we get up there?" She asked with a wide grin up at Leon, swinging her body from side to side like the elevator was a rollercoaster.
"I bet he is! Maybe he won't've even reached their sofa, and'll just be splayed out on the floor with Trish curled up against him like a cat!"

Leon wasn’t terribly concerned at this point either, able to keep things rather light given the severity of the situation. He was more confident than he ever had been as a teenager, and now that all of the ego was rushing back, he had every bit of peace of mind he could muster. The whole thing broke down into two very simple possibilities: Survive and prosper, or die in blood and fury. Lelou was no friend of the Stygian Snake, her agency bound to other ancients like the Deer and the Hound, but she’d been absent during those many years. Experiencing the Hound’s realm, she missed the War of the Eleventh Ancient, and had no real understanding of this Eternal Ouroboros that the humans seemed to know about.

But the Pollen Queen knew, and that old bastard of a tortoise supposedly knew. Contemporaries who hadn’t escaped the bounds of Shimmer, and lived through that nightmare… She was only truly regretful over the fact that she didn’t really have anything to offer them to begin with. If she had it her way, she’d have the Sycamore carved down to a chew toy. It wasn’t like all that power wasn’t greatly tempting. A fifth-fragment of a God whose Lux was a color they couldn’t even see? Who wouldn’t want the chance to harness that and run away with it?

Yet, they intended to join it back together in some perverse ritual? A self-binding ideal? She could pull the basic idea from Leon’s head. The idea that, whether they were neutral, good or evil, the five serpents would happily attempt to devour one another at a consistent rate, never allowing any of the individuals to fully integrate another. There wasn’t just a lot of magic necessary: There was actual factual mathematics seemingly necessary… Not to mention the fact that there needed to be a willing pacemaker…

She’d heard that there was benevolence within the group. That one of the five had been the manifestation of good and justice in its whole. They’d need to connect with that piece, but that meant finding the others, and then figuring out the real truth. And all of that seemed like a rather shaky prospect. At least the events coming in the direct future looked like better prospects.

”Casey can’t be sleeping. We’re gonna be leaving, he knows. He’s gonna be too wired.” Leon said casually in reply, hand gently rubbing the top of Cass’ skull with an absent stare ahead.

He was thinking about his own problems more than he was about the Sycamore situation. The collapse. He was genuinely worried about the fresh Kindles, and what kind of support they’d receive after things were said and done. That wasn’t what the meeting was for today… Today was a total farce in that regard. There would be a lot of people, and they’d be receiving information based on the false notion that the Temple as an establishment would see them through the hardship.

But what would the Temple really be come January?

”We should press our faces up to their windows, like sucker fish in a tank. We should be funnier. he grinned, knowing he was suggesting just being annoying for the sake of it. But maybe one of them would laugh…

"Ooooh, I love how you're thinking, Babe!" Cass grinned wickedly back at him, a little spark in her eyes. Maybe it wasn't the right time for silly antics… but maybe it was the perfect time! Some way to lighten the mood. Trisha probably wouldn't laugh, but Cass was sure she'd be amused underneath any glaring. And hopefully Casey would! If he did, maybe Trisha actually would, instead of feeling like it'd kill her to enjoy silly things!

"We gotta like, stack. You get your face right above mine… That'll be extra goofy!’ She laughed, rubbing her head vigorously against his hand.
"How's this look? Stupid enough?!"

She puckered her lips, imitating a fish goofily.

”It’s good, but I was thinking we’d go whole hog y’know, like-”
He opened his mouth into as big of an O shape as he could, rotating his tongue over and over again like he was trying to lick the frosting off of a cake.

Then he stuffed his hand against his face, pushing his nose up and suctioning the hand tight with his mouth before letting it go with a pop.

”Then, we can be like ‘Aw sorry figured you’d want a free window cleaning.’!” he started laughing more openly, big dumb grin plastered on his face.

It was a lot better to be happy-go-lucky than it was to be stuck downstairs in the sappy mire, after all… He hadn’t given his life up for something stupid, after all. He’d have much more to come, and that part was exciting enough to be happy about.

"Oh dude, you're awful! That's so fucking gross… I love it!" Cass was cackling like a maniac, hand flying up to slap Leon's arm a few times- as she tended to do when hit by intense laughter or excitement.

"See… this would be the perfect time for me to pull out the extra long tongue! Then I can get more've their window… oh fuck, Trisha's gonna act so annoyed… She's gonna do that thing-!" Cass forced herself to stop laughing for a moment, face scrunching up into an imitation of the expression Trisha put on over shit like this. Like she was sucking on a lemon.

"And pretend she ain't finding it funny at all! Which she totally will be!" The expression broke quickly and she was back to laughing.
"Really were doing ‘em a favour. That windows gotta be a bitch to clean!"

Leon reactively let his tongue extend to the maximum comfortable length… Somewhere by his knees before he had to put a request for some further melding. He found that, now without the seals, he had a comfortable amount of freedom with his bodily transformations. Not quite to the Green Lux Changeling level, he was still able to bend, break, stretch, shrink and inflate every part of himself. He could look like a completely different person, even, and all on command! Like he was suddenly a cartoon character in the real world…

”Babe, that’s the Trisha expression. When we were younger, I don’t think I saw her look any different.” Leon laughed aloud, the elevator finally stopping and sliding open to let them on through.

Leon gave a wave to Norm in the office, who threw up a set of finger guns in return as they passed on toward the roof.

Inside their abode, Casey and Trisha had in fact made it into the den. And, like Leon assumed, Casey wasn’t sleeping.

”I know it shouldn’t bother me, but why is it that every time this show gets good, they do something to fuck it up? Six seasons, forty-five minutes an episode, and I can probably count the number of times I’ve been satisfied by it on one finger.”

As a matter of quick things to do, Casey and Trisha had established a laundry list of popular shows and movies from the last twenty years that neither bothered to watch. On hard days a comfort show was more appealing. But, Casey was far more active mentally today, and given their vague time constraint, he opted for an episode of ”Stranded”.

Mostly because he was obsessed with how bad it was. He’d heard so many adults singing its praises when he was a kid, but it was proving to be a terrible fucking show through and through. At least from where he stood. He felt his White Lux alarm, spotting out Cass and Leon as they came up the stairway toward the roof, but didn’t bother doing anything but remotely popping the door handle so the door would be ajar for them to enter into.

Because he had no intention of leaving this couch, or the woman curled in his arms, until he absolutely had to. He was far too content for anything else.

Trisha didn't have the same magical alarm, and her bees were in relaxing mode since the extra big bee was there to keep her safe. She was contentedly snuggled up to Casey, practically buried into him. It made seeing the screen difficult but… From what they'd seen so far, there wasn't much worth watching.

“Maybe they did it on purpose. To make you keep watching because you think it might get good… They're trying to bait us." She suggested, unaware there were other people fast approaching.

Until Cass very loudly exclaimed, "Aw, fuck, Babe, what's the point of they ain't gonna see us? I ain't cleaning their windows for free!"

Cleaning the…

”You stay away from those fuckin’ windows, freaks!” Casey called from inside, causing Leon to instantly suction himself to the window.

It was enough that he knew.

Cass immediately wriggled herself in front of and under him, getting right in there in that loud window action.

Casey could only chuckle, half curling into Trisha with a groan.

”It’s every waking fucking moment… Was living with her always like this? Because I remember a time when Leon was too cool to be annoying like this.” he groaned into Trisha’s neck.

“Always like this." Trisha grumbled, face scrunching up just like Cass had imitated earlier. So sour, but it wasn't in her eyes like it would be when she was genuinely annoyed.

“She played every practical joke on us under the sun. Me and Diyah threatened to kick her out a few times." She let out a slight huff, turning her head so her nose buried in his hair.
“She was never too cool. I… don't think Leon will be again either… they're bad influences on each other!"

”They’re sucking our fucking windows… he sighed.

”You should just fucking sting them. It's better than what I have set up out there.” he said calmly, knowing those two idiots could damn well hear him from outside.

Leon assumed he wouldn’t dare activate whatever nightmarish crossfire defensive system he’d turned that roof into, but even Trisha probably wasn’t aware of the dozens and dozens of camouflaged firearms functioning as orange/white defensive turrets. But, ultimately, Leon was wrong in a way he hadn’t imagined. If Trisha didn’t want to retaliate, Casey would be sure to do so.

And so, calling a bluff, Leon patted Cass on the shoulder before growing even more vigorous. The window tasted like nothing, thankfully. Just frost and air, all the bacteria freezing off the triple-thick plate glass. They were well maintained, mostly because Casey was anal about keeping things looking good…

Cass saluted him like a soldier going into battle, absolutely going more ham at it. It wasn't like Casey would shoot them! Probably! Even if he did, she could take a few bullets! She could do this for hours.

That was before the first bee sting. Then the second, then tens of them. Trisha wasn't trying to kill them, but she was annoyed enough to have about a hundred bees descend on each of them.

And it hurt! She could feel the venom from the sting working its way through her body. But worse than that-
"Fuck, y'know how hard it is to resist squashing ‘em, Trisha, plleeeaaassseeee!"

She couldn't fucking kill any of them! Cause that meant hurting Trisha, and she wasn't gonna do that.

“Then leave my windows alone." Trisha didn't bother moving, of course. The two outside had super hearing… And Cass was wailing loud enough that she could hear her.

"Fine, I yield, I yield- Leoooonnn, our new window cleaning business is done for! Bee related attacks!"

Leon didn’t mind bee stings. They weren’t even getting through to the nerve endings, especially when he was able to essentially bury them beneath raw flesh. But the vague lingering itch that it left, the natural venom from bee stings starting to course through him, was annoying enough for him to stop as well. Like the bear trying to eat the honey in the hive…

”Coming in is usually a surefire way of getting them away!” Casey taunted, rubbing Trisha’s shoulders and giggling.

Leon pushed through the door, sliding in with Cass and closing it behind them in spite of the few lingering bees harrying their entry.

”You guys actually gonna, like, greet us? Leon asked, used to being practically blockaded at the door by the two of them.

However, since right before Thanksgiving, they had Cass’ get-together up here, Casey wasn’t so concerned about his family being welcome in the house. The way he saw it, they were allowed there. They may as well make themselves comfortable.

”Nah, you know the drill. There’s drinks in the fridge.”

Leon grimaced, then shook his head. What a turnaround… He looked at Cass with half a question in his eyes, almost begging her to take the reins.

Cass was perfectly chill with the whole not being greeted thing, content to half treat it like her own home because of it. She’d lived with Trisha for long enough that things were perfectly chill between them anyway… At least, she’d gotten used to just walking in then. Not that Trisha was ever that happy when Cass just barged into her bedroom!

”There better be some good shit in there!” Cass called back, hands coming up to pat Leon’s back as if pushing him towards the Den. She swung them by the fridge, of course, diving in. Thankfully that shit was stocked with soft drinks and booze alike- though not as much of the latter as she had. But at least Trisha enjoyed a beer or two as much as she did, even if it was much less frequent!

She pulled one out for her and Leon before urging him onwards.

”Oh, wait, hold these, I gotta-” Cass shoved the bottles into Leon’s hands, darting back into the kitchen to grab a glass. She started making a horrific sound as she bounded back over, like she was working up a big glob of spit to further dirty their place. She finished right as she stepped into the den, spitting a small ball of off yellow bee venom. .

”Do this! Cool, right? Now I ain’t gotta worry ‘bout shit lingering!”

“Can you not wave that around?” Trisha grumbled, head half lifting from where it rested against Casey to frown at Cass. She was a bit less comfortable with the other two just walking in, and that becoming the thing but… The comfort from cuddling up with Casey outweighed that. She wanted to be as close to him as possible while he was there.

”Hey, this is all your bees hard work I’m showing off!”

Leon was simultaneously grossed out and impressed. He’d seen worse, of course, but it was the casualness of the vomit-like gag that she coughed up the venom from her system.

”Oh, Christ… Metabolize it next time! My God as sexy as it is to have you showing off like that…”

Casey laughed aloud.

”That’s quite the showoff. I wish I’d never had to be the one to see that, though!” he chided at both of them, still managing to wave his hand toward the empty section of couch for them to occupy.

”We were just watching this bullshit trash. Tell ‘em how good Stranded is, Babe.” he taunted her, hoping to drive her into a fit of rage over it… Teasingly, of course…

Good? Maybe if you're an idiot." Trisha let out a soft huff, face scrunching up again. Her cheeks puffed out a bit as thought about all the shit that had happened in the show. Or more, not happened.

“It keeps… Baiting us! It seems like it's going to get good then it completely ruins it. Consistently. I- I've never felt so taunted by a show before." She gripped her hands into loose fists, getting properly worked up about it. It was so frustrating!

"So it ain't something I should check out?" Cass laughed as she clambered onto the empty bit, grinning at the two of them.
"Though getting teased like that by a show can be fun. Gets you a riled up and shit!"

“It’s just disappointing. And Casey refuses to stop in the middle of it! He wants to get to the end even though I bet it'll be the worst thing ever!" Trisha ended with another huff. Though she didn't actually mind that much when it was doing something with Casey.

”I can probably explain that.” Leon offered, grinning as he flopped down after Cass. He took a long gulp of beer, a smug grin peeling across his face.

”Yeah! Well, we grew up in the same environment.” Casey asserted, shaking his head.

(anyone interested react?)

”You just couldn’t watch anything with Mom around. She was awful.” Leon laughed, rather loudly too.
It caused Casey to groan in frustration.

”There was no point watching if she was around and even a little invested. She’d just fuckin’ ruin it! And, like, I get it, she didn’t really mean to-”

Leon’s face drooped slightly, disagreement clear.

”-Man, don’t even defend it. She absolutely meant to. Maybe I noticed a little more because I was older, but she knew. Remember we used to watch all those competition shows as a family? She used to torture Elise about it. She’d mention shit out of pocket all the time, then when it came up, Elise would freak out because she couldn’t outspoil Ma?” he asserted, shaking his head in vague frustration.

Casey’s deep breath should’ve been anger, but he knew he really had to start letting these sorts of things go… It’d been a while since he’d been to a therapist, but that was the last thing they’d been working on. Looking toward letting things go. Eventually, he hoped to get back to a place where he could order a steak without having to hide it in something. But to let go of that association, he had to let go of a whole lot of other things.

Maybe he’d never get there. There was a lot. But, start somewhere.

So the sigh became a chuckle, and Trisha would be able to feel a slight moment of tension turn into physical warmth as he rubbed his hands up and down her arms for a moment.

”Yeah… She really did that shit. So, I’d like to watch the end. I like to watch the end of anything that doesn’t get spoiled.” he finally admitted.

Leon nodded, frown improving instantly. His hand patted Cass’ leg.

”That’s just it! Makes us pretty anti-spoiler, for obvious reasons. Mia can do it too, but she actually does it accidentally. She usually can’t follow shit like long-form shows without getting lost in where she is.” he offered the explanation, hoping Casey wouldn’t mind a little dialogue. Since, he could recognize that it wasn’t usually a way he’d react.

”I at least want to think that, with the info I have at this point, Mom started like that too. Just, y’know, being too ditzy to really follow the plot and consciously-”

Leon threw his hand up, causing Casey to pause reactively.

”-You’re defending her.” Leon said simply, almost dismissively, causing Casey to scoff.

”I think I’m trying to offer more context. Ladies? Thoughts?” Casey asked, knowing that he’d have at least one friend, if not two depending on how interested she was.

”Oh, don’t try and ro-”

"Heyyy, no making this more've an argument." Cass interrupted, one hand shooting up to pinch and tug at Leon's cheek teasingly.

Trisha shifted slightly in Casey's arms, turning herself so she could better see everyone without sacrificing any closeness. She didn't like Lynette at all, but Casey really was just offering context. Leon interrupting and dismissing him upset her. He was just deciding he was right and pushing it on all of them… It made her get a little tense against Casey, even though she wasn't the one being cut off.

“He is just giving more context. And you shouldn't be interrupting him anyway. He didn't interrupt you." Trisha said quietly, feeling more confidence when it came to defending him than she ever did with herself.

Cass' head tilted from side to side, ceasing treating Leon's cheek like putty to gently rub it instead.

"They ain't wrong ‘bout the whole context thing, Babe. It is that but, but-" Her gaze turned from Leon to Casey.
"It's pretty understandable Lee doesn't wanna hear anything sympathetic towards Lynette right now, ain't it? All things considered."

”Then I can just reword what I was trying to say.-” Casey offered, similarly annoyed that he had to “fix” his speech around his brother.

It was hard to say he missed the seal when he knew what it was doing to Leon, but… Still, Leon waved him on passively, accepting what had been said and at least seeming like he was willing to play ball.

”Ma didn’t ever give a fuck enough to pay attention until us kids were old enough to be involved. At some point, she made mistakes and we were spoiled over things. Rather than apologize and stop, she did the same bullshit she always does. She doubled down on the behavior, until it was just another bitchy part of her personality. The Queen of spoilers.” Casey stared at Leon the whole way, sometimes emphasizing the words that made her sound worse.

Leon’s expression was like listening to music.

”See, all that brain power, you can contextualize without being a fucking knight for people who don’t deserve your compassion.” Leon let the off-handed comment fly, totally missing how it may come off toward a certain insecure person in the room.

Trisha immediately tensed further, legs reactively pulling up to her chest so she became a tight ball against Casey. People. More than just Lynette… Of course. Obviously Leon thought she was the same. He was only tolerating her because of Casey and Cass. Now that there wasn’t some seal making him more content, he was probably even more annoyed to have to be around her all the time. But it wasn’t like she’d forced him to date her best friend, meaning they were stuck with each other even more than before!

Maybe Cass would see his point of view eventually. Trisha wouldn’t blame her. She still didn’t understand why Cass stuck around… What had she ever done to deserve a good friend like that?

“Don’t blame Casey for being such a nice person. That’s not fair on him. Just because some of- some people don’t deserve it.” She said, pressing her lips together into a thin line as she tried to pretend she didn’t know what Leon was implying when it came to people other than Lynette.

Just enough of her physical response leaked out for Leon to take a deep breath and consider what he’d said, and his teeth clamped shut in frustration as he tried to figure out what the Hell to say about this.

”You’re pretty fine until you go making things about yourself. Some of what? What, you’re suddenly in the same category of negative as our abusive dominatrix of a Mother? Jesus Christ, if you were, I wouldn’t hang out with you. I’d tell Casey to leave, which I’m not about.” Leon tried his best not to snap, rather droning on a bit as a reaction to his own desires.

Trying to tamper his unfiltered reaction, he felt a level of personal success, but felt he had to push it to make the point well and clear.

”I’ve never seen you mentally abuse anyone, Trisha. Casey’s plans involve you all the way down, and I’m cool with that. I’m well and good over judging you for petty shit, alright? Please, like, I get that you probably don’t love hearing me act like this now that my balls are fucking back, but I can still contextualize the feelings I felt while sealed. I can see for myself as an adult that sometimes you just annoy me. But, thinking you’re somehow in the same category to me as the woman responsible for traumatizing us socially and emotionally, makes me annoyed and sad.”

He leaned forward, scooting up to the edge of the couch before letting his arm lift up to offer his hand to Trisha.

”Right here, right now… We’re on the same side. Can you accept that? And accept that, if Casey was going to be anyone’s Knight, you’re someone who actually needs it. And I won’t ever tell him he can’t be that person for you. Like, y’know… I’d do that for Cass if someone thought she was too annoying. Or, anything… Please, Trisha, I’m… I don’t want to be a fuckin’ bad guy in your life.”

Casey was a little stunned, mostly because the context had been so thin to begin with. But, this was clearly more anxiety that came from past feelings. He knew Trisha couldn’t just get over things, even with such direct prompting. But, he didn’t want to discourage her, so he gave her a reassuring squeeze hoping his emotion would bleed through to her.

Trisha took a shaky breath, watching Leon move like a bird waiting to be pounced on by a cat. It was all rooted in the past. Maybe the bird would get a few pecks in before it lost… Just like she always got a few jabs in before being completely shut down by Leon ten years ago. And even if he acted more like how he had then, he was fully an adult now. So was she! So she shouldn’t be so anxious about it!

But it wasn’t something she could just ignore. Because it wasn’t just him, it was everyone in Sycamore. He just happened to be the one that was around.

“I didn’t mean it like that- That I’m like Lynette, I’m not, it’s not the same, but that doesn’t mean I deserve- that you think I deserve compassion or anything.” She got out, her own anxieties and self feelings being reflected onto him.

“I know we’re on the same side. I accept that. I also know that you’ll… Probably never like me! Especially now. That doesn’t make you a bad guy, cause it’s… Of course you don’t like me…” Her hand snaked out slightly from the safety of her balled body and Casey, but it didn’t quite reach the one Leon was holding out. Not that she was scared of him in that way… Or really scared of him at all. Just the discomfort of his feelings towards her, how others would come to believe them. Because when she was feeling so low and depressed like right now, it made her react with venom rather than panic. And people who see who she really was.

“But- But- You know how you treated me back then. Just cause you say you’re over judging me for petty things doesn’t mean I… Can believe it… Not when you act like you did then.” It was much harder for her to contextualise, because she’d had very little proof of people changing their feelings towards her. Leon, if he truly was over judging her for those things, would be the first.

Cass didn’t say anything, watching silently while shuffling after Leon, so she was still close enough to reach over. To offer comfort more than anything… And support! Cause, she knew it wasn’t easy stepping back and talking about shit like that. But she also knew how deep Trisha’s anxiety ran. Hopefully… They’d be able to come down from this, at least. Maybe make a little progress! She looked between the two with a wide, encouraging smile.

Leon’s innermost desire was to break through all of the bullshit surrounding them. It had always-

”I hope I can explain this without upsetting you…-” he paused a moment, clearing his throat.

”You’re not the kind of person who talks about how they feel directly. You never have been, as far as my memory is concerned. But, rather than consider why and try to encourage you to do so in spite of that, I just got mad and bowled you over. It was wrong. It’ll always be wrong. And, yeah, I definitely feel that old urge coming back… In every context. It’s a gut reaction, and I can only apologize and try to wrangle that on my end…”

He understood that a bit of placation was necessary to pull Trisha out of the self-pity spiral and into a more hopeful reality.

”Ten years ago, I lacked the tact to sit with you and give more than a moment of my time to consider why you act how you do. I’m sorry. Really sorry. It never took me a lot to recognize when you were giving out every excuse for acting a certain way except the actual reason. In that recognition, I tried to goad you and coax you out with aggression, and that was the road of least empathy. I can see that. And I’m, again, very fucking sorry.”

His hand was still extended to her, and he gave a slight frown.

”You have the right to know that it’s never been easier for me to sniff that kind of thing out. Lies, deceit. Even the subtleties between something like a reactionary fib, and a full blown false narrative. I can see emotional fields. Ripples, flexes, little dents and bruises. I can smell the ozone breaking apart under Luxal influence, and the scent it gives off when a weakness in the field doesn’t cling to the molecules in the air. Will it make it harder for me to not act like I know what I’m talking about all the time? Yeah. And I’m asking for everyone’s patience as I come to terms with that… But, I felt your horror. And, my perception was, that you immediately likened yourself to our Mother, and felt like you weren’t deserving of Casey’s protection… Which I don’t agree with. He loves you, and you’ve never done evil toward anyone, in spite of any attitude adjustments you’ve handed out across your life. You deserve to be defended should the need arise.”

Casey listened to his brother speak, and admit that he too had tools to overexamine people that he couldn’t switch off. It was a difficult thing… Part curse that it’s always available, part compulsion to follow the nose toward truth. But this wasn’t his moment, and he felt no reason to really defend Trisha at this point. After all, it wasn’t like Leon had said anything so rude or drastic that a step-in was necessary… Though, he was examining Trisha’s body language every step of the way, waiting for it to become too much to bear.

Trisha’s disbelief and disagreement was clear on her face- it didn’t need the Emotional Field sight for once. There was shock that Leon had read all of that, but also she really… Didn’t understand why he didn’t agree at all. Obviously they wouldn’t think she was as bad as Lynette. She didn’t entirely think she was either. But she certainly felt like she had the capacity.

She’d hurt so many people. Maybe she hadn’t done evil, but she’d hurt them. Purposefully, accidentally… It didn’t matter, though she’d done both. She was spiteful and said horrendous shit knowing that it would hurt someone, especially as a teenager. Did it matter that she then just cut them off instead of trying to manipulate them to stay with her?

“But I don’t. I may not have been evil, but I- I have done horrible things. Like… Adora! She probably told you what I said after you took her away! How can you not hate me after that? And everything I said back then too? I- I would’ve said worse to you too, if I knew anything I could’ve used.” In her strange desperation for him- and everyone- to see where she was coming from.

Even after all the breakthroughs she’d made it was still so difficult for her to believe she deserved Casey’s love and protection. Especially right now, when she was still caught in a lingering depressive episode that only made all of her normal snappy reactiveness turn inwards.

”Trisha…” Cass spoke up, not particularly wanting to interrupt the moment but feeling she had to say something.
”You gotta not just ignore everything said… Leon’s trying real hard here, and it’s a two way thing. You gotta try too. Even if you don’t believe everything.”

Trisha’s brow furrowed slightly, her hand moving a little bit forward so her fingers just barely tapped Leon’s.
“I- I accept all of your apologies. But I just… Don’t get why you don’t ha- dislike me more. So I struggle to… Not assume you do.”

”You can’t contextualize the fact that you never actually started anything… I think that’s the first place we lose one another.” Leon spoke plainly, causing Casey to laugh aloud.

”Can you blame that?” he asked in turn also not exactly wanting to interrupt, but knowing that simple truth wasn’t something that dawned on someone in a situation like hers.

”Not at all. When people push you into an action, and your response is a guaranteed total defense, its supremely difficult to escape feeling like you’re the bad guy… Right? Trisha? You always feel like the bad guy, because you’re always in self defense mode. And you’re like that, because when you try and relax, someone comes and fucks with you again…”

Leon paused, head turning to Cass with a frown. Oh, the irony…

”But I can name a dozen times I remember, where you were essentially minding your own business. You never asked for people to include you. Never really seemed to want it. And, so, someone goads you, and you simply defend yourself. That’s not fucking evil, Trisha. I’ve never seen you start the problem… You. Aren’t. Bad. And I’m so fucking sorry about whoever made you feel like you are, because its just not true… But the fact that it lingers makes things so difficult… So hard to sit with you and fix it, because everything is just another attack. Some veiled jab at you that you’re scared of, that causes the reaction, and fulfills the prophesied reaction all over again… We can break that cycle! I’m not Greyson, I’m not Adora, I’m not… I’m one of the worst. I left you with a lot of memories I bet… and I desperately want to remedy that, because whether or not I act the same now as I did then, the important thing is it won’t ever be exactly the same. Because I have context, and moreso, I have reasons to humble myself. To finally be able to admit to you that I was wrong! And that I’m so fucking sorry for contributing! And that's here, in front of these two people who both love you from the bottoms of their hearts! You will never be like our Mom. You’ll never do all the fucked up things she did to us… Because there's no real malice in your heart. I can’t smell any. And that's objective reality…” he asserted, tears starting to roll from his eyes.

Lelou was quiet. She only had to feed him memories well examined to help his point along.

Trisha looked at him, staying silent even after he finished. She did her best to follow along and to not let her inner voice interject and disagree. Like Cass had said to do… She was trying to not just ignore it and throw it all away because of what she believed about herself. There were times she’d started it, but as she properly thought about it, she realised she could count those times on her hands. Then she had wanted to be included sometimes, and pushed her way in the early days, but not with people who didn’t like her. Just new people… Trying to make friends and build a community she’d never had.

She still really struggled to believe it all. Because other people didn’t react like her. She was still a big part of the problem. But other people weren’t blameless either. And it had just gotten worse and worse for her over the years. But even before the coven… Her Mom, and all the siblings who didn’t want to be around her and excluded her… By the time she even joined Sycamore, she was already broken and scared. A failure, and failures were bad people.

Leon had hurt her a lot back then. She’d resentfully blamed him at times, but it always bounced back to herself. So to hear him admit that he was wrong in a way she had to believe… It didn’t fix things. But it helped.

“Everyone blamed me.” She said hoarsely, trying her best not to panic over what she was about to say. Over opening up another bit, and talking about him.
“For Martin dying. Of course I felt- feel- like a bad person. I… I couldn’t remember all of it! So I thought everyone might’ve been right. And I’ve carried that with me all of my life… It’s still hard not to believe it.”

She closed her eyes for a moment, taking in a shaky breath. Obviously it wasn’t just that. It was just one part of all the things that made her feel like she didn’t deserve anything. The part Leon had a hand in, related to Sycamore. She wasn’t about to bring up her Mom and all the other issues she felt she’d never get over.

“B- But I can see that you’re not… Exactly the same. You wouldn’t have admitted you were wrong then. I wouldn’t be able to make myself say any of this.”

Leon had always had questions about that night. They’d attempted to utilize Black Lux to investigate, hoping to call upon Martin’s soul in order to work out whether or not she actually had something to do with that little incident. He knew the case more intimately than anyone else here, besides Trisha… Maybe more so in some ways. He’d recovered the body, after all. Always did. The crack team of himself, Jack and Stormy, had always been the silent collectors. The Undertakers. The three of them together had a unique set of skills perfectly suited for defending themselves, and their handful of Joined spells were some of the most comprehensively utilized among the upper crust.

They couldn’t really stop the rumor mill, however. Especially not when they realized Martin’s soul was unavailable for questioning… Like most of the Stygian Snake’s victims, the soul was totally obscured. Nowadays, he knew that it was totally obliterated by the gut of the beast… But something he never could’ve understood in those days was the intimate relationship between Trisha and The Queen.

He leaned forward, clearing his throat.

”You didn’t kill Martin. And I can prove it to you.” he offered quietly, hoping that for the first time ever, he and Trisha could share a moment that would actually heal them both. Absolve them both of something wretched…

Trisha’s brow furrowed slightly, head tilting up to look at him properly. Not avoiding his gaze or trying to hide against Casey. How did he know that? Trisha didn’t even know that. She knew she hadn’t directly killed him. It wasn’t by her hands, but that didn’t mean it wasn’t her fault.

“How? Even I don’t remember so… How can you prove it?” She asked, light hope flickering in between the disbelief.

”Because unlike ten years ago… I know what having someone else inside me can do for me. And I’ll be the first to admit that I was ignorant… Rude, even. That I never cared about the beautiful entity inside of you, because I thought Apparitions were just animals. Beasts to be tamed. I was wrong… Because she was there too, Trisha!.”

Still holding her in his arms, Casey’s body suddenly tensed up. This was a great conversation, and he loved where it was going, but what if he was fucking bluffing!? He was about to suggest something that had an incredibly high chance of blowing up in all of their faces… Yet-

”That next day, I told you directly that we found bee sting evidence. The truth was, nobody who saw Martin before we buried him could tell whether they happened pre, or post-mortem… And nobody bothered to ask the one individual who could tell us everything that her bees were feeling that night. What she perceived… So, you should ask her. Ask the Queen what happened… Unless you already have?” he intoned gently, almost expecting her to have never bothered but wanting to give her the benefit of the doubt.

“I haven’t.” Trisha shook her head, reactively getting more tense again as she felt Casey stiffen up underneath her. Why? Did he think it was a bad idea?

She’d never thought to ask the Queen, of course. Because the Queen was rarely awake to ask. It was a two way problem, of course. Trisha didn’t ask because the Queen was always asleep, and the Queen rarely interjected because Trisha never came to her for help. But she’d been awake that night. Trisha knew that much because she hadn’t been the only one in charge of the bees. Back then she’d been around even less, only a year into recovering her strength within Trisha. She doubted the Queen could even come out then, and would anyone really have believed Trisha’s word alone?

But that didn’t matter now. She shifted herself in Casey’s arms so she could look at him rather than Leon.
“Do you think I should ask? Now?”

Casey had a somewhat pained expression as a return, not wanting to dissuade her, but not wanting her to feel like it was a must either…

”I want you to choose yourself. Y’know… Make the decision because you want to know. Not because you want other people to validate you… I’ll be honest, this dude, whoever he was? I’ll never care about him. Not like you. So, whatever you choose, listen to me now and hear this: It will never change how I feel about you. I love you whether you caused it, or not. Your past will never dictate our future.” he did his best to explain calmly, finally moving in to kiss her gently before pulling away and staring at her with enormous love in his eyes.

”You’re a good person… A great one. One of the best… I won’t let anything taint that feeling for me.”

Leon turned his head back to Cass, a small, encouraged smile saying everything he needed to say to her.

Trisha nodded slowly to Casey, blushing slightly as she felt all of his love washing over her from his gaze. She couldn’t deny how much he loved her… So she’d try to believe that he wouldn’t feel any different about her whatever happened.

Cass smiled back at Leon before piping up herself.
”For what it’s worth, I ain’t gonna think any different ‘bout you either! I know who you are, after all!”

Trisha nodded again without saying anything again. She wasn’t confident, but she wanted to know. Because either it confirmed how she already felt, or she’d be relieved of the guilt that had haunted her. It wouldn’t entirely fix her view of herself, but it would be a start.

“I want to know.” She said softly, still looking at Casey as she slipped into her mind to seek out the Queen.

Can you come out? Please.

The Queen slowly stirred.
For what do you need my presence, dear one?

I want to… Ask about something that happened ten years ago. But I want everyone else to hear too.

There was a brief pause.
As you wish.

It took a few more moments before golden light gently flowed out of Trisha. A fuzzy Queen Bee formed in front of her, lazily floating down into her lap. She was smaller than the last time Casey had seen her- the size of a large rat rather than a small dog. She turned where she sat to look at each person with slightly glowing, beady black eyes.

”Ah, it is a pleasure to see you again, Ser Casseau. Thank you for continuing to look after my dearest Beekeeper.” She continued to slowly spin until she was looking at Leon and Cass. It wasn’t possible to tell normally, because she was a glowing, golden bee. But they would both be able to feel it.

”And who do we have here? I must know my audience before I answer any questions… I see one of you has the scent of the Wolf Queen all over him. How intriguing.”

”I’m Cass, your Majesty!” Cass immediately responded, gaping at the Queen. It was difficult to resist the urge to reach over and squeeze her. She wanted to feel all that fluff… But she knew she couldn’t. Apparitions didn’t tend to be friendly about that kind of stuff.
”Trisha’s bestest friend in the world! Ain’t gonna find anyone who loves her more than me- Aside from Casey, of course!”

Casey respectfully tilted his head, acknowledging the royal hello without making a big deal of it. Even though he too loved the moments where this ancient spirit was willing to present herself physically in their world. The bees were a constant reminder of her power and grace, but seeing her in all her strangeness was an even better display.

As for Leon, he couldn’t stop the physiological reaction he had as someone chose to take advantage of the situation herself. Like a creeping sickness, Leon could feel his forehead pressured by the entity forming its own holes to perceive the world directly. The mouth upon his forehead formed a wide grin contrary to his own which frowned slightly at the discomfort and inability to express himself before being overruled.

”Seilleannnnnnn!!! Still hiding after all these years. What a pleasure, sincerely, to see that you’ve not aged a day!” Lelou spoke up directly, tongue lolling out of her mouth slightly, only to droop down and lick around Leon’s eyesocket. She giggled as she did so, clearing her throat.

”Our little deal stands, I think you’d be happy to know. The Man-things remain utterly repelled in the Acacia Valley, and your holdings remain unplundered. The pack tells me they shelter there often, and your last Daughter maintains the peace.”

She forced Leon’s hand upward, rubbing his own face gently and passionately.

”This one is my unfortunate host… Speak, Boy…”

He hated whatever this was… Some kind of royal front? Bullshit to cut through.

”I’m Casey’s brother Leon… You’ve seen me before. I remember you came out during a fight once, against the Stygian Snake. We’ve met.” he said, not exactly impolitely, but certainly through strain.

”Ah, I’m afraid I do not remember you… But it is a pleasure to meet another who fought in the war against such great evil. And a brother of Casseau's too. A welcome addition around Dear Trisha.” The Queen spoke melodically, with a hint of a soft buzz behind it.

”It has been a long time, Lelou. I’m glad the deal remains, but surprised you have taken a host. The poor boy, stuck with your overly energetic self…” She sighed softly. The two great Apparitions were on amicable terms for all their differences, which was quite something for beings as powerful and old as they were. But they were both an important part of the ancient, natural world, with different realms and subjects. Both were essential to the ecosystem.

”But it is truly a blessing our hosts have come together like this, is it not?”

“You have lands?” Trisha asked quietly, frowning. If the Queen had somewhere to return… A daughter... Why was she still inside Trisha? She was more than strong enough to leave now.

”Of course, though I feared they were destroyed in my long absence. Thankfully, it seems that isn't the case.”

Trisha only frowned more at that. So she hadn’t known? She could leave at any moment? No, hopefully not. She could ask… No, because what if it was the answer she didn’t want? She was already asking one question that could have an answer that made her feel much worse.

Cass was staring at Leon like he’d grown a second head… Which he sort of had. But it wasn’t Leon she was staring at, so much as it was Lelou. She was acting so differently from normal. It was fucking strange!

”So, uh, you two know each other? Like… Way back, I assume? That’s crazy!”

”Oh, I’m just a girl in comparison. There’s a natural hierarchy to things, you see. Madame is vast and ancient, even by my standard. I simply bow in her Grace.

”Oh, for the love of everything I hold dear, could you not dickride right now? Seriously, I feel every bit of your discomfort, but save it for later when there’s something we can do about it… Jesus, don’t act like you didn’t push me toward this fucking conclusion to begin with, Lelou!”

The sudden outburst was unexpected, as was the reaction of Leon’s forehead trying to leap off of his body, twisting and sinking sharp teeth around his face in an act of desperate violence. Leon fell backwards in pain, unable to scream as he was completely encased in a false mouth, pressure clamping down on his skull as he tried his best to wrest his own forehead off of his cranium.

Reactively, he tucked, rolled off the couch, and darted down the hall of the house, until there was a loud thwack that echoed off the front door.

”Holy fuck!” Cass shouted, half rolling her body forward in reaction and thumping onto the floor ass first. But once she landed, she was far too shocked to follow, mentally replaying the hilarious horror of forehead Lelou trying to eat Leon in her head.

Trisha just gaped, blinking slowly as she tried to process it. The Queen, on the other hand, was perfectly calm and unshocked. Rather typical of Lelou, in her opinion.

Casey couldn’t do anything but laugh, and loudly as he watched the entire scene unfold. But a few seconds later, Leon reappeared in the doorway with a frown, sporting solid red wounds where the teeth had fully penetrated the flesh. But they were clearly healing, and the forehead face was fully pouting as though there was something wrong with being called out for her behavior.

”I apologize for the interruption. Please, Lady Seillean… Your time is precious.” the Queen of Wolves actually apologized for once. Incredible.

”That it is. I graciously accept your apology, Lelou. Now…” The Queen shuffled around in Trisha’s lap to look up at her. It was almost comedic, the way her long legs barely held up her oversized, fluffy body. This wasn’t her true form, of course, but that one took much more energy than she could normally muster. There was no point for things such as this.

”What is it you wish to ask, dear Trisha?”

Trisha nibbled her lip, pulling herself out of her shock of the scene that had just happened and nerves about the Queen’s possible leaving. Just ask the question she had to ask, then they could move on.

“Do you remember ten years ago, when Martin- the boy I was seeing- and I got separated, and trapped by a large group of Shadows? The night I got this scar.” She gestured to her upper abdomen, hidden by the tank top she was wearing.

”I do.”

“My memory of it is blurry. There’s blank spots, what… What happened?”

”Of course there are blank spots, dearest. I had to take control for a period after you and that boy were grievously harmed. I woke up only as I sensed things were going poorly. You panicked, and lost control of the bees for a brief moment. That boy heroically protected you, saving your life.”

“So-” Trisha breath hitched, one hand moving to grasp Casey’s tightly as she sought comfort.
“It was my fault? I hurt him and then- then was the reason he died?”

”No. That’s not what I said. I said he saved you.” The Queen chided gently, floating up closer to Trisha’s face.
”The bees were confused, but only one or two stung him. It was hardly a contributing factor.”

“But I still panicked!”

”Because you were caught within a nightmarish gaze. Even if you had not, they would have overwhelmed you. I was awoken by your injury, and the Boy stepping in before they landed the final blow gave me enough time to take over. If he hadn’t, then he would have died shortly after you did. I was the only one there powerful enough to get you away from that encounter. After he died, I destroyed the remaining shadows. Then I bolstered you enough to pull his body towards the nearest allies I could sense. But even I couldn’t guarantee your survival, dear Trisha. If it had been much longer, you would have bled out.” The Queen calmly explained.
”It is a tragedy. But it was him, or both of you. You did not cause his death. The Stygian Snake did.”

“I really… didn’t?” Trisha asked, needing the confirmation for something that seemed too good to be true. It explained why she didn’t remember what happened after Martin was hit. She’d assumed she’d gone into some kind of panic mode, and her memories were fuzzy because of her injuries.

”You didn’t. I am… Truly ashamed I could not help you more at that time. If I had known you held these feelings, I would have shared what happened with you a long time ago.”

Trisha shook her head. She’d never asked. She twisted her body to bury her face against Casey, not wanting everyone to see the relieved tears starting to slip from her eyes.
Thank you...”

Leon seemed to be observing everything without any real sign of reaction. He was just listening, certainly. All that time, and they didn’t have a relationship where they just… Jived? There was no melding, no intrusion, no boundaries unstepped. It made perfect sense, what the Queen had said. That was when the patrol picked her up. Why they couldn’t pull a Recollection directly from that moment. They’d assumed there was an entity jamming the abilities, but it was a much more tragic circumstance.

Way fucking worse.
And he could not stop the tears from breaching his eyes. Lelou let him, and as they left his eyes, they boiled up to curl around his head in a comforting hold. The guilt that washed across his psyche was a bomb that even she couldn’t ignore. It’d never been easy for him when one of the younger ones died. Some could walk away guilt free, dissociating from the moment they heard. Just another number. But this was so much worse.

”And I let them say that shit… My fucking God, Trisha…”

He wanted to reach out. Even Casey became somewhat discomforted by the look of abject mourning that now filled his brother’s face. This wasn’t like anything he’d ever seen before. Leon had never had that kind of expression looking at him. Was it something to be insulted by? Should he demand that?

No… This was an expression he’d seen before… Never in Leon, but in men he’d known to lead their fellow men into the pits of Hell. The depths of depravity that was two soldiers recognizing their culpability in one another.
He could only hold her tight, as he watched Leon reactively slump down to his knees in prostration. The emotion of the situation could only grip the three of them from completely different angles.

”I’m… How… I…. am so fucking sorry, Trisha…” he spoke up from a face buried in the carpet. He only wished he could be lower, and his body reactively compressed itself practically flat.

Trisha wasn’t even looking at him to see him prostrate himself and flatten against the floor. She was buried against Casey, face hid in his shirt as her shoulders trembled slightly. She was trying not to sob as emotion overwhelmed her. Relief, sorrow and the grief she’d barely let herself feel. Because she didn’t feel like she deserved to grieve for him. It had always been there in the background, but she rarely let it through.

All this time, she’d believed it was her fault. Even when she vehemently denied it. It went from doubts to belief the longer people questioned, berated and isolated her.

”I- I- I thought it was my fault. They m-made me think I should’ve died instead. I wanted to. I’ve never even- visited him… I didn’t deserve it…” She whispered, hands clenching into Casey clothes as she choked down sobs.
“I thought everyone was right to hate me- I hated me! Y-you… I don’t know how to forgive… any of you… nobody even tried…”

She shook her head against Casey, trying her best to just breathe.

Cass didn't know what to do or say, for once. Her natural instinct was comforting- but Casey was already taking care of Trisha, and she wasn’t sure if Leon would be open to it. She wasn’t sure if she could comfort him. It was a lot of her to take in, from what little she knew of the situation before. What Leon had told her as neutrally as possible… Frowning silently, she shuffled to the edge of the sofa, there for when he unflattened.

Which he did reactively as she got close, reaching out for anything that he could possibly grab onto. He knew Trisha wasn’t going to forgive him. And he wouldn’t forgive himself, either. How could he repair that? He was supposed to do what was best for them, and he’d let her slip through the cracks. Practically thrown her, over a couple of bee stings. He didn’t even have a part in the rumor, but the simple fact was that he had never even considered shutting it down. It didn’t matter to him, after all.

His heart at the time had said that she’d let it roll off. That it wouldn’t take hold of her life. That she was going to be a mentally bitchy and hard-assed individual for the rest of her life. What a fucking judgement. And it was one whose sentiment he could hear echoed from a voice that never even should’ve let him make those decisions to begin with…

”Leon… Some eggs are naturally thick shelled, aren’t they? What’s the harm. A little shame, and they know not to wander off. She’ll be a service to the others. A testament.”

He couldn’t make this about him. He couldn’t turn it. Every ounce of himself recentered to suppress the burning ego that attempted to devour the context for itself and turn it back on someone who he felt he could scapegoat. Lelou wanted it. Pushed, tugged at his brain to let him release the fire right now. To drive himself into the Temple like a spiral spear in the side of a false prophet. But Lynette would have her day. And the chances were high that he’d not even be there to handle it. That maybe his last goodbye would have to be one from a different place in his heart entirely.

So he pushed himself back up, and spoke plainly through the tears as he reached out to Cass’ hand.

”What’s happened, I don’t feel would be forgivable. I don’t ever expect you to have an iota of love in your heart for me. And I can’t even begin to know where to start making up for this, Trisha. If…- C-casey… Casey? W-what… What do-”

He was hunting instinctively for any other voice in the dark.

Casey’s face twisted in frustration. They had places to be. Things to do. And now he had this…

”God fucking damn you, Leon. We’ve got shit to do! This wasn’t-”

”-Shit! You’re right, you’re- Fuck!

”Just fucking go! Go, go fucking handle it, Leon! Start with that, start with just making sure we get through this fucking week, but you’re Goddamn-”

Leon was scrambling to his feet already, half way out the door.

”-You’re covered, Casey, no fucking questions!” he called back, massive body pounding down the hallway before the door swung open and slammed shut.

Which left Casey staring at Cass with a deep frown.

”So much for a lighthearted debrief…” he tried to make sure that she wasn’t having some kind of collapse as well.

”Yeah, this ain’t what I signed up for! But I guess its… better to get all’ve the Sycamore stuff out on the same day?” Cass said with a slight shrug. Her own struggle with the whole situation was feeling torn over what to do, as Trisha’s friend and Leon’s girlfriend. But with Leon gone for now, she could fully concentrate on the former, which meant she was absolutely fine!

Or as fine as she could be while her best friend was having a breakdown…

”You want me to go? Give you guys some time?”

Trisha shook her head, turning it slightly so her tearstained eyes were just visible. She couldn’t stop sobbing, even though it had been the answer she hoped for. Because it meant she’d been suffering for no reason. It was all unjustified… And the scars were still there. They didn’t just go away.

“I’m s-sorry, Casey, if you have to go… I’ll be fine…” She didn’t look it, face red and puffy with tears constantly streaming down her cheeks. But she could get through it if Cass stayed at least… If there was someone there.

“I don’t even know why- why I’m so upset. It was… The good outcome…”

”Trisha… There’s no way in Hell I’m leaving you right now. Conveniently, there’s an asshole out there who owes us all a whole lot for the grief he’s fucking caused… He’ll make up for it. Maybe not today, maybe not tomorrow, but I know one day you’ll forgive him enough… Because that’s the kind of hope I have.”

He waved his hand toward Cass, inviting her in to co-comfort Trisha as healthily as she wanted. She had far more of a stake in her life as far as time was concerned. Even if she’d only had the chance to break through these barriers in his company, Cass had just as much to offer in her love and experience. More, he considered.

Cass shuffled her way in cautiously, not sure how Trisha would react. She was always a bit iffy when it came to physical contact when feeling upset. But she didn’t immediately shake off the comforting hand Cass placed on her shoulder, so Cass ended up half hugging them both loosely. She didn’t have the same platonic cuddle discomfort that Trisha did, after all.

”And, as far as this? This crying? You know damn well why… Your entire adult life, you’ve been carrying on assuming you killed that boy… Trisha, Baby… I’ve seen this. I’ve met soldiers struggling with the exact same problem you’re dealing with right now. Of being accused of doing something that they can’t even remember the moment of to know whether or not they did. This is serious business Trisha. And we’re not gonna let the gravity of it escape.” he asserted, holding her as tight as he could.

Trisha nodded, sniffing.
“Some people didn’t believe it or attack me but… Nobody really defended me. The group I was in- the friends I asked about earlier- they didn’t care. Anyone who might’ve cared wasn’t close to me, or was close to people who did hate me. I- I really thought it was me. Even though I told them all it wasn’t and fought with people cause of it… Leon told me he’d been stung! That- That felt like a guilty verdict.”

”That shit ain’t fair, Trish. You were all fighting in a fucking magical war, but you were only kids! You shoulda been there for each other too… But tearing each other apart like that? Fuck! Makes me so mad. You lost someone then instead’ve supporting you, they all turned on you… Course you’re upset now! You have every right to feel whatever you wanna. Sad, angry… You lost a lot, Trisha!”

She had. Her early teen years had been the hardest. First, her Mom turned on her. Then, her Dad was killed. Finally, Martin died and she was badly injured, before everyone accused her of being the one to cause it. All of it combined broke any remaining confidence or positive feelings she had towards herself. Suddenly she had no one, and no hope of ever having even a sliver of support.

“I- I know. You’re right. I… It wasn’t fair. I thought I’d escape it when I went to university… But I didn’t! Because it didn’t change how I felt about myself. This whole time I’ve- I’ve thought I didn’t deserve anything. Because I killed someone, and even my Mom didn’t love me, so why would anyone else?! I- I-” She curled forward, choking on another sob. It was difficult to keep her thoughts straight, emotion overwhelming everything.

“You know they- the healers refused to fully heal me. Only e-enough so that I didn’t die. Said I could… afford a private hospital… Even though they were hardly running. This whole time, I agreed. I never asked for help because… when I finally found people that weren’t my family… they all turned on me…”

Casey felt sick hearing that. That they’d denied her. Their covenmate. Even in the worst situations, soldiers didn’t turn their backs entirely. If you were dying, at least in his unit, they were going to make sure that didn’t happen. And then you’d be back in the fight. Because that was efficiency, and professionalism. You experienced loss, but you maintained your clarity and focus in the line of duty…

”But your Mom isn’t even indicative of that, Trisha… These kids… They were ignorant. Maybe some of them felt malice because of that ignorance… But what she’s left you with only reinforced this notion that you don’t deserve anything. You deserve everything you’ve earned! And everything you’ve worked hard for, and everything you’re surrounded by, all screaming for you to be here with us! And I know this won’t go away overnight… But you deserve me! And I’ll be here with you! So will Cass, right!?” he asked with enthusiasm, rubbing her arms and back with vigor.

”Absolutely! I ain’t ever going anywhere… Someone’d have to tear me away! You ain’t getting rid of me no matter how hard you try!” Cass declared with matching enthusiasm.
”And before you go saying you ain’t worked hard for things… I seen you do it! Y’think I didn’t notice the all nighters you pulled studying?! While I was up coding random shit, you were slogging your way through so many fucking maths text books. And on the side’ve that, you learned to code too! And I know it ain’t shit that comes naturally to you like it does me… Cause I’ve seen all the fucking work you put in!”

Trisha’s face scrunched up a bit even as her sobbing settled down into less violent crying, breathing evening out with tears still streaming down her face. Because she hadn’t gotten much from all of that studying. Just a low grade degree…
“That hard work… wasn’t really rewarded…” She sniffed, trying to put it as neutrally as she could.

”Alright, fine, putting aside that kinda work… With people! I know you ain’t feel like you’ve come far, but you have! Especially since I met you! Sure, you’ve changed a whole lot faster since you met Casey, but it ain’t like you weren’t before. Cause you’re always working hard at shit… Even though you didn’t have the support other people had! You ain’t got the same stable foundation, Trisha, it don’t matter how much money you have. You could’ve taken all’ve that and become some horrible, resentful person who hates the world… But you ain’t. You’re amazing and lovely, and you’re just finally getting all the love you deserve with Casey! And me, of course, but you met me earlier!”

“I… Suppose… That’s true…” It was the closest she’d gotten to admitting that she deserved any of it. Casey was right that it wouldn’t go away overnight. There were a lot of feelings to work through with regards to Martin, and her issues with her Mom were still so present. Though, the associated panic had at least calmed down now that Thanksgiving was over.

“Even if I didn’t deserve it… I don’t want to be anywhere else.”

An evil grin crossed Casey’s face.

”Maybe there’s one place…-” he let the comment hang ominously, pressing his face close into Trisha’s ear.

D’you wanna go shoot paintballs at Edict? He was part of that group who fucked with you, wasn’t he? Let’s get free petty revenge. he giggled, thinking about the therapy they used to get from demolishing one another in off-cuff brawls in the FOB after a long patrol.

“He was but… Won’t that kill him? He looked so weak. A paintball will probably pop his balloon head and end it.” Trisha asked, before managing a weak giggle herself at that image. She wouldn’t care if the whole plan didn’t hinge on him being alive. She’d rather survive and live a happy life with Casey than get the petty revenge.

”Oh, I can probably keep him alive!” Cass piped up, easily hearing no matter how much Casey was talking into Trisha’s ear. The blessing of magical sense.
”Though then there’d be no one to hold Linqian back.”

“She… probably deserves a few herself. She wasn’t as active cause she was off rolling around with Bianca at the time but… she did when she wasn’t.”

”Culpable’s culpable. You deserve a little release. Though… Obviously, the higher path and all…”
He did believe in petty revenge. But at the same time, the thought of her proving them right in some fashion because of this kind of reaction… He didn’t want her to ruin her chance at a fresh start. She deserved to heal, but healthily.
”I’m just, not above it, y’know?”

“I’m not either but… my petty revenge normally results in people hating me more.” Trisha admitted quietly. The times when she really lashed out and said awful things as revenge for how she’d been hurt. There were other occurrences where it was more along the lines of what Casey was suggesting… Namely with certain siblings, and when she was younger.

“If he wasn’t dying, I wouldn’t even hesitate… I don’t know. I want to try and move on from Sycamore, but I don’t think I just… can…”

”Honestly, I think you should get to punch, like, every member at least once! And if you ain’t feeling up to that, just do it to Leon once! He can take it!”

”You could probably use Leon as a piece of furniture right now. Uh… Listen, if I saw his expression right, that guy’s not good about this at all. Which means that, y’know, in some way he really did hold you culpable. I don’t really know where the fuck that comes from, and I’m incredibly fucking sorry that became something. But, I also think he’s now very sorry.”

Casey shook his head gently, hearing his brother’s words from before in his head… About defending someone who didn’t deserve it. Irony all around…

”I’m not saying forgive him. He certainly doesn’t expect it. But, in time, don’t be afraid to approach him and reexamine this. Because I’m sure he’ll have a lot to talk to you about. And a lot of things to apologize for. But, I do think there should be something to rub this objective reality in the face of the people who still pa-”

He coughed, sputtered, nearly choked.

”-What about South Street? Or, fuckin’... Eighth Street? Those other assholes! They’ve gotta be on the list, right? Free game!” he exclaimed excitedly.

Trisha’s brow furrowed for a moment as she tried to remember who that was. She’d not exactly kept up with the covens so much, but she realised after a short while.
“Emily and Vashti’s coven? Emily… was one of the worst. Vashti was bad too, but she was more interested in terrorising people who could fight back. I don’t remember who else went with them… George bullied everyone for anything. Carol… Yeah… I don’t think anyone else went? I think the rest aren’t from Sycamore.”

Cass was rubbing her hands together with glee.
”They sound perfect!”

“But Emily would probably… Want to kill us in retaliation.”

”Who said that would be petty revenge? If she was one of the worst, and still is from what I hear… Let’s do the world a favor. Not like we won’t be able to.” he shrugged.

He wasn’t exactly self aware in regards to the tonal shift as he’d not but a minute ago been talking about paintballing someone to… Well, he sounded conspiratorial! Like he was suggesting he’d accomplish some sort of assassination! And he would. In his mind, this was just as real as anything else. They’d hurt her… And not in a way that was forgivable. If it meant his brother would have a chance, he was happy to roll anyone else under the wheels and gears necessary to lubricate the function of their life together.

”I’ve heard plenty too, she sounds like a real bitch- and I ain’t using that term lightly!” Cass agreed, though she wasn’t particularly tuned into the tonal shift from harm to murder. By doing the world a favour, she assumed Casey meant knocking her down a peg or ten.

“Are you… suggesting we go and kill Emily?” Trisha asked quietly, not giving away much about how she felt about the idea. She knew Casey well enough now to notice the shift and realise where he was going with it. She wasn’t actually sure how she felt about it. If anyone deserved it, it was probably Emily. She’d made so many people’s lives hell. In a way she was the person everyone made Trisha out to be…

But what about the repercussions? At least Vashti would probably retaliate. Trisha didn’t know the rest of her coven well enough to know if they’d bother. But they might.

”Wait, you meant killing?! I mean…” Cass sat up, swinging from side to side as she thought about it. Or, more accurately, struggled with the fact that her immediate reaction was to agree. She was someone who’d hurt Trisha badly, after all. Sounded like she hurt a lot more than her. She deserved it… It was basically like taking out those mafia members, really. Not the same as killing innocent people…

”Yeah, probably doing the world a favour.”

”I hate to say this, Trisha… But they’ve got a pretty disproportionate Adjoined-to-Adept leadership ratio. I’m not saying it’s right… But if we’ve got such tools at our disposal, I’m not going to tell you that we shouldn’t do something good for everyone.” Casey implied in a very curt fashion, almost chuckling at Cass by accident.

“I-” Trisha frowned, trying not to tense up just at the mention of the tools they had. The Aberration suppressants… Emily was Adjoined, but from what she remembered, Vashti now had the Leviathan sealed in an object. Whatever she was, it didn’t change her struggle with the thought of using something that horrified her. Emily probably deserved it… But it would also make her a hypocrite, wouldn’t it?

“Vashti isn’t Adjoined anymore. It’s… in her shawl, I think. But I… I don’t know, Casey. I- I understand what you’re saying but I don’t like the idea of using those.”

”Hey, they’d just make it easier. Remember, people like them? Cut their teeth in the raw. They’re crafty, not to be underestimated. But, maybe we can do something better. Linqian’s got an ex in the Government. Some special taskforce.” he spoke as if he didn’t intimately know the PRA, and wasn’t fully prepared to cooperate with them if it meant seeing some justice done.

”Maybe… We can frame ‘em up. Something to do alongside this Snake business… Really wrap that part of your life up completely.” Casey offered confidently, hoping that there’d be a level of compromise there that she’d be able to appreciate fully.

”Oh- Oh- That ex owes us too! Us being me ‘n Leon cause she’s the one that asked us to rescue Linqian and Greyson!” Cass said, clapping her hands together as if a perfect plan was coming together. It sure did feel like it. And it was preferable to going straight to murder!

Trisha nibbled her lip as she thought about it. It wasn’t as bad as using those... And she was sure there were actual crimes Emily and Vashti had committed. They both deserved being locked up for life, really. Emily had been one of the worst to Trisha, but also to so many other people. It didn’t matter that Trisha disliked a lot of those people too… They hadn’t deserved it either.

“Alright. We can do that… If that’s possible. How do you even go about framing someone?”

”Temple’s gonna look weak as fuck soon. They’ll have bait practically hanging in front of them. It’ll be a cinch.” he said rather broadly, a very confident smile forming on his face.

”It’ll be fuckin’ perfect!” he asserted.

”You’re always the man with a plan!” Cass grinned, one hand coming up to slap Casey’s shoulder.
”Speaking of plans…”

She trailed off ominously, causing Trisha to lift her head off Casey to stare at Cass. She was just being goofy, right? She was probably going to switch to talking about the plan. A debrief even without Leon there, or something.

”It’s my birthday next week! Well, Trish already knows that… Anyway, I ain’t planning to do anything on the actual day. It’s a Tuesday after all. But if shit’s calmed down a bit, I wanna do something the weekend after! Pretty sure we’re gearing up to do the plan this weekend, at least based on how Greyson’s talking, so… Should work out.” She did feel a bit odd talking about her birthday with all of the shit happening. It wasn’t like she’d be upset if plans got cancelled or changed. Just, she had to make sure Trisha and Casey knew they were obligated to come!

”Rey’s gonna come. I gave her the brief rundown of shit that’s happening, so she knows dates might change but… Shit, I knew I had something to get Trisha to ask you, Casey! Can she use a spare apartment?! If that ain’t ok, I’ll give her mine, and just crawl into Trisha’s- I mean Leon’s- bed!” Cass grinned teasingly, before pointing a finger at them both.
”Also! Attendance is mandatory! Date changes if certain attendees are too busy!”

Casey tried not to furrow his brow or instantly dismiss Cass’ enthusiasm as selfish nonsense. Because, ultimately, she said if! Meaning that she wasn’t totally ignorant of the idea that they may all be running for their lives by that time. Good!

”Well, obviously if things are all settled down… But, are you sure you wanna do that kind of thing here? Leon would take you anywhere! Why uh, y’know, jeopardize your fun by hanging in a place that could be easily attacked by any number of jerks with grudges? Are you looking for the trouble?” he asked, trying to sound as sincere as possible without judgement.

"Cause I don't wanna just celebrate with Leon? And there's no way I'm getting you two, the girls, and Rey all to go somewhere else for a weekend. Not with this notice? Can you imagine?!" Cass shook her head, before laughing slightly.
"Ain't like I'm thinking of something big. Just back to that arcade- assuming it ain't ruined for you forever, Trish-"

“It isn't. I'm not that bad." Trisha interjected with a little pout. Sure, it was where their first fight had started, but they'd gotten through it together. She wasn't going to be triggered by just going there.

"Just checking! That then, like, movie night at wherever fits whoever's coming. Y'know, small thing. I'm turning twenty five, ain't any major age! Also if we get attacked, that's fine! Cause I get a lil extra excitement outta things… so long as no one gets too badly hurt, course." She grinned.
"This is all assuming we're alive and well by next week, obviously!"

Casey grimaced actively now.

”I don’t want to discourage you. So I won’t. But I will bring up the idea of nobody getting hurt too badly is, in my perception of the situation, irresponsible as a thought on your part. Again, it’d be hypocritical of me to tell you not to go for whatever you want. But. he finished, not figuring it was necessary to follow the implicit “but” with anything else.

The conversation was a looper, after all. Everything he could possibly say short of “Don’t fucking do that.” came out of his mouth, and he just hoped that there wouldn’t be anyone giving him an attitude over worrying about whether or not things and people were safe. Before Beppo, he probably wouldn’t have thought twice. But now, it was far more front and center in his mind, that something drastic and out of his control could happen… He would be doing his friends and companions a disservice at this point by not at least warning them.

”If you’re insistent, then we’ll be having a party with a lot more than just your close friends. You’ll have so many friends to wish you a happy birthday that you’ll probably have to ask some names. But, I know you so far, so being social won't be a problem, right?”

"Well nah, course not. But if it's that much of a worry, we can just nix the arcade part, movie night in Leon's apartment or something with that big ass setup. Same building we'd all be in anyway, yeah?" Cass responded easily.

She was nowhere near as worried about the after… Perhaps she should be. Maybe it was because she was pretty unlikely to be the target of attack, and was fairly certain she could handle it if she was! But she definitely didn't want anyone else getting all twisted and panicky over something she wanted to do for fun. She wasn't exactly that hung up on her birthday, and would inadvertently end up having a late celebration with her brothers when she went home for the holidays anyway.

She then held up her hands.
"And I get it. I ain't the security guy, so I ain't seeing all the shit that could happen. My bad! Ain't exactly used to the whole uh… crazy supernatural coven shit where everyone's got mad beef at people for just being part've a group."

Casey frowned genuinely. That type of thing definitely wasn’t supposed to be her bag to worry about to begin with. She didn’t really have to, as he was willing to take care of the logistics for her. She was a friend, but more than that, she was Trisha’s best. The necessity of her protection came down to the same deterministic viewpoint that colored everything else in his life now…

Happy Trisha. Safe Trisha. Comfortable Trisha.

”Well, obviously it’s not you anyone would be after specifically. It’s the big guy… Just, y’know, you’re with him. It’s associative. Plus, if we go out, there’s a chance that more Blinds get stuffed in the magical meat grinder. It’s not fair to you to tell you that you can’t have fun, but it’s also not fair that they be put into an unknown danger. Even if it’s just that, and they never find out that they were in a room with people who could turn them inside out with a breath.”

He cleared his throat, doing his best to smile.

”But, my original point is that the more of us there are, the less likely an attack from an opportunistic group of enemies. Trust: You made plenty of an impression at Beppo. There’s people chomping at the bit to meet you, so… Why not have a big twenty-fifth bash? We’ll just flood the arcade with Adepts and friendly Aberrations looking to have a good time on the Temple’s dime.” he offered, coming more around to the idea of having a big party, rather than a small get together.

"Heh, course everyone wants to meet the awesome wolf-hyena-croc woman!" Cass laughed slightly, general positivity not dampened at all by what Casey said. Obviously, it gave her a bit of perspective on the impact of any danger. In her mind, the size of Beppo park and how much it affected others was an exception. Cause surely her and Leon could just fight off whoever they sent for them? But of course collateral damage was a thing! Wasn't something she wanted to be the cause of just cause she didn't mind a bit of a fight.

"If you say that'll be safest then yeah, I'm down. I ain't about putting people in danger for some shit I can do later… so if it ain't a good idea at all, I can scrap it, no worries. But if a big thing’s pretty safe… That'd be real fun! Only if it ain't too much effort for you, though. I know you already got a lot on your plate!" She nodded, before looking down at Trisha, who was snuggled up to Casey and silently listening.
"How bout you, Trish, would you be able to come along to something like that? I know you ain't such a fan of big things."

“I’m fine with big events that don't involve family." Trisha said, pursing her lips. Sure, she felt like she had to put on a mask the more people were around, but she felt that way as soon as they got outside of Casey and her small group of friends.

“It’s your birthday. And it can just be like… going to a club. I don't talk to anyone apart from who I come with."

Cass let out a little evil laugh, lips pulling up into a smirk.
"But I seem to recall you talking to loads of people back in the day. You were always-"

“I’m taken and settled down now, it's not the same!" Trisha interrupted, immediately flustered at Cass' teasing and hugging Casey tighter.

"- Looking for friends, I was gonna say!" Cass cackled.

Casey laughed aloud imagining Trisha running game on some unsuspecting guy at a club. They met under such extenuating circumstances that it was hard for him to imagine her in any other way than what he knew directly. But, she hadn’t been a marionette before they met. She had ten times the experience that he did in regards to the pure physicality of relationships…

It didn’t bother him. It was so abstract, after all. And self consciousness wasn’t a social thing for him; he’d learned long ago that one should only compare themselves to another with the goal of improvement. If he thought about all her exes, he had plenty of logic behind why they weren’t worth thinking about. He couldn’t think of much more he could give in that regard…

And besides, the way she clung to him was a clear indication that there wasn’t a problem. She coveted him like a precious artifact. He liked that… It felt good to be needed like that. He almost melted into her, grinning. Happy, even, that she seemed so able to get over the previous topic. Selfishly, he felt a level of smug satisfaction over a dead teenager… Not a great emotion to have, but one he was able to put away with relative ease.

”Am I sick for wanting to see that? I think Cass just unlocked a new fetish for me, Trish.” Casey admitted with a great laugh.

“Wanting to see what? Me try to pick someone else up at a club?" Trisha tilted her head up towards him with a slight pout. That certainly wouldn't ever be happening.
“Or me trying to pick you up at a club like some odd roleplay thing where we pretend we don't know each other?"

Casey saw her reaction and immediately started blushing.
”Neither! Neither, never mind…”

Because the one he’d thought of first got the clear negative response. Clearly he was a freak for thinking something like that.

”Would… Would it really be weird for me to see you actually hit on someone that isn’t me? Like, I guess I’m just sure you’d never do anything. But, you didn’t exactly seduce me when we met. It’s like a forbidden talent you have, or that’s how Cass makes it sound.” he grinned slightly, trying to redirect it back off the cuff.

"Cause it is! It's a super duper talent, like, she's got this look! Like she looks at ‘em a specific way and they just fall for her!" Cass jumped in enthusiastically, especially since Casey hadn't reacted negatively to the whole how Trisha got with exes thing in the first place. Quite the opposite!

“I don't!" Trisha groaned, hiding her red face against Casey. It really wasn't any special talent. It was just normal flirting. She knew what people- especially guys- wanted, and was able to ham it up. It worked best in a clubbing environment anyway… but had never led to a stable relationship.

“I couldn't, anyway." She mumbled, peeking up at him again.
“Hit on someone else. I'm too… in love… with you… And I didn't seduce you cause you weren't like most of my exes. You didn't look at me that same way, so I just… got you with my personality instead. But it's really not anything special."

Cass' lips split into a wicked grin, one hand coming to rest on Casey's shoulder.
"Don't worry, dude, it really ain't that weird. I can hook you up… With some reading material or some shit! Plenty've people like you out there, even if Trisha ain't into it."

Casey was naive about that kind of thing, but one thing he couldn’t miss was Trisha’s overall reaction. So tepid, it hardly made the thing worth pressing. She’d always be enough. He didn’t have to test her in some sick way for his own pleasure…

”Well, I’m glad it ain’t weird… But she’s clearly not down. So, I think we can skip it.” he asserted, looking back down at Trisha with a tender and loving smile.

Nothing would ever be as important as her smile. Her comfort. He’d heard the old men… Happy wife, happy life. He was more than confident that she’d be everything he ever needed. He didn’t need much to begin with, and she easily surpassed all expectations. Getting into some perverse power fantasy would only taint the purity of their entire relationship.

And… What if she did find someone better?

No. No. Absolutely not, do not hold onto-

Trisha's pensive look broke into a soft smile up at him. Thank god… Maybe he really did just want to see her flirt with someone else, but normally that kind of want led to more. Not that she was comfortable with even flirting with someone else. That felt like emotional cheating, even if it was some consensual thing.

But he wasn't going to press it, and there was nothing in his expression that said he was upset about it. Just love.

She wriggled up to press a light kiss against his lips, eyes squinting happily at him.
“I’m glad… Not that I ever could. Just the thought of hitting on someone else makes me feel a bit sick. I don't want to flirt with anyone other than you."

"And me!" Cass interjected with a grin, making a mental note to get Casey some kind of related book as a Christmas gift. As a joke, obviously.

Trisha turned her head to stare at Cass.
“I said what I said."

"Awww, you're breaking my heart!" Cass clutched her chest dramatically, before grinning at Casey.
"But hey don't worry, we'll skip it… But y'know if you ever think ‘bout stuff like that and you're too embarrassed to talk to Trisha about it, I'm your gal! I've tried just about every fetish under the sun!"

Casey just grinned, shaking his head and holding onto Trisha a bit tighter. Ultimately, she was all he really needed or even wanted. Beating guys up for hitting on his girlfriend had to be a movie thing. They didn’t think that was actually romantic, right? Besides, they had the chance of being assaulted by people who could kill them easily if they weren’t paying attention. How was that any less macho than beating some drunk jerk up. Especially if it was some kind of setup… That would just be plain wrong!

”I think I’d go to Leon first… No offense.” he blushed again, shaking his head some more.

It was a little embarrassing, but he’d get through that without a lot of extra thought, and Trisha would be better off for it in the long run. He kept looking down at her with love in his eyes. She’d gone through so much. And would continue to, if not for a while, at least the next few weeks… He had to make sure she was taken care of mentally, physically, emotionally, from all angles. And that meant really making sure that he was doing the right thing by her.

It was a challenge. But one that made his life far richer than it had been previously.
Hidden 8 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Act 2.4
Sunday December 10th.
Desolate Farmhouse, North of St. Portwell.

CW: Corporal Punishment & Abuse
Pain and frustration melted into anxious anticipation, sparks of conflict flaring up in any random direction as the days grew closer and closer to an inevitable conclusion. An operation of calculated overwhelming force headed by a man who, in the last stages of his career, had been a literal Nazi-Adept Hunter. There were levels of preparedness and conceptualization that all skilled Adepts could strive for; and Casey was taught not to ignore the basic ingenuity found within the human psyche. So, anything that was done in the service of bringing this threat to heel once and for all, was done with such hammering force that one would think he still carried the weight of the Government behind him.

It wasn’t so, of course: But the events at Beppo Park had galvanized a truce in the ranks in order to press the entire weight of several generations of loyal followers into a single effort. The cleansing of the land, and the clean purge of the unfortunate circumstances born a decade prior. Thus, the edifice surrounding Dollhouse was broken pillar by pillar, each crack made by the blood of more and more martyrs whom Casey managed to goad onto greater feats still. And behind it, cold calculations for a war further in the distance, knowing names and faces that could sway things unfavorably for the ultimate winning side.

Those whom he didn’t want to deal with later, died dealing with Dollhouse now. In this instance, Casey wasn’t so picky about which literal side they represented either. Simple radicals, anyone who he felt wouldn’t understand compromise in a losing situation later on. He knew he could sit on the fence as long as he wanted, so long as he and Leon worked in tandem. All part of consideration as he stood in the windy field outside this little grey farmhouse. It was a quiet place, cornstalks growing wild in the roughshod land surrounding the city proper.

The house was on a hill… A suspiciously round, dome-like hill. One wouldn’t notice unprompted, but once it was revealed in ernest, it became an unmistakably awkward feature in an otherwise rocky, craggy coastal landscape. The too-smooth slopes, the unseen vent hoods hidden under the untended crops left to waste away year after year. Down below, dozens of their own lay in wait for the signal to begin laying waste to all forces inside the base. Meanwhile, Casey had gathered a battalion more, and surrounded the farmhouse while leveling the nearby foliage in order to create clear sightlines.

While most scurried about, passing out equipment and getting into defensive positions with magical barriers and countermeasures set up around the complex, Casey telepathically doled out instructions while providing what basic orange benefits he could to his fellow Adepts, all from the line just past the front of the actual property. He was comically armored in what one could only describe as a battlesuit in some kind of Ferroman reboot. He could’ve gone on and on about the delicate specifications and the sheer amount of magic it took to make a set of battle armor like his, but he knew Trisha had plenty on her mind being this close to a potential fight. Never mind not knowing exactly what was happening below them…

They were all in anticipation over that. But Casey was confident enough to let her cling to him without telling her to get back into the truck. In truth, he wanted her there too, so long as she knew the true scope of what he was orchestrating. His attention wasn’t even entirely pulled away, which was impressive. He had plenty of processing power to spare, willing the armor to warm to a toasty level in order to keep her comfortable where she held him. He didn’t speak with his voice, as the helmet had no speakers for him to shout through.

”I haven’t heard anything yet. Everything’s still jammed up about a hundred feet down, like I hit a big anti-Lux wall.” he explained to Trisha through their connection, hoping to ease her anxiety even just a little.

Trisha nodded slowly. In truth, her own attention was divided too- though not to the impressive degree Casey’s was. The most difficult thing was stopping her bees from attacking the strange tin man she was leaning against, that they could vaguely smell and tell was a person but not enough to ascertain the threat. They just assumed close and unfamiliar meant threat while on high alert.

There were thousands on her, though not to the point she was completely covered. They gathered in various ‘strategic’ spots- her shoulders, her braided hair, gathered under her thick, puffy jacket ready to swarm out. A tiny Princess floated beside her, ready to be expanded when Trisha needed to call even more bees through. She’d brought a decent amount with her- enough for an initial defence if needed, but not so much that it was a pain while waiting.

And they were all strangely quiet and still, aside from the small groups that kept trying to make incursions over her arms onto Casey. Different from their normal loud energy, they were like bee soldiers patiently awaiting commands from above.

“So it hasn’t failed yet, at least.” Trisha responded, ever positive. It was difficult when she was facing her first real, planned, combat situation in almost ten years. The fight with Lila didn’t exactly count- there’d never been a true risk there- and the assassin was entirely different. She knew if- when- it happened, that same mood would strike her when she got in the zone and more intune with her bees. But the anticipation and leadup was more difficult.

It reminded her of all those evenings watching the sun set, waiting for the Stygian Snake’s minions to appear. At least it was light…

“You’re going to need to equip this with some kind of… scent generator.” She continued, trying to distract herself from her nerves. She pulled one arm away from him to scoop up a group of bees crawling across the other, depositing them inside her jacket.
“Some of them are convinced that you’re a threat.”

There was a gentle vibration, followed by gentle wisps of condensation like someone was breathing out. In truth, Casey turned on the machine’s ventilation system, and allowed his scent to fill the air around him.

”Does the cold negatively affect their scent tracking? I can turn the fans up.” he asked rather casually as he let one eye fade into an observation patch on the left-rear team lead.
They were bumbling around with some pre-fab walls locked up in spell caps. They needed to be broken and cooked before tossing, but the fools kept cracking and tossing, causing the walls to be more than half-buried in the dense layer of topsoil covering the bunker.

“No, they can sense fine through the cold. It’s other weather that’s a problem, like rain or when it’s really windy.” Trisha explained, letting out a soft sigh of relief as the bees started to pick up Casey’s smell- and her own pheromones that saturated him. It was one less thing to worry about in her own little army, allowing her to order more onto her shoulders and arms without worrying they’d keep trying to attack him.

“Wind’s bad for all of us. It blows my pheromones back in my face too. I’ve made myself panic with that before. At least it’s a clear day today… Just cold.”

Though the cold wasn’t particularly conducive for bee activities either, hers had at least built up a resistance over the years. This temperature wouldn’t affect them. They were well fed, too, which kept their energy levels high.

“But they can smell you just fine now, thanks. They don’t think I’m being statically kidnapped by a tin man anymore.”

”You and I both wish it was tin. But it’s a lot heavier than that. Don’t forget, if something manages to turn me into a can of corned beef hash, the button to release the entire thing is under the crook in the right knee.” Casey chided rather morbidly, his inability to refrain from gallows humor shining through on this cold field.

He didn’t expect much. It was runic armor plating he’d requisitioned from an uncovered cache outside Berlin. Easily one of the most magically conductive metals on the planet made by top-notch Forge Adepts. The metal was meant to be for the magical tank line that the enemy had hoped to roll out. Casey could only imagine that if they hadn’t been squirreling the materials away, and had maybe tried making one of the massive land-barges, maybe things would’ve turned out differently.

For all their technical prowess, foresight really went down the drain in the last two years of that war…

Casey let half of his brain drift off into ordering the team leader to get things done properly before something dumb happened… It prompted some serious movement on the other end, which gave him a headache from the otherwise static position he shared with Trisha.

”That was supposed to be a joke. But, also, y’know, seriously just in case. You won’t be able to carry me if I end up too exhausted to walk. I love you… Something tells me it’ll all work out, y’know?”

“I won’t be able to carry you in or out of the armour.” Trisha’s lips pressed into a thin line. Hopefully it wouldn’t come to that.
“I’m calling Cass if that happens… But I hope it works out like you think it will. I love you too.”

She wasn’t viewing things through a particularly negative lens, but she wasn’t exactly feeling positive either. Not because of anything that happened in the leadup to destroy her confidence. Just the only proper fight she’d been in that counted as a ‘victory’ was when they sealed the Stygian Snake- and with how many people had died that night it was difficult to look back on it as a good one. Every other battle had been a stalemate at best, paused by the rising sun.

“How… long do you think it’ll be? Not until they’re done, but the actual fighting. Hours? The whole day?” She tried to distract herself from the simmering panic with practical questions. If Casey thought he might end up too exhausted to walk, it might end up on the longer end of things, right?

Casey shook his head actively, the metal suit jiggling ever so slightly.

”I have no idea, Love. That’s the thing about stuff like this: There’s no direct precedent. I can tell you about times we’ve spent weeks outside bunker complexes just trying to figure out ways to crack them. In the same story, I’ll tell you about the forty-five minutes it took to actually clear the complex out once we had a solid plan. And don’t even get me started on those damn things.” he replied.

In truth, there was simply no way of judging for sure what the response would be. They had to know that people were gathering up here, right? That the main entrance and exit to the facility below was totally blocked off, and that their Lux access was being systematically jammed section by section? Or, was this all another red herring to begin with, just a distraction to keep the Temple forces busy?

He wanted to give her the comfort of a more specific answer, but it just wasn’t in the cards.

”If you wanna go off just fighting? Could be five minutes. Could be an hour. Could be eight. Failure means, well… Cherish this moment as the last bit of peace we may get. You never know what the ultimate end could be. I know you and I will walk away from this place, but in what world we leave toward, who knows?”

It was pretty difficult to cherish a moment that Trisha didn’t find particularly peaceful. Trisha had always found the leadup worse. It was the moment where she could go further and further down the rabbit hole of panic and think of all the awful scenarios that might play out. In a way it prepared her for actually going in- it could only get as bad as she’d imagined, after all. With enough preparation, she was good at shutting off- or using- the panic while actually having to fight. But the before and after weren’t so easy.

She couldn’t put all that on Casey, though, just because he hadn’t given her an answer that in any way changed how she felt. Made her more anxious, if anything, pushing her to mentally play out all those scenarios where they did fail again.

Some of them didn’t seem better to walk away from. Like the return of the Stygian Snake, or similar…

“Oh, I see. I guess… that makes sense. It was always very clear cut when we fought the snake. Sundown to sunrise. Eight to ten hours… Thank God it was summer. It makes sense most fights wouldn’t be like that. My experience if very night Apparition specific.” She responded casually, like she wasn’t stuck on the possibility of going back to that- in Winter, when the dark hours were longer. Was it even the worst scenario? Surely it could be worse…

Some of the bees started buzzing in response to her thoughts, leaking out as gentle pheromones only they could sense. A group gathered on her neck like that would somehow help.

“It just doesn’t feel very peaceful right now. Maybe it is for you… But you’re organising everything, aren’t you? So how can it be?”

”Experience, mostly. Sitting on the precipice of violence never gets easier. You just get numb. Some psychos like me even enjoy it. Few and far between, but the trait makes for good soldiers. Compliant, easily moved around like chess pieces.”

He tried to shuttle some experience her way. Not directly, rather in the form of what amounted to a pamphlet of emotions which he felt best assisted his overall feelings at the moment. Anticipation, yes, but also that same fear that Trisha knew well. The difference was anticipation over anxiety. The anticipation of free live fire target practice. The thrill of hitting, and being hit. The adrenaline as everything melts away until he was so locked in that it took external stimulation to bring him out of the fervor.

That bloodthirst was cut by the fear that pain and loss may come. But the bridled warhorse craved action more than it cared about future freedoms. Realizing how easy it was for himself put Casey slightly at odds with the familiar feeling, not exactly wishing it to be something Trisha experienced, but definitely not wanting her to suffer the alternative.

”I’m sorry it’s hard. I’d love to have some gold nugget advice to help you get through it, but that kind of thing isn’t easy to muster. I just don’t have it in my pocket right now.” he punctuated the thought by letting his arm wrap around her just a little tighter.

Trisha's brow furrowed as Casey shared his own emotions, something that didn't really change her own. She wasn't sure if anything could ever beat out her anxiety until she was in a moment where that same anxiety helped her survive. 'Peaceful' moments before those situations just let the panicked thoughts multiply. And she really wasn't like Casey. She didn't enjoy fighting like that. The adrenaline during it kept her going, but it didn't thrill her or anything. Maybe because it was never just her safety on the line, but the bees too? Their deaths and the hurt with it always came before any actual physical harm to her.

Or she just wasn't made for things like this.

She appreciated him trying, at least.

"It's alright, I didn't expect you to have something to just fix it." She replied simply, leaning into him. It wasn't as comforting as it normally would be, with the magical armour Casey was wearing and her own thick clothes putting a lot of layers between them, nevermind the bees that had to reposition themselves when she changed how she was hugging him.

"I'd rather be this anxious now than have a panic attack during it, anyway. Even if neither are pleasant this is… better. I'll be fine. I just don't think I'll ever not feel anxious before something like this. I'm not… Strong like you are."

”The goal is to avoid this kind of thing in the future. Just a little longer, right?” he asked, attention drifting slightly toward a wave of perception opening up from below. Something had to be happening…

But Trisha didn’t tense up, and she didn’t seem to have any kind of visceral response to the incoming shock. So, whatever it was, Greyson was at least still alive. Hell, maybe there was a world where Greyson-

The sensation of living in a big carbonated soda bubble full of corn syrup erupted upward through the channel in the center of the bunker, blowing the windows of the farm house out and scattering doors and glass across the front line very slowly. Lazily, the ground shook as if there was something playing sad jazz in the sewers under a quiet street. Brass instruments relaying a dirge let giant pink bubbles full of flower petals crawl out of the house’s confines like fizz escaping a cup.

One particularly intent bubble meandered its rolling body toward Casey and Trisha with seeming intelligence and recognition. Then, before either could put the implication together, the bubble was upon them. And then, like so many times before, Trisha was alone. Casey, once again, magically severed from her.

She was in a large field, thick grass soft beneath her fingers. It spread far from her until it hit the trees encircling this expansive clearing. It was warm, sun gently bathing her skin through the leafy canopy overhead. Early evening, she could vaguely tell. A few hours till sundown.

It was nice. She wasn’t alone, either. The clearing was full of life, laughter and indistinct chatting filling the wide, open space. Her gaze moved away from the trees in the distance towards the sounds.

Different groups of people were scattered around. Sycamore members. The loudest drew her attention first- Ella brandishing her channeler and shouting some lame magical girl phrase, goofing around with Saskia and Lisa while Kari laughed and watched. Adora and her trinity were nearby too, though not without eyerolls towards the antics. Trisha didn’t even find herself annoyed by the loudness for once. It was almost endearing… nostalgic.

Further away, but still in the same area, was Luca, grass turned brown in a circle around him, along with Olivia, Lila and Lynn. A quieter group enjoying each other's company while watching the more rambunctious magical girls.

Just as loud but on the other side of the clearing was the jock squad and the large group surrounding them for the unlimited beer Sully was pouring out. Him and Drake were the worst, clearly already drunk. But it extended beyond them- on the outskirts of the group Linqian and Aryin were both egging each other on to chug a full cup of something.

All of the smart kids were there too, even Sloane and Anya- though they’d brought along a fold out table and chairs to look at plans. Because it was impossible for them to have fun. But they were there.

Everyone was for the Summer Solstice. The longest day, and the shortest night they’d have to spend fighting the Stygian Snake and its minions. Enough time that they could actually relax for once… They could make the most of the nice weather in the place where it all started.

Trisha wasn’t alone either. The Rich clique sat near here, with Gabe and Sylvia bickering about something. She was closer to the more chill members- Sage and Lin talking quietly, though that was indistinct too.

Another hand covered her own, her gaze moving from it up to the smiling face of the boy she’d almost loved and then lost. His dark eyes creased slightly as they looked at her, soft lines of his face showing an immaturity he’d never grow out of. It was the Martin she wished she remembered- the happy, bright boy rather than the desperately fighting teenager who died in front of her.

But right now he looked at her with a gaze full of warmth and hope. It made her feel a little sad, but almost peaceful too. As she was pulled out of the Recollection the feeling and thought lingered.
He would have wanted her to be happy too.

Casey’s face was the first thing to appear as the haze of the massive bubble’s inherent spell passing over her entirely. It was terribly good at remaking that sort of Recollection whatever it was…

”-ey! There you are! You’re alright! Right!? That’s you in there, Trisha!?” Casey asked almost frantically, presuming that she got the exact same kind of treatment he’d gotten.

A happy memory long lost, of a moment where they were all actually together without pain. As much as he cherished it, he was eager to know whether or not the secret of the Tree’s location had been broken as they expected, or if Greyson had somehow managed to protect the power of the spell indefinitely past his demise.

“Who else would it be? Greyson’s ghost? He’d choose someone else to possess.” Trisha managed to half joke, wiping away the single tear that slipped down her cheek before smiling at him. She was still coming out of the memory, everything else a bit fuzzy outside of his face right in front of her.

“It’s me, I’m alright. I’m guessing… It worked? Greyson’s obviously dead and- Well, nothing horrible’s happened yet?”

Casey didn’t waste any time pulling her close and hugging her as the echoing of a mystical trombone blared up through the house like a loudspeaker. All of the sound being funneled out, now punctuated by the echoing rapport of gunfire touching off from that same cavernous source. The fighting had begun in earnest…

”I’m so glad you’re alright… I didn’t honestly know what the fuck was gonna happen! What about the Tree, Babe!? Do you remember where the Tree is!?” he blurted out, freeing one arm to reach down toward his helmet as half his brain started receiving combat reports from below.

“I remember. It’s…” Her brow furrowed, head shaking slightly.
“I’d have to take you there. Big clearing in the middle of a forest outside of St Portwell doesn’t help and I… really only know directionally from my house, or the rundown manor we stayed in. Maybe Leon will have actual directions. He’ll remember too.”

Casey nodded in return, his face turning from excited to serious in a brief moment. It was all he needed to know: That the information existed once again. A signal rocked out across St. Portwell, a simple trigger spell to a communication band that utilized one of Junior’s fancy wireless connections. It was magically encrypted, unable to be picked up by just about any form of bug from an external network, and left Casey free to speak.

”Attention all stationary, prep scenario two, ready the mini-fort. Will update as able, over.”

It was a relief that one of the contingencies that they leaned into seemed to be the correct opening gambit. They needed to get to the tree and lock it down as quickly as possible, and that meant making sure there was as little leakage from the organization at hand as possible. Casey’s biggest concern, after Dollhouse, was the freakish remnants of Sycamore’s worst who still prowled the streets. He’d need to be quick about retrieving Leon, and hope that whatever Greyson did, he kept it out of the hands of Eighth Street.

Casey let his mind drift down to Leon, trying to bother him only to get a brain full of Lelou for his troubles. Recoiling from the bite, Casey shook his head in frustration before refocusing on Trisha.

”That’s totally fine! Here, just… Don’t resist.

He leaned his forehead in toward her, intent on the casual passing of the Recollection without considering the gravity of the information he was asking to be handed.

“Huh?” Trisha was only confused for a moment before his forehead touched hers, and she felt the tug of him trying to pull the Recollection out of her. She did resist for a moment. She’d never liked Recollection sharing.

But it was Casey. She trusted him… And he needed to know. So she lowered her guard to open her mind, handing over the entire memory to him and the implicit understanding of the Tree’s location with it.

Casey was slammed with the entire memory all at once, but catching it bit by bit, he found enough landmarks to realize why nobody had found it… The fucking tree was so big, it looked like its own grove system from the air. Otherwise, it was in the most random, openly noticeable spot, that the only thing really protecting it was a crotchety old farmer with an over-under slung under his arm. One of the grandfathers of a Sycamite long dead. The kids got the old man to treat the tree like a memorial for that tragic summer, when all those kids went missing…

He really didn’t want to disturb the old man’s vigil… But others wouldn’t mind so badly, so he had to get there first.

”Perfect! Trisha, perfect!-” he praised her, seeing the end and seeing that boy Martin’s face staring back at him… It was almost bittersweet. But he knew better than to let her emotions inadvertently pass into him without reproach. They had to learn in his outfit, and this was no different.

He then tucked back into his radio.
”-Gold team! Off the Morrowville Parkway, on the empty side of the city. Property belongs to a Roger T. Benson, the fucking tree should be eight hundred feet back along the edge of the property line where it meets the forest! Copy?”

The voice on the other side quickly confirmed, and Casey was left with a calm, enthusiastic look on his face.

”Babe! It’s-”
He wrapped his hands around her shoulders, lifting her up fully into an embrace.
”-over! It’s fuckin’ over!”

Maybe he was counting his chickens before they hatched, but in the moment, Casey couldn’t stop the excitement from welling up and out of his body.

Trisha let out a surprised squeak as her feet were pulled up off the ground, not expecting that kind of a response right now. Her arms wrapped around him as best as they could with the armour he was wearing, bees scurrying around to her back to avoid being squished in the embrace.

“I- I guess it is? Nobody’s hunting me anymore. No more Dollhouse and… No more Sycamore.” She let out a sigh of relief, smiling at him before vaguely gesturing towards the building.
“I thought you were excited to shoot people?”

Casey let her down, shrugging with a smile.

”Not a zero percent chance it’s coming. Leon hasn’t responded yet. Should I check on Cass?” he asked her calmly, not wanting her to think he was insinuating that things were going wrong.

Trisha frowned thoughtfully, before nodding. She’d rather know if the fighting was going to spill out up here… If Cass even knew that.
“There’s no harm in checking? Or maybe there is, maybe it’ll distract her?”

”No sense not trying.” he said very simply, patting her shoulder before zoning out, his right eye veering off into another realm.

Deep below, Cass would be able to feel the practiced tug on her Emotional Field. If not familiar at this point, it was at least distinct enough that it’d easily be readable as Casey.

[color=577d06][i]”Cass? How’s things down there Boo?”[/color] he tried to ask casually, in case things were tense.

”Great, awesome, this is way more fun than killing those other gangsters!” Cass’ mentally shouted back, with absolutely no volume control. She wasn’t exactly practiced with the whole Emotional Field magical communication shit, so it just ended up painfully loud.

”Don’t think they expected the massive wolf! Clearly their spies ain’t all that good!”

”Well, try to remind whoever is in charge of the body that you guys are in a big bundt pan. At any time, it could fill with molten batter, or just start cooking altogether. We really don’t know what funky shit is down there. How far down are you?” he asked, letting his head roll to the side and speak aloud to Trisha.

”She’s loving it… Typical.”

“Of course she is.” Trisha rolled her eyes in response- at Cass rather than Casey, obviously.

”Uh, like… Far enough down? I ain’t been paying attention! Can’t you magically figure that out?” Cass responded around the same time.
”Neither me nor Lelou know the fuck you mean with that metaphor… This place gonna fill with lava?!”

”It fuckin’ could! Don’t play with your meals, and link up with the descent team as soon as possible! Keep your beacon bands running, and don’t lose them! You kept it around your waist, right?” he sounded like a concerned parent, letting the other half of his brain lean into the descent group and gauging the gap between them overall.

”There’s quite a bit of space between your groups. Don’t rush! We made location on the Sycamore Tree, so just… Make sure nobody gets out alive, Cass! That’s a grim order, but it’s necessary!”

”Oh, that’d explain what Linqian meant by a shitty hiding place- And don’t worry, I ain’t planning to let anyone live. You don’t gotta worry ‘bout the others either… Y’know what Lelou’s like, and Linqian’s almost more murderous- Andrade’s pretty scary himself!” With the way she was chatting away, it was like she wasn’t in the middle of combat herself- which she was. But it wasn’t exactly difficult at that moment.

”Also I got the fucking band thing on. Y’know how much Leon lectured me ‘bout keeping it on on the way down? He wouldn’t shut up about it! I ain’t ‘bout to live through another lecture afterwards if I lose it!”

”When there’s suddenly a hundred gun barrels pointed downrange and you’re on the other side by accident, you’re gonna be thankful you wore that fucking thing! Keep it on, make sure everyone gets out safe! We’re waiting up here for you!”

Casey’s eye twisted back into place, no longer rolling into oblivion.

”She sounds like she can handle it. Why don’t you let the bees settle down now, and we’ll get you back in the truck where its warm. Eh?” he offered as the sound of slow jazz bathed itself across the countryside.

“You’re not just trying to get rid of me, are you?” Trisha asked, even though she knew it wasn’t the case at all. But it was in her anxious nature, especially when something was happening. What if he was planning to do something crazy? No, no, she should trust him. And he said Cass sounded like she could handle it! Which she probably could, since it was Cass.

And it would be nicer for the bees to not be constantly waiting for a fight.

Head tilting towards the ground, she nodded.
“So long as you think everything’s alright. I don’t want to be back there away from everyone if something actually happens.”

[color=577d06]”Well, honestly, I’d prefer it if you were anyway. Just, y’know, ‘cuz it's dangerous otherwise. Like the bubbles: It was already scary enough that I practically couldn’t move fast enough to block you. It was going to hit you no matter what, and that’s honestly the scarier part. Magic’s… Pretty fucked up, honestly.”[/i] he mused, turning them both away from the farmhouse to walk back toward the truck that had taken them here.

Casey’s gun swung around on its sling at his front, helmet in his off hand and Trisha pulled tight to him in his main.
”You know, I was thinking… Maybe if I’d had the courage to approach you guys that summer, and offer to help… Maybe I would’ve Kindled then. Kind of weird, ain’t it?” he pondered the irony in the situation with quiet consideration.

Trisha bit down her immediate response ‘or you might’ve died.’ It wasn’t exactly a good one, even if it seemed just as likely. Half of Sycamore had died, from freshly Kindled to experienced magic users…

“It is weird, yeah. Things would’ve been a lot different between us, I think… I don’t think we would’ve been in the same group either. You probably would’ve gotten on with Luca and Jasper and that lot.” She responded more evenly, glancing up at him with a half smile.
“Did you not have to deal with any of the Snake’s Apparitions? Or the people it controlled? I know that’s what caused a lot of people to Kindle, before they joined Sycamore.”

”We weren’t allowed to leave Temple grounds without an adult. Only Leon had that privilege. Well… Elise did too, but she wasn’t exactly chomping at the bit to get in. She was doing just about everything in her power to get out. he smiled, fondly remembering Elise’s vehement disgust every time their mom hinted at “girls from school”.

His sister had always been incredibly snobby… It was only after her time in the Witch’s College in New York that she found softness beyond the basic kind.

”Once there was an alert on grounds, and I saw some of them. But I wasn’t really troubled one way or another if I remember right. Snakes with legs was comic book shit, I must’ve just laughed off the absurdity.” he admitted, not having examined this very early reaction to horrors beyond man’s typical comprehension.

“That almost sounds like good parenting.” Trisha commented drily, lips pulling up into a more of a smile.
“If, y’know, I didn’t know what Lynette was generally like as a Mother… Not letting you out alone during a multiversal threat was sensible…”

Maybe Casey saw it a different way, and wished he’d been included and participating. Probably. Trisha would have gladly swapped places and been protected by someone- anyone- from having to participate. Or maybe she could only think that now looking back on it… She’d had enough money to leave the city for the summer. But where could she go as a fourteen year old? Her Mother certainly didn’t want her over that summer.

“You wouldn’t be saying that if you’d seen one of them eat someone.” She continued with a straight face, before letting out a slight laugh.
“The legged snakes were ridiculous enough that they were easier to mentally deal with than the shadow creatures or other nightmares the Snake created and dragged us into. It’s why I’m not really scared of normal snakes like I am the dark.”

”I definitely saw one bite this guy and swallow him whole, so-” Casey half giggled in return, knowing that he’d probably seen worse.

The Nazis weren’t afraid of experimentation, and still unleashing the failures. Failure to them didn’t always mean that the end result wasn’t a nightmarish killing machine, he’d realized. Sometimes failure was simple as “We can’t control this thing when it's out, so it isn’t a viable weapon platform.” But, the freaks and fiends of Thule still lurked in the forests after the war, and that was the most horrifying thing he’d ever been a part of. The Hunts of the Black Forest.

Of course, he didn’t really know the extent of the Stygian’s abilities, leaving him unwilling to push the envelope any further. Popping the door to the back of the SUV, he held Trisha’s hand for her to step up, then unclipped his chest plate to slip out of it and follow her inside. As it came off, his whole kit shrunk into a convenient hand-held size, rather than something big and bulky enough to encase his chest.

The smooth jazz was still audible through the car… Which meant it was clearly magical music. Only, in here, it was quieter. More intimate. The perfect kind of place to really hear the music. There were no words to the song, but a trombone seemed to carry the lyrical aspect of the dirge occasionally singing out in brassy mourning, other times quenching into a low rumble as it waited for the next moment to soar again.

”This music, huh? What the fuck monster has this as a power?” he openly speculated, not exactly associating the massive pillar of pink light… Though, more hints could probably be ascertained from other sources… Like the millions of pink lotus petals falling and melting away like snow.

Trisha raised her eyebrows up at Casey, before pointedly looking outside at the cascading petals. She'd already guessed based on the timing, and the way the music had echoed in the background of her Recollection. But it was impressive that it lasted so long.

“I think it's Greyson's dying… Spell?" She replied, leaning her body into Casey with a slight smile.
“Or, his ghost musically haunting Linqian. I'm sure she won't be happy about it… but the lotus flowers were always his thing, and it started when the pink bubbles hit."

It made it bittersweet, really. Like the Recollection, showing her a rare moment of Sycamore peace. A time when they were happily co-existing and just goofing off like teenagers should be. Even Greyson himself had been on his ‘best’ behaviour- still a dick, but a tolerable one. It was a bit annoying to be reminded of the rare good memories as everything was ending.

“I’m surprised it's lasting this long. What if… you don't think we'll be stuck hearing this for the rest of our lives, so you?" She looked up at him with a somewhat goofy shocked expression, hoping it was clear enough that she was joking. Trying to push herself away from sentimentality about something she shouldn't really be all that sentimental about.

Casey’s lips pursed together in consideration. If this was a spell, it would feel different. Every sensory perception he had of the anomaly gave him the impression of Apparitional magic, with little to no actual associative Lux. In other words, this was a ghost imitating an Adept, but on an Apparitional scale. Their potential, those outer entities, ranged vastly in opposition to the usual Shimmer Adept, whose upper limits were almost entirely determined by the amount of Lux the human body was able to circulate.

”That… May actually be it, honestly. This is an extraneous birth, it seems like. I’ve seen it once before: We had a situation in Italy; the guy wasn’t in my unit, but boy howdy he was fighting like a demon. Then, all of a sudden, crunch, y’know? He got flattened by this fucking- Well, point is, the corpse fuckin’ erupted into this crazy magic. Intense, way more intense than anything I’d seen. His soul coalesced there and then, into this massive red light that shot a pillar just like that into the sky. Only, when stuff started to rain down from the sky, well… They were bullets. And they weren’t raining. They were traveling. Like, y’know, a bullet. It was actually fucking devestating.” he recalled the amount of friendly fire before the unseen entity vanished into nothingness, taking its lights along with it.

”I took one in the shoulder, nearly bled me out.” he giggled.

Trisha stared at him for a moment, head shaking slightly. He said it like it wasn’t a big deal… Maybe it wasn’t. There’d probably been so many times that he’d almost died during the war. It wasn’t exactly her place to tell him he shouldn’t talk about it so lightly… But it did worry her! For the future, and all the times he might just put himself in danger without much thought. It was a worry she already had, just increased as they moved towards the Temple’s collapse.

“So… We should be grateful that his dying eruption is sad jazz and lotus petals? It’s less dangerous than bullets.” She said, trying not to look too sad about the whole Casey almost bleeding out thing. She did shuffle even closer to him so that she could properly cuddle into him, as much as was possible in the SUV.

“I didn’t know that was a thing that could happen. It never happened against the Snake… I guess no one had strong enough emotions or whatever for it to. For such an asshole, Greyson had a lot of love.” She bit her lip, before letting out a slight sigh.
“The Recollection too, it could’ve been awful. Like, the final battle when we sealed it. But it wasn’t. None of the end has been… Makes it feel like Sycamore was all friendliness rather than friendly fire.”

”People grow, and change. Sometimes for the better, other times not. But nostalgia and tinted goggles aren’t always rosey. Sometimes they’re dark, obscuring, and just get in the way of you seeing anything to do with it. Granted: The interactions you’ve had with other Sycamites is a pretty good indication that there were reasons to feel how you do. I’d never try and dissuade you from your grief. But, clearly, not everyone feels how they felt back then. Even if they’re little changes, they made a big impact.”

For a moment, he smiled, then reached for her hand with great love and sincerity.

”Even you, Trisha. Please, try to accept that you’ve helped, and you’ve changed too. Maybe, we can start to hug them, instead of hitting them. After all, it’s all over now. No more tension. No more struggling for them.”

Trisha’s lips pressed together, looking down at their joined hands rather than into his eyes. He was right that people had changed, and she’d changed too. It had been ten years. Ten years of holding onto all of that resentment she felt towards them… But it wasn’t easy to let go of that. Especially after what happened with Martin. But it wasn’t like she’d given anyone a chance to even talk to her, nevermind make any amends- both ways. Except for Leon and that was only because he was Casey’s brother, and now Cass’ boyfriend.

It was hard to see how she’d directly helped. Cass was around helping thanks to her, sure… Casey was involved because of her. Was that enough? It didn’t really matter much anymore, anyway.

“I don’t know how to start getting over all these preconceived notions I have about everyone. And that they have about me.” She admitted, quietly and honestly.
“I didn’t go back because I thought I was just as likely to die whether I returned to Sycamore or not. They wouldn’t protect me. I didn’t give them a chance, because I assumed they wouldn’t give me one. Even though I know I’ve changed, and they probably had too. But I didn’t think I’d changed positively… I don’t know. I want to try, even if it’s all over and we’re going to leave. Not because of the stuff Leon was talking about, trying to be a coven that helps each other. But… I think there’s some people I could really be… friends with if I didn’t just react like I always do.”

”Like who?” Casey asked very simply.
Of course, she maybe meant Lila, and whoever the Hell she hung around with. Tangentially, 8th Street? No way; he’d already been in talks with a mole about finding ways to get Emily G. Reed to take some kind of bait for the authorities.

He was hoping that it was going to be something having to do with this scenario. Wrapping them up in a magical R.I.C.O. case would be their best chance of seeing Emily in prison forever.

“Probably…” Trisha trailed off, frowning a little bit. How many people were even left alive? So many of the more tolerable ones weren’t. Plenty of them died ten years back.
“Lila, I guess. It was fine until she brought up Evelynn… And Luca and Jasper, maybe. And then, well… Leon. Which maybe sounds a bit silly, but I didn’t really see myself being friends with him eventually until recently. Even when he started dating Cass. But then there’s everything with Martin so it’s still… hard to picture.”

Casey frowned remembering the whole problem with Martin and Leon’s culpability in it. Though, it wasn’t like Leon hadn’t been remorseful. He was hesitant to spill the beans on what they’d talked about between brothers…

”Well… I understand still being hesitant with Leon, but… Well, I hope that one day, sooner rather than later, you guys can level with one another for the sake of your own pasts. Not to say he feels worse than you, because obviously that’s not possible, but he’s absolutely broken up about it.”

And he understood why his brother hadn’t expressed remorse until then, even being in such close proximity with Trisha. Simply put, it was far easier to avoid these things if nobody was intent on calling you out. But, now that the dam was broken, a far more matured Leon could see the track of consequences, and then he had to deal with the emotional ramifications of that. Not that it was great, but any improvement was better than abject avoidance.

Trisha nodded slowly.
“I think… I want to move past it and try, at least. Even if it isn't easy for me, and I'll struggle to not just be defensive for a while. It's difficult because I don't normally… forgive. But I know I should eventually. It was pretty obvious how bad he felt about it. And he is dating my best friend- if Cass and you want to be around him then- then, there's something there for me to build on, right? And I love you and Cass enough to try."

It was a difficult process of convincing herself really, trying to really move past the resentful unforgiving person she'd been. Nobody ever gave her second chances so why should she. But now people did… and she had people that loved her, even if she found it difficult to entirely accept. She wanted her tiny bubble to expand. And either way, Leon was going to be in her life. If Cass really liked both of them like she claimed, then there must be some way the two could become friendly too. Even if it was something she'd never pictured before and still struggled with.

“I’ll need time before we actually… talk about it. Otherwise I'll just snap, and- Well, you know how much I hate talking about things." She gripped his hand a bit tighter.

In turn, he gave her the reassuring hand squeeze.
”As long as you think it’ll come, Trisha. I don’t want you to force yourself: Ultimately, if I have to separate those two parts of my life, I will. I don’t mind. Part of being an adult is doing stuff like that, and making sure that the people affected have enough information that they can also move on somehow.”

It was a difficult circumstance all around. Of course, ultimately, he didn’t love that he was in the middle of it… Thus, try and try again to make sure it’s all settled before they get settled. Before too many things had to be busted and broken in order to fit all the pieces into his life.
But at the same time, his connection to Leon came back to life, like his Brother knew he was being talked about.

”Casey!? The main lift is locked down! Say a prayer, they’re trying something stupid to get it running!”

Casey furrowed his brow inadvertently, clearing his throat.

”Speak of the Devil…” he said aloud, closing his eyes to try and get a better picture from the people he was connected to.

And then Trisha would be able to see the hairs on his arm stand at attention. Every bit of his body tensed, like he was about to vomit.

”That… That’s not gonna work! Stop, don’t fucking do that!”

”Oddly enough, I trust Keera. Besides, what’s the worst that happens if it doesn’t work?”

Then the entire house, and the entire top of the hill, turned into a massive flash of light as the facility split open and ruptured like a giant cyst. And the ejecta was, among the debris of raining corpses and plenty of stuff that had been kept down there, the soaring disk that was the encased lift they’d been stuck inside. The guard team at the top of the lift was almost certainly dead if they hadn’t gotten communication to move, and since he hadn’t seen anyone else leave the house, it was almost a guarantee that they were paste.

And then the matter of fact was that God knows how many people were now soaring through the air like a frisbee hucked out of a clay pigeon trap.

”Oh my fucking GOD!? Casey exclaimed loudly, almost immediately opening the door again to try and get a bead on where this thing was going to land.

“What the fuck?!" Trisha's reactive panic had all of her bees gathering onto her again with quiet buzzes. She shuffled after Casey, leaning out as best she could around him to also watch the budget spaceship landing. She resisted the urge to grab onto him, not sure if he was going to have to run out or take any other quick action. She didn't want to hinder him just because she was freaking out a bit.

“What- What- Everyone's in there right?!" She was doing her best not to go into full blown panic mode over it. It wasn’t like she could do anything, and it would just make things worse for Casey. She could already imagine how Cass was going to be calling it the best rollercoaster she'd ever been on. If she survived. She had to. If she didn't… Fuck. It would be fine. It had to be. Even if the house and part of the hill had completely exploded.

“Shit… that… Do we need to try and get to… whenever that's going to land? We should, shouldn't we?!"

Casey ran through a big list of the people who were involved that could potentially help this situation. This madness... As far as direct influences, he could think of a couple without getting terribly creative. It was really a matter of how they’d managed to pop the stack and get launched out of an elevator shaft like that.

”And… Catch it? They had some kind of plan. Let’s just-”

His ears caught the sound of loud grinding. There was no way… Spinning his whole body back to the farmhouse, now grabbing Trisha in both his arms, he couldn’t believe that there was a chance that they were coming out of the hole now… That they weren’t in the elevator.

”INCOMING IN FIVE, FOUR, THREE-”

Battered by the incoming psychic communication, Casey was simply stunned as the literal floor of the elevator shaft ground up to the top of the shaft before violently tipping up and over to launch its occupants haphazardly across the field.
There was still fighting happening, causing a great deal of the overwatch crews to try and slide into the conflict in order to overwhelm the enemies with numbers. But, before Casey and Trisha could even make their way up the hill to get there, things were breaking up.

Except for, strangely, Andrade... He wasn’t even using his knife: He had someone underneath him, knees pinning his arms as he drove his fist up and down again and again. He was sobbing. Weeping. Screaming downward as he mashed and mashed. Leon was quick to pull him off once he was coherent, his body producing massive plumes of steam as fresh, open wounds opened and closed with his flesh. His hair was pure white, and his body was massive compared to usual, standing two heads taller than usual with massive boney growths covering his fists like clawed gauntlets.

Casey, still slightly holding onto Trisha for fear of something else happening, quickly guided them up toward the madness. Cautionarily, he looked back at the flying disk just about as it hit the ground and exploded into a cloud of smoke and dust. His brow furrowed into anger, and for the first time, Trisha would be able to see a truly different Casey. Knowing what was coming, his hands came up to clasp over Trisha’s ears so she didn’t immediately get scared.

”What the fuck was that, and who gave anyone permission to do that in the first place!?”


His voice was like a loudspeaker, booming and full of fury. Though, Trisha would be able to feel that he wasn’t shaking. Rather, his hands around her ears were relaxed! Relaxed to the point that he was able to rub the back of her head comfortingly with his thumb. Leon was a little shocked, and some of the other lesser Adepts stood starkly at attention.

”Casey, don’t-”

Maybe it was bad to be this fearless… Maybe it was detrimental to his health. But Casey did his best to gently move Trisha to the side before rushing his giant brother in a meager attempt to tackle the ton of titanic muscle. He met a wall, but that didn’t stop him from using Leon’s arm like a step to climb him and drive his fist into Leon’s face.
Amazingly, it was enough to send the monster tumbling on his ass… Granted, Lelou had purposefully withdrawn her protection in that instant, but it looked impressively intimidating. But, before he could go to town-

”Hey, what the fuck?!” Obviously Cass wasn’t going to just sit around and let the two brothers beat each other to death- or just Casey beat Leon’s face over and over, like how it looked like it was going to go. No fucking way! He could be pissed all he wanted for how things went, but that didn’t give him a free pass to wail on a guy.

She wasn’t that far from Leon anyway, so it was pretty easy for her to dive in, using her Green Lux enhanced strength to try and pull Casey off Leon without hurting him.
”Fucking- Stop that shit!”

Trisha silently watched from where Casey had moved her to, one hand covering her mouth and eyes wide.

Still in a rage, but ultimately not strong enough on his own to break her hold, Casey baby-kicked until he was back on the ground.

”You didn’t ask! You didn’t fucking ask, you didn’t say anything, you fucking killed my guys!

Leon was trying to sort out what his brother meant while getting up, though his body had to turn to see the ruined house behind them. A ruined house… His guys? Leon’s heart sunk as he realized the repercussions of their quick escape. Blowing the lid off with the lift, the explosion behind it, must’ve absolutely shattered the house that people were guarding. Actively guarding, in positions inside the place…

When he turned back to face his brother again, there was abject horror in his expression.

”Why… Why did you have people stationed in the house!? You didn’t say anything about that!”

Released, Casey was already moving again, this time rushing past Leon and up toward the ruins of the house proper, where he desperately began shuffling debris out as his telepathic powers hunted for any magical connections underneath.

”Medic!? Fucking… MEDIC!?

This wasn’t a great place to be for him. Lots of memories of dragging bodies out of bombed out buildings. Now his hands were shaking. Now he was having the reaction that, until then, he could disassociate from. He wasn’t grunting as he moved things, he was practically screaming in desperation. Every ounce of muscle was being used to try and shift things around just so he could get to one faint signal.

”Let me- Let me move the shit!” Cass shoved her way past Casey again, trying to sniff out whoever he was trying to get to. But there was too much dust in the air for her nose to be of much use… But she had magical strength that he hadn’t, having an easier time tearing away a large piece of debris Casey was trying to get through.

”Just direct me! I’m also a fucking medic!”

Others followed after Cass, realizing what’d happened and very quickly jumping into the effort to help. Leon’s nose was sensitive enough in this form, despite all the dust, and he was easily able to begin crashing through the rubble to find everyone. Corpse or not, he could smell them. Hear their breathing. It was far more useful than what Casey was trying to do, considering he could technically do something similar but was far too captured by his emotions to do anything but be… Useless.

He barely even recognized Cass when she stepped in, wildly moving toward whatever rubble he could before his older brother ultimately embraced him and dragged him kicking and screaming back to Trisha with a grim look on his face. He didn’t bother apologizing… It was just another mistake. Another unforgivable mistake. Placing Casey down, he sprinted back up, starting to take control of the situation.

On his knees, Casey weakly leaned back and stared at the situation as the hundred or so people started to clear the rubble out more and more.

“Don’t- Don’t look at that.” Trisha practically whispered, snapping out of her own shock over the whole situation to move around in front of Casey and hug him. She curled around him slightly, trying to cradle his head against her so he couldn’t look.

She held him as tightly as she could, burying her own face into his hair and kissing his scalp. She didn’t really know what to do. The last time he’d said just her being there helped… But the last time was over a watermelon! Not a blown up building filled with possible dead bodies. His men. People he’d ordered in there. Fuck…

“It’s not your fault, Casey…”

There was enough to know that he was blaming himself. Probably the constant low volume ”Can’t save them…” that he was whispering over and over again. Still, he locked around Trisha even harder and began to sob heavily.

”Couldn’t fucking save them again! he whimpered, hands gripping into her almost too tightly.
But, he was also fighting it internally. He knew she was there, and she was right. It hadn’t been his fault… Directly, maybe… But he had sent them in there. Even if the other group managed to get down and link up, which they clearly had, they hadn’t relayed that there was another group at the top! And he should’ve made sure they knew beforehand, that Cass knew, or Leon knew beforehand…

There were a thousand scenarios in his head where this hadn’t happened… Where people had been more patient, and waited, and hadn’t just done whatever the fuck they wanted… He couldn’t help but feel disrespected again, and totally looked over. How could he accept responsibility for this?
He simply couldn’t. There was no way he could live with this on his hands knowing what had happened recently, and what would happen in the near future. The reality was, it was time, once more, to lead men and make mistakes doing so. No commanding officer had a spotless track record, and if they did, they were lying. He’d come to this conclusion with his Therapist, that there were no perfect soldiers. That everyone was human…

With Trisha holding him, reassuring him, he at least managed to stop whimpering. There was no telling what the others would think after seeing him like this… About breaking down in the middle of command, assaulting a “subordinate” in as much as the two of them agreed Casey was logistically in charge… He didn’t consider that the others would actually have empathy, or respect for him, after this. But, eventually he was at least no longer trying to crush Trisha every time his chest heaved.
He was quiet. Quiet enough to speak weakly…

”Why… Why don’t people wait? Why don’t they listen to me?” he frustratedly spoke from within Trisha’s embrace.

Trisha had managed to hold Casey as solidly as she could, barely making a sound even as he squeezed her tight enough it hurt a few times. But a little physical pain was nothing on the emotional anguish he was going through… Even through the silent sobbing, she could guess some of what was going through his head. The guilt and trauma that came with something like this.

“I don't know." Trisha admitted softly, tilting her head slightly so her voice was completely muffled by his hair. She wasn't sure if it was a question he even wanted an answer for… Not that she had any amazing ones.

“Maybe they panicked. Not… everyone thinks clearly under duress… Not that it excuses anything… I don't know, Casey, I really don't. They should-" She bit her lip for a moment. Maybe it'd be hypocritical to say they really should listen to him, because she didn't always. But she was trying, and in situations like this… She really would. Because he was the one with experience. It wasn't hypocritical to say people should listen to him here, because it wasn't the same as the times she didn't in their relationship.

“People like to think they know best, even if they don't. They don't… like having someone above them. I guess it's cause… we're not all trained like in the military?"

”How the fuck am I supposed to talk to him about this? This… shit… I’ve ruined it. You’re free. You’re both free. Safe, finally. I go and make a big deal out of a few people getting hurt and dying… They signed up for this. They knew there was a chance for danger. For death. But, they didn’t sign up to get mashed by friendly fire. Nobody signs up for that except the Soviets.” he grumbled, not willing to put his emotions into more crying.

He’d done enough work. Enough work to talk himself down, and he hadn’t quite seen anyone’s parts strewn about like a Blonde Betty factory, so that part wasn’t fresh in his mind… But it was still difficult. He didn’t have to see it to know that he’d seen it before. Wrenching rubble out of the way just to find a severed arm that he had to cast aside in a desperate attempt to find the owner.

There were footsteps getting close. Close enough for Trisha to feel the person behind her.
”C-casey? Trisha?”

Casey sighed, head tilting downward slightly in frustration.
”What…”

”Leon asked me to, uh… Well… Three. Three in the accident. Eight down below. He wants to know if you want us to start recovering them from the bowels.”

Casey gritted his teeth, shifting with Trisha so he could look up and behind her.

”If it’s safe enough to mount a recovery, why did anyone think such a drastic escape plan was necessary?” Casey asked in a very firm voice.

Andrade’s first response was a look of sadness. The frown told Casey everything he needed to know.

”Say it. Just say it.”

”It was supposed to be triumphant, I guess… I don’t know, Casey.” he shrugged his shoulders like a beaten dog.

The look of disgust that met him was nothing less than soul crushing.

”And you’re some veteran Adept… Get the fuck away from me.” Casey replied venomously.

”I need to know… Are we going back-”

”Get. Our. People. Back.” he growled lowly.
”And tell Leon, if he’s so fucking smart and so fucking triumphant, he can have his victory lap by dealing with the rest of this shit. I’m taking my Fiance and going home. Tell him he can find his own ride back.”

”I’m… I’m sorry, Casey.” Andrade replied with great sadness in his voice.

”Me too. Sorry I ever thought I could control what you fuckers do.”

Trisha would be able to feel Casey’s bodily strength as he stood up, urging her to stand with him.

”How about it, Uncle Dre? So worried about dying before… Innocent people died for you instead. Good fucking work.”

And without giving him a chance to retort, Casey turned back toward the SUV and begin walking quietly.
”Can you drive, Trisha?” he asked, doing his best to calm his voice down.

“I can." Trisha answered simply. She didn't have anything else to say in the immediate moment… What could she say? It was fucked up. People were always going to die today… But those three had been preventable. She glanced over towards the former house for a moment, briefly glancing at Cass as she darted about helping with healing. Had she supported the whole dramatic escape? Probably.

It was difficult to process. What mattered right now was Casey, anyway.

She had to adjust the seat as she got into the driver's side, taking a moment to get comfortable with the vehicle that wasn't her own. She wasn't someone who enjoyed being the driver, so she rarely did when it wasn't her own car… but she was competent enough to, obviously.

“So… Home? Can you, uh, direct me? Or, I guess, pull up a map… I didn't pay attention on the way here." She bit her lip, at least switching on the ignition.

She glanced over at him.
“I’m… Sorry Sycamore shit affected you like this. I- I know it isn't my fault! But I'm still sorry."

”I wish it was Sycamore shit. It wasn’t, Babe… This being something involving that is just cursory. If it wasn’t this moment, it’d be another in a couple weeks. Some stupid, worthless break in the chain of command allowing people to make bad choices without thinking of consequence.”

Casey cleared his throat, taking a deep breath after and looking behind them.
”Get to the road, take a right. It’s a straight shot to the on-ramp.”

He’d dropped all of his connections in the prior moments, and now had to reestablish connection to the other sectors of the operation. At least there was good news from other directions, including the Sycamore Tree. They’d pacified the old man, and were already in the midst of building a defendable position on top of the tree. He managed to get another crew moving toward the wreckage of the elevator, and it was getting handled by a rather competent and rapidly moving team. The same group, actually, who initially secured the tree once they had coordinates.

Trisha followed his instructions, getting them to the road as she thought about what he said. Her initial thought that something like this was so like Sycamore, assuming the one other member there would be all for it… Because normally that was the kind of person Linqian was. But the more she thought about it, the less likely that seemed in this situation. That triumphant victory had come at the sacrifice of her boyfriend, after all.

“I thought that Temple members were good at following orders. Or is that only when they fear some kind of punishment?" Trisha asked, nibbling on her lip.

“I guess… When you have people higher up who don't have to worry so much, they're not going to follow orders if they think they know better. Especially when they're… Older. Like with Leon, cause he's your older brother. Older siblings always think they're right… Well, not that I think Leon's entirely like mine. But there's definitely a bit of that, isn't there?"

”He’s become considerate when cooled down. But as soon as you get him riled up, all that bridled excitement comes out as bursts of stupidity. Mom knew just as well… Hence the control. Hence the collar and leash. She had five years of relative peace with him, and those years are almost certainly responsible for his fucking introspective reniessance.”

He gritted his teeth, eyes closed and brain being pulled as a fellow White Lux Adept attempted to pull his attention from the farmhouse. An update; two more dead from unhealable injuries. Apparently, a curse user had marked several of them with a true-death mark, blocking any sort of external Lux being pumped into their bodies. And the apparitional nature of the green goo, apparently, accelerated the process. It wasn’t great news. But he didn’t bother oversharing with Trisha.

His attitude got markedly worse, however.

”It was just him. Most of the Adepts in the security corps were trained by Furio. He wasn’t a soldier per se, but Dad knew that he wanted his own militia. So, my uncle trained Furio when he was younger, as a cadet would be trained in the FFL. Military enough to give a fuck about the organization of a chain of command, and the necessity for some form of discipline should that chain fail.”

And there were some legendary stories about Furio’s “discipline.” It was purely corporal punishment. Humiliating, line crossing, corporal punishment. The offender was reduced to nothing more than a misbehaving child, and worse… Because there was nobody to turn to, it went on for more than a decade. He’d never done anything particularly untoward to wind up in that scenario, but he remembered Furio taking a much younger Leon down during an actual sermon.

He remembered how his Mother and Father, and hundreds of other people in the chapel, watched. Impassive, horrified, as Leon was humiliated and practically whipped in front of them. But it never seemed to break his spirit. As if it was all part of it, Leon would do the wrong thing, be punished, and be right back to his usual impulsive and bullheaded nature.

”Leon hasn’t ever given a fuck about a chain of command. He’s got a big ego, I guess. Big enough to take the lumps. Though, I guess lately he’s been cracking up. Maybe it’ll do something. Maybe today will stick.” he finally spoke up again.

”Also, exit eighteen. We’ve got four left, so just stay here in the right. I don't mind going slow.”

Which was, maybe, a necessary thing to distinguish given how frustrated he always seemed to be driving on the highway. He always drove like he was in a rush, and loudly complained at anyone who slowed him down.

Trisha nodded, doing as he said and sticking to the right and the speed limit.

“I’m not that nervous of a driver, you know. Just more cautious… But I've dealt with Cass backseat driving before." She said it more because she didn't want to think she was anxious about being the one having to drive… Or at least, any more anxious than she normally was. There was the worry he'd get upset at her for being slower than he would be, which his words helped with, but it was something she could ignore in favour of concentrating on driving until he started actually complaining at her.

“Doesn’t surprise me with Leon… There wasn’t really anyone to tell him what to do in the coven, since he was Daisy’s cousin, but anyone that tried got ignored or shouted down.” She continued.
“Cass won’t let the ego stick. At least not… With ignoring what others say. She’s not exactly better when it comes to getting riled up and doing stupid things, though. They’re probably gonna make each other worse as much as they’ll make each other better. But she’ll probably be pretty upset over what happened this time so… Maybe that’ll help it stick.”

She bit her lip, not sure if she wanted to continue to say the other thought she had. Because she knew it was wrong. But they’d promised to be honest to each other… And she was trying. He probably wouldn’t hate her, right?

“It’s… Bad, isn’t it, that I think that the leash wasn’t all bad? It’s hypocritical… Because I’d hate that and it’s fucked up. So I know it’s wrong, but he was such… an asshole ten years ago. And if he was still entirely like that- I don’t know. I certainly wouldn’t see a future where I could stand to be around him, nevermind try to be friends.” She gnawed on her lip, half thankful she couldn’t look at Casey to see his reaction.

”Yeah… If it gave him the time to gain some level of introspection, I can’t entirely knock it either.”

His comment would probably be surprising to Trisha, given her thoughts, but he’d spent enough time considering that idea recently in the same light. The fact that Leon would probably be better mind controlled, if just a little. He was dangerous; more dangerous than he had been as an Adept, surely. He was always good, and loved magic enough to practice like his life depended on it. He’d been an amazing Adept.

But Lelou was a Hound-Touched apparition whose history stretched back millions of physical years. What was an Adept to something like that? That was the ultimate crux of the treatment toward Adjoined, after all… The distinct imbalance that came from channeling a vague magical force, versus channeling a being with intrinsic connections to reality bending abilities… In truth, one would always be harder to pin down. Harder to regulate. He wasn’t entirely against Aberrations being monitored, at least until he started dating one.

It was a lot harder to feel that way now. He’d always known there were relationships like Trisha and the Queen. But, it always seemed like the outlier. Like most Aberrations would jump at the chance to do something crazy… It was the influence of their patrons, after all: Most weren’t benevolent creatures. Most were rather amoral, or worse, and didn’t have qualms about bending humanity to their will…

So yeah, the Leash was a good thing. But a bad good thing. A good bad time, for a bad good reason.

”But, you’re obviously right. It isn’t the most moral thing to think. Doesn’t mean we can’t accept that we both feel something like that and just move on hoping for the best from here.” he asserted, almost as if he was trying to convince himself rather than her.

“I guess… Time will tell whether the feeling gets stronger or goes away.” Trisha replied, not entirely convinced that it would be easy to move on from. But it wasn’t like she was morally perfect, especially when it came to how she thought about other people. It was a part of herself she didn’t like, how easily she could think bad of others and be happy something made it easier for her to be around them no matter how negative. But she cared even more here because if Cass got even a whiff of those thoughts… She wouldn’t be too happy about it.

And Trisha really didn’t want to risk losing that friendship.

“At- At least we both feel the same! So we can move on together and do our best. Even though our relationship with him… Is pretty different… I’m just glad Cass is there too. She can actually handle when he acts like… An obstinate asshole.”

Casey nodded.

”Even if we didn’t, Trisha… It’s incredibly important to me for you to be able to express yourself. All I’ve heard about from people are nightmares about how they feel stifled or controlled. I don’t want to be like that. If you hated my brother forever, you hate him forever… The only thing I could ask at that point is that you do your best to separate your feelings from your actions so that peace could be maintained. And, in return, I’d do my best to minimize the interactions completely. To try not to isolate myself from my brother, while still maintaining your level of comfort.”

Maybe for some people, that kind of an agreement would be stifling in itself. In truth, he imagined it would be incredibly difficult, which probably explained why he was running so much damage control all the time. A lot of the talk around the campfire, or what it amounted to in the African Front, had been idealistic soldiers talking about what they hoped life would be like when they got back. Casey’s hope had always been peace. It’s all he ever wanted. Peace, and ultimately, love from those around him. Maybe recognition. Hopefully respect. But, he could deal with peace and love…

And he had love. Peace? Who knew when that would really come?

”It’d be hard. But, I’d do that for you. You’re my wife… Well, just about.” he managed to crack a grin as he looked over at her.

“Almost. We just need to sign the papers.” Trisha managed a soft giggle, blushing as she briefly glanced over at him before turning her eyes back to the road. It was nice to know that he’d do that for her. There’d never been anyone else who would… Being his priority made her incredibly happy.

“I don’t think I hate Leon. I don’t like him, and I don’t know how I’ll forgive him… But I don’t hate him. And I… love you more than I dislike him. Cass too. I want to be the kind of person who can forgive people and build some kind of relationship after I’ve been hurt, without ignoring my own feelings. Nobody’s ever given me that chance- and I don’t think I’d have taken it before. It’s not like I’m perfect or anything… So I do want to try. But I’m glad that even if it doesn’t work out-” Like things often didn’t when it came to her relationships, friendships or otherwise-
“That you’d be willing to do that and still be there with me.”

”I can only hope that things will get better. I’d never ask you to love him, or call him Big Brother or anything… Even I don’t usually give him that kind of deference anymore… But, in hoping that things get better, I like to imagine a world where you, at least, become numb to him. It’d be better than nothing at all.” he shrugged in return.

”Pissed as I am, I still love him. Just because I love you a little more, doesn’t really diminish all of that. So, just promise me you’ll keep trying to deal with him? Or, don’t promise… Just say you’ll do your best. That’s all I can hope for.”

Trisha hesitated for a moment, before nodding. One hand came off the wheel for a moment to reach out for Casey’s.
“I’ll do my best. Because I love you… I promise, I’ll really try.”
Hidden 8 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago









Monday December 11th.
Home.


It was earlier than Trisha would’ve liked when she woke up to the sound of her alarm’s musical ringing, reluctantly set only a couple of hours ago. It wasn’t even that early… But Casey hadn’t come home until the early hours of the morning, after only a few hours together at home the day before. Obviously, in the long hours between, Trisha hadn’t gotten any sleep. Still struggled to sleep without him there.

But the thought of having to get up and out of bed wasn’t as awful as it had been the last few days. There was still a reluctance, but it wasn’t as strong. The heaviness she’d felt weighing down on her was beginning to alleviate. Like everything wasn’t so pointless, and she wasn’t as worthless as she’d thought then. Maybe it was because things were beginning to look up… The people hunting her for months were finally dealt with. Or it was just the natural cycle of her depressive periods.

She was slowly beginning to accept that maybe that’s what it was, too. Depression.

One arm stretched out to mute her alarm, before she twisted around to snuggle back up to Casey. She’d set it to give them plenty of time, after all… She wasn’t going to miss out on morning cuddle time just because she was beginning to feel a bit better.

“Good morning.” She spoke softly, tilting her head up to look at Casey with a gentle smile. She was still blinking the sleep out of her eyes… Soft in the morning light.
“Not that we… had a proper sleep but… I missed waking up with you. Getting up together. I don’t even feel like getting up is the hardest thing in the world now.”

Casey had a long night of his own. Only a few hours after getting home, he was called upon to come back out as was his duty, in order to situate everything properly. Leon was notably absent for most of it, leaving Casey feeling at least confident enough to return to the position he was assigned to. Most people seemed incredibly supportive, if not empathetic. A trait he wouldn’t have imagined, and certainly wouldn’t have found in the military. People may’ve been sympathetic, sure, but what he did was a court martial waiting to happen. Only people like Patton got away with bashing a soldier half unconscious to try and snap them out of shellshock…

Lesser officers got rolled under the mat and squashed like ants. No time for games from the US Military… Too busy doing God only knows what else. Still, it was a great deal of effort to go through. It wasn’t like things were simple: More work had to be tacked onto the Macguffin, as the elevator crash had rather unintended consequences. Being that it was so close to the highway, and that it ultimately landed on a local timber company’s mill building killing just about everyone inside, there was some serious press coverage before anyone was able to cover it up.

Which, in turn, got the PRA involved even more so than they had been… Casey was willing to play ball with them, handing over whatever living members of Dollhouse they’d managed to capture from inside the bunker after the cleanup. But, they didn’t seem to have any questions about the Stygian Snake… Maybe because Bianca knew what was supposed to happen… He didn’t bother asking questions at that point. Not when there was a tree to see. He went to the new facility, which looked like a fresh warehouse that the farm was using to store equipment, and actually saw this Sycamore Tree for himself.

It was a rather impressive tree, all things considered. Knotted, gnarled, an awful majesty swirled about it. Only magic could reveal the carvings that were indicative of it being used as some sort of prison, and any further magic was just dangerous… The tree, after all, was still rather hungry. It’s why nothing grew over its roots… Why it was all alone on this hill, completely devoid of grass or grain in spite of its verdant dark green, almost black, leaves.

Impressive, but ultimately frustrating. Just another thing tying her to this place. Another thing tying them all to this place. It had to be guarded. It had to be defended. Project Eden was already looking for new solutions, and Gin had been there working her team to the bone with magical projective testing. He was, at least for now, satisfied between the large presence and the defensibility of the funhouse bullshit some of his hired cousins had come up with. The facility was run entirely on Orange and Purple Lux, turning the interior into an extended-reality space that allowed them to manipulate the dimensions of the interior almost indefinitely… He wasn’t sure what the workaround was, but he knew external Lux jammers could, in theory, prevent anyone from doing anything about it. The only two options left were deal with it, or give up…

Then, there was reporting to Lynette… And that hadn’t gone particularly well with Furio and Clarissa both egging her on for punishment. Casey didn’t resist. He took the lashes that came, knowing that the days of this edifice were numbered. Even Lynette seemed remorseful after the fact, knowing that she’d soured yet another moment with her son where she could’ve spent it reconciling… But her anger and sadness over the situation, and the constant pressure from her closest friends, drove her to make that poor decision. It was something she could only give to him in a burst of White Lux… And he’d rejected the connection. He didn’t want her. He didn’t want to give her the chance to hurt his emotions again, especially not now knowing all that she’d done. About his Father… About Leon and the Leash. About how she’d played them all like sock puppet toys.

He only really wanted to talk to and be around Trisha in that moment… But, Leon still had to be dealt with. It was difficult finding him, until he finally made it to their Father’s first gym. The two men hashed the issue out in the oldest way they knew how. And, once and for all, without any kind of outside help or interference, Casey proceeded to beat the everloving snot out of his champion brother. It wasn’t technique, it wasn’t power: It was brutality. Efficient, calculated brutality that Leon hadn’t quite expected from his brother. Maybe he’d been too gentle, thinking they were just going lightly, but after a couple seconds of actually being assaulted, Leon didn’t hold much back either.

Yet, in the end, there was no real resolution from that. The resolution came after. The sobbing. The crying. The hugging, and the apologies, and the promises. The expectations set. The love that still held, because both of them truly wanted it to be there… It was almost three in the morning by the time the two of them returned to their respective apartments in that tall brick building. And Casey, actually, slept like a baby. He was still intent on doing so were it not for Trisha’s shuffling body and subsequent words.

In a haze, he half-opened his eyes.
”W-who said ‘nything about… Waking up together?”
Still, his arms gently reached out, one slipping under her while the other wrapped over her to tug her in close.
”Back t’sleep…”

“Alright… If you want woken up in an hour by Cass jumping on you after she breaks in, sure.” Trisha responded with a gentle laugh, managing to wriggle one arm up to tap his nose. Even though she was beginning to properly wake up, it was still in the period where she wouldn’t have much difficulty getting back to sleep… She’d love to, honestly. If it was anyone else she’d probably just ignore the plans and go along with it.

But it was Cass. She’d find a way in. And with Trisha beginning to feel a bit better herself, there wasn’t that extra depressive obstacle to overwhelm her anxiety at ignoring plans.

You’re the one that planned breakfast with Leon and Cass. Not even lunch… breakfast.” She pouted cutely at him, the way she clung to him in turn not exactly screaming someone who wanted to get out of bed- and drag him with her.
“Do you know how hard it is to resist you tryna seduce me back to sleep.”

”It can’t be seduction, my boxers are still on.”
Though, he playfully looked under the covers as if to make sure before laughing and kissing her on the forehead.
”What’s going on? You feeling froggy now that the cloud hanging over St. Portwell has lifted?” he asked in an equally playful, facetious manner.

“Mm, sorta. I’m feeling a bit better… It’s nice not waking up worrying if I’m going to get stabbed. Who’d have thought that’d be a mood improver… But it’s mostly having you here. Hopefully more often.” Her lips curled up into a warm smile, and she leaned up to gently kiss him.

Her tone became something more playfully coy, blinking up at him with purposefully goofy exaggeration.
“You seduce me whatever you’re wearing. Boxers or not, fully clothed… Even a full clown outfit I bet… I just can’t resist.”

Casey couldn’t help but smile back at her after pulling away from their kiss. He giggled, blushed, then bit onto his bottom lip.
”Well… How much time do we have?

Enough.” Trisha hummed softly, eyes creasing happily before she leaned in to kiss him again.



The two of them were going to be a little late walking into Abrazo, but at least they’d texted Cass to let the other two know that would be the case. Which was fine, since Leon and Cass were practically on twenty-four hour schedules. Giving up fifteen minutes when you could fully utilize twenty four hours just meant they got to eat pancakes together before Casey and Trisha showed up. The place was sleepy on a Monday morning, only the usuals scattered about eating their scones and cubanos while chatting or watching the television that sat over the breakfast bar.

Leon was nervous. He had been the entire day yesterday. A ball of grief and self hatred, even. Cass helped, but at the same time didn’t shy away from admonishment of his actions. It was understandable, but ultimately left him half-terrified of the fact that Trisha may reject him. That, one day, he could still lose his brother and his girlfriend to… Her. To someone who he’d only ever really wronged. It was difficult to know that face would be staring at him. The same one that he always saw when she was pissed off…

He never could’ve known why they were going to be late, nor that they’d be coming in with relatively good spirits considering how difficult yesterday had been. Leon stuffed a piece of pancake into his mouth.

”I just… Don’t know what the fuck this is really supposed to be, y’know? Like, what, will he want to talk about things again with you two around? D’you think that’s a necessary thing to do? To dwell on it like that?” he asked Cass with nervous energy.

Cass couldn’t immediately respond, too busy shoving an entire pancake in her mouth at once. Since the place was so quiet, there wasn’t really anyone who could easily see them nice and tucked away as they were. So she didn’t really care about the whole proper eating thing! Though it did then make it difficult to reply as she chewed and chewed.

She reached out to pat his leg as she worked through the pancake, finally speaking after it was all swallowed.
”Honestly… I can’t say for sure! Though I don’t think it’s dwelling… Like, unless he’s gonna sit down and just rip into you. But sometimes you gotta chat about shit to actually move past it… Which, well, yeah, you guys already did together! But y’know Trisha, probably needs to hear some of it herself and say her own piece. And obviously I’m here to keep the peace! And eat Andrade outta his pancakes.”

And, assuming they were running low at this point, the man himself quietly brought another couple of stacks.

”Hey, I don’t mind. Eat ‘em up.” he spoke calmly, giving a smile to both of them.
”It’s all gotta go, after all.”

Leon looked up curiously.

”Closing shop?” he asked with his nervousness clear in his voice. Andrade nodded in reply.

”What’s left for me?” he asked in a matter-of-fact tone.

Which made Leon a bit sad. He had seen what Andrade did the day before. How it’d affected him. Seeing his brother die, having the chance to seal the apparition that had corrupted both Luis and their father… He’d done the right thing, and Leon didn’t think he was undeserving of a second chance.

”Us? I can’t speak for Cass, but… I’d bat for you, Andrade. You did what was asked of you in the end. You did the right thing.” he looked at Cass, almost to get some kind of confirmation.

Cass was already reaching for another stack of pancakes, pausing to look up at Leon, then Andrade, before nodding.

”Oh, yeah! I mean, you did a bunch’ve fucked up shit and I’m sure there’ll be people who ain’t gonna just forgive it cause’ve doing the right thing in the end. Y’know, other Sycamore people.” She said matter of factly, dancing around directly naming Trisha.

”That’s their right… But it’s others' right to forgive! I mean, I ain’t exactly been so involved so I ain’t sure I even have that right… But I sure do believe in second chances! And I ain’t just saying this cause’ve all the food you’re handing me right now, I really mean it. Cause without you- and Greyson- we’d all probably be dead!”

Andrade sighed.

”It’s complicated, isn’t it… Who knows? To the rest of the world, I’m still Andrade Salamente. I’ve got fucking eight rosettes under my belt. People pay thousands of dollars to host their private parties in my restaurants. Celebrities visit my places regularly. What’s it all for? Compensating for a life I couldn’t live on my own. I’ve done a lot of thinking the last few weeks…”

And then they were caught! From around the booth, someone cleared their throat.
”You two gluttons couldn’t wait?” Casey laughed, sliding around Andrade before hugging into him. His lips pursed up against Andrade’s ear.
”I’m sorry… For yesterday. I can’t take back what-”

Andrade hugged him back tightly, not letting him finish before pulling away and looking at him.
”Sit. Don’t mention it…”

Starting to walk away, he turned back.
”I’ll send a server over so you guys can actually get started.”
But he made sure to pass by Trisha close enough that he could stop and ask her something.

”I’ve uh… Well, the lawyers and stuff, all of it… We’ll need to talk. It’s good. Good for you. The honey will always have a home.” he said cryptically before walking away fully, leaving the four to greet one another properly.

”Honestly, Casey, he just started bringin’ em out with the coffee. We didn’t order it.” Leon weakly retorted, feeling immediately nervous that he’d already forced a faux pas.

”Well yeah, probably cause he saw the hungry look in my eyes and wanted to stop me gnawing on your arm for sustenance!” Cass piped up, trying to wave away any worries about the whole them already eating thing. Because honestly? Even if Andrade hadn’t brought them out, Cass probably would’ve started asking for food after a few minutes sitting in the place.

Trisha’s brow was furrowed slightly as she slid into the empty booth opposite the other couple, trying to figure out exactly what Andrade meant. She hadn’t exactly heard the earlier conversations… Her honey would always have a home? Like, his restaurants? Did he think she was worried he’d stop using it now everything was over?

There was no point dwelling on it then and there. Her expression relaxed, enough that she managed to smile at Cass and Leon. She was in a good enough mood thanks to the morning they’d had combined with the relief of one thing being over, even if there was still a while until things were completely peaceful.

“Good morning Cass, Leon.” She said, a little awkwardly but politely neutral nonetheless. She certainly wasn’t bothered by the food they already had. It was expected with Cass, even before she got magical hunger.

”Morning! Y’want some?” Cass practically shouted back, not letting the surrounding awkwardness and nerves get to her. She gestured down to the stack of pancakes she’d already devoured half of, somehow.

Trisha shook her head as she reached for a menu.
“I wasn’t planning to have something so sweet and filling.”

”Fair, fair… So how was it?!”

“How was… what?” Trisha shot her a confused look.

”The celebratory sex! That’s why you were late, right?!” Cass asked with a laugh, hitting the nail on the head about the why with what was meant to be a teasing joke.

Trisha’s confusion turned into half dismay, half embarrassment.
“That’s not… You promised you wouldn’t ask about that stuff, Cass! That you wouldn’t talk about it as much… I thought we’d agreed…”

Cass just shrugged with a little evil laugh.

Leon's mouth opened into a slight grin, if only for an instant, before snapping shut again and locking tightly. It was a little sad, and a little shameful, that the first thing out of his mouth was going to be a joke at his brother’s expense. After last night, he wasn’t afraid to make the joke, rather taking the five extra seconds to think about it hurt him in return. The entire line of predetermined reactions after that, the potential of ruining the moment…

The truth was, the two of them looked relieved, if not a little happy. There were plenty of things to say that didn’t have to be like that.

”Not hard to guess, you both have a little glow. Plus, I mean… C’mon, you two… We can smell it.”

Casey laughed aloud, if only a little nervous in return. He hadn’t realized it was so obvious, but given how active they were, they probably had some crazy sixth sense for noticing the vibes by now.

”Oh, I don’t know… Babe, how was it?” he asked warmly, head turning to her as they both ended up in the booth next to one another. He didn’t hesitate to plant a kiss on the top of her head.

And Leon could, in turn, take a deep breath. The crux of the previous joke had now been dispersed without any negative implications. It was completely up for interpretation, and nowhere near as crass as “You didn’t wash your dick properly.”

“You know how it was. Great. Trisha grumbled, voice getting quieter by the word. She turned a bit red and hid her face behind her menu as she leaned into Casey. It wasn’t like she was a prude or anything, but it was just… uncomfortable with this audience. She found it bad enough with just Cass. At the same time, she didn’t want to not answer at all… So she did.

“But I don’t want to open the floor to having to hear about theirs!”

”Awww, don’t worry, Trish! I know you couldn’t handle that!” Cass cackled, legs swinging out to very gently kick Trisha’s under the table.
”I’m glad! That, y’know, you guys actually got some time and fun! You both look better! Not that I think it’s just that, y’know, but… I can tell!”

”It's easy when you have such a great support system.” Casey grabbed Trisha’s hand with enthusiasm, kissing her head again.
”And, y’know, you guys. For taking care of things after what happened, I’m… I’m grateful. That wasn’t easy for me.”

Leon presumed that their conversation from the night before carried over, and spoke as if there was no longer a problem… His hope was that the feeling was true.

”Like I said before, y’know, it’s the least we could do. I, just, y’know…”

Casey nodded.

”I know… There’s nothing we can do to make the mistake right, but we can move forward with the knowledge of what we’ve been through.” Casey replied in a very pragmatic tone.
”And, obviously, celebrate every little second we have with the people who are still here.”

"Exactly!" Cass enthusiastically agreed, leaning back just so that she could grin at them all.
"We gotta celebrate what we got! A lotta shit's happened, but we got each other."

She was glad things were starting off on a… positive note? Yeah, it was definitely positive! At least there was no immediate fighting, and even Trisha looked relatively calm and happy. Honestly, Cass had been expecting worse… and hoping for the best, obviously! Just the last two times all four of them were around each other, shit hadn't exactly gone amazingly.

Trisha also nodded in some amount of agreement to what Casey said, fingers wriggling against his as she tried to figure out what she wanted to say. How much she wanted to say… And how much Casey might want her to talk about here. She wasn't sure. She wanted to be able to really celebrate the people they had too… She'd rarely had people stick around long enough for that to happen. Cass and that group of friends were the longest, and even then, she was never the best at the whole celebrating people thing.

“I’m grateful too. And I want to try and move forward too, however slowly." She glanced over at Leon, then back down to the menu in front of her.

Leon obviously saw her look at him. Their eyes met. He didn’t want her to just brush it aside like that… Especially with her usual aloof nature, considering he felt it was mostly a front. Some kind of defensive posturing.

”Which, we have plenty of time for, right?” Leon asked, partly to all of them, but almost singularly to Trisha.
”I’m… Not expecting anyone to forget. You being willing to work it out at your pace is enough. I just have to, y’know, not… Well, I’d… I…”

He looked rather down now, causing Casey to frown in turn.

”C’mon big fella. Be honest.” Casey intoned, holding Trisha’s hand with intention.

”I’m scared there’s a bias I won’t be able to overcome. And, that, y’know… I’ll lose everything. Really, everything now. Maybe the heart wants what it wants, and maybe fate’s plan has intention, but none of that is concrete. So, the thought that our relationship would have the potential of hurting others around us is unpleasant.” he spoke as plainly as he could. Lelou was rather quiet for this, thankfully… Really, all this emotional stuff was for the birds; so she slept through it easily.

Trisha’s lips pressed together into a thin line. It was difficult to hear that Leon might not be able to get over whatever bias he held. Maybe some of that bias was based in reality anyway, overblown by how things were ten years ago. The worries he voiced were ones that she had too.

While with the Martin situation she was the clear victim, it wasn’t like she always had been- even if Leon himself said she’d often just been defending herself, she didn’t see it that way. Often she made herself the victim. She was difficult too… So there was a possibility that the two people he was worried about chose him instead of her.

A selfish part of her wanted to be chosen in the end. But that was unhealthy, and she had to ignore it- because Casey and Cass shouldn’t have to choose. And she loved them enough to not want them to.

“It’s unpleasant to me too. I don’t want that. I don’t want to make anyone choose between us, or for either of us to lose anything.” She managed to keep her voice even, gripping onto Casey’s hand like it was a lifeline. It was still so difficult for her to talk about stuff like this, even when two of the three people here were some of the only ones that ever managed to drag it out of her. Casey especially… But she was trying her best.

She had to actually prove that. Not just keep telling Casey she’d do better without taking any steps towards it. Her relationship with Leon… how it turned out would affect two of the most important people in her life. So the minimum she could do was force herself to talk.

“I know you probably remember me as an incredibly petty teenager… And I can’t pretend I’m not. I still hold grudges, but… I’m trying to improve. I don’t want to be that person. And even with everything that happened I… I don’t hate you. I can’t say I like you, but… I want our relationship to improve. I really do. Even if it’s going to take some time. I’m willing to try my best, even if it won’t always be pleasant- and I won’t be either. But even if it doesn’t… I’d never expect Casey to stop seeing you. Or- Or for Cass to make any decisions because of me!

Even though her words came out rather smoothly, there was still a great deal of difficulty involved. She couldn’t look Leon- or anyone- in the eye as she spoke, gaze fixed on the menu. Her body was tense, like she was waiting for the immediate pushback to a rare show of honesty. She was because, because there always was when she spoke her mind. Well, not always… But most of the time. And she was ready to flee or snap if that happened.

Cass stayed silent for once, just listening. But she did pause finishing off the pancake stack to reach for Leon’s hand, giving it a comforting squeeze.

”But, y’know… Do you really, like… Uh… Well, like I said, I just worry that I’ve done too much, and that you won’t ever look at me like I’m not that same asshole. I’m… I understand that that you were a teenager, and my hope is that if I’m consistently open and welcoming toward you, you’ll come around. But, I’m worried any mistake I make is going to leave a bad taste in your mouth. And, if we don’t break down that kind of barrier, then it’s just gonna, like… Be the same as it always was.”

It was hard for him to say this kind of stuff, not because of the honesty, but because he felt like the villain at the table. Like everything he said had the chance to be taken as a hollow bit of bullshit that he didn’t really mean. And Trisha acknowledging that she did, in fact, hold grudges in spite of trying to get better, made him feel like it was an uphill battle that he’d never win.

”Would it be fair to, uh… Well, like, I thought, y’know-”

This kind of lack of confidence wasn’t usual. Even Casey was surprised, especially with the fact that Lelou wasn’t pushing him into some kind of fervor in order to get this over with.

”-maybe, there’d be… Shit, like, I…-”
He gripped Cass’ hand like he was about to fall off a building. He couldn’t recover this. It had to be refreshed. He held his free hand up with one finger, frowning and taking a deep breath.

”I imagined a concept that was, like, I guess a last ditch resort to spare the people around us. One that I still want you to have the opportunity to take if you think it’d be easier for you. Or, overall, better…” he cleared his throat, still not loving that Trisha wouldn’t even look at him.

Especially when he was starting to tear up. He truly wanted a friend here. The last Sycamite. The only other person in the world who may want to be around him, whom he could connect with on that kind of a level. The shared summer was an incredibly important point in his life, and as much as others could say they “got it”, they never really did. It was there, it was them, it was then.

”Don’t you think it’s a little quick to be going to the endgame option?” Casey asked calmly, tossing a concerned glance at Cass.

Cass’ immediate response was a little laugh that actually sounded kinda nervous. She got a bit more used to the new, more anxious Leon post leash breaking… But the way he was talking was like he was going to do something insanely drastic! Like, what else could a last ditch resort be?

”Uh, yeah! Jumping right to endgame shit don’t seem right when Trisha’s willing to try… What even is that? Like, you fuck off or something- something worse?! The fuck is a last ditch resort here?” Cass asked, turning her gaze from shared concern with Casey towards Leon. She did her best to push down the worry, though, and just look caring and encouraging while holding his hand tightly in return.

Even Trisha managed to pull her eyes up from the table in front of her. The actual full eye contact was brief before her gaze landed on Leon’s shoulder, but it was at least there. It helped that there hadn’t been an immediate negative response from him. At least, not directly towards her. Even though there was a lot to think about with what he’d said already… She could only focus on the immediate ‘endgame’ option.
“I don’t want you to leave or anything, if that’s what you mean.”

”That’s not what I mean. And I know everyone’s gonna be like ’Uhhh nobody wants that Leon’ but… I think that, y’know, if we had to share space, I would just… Become wooden. Not literally, but-”

”-But what? Clam up and turn into a mannequin? That’s not a solution, Leon.” Casey retorted. Leon’s face looked firm.

”But that doesn’t mean that it can’t be an option. I can’t hurt her or annoy her if there’s nothing to be hurt or annoyed by. It’s simple, its easy, and I just want her to have the opportunity to honestly consider if that would be helpful to her. Because, honestly? It’d be helpful to me. I’m horrified of saying or doing the wrong thing, and ruining any good will I have with her. I’d rather, if the deepest, truest feeling is animosity, then the victim should at least be able to regain the agency that may’ve been taken away from her. And part of that is feeling like she’s in control of the situation. Not you, not me, not us as a group… But her. I want to honor you however I can, Trisha… Run from it if you want, but… But I do care. I always have. I loved you guys. All you little fuckers, and every single situation made me horrified about what was going to happen to you, but when it mattered most, I crumbled. And yesterday really… Kind of brought that back. About how reckless I really was. And how I was responsible for innocent young people dying. And I didn’t even bother to help…”

And he was crying… It was strange to see the similarities and the differences. With Casey, it always seemed so explosive. Like if he started to cry, it wasn’t just a little… But, Leon’s voice was steady. His hands weren’t shaking. He was just leaking tears down his face.

”That’s all… Just… Honestly consider if you really would want me in your life like this, or like that. Do it one last time, and let the choice be yours. Not what keeps the peace, or keeps things ‘normal’. Make the choice that will make your life better for the long run.”

Trisha took a deep, shaky breath, holding on tightly to Casey’s hand.

It wasn’t exactly an easy consideration, not when he emphasised that it should be her choice. What did she really want? At the end of the day, she’d be content with a life with Casey and their future children and no one else. But there was contentment, because she’d never even expected to have that, and what she’d always wanted deep down.

An actual community. A family. It was part of why she ended things on such bad terms with so many Sycamites. Because many turned on her, and others let it fall apart. She tried to replace her dysfunctional family with a dysfunctional coven… Which had only made things hurt more. Even if she lost hope and gave up, and struggled the more people were around her, it didn’t mean she stopped wanting it deep down.

“When I first joined the coven, I thought it was somewhere I could belong.” She started, skipping over the immediate question to open up. Because it showed that any decision really was hers… Her reasoning.
“Even though the circumstances were fucked up… But my family’s was too, so it seemed normal. I thought it’d work out… Be that place. Obviously, it didn’t and wasn’t. I… wasn’t just a victim in that. I hurt people too! But I really did love Sycamore- and a good amount of the members- too. I thought even for all the shit, it’d last and give me… A place. That’s why when it all ended, I was so- so awful to everyone left. Because it hurt.”

She bit her lip.
“What I’m trying to say is… I’ve always wanted a community. An actual… Family. I don’t want to push one of the few people that might be part of that out because of the past… Even if you’ve hurt me a lot, so have so many people! And I’m sure I’ve hurt you… But this is my decision. Because I don’t think it’s the one that keeps the peace. It would be easier if we never talked but that’s not actually what I want. Even if we clash, and so much shit happened back then… Even back then I wanted the coven and all those people that hurt me to stay together. I didn’t leave until it was really over!”

She shook slightly, leaning into Casey as she took another deep breath. She was pulling up a lot of thoughts and emotions that had lingered for years. That she’d done her best to suppress. Around Sycamore, and her own circumstances.

“I’ve considered this kind of thing for a long time. If I ever met people from the coven again, what would I do? Try to hurt everyone, or desperately try to reconnect. I ended up just running away… But I want people in my life more than I want to hold onto my resentment, even if that’s hard to believe. It’s just that… I’ve only recently been able to accept that.”

Oh, there it is. The floodgates opened like a dam across the table. His hands covered his face, and he visibly tightened his entire body as he tried to not start absolutely sobbing.

”Y-y-you’re g-o-onna be my si-i-ister! Theres n-no world where I… I… You’re… You’re part of my everything! You are, and I was wrong, and I mistreated you, and I don’t want that to be our legacy… S-s-so if you can really accept that… If we can work together t-to end this cycle of pain? I want to do everything I can!”

Casey frowned, clearing his throat and looking around to see if any of the other patrons were watching. They weren’t but the server who was supposed to take their orders noticed him bellowing and promptly slid back into the kitchen.

”Well, alright! Then its settled! The two of you want the same thing, so we’re all in agreement that there’s nothing but love here!”
He took Trisha’s hand and brought them both into the middle of the table.
”Because Leon and I won’t have much left either… God knows where Elise goes after this, and there’s a not zero chance that Junior may go to his grave! So… It’s gotta be this table, right? These people? A new Coven. A stronger one, built on this feeling. Not necessity, not danger, not fear… Love! I hate to say it, but that sounds like the last gift that asshole Greyson left behind!”

”Yeah! That guy sure knew how to love- and there’s a lotta love here too! Even if some of it ain’t so clearly shown… But you’re right! A new coven, or something… Oh, we gotta include the girls- uh, not the pressing matter right now. To loving each other and all that!” Cass slapped her hand on top of Casey and Trisha’s, body bumping into Leon’s as she half stood. Her other arm wrapped around him encouragingly.

Trisha wasn’t quite in the same place as those two when it came to positive thinking… She certainly couldn’t say she felt love towards Leon. Yet. But she was willing to try to build towards feeling something positive. Because he was clearly sorry. She was doing her best to accept that, and let go of the resentment she’d held that hurt her as much as it did everyone else.

“You're going to have to be patient with me.” She said quietly, looking directly at Leon now. She was talking to him more than the other two, after all… They were already more adept with dealing with how she was.
“I don’t have much experience with healthy family relationships… Or any, really. Even if you can’t be as patient as I need and we clash, I still… Want to work together to make it better. I really do want to move forward… As adults. So I can be part of the group… coven, family, whatever we call it… Like I’ve always wanted.”

Leon hesitated for a moment. Casey thought he may be against it, but then he could see the gears turning in Leon’s head, and he calmed down to wait and see.

”I swear to you that I’ll be as patient as a rock waiting for more moss. That I’ll use every single bit of my conscious brain to do right by you. And, I’ll… I’ll ask you for the same kind of patience. Because, y’know, we need to recognize when we’re both working one another up, and that moment should be enough for us to snap out of it and come back to a grounded place!”

And then his hand was in, big enough to grip all of them at once.

”To the family we choose.”

Casey nodded.

”To love, and the family you choose. In the eyes of the Ancients, and all beyond their gaze, I hereby recognize the birth of this Coven, to be named at a later date, and do officiate the binding contract between present individuals. Together, all for one, today and tomorrow, forever.”

It was a little stuffy, but he’d seen Covens formed. He’d been there. A coven could really just be two dudes in a foxhole… It really was the family one chose to remain with… But, it’d be the same thing that Trisha and Leon had heard before. The day of Sycamore’s officiation, where Leon had said those same exact words alongside the other “leaders”. And everyone cheered back then, as if they had any idea what it really meant… Or what it would take to keep such a big family together. It was impossible. But, this?

In Casey’s mind, they were the Coven. No others needed to join unless they truly believed they could put forth the same kind of emotional effort that the four of them could. He believed in every word Leon said, and obviously believed that Trisha would do the same. And he expected a struggle to begin with… It would take time and effort. But, they had both. They could give both.
Though, he was counting on Cass to make the explosion of their hands in the middle, since Trisha was on the bottom and he didn’t want to let go of her hand…

”Hell yeah, to the family we choose!” Cass shouted a little too loudly, staring at Trisha until she echoed the same in a much tamer manner. Then, her hand shot up, a sudden spark of Green Lux letting her practically force Leon’s up into the air.

Trisha managed an actual smile, body relaxing. She didn’t bother trying to move her hand… She’d let Casey do the work there for the both of them. He’d put their hands in the middle, after all.

She knew it didn’t fix everything. But it gave them- her and Leon- a new place to start. And for her, it was something to actually work for. A future outside of just her and Casey… Other people that would hopefully be around. It wasn’t going to be easy… Because she’d have to continue to work on herself, and really change how she dealt with things. Actually try to be less reactive towards more than just Casey… Not that she’d been doing a good job there either. But she wanted to keep trying.

So it would actually work out where nothing had before.

“This is good… Smaller is easier to handle, but Cass is loud enough it makes it seem like there’s at least ten of us.” She commented lightly.

”Fuck yeah I am! I dunno what kinda benefit that brings… But I ain’t gonna get quieter either way!” Cass grinned, hand still raised half slapping at Leon’s in a play fight for air dominance.
”Not that I know what covens are supposed to do? I guess this is more like… Family coven! Supporting each other and shit! Oh- Oh, but I’ve always really wanted to stand around a massive, boiling pot filled with all sorts of horrible shit to make a potion and laugh evilly with a coven of witches, can we do that?!”

Leon and Casey were both laughing at Cass’ enthusiasm. Casey held Trisha’s hand tightly as it came down from the air, and he hadn’t let go. There was a little something that the two brothers weren’t exactly explaining, but at her question, Leon couldn’t much keep it in.

”Well… In the Richoux tradition, the Coven is matriarchal… So, that’s up for our Matron Trisha to decide.”

Casey grinned, turning his head slightly.
”Mmmm… So? Do you want to do some cauldroncraft? That’s practically Andrade’s specialty, he could probably teach us for the future.” he giggled, not really thinking about how much pressure Trisha may’ve felt instantly by suddenly having a title placed upon her.

Obviously, back in the day, the Coven didn’t have a “leader”. To Leon, it was non-traditional, and he’d never felt good about it. Ashley was their “leader”, and only because of the fact that nobody else had the balls or the ego at that point to step up into the spot. But, her, Daisy and Auri had always been something of a triumvirate. Decisions didn’t usually get made over their heads, and that really held things together for Leon then.

But, Trisha was someone that he figured would be get-behindable. That they could all support readily and willingly, because she needed it just as much as they all needed a guiding light. Something to look toward, and to carry, and to be proud of. A real Matron.

“H-Huh?" Trisha stammered out, eyes widening.

"Pleeeeeasssee, Trisha, I really wanna do cool shit with cauldrons!" Cass leaned across the table to flash Trisha her cutest begging look, even clasping her hands together in front of her face.

“That’s not… S-Sure, we can." Trisha managed to agree. Her shocked reaction didn't have anything to do with Cass' wish to evilly laugh around a cauldron… It was the whole Matriarch thing. Suddenly Leon was throwing a title on her and Casey was going along with it.

But she wasn't leadership material, was she? She'd never been in a leadership position. She wasn't sure she could call herself a follower with how much she pushed against authority too… She'd always just been a bit of a loner, though not by choice. But she'd never felt like she should be in charge of anything. It just left more room for fucking stuff up, didn't it? She remembered how people had felt towards the Sycamore leaders back in the day. One wrong decision, and they got a lot of the blame. It was only helped by that fact they were all bickering teenagers, quick to point the finger at someone else in the next moment or get into an unrelated argument.

And also…
“But why do we even need a leader? There's only four of us! And why me? Cass is also a woman!"

Casey giggled to himself.
”You can run your Coven how you like! If you don’t want us to function in a beholden manner, all you need to do is say so. But, if you want an answer, it’s because you’re the thing that brings us all together. You’re the center, as much as you may hate the attention, because if it weren’t for you, this wouldn’t be happening. Leon and I would, after all is done, probably just linger on, or join up with Elise to try and make a difference up North.”

Leon nodded in agreement, shrugging his shoulders.
”And I think it goes without saying; the vibes are different! All of us love you in some way, and you care enough about us. But, you’d never be the type to hold that over our heads. You’re… Not like Lynette.” he said plainly, which prompted Casey to start laughing a little more and nodding his head.

“I know that I'm not…" Trisha said quietly, even though she still believed she might have some capacity to. The things she'd consider doing to keep a hold of people she loved… But her life was finally taking a healthy direction. It shouldn't happen.

“But just because I won't be like her doesn't mean that I'm capable of running a coven. I'm not a leader like that… even when it's this small and if I'm the reason everyone's here…"

"Then just listen to us and run it like a kinda democracy! I mean, it ain't like some kinda coven formed for crazy magical war situations where that structure’s gotta be properly followed, y'know! Think about it like… You get the final say if it's necessary! Or the tiebreaker! Like, we can't decide what kinda takeaway to get, your choice wins kinda thing!" Cass piped up, before holding up a finger with a grin.

"But, uh, even if you say you don't want us beholden to you… Ain't gonna stop me! Didn't need a coven for that, you tell me to jump and I'd've done it before anyway!"

“You’re not that obedient." Trisha mumbled, looking away from Cass' overly enthusiastic expression and up at Casey.
“I don't know… I just want it to be like… A family. Or, well, something more equal… there's always someone in charge in a family…"

”This isn’t meant to make you uncomfortable, Trisha. If it’s too formal of an honor, we’ll drop it. But, it is mostly an honor. We are a family… And having someone who isn’t so confident is actually a good thing in certain circumstances. It means you won’t make stupid fucking-”
Casey cut himself off as he realized he was making a judgement that could just as easily be applied to Leon.

”-Pardon… You won’t make leadership choices without the consultation of your echelon. You’ll be willing to accept ideas and plans that aren’t yours. But, also, at least in my summation, you’re more than able to come from a place of personal strength once you feel your bullshit detector go off. Bottom line, you know when someone isn’t giving you the truth, and you can parse that out without much effort. And, if need be? You have an ancient queen inside you that you can ask for regal leadership advice.”

Leon nodded wildly.
”That’s very true! Everything Lelou’s told me about Seillean makes her seem like a super fair ruler. Like, you know how bees can be. Imagine having to wrangle trillions of them!”

“But they're still different from people." Trisha protested. Though she was sure the Queen would be able to help, bees didn't have the same emotions that people did. At least hers didn't. Maybe there'd been more intelligent and emotionally capable ones in the hive before the Queen was sealed.

The crux of the matter was that she really didn't know if it was something she wanted. Her gut instinct was no. But her gut instinct wasn't always right. It was how she isolated herself. It was just a lot to accept.

“I don't know… Can I think about it? I know you said it's mostly an honour, Casey, but it's still… It's hard for me to accept that it's something I'm actually capable of. I just… need to think about it… I guess give myself a chance to believe everything you're saying. You're right that I'd listen to everyone and make decisions based on that but I… don't know if I'm the right person to make those decisions."

Maybe it shouldn't be that big of a deal because it was only the four of them. But it was almost harder when they seemed to think she'd do it well… because wouldn't it be even more disappointing if she fucked it up?

"Well, it ain't like it's gotta be decided today or whatever… this coven shits all pretty sudden. It shouldn't change much between us right now except for being, like, more dedicated to each other! But-!" Cass jumped in, pointing at Leon.
"Lee makes a good point! Well, it wasn't really his point- Whatever, uh! You already lead and wrangle thousands of bees! Sure it ain't the trillions your ancient ghost did- yet, just wait till we get making more- but it's still a lot! Ain't thousands of bees comparable to a few people?! And you love and care for your bees, and make decisions with their best interest at heart! So… You're already a good leader! Right?”

”I can’t say those are my thoughts exactly, but pretty close. Dedication, Cass hit the nail on the head. That’s all I’m asking out of the four of us for now. Anything else, we have plenty of time to think about… I was mostly worried about the two of you, so as long as you guys agree that the right decision is to work with one another, we’re in the clear!”

He shot a burst of White Lux back into the kitchen at Andrade, who then made sure the server sauntered back out at just the right time. A new one… One that hadn’t seen Leon sobbing. He was still red faced and sniffling, but at least he wasn’t actively bellowing.

“Hey! Leon, Casey. This must be Trisha and Cass! Lots of buzz about you two. Are we all eating big this morning? Is it easier for me to just mark off what you guys don’t want?”

Casey leaned into Trisha slightly.
”Well, I’m fairly certain you're the only one of us who isn’t a pig, so… Go ahead first, my Love.”

Trisha smiled softly up at Casey, eyes creasing with gentle happiness at his consideration. Her order would be the most normal, after all, and probably the quickest to say.

"Whoa, Casey! We're wolves!" Cass exclaimed before Trisha could actually say anything, gesturing to herself and Leon with a laugh.
"So fucking rude!"

“Is it when he was including himself." Trisha countered lightly, actually glad for the moment to look at the menu properly. The food had been nice enough last time that she was willing to be a little more adventurous… or at least try to eat something sizable this early in the morning. If she didn't finish it, there were plenty of people around.

She turned from her friend to the server with a smile. The whole lots of talk about them thing made her feel a bit uncomfortable… but she was beginning to get better at tolerating that kind of attention, at least. And he was just being friendly while doing her job.
“Can I just have the enchilada eggs… And some orange juice? Thanks."

"Just that? Damn, alright, Trisha's really is gonna make the rest of us look like pigs!" Cass laughed, before following up with her own grin at the server.
"Hi! Uh, yeah, you clearly got told the right shit if y'know how much's gonna be eaten… I hope the rest of that buzz is positive… Anywayyyy I wanna try pretty much everything apart from the shit that's too fruit heavy, thanks!"

The server was laughing, and seemed to only actually write down Trisha’s order before dropping the pad.

“Well, that settles that. I don’t even really need to ask about you two.” he pointed his pen between Leon and Casey.
“And, Trisha, just as a logistical question- Where along the train-car deliveries of food would you like to actually have your meal? There’s going to be a pretty long sequence here, so we just need to know if you wanna eat early, in like the first batch? Or, sometime later on?”

“In the first batch, thanks.” Trisha replied. She was a slower eater that all the rest, after all, so she could pick her way through it.

“Okay, that’s perfect then. So, I’ve got a specific order of huevos enchilada, a bottomless juice, which if you want any other kind of juice at some point, just say so… Apple, cran, grape, whatever. And then… Yeah… A free-for-all. Family size sharing dishes for most of the stuff, and then fruit-centric personals for Casey.”

”Tito, you guys are always so good to us… Thank you.” Leon wiped some of the snot out of his nose with a napkin.

“Oh, you know we love you. It’s not like the people in the back aren’t used to bulk orders anyway… Drinks?”

”Oh, yeah, cola…”

”Coffee, and apple juice.”

”What kinda beers do you have?” Cass asked, before laughing at her own joke.
”Just a cola for me too, thanks!”

Tito scribbled the drinks down, then looked up one last time with a smile.
“Alright! Then, I’ll be back with drinks in a minute, and food will start to roll out probably in ten!”
He reached down to clear up the empty plates, then nodded his head at them before sliding his way back to the kitchen doors, disappearing behind them.

”He’s a good guy. Real people person.” Casey commented with a smile.

“He seems nice.” Trisha replied with her own smile, managing to properly relax now they had their food order in and everything seemed settled between them. At least as settled as it could be at this point.

”Oh yeah, you can always tell when it’s forced or natural!” Cass grinned, fingers tapping on the table in front of her now that she didn’t have any pancakes to occupy them with.
”Y’know, fake friendliness for the tips… But I bet Andrade pays real well anyway! But, y’know, when you’re a people person you just get that natural advantage… Like when I worked in a diner! Job sucked ass, but fuckin’ hell did I rake in a shit ton’a cash in tips! Almost made the shit worth it!”

“You only had to get that job because you lost your scholarship from slacking off.” Trisha intoned.

”Well, yeah! I ain’t complaining ‘bout that! Could’ve been worse! Honestly was better than that IT support gig I did at the uni for a couple’ve months… God, that was literal hell!”

”I’m pretty sure people kill one another for jobs at Andrade’s restaurants. It’s the expectation of professionalism. When this place is busy, it’s busy. So, they’ve all gotta be used to that kind of pace. And if you’re expected to do everything right at that speed, you should get compensated for it.” Leon nodded along, taking a deep if not ragged breath.

”What sort of tech were you supposed to be supporting to make it that bad, Cass? I thought you were a wiz at that kind of thing, so clearly it wasn’t hard... But, bad? Just, like, customers?” Casey was terribly curious, and his head turned to Trisha with a surprised expression before turning back to Cass.

”Oh yeah, it was the customers! Fucking hell, try to explain something basic and they’re like ‘but it didn’t work’ and then it’s like ‘ok well did you try this’ and it turns out they just ignored what you said! Or just, don’t know how to restart their own fucking computer!” Cass threw up her hands, one landing on Leon’s leg on the way down to give it a good, kind of comforting pat.

“Cass doesn’t have any patience for tech illiteracy.” Trisha explained, glancing up at Casey with a smile.
“Or it’s more like… She’s too good, so she doesn’t understand how people can’t get it.”

”Hey, that’s not fair, I’m plenty patient! With the nice customers! Like, y’know, the ones that’d actually listen to me!” Cass whined jokingly, lips pursing into an exaggerated pout.
”It was the fucking trifecta… Incompetent people who wouldn’t listen, people who thought they knew better than me, and impatient fuckers who didn’t realise there was a fucking line and we were slammed! I may be good at that shit, but I only got two hands, y’know!”

”Oh, so you’d be better at it now that you can make more hands?”

Casey instantly cracked up, head tilting back as he filled the restaurant with laughter. He didn’t even know why the innocuous comment was so funny, but it sent him into a laughing fit, and he had to wipe tears away from his eyes before finally settling back down. Leon laughed too, but only at how his brother had taken it and was now acting. It was nice to see him so chipper after yesterday… Which meant sex was, once again, the clear winner of personal therapy.

”I mean, it was a legitimate question!” Leon pressed.

Cass let out a thoughtful hum, rubbing her chin. It wasn’t something she’d actually thought about! Since, y’know, it wasn’t a job she ever wanted to go back to if she could help it. It’d drive her insane! Also, wasn’t like she needed to… She could find actual coding jobs nowadays. But! It sure was an interesting thing to think about.

”For some things, yeah! Like the easy tasks, or when I’m doing the same shit on two computers… But unless I split my brain, it ain’t gonna work for everything. And I bet the customers would still find something to complain about!” Cass answered seriously, before grinning and bringing a hand up to pat Leon’s face.
”But I got my hands full with you, Babe, so I gotta dedicate at least two to that- so I’d need, like, four more to make things more efficient!”

Trisha let out a quiet groan.
“Cass, please…”

”What? I didn’t even mean it as a sex joke, God, Trisha!” Cass immediately started cackling, smirking across the table at her friend.
”Whoa, you really think that’s all I think about, don’t you?! I was thinking like two arms to hug while I do IT shit on the side! Or, like, keep a hold of him so he doesn’t go off do something crazy!”

Trisha rolled her eyes, though she was smiling. In a clearly good mood too, even if there wasn’t any raucous laughter from her like there had been Casey. But seeing him enjoy himself only made her more comfortable.
“Like you’d stop anyone from doing anything crazy.”

”Uh, obviously I would… when my boyfriend’s running off to do some crazy shit without me! That shit’s gotta be done together!”

Their drinks arrived just as Casey was about to make his own impulsive mistake. The question bashed his brain as a strand of pain managed to crawl its way back into his mind. The elevator. Crazy shit without me. So, they’d made that decision together? Or, at least, she hadn’t had any sort of compulsion to think that there was a second, better way? But, he and Leon had been over and over it, and the agreement in the end was that there wasn’t going to be any more problems in regards to this. It was as water under the bridge as they could get.

So he took a deep breath and dumped some sugar in his coffee.
”Oh, you two… You really are made for one another.” he grinned, raising his mug at them gently before looking at Trisha.
”You never would’ve imagined this, huh? Did you know how into Leon she was before? Like, did you ever mention that you knew him to her?”

Trisha shook her head. If she'd told Cass before, things probably would've turned out quite different. She loved Cass, but her friend didn't always know when to stop… so who knows if she would've been pushy about trying to meet the guy she was a fan with that Trisha had no contact with at the time. Worse, really, with how she hadn't exactly felt any less resentful at nineteen than she had at fourteen.

“I knew how into Timberwolf she was, because she always called him that. I only went into her room a few times. I did think the guy on the posters looked scarily like the Leon from the coven I was in as a teen, but I kinda brushed it off. It'd been five years at that point so I wasn't sure I remembered his face properly! Maybe I was in denial, but I didn’t really put two and two together till y’know… She got all excited when visiting. So I didn't mention it before.”

”Honestly, probably a good thing! I bet shit wouldn't’ve worked out so nicely! The circumstances were kinda perfect, y’know?” Cass laughed, grinning at the other couple across the table while leaning into Leon. As was the way with her, the lean into him only lasted so long until she was bouncing the other way, a constant ball of energy that'd only stay still when captured. Or at least, she'd then end up vibrating in a single spot.

”If I’d known back then I'd probably’ve followed Trisha back home every summer and been on the prowl in the streets for him. Y’know, not super creepy, just hoping to accidentally bump into each other! Or I’d haunt all’ve the St Portwell goth clubs, lying in wait… Totally would’ve ended with me in a jail cell! Or, worse… With a restraining order from him!”

”Christ, I thought Lelou was the predator.” Casey grinned, giggling and looking at Leon.

His thought in turn was a world where that happened. By chance, some crazy British stalker managed to find him through hook or crook and eventually wriggled her way into his life…

”That’s kind of soulmate shit, isn’t it? Some real connection type attraction that spans across time and space, right? It’s like, you would’ve caught on eventually. You would’ve put two and two together, and we’d have been united through fate!” Leon gripped at Cass’ hand warmly, with a wide and silly grin plastered on his face.

He was joking mostly, but it was nice to know that, in the game of five degrees, he was so easily connected to someone whose love toward him was so genuine. She easily transcended that fan/friend borderline with a bit of legitimacy, and a chance at some genuine interaction… Or, as genuine as it could be at the time. Now she was getting more, but in turn he’d gotten so much of her, that there didn’t seem to be a reason to want to go back. He was in love… But he’d only said it once in duress! He didn’t ever want to smother her with it, or to appear that desperate.

”Is that gonna be a song on an album one day, Lee?” Casey continued to prod, causing Leon to sigh for a long moment and shake his head while smiling.

”I’ll let that one ruminate.”

”Song about what?! An alternative universe where his girlfriend was actually a crazy stalker- oh wait, you probably mean the soulmate shit, right!” Cass laughed, mind immediately going to what would be the way goofier inspiration. Or dark and creepy if he’d wanted to go that way…

She grinned up at Leon, squeezing his hand.
”Glad your mind went right to alternate world fate connections and not ‘oh my god she really is super crazy.’

“Wasn’t that obvious from the start? The you being super crazy thing.” Trisha commented, laughing softly.

”Well, yeah but not like- Not that I actually would’ve, y’know, I ain’t actually a stalker… Not unless you want me to be.” Cass waggled her eyebrows at Leon, Trisha instantly groaning in response. Cass didn’t actually give anyone a chance to verbally respond to that, knowing it would just be Trisha complaining about her making that kind of comment. Not that it was even that bad!

”But… Imagine how cool it could’ve been, maybe me and Lee would’ve gotten you guys together!” She grinned, gesturing between Trisha and Casey with her free hand.

“Well that… Sort of happened with Leon, right?” Trisha tilted her head up towards Casey with a smile, before looking back at Cass.
“At least, he pushed me onto Casey because he knew who I was. I don’t think I’ve ever been so grateful for someone not wanting to deal with me.”

She tried to keep her tone as light as possible, in the hopes of making it clear there were no hard feelings… Though it wouldn’t necessarily come across. But obviously, that night had turned out as well for her as it ever could have. She met the love of her life, after all.

Leon cleared his throat with a nervous smile.
”Well, I just knew that the most patient person in my life was right there. It was just another instance of that lovely little F word… And, Babe-”
His glare turned more wry and cunning as he twisted his head to face Cass.
”-being my girlfriend and my crazy stalker should go hand in hand…You can stalk me all you like.”

”Oh blehhhhhhh!” Casey chided at the two of them, laughing to himself before smiling down at Trisha.
”She should stalk you and murder you, like some crazy wolf… mother…”

Casey’s own sarcastic expression turned between Trisha and Leon as if he was looking for confirmation that it was okay to joke about the events that had passed.

Trisha let out a quiet laugh, not seeming bothered by the joke at all. The fact her expression hadn’t gotten any worse and she didn’t actually say anything was pretty indicative of that, with how reactive she was when actually upset. It was in the past now, after all. There’d only been a few coven members she was actually close to that died… And she’d had her moment of struggle with that.

Obviously, the low level grief about the events wouldn’t just go away. But she didn’t mind the joke… Not when it came from Casey, at least.

”Whoa, no way, I’d never murder him!” Cass protested, waving a hand in front of her face.
”Maybe an accidental death by exhaustion, but no murder! I’m only stalking with super sexy intentions!”

Though she played it off as a joke, Casey had inadvertently managed to poke one of Cass’ little worries… Or, well, maybe a big one! The whole going off the rails and killing everyone she loved thing! Sure, it didn’t seem that possible now, especially with some time after that lovely Wampus induced dream, but! The fear still lingered, especially with how shaky her magic control was.

She did grip Leon’s hand a bit tighter before continuing.
”Besides… That ain’t possible when Lelou’s around. Thankfully going full Black Widow spider ain’t one’ve my kinks, heh. For both of us, obviously!”

”You’ve bitten my head a couple of times now.” Leon said simply, sticking his tongue between his teeth at her.

”With blunt teeth! I ain’t bitten it when they were sharp!” Cass retorted playfully, her tongue poking right back out at him.
”Like you ain’t a biter too!”

Trisha stared at them with a deadpan expression for a moment, before looking up at Casey and speaking as if the other two weren’t even there.
“I’m not even bothered by this anymore, because it feels more like school yard bickering than anything sexual.”

”Hey! We’d never bicker! I’m just defending my honour!” Cass protested, hands flinging into the air and accidentally smacking Leon’s chin as she’d edged more into his space.
”I don’t want everyone thinking I’m some one sided mauler! Or that one day Leon’s gonna turn up with, like, half his face gone. Or worse- I bite so hard I eat his brain and turn into a brain eating zombie!”

”I bite places you don’t typically expose, that's all I’m saying… If either of us was gonna leave visible marks being careless, it's you, Miss Hickeymarker…” Leon continued to tease Cass, poking at her playfully as the other two looked on.

Casey shook his head, turning to Trisha.
”We’re too vanilla for this…” he commented before turning back to the others.
”Nobody is worried about you mauling Leon, Cass. He’s basically unmaulable, I mean, look at him!”

”That's terribly hetero of you, assuming just because I’m so big and capable that I can’t be a mauling victim…” Leon grinned wryly.

”You misunderstand. You can’t be mauled because you like it. Proven over time, you enjoy being mauled and sometimes seek it out.” Casey did his best to keep a straight face, turning to Cass.
”Please, help me out of this…”

”Oh suddenly he doesn't want to talk about getting mauled…

Cass laughed loudly, slapping the table with one hand.
”You’re asking the wrong person for help, dude! And, I mean, it still counts as mauling even if the victim enjoys it! Y’know what the real problem is?!”

She turned to Leon with a wide grin.
”There ain’t ever any marks anymore! You just fucking heal ‘em! So no matter how much I maul you-”

“You’re both about to be mass stinging victims if you keep this up.” Trisha interrupted drily, trying to save Casey- and herself- from the topic he had kind of made go on by interacting with it in the first place.

Ooo, don’t threaten me with a good time!”

“I’m threatening you with a bad time. A very bad time.” Trisha intoned, turning her judgmental gaze from Cass and Leon towards Casey, softening. Then a teasing smile pulled up her lips and she raised a hand to gently rub his cheek.
“But don’t worry, Babe. I’ll never judge you for any painfully hetero comments you make.”

”You guys hear that? I get a full pass to be super fucking sexist.” Casey joked, his smile growing as wide as it could.

Around that same comment, the food started to arrive… the table was suddenly full of sweet morning scents mixed together with those grilled spices from the various meats that accompanied Leon and Cass’ first course. Casey was privy to a beautiful looking fruit medley with the telltale addition of Trisha’s honey and some other dipping options. Rather than leave Trisha out of the loop until her meal, there were some more fruits that wound up slid into her general space.

”Saved by the food, Casey…”
”Obviously, I could see them rolling the tray out.”

”Whoa, you weren’t paying full attention to our riveting conversation? Damn!” Cass joked, immediately tearing into some of the meat in front of her. Since Casey and Trisha were there now, she at least ate like a human… Not just shoving a massive piece in her mouth and tearing it to shreds, but actually using cutlery and all that shit. She let out a quiet groan as the flavour hit her tongue.

”Fuck, it’s so fucking good!”

Trisha smiled, picking up a strawberry in front of her and leaning into Casey’s space to steal some of her own honey to dip it in.

”Speaking of so fucking good!” Cass pointed a hand over at the honey.
”Trisha’s honey! Fuck, you’re gonna keep supplying us when all this shit’s over, right? Actually- What are your plans after all the shit’s gone down. Trisha said leaving the city but not much else. I ain’t just asking cause’ve my selfish honey eating wants- but I’m your bee flesh supplier! If you wanna grow even more later, y’know. Also, like, the whole coven thing.”

Trisha didn’t say anything, because she had the honey covered strawberry in her mouth right at that moment. Instead she looked up at Casey to answer for them.

Casey looked thoughtful for a moment. Could he joke around more? Absolutely. But ultimately, these two were privileged parties, and they could all easily reconnect later anyway. So, Casey figured he’d be honest.

”Uh, specifics? Well, we want to get the fuck out of St. Portwell. I’m thinking of one of the empty states. Montana’s appealing; four seasons, plenty of land, loose magical regulation from what the goons in the PRA have told me. Plenty of open space to plant flowers, and roots. Maybe develop a big ol’ chunk for naturalized agriculture. I’m thinking we’d do natural gardens; lots of planting whatever local crops can help the environment, or will grow without disturbing the natural order. I’m hoping to court some spirits. Good apparitions to encourage the land, protect it in return for a little pampering here and there. Hell, maybe they’ll recognize the Queen.”

Casey talked so casually about setting up a magical ecosystem that he didn’t see Leon frowning through his barnyard sandwich. Runny egg leaked from the back of it, and in the pause, he managed to lose most of it to the plate.

”So… You’re gonna continue Eden?”

”I’d like to, in my own way. Hopefully others want to come with us, instead of leaving for Elise’s plans or taking themselves to another coven. Trisha being matron helps, because people will have someone to rally around. Especially if we contextualize the Queen being the main benefactor.”

This wasn’t the first time Casey was implying life beyond just the two of them in their own private world. The truth was, he was so used to the crowding that he had boiled it all down to the benefits. There were a lot of positives to having active staff, after all. Plenty of hands… And if they didn’t trap them? If they treated them like friends and employees, rather than pawns and resources, there’d never be a conflict deep enough to endanger them… It was an ideal.

Trisha didn’t say anything, munching on her fruit and trying not to get too tense when Casey mentioned others- and more than that, her as matron to whatever it ended up being. He’d already mentioned it not just being them a few times. While she’d at least accepted there’d probably be certain closer family or friends that might come along, or join at some point in the future, a whole community was something she was still mentally battling with. She hadn’t really pushed back on it yet because… Wouldn’t that make her look bad?

She said she wanted a community, but not too much. It seemed hypocritical. And it was still a long way off, they had time to figure out the details. She certainly wasn’t going to get upset about it right now.

But the whole matron thing made her more uncomfortable. She could maybe handle being part of a larger group. But being in charge? That terrified her.

”Huh, I mean, it suits you! I can see you out on the fields y’know… harvesting shit. I dunno about the Eden thing, but a magical ghost sponsored farm is pretty cool! Loads’ve space for bee hives and shit too, that’ll really expand the honey business.” Cass grinned, ever positive.
”I’m surprised you’re down for it, Trisha… Always kinda pictured you as a city gal!”

“It’s not like we’re going to be living in a cabin in the woods with no running water.” Trisha paused her nervous nibbling to respond to Cass.
“Casey’s promised me all the modern amenities I need, anyway. Even magical internet.”

”Oh, sweet! That’s good, cause if I had to start texting you, I think I might go mad!” Cass laughed.
”I mean, that sounds pretty nice. You guys really are planning to settle down, huh? So you’re planning some kinda… communal coven thing where everyone helps each other? Trisha and the Queen being at the centre is certainly a selling point… But maybe I’m biased!”

”Plenty of people will be displaced by what happens to the Temple. I see no reason to not help out however we can… And if we’re living off the land, it cuts costs down. I can keep paying the government’s property tax indefinitely, and we can probably work some funky federal bullshit out to get extra land-use variances so we don’t have too many unscheduled visits from officials.”

”Are you really sure about this?” Leon interrupted, a slight frown on his face.
”It just… Kind of sounds like the Temple in a new place.”

Casey shrugged in response, looking at Trisha before turning back to Leon.

”I think that comes from a place where all we really know is the Temple. If I wanted people isolated and unable to escape the circumstance, I’d go to Alaska. And I wouldn’t be offering fibre-speed internet connections to the outside world… We can get everything we need sticking in the lower 48, and I’m not holding some big recruitment drive either. The people who want to stick with me and Trisha will have to express their own desire to join us. I know Trisha doesn’t want that many people to deal with to begin with… But if we can get fifteen or twenty other people who just want to live simple, magical lives together? Why not form a community beneath the Coven? We’re safer that way, and everyone’s lives are enriched by each others’ presence. Like, for instance, you two! Imagine raising children alongside one another? There’s great security in that! And tremendous love…”

”Whoa, let’s not jump right to talking about raising kids, damn! That’s waayyy in the future!” Cass held her hands up to ward off the assumptions that there’d even be kids. Sure, probably! Leon was pretty set on having one even if shit fell apart between them… And, well, Cass could see herself having kids with him. She just wasn’t prepared to make that decision after only a month together.

She turned to look up at Leon.
”But he is right, Babe… It ain’t really the Temple two point oh if it ain’t got all the culty stuff. Or, y’know, the religious aspect and shit too! It’s more like a small town that works closely together that just happens to have magic, y’know. Well, maybe the magic’s more important than that… But, either way! I guess, maybe it’s taking some of the good parts of the Temple… But we all know Trisha ain’t jumping to control a whole group’ve people!”

“I’d rather not be in charge of anyone.” Trisha commented. The thought of people looking to her for decisions already made her feel a bit stressed. But the peaceful future with Casey outweighed that stress… She just hoped there’d be a nice balance.
“And I definitely don’t want another Temple. I just want to… live. And if other people live around us, helping out, and we help them, I guess that isn’t too bad.”

”Yeah, a tight knit community and shit!” Cass nodded, before rubbing the back of her neck.
”But, uh… I ain’t sure we’d be coming along? At least, not at the start? Lee wants to pick his boxing career back up… And honestly, I ain’t sure I wanna be tied down to a place yet! Maybe by the time kids come into the picture, though, heh.”

”There’ll always be a big slab of land for you to slap a home down on… Come Hell, or high water.” Casey raised his coffee.

He wanted to get hung up on the concept of Trisha being a matron… About the idea that they could do whatever they wanted, and that her perception wasn’t a guaranteed reality. That being “in charge” didn’t always mean you were some kind of turgid disciplinarian who micromanaged people. It was the idea of being there to answer questions, and to know the plan from the source… To be a voice of reason for people with unreasonable expectations, or to speak in place of those who couldn’t speak up themselves. It was about being in the middle without being the center.

One day, he hoped she’d know from experience. And he hoped that experience would give her more and more confidence… But for now, all he could do was bide his time.

”In Montana? I mean… Fair? I’d almost certainly need to hire someone to run a portal service back to civilization. Three or four hours from the nearest podunk airfield, just to get flown into some backwater airport and ride another couple of hours at least to a major city? That’s rough. Though, uh… It’s not like I’d be opposed with that concession being made. Even if I was boxing, it’d be easy enough. Remember, Babe… Magic! Things that inconvenience normal people are only so inconvenient with magic.” Leon shrugged at Cass, laughing to himself slightly.

”Fucking hell, I’m still getting used to that shit! Course magic just fixes everything… Well, I still ain’t about settling down like that in the next few years! I wanna be on the roaaaadd…” She twisted in her seat to lightly and playfully punch Leon’s side.
”Like a groupie except I’m actually, y’know, dating the celebrity I’m following! Honestly, I wanna live life a lot more before even deciding to stay in one place properly. I’d love to fucking travel around a bunch sometime! So I sure as shit ain’t ready to move to a communal farm in Montana yet- uh, sorry.”

The last bit was said to Trisha and Casey specifically.

“Don’t be… Like Casey said, there’ll be a place for you whenever.” Trisha smiled.
“It’s not like there’s a time limit. Doesn’t hit the two year mark and we go, no fuck them, we’ll give that land to someone else.”

”Yes it does. Two years, then we sell your chunk of the property to real estate speculators before the next population boom forces them to build highrise apartments on the spot.” Casey grinned, clearly joking.

”Actually, it’s plenty of time to have a house built how we want it. Or, at least, how I want it.” Leon replied, looking down at Cass and frowning slightly.
”Since, y’know, things could always fall apart. Could meet some better boxer on the road.” he teased her.

”That’s harsh! Cass, would you really?” Casey goaded, popping a handful of grapes into the little bowl of sugar before plucking them out one by one.

Cass rubbed her chin, brow furrowing as if she was really deep in thought.
”Well… You never know. Some new boxer could come along that’s taller, sexier and better company!” She joked. She definitely didn’t picture things falling apart because she met a better boxer… She’d already bagged the one she was the biggest fan of! If it fell apart, it’d be because there were issues between them, not something external like that. Obviously, she hoped that wouldn’t end up happening.

“Are there… Any people taller than Leon, that aren’t related to him?” Trisha questioned. Reaching anywhere near seven foot wasn’t exactly common naturally. Sure, probably magically… She frowned a bit as she tried to figure out how possible what Cass suggested was.

”Well, uh, yeah, probably? It’s a hard combo to beat, though.” Cass grinned, twisting her body again to face Leon and reaching up to squish his cheeks. It wasn’t like height was an actual factor… Well, maybe she did have a tendency to be more attracted to taller, buffer people- but! She didn’t have some minimum height requirement. She just wanted to make it clear how unrealistic something like that would be.

”Y’know what I like most about you, Babe? Your positivity. Always the optimist.” She teased, before shooting a glance towards Casey and Trisha to mock whisper.
”Still, save me a spot on the other side of the community. Just in case… Then we can have an across town rivalry.”

”Of course! As long as you both promise to keep your drunken anniversary flings out of our collective space, you’ll have yours. Part and parcel for each of Trisha’s bridesmaids. Right, Babe?”
Casey gave Trisha a genuinely cute smile, and she’d be able to feel his fingers press up tightly against the edge of her ring. His hand was warm, if not a little sticky from the residual honey. He grinned widely upon noticing, pulling away and licking his fingers before rubbing them with a napkin.

”Sorry… Want me to clean it? I mean, I just want a reason to stare at it.”
He reached back down, pulling her hand up above the table to start polishing her ring with a napkin.

”Oh, you’re such an ass… The fucking thing cleans itself I bet.” Leon chided, snorting a bit as he tried not to laugh aloud.

”I have no clue.

“Better not to risk it, in case it doesn’t.” Trisha commented, looking a mixture of smug and loving as she watched Casey. Even if it wasn’t actually necessary, the little bits of care he gave her always filled her with warmth. She really was the luckiest… And she’d brag about how amazing he was to the whole world if she could.

”D’awwwww.” Cass quickly swallowed the big chunk of a sandwich she’d bitten into, squishing up her own cheeks to watch them like it was some kind of romantic sitcom.
”I get a bigger plot of land cause I’m, like, the chief bridesmaid or whatever you call it!”

“I never gave you that role, you decided that yourself.”

”Well, yeah, but I’m your best friend! Who else would it be… Rey? Diyah? Oh, fuck, you weren’t thinking of Sal, were you? I’ll give it up to him if we get to put him in a dress!” Cass started absolutely cackling at the thought.

Trisha laughed too, shaking her head.
“Well… Since you’ve already decided, it’s easiest to go along with that. I don’t want to add any extra stress to my wedding planning.”

Cass smirked, looking at Casey and Leon conspiratorally.
”Awww, she’s such a tsundere… Just can’t admit she wants it to me!”

”A what now? That’s some anime thing, right?” Casey asked with a half-hazed over look. He wasn’t sure of what he was getting into in a very clear fashion, causing Leon to wave his hands in a warding fashion.

”Oh, please, I know you. As soon as she starts explaining you’re gonna turn your brain off.” Leon asserted, at which point Casey giggled and nodded his head.

”All it means is that she’s perfect to me.”
Hidden 8 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Tuesday December 12th.
Restaurant Cubain, De Château sur la Baie

Watching the busy drones of the Temple flit about to set up Cubain for the events of the night, Furio and Clarissa Natale leaned shoulder to shoulder with their backs resting against the bar.

”I’m not laughing anymore. Seriously! It’s no longer funny!”

Clarissa’s hair bobbed back and forth as her head snapped to the side in an evil glare. Yet, out of all the times to choose, Furio was laughing now. Drink at his lips, he was chuckling away. But there was the scent of cooking wood as the chunk of the bar he was gripped to for balance started to microwave heat under his palm.

”Too far past upset to get bent up over it. Just say your piece, and that’s it. It ain’t like this is for him anyway! It’s for Lee, and he’s done all he could.” Furio replied as he rolled the glass in his free hand, taking a sip of the whiskey inside as a breather.

”You’re a bastard sometimes, Foori… I could just strangle you.
Playfully, Clarissa extended her neck as much as she could, gently resting her chin on his shoulder without moving in to actually kiss him.

Furio didn’t turn, just kept grinning. Though, the cooking scent wasn’t as intense anymore.

”Save that…-”
Glasses clanked across the hall, and there was a tumble before a crash. Furio watched as the champagne tower came tumbling down into a soaking wet mess all over the bay window side of the restaurant.
”-Come on, guys! What’s the matter with you, you fuckin’ nervous!?”

“Th-h-ere’s a c-cat!”

A massive, ragged Maine Coon cat to be exact, sliding out from behind one of the tables with a hiss, only to slide right back into another one and disappear entirely from the venue. At least, for that moment… Furio laughed aloud again.

”Alright, you got me. I’d probably’a pissed too. Just, hurry up! Clean it? Get it reset? I don’t care how you do it, just fix it. And make sure you get the banners set up, this place looks empty! What the fuck are we screwing around for otherwise? It’s like-”

”-Baby, honey, now you gotta chill. They’re up. We’re doin’ the thing, remember? Just gonna have everyone kind of gather in, then we’re gonna let them pop the thing! All the decorations come down?” Clarissa interjected, being sure to stave off Furio’s wrath from gaining incandescence.

And she was fantastically prepared to do so, knowing exactly what to say and how to say it through years of steering the nuclear warhead in and out of danger. He stared up at the beams in the ceiling, recognizing the little magical poppers in lines over and over again. Streamers, balloons, confetti, all trapped into a neat little package. You could easily fill them with bombs, or other hazardous materials in order to absolutely ruin someone’s day. He fantasized for a moment longer than was absolutely necessary, stepping himself down with the shake of his head.

”We should’ve done what we said.” he grumbled quietly.
”And what? Explain? She’s said her piece.” Clarissa replied, shaking her head and clearing her throat.

”She’s not thinking straight!” Furio did his best to retort, gritting his teeth.

”Oh you think so little of me, Furio… Even now, among those whom I’m supposed to be closest to, I find conspiracy. Why?”

Furio spun immediately, yet found nobody behind him. Nobody was at the bar they’d been standing at, and nobody was around the many scattered tables. Clarissa’s reaction was in response to him, her body spinning to meet him with concern.

”What? What, what’s-”

There was a screech from the back room. Young, feminine… Furio immediately broke into a sprint, hopping fully over the bar and wholesale smashing one of the tap systems with his hip and eating shit on the floor behind the bar… Where he’d find Lynette and his daughter Ivetta crouched in equally childlike positions, both giggling together and at one another as Furio slowly registered that it was just a prank.

”Oh… Sorry! The cat scared her!”

Ivetta cracked up even harder before moving on hands and knees to start hugging her Father. Meanwhile, Clarissa was now staring over the bar at the scene.

”Nettie… You ass…” she shook her head, half a grin coming across her face.

”I don’t know what you mean, Riss. It’s just the-”
As she spoke, that same giant, ragged maine coon appeared in an embrace in Lynette’s arms, and she clung to it like a doll.
”-cat! He’s so big, she gets surprised. You are the one who taught her to be afraid of them.”

Clarissa’s wry grin became a glare at her best friend as she gritted her teeth and cleared her throat. Meanwhile, Furio was playfully wrestling with his daughter when he heard the queue. They both did, really, a disciplinarian queue that forced them both back to their feet.

”I think you owe your father and I an apology? For going along with your Aunt’s little scheme?” she said at her daughter, glare in her eyes.

Ivetta kicked her own heel, hands behind her back as she looked down at the floor. More specifically, at her Aunty Lynette as she started to stand back up herself.

”Don’t let her make you feel bad for having a laugh at their expense, Ivy. They’re both far too uptight for their own good these days.”

These days… Clarissa’s jaw clenched shut as she thought about these days. Ever since Beppo Park, Ivetta’d been acting up more and more. She didn’t want to talk, either, which was never a good sign dealing with kids. She’d seen enough with Mia to know that this kind of behavior just led to worse shit further down the pipe. She was desperate to head it off at the pass, but Lynette seemed equally keen to leave her mark wherever she could before the time came. So, here she was, to leave a lasting impression of youthful fun and rebellion.

As she was spoken up for, the teen grinned smugly.

”Even Daddy thought it was funny, Mamma…” she chided, looking up at Furio who cleared his throat nervously.

”What’d I teach you about being a rat?” he snapped down at her. But, it was clearly in playful jest as his arms quickly snapped downward and scooped the girl up to throw over his shoulder.
”Now you go in the meat grinder! C’mon! Punishment, your mother says so!”
He managed the queue very well, taking them both away so Clarissa and Lynette could have a private conversation.

Still stroking the massive cat, Lynette stared at Clarissa with both eyes fixed on her own. The staredown.

”What?” Lynette asked calmly, almost goading Clarissa onward.

”I asked you as a friend. As a Mother. I remember hearing myself say it, I said ’Lynnie, please! Please, leave her out of it, because she’s gonna have a hard enough time here soon.’-” Clarissa paused, bottom lip trembling slightly.
”-And you yessed me to death. Since then, you’ve done nothing with her but encourage the bad behavior. The action against Furio and I… And you’re weaponizing her. You’re using her against us, and that’s not fair. It’s not! Because we-”

Lynette stuffed the Cat’s face in front of Clarissa, causing her to shout at the top of her lungs in fear as she flailed backwards in response. Her back smacked into the hard wood cabinets hiding most of the liquor behind strong panes of glass. Lynette’s smile didn’t drop in turn.

”And you’re still afraid of a little ol’ cat. What kind of Crone are you, Rissa? You can’t even take a joke? You think this is all so fucking serious?”

You are serious! Our friendship is serious! The mental health of my only fucking child is dead serious!

”Oh, so I don’t get the distinction of dead serious? I’m just, y’know, serious, my life is mildly serious, but her? That’s dead serious.”

Clarissa frowned.
”Don’t you dare…” she intoned remorsefully. ”You know I didn’t mean it like that.”

”Yet, you said it like that.” Lynette intoned in a rather hurt fashion.

This set a billion triggers off in Clarissa’s brain. Suddenly, the moment wasn’t about Lynette’s inability to stop herself from meddling. It was about placating her emotions. About feeling terrible that she’d said something to hurt Lynette in the first place. That she had been wrong about all of this to begin with.

”I’m sorry, I’m so sorry… I- Lynn… Lynnie? I-I know… I know you think that she should have fun. You’re right! We’re too hard on her. I’m too hard. I’m just nervous now! Especially with how things have been going, and-”

”Which nobody seems to care too greatly about. Since it hasn’t been solved.”

This again…

”You’re the one who warned against setting this place up!”

”I don’t want my babies killed!” Lynette asserted in a rather aggressive fashion, gripping down on the cat and causing it to gag.

”But if they go missing, the whole conflict spirals out of control. Thousands dead! Thousands if not tens of thousands more affected by the aftermath! We need to contain this!”

Clarissa and Lynette had been over this a trillion times, yet when Lynette sounded the claxon call to have it again, Clarissa responded with an immediate charge into headlong abandon.

”So, you’re saying that you really don’t care to find a better solution?”

”I’m saying there isn’t one! That what we have going on is the last option we have, because if we don’t take that one, then you’re just setting them up to win! And you know I can’t take the chance of losing you! I can’t! I won’t, Lynnie! I love you! And I won’t see… Can’t see you go away without me. I refuse.”

Lynette frowned and let the cat drop from her arms to scamper away before crawling into Clarissa’s arms and squeezing tightly around her.

”You still don’t ever seem to trust me.” she commented with a frown.

”That’s ‘cuz your plans are batty.” Clarissa admitted with a shake of her head, arms curling around her precious big sister figure. The woman who had given her everything, she felt.
”What’re we supposed to do without you? Dance to their tune?”

”Or suffer the burden we’ve seen, yeah… Feels like shit, doesn’t it?” Lynette calmly asked in return, eyes watering slightly at the prospect of death.



”Again with the parking at this place. When will anyone ever listen to me about what a nightmare it is to do shit in this part of town?”

Behind the wheel of the new truck that Leon had purchased him in thanks for his work, Casey felt like the tallest human on the planet. It wasn’t such a massive truck that it was obnoxious; an SUV that Leon joked about being safe for bees and babies in the Montana snow. But, given how tall he was, it just made the whole thing that little bit more elevated.

”And they ask me to get here early… That made me laugh. They know they’re gonna be here anyway, yet they want us there early. Like it should be your problem that they want to celebrate it.” he looked over at Trisha as he sucked a frozen latte from a straw in the dead cold of December.

They were stuck in traffic down the road from the Cubane, and Casey still wasn’t sure if there’d be parking in the downstairs garage. But the turn was still a few hundred feet away, giving them time to complain at one another like an already-married couple.

“She’s trying to make our life hell on the way out… Including mundane shit like being stuck in traffic.” Trisha intoned in response, giving him a little smile. It was more annoying for him than her, really. At least, them being stuck like this. She didn’t mind the extra time, just them.

The whole having to be there early thing was annoying. She didn’t want a celebration over the Dollhouse defeat and Sycamore safety. If it was for Leon, he should be the one going to set it up. Or, the ones demanding their attendance should! She wasn’t that happy about basically having to go in the first place. Her battery for large social events wasn’t exactly large in the first place, and had barely charged since the last one.

But at least she had Casey.

“If it was my choice, there’d be no big celebration at all. But I guess that’s why we’re just told to come early and not actually allowed to plan it. They know we wouldn’t want to bother.” She shrugged.
“Hopefully we can turn all the attention onto Leon during the actual party. He likes it way more than I do.”

”And anyone else who decides to show up, I guess. Hopefully enough to hide you away and we can scram early. The next episode of Dockworthy is supposed to be pretty juicy, and I just wanna sit and watch it…” he admitted coyly in reply.

At least they were on the same page about spending time together. He valued every second of privacy he got with his fiance… It was more than a pleasure for him at this point as well, rapidly becoming something he hoped to soak up his entire life. He felt odd not having her clinging to him in a half-nap state during the lows. He almost liked that best if it wasn’t such a sick thing to wish for more of…

”Unless you were really hung up on that other one you were watching…” he conceded.

“I’ll watch anything as long as it’s with you.” Trisha replied sweetly, squinting happily at him. For her, watching TV was still a mostly background thing… Something to distract herself with or to do with Casey. Though, she was beginning to actually enjoy what they were watching now. Or, allow herself to. It wasn’t like there weren’t televisions in the Vanburen household, or even Maria’s place. There was just the pressure from her Mom to always be working and doing something productive.

So it was nice that she could relax with him, and was beginning to be able to relax when it was just her too. Though she wasn’t sure how much that would last as she was coming more and more out of her depressive episode.

“Honestly, I’d watch paint dry if it meant escaping this and just getting to cuddle with you. If that’s what you want to watch, we can. If it’s juicy enough maybe I won’t fall asleep.” She laughed.

She was still catching up, after all. But it wasn’t like she planned to fall asleep as soon as they got home today. Actually, she had plans beyond just watching TV. Not that she’d told Casey… Because they were delayed surprise plans. Maybe it was a mistake to plan to propose after another event that could go wrong, but it felt more… right. The idea of escaping away together and then doing that. Even if she hadn’t been able to prepare as much as she had the last time, she just wanted to show her love for him like he had for her.

“Maybe we should start suggesting events have a ‘kids’ room, set up a TV there, and lock it so only we can get in. Then we can pretend to show face and escape for a while.”

”I… Really tend to doubt that would work. Mostly because Cass would hear us, and would want to come watch too. And then it wouldn’t just be us.”

There were a few different reasons besides that, but he was sticking to this one for simplicity sake. The last thing Casey wanted to get back into was the conversation about how the Temple wasn’t going to be around long enough to worry about that.

”At least we’re the masters of our own destiny soon. No more unnecessary events in our life.” he still managed to let the feeling leak out… But that was just the most exciting prospect for their future. And he couldn’t wait much longer.

“True… I can’t wait.” Trisha smiled at that. She really couldn’t. It would be worth all the pain over the next few months. She’d suffered enough over her life anyway, so what was a little more.

“Though… If Cass and Leon do end up in Montana with us, I’m not sure if our peace will last. Cass is the least peaceful person ever, and she’ll definitely end up bursting in all of the time. We’ll need to Cass entry proof our whole house.”

”She’ll make a fantastic assault drill… Y’know, the ‘in case of emergency’ protocols and all that.”
The corner was coming, and Casey hooked the right to travel down behind the building and up to the garage. This time, since they were both going up together, Casey and Trisha were able to leave the vehicle downstairs in a parking spot before making way to the elevator.

”Weird to think this may be the last time I ever see some people… Andrade’s planning on leaving… Did he tell you yet?” Casey asked calmly.

Trisha shook her head.
“Is that what he meant by my honey always having a home yesterday? And why he wanted to talk? I didn’t exactly want to deal with that today… But I guess I’ll have to do it soon, won’t I?”

She looked up at him, before shuffling close and leaning into him. Recharging in the short period it was still just them.
“I’m not surprised. I wouldn’t want to stay in the city if I was Andrade either.”

”It’s all the same, ultimately. For the best. But, yeah, I guess if he said that to you, it sounds like what he meant. Maybe not today; he’s got another week to get things settled before he takes the vacation and doesn’t look back. I… Am still torn about it. But, I guess Mom’ll be pretty hungry soon. We all will. That’s the only guy who can actually work with Oblivium gone from the Temple.” Casey shrugged, frowning.

”I don’t love the idea of starving people out, but it’s a tactic. The withdrawals will probably be pretty bad for most people.”

Trisha hadn’t even thought about that. She pressed her lips together into a thin line. She wasn’t empathic enough to care about the vast majority of the Temple, or Lynette. But Casey, and the girls? Those three already had it difficult enough, and she would struggle to see him suffer.

“It’s something people can get over, right?” She asked, still frowning.
“And for you… What are you going to do? If you can’t get the bread that helps with all the calories you need, are you going to… Try eating meat again?”

”We’ll be fine. I’ve got enough enriched flour stashed away. We already worked out a spot to keep more in wait for a transfer when we find some property… For now, I’ve got some here in the city. Enough to last a couple of months.”
He spoke so matter-of-factly, like everything was easily taken care of. It was, in a sense. After all, there wasn’t much anyone would be able to do except wean themselves off of the stuff like every other drug. He was mostly worried about the girls, given their predilections to begin with.

It was hard to imagine them not falling into the trap here as well. But the elevator ding’d, and the doors slid open into the lobby of the hotel across from the entry to the restaurant. There were friendly faces setting up the ambiguous “congratulations” banners, and Casey waved at them in turn as the two of them entered…

By this point, the previous tension had been somewhat dispelled. The trio of old friends were standing together watching as Ivetta danced with the cat in her arms in the middle of the room. Casey was rather shocked to see that, having known how careful Clarissa was dealing with cats. After all, any cat could be a Wampus.

Which, he knew this one was… And not just any Wampus. The beast mewed with excitement as the two of them entered the restaurant.

”And here I was, not sure you’d make it! Thank all of the Ancients!” The cat grinned up at them.

Casey did his best to ignore it, not wanting to deal with the pain in the ass that was his myriad traumas associated with this bastard cat. Yet, he couldn’t kick it in front of Ivy… So he just held Trisha tighter and kept stepping past it.

”Hey, you three… And you, Ivy!” Casey said simply, assuming violence wasn’t planned thanks to Ivetta’s presence.

”Your guys’ cat is so sweet, Cousin Casey. Auntie Lynnie says you guys have had him forever!” she beamed.

Casey only nodded politely, getting immediate vibes of ill will from his aunt and uncle. But, Lynette was as casually open as she seemed to always be these days.

”She says she wants her own! Lynette laughed, opening her arms wide and collapsing them both around Casey and Trisha.
”My sweet babies… Are you both alright after everything? You’re okay, Trisha? The knowledge coming back isn’t painful, is it?”

Trisha reactively tensed as Lynette hugged them, doing her best to not have a worse reaction than that. She even managed to very weakly hug Lynette back with one arm, the other holding tight to Casey. It was better to keep the peace… Or go along with things as much as she could. She’d be gone soon, after all.

“I’m alright. It was more peaceful than I’d imagined.” Trisha admitted, not particularly worried about Lynette assuming the knowledge came back in some kind of good memory. It wasn’t like she was going to share the contents.

“I don’t have to worry about waking up to a murderous replica over my bed anymore, so I would say things are going alright. Even if getting here wasn’t easy.”

Lynette nodded her head warmly, taking a deep breath and smiling.

”That’s encouraging news! Then, maybe you’d do me the honor of coming along for a little walk? Just… To talk. Not what you think, really… I’m rather tired, and I know that soon it’ll be far more unlikely that we have the chance.” she asked seemingly out of the blue, and totally lacking in any prompting. Though, Clarissa and Furio seemed actively against offering greetings.

Casey still prompted them anyway.

”Am I… in trouble? You two?” he asked very simply.

”A little bit! But that can wait.” Furio’s head nodded at Ivetta, then motioned toward where Trisha and Lynette were speaking.

Trisha frowned a little bit, glancing back at Casey before looking at Lynette. Did she want to go for a little walk with her? Obviously not. But there was still that deep seated need to not appear like the worst person in the world. And in a way it was her fault Lynette was going to die, even if there were so many other people involved. Maybe it was the least she could do.

And, if it ended up as bad as all the other talks they had… How Trisha dealt with it would show if she’d really made any steps forward.

“Sure, alright. We can talk… As long as it really isn’t what I think. I’m tired too, and don’t have the energy to put up with bullshit right now.” She replied, turning her head to stare at Furio and Clarissa for a moment before her attention went back to Lynette again. She gestured with one hand, the way she nibbled at her lip showing the nerves she was trying to cover with a fake confidence.

The tension from Clarissa and Furio shook it more than anything. She knew Furio and Casey had been clashing… And was worried something would happen. But clearly, they didn’t want to talk in front of their daughter. But then… Would she leave, and they’d get violent? Trisha wasn’t sure, and that made her just as nervous as whatever Lynette may want to talk about. But she couldn’t do anything about them at the moment, so she only hoped this talk really wasn’t like all of the other ‘talks’ with Lynette.

“Wherever you want to… Walk.”

Lynette waved her hand onward toward the kitchen, guiding her through the doors until Casey was out of sight. It was immediately clear why Lynette wanted to guide Trisha away from the moment.

”Now, don’t get the wrong-”

”-Well then why the fuck did you acce-”

Lynette cleared her throat and shook her head before doing her best to slide Trisha further away from the noise.

”-ehm… Trisha… Those problems?-” she shuffled her hands backward at the yelling as Casey’s voice climbed to a height saved for pain and fury.
”-will pass. You see, I was, well- It doesn’t matter! I won’t be there, will I? To tell you how sorry I am, and make it up to him, and to them, and to see the children that come after. But, I know how you feel ultimately. What right would I have to see them? Even if I did apologize, even if I did repent. Would you ever really trust me?

Lynette let the question hang in between them as she looked at Trisha expectantly. There was a bit of a difference between playful Lynette and whatever this was. She didn’t seem stressed, so much as she seemed like there was actual pain happening. Like she couldn’t bring herself to peddle the bicycle any longer. The exhaustion was in her voice. As she waited for an answer, she was almost anticipating Trisha’s response, her head gently moving from side to side in a rapid fashion that was almost subliminally pressing toward the ultimate answer… No.

Trisha didn’t answer immediately, frowning silently. She was visibly tense, but it was still just as much because of what they’d left as it was being alone with Lynette. The seemingly different Lynette didn’t make her feel any less wary. She was always the paranoid sort… It was why her answer could never be any different than what was expected. There was no point lying and pretending at that moment.

“No, I’d never trust you.” She admitted as calmly as she could.
“And I’d never let you be around my children alone. But maybe Casey would have convinced me to let you see them with him there. But it doesn’t matter, does it? Because it’s already too late.”

At least in her mind, it really was past the point of no return. The further she pushed her children, the less likely anyone was to want to save her. Not that Trisha had ever wanted to… Maybe Casey had.

Her head twisted around to look at the door they’d come through, concern clear across her expression as she got tenser. She didn’t want to be around whatever argument was going on, so she almost appreciated Lynette taking her away… But it didn’t stop her from being worried. There were two of them, and only one Casey. But surely… If their daughter was still there, it would just be shouting.

And as much as she didn’t trust Lynette, she at least believed she didn’t want Casey dead. Because the easiest way to prevent her own death would have been to kill Trisha, or Casey, in the first place, even if it cut off some possible magical reincarnation. But she hadn’t.

She turned her attention back to Lynette.
“Would you really have been able to make it up to him? Because you seem to be doing everything you can to make them suffer before you go. Any apologies from you would be empty.”

Lynette’s expression became flat in a confirmational nod.
”I can’t even begin to apologize. I just genuinely want you to know that I hope it’s a nice life. Fill it with good things, Trisha. Don’t let it get like this. I know, you think it must be hard getting to this point. But, then, you’ve got your own personal role models to let you know just how fucked up being a parent is. So, do better. That’s all I can hope for too. That you’re better than all of us combined, you two. I want nothing more than my childrens’ ultimate happiness. Even if that means making sure they see one last black stormcloud before the sun shines in.” she spoke calmly, clearly, and without any form of stammering or searching for the words.

The shouting was still going on, and she grimaced.

”I can’t wait for the quiet. Trisha… If I asked you, here and now, before anyone else had the chance to stop you… Would you kill me?

Trisha’s expression wavered, flitting from as coldly neutral as she could muster to anxious and conflicted. Unlike the other question, there was no immediate easy answer. Would she?

She didn’t know. It would cut short the suffering Lynette was causing, and would continue to suffer until she died. Maybe it would save lives if she pointed out more sub-groups that needed to be removed. But could she really do it? Did she even deserve to? When she’d suffered so much less than Lynette’s own children and many other Temple members?

And what would happen to Casey outside. It would be an immediate, vengeful fight. They might kill him.

“Are you about to try and hurt Casey? Or kill him?” She asked back, managing to keep her voice even.
“I doubt it. So, no. I only kill to protect. You’ll have to wait for the people who really hate you.”

Then a thought crossed her mind, and she almost smiled.
“Or, if you’re that desperate, ask Cass. She would.”

Lynette’s head turned downward slightly, a wry smile crossing her face as she began to snicker.
”Yeah… She wasn’t really in the cards, that one! I’d never been too concerned with whether or not Leon would wind up all that happy, so… I suppose it really is just another reason to be thankful that you’ve come along. Y’know, it’ll be that attitude that makes you a wonderful Matron. You stick to your guns! Remember, a decision made is a decision paid: You will reap every single seed you decide to sow, whether you wanted it to be there or not. And that lesson alone is enough to keep you from being like me. Or, y’know, like your mom. Who, may I add, is a vile wretch! Trying to get in touch with her was like being beaten with a metal whisk. No wonder you’re so prickly.”

She still didn’t seem to have any trouble yapping away as she’d always done… Plenty of time for the argument to begin cooling down in the other room. The shouting was far less intense, and even less frequent than it had been…

”My point was: There will come a day when a decision must be made. And it will be hard… And you won’t make it. Prepare yourself… Because things could really tumble out from under a person when they don’t have the guts to make a hard decision.” she smiled now, nodding her head.

Just as Clarissa slammed the door open.

”We’re leaving, Lynnie. You come, or you don’t, I don-”

Lynette threw up one hand, and one finger upon it. Still, her gaze was on Trisha.

”If only things were different. I really wish they had been. But what is, will always be. Goodnight, Trisha. And, congratulations on the End of Night.”
Lynette backed up a couple of steps before turning on her heels and following Clarissa out of the door, leaving Trisha all alone for the moment.

As soon as there was no one else in the room, the tense string keeping Trisha upright and rigid- as if confident- snapped. It wasn’t towards relaxation, but more a crumple, leaning against one of the counters and covering her face with her hands.

It hadn’t been that bad, as far as talks with Lynette went. But of course, she threw shit on Trisha on the way out. A hard decision… that she wouldn’t make? It could mean a lot. Could be some major fuckup she’d make in the future. She wouldn’t even be surprised. How was she even supposed to prepare herself for something like that? Just thinking about it had all her insecurities crawling up her throat, trying to devour her.

It wasn’t helped by the mention of Maria, no matter how brief or scathing. The Mother she wasn’t able to get into contact with either… Who she’d try her best to never be like. But she was more worried she’d end up like Lynette. A clingy, emotionally manipulative mother that needed pacifying by her own children…

I was doing so much better. Stop thinking about it.

She rubbed her eyes, frowning and taking a deep breath. She should go back out to Casey, so he didn’t worry. But she was still struggling to get out of the loop she got stuck back in- past failures, future failures. Constant failure. It wasn’t even that she wanted to hide it from him by only coming out when she wasn’t visibly conflicted… She just couldn’t bring herself to move as she tried to process it.

But it didn’t take Casey long to barge into the doors that they’d left through, immediately scooping her into his arms as if they’d had iron bars in between them for days on end. His arms kept her tight to him, hands slipping up to rub the back of her head in a comforting motion as he took deep breaths in and out.

”Are you okay? Trisha?” his voice was full of supreme concern and infinite love as he practically searched her for wounds or shakes. Anything showing any sort of discomfort, all he wanted to do was ease it…

“Just defusing the bomb Lynette left behind.” She responded, without much hesitation. She buried into his arms, hugging him back and taking her own deep breaths in tandem with his. His appearance was enough to pull her out of the downward spiral before she fell too far.

It hadn’t even been that bad, and she was still struggling with it. She really had a long way to go.

“Something about the future… A hard decision I won’t make. It wasn’t even bad until then- until right at the end, when she mentioned my Mom and said that. I guess it’s not a conversation with Lynette if she doesn’t try to make me doubt myself… Not that that’s hard.” She was fully honest for once. It wasn’t something she could even try hiding, and she wanted Casey’s comfort more than anything. None of it was exactly new.

She was lightly trembling, but it wasn’t as bad as it had been before. Nowhere near a full blown panic attack. Just normal anxiety and doubts brought back up… Not enough to stop her from tilting her head up to look at him with her own concern and love.
“But what about you? I heard a lot of shouting.”

Casey already found himself in a new conundrum. Again, this was supposed to be a celebration for Trisha, Leon, and whichever other Sycamites decided to show their faces. But others had to make problems where they shouldn’t exist. He had known there was sincere animosity building up since he’d been handed the reins; and that Clarissa and Furio had imagined he’d come onto the seat and curtail the efforts of dissonant parties.

He’d obviously achieved the opposite of that. Which meant that the animosity and resentment was only growing. They felt lied to. Cheated. As if he’d bamboozled them, and finessed the seat out from under Furio as if he hadn’t wanted to step away. He did... And he’d admitted that to Casey openly and freely. But, he’d expected an effective successor, not one whose dereliction of duty was a purposeful assdrag to allow the Temple to fold up like a wet rag.

”I’ve been reassured that if anything extreme happens to Lynette, I’ll be the first one to experience consequences. And that whatever is given, I should expect to receive a thousandfold. Which is a cool ultimatum in my head, because it’s like… They still seem willing to put it all behind them if I start doing what I’m supposed to do. I’m not gonna. But, it's still nice to think that their hearts aren’t against me. Just so passionately protective of their good friend that they’d do anything to protect and avenge her if need be.”

He hated telling her stuff like this… But it affected her too. This time, majorly.

”I’m sorry… I’m not gonna let you go, and I know you wouldn’t want it… But this whole situation puts you in a significant amount of danger too. It’s not like the unknown of Father Wolf, but when it all goes down, they’re not gonna spare you. Here’s hoping that it’s just one last fight for our lives…” he fully admitted to her, not able to leave anything significant out.

Trisha frowned up at him, body tensing. But she didn’t look more panicked than she had before, her eyes narrowing in something closer to anger. Of course they wouldn’t let something like that go. She understood being protective of a friend, and being destroyed by their death. If Cass died… She’d struggle a lot. But if someone killed her in a situation like this, would she really go after whoever it was and risk her own life? Kill someone else?

Maybe… but Casey wasn’t even the one who was going to kill her! It pissed her off that they were willing to destroy their future over the downfall of a woman who’d dug her own grave. Their own too!

“So they want two more people to die no matter what. And more if they win, I guess?” Her hands dug into his back.
“I’m going to need to really start training more. With my magic and… I should get better with a gun. Maybe we need to train together. Because if they’re going to come after you- it’ll be us! And they’ve been married so long… We did well against that assassin, but we’ll need to be better than that, won’t we? I’ll need to get stronger because if they really want to hurt you… they’ll try kill me first, won’t they? I won’t let them. And you’re right, I won’t leave you either.”

Casey held her close and tight while she worked out what she felt was necessary. He didn’t entirely disagree, in that it’d be a far better prospect if she was just a little bit more prepared… But, it was mostly a matter of class. The fact of the matter was that even if they didn’t have a matrimonial bond as a fighting pair, even if they’d not spent their entire adult lives training together and learning how best to use their abilities in tandem; they would still be two Master level Adepts with practical paranormal combat experience that totaled up to probably thousands of hours between the two of them. It’d be intense training for him… But, maybe it wouldn’t be so bad for her? If the Queen cared enough, there was always the chance that she’d come to their aid.

And if she was anywhere near as healthy as she had been in her heyday, then there was a high chance that her influence over Trisha would be enough to spur them toward victory. After all, he knew that he had the expertise and understanding to defeat Furio in a closed setting without interference. And he was fairly certain he could get that plenty of times before things got bad… But why escalate before it was necessary? Why be who they are, and do the thing that they’d do to anyone else? It’d be ironic, sure… The two deathdealers of the Temple being assassinated by an efficient and animalistic killer with little regard for the brutality caused to them. But, what would Lynette do? What would the security department members still loyal to them do in return? Casey bet the answer had something to do with the poor Aberrations still left in limbo over this whole debacle. And they didn’t deserve to die because he wanted to spare himself the troubles.

”It’s all twisted. Frankly, it’s fucking stupid. They supposedly love me… So they’ll wait and hope I do the right thing… Right in their eyes is to put a stop to whatever’s in motion. Yet they’re so willing to utilize violence on their own terms! I don’t fucking want this to be this way! And, y’know, if they die… What the fuck happens to Ivy!? There’s a fucking teenage girl in the middle of this, and… What? What the fuck are we supposed to do at that point?” he grunted in frustration, not sure of where to start with the issue.

“It’s fucked up.” Trisha agreed, frowning more. It wasn’t like there was anything she could say to fix that situation. They had a daughter… And they were still choosing this path. Maybe they were so confident they’d win that they didn’t even think it was an issue! But… Her and Casey deserved to live too. They shouldn’t have to die just because Casey refused to uphold an oppressive system that got loads of other people killed.

All she could really do is hope to alleviate any guilt he may be feeling about it.
“They’re choosing vengeance over their daughter which is… Fuck. It won’t be your fault if they died because- We don’t want to fight. We’re not starting it. If they don’t try to kill us… I guess they’ll still be a problem but… I don’t know. We just have to do the best we can. If they do and we kill them… We’ll have to… Deal with the consequences and make sure she’s looked after…”

It wasn’t exactly a burden Trisha wanted, and it was a struggle enough to not just ignore the problem and get pissed at Clarissa and Furio deciding murder and death was more important than living for their daughter. But Casey was a good person and she wanted to be better for him. That meant not leaving a teen girl with nothing if they had to kill her assassin parents.

”I don’t doubt she’ll be looked after. If nothing else, Elise intends on continuing things in some fashion. Maybe the structure to maintain her care will be there. Or, who knows… Maybe we inherit a fifteen year old girl, and we have to raise her the rest of the way. As long as she doesn’t realize what happened exactly, I don’t imagine she’d be a bad kid to live with.”

It was a rather morbid concept, but so was Furio and Clarissa choosing death over peace. Whatever was going to come next would be painful and difficult to deal with, but if they planned on living through it? There was nothing else to really do but deal with it all the same. Child or not, assailed or not, life didn’t stop just because things were hard. In fact, in Casey’s experience, things always got worse when the going got tough. It wasn’t something to look forward to… But, it also wasn’t something to back down from. The challenge of life…

All he could do was hug Trisha a little tighter.

”I was assured that I’d have the freedom to make the right decision. That things are fine until they aren’t anymore. So, yeah… We’ll start tomorrow. No questions, either. We’ve gotta do what we’ve gotta do. And, honestly? We’re getting Leon involved. I’ve said before, but you two can connect on the level of Adjoined. Your Apparitions even know one another. If that’s not motivation enough for our fuzzy lady, I don’t know what will be.” Casey asserted, taking a deep breath and pulling away slightly to look down at Trisha’s reaction.

Trisha pursed her lips, not exactly looking happy about it. But she did nod. She’d said she was willing to try with Leon… Just, training was the kind of thing that had happened back in the day. Chaotically, but it happened. Leon was always an asshole… But it could be different. And she wanted to live and keep herself and Casey safe.

“Alright. I’ll need Cass to grow me a lot of limbs to grow more bees in anyway… So it’s only fair he gets involved too. I said I’d try with him… We both agreed to be patient, so it won’t be like it was back then.” She nodded again, not particularly convinced but still willing. She had to be.

She bit her lip, brow furrowing with a hint of confusion in her eyes as she looked up at Casey.
“There’s something I don’t really understand. Lelou spoke to the Queen with deference, and Leon’s so magically strong, but I’m… Not. I guess it’s because she’s not always sleeping. But it’s been twelve years. Surely an Ancient Apparition should have some strength back?” She huffed slightly, before managing a slight smile at him.
“That’s not really a question for you, is it?”

Casey shrugged, but didn’t want her to think he was indifferent over it.
”Being with you helps me sleep… Maybe she feels the same? She’s had a long life, and from everything I understand, she was in charge of a massive kingdom at some point. Surely, you get tired of all the responsibility, all the effort, all the time spent needing to defend yourself and your people from things like Lelou, or the Snake, or whatever the Hell else… But, if we think about it like that… Twelve years ain’t a lot of time either, is it?” he asked simply, trying to take everything into account.

“Not for her, no.” Trisha responded, after a moment's thought.
“It’s half my life… And barely any of hers. Maybe when she adjoined to me she just assumed she’d have a nice body to sleep in, and someone else to look after the bees… And she does, mostly.”

It wasn’t exactly easy to understand how an Apparition felt, even though Trisha knew she could technically ask. Their relationship had gotten a bit closer in the last month, but not to the point Trisha felt comfortable just going to the Queen about things. Though she’d have to… When they started training. Not tonight.

“I’m sure she’ll be willing to lend me more if she knows it’ll only be for a short period. Then, she’ll get all the rest she wants, and the bees will get a nice place to live. It’ll be a win-win.”

Casey nodded calmly. His hand climbed gently to brush against the top of her head to begin rubbing it comfortingly.
”Whatever happens… I’ll protect you. Whether the Queen does or not, I’ll give everything I have to make sure nothing takes your life. I promise.” he asserted, taking a deep breath as he let his magic flow outward into the restaurant.

People were starting to show up. Other Temple members invited in, who were always early arrivals. Mia and the girls, with Gin and her brother in tow. Norm and Theo, and a few other Cannery residents. Putting banners and balloons up, looking for Casey and Trisha. Someone warded them off, said something about the situation, and everyone but Gin seemed to be willing to follow the boundaries set.

”Is there room for me in that hug?” she asked very simply as she pushed through the swinging doors.

Trisha took a deep breath herself, properly clinging onto Casey for just another moment. It looked like their alone time was over… But at least it was just one person for now. They’d get through the evening, and then be alone again after.

“Sure, as long as you don’t expect any loving gazes like we give each other.” She managed to joke as she pulled away from Casey slightly, but not fully out of the hug. There was still a bit of tension in her frame… But there almost always was. It only ever seemed to go away when it was just them, somewhere safe. Home, normally.

She wasn’t rejecting Gin, though. Now that she was more out of her low she was back to trying when it came to hugs with other people… Desensitising herself to it.

Without magic like Casey’s, she couldn’t tell how many people had arrived. She could just guess it was more than Gin.
“I’m guessing that’s our quiet time over?”

”Nah, it’s just me. I’m chillin’.”
Without much fuss or effort, Gin slid right in between Trisha and Casey, both arms wrapping as far as they could. She took a long, warm sigh.

Casey giggled, looking up at Trisha with a playful pout.

”Ain’t it nice to be loved, Babe?” he asked simply, rubbing both of their shoulders as they got close.
”But, yeah… More people are here. My sisters, uh… Some of the security guys. Gin just ignored what the others were saying about giving us a bit more time to come out on our own.”

”Ain’t no mountain high enough to keep me from gettin’ to you two.” Gin replied in a calm, collected voice. She seemed to be melting against the two of them, like that was the only place she wanted to be.

“Of course she did.” Trisha intoned, though she didn’t sound annoyed. She was surprised that she wasn’t. Maybe she was getting used to the intrusions and people being around… Or more likely that she’d prepared herself for a night full of other people that she was taking what she could get in time alone with Casey. She hadn’t expected much of it until they got home later.

“At least you’re quieter than Cass, the other mountain climbing, boundary ignoring intruder.” She continued with a light laugh.
“But I guess we need to start thinking about going out? Before even more people arrive, and it gets more awkward… God forbid Cass gets here and barges in and stretches her arms extra long to get around us all. That would-”

As if on queue, the doors swung open wide, practically slamming against the walls.
”I heard my favourite couple’s hiding away in heeerreee. Oh- And Gin!”

Cass bounded over to them before anyone with non magical reactions had a chance to react, leaping up to hug them all. She didn’t stretch her arms like Trisha had said, but she did lighten herself so she could body slam into them without actually doing any damage.

The lump of humanity simply bobbled slightly at the added weight.

”Babe, you couldn’t- Fuck…” Leon rushed in not but a few moments after her, a big frown forming on his face.

Casey looked at Cass, then past her curls toward Leon. He couldn’t help but smile at the feeling of love. His hand popped out, inviting Leon into the group hug. He laughed in return.

”Nah, it’s okay Bro… I heard what you guys were talking about, we can just pull out for a little bit longer. Come on, Cass. Gin.”

Gin shook her head.
”No can do… Not unless Trisha says so.” she replied, looking up at Cass for confirmation.

”Uh… Yeah! Not unless Trisha says so!” Cass echoed, mostly because she was all too happy to keep clinging like this. Though, if Trisha really wanted them to leave, she would.

Trisha squinted at Gin.
“Why me? Why not Casey?” Why did everyone suddenly want her to be in charge of decisions?

She took a deep breath in, managing to ignore her uneasiness over being trapped in a group hug for soaking in the feeling of… People wanting to be around her like that.
“Well… Normally I would say so, but since it’s Cass’ birthday, I’ll be nice. Happy Birthday, by the way, Cass.”

”Thanks- though today ain’t about me! That’s why you get to decide shit… I think? Oh, but then Leon also should, cause he’s also from Sycamore… Oh, fuck, this is why we shouldn’t celebrate multiple people! Shit gets messy!”

“It’s not like it’s a celebration where we boss people about… And he was trying to get you out for us. Which, uh, I appreciate. Thanks Leon… Even if we’re alright now.” Trisha couldn’t actually look at Leon because of Cass blocking her vision completely on that side, but hopefully he’d get that she meant it genuinely. That they were alright maybe wasn’t right, but she wasn’t going to feel particularly comfortable knowing there were all these people waiting for them outside, no matter what. It was better to rip the bandaid off and go back to comforting each other later.

And she did love Cass, and was beginning to have a similar feeling to some of the other people in her life. Such a large event wasn’t for her, and she did want to escape when possible, but she’d try to enjoy the time with those people as much as she could.

”We’re celebrating the end of an old chapter, Cassie… I already told you that!” Leon giggled as he made his way closer to begin peeling the barnacle off of the group hug so it could break up.

Having gotten used to the ways he could influence her, Leon was quick to let his lips fall upon her neck, kissing and embracing her until she had no choice but to loosen up and unlatch. Carrying her like a stiff object, Leon turned his body in order to fully separate Cass from them. Gin patted Casey and Trisha on the backs, then stepped away herself.

”Also, Casey’s got no problem with me hugging him for a while. You do. Ergo, it’s your decision. Purely practical.” she beamed up at Trisha.
”It’s got nothing to do with your status… Matron. she winked.

”Who the Hell even told you that!?” Casey barked, furrowing his brow down at Gin.

She just looked back up at Leon, then at Casey and Trisha again.
”C’mon… Let’s just go out. Besides, uh…-”

Gin finally directed their gaze out at the kitchen. And at the dozen or so people toiling away and desperately wanting to get to the section of the kitchen they were occupying, but clearly too polite and well trained to interrupt them for logistical reasons. Casey had been aware, but what else was a position like his good for but absolute respect. They’d wait, and they’d wait as long as he wanted them to wait. It was their event, after all. If the hors d'oeuvres were fucking burned because they couldn’t get to the ovens? Oh well.

Casey nodded toward the door, letting Trisha take the first steps toward it at her pleasure.

”And more importantly than that, I want drinks!” Cass shouted, having easily adjusted to her new position clambering on Leon rather than a group of people. Though she did start climbing her way back down him as they seemed to actually be making moves towards leaving.

Trisha glanced at the various workers actively avoiding their area. She hadn’t even realised, and now that she did she felt bad… But she wasn’t the one that had chosen to come in here in the first place. It was fine. They were leaving now anyway. Definitely leaving… She couldn’t comfortably stay now!

She reached out for Casey’s hand as she started shuffling towards the door, making a shooing motion towards the others with her free one.
“Alright, let’s go out and socialise with everyone… And get a drink.”

”Uh, drinks! I said drink! I’m having multiple, thanks!”

“I’m not stopping you just cause I’m only having one.” Trisha quickly shot back.

Cass grinned, finally detaching from Leon to hop backwards and open the door with her back for the rest of them.
”Good! Cause I plan to actually get drunk tonight… It’s only fair, since my birthday’s been hijacked! Not that I care… But y’know how much it takes for me to get drunk now?! I ain’t had the money for that since I kindled!”


One Hour Later

Shots, shots, shots, shots!

“I am not doing shots.” Trisha grumbled, as she was physically dragged towards the bar by her friend. She never did shots, because it was a one way road to her blacking out soon after. She didn’t want that. She didn’t want to get drunk at all.

”You don’t gotta, but you gotta watch me do ‘em!” Cass shot back with a grin. She hadn’t even bothered to grab Leon or Casey like she had Trisha… Because she assumed Leon would follow her, and Casey would follow Trisha like a lovesick puppy!

A correct assumption, considering they did follow.

”You’ll do shots with me, right, Lee?! What about you, Casey?!”

Casey didn’t exactly indulge often. He valued his sobriety when it came to the overwhelming effects of alcohol poisoning, and rarely had a mind to get utterly wasted. That being said, of all nights, tonight was the last one he’d probably have the confidence to get wasted during. Thus, even though Trisha had been so good about it, Casey had polished off six pints and a few shots already.

Leon was a remarkably good big brother about the situation, and hadn’t done much to leave his brother alone. Mostly because he was worried: The situation during the raid had brought back a lot of bad memories for the both of them, but it deeply affected Casey in a way that Leon only assumed he wasn’t interested in talking about. Which made sense: It was a situation he’d been through enough during actual wartime. If it hurt Leon to think about now, it was probably still killing Casey. He was good; he didn’t overly share or talk about it constantly. But, that same behavior meant that nobody but Casey could ever know what was going on in his head exactly.

At least Leon could enjoy getting drunk. He had an infinitely running purge system, with Lelou happy to take every bit of ethanol she could get in order to drown her own frustrations out. Thus, he wasn’t trashed, but he was drunk… And compelled to drink as much as he was allowed.

”Obviously!”
”Obviously!”

Casey was good about holding it in, at least. An hour for six pints and a couple shots was nothing in the grand scheme… A dangerous pace to set a precedent for. But, he seemed to be able and willing to get up from the table they’d been sat at, with plenty of people crowding them by chance and clearly wanting to interact with a few of the Sycamites who decided to show up.

”How much’ve you drunk, Casso? Cass… EEEEEEEeeee…” Casey giggled to himself, elongating her name to a ridiculous degree.

”Uh… Like, five double vodka cokes?” Cass did a quick count, laughing at the clearly already pretty smashed Casey.

Unfortunately, she wasn’t quite there yet. The frustrating thing about having to constantly use her magic, was that it was constantly eating whatever fuel it could get! Alcohol was just less effective! And she was purposefully not casting any negate alcohol effect spells! Thus, the plan to do a shit ton of shots. She’d hoped the mixed drinks would work, but she was just too powerful…

“Not as much as you, clearly.” Trisha intoned, in a way that made it difficult to tell whether it was joking or serious. But as they reached the bar and Cass let her go, she immediately made her way to Casey and pressed into his side… So it had to be a joke. She was too clingy to be upset.

In the time they’d all had their many drinks, Trisha had only had a pint and a half. Which wasn’t much in comparison, but was enough to push her into tipsy territory… And not far from drunk. The start of possibly dangerous territory when it came to her mood. Which was why she didn’t really want to get that drunk.

”Aw, that’s an unfair comparison! He ain’t got the alcohol eating magic! And look, he’s still standing! His sense of humour’s just gotten more simple!” Cass laughed, pushing up onto her tiptoes to fully look at all the bottles behind the bar to try to decide what kind of shots she wanted.

“I don’t think it’s changed much?” Trisha tilted her head up at Casey, smile making it much more obvious she was teasing this time.

Casey gave the only kind of goofy grin in response that he could possibly give. He didn’t much care if she was upset or not. There was a tablet in his back pocket that would fix the problem. He intended on popping it in a few hours, but just like Trisha, being in this roiling pile of humans made him anxious and nervous. Two problems very much solved by a poison that took away one’s social inhibitions.

Leon was easily able to saunter behind the bar, walking the line back down toward his baby Coven until he turned his head and saw a frowning face not doing a whole lot. And it was that face that really hurt him… Because of course she wouldn’t want to be celebrating right now. If she wanted anything, it was to be away from this place.

”Linqian?” he said downward, looking at her sitting without recognizing that she was also surrounded by friendly and warm faces.
”You gonna make it, dude?”

”No. I’m going to kill myself right here, where I’ll traumatise the most people.” Linqian barely skipped a beat in responding sarcastically, slowly tilting her head up to look at Leon. Her eyes were hazy enough that it was clear she was also already drunk, a good way through her current drink.
”Since when did you-”

”Holy fuck, Lin, you can’t just say that shit! You’re lucky Pa’s off chatting to some other boring old men, or he’d lecture your ear off.“ The young man closest to her, and who seemed to be keeping an active eye on her, jumped in, nudging her with his elbow. He was tall enough that he sat a good head taller than Linqian, and notably wasn’t drinking… Lucien, Andre’s oldest. Louis, his other son, was part of the friendly gathering around Linqian- and him and his friends the source of most of the noise.

”So? He could be fucking listening in for all we know, and it isn’t like his lecturing’s ever made me change shit.” Linqian shrugged one shoulder, attention turning from her childhood friend- though they’d drifted the last ten years- and back to Leon.
”I was gonna say, before I got fucking interrupted… Since when did you fucking work behind a bar, Leon? Or you just grabbing yourself a whole fucking bottle?”

”Well… I was just going for a bottle. Care to join us? I wouldn’t call it celebrating, so much as just drinking for Cass’ sake.” Leon indicated down the bar with a nod.

Cass was still pressed up as far as she could be on the bar to see the bottles, rather than just enhancing her eyes to be able to see… Well, she could’ve been doing both for all Leon knew. She was just like that, after all.

”Obviously, it's a free invitation, Loosh. How are you, bud?” Leon thrust his hand out to Lucien.
”Been feeling alright lately?” he asked, desperate for a little bit of small talk rather than suddenly dealing with his and Linqian’s shared loss. Greyson wasn’t a good man, but he was good enough to them… It was hard not to mourn. Harder for her, obviously.

”Yeah, not too bad. Y’know how it is… But most days have been good recently. Though, that just means the days of fatigue are coming up.” Lucien replied good naturedly, grinning as he gave Leon’s hand a friendly slap rather than some shit like a handshake.
”If you’re offering, we’ll join! Anything to be away from my annoyingly loud lil brother.”

In the distance, Louis stuck up a hand and a middle finger towards Lucien- easily picking up what he said thanks to his Green Lux. Lucien just laughed.

It seemed strange from the outside that he was the one with the shame, when it tended to go hand in hand with hyperactivity. Both Makoumbou boys were easy going, but Lucien was much more chill. Now at least. Linqian could easily remember how crazy he’d been when they were younger. He’d gotten on more with her than Jinhai then because of it… It was a while after they’d left he chilled out.

Maybe because of the Shame’s effects.

Linqian looked between Leon and Lucien, before letting out a slight groan.
”If you’re gonna fucking force me like that, fine.”

”As if I could force you to do anything.”

”You fucking forced me out of bed today. You and Louis literally teleported into my room, so quit talking shit.” Linqian rolled her eyes, downing the rest of her drink before slipping out of her seat.

Lucien held up his hands, grinning.
”Guilty… But you’re glad you're out, aren’t you?”

Linqian’s head tilted towards the side, glancing at the group she was being dragged towards. Totally against her free will. Definitely not appeal in spending just a bit of time with people who might actually understand… Well, Trisha probably wouldn’t. But at least she’d understand the Sycamore shit they’d been through before.
”Whatever.”

”Resounding yes in grumpy Linqian language.” Lucien laughed slightly, looking back at Leon.
”Cass is your girlfriend, right? Who also has…”

He didn’t quite name it, looking a bit uncomfortable to be bringing it up in a situation where there was already enough pain to be dealt with.

Leon nodded happily, walking with them down the bar.

”Yessir… Your cousin’s supposed to be flying in to help her get better adjusted with it. Hopefully we can get it all crammed in and have her sent back home before things get too weird.” he admitted, knowing full well that people like Lucien weren’t blind about what was going on. Far enough away from the inner circle to avoid the bomb blasts, but close enough to see the mushroom clouds.

”Brothers and sisters of mine? We have company!”

”Heyyyyyy! Loos-eeeeeee!”
Casey pushed around Cass to grapple Lucien into his arms, bundling him tight for a moment before letting him go and planting a hand on his noggin.
”Buddy! Buddy boy! Have you met my wife Trisha? Dude…”

Casey practically hijacked Lucien immediately, proudly stepping back enough to wave his hand to present Trisha. Which awkwardly left Linqian with Leon and Cass.

”Baby, do me a favor when you get a sec?-” he looked at Cass.
”-Blast him with something? Just to take the edge off. I’m worried he’ll get sloppy.” Leon directed, hoping Cass would go along with it. After all, they had sloppy Linqian to deal with…

”And, did you decide what you want?” he asked, making sure Linqian got the seat next to Cass.

”Whatever has the highest percentage of alcohol!” Cass slapped the table, grinning at him. She wasn’t so sure about the blasting Casey thing… Mostly cause she didn’t know how to do it without being incredibly obvious about it. Maybe Trisha’d help if she got annoyed at how Casey was acting.

Cass twisted around in her seat to catch Trisha blushing, embarrassment not enough to cover the overly sappy look she was shooting Casey at being introduced as his wife. It didn’t matter that it wasn’t the case yet… Just that he got even cuter towards her when he was drunk like this. She liked it. She didn’t even say anything, just giving a small way and shuffling back towards Casey.

And Lucien easily took it in stride, recovering from the shock of being grappled to smoothly smile at Trisha.
”Nice to meet you, Trisha… I’m Lucien. Wife, huh? Congrats, dude!”

”Ugh.” Linqian muttered under her breath, doing her best to ignore what was going on behind her. She’d never exactly been the type for being around overly lovey dovey couples, but obviously it stung just a bit more to deal with right now. It’d stung after her last two break ups too, and nobody had died then!

Technically wasn’t really a break up with Greyson, anyway… Fucking, whatever.
”I second the strongest shit. And no blasting me with anything.”

”I ain’t gonna! I know a gal who can hold her alcohol when I see one!” Cass patted Linqian on the shoulder, though the look she shot Leon around her was clearly one of some concern. Though… It wasn’t surprising that Linqian was drinking herself into a stupor after the shit circumstances. Real shit considering what she was landed with leading up to them too.

She didn’t let herself dwell on that negative very long, knowing that some upbeat energy was the best for this kinda shit. So she slapped the bar again, grinning playfully at Leon.
”C’mon bar boy, get pouring those shots!”

Leon laughed in a good nature, in spite of the quick mental tick that brought his anxiety up slightly.

”I prefer something gender neutral in this situation… Bar slut? Bar beast? Boy makes it sound so… Derogatory!
Never-the-less, he knew the assignment. Two green Lux monsters with little to no compunction over the taste of the drink they’re inhaling… It was a no-brainer to reach for the everclear.

“Leon!?” one of the actual bartenders looked incredibly concerned as he was gathering shot glasses with the bottle in his hand.

”Yeah?” he asked calmly, not even really grinning. There was a song playing in his head… It was probably still playing in Linqian’s head too. Surely she wanted it gone.

“Oh, n-nothing! Just, y’know, making sure you saw what you picked up!” the concerned bartender whinged.

Leon held the bottle up and shook it playfully.
”Oh I do. Don’t worry, we can handle it. A little hand sanitizer, y’know?”

And then he poured nine shots. Three for each of them, sliding them in front of Linqian first, then himself, and finally the impatient Cass. The bottle made its way back up, and Leon gave a quick glance at Casey.

”-no, cuz, she’s just awesome! Honestly, like, if you can’t find someone whose worst parts you still like? There’s no point, dude. Noooooo fuckin’ point in wasting your breath. What happens? Y’know? It’s just-”

Leon giggled to himself as he picked up a shot, then oriented his body toward Linqian.

”This one’s for the beautiful man who never had the chance to come and save everyone. The next one, is for the asshole who came back and forced himself into our lives, and gave himself up for it… And this last one is to the future,-”
He looked at Cass.
”And to many more birthdays with one another.”

Cass grinned at Leon, raising her first shot.
”Yeah, to all’ve that!” As much as she wanted to just knock it back she turned her gaze towards Linqian, waiting for her to go first. After all, Cass hadn’t even known the person the first shot was for.

”If Jinhai was here, he’d be giving me a fuck earful for drinking this shit.” Linqian snorted, close enough to a laugh as she raised the first shot and promptly downed it.

”And Greyson’d be tryna throw cash around to show off, fucking asshole.” The second one went down just as fast. She paused on the third, taking a moment to figure out the whole birthday thing.
”Uh… Fucking… Happy birthday, Cass. To whatever fucking bl-”

”Hey now! Ain’t bringing negativity into the future toast! You can get round to that after you drink it!” Cass interrupted, before Linqian could mention a bleak future. Probably felt like that in this moment for her… But it really wasn’t something to drink to.

”Fucking- Fine! I won’t add shit to that.” Linqian downed the third shot, the burn in her throat barely noticeable at this point. The warmth that came with it was almost nice.
”Can’t be any fucking worse than the last year, right?”

Clearing down his three shots was like water. Lelou gave him a nice, warm shiver up his spine that felt like a second hug. It was enough for him to speak up with confidence.

”Hey…-” he spoke almost privately to Cass.
”-Let her get it out? No amount of outside sadness is gonna affect our future… We can let her have it, can’t we?”

Assuming that she’d go along with him, Leon turned back to Linqian and nodded.
”I’m sorry… Go ahead. Say what you wanted to say. To whatever… Bleak future that may be? You know as well as I do, it’s what you make it.” he tried to get Linqian to talk a little more than just letting her be in her feelings. There were ways to bring someone out of this kind of stupor…

Though, given that it was Linqian, he didn’t expect any tremendous progress. Just enough that she’d probably clam up when presented with conflicting ideas, or… Hell, maybe she’d get more aggressive. He didn’t want to rob her of the chance to get just a little more physical. She’d done so well in the bunker, it was hard to think that she hadn’t had all the violence she could ask for… But nothing was going to bring any of the dead men in her life back. None of the dead people.

”Want some more?” he asked her calmly.

Linqian just nodded, pushing her shot glasses back towards Leon.

”Me too, please, Babe?” Cass asked, after a pause of waiting for Linqian to say something. Obviously giving her the floor and everything… But if she was going to take a moment to answer, Cass may as well as for a bit more to drink, right?

Linqian wasn’t really struggling with a response so much as she wasn’t sure if there was any point. There wasn’t even a flare of anger to follow, the mood swings going low into cold apathy as much as they pushed into fiery anger. Like a fucking yo-yo. At least the heat was closer to feeling.

”Sure, future’s what you make of it… Just pretty fucking hard when the future you started to make gets torn away from you twice in a fucking row. Sure, Greyson left me with all this fucking money… Y’know I’ve never been able to just not worry ‘bout that shit since I was sixteen. It’d be fucking great if having to work wasn’t the only thing that kept me going after Jinhai fucking- and what’s the point in all the fucking money when I only got two people to share it with?”

Not that she’d ever had much more than that, ironically enough. But there’d been the friends her and Jinhai shared… Even if they all fucked off after he died. Now it was just her, Henri and Aryin… And Aryin probably wasn’t going to stick around forever. The whole moving in thing was just temporary.

”So you… didn’t use the spell?” Cass couldn’t help but ask, unsure of what actually useful thing she could say. It’ll get better? Not necessarily. Early stages of grief fucking sucked, and she’d had way more people around to help with her own.

Linqian didn’t say anything in response to that, needing at least three more shots to even consider going into that.

Leon had poured himself a screwdriver, wanting something to drink without it being hardcore balls-to-the-wall. But, when Cass asked that question, he almost spit out the sip he was taking. It was a good question. Two would, in theory, become three… And that third was a life worth preserving. Lelou knew, and thus Leon knew, that life had already gestated within her. He wondered if she’d stop drinking if she knew…

”Uh… Y’know, Linqian, I hadn’t really thought about that… I guess, y’know, you must not have if you’re drinking like this. Right?” he asked as if to lead her to water in a proverbial sense.

Linqian stared at Leon like he was stupid.
”Fucking hell, course I did. Fuck knows if it actually worked… But d’you think most women could even find out this fucking early? And they just don't fucking drink?”

Though grieving as she was, she wasn't entirely that careless… Well, she'd done enough research to know drinking a bunch while possibly pregnant probably wouldn't fuck shit up. Cause, it was the only chance with Greyson… and contrary to how she generally came across, she'd always wanted to have a kid. Hadn't planned for it to be now, but shit happened, people died.

"My Ma always blamed the wine she had before finding out whenever we did somethin' stupid." Cass awkwardly laughed, though it had just been one of her mother's many excuses that weren't her shit parenting.

”Well if there's a kid, they're gonna get all the fucking stupid genes from me anyway.”

Leon leaned down and into Linqian, taking a deep sniff near her ear. A dog thing, obviously, but it was mostly a ploy to get close enough that Cass would need to pay attention to hear him speak.

”Just take it a little easy. Like, y’know, a souffle in the oven… Except, y’know, we can’t make another one like it. The source of the cream isn’t exactly giving out more samples.”

And then he pulled away, his face unflinching. It wasn’t even a smile… He knew she wasn’t here for jokes. She was here because she felt obligated, and knew that nobody in her immediate life was going to let her sit and rot. She had more life to live…

”Why not, uh… Go take over the family business? The Twin Cities are gonna be missing a Don, right? Step in! Bring Minnesota to heel, those frigid bastards!”
There was the joke. A cover, mostly.

”Minnesota!?!?!?!? Fuckin’ Finland of America! B-but they’re… They’re like the Japs! The politeness is fake!

Casey muscled his way up next to Cass…

”Hey, dude! Leave the fucking… Leave that shit in the bottom of your brain, dude…”

Casey pouted.

”Mmmmkay, I’ll cut your hands off with a sword and see how you like it!” he said with an incredibly light tone for the subject at hand… Not shocking for Leon.

It was, after all, a bad war. A bloody one. Animosity was still high to this day, and while he hadn’t fought on the Eastern Front much during the later parts of the war, he had plenty of experience going to the mat with the Japanese soldiers in China when the war started. Leon was generally shocked that Casey didn’t have more animosity toward others… Though, he never shied away from badmouthing the old regimes.

”Don’t get like that, Bub… Or you’re getting cut off.”

Casey leaned into Cass.

”Fine… Hit me. I wanna get drunk again anyway. Casey goaded her, half expecting an actual slap but half hoping she’d pick up what she meant. He was asking to be un-drunk’d.

Heyyyy, it's my turn to get drunk." Trisha jokingly complained, having trailed right behind Casey though with much less physical and verbal intrusion. She was in the very clingy stage of her drinking… Not that she was not clingy normally. Just not so bad. She didn't even care to push at anything Casey was saying, head still very much in the clouds- if painted red from embarrassment- from how much he'd rambled away about her.

"Hit you?! Okay, I'll slap some sense into ya!" Cass caught Casey's meaning, but still reached up to slap both hands against his face. The main saving grace was that she was at her normal strength, minimising the green lux enhancements to not burn off all her own alcohol. But her hands stayed there after.

It wasn't that difficult to suck the alcohol out of his bloodstream. She'd learned, after doing it a couple of times before, that she could either just get rid of it or take it herself. Normally she went for the former… but today? Why waste it! The veins on the back of her hand glowed green for a moment, and she let out a slight sigh. Finally! The double combo of shots and everything Casey drank was starting to get to her head.

"There ya go!"

Linqian had been silent after Leon whispered a metaphor she'd have to be blackout drunk to not get. So it really had worked… Fucking hell. Even if it had been planned with full knowledge of the circumstances, it was a lot to process. Not like there'd been much time before. She glanced down at her stomach, before silently pushing her remaining shots over towards Cass.

But just because she was processing shit didn't mean she wasn't listening, even if there was a fucking delay as her drunk brain dealt with everything. Her eyes narrowed, shifting in her seat to glare at Casey where he'd pushed his way in.

Culturally, there weren't exactly good feelings from her towards Japan. That shit preceded the fucking war… But it was fucking different hearing a word that had been thrown at her a couple of times dropped so casually. Obviously not as bad as the people it actually targeted, but it wasn't like the actual racist bigots could tell the difference. And there were plenty of them in some of the pubs she worked in during and after the war.

”Really gonna just fucking drop that and move on? Why not just go fucking throwing other slurs round too! May as well get it all out. Since you can drop it so fucking casually!” Linqian snapped, ticking up towards that rage she was known for… But it seemed pretty fucking reasonable this time. Though it was partly something to latch onto. Another emotion rather than depression…

Her glare flickered between Casey and Trisha.
”Should’ve fucking known Trisha would have standards this low.”

Trisha immediately bristled, squeezing half in front of Casey as if she could block him from dealing with it.
“I don't- it was a drunken mistake. Fuck off."

”Sure didn't sound like it.”

Lucien gave a nervous laugh from the other side of Linqian, seeming to be preparing himself to grab her if she jumped from verbal to physical violence.

Casey’s world caved into focus as he found himself being yelled at. Which… Deserved. But, ultimately, the woman who was yelling at him was way more drunk than he was now. He expected that part, even in the foggy haze. He knew what he said. The war was bitter in that part of the world. His only surprise was that a half-Chinese woman was even close to being concerned about something like that.

But he was also White, and knew what it was like for some other people to be compared to the Germans. Not him… It rolled right off his back. Names didn’t mean much when you saw so much industrial death. But, he found Trisha ready as she could be to defend him, which wouldn’t do in her state. In turn, he became palpably sober. His entire demeanor changed, and he leaned down slightly to kiss just beneath Trisha’s ear, whispering as he did so.

”Be still, my Burning Heart.” he cooed, then took a deep breath and looked directly at Linqian.

”I apologize, Linqian. I have no excuse, and you don’t have to forgive me. I don’t talk about my time in China lightly… But it will always be a special place to me. For all the awful things I saw. It doesn’t excuse my words here. You’re well within your rights to be upset at me, and you should feel free to carry out whatever consequence you feel I deserve.”

Capitulation didn’t always work how one wanted it to. Sometimes it invited worse things. But, he figured the woman who just lost her boyfriend after having lost her brother, may just want to feel like she’s in control of something. Anything to grab ahold of and careen into the dirt. He’d let her. He could take that feeling.

The air around them heated up slightly as Linqian did, even as her brain got stuck for a moment. It was the kind of shit that pissed her off cause of how she was, rather than having ever sat deeply the few times it was thrown at her. It was always fucking mistaken discrimination… Fucking shit, obviously, but not quite like any of the other shit that actually hit a nerve.

And more than that, she knew what the war had been like there. They'd been long out of the country, but her and Jinhai had contact with enough cousins to hear shit firsthand. She loved her home country more than she was fucking upset by what he'd said… She fucking missed it, really. Because everyone was alive then.

”Well then fucking-” Linqian started, before suddenly twisting around to glare at Lucien as his hands landed on her shoulders. She reached up to hit the back of his head, briefly burning him in the process.
”I fucking swear to God, if you were about to fucking time freeze me-”

”Just tryna make sure nobody gets too burned. Precautions.”

”Fuck off- I was going to say then fucking keep it inside. It's whatever, I don't fucking care that much about shit thrown at me by racists who saw someone Asian and spat out whatever the fuck came into their head! Fucking shit to hear, fucking pisses me off, but whatever!” She turned back to Casey, letting go of Lucien. Her expression wasn't exactly great, but she clearly wasn't going to escalate to physical violence this time.
”I’m not risking getting fucking severed by one side cause I burned to death someone who actually fucking defended my country. The shit that happened there was fucking worse.”

Obviously, that wouldn't actually happen, severance wasn't so fickle. But it was a nice self excuse for her de-escalating, the anger irritatingly quick to simmer out back to nothing. Waiting for the next thing to explode at but unable to latch more onto this. Her mood swings were only worse with the grief, but on top of that she could still hear that fucking slow jazz in the back of her mind. It frustratingly dragged her back down, just like Greyson had managed to a fair few times- when her anger wasn’t directed at him, that was.

Jinhai would’ve told her to knock it off too. Fucking bastards who tried to stop her from slapping people but went and fucking died themselves.

”I don't have the fucking energy to waste on punching someone I don't give a fuck about anyway…” She managed to grumble out another bit of vitriol even as shit simmered down.
”And I’m not gonna fucking trample on their memories right now.”

Trisha didn't say anything, because the message was clear from Casey. But she was clearly still unhappy, tense as she leaned against him. She was too selfish, and tipsy, to step back and think about the shit Linqian was going through. But she was holding back her urge to snap back in defence and just escalate the situation further… Because it was for Casey, and if he didn't want that. It would only make things worse for him, and then everything would be worse.

Casey knew that overexplaining didn’t mean anything to someone who was drunk. It just didn’t work. His best option was to just be kind.
”You’re a strong woman, Linqian. Even if you don’t feel like you are. I hope you can find it in yourself to press forward into that new dawn. We’ll always be around if you ever get into trouble.”

Reaching out for a the free shots sitting on the bar, he passed one to Trisha before nodding and raising the glass to Linqian.

”To you, and Greyson, and all the other Sycamites who actually gave enough of a fuck to take a real stand.” he held his shot glass out to cheer, then knocked it back before realizing that it wasn’t regular alcohol.

”Oh, woah! What the fuck, you guys? That’s gasoline, it’s not alcohol!”

Leon only grinned back, tapping on the bottle of everclear… Which made Casey vomit in his mouth as the image made a purchase in his cornea.
”Ffffffuuuuuuuck that.”

Trisha took the shot without much question, because it was Casey handing it to her. She loved him and wanted to toast with him, even if it meant doing a shot which she hadn't really planned to do. But one wouldn't kill her… And she’d probably still be aware enough after it. It would be fine.

She immediately regretted it. The alcohol immediately burned, and she reactively gagged. It only got worse on the way down, causing her to bend forward to start coughing. Bad enough it brought tears to her eyes.

“What the fuck?" She managed to splutter out.

Watching the two of them, Linqian's lips quirked up into a smile. Then she broke out into laughter. It wasn't exactly the nicest laughter, but it wasn't like it was overly mocking on anything.
”Fuck, watching that almost makes up for it! Fuck! One fuckin’ shot.” She pretty quickly got incoherent, laughing away about how pathetic their shot taking was, like the alcohol itself wasn't insane.

Trisha pouted, heat beginning to spread across her body until she was completely flushed. It hadn't gone to her head yet… Maybe it wasn't so bad. But it still hurt when she drank it! She turned around to direct that adorable little pout up at Casey, bringing up a fist to very weakly hit his chest.

Caaassseeeyyyy," she whined.
“Whyyyy did you give me that? It really hurt…"

Meanwhile, Cass was turning her own pout towards her boyfriend… Though for a very different reason. She looked mournfully at where the two shots drank by people who just couldn't appreciate them had been, then up at Leon. Her fingers wriggled towards all the empty glasses in front of her.

"My shooootttts... Leon, Baby, my sexy bar beast… Please?"

”See, sexy bar beast is a far better title. You’re so good at this, Babe!” Leon leaned close to kiss Cass across the bar before lining up a small row of shots just for Cass.
”There! All yours; go crazy… Just don’t go racist.” he laughed aloud, eyes turning back up to Casey playfully.

Which got no response, as Casey was too busy cooing away at Trisha.
”If I realized, I would’ve warned you, my sweet girl…”
He was still holding her, though tighter now as he pulled her in and rubbed the back of her head.

”Juuuuuust relax. Remember, we’re happy when we’re drunk. We’re happy, and silly. And we’ll stay happy and silly. Right?” he asked her, affection levels teetering between concerned lover and disconcerted caretaker.

Which left Leon alone with both women once again.
”So? El-Q? If you’ve got a spell to protect the package, I’ll gladly sit here and drink with you until we figure out a way to get you right. Cass will too, because she’s attached to me and has no choice, obviously.” he slyly grinned at his girlfriend before looking back at Linqian.

"Uh… No!" Cass joked goofily, having already downed a couple of the shots Leon gave her. She grinned back at him, jerking her head towards the sappy couple behind them.
"I'ma go home with the lovebirds and third wheel them all night!"

Just like Leon's joke at Casey, Cass' didn't get through either. Trisha was cuddling into Casey, face practically hidden against him as she nodded up and down in agreement with what he said. There was some quiet mumbling, muffled by how tight she was pressed against him- some continued whining about the alcohol that quickly devolved into affectionate and loving, if a bit incoherent, responses.

Cass turned back with a goofy expression.
"I don't think they'd even notice!"

Linqian let out a short laugh, shifting herself to block Casey and Trisha from her vision. Though they were so sickeningly sweet it practically brought up no feelings of jealousy from her… The only time she'd been anything close to that was with Bianca, and they were teenagers!

”I don't. Been too busy practicing combat spells to not fucking die, and I neglected that shit for years.” She shrugged one shoulder. She dealt with alcohol well herself through virtue of being a Green Adept, so it just got fucking eaten, and an experienced drinker anyway. But all of her specific spells were geared for fighting, since she'd only ever worked on it when she needed to fight.

Cass tilted her head, cogs visibly turning inside as she processed the shit that hadn't been directed towards her. Spell to… Protect the package… Oh!
"I can do that for ya! Just, y'know, I gotta refresh like… every half hour so… you ain't actually allowed to escape and drink with anyone else!"

”Really twisting my leg here.” Linqian intoned sarcastically. In terms of company in this place, there weren't really many others she'd be alright drinking with… Even in the city. Leon was basically an actual friend at this point, and she liked Cass.

"Y'mean arm?!"

”Whatever- Cast the fucking spell, then lemme drink. It's gonna take a fucking while if you're wanting to figure that kinda shit out.” Linqian rolled her eyes at Leon, holding out an arm to Cass.

Cass ignored it to shuffle forward, one hand going to Linqian's stomach. Way fucking easier to go to the source! Otherwise she had to search veins and shit and-
"Ooo, that's fucking cool- Sorry, ain't ever seen this!- one minute, just gotta figure this out."

Linqian’s eyes narrowed.
”You said you had a spell.”

"I will!"

Leon looked on with something of a smile. He hoped for the little bastard’s sake that Linqian would be able to quit on her own once they were gone… Even if there was little to no chance for some kind of sickness to affect it in the prenatal stages, he knew all too well what a Mother’s trauma could do to a child. And they didn’t need another Greyson running around in deed.

”Cass, are you… Magically examining her? You’re gonna get cut off soon too! Don’t you think that’s a little bit of a privacy violation?” Leon asked aloud, very clearly playing, but at the same time not exactly joking.

"Nooooo... I'm tryna figure out the best way to protect it! I ain't ever done it for, like, just a bit of the body instead of, y'know, full alcohol protection!" Cass protested, looking up to stick out her tongue at Leon playfully.

Sure, she'd taken a little look… But she had to, cause she had to build some kinda magical buffer around the barely there cell bundle!

There was a gentle green glow as she actually figured it out and got to work, before pulling back with a grin.
"There! I mean, lemme check when you drink, just in case! But should be a nice anti-alcohol buffer there! Drown yourself in all the booze you wanna!"

Linqian's brow furrowed slightly, trying to check with her own much less developed magic. She couldn't really tell the difference, so she'd just have to trust Cass… Which she did, considering everything the other woman had taught her so far had worked.

She tapped the bar.
”Gimme a beer, then, to be safe.”

Cass was making her way through the rest of her shots, as a reward for her good work. She wasn't exactly that worried about getting cut off… She could make herself sober easily! Well, it'd get to the point when casting would probably be a fucking risk and she might grown a few limbs in the process, but that was just the price she had to pay!

"Also, if you ever want free consensual magical examinations, I can do that! I bet with'a white adept we could project a real good image too!" Cass excitedly started to ramble at the prospect of even more cool magic use. It wasn't like she was surrounded by pregnant people she could practice that stuff on!
"I bet I can do all kinds've stuff to help! Like, no morning sickness! No pain! Shit you'd get from a doctor but better cause magic! I can help teach you! Ooo, I could even-"

”I can afford an actual hospital now, thanks.” Linqian cut her off before she could get any further, turning to shoot a sarcastic, but somewhat amused, look at Leon.
”Does she always get this fucking excited about new magic shit? Or is it just the fucking alcohol? It isn't some fucked up experimentation fetish, is it?”

Leon laughed. Clearly Linqian was forgetting all the enthusiastic lectures Leon used to give before Ken showed up and started helping people with learning magic in a practical fashion. He’d always been utterly passionate about magic, the applications and theories of it, and any reason he could find to babble about it himself, he would.

But Linqian definitely didn’t want that happening now.

”Geeze, don’t kill my Baby’s shine. It's a whole new world for her; she didn’t have the privilege of Kindling in time for a summer of nightmares herself. So, everything’s new. Mostly…”

Leaning into Cass, Leon placed a kiss on her cheek.
”And we love that excitement. It's good. Better than booze in my opinion. Enthusiasm is as intoxicating as you allow it to be, and I don’t think either of us hold back.” he looked at Cass as if asking for confirmation.

”You lost me a lil bit on the better than booze bit… But fuck yeah! Ain’t any holding back here… I don’t think I could! Ain’t in my nature, I’m an all or nothing kinda gal. Magic’s definitely an all! It’s fuckin’ awesome!” Cass grinned, practically bouncing in her seat. It wasn’t exactly much different from how she normally was, even though the alcohol had very much gotten to her head now.

She leaned towards Linqian, grin widening as she nudged her.
”C’mon, you can’t deny you’ve been enjoying all the Cass lessons! Cassons! Well, ain’t like I’m teaching you fundamental shit, just sick ass spells I’ve figured out! Like… The erection spell! I’m basically the other father or something!”

”Not how it fucking works.” Linqian hit Cass with a hard stare, shaking her head.
”Can’t even say I get it. That kinda shit was always much more Jinhai’s thing. It’s why I end burning my fucking clothes off half the time- didn’t exactly think hard developing that shit. Just what fit.”

”Heh, I understand- I’ve done some shit that’s even freaked out Leon! Ain’t even all been on purpose!”

”Waking up to you with six eyes and mandibles was not my ideal scenario. Hard to be enthusiastic about Spider-Cass in that context… Y’fuckin’ dick!” Leon laughed hard, shaking his head in continued confusion.

”Thats why we establish certain rules. Like no pranks before the both of us have been awake together for an hour.”

Leon wouldn’t trade Cass for all the gold in Fort Knox. But that didn’t mean boundaries shouldn’t exist!

”And we still had to work that out, because at first it was no magic in bed, but that didn’t work. So then it was no magic until you have a coffee, but then she just woke up before me and drank a cup of coffee, then turned herself into a Stretchy character.”

Stretchy being the titular character of the beloved children’s game “Stretchy and the Gum Machine.”

”Which, I had to tell her… About the clown incident. Were you there for it? Or did you end up just hearing about it?” he asked Linqian directly.

Linqian reactively grimaced, taking a good long drink of her beer at that memory being dragged up. It wasn’t exactly the worst incident- for her, those always involved dogs or wolves- but it had been pretty fucking bad.

”I was fucking there for that nightmare, yeah. Me and Aryin were goading each other to try fucking join when shit happened, so we were basically in fucking circus enemy territory. I’ll never be able to go to a circus again, fucking hell.” Not that it had ever been on her top list of things to do for amusement anyway. At the time, it was because… Well, shit sucked, may as well try out the circus.

Great until the clowns turned into literal corrupted nightmares.

”See that’s some fucking movie ass shit. Like, crazy murder clowns? Shit just ain’t seem real… Course it is, but fuck! See, anything I come up with, something’s already done it worse!” Cass laughed, reaching out to pat Leon on the shoulder as some kind of apology for all the Snake trauma she kept accidentally stepping on.

”Really, you’re fucking lucky, Leon. If it was me, I’d become a clown the next morning just to fuck with you.” Linqian’s grimace turned into a more of a taunting smile. Maybe she wasn’t that bad… But she sure as fuck had taunted Greyson over plenty in the short while they were together.

”Wasn’t even the only time there was that kind shit. You remember one of those fucking nightmares we got trapped in? Everything was fucking bloated, like shit was gonna explode, or all fucking twisted, but human enough to make it real fucking freaky. It was fucking… me, you, Aryin, Drake… Fuck if I remember… Wasn’t Trisha fucking there too? Dunno who’s fucking nightmare it was drawing on.“

Leon immediately spun his head to make sure Trisha wasn’t getting blasted by residual trauma… But whatever world she and Casey were in, they may as well have been at home. Shaking his head, he turned back to the conversation.

”Oh, yeah… Drake’s blueberry inflation fetish. Dude was fucked even when we were kids… God, I hope him and Ken are alright… There’s no fucking way we’re gonna find them after what happened. Which sucks. I was happy Drake seemed like he wanted to talk to me. I missed him.”

But, plenty were gone. So he could only pour another set of shots and slide them out for the girls and himself. He raised his glass and looked at Linqian.

”Ancients bless the ones who would do good at any cost. This one’s for the best of us. Jinhai included.”

”My better half… We lost a lot of the good ones.” Linqian intoned, raising her glass before downing the shot. They lost a lot, really, but some of the worst escaped the blade somehow. Emily, George, Vashti… Well, Vashti was bloodthirsty and murderous, but not quite on the same level as bigots. Sloane and Anya too- bitches, but not the worst on the list.

”I’m sure they’re all having a massive, crazy party in the Hound’s realm, not having to worry about any of the mundane shit. At least, I like to hope so. I’ve burnt enough fucking joss paper for Jinhai to be living it up in the afterlife.” Linqian’s lips pulled up into a thin smile, and she let out a small laugh.
”Kinda funny, though… Still following the beliefs I was brought up with even though we know the shit doesn’t work, cause we know ‘bout the Hound existing. Hell, my family knew when bringing us up like that!”

”I think it’s nice.” Cass said, already pushing her empty shot glass towards Leon in the hope he’d pour her another. Sure, she could stretch out for the bottle herself, but she didn’t want to stomp on his bar beast terrain!
”Y’know… Believing there’s nice shit after!”

Fools. Hopeful fools who don’t know what the realm of the Hound is like! Death is War! It is Hell! They do not sing beneath your feet- They writhe in dro-

”That’s something we can hope for, certainly. At least we know one guy who got to escape that fate entirely. Y’think he’s watching us from somewhere?”

That guy being Greyson. While his death was real, and large portions of him no longer remained, the essential bits and pieces were held together by a clever curse Andrade used. A low grade binding spell, using Void Heart of all creatures, to trap and purify the two of them as one entity. Greyson’s having been flushed with Lux created the perfect environment for the catalyzation process, and everything that had once been Void Heart was replaced with Love. True Love, which came from the deepest, most rich sources of Pink Lux one could find.

It was a rather impressive concept, and insured that even if they were missing to him, Greyson’s direct memories of life and what’d happened would remain buried somewhere deep inside the Apparition. Maybe one day, he’d even remember. Maybe he’d have the chance to return to Linqian, or even Britney…

”Have you heard from your Sister-Wife?” Leon used the term jokingly to poke and prod Linqian.
”The way Greyson was talking, it sounds like she’s carrying a package too. Y’ever gonna, y’know… Go see her? Them?” he asked, genuinely curious about the odd circumstance of having two half-siblings being born relatively close in age, but so far apart.

Linqian rolled her eyes at Leon, merely flipping him off for the comment before actually answering his question.
”Hers was more planned I think… But, yeah, I will, assuming she’s willing to explain that shit to her kid. I want mine to have whatever family they can get- shit’s important to me. ‘Course it won’t be like me and Jinhai had, ‘specially if Brit stays over with Greyson’s family rather than coming back, but I hope they’ll be friends.”

It was probably the most positive thing she’d said all night, and not something she needed to think about much. She’d thought about it before, when her and Greyson had decided to try- and gotten the means to.

”I plan to have plenty more kids myself anyway, just gotta find someone else to have ‘em with. And I’ve talked to her, yesterday. Y’know, telling her what happened, if a pink ghost playing fucking jazz turned up, to just seal it and toss it in the sea.” Her tone turned sarcastic again, like that little bit of hopefulness was too much to continue with.

Leon laughed aloud, every sense in his body telling him that there was a hand, or some other funny limb, wrapping around the bottle of booze they were nursing. Which, in turn, caused him to clench up and stare at Cass before pouring a big cup full of booze. It emptied the bottle, and he laughed before handing it to Cass and dumping it in the trash for another. Then, another shot for Linqian.

For anyone not in the know, this kind of behavior would’ve looked reckless, dangerous and frankly foolish. But, drinking with Adepts was foolish. Most couldn’t do anything about it… But these Greenies? Having a Green Lux Adept turned a night of drinking into a marathon of seeing how much liquid one could suck down their gullet before they reach the point of no return; unable to draw on any more magic to coherently cleanse the liver of its duties.

It was the equivalent of having a full-sprint marathon over the course of several miles. The normal human just couldn’t possibly sustain it. Yet, here they were…

”Well, I know you’re rich now… But money’s really no object. You want a house down there? You want the private jet rental? We’ll make it easy… Though, I think it’s kind of awesome that you are planning for more. More than just this one, I mean. It means you do have some kind of hope for what comes next. That makes me happy.” he admitted to Linqian calmly.

”Shithead and I have talked about it… A little bit. Obviously, not trying to move so fast. But, I told her that she’s pretty cool, and I think we’d make a great kid together. So, I’m hoping that she’ll say yes before anything happens that ruins our relationship.” he turned his head to grin at Cass again, expression full of whimsical teasing.

”Just don’t go getting some fucking terminal illness to fast track it!” Cass shot back, reaching out to grab his cheek and tug. She was already a good way through the cup he’d given her, absolutely not holding back with the drinking… Or saying shit she maybe shouldn’t. Her eyes widened slightly as she looked at Linqian.

”Oh shit, too soon?”

Linqian just shrugged.
”Whatever you say doesn’t make shit worse. Not like it fast tracked it like that… I’ve been plenty ready to have a kid, just never had the fucking financial stability or longterm partner. Y’know, at least a year long- don’t trust anything less with that shit.”

Cass nodded a bit, tugging of Leon’s cheek turning into gentle squeezing.
”I sure ain’t ready yet… You’re gonna have to wait a couple’ve years, Babe, but by then I bet we’ll be soooo strong that it’ll take, like, a fucking magical, building sized tank to ruin it!”

”That’s cute… I honestly think whatever kid you have is gonna terrorise the fucking world. At least, destroy half the population’s eardrums.” Linqian teased, seeming to ease up a bit more. The extra booze helped, and the talk about the possibly good future rather than the shit was annoyingly nice. Didn’t fix shit, but made it a little less soul crushing in the moment.

She did point a finger towards Leon.
”Don’t go getting happy too fucking quickly. The next one’ll have even more red flags I bet.”

”Is your type exclusively criminals? Because I hear the PRA is looking to put a few old friends of ours away for extended sentences. You may need to stage a breakout for Croc-oc.”
Leon’s smile was teasingly sweet, as if he actually wanted Vashti Nour out of jail. She was just as menacing, and easily one of the most dangerous Aberrants alive. At least the Apparition she was associated with was stuck in a scarf.

”And if you get her out without going back for the Croc part, you just get a loud ass bitch for yourself! Though, at that point… Do you still carry it? Out of the two of you, she’s absolutely more butch.”

”Your asking like I’ve fucking sat down and thought about who’d be getting pregnant outta me and fucking Vashti Nour. Sure, there was plenty’ve flirting there, but she was tryna fucking kill me at the same time.” Linqian shook her head in disbelief. She’d barely even started to think about how she’d go about having a kid with another woman… The kinda shit she’d figure out when she got to it.

”Just like my last ex did.” She intoned, in a way that made it incredibly difficult to tell if it was a joke or not.
”Can’t believe Bianca didn’t tell me about this shit… I’ll have to get some visitation outta her. Then we’ll see about the breakout. Unfortunately for the world, the croc part was part of the appeal.”

Cass held up a hand, putting down her basically empty glass.
”Wait, who’s the Croc-oc? You had a fucking crocodile person in the coven?”

Leon nodded.
”Oh yeah. An Aberration, like Trisha and I. Y’know, sometimes, how Lelou just kinda crawls out of me? And you wake up, and it’s her in the body, not me? How it’s always a bunch of fun for you, and it’s kind of like a spicy thing in our relationship?”

”Oh yeah I know.” Cass grinned, wiggling her eyebrows.

”Well, imagine that, but instead of being a regal wolf-queen, there was an actual factual saltwater crocodile thing who had every intention of killing you and everyone else you know and love. That’s what poor Vashti was dealing with.”

Thinking back to those days made him feel bad for her. And, even a little bit bad for Emily G. Reed. After all, it wasn’t like she had things any easier. She just liked how evil Babylon was… And all the power that came with it. Vashti was in a constant state of struggle back then, and typically caused a lot of issues for their group.

”Thankfully, we at least managed to seal Leviathan in a scarf. So, now Vashti uses it as a safety blanket, and can more freely control her abilities because of it. The beast itself doesn’t care where it lays, only that its bloodlust be sated… And Vashti generally has no compunctions against fulfilling that lust. So, yeah. Straight to jail with her.” Leon shrugged.

Ultimately, unless she found some kind of peace and love being torn away from her domineering commander, he figured she should probably fucking stay there too. Nothing was worse than some high level Apparition using their powers for evil.

”Though, she’s always made me wonder what being adjoined with the Stygian Snake would’ve been like. If it’s really that bad for everyone involved, or if you get privilege by being its host…”

”You saw what it did to people, no fucking way that’d end well.” Linqian grimaced.
”Half of it’s fucking thing was corruption! It fucked with our minds too, and it wasn’t fucking attached like that. I imagine it’d be like whatever Vashti dealt with… Or Luca… on an insane scale. It’d just end up with another person to use.”

”Can something that powerful even adjoin? I’m sure it wouldn’t wanna, so you’d have to force it, and… Wasn’t it hard enough getting it in that tree?” Cass treated it a bit more like a thought exercise than Linqian did, not immediately shutting down the suggestion. Though, she’d never experienced the Stygian Snake… Thankfully.

”I bet it’d be a real power high for the person Adjoined with it. Like, that’s some fucking insane magic to use! You’d totally get some crazy rush outta being on top of the food chain- not that I’d ever, y’know, use my magic to get on top like that, heh, just fun to think about.”

Leon thought about it. If they’d bound it to the Sycamore Tree, then it had to follow the same Apparitional rules as everything else.

”I’m not even sure it’s the top of the food chain when you think about the actual Paranormal cosmology. The evolution of the universe, and all that… Not to mention, like we were talking about before, at the last group meeting. The Stygian Snake’s only a fifth of what it was supposed to be. It’s supposed to be, y’know, a whole ass Ancient. That’s nothing to joke about, honestly. It’s pretty scary to think that.”

Moreso when he remembered their ultimate goal was to unite the fragments and hopefully cast out the entirety of the Serpent as an entity. What did they even call it? The Deer was the Deer, the Lion the Lion. The Hound… Was a Wolf? But also a Hound? Was that evolutionary? Theories for another day.

”Which reminds me… D’you think you’d want to help us, Linqian? If you were able? I meant what I said about that entire saga of our lives being in the rear view, but the truth is that we’re only as safe as that fucking tree until we expel it completely. Obviously, if you just want to live your life, I can’t stop that. But, I’m gonna make decisions about what’s best to do with it… And I’ll be honest that they could affect you. Hell, it could affect the entirety of existence!” Leon admitted openly, not wanting to bait Linqian’s help, but absolutely wanting her prepared in case of emergency.

Linqian's eyes narrowed slightly as she stared at him. She'd only gotten involved with Sycamore again because Father Wolf killed Jinhai. Magic was part of her life, sure, but not like that. But there was a certain fucking appeal to being involved in more… The danger could be fun. Bring her some feelings she desperately needed. But also actually being around people! Not fucking socially reclusing like she tended to, aside from quick and casual flings. Yeah, that could be nice.

Shit… Definitely the drink talking.

”That’s the kinda shit you gotta ask when I'm sober.” Linqian answered eventually. Sure, she wasn't out of her mind drunk, but she was definitely drunk enough… Just good at stopping it from being obvious. Or getting racist.

”It’s not just me anymore. Could push it either way… Fuck, y'know, the appeal of getting into fucking magic fights and getting hurt- But can't do that reckless shit anymore, right? Or get offed by the next fucking knife murderer!” She frowned, still drunk enough in the end to let more spill than she normally would.

"Don't worry, I'll stop Leon from making any stupid decision! And if you do help… I'll throw myself in front of you so any reckless shit ain't hurting the baby!" Cass declared loudly.

Leon grinned between the two women, taking a deep breath before nodding. Of course it was appealing, but ultimately she was the one thinking clearly for once. He hadn’t exactly intended for her to go through with his offer while carrying the baby… But, if they were intending to get this done as quickly as possible? It’d need her long after birth. Maybe they’d take long enough that she’d wrap back around to being available.

”Well, just uh… Keep it in mind. If we need you? We’ll call. If not, we’ll still call… But that’s just to keep in touch. I ain’t lettin’ you disappear back into the dark. Spending all this time with you has made me happy. You’re one of the only ones willing to deal with me considering…-” he paused, looking around as his hands raised slowly to indicate the massive crowd of friendly Temple members casually surrounding them in a veil of humanity.

”-You know…”

”God, don't get so fucking sappy.” Linqian rolled her eyes, though there wasn't any particular bite behind her words. Just the typical snide pushback without entirely meaning it.

”You’re lucky Greyson explained shit enough to me that I’m not so worried I’ll be fucking snatched and forced to convert. So long as none of the crazy cult talk comes out at me, I don't really give a fuck anymore.”

"You don't gotta worry ‘bout that, I ain't getting any cult talk from him, and we're together, like, all the time!" Cass grinned. It turned more teasing as she leaned towards Linqian, slinging an arm around her shoulders. Then she leaned in even closer, practically rubbing her cheek against Linqian's.
"Just admit iiitttttt… You like our company! You're soooo fucking happy Lee ain't gonna let you just fuck off. C'mon, admit it! Aadddmiittt ittttt."

She started playfully poking Linqian's side at the same time.

Linqian didn't admit it, though she didn't deny it either as she brought up a hand to push Cass' face away and tried to fend off her prodding.

”Linqian doesn’t really do confessions, Babe. Talking about stuff with your emotions leaves you open and vulnerable; both of which are positions that Linqian hates. As opposed to, y’know, quite a few other positions.”

In a different world, Leon would’ve propositioned her then. After all, they were familiar. She liked the last time. But, now it was all… Serious. There was a strong feeling of wanting to maintain this woman’s safety. Of wanting to ensure that everything went well for her. She was a one-time lover, and yet, so was the man who left her behind. Both had given him their time, trust, and shared their bodies… Greyson had been one for confessions. Always, with the confessions. Whether they were real or not didn’t quite matter.

He loved them both right back. The family you choose. He’d made the choice… So amazingly, the sexual desire evaporated like alcohol into the air. He leaned forward over the bar, one arm around Cass and the other over Linqian, to squeeze them both together in a warm, loving embrace.

”Sappy or not, we love you. You’ll always have a place with us. You, and whatever monsters that follow you… child or otherwise. And I’m glad we made it.” he finished, speaking into the little triangle with a smile on his face.

”Yeah! And maybe one day, our kids can terrorise people together?” Cass grinned, wriggling her arm out enough so that she could drag Linqian even tighter into the group hug.

Linqian grumbled under her breath, but there was no reactive heating up. After a moment she did actually hug them both back… There wasn’t exactly any point keeping up the cold bitch pretence when the comfort was right there. They’d both seen through that shit thanks to her state looking after Greyson- and even before that, the night with Leon- anyway.

”Well… I’ll fucking hold you to that. Cause, I guess it’d be nice. To have more people around, whatever the fuck happens. I’m glad we made it too.”
Hidden 8 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Home

The night continued, with Trisha and Casey eventually rejoining the group. Just for a couple of hours before they started looking for opportunities to leave.

It wasn’t that hard in the end. While the party was meant to be to celebrate Sycamore, most people were just taking it as a time to be social and drink. Everyone was respectful- or maybe intimidated- enough to not crowd around the sole three Sycamites that were there. Occasionally someone Trisha didn’t know would pass by with congratulations, and Leon had his fair share of people talking to him, but there wasn't as much focus on her as she’d expected.

Which meant that nobody really stopped them from leaving. It was just the normal goodbyes from the normal people.

Thanks to Cass sucking most of the alcohol out of her system, Trisha was now just pleasantly tipsy. Enough left to feel that buzz, but able to think straight again. Not so drunk she couldn’t walk in a straight line like had been the case before they left… Though it didn’t change the way she leaned on Casey now that she could walk herself, or make her any less clingy in the cab home.

The alcohol had helped her get through the night, forcing the tension out of her, but she was glad to be home. Just stepping up onto the roof had her fully relaxing, regardless of the frigid temperatures. It didn’t feel so cold with Casey right next to her anyway.

As they got inside, Trisha paused before they could get too far into the main room. The natural inclination was to remove coats and go straight to the Den… But no, she had plans. She was going to see them through this time. They were both in a good mood. It was the time.

“Uh… Casey? Babe? Do you mind staying out here for a little bit?” She turned to him, asking with a bit more anxiousness than she wanted to.
“And… Closing your eyes. No magic sight either. Just… Five minutes?”

Casey had been far more liberal in his second helping of boozing. Still warm and toasty, he’d have a much harder time actually walking if it wasn’t for all the magic assistance. As it turned out, he did have a certain level of innate prescience thanks to the White Lux, though nowhere near as vivid as his Mother or Sister. Rather, all it was helping with was something like this. In his impaired state, walking became incredibly difficult without some kind of focus, or something to lean on. But, in bright flashes in his mind, he saw himself and Trisha six or seven paces ahead.

It could’ve even been his imagination putting things together, but the entire walk out to the cab, then up the Cannery had been spent staring at his much more sober back. It almost shamed him into adjusting himself, standing strong and straight for Trisha. He hoped she didn’t realize how drunk he was, but that was a pipedream as they got inside and he immediately became flushed in the warmth. Usually pale, Casey’s face looked something like a cherry tomato, or an angry fire truck.

”Honey… I don’t take magic shits, in spite of all the Lux.” he giggled, looking down at her.
”Where are you going? What do I do? I can’t… I can’t get on the comfy couch…”

Trisha pouted a little bit up at him. Maybe she should wait… He was obviously more drunk than she’d realised. It hadn’t been so noticeable when they were walking, and she’d only sobered up herself right before leaving.

“I’m just setting up something in the Den… I need to get some things from upstairs, and the kitchen. But it can wait if you really want to get on the comfy couch right now.”

He looked at her, eyes narrowing before a smile broke across his face.

”Go do it… But… I’m- The kitchen. Snack.”
Yet, he was oddly smug. Tapping his temple as if there was something going on in his poisoned mind. There was! He knew what he had to do… And he certainly wouldn’t be able to do it this drunk. That much was clear in his own mind.

Ah! She wants to have sex in the living room!

He leaned down, planting his lips against hers, hands climbing up to her face to hold her there a moment before pulling away.

”I love you, Trisha-Bee… I’ll only bee a minute. Get… The stuff. Upstairs? We’re up- Oh. Right.” he looked up at the loft, then back down at her.

”Race you!?”
And without waiting, he turned, spun his heels, and watched as the world turned into a trillion copies of itself until his head smashed against the hard wood of the island door as he tumbled over.

”Aaaaagh! F-ffffuck! I’m- I’m okay! I’m okay! I can make it!” he called out, starting to peel himself off the floor before opening one of the nearby cabinet doors and pulling out a packet of some other kind of Temple concoction… Though, when he ripped it open, Trisha could very clearly see it was the Green Stuff.

Key-Lime Panacea. Delicious, nutritious, and able to heal just about every ailment… Including alcohol poisoning.

”B-be right as rain in a sec…”

Trisha barely had a chance to react, left practically gaping at him from just a little bit more into the room than before. She’d moved forward as soon as he fell, obviously, but he was up and ripping into a magical healing pack within moments.

“What the fuck, Casey?” She covered her face, playfully whining more than sounding actually annoyed. It would have been amusing if he hadn’t smacked his head- again!- and crumpled to the floor. At least there was something to heal it…

But did he know what she was planning? He was acting like he knew. Had Cass told him? No, she didn’t know when Trisha was planning it- and Casey knew she had his ring, so he knew she’d be doing something to give it to him. Was it because of the failed attempt? It wasn’t like anything she’d set up was overly obvious. Maybe the chocolate strawberries then gave it away?!

But she didn’t know he knew for certain. He was drunk.

She shuffled over to him, taking his hand with both of her own.
“We’re not racing upstairs- well you already fell so obviously we’re not… But, we’re not doing it, because I need you to wait down here with your eyes closed. You still haven’t agreed to do that.”

At her request, his eyes closed as his legs splayed out across the floor and he pressed his back up against the cabinet. He could already feel everything draining from him, being replaced with this concoction before flushing out through gentle bursts of random Lux.

”I’m sorry! I love you- my eyes are closed. No magic shit, like you said. I swear, I like to keep my underwear clean.”

He bit his lip and giggled at his own joke.

Trisha shook her head with a soft laugh, more at the ridiculousness of what he said than finding the ‘joke’ actually funny. She leaned forward to press a light kiss against his forehead.

“I love you too. I won’t be long… I’ll call you when you can come through!”

There were soft footsteps, followed by the distinctive thudding of her going up into the loft. She spent enough time up there to have feasibly gotten changed, before audibly coming back down and doing her best to silently open the fridge and pull something out. Then it was into the Den, the door closed behind her.

Just like she’d said, it was only about five minutes before she gently pushed the door back open, calling out to him.
“Casey? You can come through now.”

Having had plenty of time to sober up, Casey had moved to a standing position with both hands leaning against the counter. When he heard her voice, he cleared his throat.
”Okay! But, I’m blind, so if I hit a wall just be patient.”

“You can open your eyes now… Please open your eyes.”

”Oh, good.” he laughed, opening his eyes and making his way down the hall to push into the destination.

The Den was warmly lit by LED candles dotted around the room, a fire video playing on the TV quietly to add to the lighting ambience. There was a platter of fruit on the little table corner of the couch, roughly arranged into a heart shape with honey drizzled over it. Right beside it was a bottle of very fancy looking wine- but not any of the bottles they’d been gifted when moving in.

It was less than Trisha had wanted to do, but she didn’t have the luxury of Casey being out for a Thanksgiving sermon like she had the last time. Obviously having him there was better, it just made setup harder.

Trisha herself stood on the couch, putting them at a more equal height. She had changed. She was wearing that same bee onesie she’d worn when they first met… Though it felt a little embarrassing now that he’d come through. But he’d said it was cute and he wanted to see her wear it again, and it was… meaningful, right?

Her hands were clasped together around something, and she nervously cleared her throat.

“I don’t have any fancy speech like you did. I’m sorry this took so long, I wanted to do it after Thanksgiving but-” She bit her lip, cutting herself off before she started rambling out apologies or bringing them back to that spot. Focus on the positive and the now.

“I really love you, Casey. I’ve never felt so safe with anyone before, or felt certain that there will be a future. It’s how I know you’re the one. You’re what I’ve been missing my whole life… And I can’t live without you anymore. I just really, really love you, so…” She swayed a bit, before getting down on one knee on the couch and holding out the box she’d been holding onto. It popped open to reveal his engagement ring.

“It’s my turn to ask… Casey, will you marry me?”

Casey had gotten the distinct feeling, once he’d sobered up, that his first thought wasn’t the right angle. But, being here and now, he was more thrilled than if it’d been something carnal. More emotionally affected by this than he was by the problems that had led up to this point. The ones that’d prevented her from doing this when she really wanted to. November had been incredibly difficult to stomach. And early December had already managed to be a mixed bag.

But none of it mattered right now. None of it mattered as Casey’s eyes climbed up the familiar shock of yellow and black to the face that stared back at him. The one that loved him, and who he loved in turn. She was everything. Absolutely everything. His face twisted slightly, a frown forming without his consent. It wasn’t disappointment, however. It was the struggle to keep from losing his head entirely.

He wanted to weep. He wanted to cry like a baby. He surged forward, collapsing her hands and the box into his chest as he curled around her and fell entirely into the couch with her clutched in his arms like the game winning pass.

”Of fucking course I’ll marry you! Yes! Yes! he spoke loudly, all the emotion inside coming out in the voice. At first, he was definitely holding back the sobs. But at the second yes, it all came flooding out. The emotional confirmation became a cheer for joy and laughter, and for love. A lot of love.

”I’ll marry you, Trisha, and I’ll be the best fucking husband… And you’ll always feel that feeling! I’ll never let anything hurt you, or take you from me, or do anything to you that you don’t want! I’ll be your bastion and your palace; where you’ll always find safety, security and comfort therein! I swear, I swear! My wife! My wife…”

He was really weeping now, and quickly buried his face in her neck and collarbone as he held her tightly… And the sobs began in ernest.

Trisha managed to wriggle out one arm to cling to him, tilting her head to nuzzle into his hair. Whatever anxiety she'd felt over the proposal disappeared. Obviously she'd known he was going to say yes, because they were already engaged! He'd asked her! It was just all those silly thoughts of it not being enough, as if he was the kind of person to care about anything more than it being her…

“I know you're going to be the best husband… Because you're already the best fiance, and you were the best boyfriend before that." She cooed sweetly, letting him cry into her.
“I really trust and believe you… I can't wait to be your wife, and for you to be my husband. Even though it feels like we may as well already be married."

She giggled.
“And you're already so happy you're weeping over me… Are you going to cry like this at the actual wedding? I don't mind… Because I love you."

It made her feel a bit emotional, though not to the point of crying too. They'd come so far in only a month… And before Casey she'd never really believed she'd have something- or someone- like that. She'd always hoped she would, but it was difficult to think it could happen after so many times things didn't work out. None of them were the right person… And now she had him. They were going to get married. She really was going to live a happy life with her person.

“Do I get to see the ring on? You've had weeks looking at mine… I want to see yours. Because we're really engaged."

Casey scrambled in their little puddle, hands flapping around before sliding in between them to snag the box. He felt the ring’s warmth, and every bit of Lux therein. It sent a warm tickle up his spine, and he took a deep breath. He felt the little ring unhook itself, sliding over his knuckle until it felt it was right where it needed to be… Then it clamped tight. All at once, he felt his Grandmother’s stern and loving grasp holding his finger tight, and dragging his hand up in between them for Trisha to look at.

He looked at her, tears still in his eyes.
”It’s here! And it’s never gonna go anywhere!” he nodded, face beat red as he smiled through the tears.
”I’ll wear it long after my skin’s gone! All the skin, all the muscle… It’ll stay! Look!”

He immediately tried to take it off, and each time he did, there was a sharp humming whistle that echoed out from inside his hand as the ring absolutely railed against its own removal.

”You’ll always be with me, Baby… Always and forever, until the Hound ceases to chase the Deer across the plains beyond.”

Trisha smiled widely, squinting at the ring and then him with pure love and joy. There was a hint of tears in her eyes, unshed and adding to the gentle glow of her expression.
“If mine's the same, then you'll always be with me too. Maybe they'll dig us up in hundreds of years and figure out how in love we are… That's a bit morbid, isn't it?"

She giggled again, leaning forward to rub her nose against his. At the same time her left hand crossed her body to catch his, fingers lightly threading through his. The sight of both rings shining in the dim light made her feel incredibly happy. She loved him so much.

“They look so nice… I'm glad I was able to set everything up this time. Not that it's much… But I even got a bottle of wine from my share of dad's collection. I had Cass go get it so you didn't ask…" She smiled cutely at him, mixing bragging about the effort she'd gone to with making it clear she felt like she should've done more. Her cheeks flushed.
“I never expected to propose wearing this… But you said you hoped you'd see me in it again when we first met. It just felt right, if a bit embarrassing. You make me want to do things I wouldn't have before."

”It’s a family heirloom now. We can’t ruin it in any fashion… I’ll be sure to enchant it, so we know that one day we’ll be able to pass it along as a representation of the moment our lives changed. Together.”

Casey shifted them both so they were fully upright again. It was truly a wonderful moment to be alive in, and he was thrilled to be sharing it with the love of his life. Warm, with fizzy butterflies still whirling around in his guts, he made for the plate of fruit to pop some in his mouth. He held a piece up to feed Trisha too.

”I’m totally crazy over you. Leon said it too… I’m different. I know a lot of my concerns have shifted. But, to me, that doesn’t feel crazy. It just feels right y’know?” he admitted to her as he chomped the strawberry in one go.

Trisha hummed happily as she ate the fruit from his hand. She was glad it wasn’t just her. Obviously it wasn’t, obviously Casey loved her a lot… But she hadn’t known him before that. There were some people who were just like that. Like Cass. She’d do crazy shit for friends, nevermind partners.

“It’s the same for me. Obviously it isn’t crazy… Maybe to outsiders it is. But we’ve met our person. Obviously your concerns would shift… Mine have too. Maybe it doesn’t seem so drastic to other people, because I’ve always been looking for someone. But I wouldn’t normally move in with someone so early, or get engaged- but it’s different with you. Even if some of my friends think it’s normal Trisha behaviour… It’s not.” She smiled up at him.

She felt truly happy, and safe. Secure in a way she really never had before.

“I’m glad. Really glad we’re both crazy for each other. I’m even starting to… Accept that you’re not going to leave me.” She admitted, voice getting quieter.
“I know I already should, because it’s what you’ve shown me but… It’s slow. I’ve never gotten this far before. Really believing that someone will stay.”

Casey took a deep breath, the smile on his face getting even bigger.
”Do me a favor… Sit there, and don’t get nervous. I can’t wait for you to find out naturally. I’m too impatient.”

Without letting her ask what was happening, he placed the plate down and stood up. Clearing his throat, Casey put up his finger, telling Trisha to hold on without words. Tricking the ring was easy, because it had such a hair trigger.

”Trisha!?-” he said loud enough for the ring to hear.
”-I demand a divo-”

As if on a hard metal line attached to a fighter jet, Casey’s hand shot up to his face and absolutely mashed him in the jaw. It wasn’t a little force either; it dragged his arm hard enough into his face that he saw the stars in the sky through the floor. Reeling, he regained his composure enough to do the walk-away test.

Spinning, still pretending to be upset for the ring, he spun on his heel and tried to walk away toward the door. But the ring’s attraction activated, dragging both his arm and Trisha’s up and toward one another. It practically locked Casey to one spot, his arm being ripped back toward Trisha like there was a massive beast tugging a rope around his wrist.

”Ah! AH! FUCK, ALRIGHT NEVERMIND! WE’RE WORKING IT OUT!”

Both rings settled, and Casey took a long, deep breath before moving back toward Trisha.
”See? Not a chance in Hell we’re getting away from one another. I’ll never ever ever fucking leave you. Ever!”

Trisha reached out for Casey’s hands, looking concerned over the whole punching himself in the face then getting his arm literally twisted thing. He seemed fine, but that didn’t make her any less worried, making sure to take a good look at his face before letting out a breath and nodding.

“I believe you… If you chose to put the ring on knowing it’d do that, you really must not want to. It’d be a little terrifying if I didn’t know I’m never going to want to…” She trailed off, voice lowering to a whisper in case the rings were trigger happy.
Divorce you.”

It probably should worry her a little bit, since she hadn’t exactly been told before putting her own ring on… But the security from it outweighed any doubts. The little sick, overly possessive part was glad he was magically stuck with her. And her love for him was overwhelming enough that it didn’t really matter in the end.

“How sensitive is it? Will you be somewhere completely different, get upset, try to walk away and get dragged in my general direction? Or is it only triggered by certain words?” She asked with earnest curiosity, looking at her own ring snuggly fit on her finger. As she looked at the green gems gently shining in the dim light, an actually nerve-wracking thought appeared.

“I won’t be able to run away from fights anymore, will I?”
Maybe that wasn’t such a bad thing.

”Please… The spell is as old as my family. It wasn’t made to keep two people together. It was meant to keep one loyal and honest with the other. Nana wouldn’t saddle yours with the same impulse. Just… Don’t mention Divorce like you mean it. It may still hit you.” Casey laughed as he truly settled back down, taking Trisha in his arms again.

”Maybe it’ll try to remind you that you should be working things out, but yours will never be as aggressive.”

He put their fingers together, letting the rings touch fully. They actually vibrated whenever they met, indicating that they were bound together by a set of enchantments.

“I see… Some I’m allowed to leave, but you aren’t.” Trisha teased, smiling playfully at him. The gentle vibration from the rings touching was strange, and she couldn’t help but play around with it a little. Playfully wriggling her fingers against his, letting the rings tap just to feel it.

It was nice having them magically connected like that. Another layer of meaning on top of rings that already tied them together.

“Good thing I don’t ever plan to even think about Divorce, nevermind say it like that. I only want to marry someone I’m confident I’ll never want to leave. That’s you, obviously.” She giggled, twisting in his arms so she could cuddle him back.

It was part of why she was happy to wait for the wedding. She was already confident that Casey was the person she wanted to spend the rest of her life with, but it was better not to rush into something legal like that. Because if something really happened… She wasn’t sure if she could come back from it. Though, even if they weren’t married, it would be difficult to move on from this ever. Hopefully she wouldn’t have to.

“It’s not because I’m against it with other people or anything… I’m glad my parents got divorced. I wished they didn’t and imagined how much better things would be, but I know they would’ve been worse. I never wanted to be like that. I know I’m sort of like them… Because I rush into relationships. But never marriage. That’s only for when I know it’s the one.” She admitted, still tipsy enough to feel more open and giddy on happiness that it all flowed out. Unnecessarily, maybe, but it felt nice to just talk about her thoughts.

“Once I marry someone- once I marry you- I know I'll never want to let go.”

”Then don’t let go of me. And I’ll do the same. Forever and ever, and again the next time around. We’ll renew our vows as children playing on the playground. Pretending we’ll have a life. And we’ll grow together, and we’ll both be strong. Because now that we’ve found one another, Fate will always hold us together. Just like these rings.”

Which was the true meaning of the enchantment. It was a gentle reminder to a Crusader, that his betrothed remained home and unharmed. That a world waited for him. Now, it was just his Grandmother’s way of maintaining some vague control over the affairs of her progeny. A not-so-gentle reminder that they were still Catholics, and still very much against divorce. He wondered if his Mother’s and Father’s rings were like that… If Lynette had to be surreptitious in order to not trigger the notifier that something had happened to him. Not that it was a thought he really wanted right now, so he pushed it out as best he could.

”I’m glad you did this now… In a couple weeks, it probably would’ve been a lot more awkward.”

“Because of what's going to happen with Lynette?" Trisha asked, tilting her head slightly. She assumed that was why, rather than anything between them. If things were in a state of chaos for the Temple like that… It would be more awkward.

“I didn't want to wait anyway. I'd planned to do it the same day you proposed to me… I want us both to have rings, I just also wanted to give you a proposal. It's only fair we both know how loved we are."

”Right, exactly. Well… that part is definitely new. Even Nana was confused when I mentioned it to her. But, still; if you put it that way, there’s no chance I can be anything but grateful. Thank you… For wanting to make me feel just as special as I want to make you feel.”

That had always been a worry of his: That he’d be totally forced into a relationship in the position of “provider”. Not just monetarily, but emotionally as well. Like his Father… He’d seen his Mother be so cold. So terrible. He could only imagine that was what marriage was supposed to look like in private. That nothing was ever supposed to be “good enough”. Because if it was, it’d get boring, or mundane. Lynette had always told him that he was meant for great struggles. But the struggle of love was fearsome.

Thank God and all the Ancients that it wasn’t something to be afraid of with her.

”I love you so much, my pretty little Trisha-Bee.”

“I love you too, Casey. Thank you for being everything I need and more." She practically beamed up at him, before leaning up to kiss him. It was long but soft and gentle, as if she could only truly convey the depth of her love that way.

As she pulled back she was still smiling, eyes narrowed in contented happiness.

But she couldn't help but ask one little question on her mind. Not such an important one, but she was curious anyway.
“Did you know that I was going to propose? Obviously you knew I wanted to, but I mean tonight? When I asked you to wait you acted like you'd figured it out… Had you guessed?"

Casey immediately broke into laughter.
”What!? No, I… No, Babe. Honestly, I… Well, I honestly was still super drunk. You knew that. Uh, my first thought was that you had something kinky in mind. It wasn’t ‘till I sobered up that I remembered this was also an option. I heard you rummaging around in the fridge and thought ’Okay this is gonna get freaky.’ But, this is much better. You, the cute ass bee onesie, some fruit… Expensive ass wine if we want it. And, after what I said about passing the costume down? There’s no way we could ever sully it like that.” he grinned at her, giggling like a teen.

Trisha stared back at him for a moment, before giggling uncontrollably. She shook her head, pressing her face into his shoulder.

He'd thought it was something kinky?! Sure, he'd been drunk, but it was still quite the crazy leap. Especially since it wasn't like she'd ever been secretive about what she was and wasn't into… Or when she wanted it. It also generally wouldn't be her first go to as a nice surprise for him!

“Really? I knew you were really drunk but I- That's just so silly." She managed to stop laughing enough to talk, pulling her head back up to look at him.

“So drunk you was expecting to… I don't know, walk in here to me naked and covered in honey or something?! Oh my God- I mean that would be ridiculous to go through all that for. There's no fun in it if you're not involved the whole way- not that I'm really into that… Good to know where you drink mind goes!" She was hit by another fit of giggle, grinning brightly at him. It was just so funny to her that was what he jumped to.

“I am wearing nice underwear under this… but that's cause I normally wear nice underwear, and I'd overheat if I wore clothes underneath. So you're safe from any of the scenarios you drunkenly thought up. The onesie's safe too."

Casey raised his eyebrows, waggling them playfully back at her.
”Oh, good. Such a tease, Trisha.”

His hand came up between the two of them, finger extending to boop her on the nose with a gentle smile.

”Then I guess it’s a choose your own adventure game. I think I’ll start by finishing the strawberries. Care for some yourself, my Love?”


Wednesday December 13th.
The Greenhouse

The next day, and the agreed to training session, came faster than Trisha would have liked.

At least they got to spend a nice evening together, relaxing and winding down towards a good night’s sleep. There wasn’t any insane rush to get up, as it was just Leon and Cass coming up whenever they were needed. So they did get to cuddle in bed for a bit before having breakfast together.

Which was nice, but had to end when they were both done eating. Trisha knew she had to train- and create more bees- starting today. She’d already lost over a week because of her depressive episode…

She insisted they wait outside beside the Greenhouse for Leon and Cass coming up, rather than inside their warm house. She didn’t want to risk Cass getting in there and it becoming more of a social thing. She’d end up wanting that too rather than the hard work involved in training. She was anxious about it. About working with Leon, mostly.

“Are you coming in with us, or going downstairs… To the range or something?” She turned to Casey to ask, trying to sound like she was alright with it either way. They hadn’t really discussed what he would be doing. She assumed most of his training involved guns, which couldn’t really be done in the Greenhouse with them.

“You won’t want to see Cass creating flesh for me, will you? I can always send her to another environment. Or maybe it’ll need to be fresh, so I’ll work with Leon then later… Make bees with Cass just the two of us. Then you can train with Cass?” She bit her lip, knowing they didn’t have much time alone before the chaotic duo would get there.
“That probably won’t work, will it? Just whatever you think’s best.”

Casey had gotten word from Gin that his latest special order was ready from manufacturing that same morning, the quick read after the ding being the thing that prompted Casey out of bed first. He was a bit excited- more so than he was trying to let on to Trisha. Surprises could be good, after all. And he’d been doing the math wherever he could fit it in. Initial tests he’d run with more basic level enchantments had already proven fairly effective. Thus, he’d known what to have his partners in Eden fiddle and tinker with as far as mechanical channels. These miniaturized marvels were his latest work of art, and if she was going to be training, he wanted her training with the whole system in mind.

Or, at least as far as she was comfortable. It could be fairly dangerous if there was a breakdown in one of the systems.

”Oh, don’t you worry. I’ve got plenty to work on inside. You’ve got a lot too, so once we reach a certain point, I’ve got Norm scheduled to bring lunch. We’ll be working hard, but I know that we’re basically gonna be gauging how long we work based on how long you’re able to keep it up. Hopefully we can get you locked into some kind of programmer mode: I hope what I have in mind is something you want to try working with.”

He didn’t look or sound proud of it, but inside he was bubbling with excitement. Because even if she didn’t want to use it, he knew someone else who would. As long as it worked how he envisioned, and his magic was strong enough to pull it all off, there was nothing that would be able to stop Trisha’s wrath. She’d be transformed into a walking war crime.

Trisha nodded slowly. She hoped she'd be able to get locked in like that too… She could feel her nerves already bubbling up into self pressure, so it was likely. But she was also worried her reactions to failure would be amplified as she got more into that pressured state. She wanted to get focused without ending up agitated.

“If it'll help us survive, I'll try it." She replied simply.
“Even if I don't get locked in like that, I'll do my best to push through any tiredness. I'm good at that too, and we don't have much time. I know I'm the weaker one, so I don't want to drag you down. Even if it doesn't happen naturally, I can force that kind of focus."

Something to be thankful for from all the years of hard studying that got her nowhere. But she didn't want to dwell on that- or really give Casey an opportunity to refute some of what she said.

What do you have in mind? Or is that… a strange surprise? It's not bee guns, is it?" She hadn't exactly recognised his excitement over it, wrapped up in her own increasingly anxious and self pressuring state, but moving that topic to something that was his thing rather than her seemed like the best distraction.

As she mentioned the bee guns, Casey’s lower lip pouted up to cover the top, and his head tilted into a shy curve that took his gaze away from her.

”It may be the Buzzforce control panel and uh… Fifteen thousand units of Buzzforce equipment. Yes.” was his very simple reply before he did his best to redirect her.

”But, you’re not weak! You’re just not used to pushing like this! I seriously don’t want you feeling ashamed, or like you have to push yourself to some insane level where you wind up hurt. Seriously. If that ended up happening, I’m not sure what I’d do besides feel bad. So, seriously… That’s why I’ve set this up the way I have. It’s not all magical feeling bullshit. Its real technology, enhanced by magical power. That’s why I’ve got work to do beforehand. All the units need attuning to the actual control panel, or it’s all useless micro-hardware.”

Trisha didn't really agree with her not being weak- it felt more like laziness. Because she'd been able to push herself like this when she was fourteen and then lost it. But she didn't want Casey to feel bad… Him feeling bad would probably make her feel worse than any reaction to her failure. Probably. At least Casey probably wouldn't have too bad a reaction to that, so then it would just be Leon, and Casey was more important.

“I’ll try not to push myself too hard, then. You just might need to help stop me… I'm not great at regulating it." She admitted, shuffling closer to him to lean her body into his. She'd trained herself to push through discomfort and ignore her body's needs just for another hour of studying, so there was a chance it wouldn't even feel like pushing herself. Or she'd get into a state where she couldn't admit it was.

“How does it actually work? Do I need to equip the bees, then use the control panel, or do you-"

She was interrupted before she could press further by the door onto the roof slamming open- somehow.

"Triissshhhaaaa, Caaaasssseeeeyyy! How's the hangover, dude?! You were fucking smashed last night!" Cass practically bounded across the roof to them in no time. She had a big, square blue cooler bag slung over her shoulder that prevented her from doing her normal leaping hug. Or any hug at all. But she did shoot finger guns at Trisha with a grin.

"Ready to make some babies together, Babe?"

“Not if you're going to put it that way." Trisha retorted immediately, shuffling herself around to look at the invited intruders rather than just Casey.

Casey’s entire mind and body was ready to enthusiastically talk about the project, but the interruption took his wind out completely. Leon trailed behind Cass carrying several coolers slung over his back and front in some odd makeshift chain-

”Did you strap your coolers to a gimp harness?” Casey piped up getting a second look at his brother. The leather and chain harness did grip his lower body in an uncomfortably tight way, but Leon just furrowed his brow.

”A what?” he asked, managing to avoid sounding like there was any sort of attitude behind it.

Casey just stared slackjawed before clearing his throat.

”Whatever… What’s even in those, more meat?” Casey asked the both of them.

”Nope, it’s gas… Tell ‘em what we did once we got home, Babe.” Leon grinned, shuffling past the both of them, sticking his hand out to ruffle Cass’s hair slightly with a warm smile before moving toward the door to the greenhouse proper.

Trisha reactively tensed a little bit. She could guess what they'd done when they got home, and she didn't want to hear about it… what the fuck did that even have to do with Leon's strange cooler BDSM outfit.

"We cooked!" Cass shouted enthusiastically. Trisha immediately let out a sigh of relief when it turned out to not be something sexual.

"Well, I did most of the actual cooking… But I taught Lee how to cook a bit! He's a surprisingly good soux-chef." She grinned teasingly at him as she followed towards the Greenhouse. The sooner she dumped this back, the sooner she could hug Trisha, after all!

“You’d sobered up by then, right?" Trisha asked, also moving towards the door and pulling out her key. She slipped past Leon, turning it a few times to open the right environment.

It was one that felt normal enough for something like this. A forested environment with nice clearings here and there that didn't look too odd until you looked closely and realised the trees had faces, and none of the abundant flora was from this world.

"Fuck no! Cooking drunk is what makes it fun!"

”I wasn’t really drunk until just before you guys left! So, yeah, I was pretty well bent- I actually fucked up a knife, Lelou saved the fingers. Had an extra set Andrade bought one year, so I cracked ‘em bitches open. Cass was having a drunken fit- I guess they’re expensive or whatever.”

Walking in behind Trisha, Leon was starting to look for a comfortable spot to get settled down in when he realized where they were. What really did it was the whispering. How everything seemed to have some little piece of gossip that they were hiding just from you. He knew that Cass would be able to hear it if her senses were up like usual. But, he wondered if Trisha and Casey could hear.

The constant gnawing of the Fae Wilds.

The spirits utilized in the fertilization of this area was specifically made as close to a Bog of Malice as the biomancers could get. The ancient remnants of a Fairy battlefield between elves and gnomes, where the magics are strong and completely outside the realm of Lux and mortal men. Here, everything had energy to offer, and the honey was guaranteed to be rich with wild magic.

Leon had seen a place like this in their brief blitz excursions into other realms, finding places like this as nothing more than inhospitable jungles of death. He shuddered, knowing that there were no living entities here to accost them, not exactly helping him feel any better.

”Oooooh… Bad vibes. Yeesh. Well, better get used to this feeling.”

Casey heard his brother as he followed them in, knowing damn well how creepy this place had been. He’d had Gin give him the full spectrum of environments within the machine before. This place was probably ideal to have the flesheaters, since whatever resided here would be saturated in Apparitional magic- The harvested meat included.

”It’s alright, Lee. If you get freaked out, just look up.”

Up above, the shutters to the outer examination port were open. A massive Gin was staring down at them smiling like she was looking at the most adorable thing on the planet. As Casey pointed up, she started waving like crazy.

"Is that meant to be less freaky?!" Cass started laughing in contrast to her words, waving back enthusiastically at massive Gin staring down at them like God. She could hear all of the whispering and sure, it was pretty weird. But she didn't exactly have experience with any other areas like this… If shit started crawling out of the trees and it turned into a horror movie, she'd just go full beast mode and destroy everything!

No, some incredibly creepy whispers weren't enough to dampen the big bounce in her step.

“We can go to a different one of you'd rather." Trisha offered, pursing her lips. She didn't have the same senses they did. It was easy for her to ignore the little details in the place, and she found it comparatively more comfortable to the other ones available. Some of them were really wild… The only saving grace for the future of setting up hives in them was that the hive box itself was close to the entrance. She wouldn't have to venture in too far.

"It ain't too bad!" Cass bounded forward to get next to Leon, jumping up to hit his shoulder. It was meant to be comforting, but she was too enthusiastic right now to dampen down her actions.
"It's like being in a high school classroom where everyone's whispering about you! You just tune that shit out, right?"

”It’s just hard to believe there’s no Grave Guardian here. Or, anything besides the trees and flowers. Just a billion souls trapped in the dirt and water. Fairies come to these places to conduct war generation after generation, so they don’t sully their court grounds in blood.” Leon explained, clearing his throat.

”And they need a source vector to maintain adhesion to the elements around them. Which is why Leon’s weirded out. Also, installed speakers, lets fuckin’ gooooo-” Gin’s voice echoed in an equally divine fashion from above them.

”Truth is, Lee, we skipped a few steps. There are some Apparitions commonly found feasting on these places. If we milk ‘em, they leak out this sludge that is a much better binder for all that funky magic in the soil. Hence the trees are actually louder. They’re getting even more concentrated magic because they’ve been digested together and boiled down for God knows how long.”

”That’s… Ungodly.” was all Leon could respond with, now looking around in even more disgust in spite of his much more fearless sense of confidence. It was still creepy beyond what he was used to, even for the Temple. Which is why he tried to stay as far away from Project Eden as he could.

”Oh, it’s definitely a breach of some kind of contract, but hopefully we’ll never see the bad end of the sticks. Imagine fighting a bunch of Shadow Elves?” Casey pondered aloud, waving up to Gin.

”Hey! Where’s my goodies!?”
There was a whirring noise as a crane high above them started to shift about.
”Oooooooh Baby, that’s my Ginny! You give Nance and Caleb big fucking smooches for me, I’m serious!”

”Thank us after we find out if it works. Get ready for the eight hour setup schedule. Did you read those books like I said?”

”I… Yes. Read, no. But they’re in my brain, yes.”

”White Lux is a sin. You should have to read a fucking book. I’m going to hot glue your eyelids open and Clockwork Orange you into reading Moby Dick.”

Leon looked right at Cass.
”She said dick…” he laughed.

Cass started cackling in response, glad that Leon was feeling alright enough to be cracking jokes.
"I can't believe it, that ain't the language I expected to hear outta Gin's mouth!"

Trisha looked up at the big Gin in the sky, managing a hint of a smile.
“If he'd read them properly, then he'd have less time to spend with me... And the only thing he's getting clockwork oranged into looking at is me too. Eight hours of setup is already a lot to lose."

Obviously it was a joke, seeing as they spent plenty of time just reading while cuddled up with each other. It was a nice, chill activity… but she also knew if she had White Lux, she'd probably use it to suck all the knowledge out of books like that too.

“There’s a clearing just ahead." She continued, pointing down the path they'd been following. The trees did seem to open not too far away. She'd been in all the environments since she got the Greenhouse, and had at least taken the time to walk around the ones that were traversable.

“It’s hopefully a good spot to be in. I don't know about the whispering, though. I can't do anything about it."

"Heh, I bet it's the same in this whole place… Don't worry, cause I'm here!" Cass said, before grinning up at Leon.
"If it gets too much, I'll just hold you really tight till the whispering gets less fucking freaky! Or, at least, you ain't thinking bout it cause you're just thinking bout how awesome I am."

”Well, I’m honestly not sure what I’m doing besides lifting things and being moral support. I guess my thought would be, y’know, if you’ve got any time after dealing with the bees in between Casey being ready for you, we can talk about some better communication between you and the Queen. Or, maybe we can induce a conversation, and she can agree to start letting you drive the boat a bit more. I’m not sure which’ll be more useful, honestly!”

He was doing his best to be very good, and as far as Casey was concerned, he should keep it up and there’d be no problems. He was doing fine.

”Which reminds me, Babe… Not sure what you can make happen? But, if you can get like… Hornets, or some other kind of super-slick bee relative? I need something that can handle supersonic speeds. I know a way to stuff- well, it’s a long complicated process, but just try and get them strong. Real strong, and dense as fuck.” he shrugged as he moved toward the crane’s boom, wagging his hands to direct Gin to drop the crate dangling from the string.

”Ohhhh… It’s gonna be perfect! It’s a fucking marvel!”

“I can't wait to see it." Trisha smiled a bit at Casey's enthusiasm. It was enough for her to answer his question about what she could make happen without immediately panicking.

“But… I don't know what I can make happen either. There are cuckoo bees that look more like hornets, but I don't know if I can make them." She admitted quietly. It was something she'd planned to talk to the Queen about before falling into a prolonged depressive state where she didn't want to do much of anything. There hadn't really been a chance since. She didn't even know how to start making more honey bees, nevermind something that would fit what Casey wanted.

Though, when she'd asked before- before Thanksgiving and everything that followed- the answer from the Queen had been ‘I’ll tell you when you're ready to do it.’ Like explaining in advance was too much of an effort.

She turned to Leon, clasping her hands together so she didn't appear too nervous.
“So, I think… I need some help with communicating first. Because I need her help to even get started, and I don't know how to do it so I actually learn everything I need. Maybe getting to drive things would help… Did you just know when you got a share of Lelou's magic, or did you have to ask her? Because for me it feels like I was given the first chapter of an instruction book, and the owner reads me sections when they're awake enough to bother."

Cass had dumped her big bag, purposefully away from everything Leon was carrying. Didn't want to mix up the food and limbs, after all!
"I'll just sit here and start making limbs, unless anyone's gotta problem with that!"

”Do your thing, Babe. Just don’t go crazy with the gore.” Leon returned instructions, placing the coolers down as the harness came undone from his chest. He immediately pulled out a beer, cracking the top and taking a stretch before focusing on Trisha.

”No, to answer your question. The manual, as you say, was crammed into my head with the leash. It's different for everyone, as it turns out. So, I guess… Tell me what it feels like? Can you call out to her without her answering directly? She’ll just ignore you?” he asked with a furrowed brow.

Trisha nodded, with a slight frown, gaze turning downwards. Like she felt it was her fault. A bit of it probably was. When she first adjoined with the Queen, she’d been a teenager in a bad place. Some of her questioning had probably been quite aggressive. So maybe that was why the Queen just gave the basics then ignored her.

Though she said it was because she needed to rest.

“She’d been better since she talked with Dadonda. But for most of the past eleven years, we’ve spoken maybe a couple of times a year. That summer was an exception, but even then, I had to figure most of it out myself. I’d say she ignored me more than she answered.” Trisha admitted.

The Queen did claim to care for Trisha, but like with most positive feelings towards her, it was still difficult for her to believe. The only ‘proof’ was that she hadn’t left and taken the bees with her, and gifted Trisha magic. But it was a symbiotic relationship. Trisha looked after the bees and gave the Queen a resting spot which protected her from being sealed again.

“It feels like I’ve been given access to enough to be useful to her, and to protect myself against some threats. Nothing more… But I haven’t tried to access more until recently. I stopped asking as frequently because I didn’t get answers. It’s like-” She bit her lip, not wanting to go to the easiest comparison. The one she’d given Casey the first day they met, before he really knew what the subject was like. Her Mom.

But she didn’t view her relationship with the Queen as being bad. She silently provided Trisha with all the bees that kept her company when no one else did. That had been enough.

“I don’t know, I shouldn’t complain about it. I guess I’m just not sure how to get through to her. Do I need to do something else to give her energy so she doesn’t sleep as much? Maybe she just sees me as a child asking annoying questions. Sometimes it feels more like we’re… Roommates, instead of sharing my body.”

Leon looked thoughtful for a moment before waving her along to a more open and slightly quieter patch of grass than the one that contained Casey ripping open into machine casings. He swung his arm widely at the ground, taking the moment to slide down into a cross legged position in front of her.

”Well, I guess you should sit. Maybe, if you want some snacks or something, get ‘em. I’ve got a bunch of questions to ask. I feel like getting things sorted out will make our endeavors here go more smoothly; but I’m a bit worried that some of ‘em are gonna be a bit hard for you. Shit you may not want to answer, or maybe you’ll take ‘em like I’m accusing you or attacking you. So, I want you comfortable, meaning you should get what you need now.”

This was already a great deal different from the lessons back in the day. Leon just shouted a lot, and told people that they weren’t doing whatever it was they wanted to be doing, correctly. Impossible, that a technique other than one Leon approved of, be correct. Here, he even acknowledged that things were different for everyone… Which hopefully made the idea of a question and answer session make sense in Trisha’s mind.

”To start: I’m working off the assumption that any communication made to the Queen is done under your immediate prompting. Is that a fair thought? Or, does she occasionally come out of the blue to bark an order at you?” Leon asked calmly, watching Trisha as she fiddled about.

Trisha moved towards the cooler box to find a simple bottle of water- thankfully it wasn't just booze and food in there. She wasn't exactly a snacker when nervous or learning… the opposite, really, she forgot to eat entirely most of the time.

She wasn't sure how she felt about there being hard questions to answer. At least he was being honest about it… And she'd do her best to not feel like any of it was an accusation. She was already doing that in response to what felt like a judgment- that she couldn't deal with questions to improve her magic without feeling attacked. But he was just saying she might. It was a warning. It let her prepare herself.

She took a deep breath as she sat down, knees pulled up against her chest.
“Very rarely, but she does. It's less shouting orders and more making an observation. The last time was when I tried some of Casey's bread. Sometimes when I'm in a lot of distress. But the majority of the time it's my prompting."

She pulled her ponytail over her shoulder so she had something to fiddle with, hands tangling in her thick waves of hair.
“I don't think she's ever really present and watching."

From a short distance, Casey let out a loud, extended howl of excitement, beginning to dance around the half-opened crate as Leon tried to make sense of the Queen. Was she so out of touch that there was really nothing that could roust her regularly?

”Well, I understand that some questions would be more for her to answer herself, but… Y’know, just as a starter? An intro question? What if she just wants more bees? Nothing says that her power isn’t directly connected to the amount of bees you’ve got under your thumb, right? What’s the peak you’ve ever tended at once?” he asked matter-of-factly, hoping to avoid his brother behaving like that and distracting his new student.

Trisha did get briefly distracted, smiling slightly as she turned her head towards Casey. Her whole expression softened for that moment before she turned back to Leon to actually answer his question.

“Eighty thousand. About a month or two into that Summer… If you remember, there was a few weeks at the start when I was basically useless?” Though, she hadn’t exactly been that useful when her bees listened to her fully.
“Probably not… But I had five queen bees to make more then, so they didn’t listen to me. That’s why Cass is making me arms… I went down to twenty thousand by the time we sealed the Snake. Then I went back up to sixty thousand in the next year or two, and have had around that amount since.”

She was overexplaining unnecessarily. She should just get to the point.
“Sixty thousand was the number we agreed on. The Queen told me there was no need to make any more, since it’s the size of an average normal hive. So she doesn’t seem to want more bees… Or maybe she just didn’t trust me with more.”

Leon scrunched his nose as a frown formed across his face. She’d been given some kind of limitation? As if the entity itself didn’t want Trisha utilizing anything other than the most basic level of her abilities? A sudden uneasy feeling passed over Leon as he delved inward.

”Is it not so obvious? A greedy Queen believes her age has come and gone. She’s died a thousand deaths, trapped in a vessel with which she’s unable to express agency of the hive in any meaningful fashion. She is, as we all are, dealing with the results of Temporal Malaise.”

”Surely, I can’t fucking tell her that.”

”I never claimed the information was useful. Only that it is what it is.”

Leon shook his head openly, his eyes having rolled back into his head slightly before he came to once again.

”Well, I’ll be honest Trisha: That doesn’t sound great. Not to me, anyway. From personal experience, the only reason Lelou holds back certain abilities of hers from me are because they’ll subsume me completely. And I’ve really never known an Apparition that didn’t want to express their powers. It’s kinda their thing. Meaning, she’s either too afraid of bursting out of her own vessel, thereby killing you… Or, she’s… fucking depressed.

Leon’s face said it all: I know you don’t want to hear this. I wouldn’t either. Please hear me out.

”From all that Lelou’s told me, there’s a lot of layers in the old power structure… But there was always a seat vacant for a bridge spirit between the spirits of Flora and Fauna. And pollinators are that bridge. Other insects can take the same role, but the Bee Empire was vast. Seillean had a lot on her shoulders! So, I mean, take your pick essentially: The fear of responsibility, continued burnout- You said she’s talked about resting, right? What’s a few centuries when you’ve been around for a hundred million years? So, really… My first guess is that she just doesn’t want to work. A lazy ghost!” Leon finished confidently, shrugging his shoulders with a frown.

”It’s really not your fault. But, it does make asking her directly even more relevant. I’d recommend going in with the attitude that no matter how much you ask of her, you would never ask her so much that she would be affected. Basically, get real humble. And if she sounds like she actually wants to build her kingdom up again? Like, if she laments its fall and wants to get things back on track? Give her the dedication. It’ll be worth it.”

Trisha frowned, hands tugging her own hair hard enough that it hurt. Depression was what Dadonda had said too, to the Queen herself. It seemed strange to Trisha… Because if she lent more of her abilities, wouldn't she still be able to sleep? Surely she'd be passing even more responsibility off?

So it was difficult to accept it wasn't in some way her fault. But she also knew the Queen hadn't adjoined with her out of the kindness of her heart. Trisha freed her, and was a suitable enough vessel when she was weakened. It was purely selfish with no love for Trisha or humanity. Maybe she'd grown fond of Trisha now… But Trisha remembered the feelings held when they'd adjoined, the brief sharing of minds as the Emotional Field formed before the Queen withdrew.

None of it made her feel more confident that she could get stronger. If anything, it shook the confidence she'd been beginning to build. It wasn't Leon's fault… he was just being honest. He was even being quite nice about it.

“She did adjoin to me and immediately hand over care for the Hive. She left growing it from the tiny amount left to what it is now pretty much all to me. So your first guess is probably right." Trisha bit her lip.
“Guess we make a good pair. She probably saw someone who wasn't going to bother asking for much at all… I was the perfect lazy vessel till now.".

She really couldn't help with the self deprecation. It wasn't even like she was looking for someone to jump in and tell her that wasn't the case. If she was, she'd be saying it loud enough for Casey to hear. But she was quiet, and glad that he was happily distracted. It all just made her feel more inadequate than it should. Like she didn't do a good enough job that the Queen wanted to hand over more magic, but also her own state of laziness was perfect for the Apparition to happily lounge in.

“Should I try asking her now? What would I even ask… What she wants? Or just directly for more magic, but humbly? Like I only expect it to be a fraction of her power." Trisha asked, hands moving from her hair to clasp together in her lap. She took a deep breath. She was the one that wanted to learn more. It didn't matter how it made her feel, she just had to push through it. She probably looked like a nervous mess to Leon right now… Another thing she didn't like. She hated not knowing things. But it was just natural. Asking for help was fine.

“I feel like I've already given her dedication. I've been raising an entire hive for almost half my life. Since she never pushed for more, I assumed that was all there was. But I didn't actually ask what she wanted. So I should start with that, shouldn't I?"

Leon half-frowned, nodding his head as he cleared his throat.
”If all it takes is a long, somewhat uncomfortable conversation? I’d call it worth being able to access things that you didn’t know were useful until now. Like, imagine there’s a pheromone for you, like the one Lelou gives off; makes you confident, fearless, able to take on the world. She calls it Primal Majesty. I don’t doubt that Seillean has the same thing! So, it’ll be good for you, hopefully.”

The truth was, all of this was an estimation. Leon spitballing ideas. The main goal was to give Trisha the confidence to explore her situation regardless of the somewhat painful nature of it. At least if she thought he knew what he was talking about, Leon recognized her incessant need to be seen as capable. He knew she’d just push harder to ultimately seem “normal”, or like she was in control. She’d act; and in that acting, hopefully she’d find real, solid ground without ever having asked for help.

Trisha pressed her lips into a thin line, before nodding.
“You’re right. I don't know if she has something like that, but I should ask. It's just a conversation. I've had plenty worse before!"

She managed to speak with some amount of confidence, as if she didn't try her best to run from every single uncomfortable conversation she could. At least the ones that delved into anything about her. Nevermind that it probably wasn't that simple… Her natural reaction was to fall back onto laziness and not bother when it was difficult. But she couldn't be useless anymore. She needed access to more magic.

Trisha closed her eyes, head drooping forward slightly as she lightly tugged the connection between her and her Apparition. It was easier to let the Queen wake up first before asking, she'd found. She didn't say anything until she felt the spirit rousing.

"What do you want for the future? From me."

Melodic laughter sounded in her mind.
Quite the question. I'm afraid you would not understand the wishes of one such as I.

Trisha's hands clasped together tightly in her lap, nails digging into her skin. A great start. She just had to move forward and be more specific.
"I understand… But don't you want to rebuild your kingdom and go back to how you were before you were sealed?”

It will happen one way or another. In a hundred or a thousand years, my kingdom will naturally come back into existence. It matters not if I take a brief rest.

"If you don't mind when it happens, why not let me start for you? Give me just a fraction more of your magic… Then you can rest and leave it to me, can't you?"

Did we not agree this was all that was needed? You did not want to manage a Hive of a larger size. There is no need.

"When I was fourteen! I'm an adult now… And I'm surrounded by people with magic. I can handle more now. I want more. You already know I'm going to make more bees… Isn't it obvious that I've changed?" It was impossible for Trisha to not get frustrated at what felt like rejection, quickly ignoring the advice Leon had given her about being humble. Because it felt like she'd been constantly dismissed by people in her life… it was hard to not get set off.

"I want to be stronger."

There was a brief pause.

I understand. Then you have two options, my Dear Beekeeper. We continue as we have been. You ask, I answer, I provide more as I deem it necessary. We talk more. I rest as I need to. Seillean responded evenly, a golden glimmer appearing in Trisha's closed eyes.
Or I pass it all to you. The knowledge and access to all the magic your body can handle. But understand, it will take a toll on you. It will not be channeled through me as it is now. You will be in control and you will have to learn how to tap into what I have given you. But the lines between us will blur.

"If you could give me control before, why didn't you? You told me you were recuperating… but you clearly have enough magic now?"

Because it is peaceful. Seillean answered simply.
What is your choice?

It wasn't a difficult choice. Not when she wanted to stand on the same level as all the people surrounding her… she wanted to be equal to them. To Casey.
"Pass it to me."

As you wish.

Trisha's vision blacked out completely, electric shocks shooting across her brain. Magic burst out of her in a wave of golden light and potent floral pheromones that filled the environment. Her whole body was covered by it, impossible to see Trisha beyond the intense light she was radiating. It was like she'd become the sun, an orb of radiant, honey coloured light surrounding and concealing her.

"Holy fuck- What the fuck did you tell her to do, Babe?!" Cass shouted, covering her nose with the third hand she'd just grown. The pheromones heavy in the air didn't seem to actually be doing anything beyond the really strong smell, though she could vaguely feel them scratching at her emotional field.

Leon sat still, nose operating at an incredible level to the parts in the air. Each gave another scent, and another still that sent himself and Lelou into overload. There were quite a few memories of the massive, unending grovelands dotted by millions of beehives carefully clinging to the sparse trees in those roving hills. All were equal in the Empire… All who would guard the flowers knew the same safety.

And Leon was living it all over again. Casey had rushed to Leon’s side before his magic had the chance to parse out even a fraction of what was going on. And even then, it wasn’t clear. Apparitional magic, sure. But what was it doing to her?

”Well, we agreed on her having a conversation with the Queen. That’s all that was said! We had to figure out what the Queen wanted in exchange for more substance, and so whatever they’re talking about, clearly, is working!” Leon spoke rather calmly all things considered.

"Did she ask to be turned into the fucking sun?! Fucking hell, I'ma go blind!" Cass used another hand to shield her eyes, moving towards the two brothers. If Leon was calm it was probably fine, right? Casey didn't seem to be screaming or sobbing or anything either so… Probably all good? Just some crazy magical exchange or some shit.

"Is this how it normally goes? Does-"

All at once, the radiant light died down. A soft glow still clung to Trisha's body, where she floated just off the ground. She'd grown wings- though they didn't seem to move, and the hints of other bee features were quickly receding with the blinding light. Then, it was all gone. With a soft thud she dropped, standing for only a moment before she was on her knees.

She curled forward, hands clutching her head. It was absolutely swimming with information, leaving her dizzy and confused. The process hadn't been painless either. It felt like it did whenever a bee died but a thousandfold.

“Fuck, fuck, fuckkk." She whimpered, eyes squeezed shut. Tears slowly crept down her cheeks, appearing to be more like honey than water.

Beneath the physical sensations, she could feel the deep supply of powerful magic she didn't have access to before. Seillean had opened it up to Trisha and passed over all the knowledge to use it… but it was so much to parse. It was overwhelming, and her body wasn't exactly in the perfect state to handle it.

Goodnight for now, dearest Trisha.

“Goodnight- what, huh?!" Trisha said out loud in her confusion and panic, suddenly feeling completely abandoned with stronger magic she hardly understood.

Casey pressed forward as fast as he could, scooping Trisha into his arms and holding her, his hand moving to cup her head.
”Baby!? Baby, no, don’t sleep! Whatever you do, don’t go to sleep!”

Leon started laughing, being the only one in the surrounding area with strong enough hearing that he had a sense of Seillean’s voice echoing in Trisha’s head. Or, maybe it was just his being used to the shock and awe that was Aberrant Synchronization. For someone like him, with plenty of Luxal pathways already opened and expanded by years as a kindled Adept, it was probably a lot easier. But, Trisha had never really harbored magic in her body like this. It was all low-intensity, funneled through another source. Now, that source was truly commingled, pushing its way through her blood and the electricity in her brain.

She’d finally taken the Bee pill.

”She’s fiiiiine. Give her a few minutes, she’s not going to sleep Case.”

Casey looked back, a frown on his face.
”What about the fuckin’- She said goodnight! Like she’s got a concussion!”

”The Queen, dude! Just trust me!”

Casey pouted in turn, frowning and turning his head back to look at Trisha, where he waited like Leon suggested and took a deep breath, trying to be patient.

It was difficult for Cass to be patient too, but she did her best to not to bother Casey with it. Which meant Leon got the brunt of it- it was basically what he signed up for, anyway! She ended up behind him, starting with hugging around his neck and swinging from side to side like she was going to sumo wrestle him to the ground, tugging at his face, and just clambering onto him as best she could while he was sat down.

Trisha reactively curled into Casey, one hand weakly grasping at his shirt. It felt like her body was on fire, and her brain had been stuffed full. She could barely think beyond subconsciously processing the information passed on, but she recognised the comfort of Casey's arms around her.

Her head tilted back to squint at him, gold and amber flecks glowing in her bleary eyes. As she stared at his face, her gaze started to get clearer and the unnatural additions faded. The constant electric shocks and burning heat of magic coursing through her veins ceased.

Her brain still felt incredibly full. It hadn't been as smooth as she'd expected. She'd assumed that the Queen would hand over the knowledge and then she'd just know. Like it was natural, like Casey seemed to after Lynette gave him her spellbook. While she had access to a wealth of magic now, she had to pick through all the information stuffed into her brain to figure it out. More studying, more training… More time.

So much for being the easier route.

“I’m fine. I'm alright, Casey." Trisha managed a weak smile, arms snaking around him as tightly as she could manage.
“It just hurt more than I expected… No sleeping for me, don't worry. I'm alright, really."

She was doing her best to comfort him, and was clearly more back to normal. But she was still struggling to process what had happened herself. Once again, she had no idea where to start with what she'd been given. But she couldn't ask, could she? Because then she'd look stupid and weak.

“I’m sorry for scaring you. I really didn't expect it'd be like that… she didn't warn me."

”Wait… So, that was it? That means she was holding out on you!? This entire time?”

Casey didn’t seem to have a terrible amount of processing time for the situation. As it stood, he could only assume that the massive influx of Apparitional magic was some kind of boundary breaking, and the ensuing rush of energy from one host to another. But, it was just dumped on her? Like she was supposed to know everything all at once? Goodnight!? He wasn’t worried now, but he was nonplused.

”Casey?” Leon’s voice echoed toward his brother in empathetic calm. For once, he seemed totally in control.
”Trisha made her deal a decade ago.Then? The terms, man… They were much less intrusive. Do the minimum, and in return, receive minimal benefit. Whatever the conversation was just then, it was clearly an easy one to deal with. It was just jarring, like if you didn’t have White Lux as a buffer to organize a billion things.”

Casey looked at Leon, then back to Trisha.
”Is it really like that? I can try to help… Maybe it’d be easier?” he offered, looking like he was moments away from shedding a tear over her pain.

“Sort of." Trisha pursed her lips together, managing to glance past Casey at Leon for a moment. But her gaze quickly moved back to her fiancé, overwhelming confusion and panic reducing a bit.
“I didn't knowingly make any deal. I was only thirteen when we Adjoined, and I wouldn't really say it was-" consensual.

But she couldn't say that without putting her Apparition in a bad light. She was perfectly fine with what had happened- happy, even. Without being Adjoined she wouldn't have her bees, and she wouldn't have met Casey. She just wanted to make it clear that she hadn't really known what was happening at the time. She wasn't as bad as Leon made her sound with ’Do the minimum’.

“Formal. I haven't been lazily doing the minimum because it's what I wanted. Leon makes it sound like there was some kind of agreement beyond me saying I couldn't manage a larger group of bees… Which I couldn't! You saw what it was like, Casey, I had them all living in my bedroom!" She was trying her best not to get overly defensive at the perceived slight of choosing to do very little for the Queen because she didn't want to.

It wasn't really true. She hadn't purposefully chosen to do the minimum. It wasn't like the Queen had ever really offered her more. Her assumption had been that the only route was through expanding the Hive to sizes that a fourteen year old had no way of managing.

She didn't really know until she met Casey, and talked to Leon and other Adjoined, that there actually was more to be given. Sure, part of it was her laziness. She didn't ask or push for the last decade. But it wasn't like there'd been a proper deal or anything.

“She wasn't at her full power back then anyway. I-" She cut herself off, biting her lip and taking a deep breath. She was fixating on it, and it would only make her look worse if she kept bringing up more reasons that it hadn't all been on her. But she wasn't trying to blame the Queen either…

She managed a smile, forcing herself out of the tight ball she'd been curled up in. Not moving out of Casey's arms, obviously, but she was hugging him back more normally rather than clutching. He was concerned enough for her that he looked like he was going to cry… she should try concentrate on that love rather than making excuses for how she'd been magically up until now.
“I guess that's not important. How do you think you can help? My mind feels like it's been stuffed full of cotton… Except every piece is filled with information I can barely process."

Casey had wanted to play the reassurances game. The one where he took Trisha’s concerns and actively walked them all back to the source in order to placate her. But, she seemed able enough to pull herself out of it, which was impressive. Though, Leon’s face had boiled down into a more raw kind of skepticism. Not at Trisha’s victim mentality, either.

”Can you actually parse out Apparitional Magic?”

Casey smiled and nodded in turn.

”Mom can. I have the spell, at least.”

Looking back down toward Trisha, Casey kept her held in his arms and rocked backward slightly to really hold her close.

”Think of it like this: Every cotton ball is made of fibers, right? So, if you ripped them all out of the wad, and then straightened each fiber individually, it would all technically take up more space. But, at the same time, every fiber is observable. And once you can see it all, you can organize it better. Size, shade, texture… Obviously this is metaphorical, but I can show you what my head is like mostly, to give you an idea.” he enthusiastically explained.

Trisha’s brow furrowed as she peered up at him. The metaphor didn’t really help at all… Because it just felt like there was too much in her mind to even consider organising it. And how could she even do something like that? She didn’t have magic for that, and she’d never been good at actually retaining and organising information she had. It was part of why she did so badly on exams after studying so much.

Even seeing it all seemed like a mammoth task. Because surely that required processing it all, which required understanding it… That was going to take her weeks. Months, maybe.

“I don’t really understand… Well, I get the organisation thing. But my mind isn’t a shelf. I can’t just move information around and store it in different places. It’s just in there now and I need to go through it… Maybe I’ll understand it better if you show me what your head’s like, but you can use White Lux to actually organise it, can’t you? I don’t have that.”

”Oh, Babe… The human mind is way better than you give it credit for. You just need help. C’mon, give me your hand.”

Taking her hand, Casey brought it up to rest with her palm clasping his skull. She’d be able to feel the warmth before finding herself in the relative darkness. There was a strange machine in front of her, constantly churning away. It looked like two massive wire brushes attached to a rotational mechanism. And in between the two giant brushes, a big wad of white cotton was getting ripped and shredded apart.

”Your brain is always churning out information of some kind. Most of it gets trapped here, in the primary cycle. Right now, that's causing you all the stress. Because it's all caught basically at the forefront of your mind. But your mind is a complex machine! Every one is.”

Casey’s voice echoed through this place with the same gentle inflection as a teacher. The whole machine spun, revealing the other side. Strands of cotton that made it to the top of the machine all tumbled into an odd vacuum, which sucked each fiber in and deposited them into slots which further shook them around until they disappeared..

”Everything gets organized, and when it's processed, the thought gets filed away into a few categories. That's usually based on things like relevance and immediate usage. Now, I think I can offer a few different solutions. One, I can take the bulk of the information from you, and run it through my brain. But it’ll organize it how I would organize it, which you may not like. We can link together, and you can use my brain like a second processor. Or, I can cast a spell on you that’ll temporarily improve the speed at which your brain can process, and you can keep working at it yourself. My only worry is that you’ll still overload yourself without knowing how to handle it all.”

Trisha frowned. Though it was a strange action, because she wasn’t really there. She just felt like she was frowning… Maybe her body was. She wasn’t sure how she felt about all of it. Because either option felt a bit like cheating. She asked for all the information from the Queen and she couldn’t even handle it.

Though she hadn’t expected it to come over like that… As an absolute mess she had to figure out. She didn’t just know.

Casey was right that she’d probably just overload herself if doing it by herself. Probably because she’d end up fixating, processing, and not caring for herself. She wanted to get it sorted so she could at least start learning how the fuck to use the magic she now had access to.

There shouldn’t be any shame in asking for help from him, because he was her fiance. They were supposed to help each other. But she still felt ashamed she couldn’t just handle this herself.

“I don’t know. How long would it take to do myself like that? I’ll probably struggle to do anything else until it’s done… But what if you take it and do it? Won’t that take a lot of your time and energy?” Or maybe it would be easy and fast for someone like him.
“I don’t really care how it’s organised. I don’t even know how my brain organises things… Not well, I think. What do you think’s the best option? Honestly.”

A hand formed in the dark surrounding Trisha, the machine’s noise dulling away until it stopped moving. A thousand more hands rolled the massive wad of cotton out of the machine, while the first remained with Trisha holding her hand.

”I bet it’s not cotton… I bet its a big honeycomb.” Casey’s voice radiated much closer to her now, and the space all fell away to nothingness.

”Alright. Go ahead! Start thinking about it. I’m here with you. We’ll work it all out, no matter what form the information comes in.”

"Huh?" Trisha was a bit confused at first about what had happened. Her confusion messed up the dark space they were now in, sections blurring as if colourful information was trying to get through.

So they were in… Her mind? She was glad it didn't just show everything in there like she always worried about with these things. The disorganised chaos that it must be. So she just had to start thinking about it…

That wasn't hard with all the information crammed into her mind still at the forefront. It took barely a thought for the whole area to light up. Just like Casey had guessed, they were surrounded by towering honeycombs. Each cell contained thick globs of honey- or information. Some of it even dripped out, like there was too much for Trisha to hold.

It was a bit strange for Trisha, because she never processed things like this. She didn't have magic… Had it come to her in this form, or was she just visualising it like that because of what Casey said? It didn't really matter.

"I don't know where to start…"

”It’s all visualized here. That’s where you start. Visual categorization. Look.-”

Casey wasn’t himself anymore… He was, in fact, a small bee which now flitted about Trisha’s summation of a head, buzzing without much control besides knowing where he wanted to be positioned. The towers of sweetness all seemed so uniform, so alike... But, Trisha would know from her years of working with the material, that honey wasn’t always made equal. There were grades, gradients in the honey that told her what was good, and what wasn’t so.

”-There’s colors. Even I can see that. So, we run a little experiment. You test the dark stuff, and you test the light stuff. You see which one seems more important, or less important. Then, organize the gradient. At that point, you still don’t know anything, but you’re sure of what you need to know, and what you don’t! Does that sound doable? When we know that’s possible, I’ll fly around and start marking off which combs have the darker stuff, and which have the lighter stuff, so that you can get it all centered. Oh, here… For now-”

Another machine… A massive honey press formed, along with several different tanks.

”-we’ll have a place to store it all. You’ll need to figure out your own storage for it all when we’re done since if I’m holding it all and I leave, it just explodes back into your brain.”

"Oh-kay." It was still a bit confusing and overwhelming for Trisha, but she trusted Casey. She could do it with his help… And organising by colour was a relatively easy start.

"That sounds doable… I'll start figuring it out now."

The slowest part was the start, with Trisha having to test the 'honey' to see what kind of information it held. It wasn't exactly cut and dry about what was useful and what wasn't… she had to think about that. But in the end the darker stuff seemed more important- and more information dense. The lighter stuff was the kind of knowledge she wouldn't need for a long while.

Actually sorting it was easier with Casey's help and conjured up storage machine. Once it was all sorted from darkest to lightest, Trisha was able to make out a vague pattern in each comb- at least differences and similarities between each. It allowed her to sort it a bit more into some form of categories without having to delve into every single important looking piece… Which would take a long time. Instead she checked a few before moving them into categories based on what it seemed to describe. There were three overarching categories of bees, pheromonal magic and self-transformation, with the first two being vast and the last smaller but entirely new to her. The information within was sorted as much as it could be, so that it was in neat places for her to pick out as she actually needed to learn it.

Figuring out her own storage was another difficult stage. She struggled to understand how to even do it, because she just couldn't adjust to the fact she was sort of in her own mind. Eventually with a lot of help from Casey she managed to move all of the 'honey' information into labelled jars, 'boxed' by category.

"I'm going to have a lot of training and learning to do…" She managed to half grumble mentally when they were finally finished. There was so much there it just wasn't possible to absorb it all in a way that she could then immediately use it. Maybe if she'd had more magical exposure it would feel more natural. At least thanks to Casey's help the process of actually learning what she had at her disposal would be easier, and she didn't feel like her brain was stuffed full.

"Thanks, Casey. I love you… Uh, how do we get out?"

It had been a busy few hours. Hours spent with the two of them still talking like they always did. Goofing and joking as Casey did his best to keep Trisha stable. There were quite a few instances where she wasn’t doing well with the volume of information. Frankly, it was overwhelming. Or, would’ve been, had Casey’s White Lux not been so powerful in its own right. The centuries of gathered knowledge coursed through his magic, leaving him with at least some kind of idea about what millions and millions of years could look like.

And it was a lot. There was no doubt about how rough this all was. But, there was also a lot of overlap. Places that they could at least “condense” the honey into thicker and thicker grades. Thankfully, the information wasn’t entirely trapped inside Trisha, and Casey had the chance to make “copies” of the different jars to bring back and examine in his own memory. With that, and that they’d established a system of understanding the information together, he could spend his own sleeping time getting some of the studying done for her.

Other people may take his willingness to do his fiance’s homework as him spoiling her, but in all actuality, Casey found himself being quietly selfish. Not only would he know everything she could do alongside her, but given how voracious he was in the concerns of knowledge like this, he’d likely reparse and devour it all wholesale over the next few weeks. It was exciting, being the only other person allowed to crack open the books of knowledge on a being so old it made him look like a radar blip in time.

With his knowledge intact, Casey pulled a final look at the honey stash before peeling the magic back. As he did, he spoke to Trisha.

”Oh, my silly bee… We don’t just get out of our own heads! That’s a good idea though.”

The world around her unfurled, the darkness of the far distance becoming colored once more as other voices faded into Trisha’s consciousness.

”-ust curious how many limbs you think she’s gonna need. ‘Cuz, I know it’s a lot easier for me to rip ‘em off, but this is getting weird.”
The wet shredding noise of flesh being torn from flesh echoed along with Leon’s voice.

"Aw, Babe, you gotta much lower gore tolerance than I expected!" Came Cass' teasing reply.
"I dunno! A lot I imagine, so, keep ripping!"

As Trisha's vision of the real world came back, she was met with the sight of Cass having gone full spider mode. She had far too many extra tendril-like limbs, a couple of them wriggling playfully at Leon in tandem with her words. The gaping wound from the one he'd torn off had immediately healed over, before a brand new limb started to grow from the same spot.

Trisha grimaced, tilting her head so she could use Casey to block out Cass.
“Not so many right now that you have to torture Leon, Cass."

"It ain't torture he's just- Wait, you're back?!" Cass flung up every single limb, accidentally smacking Leon with multiple.
"How was your mind date? Got all've that knowledge now?!"

“It’s sorted so I can actually learn from it." Trisha replied calmly. The time with Casey sorting it had at least helped her feel a bit less inadequate about her inability to just learn and use it. There was so much information in there it was impossible for a normal person to just absorb it. In the end it was probably a good thing, too. She'd just hurt herself if she immediately started blasting the strongest magic she could.

“I’ll start with implanting the bee larvae. I'm not actually sure how much I'll need in the end, but I'm sure you've made enough to start. You-" There was a surprisingly loud growl from her stomach that interrupted her. She blushed, hiding herself against Casey out of embarrassment. She normally never got hungry like that…
“I guess I need to eat first."

"Now you're just giving Lee an excuse to get outta ripping my limbs off, cause that ain't a meal time activity!" Cass joked, pushing down her initial reaction about how fucking cute Trisha was to tease her boyfriend instead with a bright grin.

Leon heard the change in the couple’s breathing before Trisha had actually spoken, and reactively twisted both himself and Cass into a position where at least Casey wouldn’t be blasted with immediate visions of hacked meat. They’d been at it for hours now… He was tired in a bored sense, and worse; dealing with the fact that Cass seemed to be eternally enjoying this process.

”You can’t keep getting away with moaning every time one comes off. At this point, I’m not sure if you’re just joking, or if you actually like this shit. Either way, it's definitely a step past my fetish list.” he spoke with as much of a playful tone as he could while still letting her know he was sore about it.

Casey’s eyes turned and saw the tips of tendril-like pink rolls of meat, like prepared pork loin tucked into itself. The nautiloid spiral it made in the center, the leaking blood from the chopped ends. It wasn’t like normal cadaver. The stuff he’d dealt with was always far more… Gritty. Bone chunks kicked up dirt and debris, massive slabs of coagulated blood sat like jelly molds, organs-

He immediately stood, holding Trisha’s hand until the last second that saw him sprint off past one of the face-covered trees. From behind, only the sound of loud retching could be heard as Casey painted the ground. At least the shaking seemed to be a reaction to the vomiting, instead of a usual panic reaction… Or, maybe it was all lumped together, and happening very fast.

Leon frowned, shaking his head.
”See, I said we should get it organized and shuffled away before Casey wakes up!” he insisted to Cass.

"I thought there was gonna be some kinda warning! Like, y'know, how people normally wake up!" Cass shot back with a light huff. Though she did feel incredibly bad it'd ended up affecting Casey like that and maybe she had gotten a little too into the whole limb growing ripping off thing… In a fixating way! It was fucking fun! Okay maybe it had pushed a little into what Leon was upset about… But just a little.

"It ain't like we had to do it here… I did say we could move but-"

“Please just get it moved somewhere out of sight now." Trisha interrupted Cass, not able to deal with whatever was going on there because of her worry for Casey. She'd already pushed to her feet.
“I’m going to make sure he's alright."

"On it, boss!" Cass was already bending down to scoop up as many disgusting meat tendrils as she could with her normal arms and the remaining four additional ones.

Trisha went after Casey. She still wasn't entirely sure if it was the right thing to do, but the last time he'd reacted like that he'd said her being there was enough… So she'd do that again.

“I’m sorry you had to see that, Casey… Do you want to go back to the house?" She offered as she came round the tree, making sure to avoid any splatter on the ground as her hand moved up to comfortingly rub his back.

Like usual with this reaction, Casey’s first instinct was to be apologetic, and embarrassed. It was things like this that disrupted others lives, and even though he could’ve had a far worse reaction, he’d be just as hard on himself for this minor inconvenience.

”N-no! Absolutel-e-eh…-” he paused to gag, trying not to think of the shredded flesh at the frayed ends.
”-Ab-so-lutely not. I’ll be fi-ne. I’m s-sorry! I… Oh, oh fuck! Shit, did I fuck the environment up!? I’ve gotta ask Gin, oh God, fuck! Fuck, if I fucking ruined it, I’ll be-”

Casey clenched his eyes shut, which was a good way to block the guilty tears from coming up. Like he’d ruined her perfect science project, he was going through all the ways his poor reaction to something so simple could ruin Trisha’s time. If the environment couldn’t handle food waste left in it, and it all had to be scrubbed, he’d feel terrible. Evil, even. Like he wasn’t fit to keep trying to help her if he couldn’t stand a natural process for a certain type of bee.

“I don't care, Casey! It doesn't matter if it's fucked up… and if Gin cares, I'll deal with it." Trisha interrupted before he could get any further. She slipped in front of him, hands moving to hold his face. It was brave when he was still struggling… But she could handle it if he ended up throwing up on her. She didn't care. She just cared about him feeling better.

“It’s really fine. I'll use another one… and if this could mess it up, it wasn't very stable. How would it handle all the growing bees? Please don't be upset at yourself… You don't need to apologise. And you told me that I shouldn't be ashamed of my attacks. So why are you beating yourself up over yours?!"

How would it handle all the growing bees? It was a question he hadn’t had the wherewithal to ask himself in the moment, but it was a pretty good question. Would something so small as him throwing up what was essentially stomach acid full of fruit juice have any kind of effect here? Maybe if she was worried the bees may be tainted by a little bit of sweet in their diet, but if this was a Fae Forest, there was no way the plants cared.

”Be…cause…-”
He frowned, then looked down in shame.
”-I should’ve expected it. I had time to brace myself, I just wasn’t thinking. And now Cass and Leon have to move it all, when I should really get used to it if I’m going to help tend to them as I can.” he tried to assign as much logic to his reaction as possible, discontent with the idea that it was some sort of “attack” rather than a simple gut reaction to something that was objectively gross.

“I appreciate you wanting to help that much, but I really don't expect you to help with this part." Trisha responded simply, thumbs gently rubbing his cheeks. Maybe it wasn't a helpful response… But why would she expect her fiance with some serious PTSD to help her grown larvae in human flesh. The whole process was already gross enough for a normal person. She just had a surprisingly high tolerance for this kind of thing.

“Even if you expect something you can't always control your reaction, right? I always expect rejection and still panic when it happens…" Maybe not the best example.
“But Cass and Leon won't mind… And I care more about you. I don't want you to see things you can't deal with… I'll feel worse if you try and push through it to try and help with something I have to do the majority of anyway."

”Neither of us like feeling useless, do we?” he asked her quietly, opening his eyes finally. They were leaky, but he wasn’t sniffling or moving toward outright sobbing; at least for the moment.

Part of Trisha wanted to argue with that… That she didn't just feel useless, she actually was most of the time. But she could also recognise that would be hypocritical right now. Even if her self view was poor, she was slowly getting better at not just giving into the irrational feelings that came with it.

“Maybe that's why we understand each other so well." She replied softly. It wasn't quite an outright agreement, but it practically was.
“I guess we just need to remember that… we'll never be useless to each other. You help me just by being here."

Casey nodded, feeling the truth in what Trisha said. She certainly wasn’t useless standing here and holding him. He felt much better. His body crunched, and he wrapped her in both arms to pull her up in an embrace. He shook them both side to side slightly, feeling her small frame trapped inside his arms.

”Same to you… I’m much better with you around, Trisha Bee. Thank you. I… I guess we’ll probably save the beequipment for another time. But, I still need to finish getting it set up. Gin was helping me with it and then, y’know, we decided to take a three hour nap.” he tried to joke.

“It was the most productive nap I've ever had. Most fun too." Trisha smiled up at him, managing a soft giggle as she let him swing them gently from side to side. Not that she could wriggle out… but most importantly, she didn't want to.

“That sounds like a good idea… I still want to start with bee creation, since I'm not sure how long they'll take to grow. But I didn't actually plan to do it and leave them here. Probably among the trees… I just want to get started." She continued quietly. She'd absorbed a bit of that information during the sorting, and making more honey bees didn't seem difficult. It would just take more time to create any others, so she imagined she'd have to keep doing it for the next few days. Today she'd be happy with getting the basics done.

“I guess I can ask Leon and Cass to help move things… Or maybe just Cass, to give Leon a break. We might need to save them both from Cass, she was acting strangely… Snappy."

”She’s been at it for hours. Surely, she’s hungry. Get ‘em both out for lunch, and uh… Maybe just for giggles, try the “Autono-bee” thing? And, y’know, set some of them to follow me? I can get the little suits fitted to them while you guys eat.” Casey suggested, hoping that she either wouldn’t care that he was asking to work through lunch without her, or that she wouldn’t notice.

“You’re not going to at least sit with us?" Trisha immediately pouted up at him. Unfortunately, she was never going to miss or not care about time he wanted to spend away from her. She understood that he probably didn't want to eat after that… And Cass especially could be a horrendously messy eater. But she'd rather just kick them both out and still get to eat in his company. She could easily have a fully vegetarian lunch.

“And I’m not sure about trying that and then leaving. What if it stops and they start stinging you? They recognise you because of all my pheromones lingering, but I'm not sure if that'll be enough when you start trying to put suits on them."

He frowned, not seeing any other option besides acquiescence. Obviously he didn’t want it to be any bigger of a deal for her than he’d already made it, so rather than protest further, he frowned and moved forward with her hand in his.

”Then, I’ll just come along. It’s alright.” he said very simply.

It was hard to not assert, but at the same time, it was the easiest thing he could do. Just let her have the moment, and show her that ultimately, he was always going to be stronger than what he wanted to be. He’d always push himself past the goal line, especially for her. She was worth it.


After lunch, everything proceeded as smoothly as it could. Casey finished getting his new equipment set up while Trisha concentrated on beginning to plant Honey Bee larva in the flesh tendrils Cass had made.

It was a bit of a strange process. The egg stage was essentially skipped- while it was what Trisha put in, the magic she channeled into it had the egg immediately hatching into a quickly growing larva. From what she’d managed to get through, they should grow much faster than normal bees would… Thankfully. She didn’t have twenty-one days to wait.

After the first few, the process got easier for her. It felt more natural and she didn’t have to think so hard. In the end, she managed to do over a thousand. They were small enough she could do multiple to a tendril. It was nice to know she could get so many done in just a few hours, and she was getting faster with each bee.

It would take a bit more effort to do something different, but that was a problem for the next day.

The information sharing and organising had taken a toll on her, and she couldn’t push as long as she wanted to. Tomorrow she’d do more… But in the end, it was barely the evening when the two of them ended up back in their home and in that safe spot on the couch. The TV droned on, one of the more brainless shows they were watching switched on. For Trisha, it was mostly just background noise as she cuddled into Casey, barely looking at the screen.

Without anything to actually distract her, all those thoughts from earlier started slipping back in. About how lazy she looked when Leon mentioned her making a minimal effort deal. She was glad she hadn’t gotten defensive at him then, proving that she was really trying to be patient… But it didn’t stop her own self doubts from creeping in. If he felt that way it was fine. But what about Casey?

She hadn’t known what she was agreeing to, or that she was even agreeing to something.

“If it was that easy, I would’ve asked the Queen for more magic ages ago.” Trisha spoke softly. They’d been cuddling in comfortable silence long enough for her to relax and let the thoughts slip out, but not quite so long that it felt jarring. Not enough time for either of them to start drifting off.

“I always thought the only way to get stronger was to get more bees. She didn’t really say any different, so I didn’t realise until I met you and talked to other Adjoined. I assumed that was all I could get.” She continued, carefully avoiding what she actually wanted to say. She’d only look bad if she went straight into the excuses. Bad, and like even more of a mess.
“I guess I shouldn’t say it was easy, since I would’ve still been struggling with all the information without your help.”

For all that they’d done today, Casey wasn’t satisfied knowing that there was more to learn. He’d strayed away from the topic of the day in favor of trying to figure out the various forms of bee that Trisha could conjure up in her infinite ability. Some were special, and needed to be gestated as they were. Others were common bees induced into transforming via a magical pheromone that Trisha could produce. Certain forms actually seemed much more useful to the end he was interested in pursuing, which made him excited for what was coming next.

He hadn’t had any particular thoughts on what Trisha’s agreement with the Queen was. When Leon had made his earlier comment, it hadn’t even affected him in turn. He’d barely heard it. So, as Trisha did her best to subtly broach the subject, she did so without him being in any way the wiser. As it was another patented Trish-insecurity, it was also buried deep enough that the first foray into discussing it was totally obscured by Trisha’s inability to be completely honest with herself. So, he listened to her speak, then had to ask himself where it was coming from in such an out-of-the-blue fashion.

”Well, it’s basically my fault. You wouldn’t be worried about this stuff if I wasn’t accidentally dragging you into wartime.” he retorted, shaking his head and rubbing her head gently.

”It’s alright though… You do have me, and we’ll work together to get you as situated as possible!” his voice remained warm and comforting, even as he was somewhat confused over being pulled out of his vaguely meditative research state.

“I do… I'm really lucky to have you." Though Trisha's voice was soft, she pressed her lips into a thin line and tensed up a little bit.

She wasn't sure what she'd been hoping for in response. Something she could latch onto to bring up what she was thinking about. She almost wanted him to realise and prod at her so she got defensive, rather than having to be vulnerable. It was still such a struggle… Especially after everything that had happened. It felt silly to fixate on something and force it onto him with the expectation of comfort. Well, she was really expecting that, was she? She was just trying to explain.

And maybe he had given her a way to bring it up…

“But I would still be worried about this stuff. Maybe not to such an extreme, but… I did think a lot about how to get stronger. I just didn't know how besides the bees, and the Queen barely responded to me. I would've liked to have access to more, especially with the Father Wolf thing. I just didn't trust other magical people enough to seek help." Her voice got quieter, lowering to a whisper as she eked out close to what she actually wanted to say.
“I really didn't realise I was agreeing to the minimum forever."

Casey shrugged, still not picking up what part of the conversation she was trying to highlight. At least he was, until she finished speaking for that moment. After that, it was a Hell of a lot easier to figure out what the problem was. She was embarrassed, or something similar. There was a problem with being made to seem like she’d taken the minimum deal, he guessed. Like that was ever an issue.

”Wait, Trish… Is this about what Leon said? Be honest with me, just tell me what’s troubling you. If you feel like you can’t tell me the truth, I’ve gotta assume it's either bad, or embarrassing you. You’re… Wait, let me guess: You’re feeling crappy for not being an expert. You think I’ll, like, get bored of you? Or mad that you’re not some bee goddess?”

Once he latched on, he was a bulldog about these sorts of things. If Trisha had wanted him to poke and prod so she could get defensive, the mission had been a success in spite of the delay.

Trisha pursed her lips, looking away from him. It wasn't about her not being an expert… Sure, she did feel crappy about that, but it was a truth she couldn't really defend. She hated not knowing things, which was why she'd burn herself out to rectify it.

“I don't think you want me to be some kind of bee goddess… you wouldn't have even gotten with me if you wanted anything near that." She responded, shaking her head.

“If you're even mentioning getting bored of me, that means it's a possibility, doesn't it? But I'm really not lazy. I know it seems that way! But I promise I'm not. Even if I'm never that good at things or that knowledgeable I still try really hard to learn. There's no proof of it but it's really true… I haven't just been sitting on my ass doing the minimum by choice."

Casey couldn’t do anything but push out a laugh with a smile crawling up behind it. His eyes hadn’t really been looking at her until now, body language casual and calm. It still was for the most part. He wasn’t any more or less tense than he had been.

”Trisha… You live in a world where someone gets bored of someone else and dumps them like a child’s toy. It’s only a possibility in your head. See, in my world? You don’t see someone who doesn’t know much and think the worst of them. You protect them. You nurture them, until they have the desire and the opportunity to learn more. Just like us.”

His head finally turned downward to fully look at her, the expression on his face maintaining a sagelike calm.

”Or, would you rather I started talking about how much fun it is to sit and learn about something so vast alongside you? Because I’ve got a lot of angles where this ends up being, y’know… A you problem, essentially. One I’m happy to help with as much as I can, but still… I don’t think you’re boring, and I certainly don’t think you’re friggin’ lazy. God, you must look at yourself like you’re some kind of grifter all the time, doesn’t that get exhausting?” he asked in full seriousness.

Trisha frowned. Of course the way she thought about herself got exhausting… But that didn't mean it wasn't always true, or that she could just move past it. It was probably part of why she had those depressive periods where her brain just shut down… Or the days where she just wanted to sleep and do nothing. Which just made her feel worse in the end.

It was more than just the magic and this situation, obviously. It was all bundled up in how she viewed herself- inadequate. Then there was the conflict inside where she flip flopped from being pissed off all her hard work didn't get her anywhere, and feeling like she was the worst person around because she was where she was through no effort of her own.

“It does…" She answered quietly.
“But I don't know how to look at myself any other way. I don't know what I've done to deserve anything I have. I don't have to work because I was born into a rich family, I was able to get into an alright university cause I was paying insane out of state fees and then I haven't even done anything with it. I only have my magic because I destroyed one of my dad's expensive artifacts. Then I've barely done anything with it. I am happy I get to learn more about it with you. And I know you love me and probably don't really care, but I just feel like… I don't deserve to stand beside you either. Not magically at least."

She curled inwards to hide against him, next words coming out muffled and quiet.
“It’s a me problem, I know. Sorry."

”Hey, hey!-” he shifted, tucking her into his arms and patting her on the hip for a little comfort.
”-Don’t go latching onto that as a statement, because I’aint meant it how you heard it. You heard ’It's your problem, I don’t care, help yourself.’ Which is not what I said. What I said was ’It’s a you problem.’ That implies that the problem is ultimately in your head, but it doesn’t imply that I don’t care or that it being a problem for you doesn’t automatically make it an us problem. It is an us problem now, because it’s on the table for observation. Right? You and I will get you to where you want to be. Whether you have questions about why you deserve it or not… I just love you so much, Trisha. Ain’t no way I’ll ever make you feel like you need to handle something all on your own. Because we’re here together, right?” he asked sincerely, getting nice and close to her so he could wash her in a comforting embrace.

Trisha nodded, taking a moment to actually absorb what he said. So that she actually understood and believed that he wanted to help… And so she could figure out what she wanted to say next. What did she try and walk through to help herself? She wasn't even sure. The goal was always to alleviate the clawing anxiety, but she never knew how to do it in a more permanent fashion.

“We are here together. I didn't mean to take it that way… That's not fair when you've always tried to help." She said quietly, curling up properly against him like it was somehow possible for them to get any closer. She felt safe in his arms… Safe enough to open back up rather than continuing the process of completely shutting down.

“It’s more than just my magic… But that feels like the worst right now. Everything else I'm used to feeling constantly undeserving of. With magic… it's not just because of what Leon said today. It's how people like Mia and Gin look at me, when I really don't deserve any of it. And then there's Cass… it's only been a month and she's already so good at it, because she's been working hard! Whereas I've been too anxious to talk to my ghost more and work out what I could do. I just feel like it's another thing I don't deserve to have and I don't know how to change that. I'm barely able to accept that I deserve you and you've told me that you want to be with me over and over again."

Casey frowned as he listened to what Trisha had to say. He’d heard about stuff like imposter syndrome, and he’d dealt with the idea of Blinds being treated more like useful cattle than actual people by his peers. He could understand why she’d be worried, he really could. But his only job in this moment was to get her out of that funk by any means necessary.

But how?! She was the perfect storm of self doubt. Everything was one big spinning wheel, where she could move from one insecurity to the next without even pausing. Like eternal whack-a-mole, he’d suppress one just to have three more pop up and taunt his own inability to prevent them. He knew that if he brought that concept up, she’d probably get it… But only if she didn’t miss the forest for the trees. She’d hear ’You’re too much to deal with.’, rather than something like ’I feel like a failure who doesn’t deserve you every time I can’t help you directly.’

One was a lot easier to hear. Because it's what she expected in her heart of hearts… Because they really hadn’t been together that long. How could she really trust him with that as the case? She couldn’t. The pit of her stomach would forever withhold the worst parts of her personality, until time eventually handed them the opportunity to drain that swamp. And all he could do was remain consistent, even if it didn’t fix what was wrong immediately. He had to believe, and trust that right now, just sticking around was enough.

”Then you’ve gotta figure out what your friggin’ standards are, Sweetheart! You won’t ever dispel any of those feelings until you figure out how to be satisfied with your own effort. Like, let’s just brainstorm for a second: What does a Trisha who deserves what she has look like? he asked playfully, doing his best to keep it light so she didn’t think or feel like she was being ambushed and accused.

Trisha's brow furrowed thoughtfully. She'd never tried to think about what she had to do to be satisfied with herself. She always just assumed she never would be. It was difficult to see far enough ahead to imagine there'd be a time when she wasn't crippled by self doubt. She'd struggled to even imagine a stable future until recently.

“I don't really… know. My gut reaction is someone that actually gets results. Like good grades, a top degree, a proper job that could be bragged about… But those are my mom's standards. I'm not sure how to see my own beyond those."

She had them. While Maria had been a large part of why she'd ended up so lacking in self confidence, it wasn't all external. Even if she stopped feeling like she had to be the best at everything- something that just set her up for failure- she still wouldn't feel like she deserved what she had.

“I guess… Someone who really puts in effort to what she does and who doesn't just give up. But also it wouldn't just be effort for nothing. Someone who actually treats other people well and doesn't get touchy at the smallest things, or lash out. An actually nice person that people aren't worried to say things for and can rely on." It was only the tip of the iceberg. It was much easier to think of things she hated about herself than how she should be to no longer feel that way.

Casey snickered quietly. He knew what he asked was misleading, but that was the point.
”Is she… Tall? Blonde? Does she have massive boobies? Does she punch and kick her way through all the doors that the world presents to her?”

Practically swaddling her, Casey rocked Trisha back and forth in a gentle motion.

”Because I feel like the Trisha who deserves what she has looks a lot like the Trisha in my arms right now. Maybe she smiles more. See, all the stuff you mentioned? Changeable. With time, effort, and a lot of love, we can improve on every single point you made. But you’re never gonna look so different that you aren’t you. And you have what you have because something else said that you deserved it. So, let’s think about it in a different way.-”

He paused, taking her hands in his and playing with them slowly

”You’re smart. You’re capable. You know inside yourself, that you can accomplish your goals. You have a degree. You could find whatever job you want in your field. You are magical. Yet, your brain wants you to basically prostrate yourself in constant self-flagellation while telling you that the only thing you deserve is pain. But if that’s all you deserve, then why were you born rich? Why were you born intelligent? Or strong-willed? Why did you have the opportunity to break from the mundanity of your bloodline to join the ranks of the Paranormal spread across this planet? Life could make you suffer without ever washing those luxuries upon you. So why didn’t it? Because you’re not meant to suffer! You’re meant to struggle, maybe, and that’s what we’re in the midst of now… But, suffering? Because of this feeling? No, no… We can’t be like that. No. It’s a challenge. It’s life asking you to sort it out yourself. To find satisfaction in the cracks into which we’ve fallen, and to grow toward the sun as any plant would do. Remember, tree roots smash concrete.” he finished rather enigmatically, mentioning his favorite observation about the natural world and its functions.

Life, after all, would always push through obstacles. It was all they were really here to do. Struggle. Some did so just to live, while others did so to carve out their peace. He hoped for the latter.

Trisha's answer to all of his whys was luck. She didn't really really believe in fate in that way… Not like he did. Even when there was magic to see the future, she didn't entirely believe that things were just fated. Or that there was any kind of higher power that cared enough to decide how people were born based on what they deserved. It didn't help how she viewed herself, because even if life decided she didn't deserve to suffer… What was the decision based on? A past life she didn't even believe in?

But she could sort of understand what he was trying to say. About how she'd always be herself, and that any struggle was something to be pushed through to keep going. She knew deep down that more than changing all those problems she had, she had to change her outlook on both life and herself.

“I sort of understand what you're saying. Not all of it… I don't really see it the same way as me deserving those things just because I have them. But I get that this is just… Another struggle, right? To eventually love myself so that I can really grow and be happy, no matter what other negativity is in my life. It's really difficult for me to see how I'll get there or accept that maybe I won't be much different… But I know it's something I need to work on. A big challenge in my life, I guess. It's just really hard to start growing out of the crack I've ended up in, because every time I've tried it feels like I've been stomped on. But I should be able to without that affecting me, right? Or at least not stomp on myself too."

Casey shook his head.
”Not stomping on yourself is great, but… Honestly, Trisha? It’s a lot more like uh… It keeps raining, and the crack fills up with water. And you panic, because it feels like you’re drowning. When, in reality, the water will drain and whatever you got out of it will make you stronger. And, y’know, there’s plenty of crack! Like, I mean, it’s long. Someone would have to come and pave over it for you to not be able to just maneuver up and down it. A foot here, a bunch of sand there: But nothing’s here to pave over you. You’re growing out of the sidewalk, the town’s just gonna let you grow.” he smiled back at her, still comfortingly rubbing her hip and side.

“So I'm the only thing stopping myself from growing? Because I panic and feel worse about myself instead of trying to learn from it?" Trisha asked, trying to understand exactly what he was getting at with the metaphor now. She'd sort of understood before… Or maybe she hadn't…

”Well, kind of. But, like, rain comes from the sky. Shit comes from above you, and your world has walls all around it that block you from being able to see what’s coming up. To me, that makes it, like, impossible for you to do the growing. You can’t try and learn from shit when it all feels like you’re the last dwarf in Moriah. You’re too busy being in survival mode.” he suddenly referenced Tolkien, like Trisha had even read the Lord of the Rings.

Like she was the… What? Trisha looked up at him with visible confusion now.

“You’re right that I always feel like I'm in survival mode… But I don't really get the rest of it." She admitted quietly. While Trisha had gotten quite into reading when she finally didn't have constant studying to worry about, she'd never gone much into fantasy. It was difficult for her to enjoy when magic was actually real.

“Is it that I need to… let down my walls and accept help, or something?"

Casey nodded emphatically.

”If you feel like you’re all alone in a world full of monsters, you don’t run or fight. You just cower and wait for the next attack. Because that’s all that’s in you can observe. That’s all that’s real to you. But, you aren’t stuck. The proverbial crack isn’t a pinhole. You can maneuver; you can try something that doesn’t work, and pivot to something else. And, in the endless dancing, you’ll realize other people are stuck in the same crack you are. You’re not actually alone. You’re not doing this on your own.” he reasserted, taking a deep breath and letting her process that.

”Shit… I lost my point. I guess it’s all like uh… Y’know, don’t blame yourself. Don’t think you can’t change what you want. Oh! Time! Right, the fucking whole tree in the crack thing. The roots don’t just fuckin’ magically appear and start breaking concrete, right? You gotta grow! More and more and more, until you’re so big that you can actually ignore people stepping on you. That’s it! Your self confidence is the tree. Your efforts now are your roots trying to bust through the sidewalk so you can get all the room you’ll need to grow into the biggest, most beautiful maple tree on the planet.”

Trisha nodded, managing a small smile.

“You’re right… Even if it feels really hard to imagine now, I guess that's because I'm at the most difficult part. I've never really had the support so that I can grow… I've just been trying and struggling alone, feeling worse when I don't get anywhere. So… Thank you for being here." Her smile widened and she leaned up to kiss his cheek.

“You’re also probably going to have to tell me all of this again for the next thing I struggle with…" She admitted, self aware for the moment.
“But I'll do my best to grow little by little until I manage to get to a point where it isn't so easy for me to fall back down. I really want to be like that, even if it's hard. I don't want to let my anxiety and other issues control my life… I'm already a little bit better than when we first met. I managed to talk to you about it without panicking or getting too snappy…"

”Baby, you did a-” Casey stopped to kiss Trisha right on the top of her head, squeezing her tight and waggling his torso back and forth to nuzzle her.
”-fantastic job this time around. No fussing, no big crying or anything… You wanna think about your progress, I say think about this right now! Totally indicative of progress toward being the Trisha who you think deserves all your gifts.”

He finally leaned back, settling back into the comfy couch with little concern in the assumption that the problem was handled for the moment.

”Now, do you want me to pass off all the info I’ve parsed out over the course of the day? Or, would it make you feel better to do all of your own work when it comes to Queen stuff?” he asked with a gentle tone, not wanting her to worry about the fact that he was absolutely reading ahead of her.

Trisha took a moment to think about what she actually wanted as she shifted herself into a less curled up position, more languidly lying on Casey. Generally she wanted to do it all herself… But there was so much information to get through it would probably take her months. She needed to get to grips with at least some of what she could do before the end of the year. And she should try to get used to asking for help more.

It was just more efficient anyway.

“You can pass it to me. If I do it all myself it'll take too long, especially since I then have to use it. I don't think it'll be great for either of us if I end up hiding away for days trying to work on it by myself, forgetting to do anything else."

Happily, Casey slipped his free hand into his pocket, the other hand brushing Trisha’s hair away from her forehead before resting on the spot. What came next was a very slow stacking of jars that he’d been through. And with each empty jar he stacked, Trisha felt herself simply recognizing them. Each one individually spoke to her in a way that felt like she’d been holding her breath for years, then suddenly remembered how. The same feeling one gets after hearing a song that had been lost to them.

He’d obviously gotten into subjects he found useful. Again, mostly subjects having to do with transforming the bees, or breeding new types. Hundreds, no, thousands of different bee varieties, each one more exotic and specialized than the last. He’d peeled through each, hunting for the information necessary to make each one relevant, or not-so-relevant based on what he assumed their needs would be. Soldier bees the size of small dogs, Noble bees extending and regulating control over vast hive numbers. Even autonomous specialist bees, whom he related to on a deeply personal level as their jobs were those which only they could handle on their own. Bees with deadly toxins, or abdomens whose makeup allowed them to drop from the sky at bullet-like terminal velocity. Swimming bees, digging bees, teleporting quantum bees whose Purple Lux-like abilities still confounded him in spite of his complete understanding of them as creatures with purpose.

And then there was the section involving “activation and deactivation” of the bees as entities altogether. Something like a strange hibernation state, it seemed the Queen’s bees were all special enough to be able to take to ground, burrowing deep to where the permafrost wouldn’t get them, in order to stratify and hold in waiting for new commands. The same state could be induced without them getting the command to dig, which meant Trisha could theoretically hibernate entire hives at a time, storing them away for transport or in case of guests.

Casey had been hard at work, it seemed. And as he pulled away, all the information handed over to her, he smiled.

”I should’ve probably warned you about how excited I was to be able to learn about all this.” he giggled softly.

“Wow." Trisha breathed out, eyes glazing over and staring into the distance for a moment as she took all of the information in. It was so fast and easy… Natural like how she'd hoped it would be when the Queen first handed over her knowledge and power.

“You got through a lot… When were you even doing this?" Trisha asked, looking at Casey with a smile. After the talk they'd just had, she managed to push down the creeping feelings of inadequacy for once. He'd only done all this because he was excited to and had the magical tools to get through it. Trisha herself was still getting to grips with learning things that were already in her head.

“You selfishly went through all the exciting stuff, didn't you?" She teased instead of dwelling, reaching up to gently pinch his cheek.
“Knowing about all the different types of bees I can get means you can figure out beequipment for them, doesn't it?"

”There’s so much exciting shit. Uhh… Pretty much as soon as we were done, I started processing and logging it all in the back of my head. And, yeah. I know which ones can handle shit better, which ones to get you into the habit of developing over the others. I’m considering a Warhive. Somewhere whacky, where nobody would ever find or get to it. And we can pack it full of the real winners. I mean, a hundred-fifty thousand bee strong hive of any little creature would be devastating, but imagine a hundred-fifty thousand steel bees packing M60’s and LAW disposable rockets. Honestly, that’s a pipedream even for me. It was incredibly difficult securing all the equipment I managed to get for them this time.”

Casey could happily go on forever and ever about information they both knew. It was pleasurable for him, the crafting and theorizing about what would be most effective. He hoped it would allow them to explore the topic together in a way that helped her learn actively, and about important things. Like how to really utilize her bees to the fullest.

“I think by the time I make that many bees, they won’t be needed anymore.” Trisha giggled, smiling warmly at him. His excitement was contagious… Doubly so when it was over something important to her too. While she had a contentious relationship with studying, she did genuinely love learning about things that interested her. Her bees and magic were two of those things… Though Casey seemed even more enthusiastic than her.

“But a hidden hive like that’s a good idea, even if they’re not armed to the teeth. We talked about having at least one hive not in the Greenhouse, but hadn’t figured out where would work cause I’d need to visit it… But having one in hibernation means we don’t have to worry about it. It’s just there and safe for when I need it. Packing all of the more special bees in there makes sense too- since technically most species don’t actually produce edible honey, so I only really need my honey bees and their varieties to have access to the flowers.” She nodded, quite happy with that idea. Though she’d want to hibernate some honey bees too… Just in case. If she lost the whole honey producing hive it would ruin her business. Though, she really hoped that wouldn’t happen.

“What kinds of bees do you think would be best for that? The Warhive, even if the full thing is a pipedream.”

Casey didn’t have to hesitate. He’d come across these warforms early, so it was far more about determining force order and gathering equipment for them.

”Uh… I started naming them. The Queen’s knowledge only ever refers to bees as subjects from certain prefectures. But, you’ve seen her bees, haven’t you? The ones with the wavy bands? They have no need to gather, so they're all smooth and sleek. Like wasps. Hornets, even. They seem naturally militaristic, like she made the perfect bee soldiers, then just… Locked them away?”

An unnerving fact, that those hornet-bees had served as providence of the Queen, and had saved their realm without her divine involvement on many occasions. Yet, they seemed to completely disappear from the historic record of the Bee Empire not long before the Queen herself decided to abdicate the throne. He couldn’t shake the feeling that the two moments were somehow connected.

”There’s also the little ones from the place referred to as The Field of Armors. They're still fuzzy, but it's all supposed to be iron fibers, which they weave together into little armor suits that protect them. As far as I’m aware, they're projectiles. Set ‘em up on some self-propelled missile system, and we have guided, multi-use bullets. They’d form a screen around the hive, even if it'll be deafeningly loud.” Casey grinned as he thought about all the little metal bees.

“We’ll need to invest in some good earplugs.” Trisha laughed softly, smiling back at him. It was surprisingly easy for her to pull up information about the exact bees he was talking about. The iron bomber bees had to be grown, whereas the soldier bees could be transformed from her normal honey bees. Which was crazy to her… She hadn’t even known any could be made through transforming her honey bees until Casey passed over what he’d learned to her.

“I guess I’ll start with trying to make those two tomorrow. I have a pretty good understanding of how to do that thanks to everything you figured out… Nobody’s going to expect the proper military bees! I wonder if you can train the soldier bees, or if they just know when they’re transformed. I bet even if they do you can teach them something. Proper military formations and the like.” Trisha suggested, not thinking too hard about why those ones had disappeared in the first place.

If they hadn’t, the Queen probably wouldn’t have been sealed… But it was long gone history.
“Whereas I just need to target the fuzzy bullet bees. I really can’t believe I can make bees with iron fur… I know it shouldn’t seem crazy because magic, but I didn’t expect more than normal bees. Maybe ancient ones, but not actually magical ones.”

”Like the Borrowers? Actual bee wizards? I like that they form magical symbols with their bodies… I imagined a big, flying pentagram casting Red magic like they’re not bothered by it. But, I mean… Obviously, letting them feed off of a living Adept is pretty fucked up.”

Borrower was a self-explaning name, which if one understood their breeding process, would become all the more horrific. The Lux, it seemed, had to constantly flow. Some Adeptal prisoners held in captivity by the Queen and her court actually chose to partner with a hive of Borrowers, walking around as living hive boxes whose lives typically consisted of breathing and channeling. Only made worse when one realizes they did so in order to avoid a far crueller fate.

”Kind of takes what you’re doing with Cass to a whole new fucked up level. Those guys will be interesting anyway, probably. Just because, y’know, the whole Adept flesh thing. It definitely works similarly to how we utilize Apparitions to make Oblivium to eat, which means these guys are gonna have some seriously hearty and robust lives. I honestly think they’ll make great tests for the Beequipment I’ve made. It’s all, y’know, mostly small arms. And, if they behave like normal bees, then the software Gin cooked up will be immensely helpful.”

Trisha nodded, grimacing a bit when she thought about the Borrower bees. She’d meant pretty much any that you wouldn’t find naturally when she mentioned magical ones, but those were definitely the most magical. As much as that much power would be nice, she couldn’t justify the means to get it.

She was only alright with growing them like this because Cass so enthusiastically volunteered- and would have pressured Trisha until she agreed anyway.

“As far as I’m aware, they should. Or at least they should act like my bees, which isn’t entirely normal, but close enough. But I don’t really know, so I guess we’ll see when they’re born. Should be by the end of the week for the ones I did today.” She continued evenly, before biting her lip with a hint of nerves leaking through.

“We need to make sure Cass never finds out about the Borrowers. She’ll probably try insist she does it… I bet she’d even enjoy it in some fucked up way like she did the limb stuff. But that’s a line I really don’t want to cross.” She frowned for a moment.
“I guess even if she does find out, between you, me and Leon, we can probably dissuade her.”

Casey’s skepticism didn’t bode well for Cass having the chance to know about those things. As Trisha said, her candid attitude over parting with her own flesh wasn’t comforting to begin with. Now imagine she had the chance to have some kind of symbiotic relationship? Why bother going through it like that, when a Green Lux Adept of considerable power should theoretically be able to make their own bees?

Because, he was starting to understand; Cass was sick in the head. Not like Junior sick, obviously, but definitely some kind of sick that gave him serious memories of a few different soldiers he’d served with over the years. Kind people. Excited to do the right thing. But, ultimately fucked up. And sometimes, when they put themselves headlong into crazy situations, it worked out fine. But others ended in tragedy.

”We can’t give her the chance to try. I like her, and I like how much she loves you, but there’s no way I’m gonna let her pressure you into doing something that’s bad for her. It's just utter depravity that keeps that girl hunting for new shit to mess with. I just… It’s better if we lock those ones up. Those, and uh… Those fucking Lowland Bees.”

The Lowland bees he was referring to were a very special and high-energy toll species, who were in fact too fat to fly. Massive twelve and fifteen pound ground bees, with fur so thick you’d think they were walking shag rugs. One wasn’t bad, but like most honey bees, they loved to swarm and gather in massive football-field sized hives that often burrowed dozens and dozens of feet into the ground.

Their massive sizes only made their curious and precocious natures more threatening, as they had a tendency of swarming over whatever interested them like playful terriers. Playful terriers with massive spikes coming out of their rumps, and finger-sized mandibles. Not to mention the patented bee-ball behavior. Casey got flash images of piles of thousands of Lowland Bees absolutely swarming what looked to be a wolf creature similar to Lelou. By the time they left the corpse, it was smoldering and charred from the intense heat they were able to generate at the center of the ball.

”They’re… Frankly, they’re just too cute to be safe. Nobody is ever going to look at a single giant bumblebee and not want to hug it. So, when it tips the hive off and a fuckton of them waddle out to meet the new friend, things will get dicey.”

Casey frowned, knowing full well how badly he wanted a giant bee-dog pet.

”Maybe… Maybe if you made one, and kept her around you all the time, she’d be okay not being part of a hive. I’m honestly not sure, I have next to no idea how you actually affect them with your presence at a consistent level.” he shrugged, pouting slightly.

Trisha scratched her cheek, trying to think about what it was like with the current bees. While she didn’t keep every single one with her all the time, they all got fairly consistent time with her. At least until she moved them into the Greenhouse, meaning they didn’t get all the time she spent sleeping or just in her room to hang out with her.

“I can’t really say, because I’ve never had just one. The bees I have definitely grew more attached to me the longer I was just around them. I think it helped that during highschool, I was either at school or in my room with them studying. But they still had each other. I don’t know how feasible having her around me all the time would be now. Or ever, I like having time without bees.”

Though maybe it would be possible to train one of them in some way, so that she was content with a decent amount of time but not constant. Solitary bees did exist, just these ones weren’t. Maybe during the growth period she could adjust things to try and make some perfect combination.

“We can always try it when we move… And it doesn’t work, we get another big patch of land for a little hive of them, and cordon it off.” She smiled, reaching up to squeeze his cheeks.
“I’m guessing by the way you’re pouting you want one?”

Casey nodded, a frown on his face.
”Big eyes, cuddly, fluffy. You, in bee form. Well, maybe we can adjust her to being with the other smaller bees? Like having a friend who is seven foot tall when your whole friend group is only five and a half! Sure, she can’t really climb into their hives, but-”

He found himself blushing slightly at the idea of the big bee ruining a hive trying to crawl her chunky ass through a hole that wasn’t big enough.

”Well… Surely there’s things we can do. Maybe there’s even a way to assign her to me, so we can swap off custody duties.” he laughed, ultimately referring to the mythical giant bee as if it were already around, and part of their family. He’d left his turtle downstairs simply because there wasn’t enough room up here to keep the tank, so he figured it wouldn’t be fair to get another pet now… But, like Trisha said, when they move…

”We’ll come back to it. One day. For now, we should maybe come up with lists of desirable and non-desirable species. Like, the ones Where the Gorgons Reside?”

Talk about giant bees: Casey had an immediate name picked out when he came across these nasty pieces of work.
”I was thinking of calling them Gluttons, y’know ‘cuz of the mouths.”

Where Borrowers partook in the ritualistic residence and consumption of Adeptal flesh to maintain a hive, the Gluttons were far more demonic and monstrous due to their time spent in what appeared to be some kind of corrupted valley. These Gluttons clocked in at the size of children, sometimes hitting a hundred and twenty pounds with maws of razor sharp teeth, and two massive and unblinking single-lens eyes which stared at its surroundings searching for organic life to devour. With massive forceps, these bees would fly just out of reach of their prey with their mouths open wide, waiting for the perfect moment to dive and pin their target to the ground as their feast began.

Totally useless to them, the only thing the Glutton bees had going for them was their immense size, ferocious nature, and basic grasp of Apparitonal magic, which they used to secrete a gaseous cloud from where their stinger would be. This cloud has the added effect of being a searing, fully blinding capsaicin compound… Extra strength pepper spray.

“You’re not wanting me to make those ones, are you?” Trisha grimaced.

Their aggression and size would mean they could be useful for combat situations. Brutally so. But she wasn’t sure if she could handle bees like that, or wanted to let them loose in the world. It would be different if she knew she’d have access to the Greenhouse forever, but she figured after they moved all her bees would be living more naturally… She didn’t want to have bees whose nature pushed them past a normal predator and into something more sinister. At least the other dangerous bees were organised and unlikely to attack unless threatened or ordered to.

“I don’t think I could, no matter how much they might help now. It seems like I’d have to spend most of my time making sure they don’t… kill anyone…”

Casey nodded.

”Thats why they’re on the proverbial no fly list. We’re definitely not dealing with uh… Well, honestly, they’re probably evil. I bet, if they’re from the land of the Gorgons, then they’re uh… Well, maybe we call them Hades bees. ‘Cuz they’re Greek.” he spitballed.

Still holding tightly to Trisha, he smiled down at her.
”This is fun. Talking about it, I mean. The bees, and the knowledge. I honestly didn’t think I’d be able to carry it out, but I guess the Queen really doesn’t give a shit sometimes.”

“Yeah, she seemed to be more than happy to pass it all onto me and leave. She said the only reason she didn’t was because her resting was peaceful. I don’t really understand that, because now she’s sleeping more… It did feel like I annoyed her a bit by asking.” Trisha trailed off, shrugging. She didn’t want to get caught up in how she felt about the Queen’s abandonment. She was the one who’d chosen the option where it was all passed over, in the end.

“But I’m glad I get to learn it with you. It really is fun. I think I’d have enjoyed all of my studying more if I had someone to talk about it with… Though, math is a lot more boring! I don’t know if it can be made all that fun. I’m glad you’re so into all of the bee possibilities… It’s really cute.” She smiled warmly back at him, eyes creasing happily like a content cat.
“I don’t have to worry about getting super enthusiastic either, cause I know you’ll enjoy it.”

”It, and every other bit of you. You’re my world… So, I’m happy to sit and watch you spin and dance around the sunshine. I love you.” Casey replied simply, smiling and letting his face slide down slightly to kiss her. It was true, after all: He loved every little bit of her.
Hidden 8 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Thursday 14th December

Casey loved every bit of Trisha indeed. But fatigue happened to everyone, and no one man was immune to it. In truth, he didn’t want to feel like it was affecting him. But as the days dragged on more and more, he missed solitude. Missed being alone. She was wonderful to have there, of course, for all the affection and the willingness to sit and listen to him and his problems without even the slightest hesitation. She was utterly selfless in that regard, and he appreciated every moment that she gave him.

Things came to him regardless. People needing him for something or another, which pulled them away from each other in brief moments. But that wasn’t solitude. That wasn’t time to himself, to do things like fiddle and fuss with something, or give quiet contemplation to the ghosts in his heart. Before, he could take off. Three, four, ten days in the woods up North. A picnic table, a secluded camp ground… Plenty of liquid bread. Anywhere he was could be a workshop, depending on the equipment he brought. And he would simply exist, without any pressure or necessary presence given to the periphery.

Nowadays, it felt like there was more of an obligation than ever to be present at home. To be there to give himself up to whoever needed him. Especially Trisha… Even if she said she was trying to get better, he knew it would take time. Probably better than she did, even. Except, to keep going over it… That was the problem that was slowly seeping into his mind. That she wouldn’t, or couldn’t, accept the permanence of his affection or the status of their situation. He was well aware that things changed on a constant basis, and that nothing was truly permanent, but it really hadn’t been that long.
Having spent no time dating, he didn’t understand how someone else could give her such a short time. As if they didn’t want to know her, or just didn’t care… He didn’t understand even a little bit. In his mind, a relationship was a relationship; and he had no intention of being the one to walk away.

Good for Trisha, of course, because she hated to see people walk away. But, Casey in turn hated that it felt like the option wasn’t even there. Not to take a break, not to spend some time away from one another… But it was so important, because he knew intrinsically in his heart that he’d long for her in a far deeper fashion with that separation between them.

But why was all this swimming around in his head? Trisha’s gentle breathing, the tell that she was actually asleep. Yet, with her practically on top of him, and the way their couch was situated in the room, he couldn’t get away. He wanted it desperately, to not waste the time he could be spending actually in solitude working on something, and to just get back out, even into the outer part of the house… The laptop with the program for the beequipment was out there. He could go, he could do something. Instead, another episode of Detective Rombo filled his cold, dead eyes as he found himself stuck more and more in an anxious spiral.

So the only thing left was magic. He’d already done some enchanting on the comfy couch, but this one would be difficult to pull off without ruining it entirely. Still, worth a shot. Orange and White Lux both rippled through the fabric, eventually hitting the metal structure and not doing much of anything until Casey gave the signal. Then, Casey held his breath, and slowly but surely began to sink into the couch like quicksand. On top of him, Trisha’s body slowly and gently lowered as he fell further and further in, until his entire body was subsumed by the cloth cushions.
They only bounced and jiggled slightly as he passed them entirely, his weight no longer affecting them.

This was a strange spell that he’d learned to use on tanks and other machines where one had to fix things in nigh inaccessible places. Orange Lux enchanted the behavior of the material, affecting it to become semi-permiable to magical entities. The more weight placed on the material, the easier it was to slip through. At the same time, his White Lux was able to guard the magical properties of the spell, linking them to his body directly so that the spell would only work for him. Therefore, he sunk slowly, and Trisha remained laying in exactly the same spot she’d been in, hopefully none-the-wiser as Casey belly crawled out of the bottom of the couch and across the floor of the apartment toward the door.

Once he was in the hall, he was more happy and willing to stand and walk, his feet bringing him not but ten feet to the sleeping bee-colored laptop. Having escaped the anxiety spiral only slightly, now he was thinking about how upset Trisha may get if she woke up now and found him out here. It hadn’t been a terribly long time that she was snoozing, and he imagined her quiet fury at being abandoned. It was hard to not imagine that she was in some constant state of mental anguish, always pushing others’ questions away for fear of looking bad. Sure, he wanted her to be honest… But what if her full honesty revealed things he didn’t want to hear? Like she’d never get over her problems, or she’d always be as insecure as she was now.

What would he do? What could he do? He loved her! There was no getting around that part, even Casey was sure of that. He wanted her to be in his life… But he wanted her to finally accept and understand that it was what he wanted, and so he wouldn’t betray her by walking away. He wanted her to be just as confident in his love as he was, so he could openly ask for time to himself without feeling like a torturer or a monster.

Opening the laptop and waking it up caused his cellphone to buzz on the counter. Gin, asking what he was doing up so early. He knew he had to answer, because if he didn’t, she’d assume someone else stole the laptop and totally lock him out of it without hesitating.

C: Can’t sleep. Antsy.
G: Bummer, more ED?
C: Dick works fine.
G: Energy Drinks…….
C: I try and stay away.


Him abstaining from grabbing an energy drink from downstairs definitely had nothing to do with his heart already being strained from the anxiety. Yet, he was intent on sitting there and calibrating the little machines, their uplink to the dressing-box in the greenhouse allowing him to fiddle to his heart’s content. Amazingly, actually doing what he wanted to do helped the anxiety a tremendous amount, so by the time the sun was really shining on St. Portwell, he was fine again. Ready for another day with Trisha, and to get the second part of their intended prep work done.

Normally, for the first couple of hours after she drifted off Trisha was an incredibly light sleeper. Easily disturbed, as if her body understood her anxiety and only felt safe to fall into a deeper sleep after hours of nothing happening. It was only major things that stopped her drifting back off- Casey moving during the night was never a problem, whereas straight up leaving would be.

But thankfully for him, the magic and knowledge transfer had drained her body and mind enough that she instantly fell into a deep, undisturbable sleep. As he left she barely reacted, body so exhausted that it wasn't going to let her escape the pull of sleep until she rested as much as she needed.

It wasn't until the sunlight hit her that things changed, the deep, black sleep shifting into something more restless. Dreams… Nightmares. It was all fragmented, shifting between nightmare scenario to nightmare scenario. Monsters, horrendous shadows, and people she almost recognised attacking them. Every time, she could barely do anything. And he would step in to protect her, before dying right in front of her.

She woke up in a panic, quick, harsh breathing only getting worse when she didn't feel any immediate warmth. Her eyes shot open to… Nothing. An empty couch. No Casey. It only made her panic more, enough that the bees that slipped into the room in his absence swarmed her.

Casey waking up and leaving before her wasn't unusual. He had to get up insanely early for work all the time… But he wasn't doing that today. They were doing more training! So where had he gone? Had something happened? Was he called to something dangerous, or had he just chosen to leave because-

The first sign of life from the Den wasn't Trisha herself, but a gentle buzzing from a bee that had crawled under the door. Except as it made its way towards Casey its flight was strangely erratic, and it bumped right into his face rather than landing like normal. It was like a drone controlled by someone who had no idea what they were doing. But after it bumped into him, it shifted to more normal bee behaviour, landing on his shoulder and crawling around.

Trisha hadn't wanted to go out herself. Because if she did and he wasn't there, she'd just crawl right back into the Den and curl up in a ball of anxiety. It was better to assume the worst and not leave, checking with a bee rather than herself. But he was just outside… He hadn't left, and he wasn't dead.

It took another five minutes before Trisha emerged, spending enough time to calm herself down so there were no obvious tells that she'd woken up panicking. The bees no longer clung to her and she was breathing as normally as she ever did. He shouldn't be able to tell.

Just like the bee, she immediately moved towards Casey, a sleep shuffle with her arms already outstretched towards him. Though waking from the nightmare had made her more alert than she'd normally be this early, the early heavy sleep still clung to make her even softer.
“Morning, my love… When did you wake up?"

The quiet had gone on too long, clearly. He did his best not to grimace when he looked down at the clock and realized it’d been four hours. It felt like four minutes, and made him want to weep. He was so used to isolation, long strings of quiet that weren’t broken by routine things like this. Like her… Something was going wrong with his brain, and he couldn’t even begin to unpack it to make any fixes. Was it anxiety over what was coming that made him feel this sudden pull? The call of the wild?

”Oh,-” he looked at the clock on the computer as if he didn’t know what time it was.
”-forty-five minutes or so.”

The lie left his lips as easily as the breath from his lungs. He should’ve been incredibly ashamed of himself. Something so fucking simple… But how could he tell her he wanted to be away? How could he ever say that to someone who had been through everything she’d been through in her life. He couldn’t leave, and he could never let her know that he did anything close on purpose.
The arbitrary amount of time at that point was just to minimize whatever residual she may’ve felt from not waking up with him. They’d talked about that a couple times… That both of them slept better with one another.

But what if he didn’t want to sleep? He was stuck in bed for eight hours? Did he have to devise a way to bring his workshop into their room without waking her? She’d probably let him even if he didn’t devise some kind of mute button. Just to have him there… His arm closest to her opened up, wrapping around her and squeezing tightly. At least when she was animated, he could really feel her with his whole existence. Mind and body both. Warmth radiated, and the lie came out even easier once the initial pitch flew.

”I figured, ‘It’s getting light and you’ll be up soon.’, so I’d do some work with the targeting systems.” he spoke calmly, hoping she didn’t see the first set of coffee grinds in the trash, or assumed that he hadn’t had the time to drink two pots.

“Mm, that makes sense.” Trisha responded surprisingly easily. Her focus was entirely on him, barely registering anything else around him. She hugged him tightly from the side, nuzzling into his neck and just breathing for a moment. She needed to really know that he was there to push away the lingering fears from her nightmare… But he was real.

She didn’t really loosen up when she no longer felt just a couple of steps from panic, just pulling her head away from his shoulder to look at him.

“The magic transfer must’ve really exhausted me… I slept really deeply. Normally I only sleep like that after days awake. I guess it was a good thing, because it isn’t lingering. I’m ready to test out the beequipment. I’m really looking forward to working on it together.” She continued sweetly. Though she said she was ready for the day of training, she wasn’t making any moves to detach. If anything, she was clinging to him more.

That was something Casey could equally lock in on, at least… But he felt her tighter. Like a straight jacket. A noose. A suit tie… Not a noose.

”Good, I’m glad. ‘Cuz I’m having a rough morning. So, I’ll be following your lead. You want me to, uh… Wait? For you to wake up a bit more?” he asked, free hand motioning toward the computer on the kitchen island that they were in front of.

”There’s even training wheels built into it. Like, I noticed you were probably controlling that lone bee a little while ago? It’s meant to help with stuff like that. The software, I mean, the stuff that connects the machines to you.”

Much easier to talk about something technical than deal with how badly he wanted to peel her off his torso and leap into the ceiling.

“Yeah, I’m not awake enough to do anything more complicated… It was surprisingly hard.” Trisha gently whined.
“I didn’t think I had to control everything. Even the flying… Felt like it would’ve been easier to send one out normally and figure out what they came back with. I guess if the software helps, it won’t be so bad, and I’ll get used to it.”

She furrowed her brow slightly, pulling her upper body back just slightly to look at him better, gaze soft and slightly concerned. She was still tired enough that she didn’t exactly want to jump right into training, but not that she’d just miss things he said…
“What do you mean having a rough morning… Did something happen? Can I… help?”

”I seem to be trapped in some kind of anxiety… I can’t think of a way for you to help right now, so, y’know, just… Do your best to keep it out of your mind and trust that if I think of a way for you to help, I’ll be sure to ask.” he said with an incredibly matter-of-fact tone in his voice. He could be honest like this… As long as she didn’t ask what the problem was specifically, and he didn’t have to tell her, he knew he’d be in the clear.

”I just wanted to make sure you know. We’ll be around one another all day, so I don’t want you getting worried that I may have a silly little attitude at some point. Okay, babe?”
His hand came to her face, rubbing her cheek before pinching it playfully and kissing her.

”I’ll probably be okay when we’re working.”

Trisha nodded, though she still looked concerned. She wasn’t surprised that she couldn’t help… The only thing she ever had to offer was being there. If that wasn’t enough… Though she knew herself how anxiety didn’t just go away easily. Maybe she should push a little and ask what the actual problem was? Talking had helped her a little sometimes. But if he was worried he might have a bit of an attitude at some point, surely pushing would just make him get annoyed at her? She didn’t want that.

So she could only guess. Maybe it was after what happened yesterday, with the meat? Or just generally what was going to happen… That made the most sense. Maybe it was similar to what she’d been anxious about? Probably not… He’d be able to say if it was just worry she’d get hurt.

“Alright, if you’re sure. I’ll be right here all day so just ask.” She smiled warmly, tilting her head forward to chase after him after the kiss. Her nose gently rubbed against his. She was as close as she could be… If he couldn’t tell her what the problem was, she could only try help in the way she normally did. Being there, hugging him. Like he helped her.

“Just give me… Ten more minutes, then I’ll get ready and we can start if you think you’ll feel better working.” She hugged into him more, doing her best to suppress her selfish reluctance to let go even to get ready. Normally she’d like at least an hour to relax and cuddle and wake up, but she didn’t want to delay if he thought he’d feel okay when they got started. It wasn’t like they were going different places, and they could still hug while training.

“I need to shower, but I’ll be quick… It’s not like the bathroom’s far away either. I need to figure out which bees are best to test it with too. I guess I can do that while you finish getting everything set up with the software?”

Knowing full well that he wanted her to take her time, Casey bolted his entire brain into a rigid state as he tried to figure out what the proper response was.

”Yep.”

Yep? Casey’d never ever answered Trisha with just yep. It was far outside the box; so much in fact that even he furrowed his own eyebrow in spite of the slight pause stretching into an awkward stare at, into, and straight through Trisha’s skull. Like he wasn’t even there. And then it clicked. The entire last month? It’d just been a good month. He had them a lot more often these days, sure. But, not until now had he even really taken his condition into serious consideration.

His mind instantly found the days before Halloween. He’d practically just come back from a trip. It wasn’t a reactionary thing, where he’d feel his slumping attitude toward life and then run off into the woods until he cared about things again. That’s usually what he did on the come-up, after all; he had to be in a half way decent mood to bag the equipment and hike out like a man rather than a magician. With Casey, camping out could be the easiest thing in the world, but for him it was something special. Something worth more than zero effort, at least for himself.

”Orrrr, y’know, whatever you like best. Sure. We’re basically just gonna be looking at the computer here and stuff, that’s really all your bit that we’ve gotta do. But, shower and stuff. If it floats your boat.”

Dude, what the fuck?

It certainly wasn’t a better answer. Now he was headed toward potential anxiety territory for her, acting so weird.

”I like you smelly.”

Was that better?

God, I hope so, because that’s all there is in the tank right now.

He managed a smile at least. It truly was all he could ask of himself. Anything else was just begging for open mental anguish. A ticking timebomb that he’d simply woken up with… Was it the small ceremony for the people they’d lost? There’d be a lot more of those before it ended, probably… To get used to war again? And at home? How could he bring her into that? But, she’d prompted it! She wanted it!

She didn’t know what the Hell she wanted, except for him. She wanted him, and he was well aware of that. And it was cool, and good, but now everything was different. Normal. Plain. Like the color was fading. He couldn’t let it. He couldn’t let it. He couldn’t let it. He started to leak tears looking down at her face.

Trisha’s steadily increasing anxiety at him acting strange shot right up into panic and concern when he started crying.

Was he upset at her? Was there something she’d done, somehow? Was that why he was suddenly talking so… Monotonously? It was a non conversation, like he didn’t really want to talk at all. Like she’d experienced plenty of times before… But that could be why he was crying. For all she was quick to self blame, she couldn’t find anything she’d done to cause that kind of reaction.

It didn’t matter if it was somehow her fault or not. Even though panic gripped her, she couldn’t let herself fall into a full attack when Casey clearly wasn’t doing well. Suppress, suppress, suppress. She had to concentrate on helping him. She couldn’t let her own issues take centre stage again. She’d fucked up with that after Thanksgiving… She didn’t want to do that again.

“What’s wrong, Casey?” She asked as gently as she could, managing to sound as calm as she could under the circumstances. One hand moved up to try to wipe away his tears.
“Why are you crying? Was it something you thought of or… I don’t know… Can I help?”

It’s gotta be the fucking rain.

Casey didn’t know where to put his hands. He created distance between them by sliding up off the chair and not exactly supporting her. One shot up to brush his hair back with an anguished look on his face as the other reached for her lower back in a completely reactionary fashion, as if he was catching a precious vase.

”Listen to me: This month is going to be very fucking weird, okay? Because, well, I haven't really worked out all the kinks yet, and last month everything felt so good, y'know? And now, well, it's not! I'm not, like it just fucking happens, like you were down and stuff last month... And I was hoping that just being around you all the time would make that last forever, and it just fucking didn't, and it kinda hit me last night, all at once, y’know, that ‘Oh, wait, it’s all still there. And I am still a piece of shit.’ Because, I am, y’know? And life’s all a big fucking trick. And there’s nothing much I can do about that besides keep trying. So, now I’ve gotta try even fucking harder, and we’re doing this thing for you to protect yourself and make you more efficient even with minimal control of your bees… And they smell you don’t they? Like- Listen, that’s not the point, this is not your fault, this isn’t you, Trisha I swear to God, I’m not- I’m not leaving, I’m not… I love you. I love you, and I’m sorry, and I’m a fucker, and it’s fine! It’s fine, right? Because, y’know, you’re… My fiance. And you’ll be here right?”

The dam burst somewhere in the middle, where he’d begun to get incoherent not only in his ramblings, but in a constant shuddering breath as he tried to gather his thoughts into a proper organized fashion without blowing her mind completely. He knew reminding her that he wasn’t going to leave was good. She’d like that. But would she believe him?

”You are an absolute pile of hypocritical filth Caseau!”
”And I trusted you! We love you! How can you possibly fucking do this to us!? Love no more! It’s finished! I hope that apartment burns the fuck down and the windows blow out!”

”G-god they hate me so fucking badlyyyyyyyyyyyy-” he broke off into a terrible sob.
”-c-called me a m-motherkilling fuck! B-but I… I l-love them!”

Right… No more booze.

The space between play and work, and time to think about things in the background. Amazingly, he didn’t even think of alcohol as the first option to get away from these bipolar bouts.. Too much discipline. Only on the special occasion would he ever give himself to that… Because he totally lost himself in the drink. But, he could see the signs. He’d been on his way down since they had to kill that assassin.

His first Sergeant in the Legion had called him a well-moulded skipping stone. Back then, he’d been on the bounce. Always ready for the next thing, and the next. Now, it was more like he was good at skating just above the line he had to. But all stones skipped wind up sinking…

Trisha’s breath hitched as she tried to process everything that was going on. Who hated him? It must be Clarissa and Furio… Who else would call him that? Was that the reason for all of this? What they’d said?

No, no, it was clearly more than that. A PTSD thing? A bad period like hers… Which was fine! She could help him through it or just be there for him like he’d been for her. But why was he asking if she’d be there? Where else would she go? Why was he saying about not leaving? Nothing he’d said before implied that happening- it was something she was always worried about, but he hadn’t said anything to activate it… Until that. Because why else would he be saying he wasn’t leaving? Only if he was thinking about it, right?!

“It’s difficult with them, Casey, but you don’t deserve their hate… They’re the ones who don’t want something more reasonable. Them and Lynette! It’s not your fault.” She shook her head. As she spoke she closed the distance he’d made between them, trying to hug him in the hope it would offer some comfort.

”Ohhhh, who gives a fuck!? he groaned loudly as she hugged tightly to him. He didn’t fight it, but he wasn’t exactly hugging back either. His breath was still ragged as he tried to clear his throat.

”She’s dead already for all she cares! She’s got a fuckin’ plan! And now all I can do is keep fucking going! But, she’s fucking evil! Like comic book evil, and that’s my fucking legacy! And now here you are… Look at you! Because people are fucking shallow, you’re stuck with some fuck like me!? Like me!? You’re gorgeous, and people take that and think there’s nothing more, and they fucking treated you that way, and now you’re fucking here!? Complicit in all this, like it’s some fucking cauldron we’re standing over!?”

He scooped under her arms, like she was a toy, and plucked her from the ground to bring her to the bathroom door.

”I can’t turn my back on you… So p-please, take your shower now! And-and, I swear to God! By the time you come b-back out, I’ll be alright! Alright?” he asked in absolute shambles as he let her feet gently touch the threshold of the bathroom door.

“What- No? It’s not alright… How am I supposed to shower and leave you like this?” She did her best not to raise her voice even as it hitched with panic. That he was just going to suffer alone, and he was… pushing her away?

How was that fair, when he forced himself through all of her walls? Why wasn’t she allowed to have issues without really explaining them, but he could? She really didn’t want to get annoyed, so she concentrated on her concern for him. Because there was no way she could just walk into the bathroom and not spend every minute worrying about him. She wasn’t heartless. She loved him! She wasn’t going to think any different of him just because of how he was acting, just like how he dealt with her issues.

“I’m not stuck with you, Casey. I love you, even if your mother’s evil, and when you’re suffering. I want to be with you. I don’t care about anything else! You’re amazing… Even when you’re struggling so much you’re still thinking about me. I can’t just leave you alone… Because you’re not really going to be alright, are you?”

As she stared at him, another thought formed from the panic she was trying to not let overshadow helping him. He wasn’t just worried about how she’d feel about him, was he? He’d stepped away, he was trying to make her shower instead of just talking about it, he-
“You don’t want me here.”

Oh no.

Accurately, Casey predicted his own fate. Maybe there was prescience in that blood after all… Or, he was a master at driving himself headlong into a wall.

”Do I need to explain it to you? You really really want that? After last month and everything? You can’t just fucking trust me, that I’m gonna do what I say? See, this- This is exactly-”

He was still in tears all the while, as if the single accusation drove him into a corner. It was exactly why he felt like he was a piece of shit. Because he felt a million different things at that moment. He tried his absolute hardest to do what he could…

Tried so hard, that he too gave Trisha the chance to have her own experience with a Wildcasting Adept. For Casey to break the discipline he’d placed upon himself with any kind of spell was something that would only happen under incredible duress. The truth was, those million different things he was feeling were all crashing down. Down to the rubble of a base in the jungle. The bloody dunes. The ruins of beautiful countrysides. Bones, blood, death. Love for this woman who managed to sneak her way into his life like a knife between his ribs, and the pain of not knowing how to conduct himself properly beyond that point.

And then his eyes just… Became ice. Not in the sense that they were cold, or that he looked at her with hatred. White Lux pooled and bubbled into his iris, and into the pupil that formed the eye of the storm forming. He struggled desperately for fractions of a second to grasp even the slightest hint of what the optimal future was. But it was never natural for him. A second or two, maybe…

This was one of his Mother’s spells. He had to stop talking because his teeth were starting to chatter out of his head as the magic ran up from the stalks that ran into his brain, down his spinal cord, and into his heart. And he tried his absolute hardest to do what he could.

”-what the- I ss-s-a-”

May as well have been a magical stroke. Both legs went a little limp around the same time he stopped feeling his head attached to his neck. If he’d had his channeler on hand, he would’ve probably been fine, but this wasn’t a spell to play around with. He dropped to his knees, and with the last bit of sanity he had, tried his best to ward Trisha off a few more feet as two pots worth of coffee splashed out of him all at once. A few good heaves was all it took… But at least the spell stopped.

Only for him to become immediately angry about this happening… Embarrassed, really.

”Aaaaugh… Fucking- Please! Get a towel!” he growled, the hand that had warded her off now waiting for a towel expectantly.

Trisha reactively flinched, but she actually did what he said, walking backwards into the bathroom to grab a towel without taking her eyes off him. It wasn’t because she was scared of him. How he asked- ordered, more- only made her feel more antsy and panicked. The fight reaction was starting to push his way through. The towel was shoved into his hand without much care.

But she was still more worried about him than anything. He’d fallen down and thrown up again! He’d… He’d cast a spell, hadn’t he? Was it why he’d thrown up? It had to mean. Did that mean he’d… Wildcast?

“Did you try to wildcast, Casey?!” She tried not to make it sound like an accusation. She wasn’t trying to attack him, she was worried. But she was panicking. All of this happened because he didn’t… want to be with her? No, he didn’t want to talk to her because he didn’t want to deal with how she reacted.

“Are you- How hurt are you?!”

She had no idea what he’d actually cast so she could only guess. Some way to force her to leave him alone? Was that even possible… Or to immediately end the conversation? The more she thought about it, the more she spiralled.

Why? Because you don’t want to tell me how you feel? You hate dealing with me so much you need to hurt yourself to get out of it? This whole time I’ve been trying to help and you’ve just been hoping my anxiety will act up enough that I’ll guess you don’t want me around? Then when I do, you wildcast?” No, no, she shouldn’t throw that in his face. She shouldn’t expect him to react a certain way because she was helping.

But she was upset now too. Especially with what he said before he tried to cast a spell. It hurt that he felt the way he did, but it also hurt he didn’t even want to try and tell her. So much for honesty. And she knew exactly why. Because he was worried about how she’d react and panic… Which she would. But she could’ve gotten through it! Maybe!

Casey could only mop up stomach acid and coffee while he sat and listened to her go on and on. Because he’d done his absolute best to avoid this! But now here it was in their faces, and he was just proven worse and worse by every word she spoke.

”Did I not just get done fucking begging for a little leneancy!? Like you even told me about anything that was eating you up a month ago? Where do you even get off assuming that I hate dealing with you? Like this is your fucking problem? Like it’s you? When I fucking told you that it wasn’t you? Because you don’t trust me, you can’t just take my word when I give it to you?”

The towel was soaked. His hair was soaked in tears and the coffee it had been dragged through, and he looked up at her finally with those big blue eyes again. And they were full of pain.

”I… Get what’s wrong. With you. Why you don’t trust me… But how could you ever understand the things I’ve fucking done? What I’ve seen? Nightmares, sure. Terror. But I’ve killed friends. People have looked me in the face and told me we were brothers. People I’ve drank with, people I’ve cared for. And I fucking killed them. And there’s just more to fucking come… But you wanna ask me if I don’t want you around? When I’m here, trying to see the future to know what the best answer to give to you is? So that we can end this stupid fight? Because it’s stupid! Because we’re both keyed the fuck up, and rather than try and relax, I’m… Fucking being stupid!”

Trisha was trying her best not to cry as he hit her with more and more. She was succeeding, for the most part… Good at holding them back if she really wanted to. But her eyes were still watery even if they didn’t start leaking.

She wasn’t trying to make it about herself! And she wasn’t trying to understand it… She was just trying to help. Of course she couldn’t understand it. So of course he wouldn’t want to talk to her about it. It made sense, really… All of her problems were mundane enough for him to understand. His were worse than that, clearly. It was why she had to open up more and he didn’t.

She couldn’t understand, so she couldn’t help, so he’d get worse if she kept trying. It didn’t really matter how she felt… That she didn’t want him to wildcast to get some perfect answer. She didn’t want to fight. She didn’t feel like she’d been starting it… He was the one who’d been acting in a way that made her even think he didn’t want her around. Was she supposed to just keep it inside and get more anxious? Wasn’t that the opposite of what he kept telling her to do?!

“I don’t think it’s me, Casey. I think you’re doing badly because of something else… And you don’t want me here. Because you didn’t deny it. You tried to find the best answer- But you didn’t even want to be honest in the first place.” She spoke surprisingly calmly. Coldly… Like she’d suddenly detached.

If he wanted to end the fight, they could end the fight. If he didn’t want to talk, they didn’t have to talk. She’d stop. It wasn’t the first time he’d shut her down, after all. There was no point in hurting him more.

She was still upset and annoyed, but for once she could recognise that if she kept snapping at him it would make things worse. Not that she was having a healthy response by completely suppressing everything. But it was better that way. It wouldn’t last, but it would give him a break, at least. While he was dealing with so much.

“You’re right that I can’t understand, even if I try. I wanted to help, but I should’ve done what you wanted and just taken a shower. I won’t argue anymore. No more stupid fight.”

”No, Trisha. No more stupid fight right now. Just, what… Long, awkward silence where you pretend to be fine for my sake? I brought it up, right? It’s all my fucking fault, right? So, come on, you wanna say something again about how I’m not a piece of shit? Do you still believe yourself?”

The towel was soaked. He was gross.

”Go on! Turn around, I’ll follow you. M-may as well have this argument in the shower now, since we both n-need one! Right?” his free hand waved her on toward the shower.
”Maybe that was the perfect option! How’ll you ever know if you act like that?”

Humor?

Fight’s done.

Incredibly, Casey was trying to rally some kind of comeback. Or, maybe he was just reveling in the chance to be absurd. Truthfully, he did feel a little better talking about it, but that was completely overshadowed by the fact of the matter… That he felt like an evil person for even considering wanting some free time… But he knew if he told her that, she’d get just like this. Defensive, and cagey. Ready because she probably assumed the next thing that was coming was a hasty retreat.

But he believed in his feelings. He believed they were real… And looking down at her now still made him want to try. Whether it was because really did want him to, or because he thought it was right to do, didn’t matter.

”I said at the beginning of this… This month is going to get weird. It’s going to be incredibly fucking difficult in some aspects… I don’t want to burden you with everything! Because it’s a lot, and because we’re trying our hardest to work on you, and I show you every fucking day that I love you! So, please, don’t be fucking cold to me… And I’ll try and give you the same courtesy… Because I do love you, and no I don’t want to be away from you. And if you really really want me to, I’ll lay it all down. Every single layer of it, Trisha… Because, I said before: You’re my fiance. You’ll be here for it. If I’m asking you to trust me, you’re right. I have to trust you too.”

“Why didn’t you just say that? That you don’t want to be away from me? Why did you make it seem like you had something horrible to say, then try magic an answer?” Trisha sniffed, hands going up to rub her eyes.

She didn’t move further into the bathroom like he told her to, because she didn’t know if he was being serious. She was confused. He wanted to stop fighting, then got upset when she tried to do that? Because she was cold to him? She wasn’t trying to be cold. She hadn’t been planning to be silent… Just suppress her own feelings to concentrate on him. Ignoring him wouldn’t exactly help there. Though he was right that she was going to pretend to be fine.

It wasn’t really possible for her to just drag the emotions back up. But the coldness, a side effect of suppressing it all, slipped away as she looked at him. Still not quite crying, confused, lips scrunched up and body still tense. She wasn’t sure if this was still an argument. He didn’t seem to be trying to fight, even though he’d suggested they continue it in the shower.

“I do trust you, Casey. I know it doesn’t seem like it… But I trust that what you show me is real and that you love me. I’m doing my best to fight through my anxiety so that trust wins. But how am I meant to when I don’t know what’s going on? Going to get weird doesn’t explain anything. All I knew was that you were having a hard time, then you moved me to the bathroom when I tried to comfort you, and got upset when I stated what I thought. I’m not trying to blame you… But I want to know. It’s not fair if it’s all about working on me. That’s not how it works… I love you. I want to help you just like you want to help me, even if there’s nothing we can actually do.”

While the coldness was gone, she was still clearly quite detached. She normally wouldn’t talk so calmly in a situation like this. It wasn’t really emotional, beyond the gentle love for him that still managed to leak through everything.

The firm tone was one he could accept, as it brought them far closer in attitude toward one another. Equilibrium. But ultimately, what could he say to her in response? Everything she said was right. So how could he ever possibly tell her everything when she held feelings like those?

”I… Want to be with you all the time. That’s why I’m mad. I’m mad at myself, because sometimes I wanna be alone, but then, I’ve either gotta go do something, or I’m here and I’m with you doing something. And I love that you really want to be around me like that. It’s why even imagining asking for a bit of personal time makes me feel like an evil prick.”

His face turned downwards, breath becoming a bit more ragged as he got closer to the truth.

”I’m upset for wanting that personal space to begin with. Because another part of me knows you’re one of the only people I don’t get annoyed by regularly. And I love you! And of course, you should always want to be with that person… So, I’m a piece of shit. And I made it worse, not better.” he simpered, bottom lip quivering in shame.

Trisha sniffed, trying not to reactively let tears actually start to fall. Of course for someone with her doubts and anxieties it was difficult to hear… But more than that, she felt bad. So bad because he’d been beating himself up over something that was relatively normal to want. Just because she never felt that way with a partner didn’t mean she had no understanding of it. She had friends who needed alone time like that too, from anyone.

But he didn’t want to ask because of her and her issues. She would have panicked. She could feel it building in her chest now. But it was a panic that she could have tried to get through. It wasn’t fair for him to make all those sacrifices for her, after all.

“You’re not a piece of shit. It’s normal to want personal time, I think… Even if it wasn’t, you’re not an asshole for having wants. Even if it clashes with mine and makes me anxious.” She still wasn’t talking like someone who was a couple of steps away from properly panicking now. Sometimes self suppression really worked… And she didn’t want to make him feel even worse. Or prove that she had to be constantly taken care of.

“I… don’t want to pretend that it’s easy to hear. I want to spend all my time with you and hearing that you don’t is hard. It makes me worried… But I know that’s not rational, right? It’s not fair for you to just prioritise me all the time. That’s not how it's meant to happen. And… I know it’s so hypocritical of me to say this… but I can’t get better if we pander to my anxiety like that.” Though she could only say something like that because she was, hypocritically, trying to completely prioritise Casey over herself and holding off the expected panic.

It was enough to be logical, even if it didn’t change the anxiety she actually felt. She did have to get over that kind of anxiety. She couldn’t expect him to be around her all the time, even if him not wanting to felt like a slippery slope towards him never wanting to be there… but that wasn’t it, it really wasn’t.

“I’m sorry that I made you feel like you can’t tell me!”

Casey’s face had gone from frustrated to sad again, and then to nothing more than a sombre stare toward the floor. She was yessing him to death. And even if she wasn’t, it’s what he felt. Every bit of her bridled anxiety. All his fault.

”But, all last month… It was good. I felt good. Then, them. The booze. Yesterday with the arms. Last night I never fell asleep. I sat there with you on top of me, and my heart started racing… I started getting really antsy. About how if I tried to leave, you’d wake up. And if I lied to you about having to go work, I may as well just go work. But, I didn’t want to. I wanted you to keep sleeping, and not worry about it and be fine. Because knowing that if you woke up, and I just told you to go back to sleep, you’d get the same feeling you have now. So I snuck out, and I just sat here, and drank coffee, and messed with the bee program… Because I wanted to, because even if it isn’t being with you directly, it’s still for you. And it just got worse, ‘cuz I’ve been out here for hours now…”

He admitted it. He wasn’t great at maintaining a lie… But she was just going to freak out more anyway… He strained to stop himself from ripping the bandage off.

”I’m a piece of shit for making it your fault. When I still told you, it isn’t

“Maybe it isn’t my fault you feel that way, but it’s my fault you didn’t just ask.” Trisha responded as evenly as she could, arms wrapping around herself tightly. She was still trying her best to not visibly panic, even though he clearly knew. It was impossible for her to really hide, especially from him. It was getting more difficult to breathe as her own guilt weighed down on her.

It really wasn’t fair that her feelings just took precedence. And that just made her feel worse. That her severe anxiety affected him that much. He was just suffering through it… Most people would have just left by now! She was glad it hadn’t been enough for that yet, but that didn’t make it alright. It didn't stop her from being a problem even if she wasn’t selfish enough to want him to ignore all of his own shit and try for her. She loved him too much.

She was upset that he lied to her, especially when she was trying so hard to be honest. But it reflected right back onto herself… He lied because he felt that telling her would make her panic, and he didn’t want that. It didn’t matter to her that the actual problem wasn’t her fault. He was actively stopping himself from doing something that might help because of her.

“You should feel like you can get out of bed when you want… Because it upsets me that you force yourself too. It’s… I’ve been trying so hard to be honest and not hide things, because you asked me not to, even though it terrifies me. But then you won’t even tell me something because you’re worried about me panicking, and then you lie, so it feels like you don’t trust me. That’s-” She took a deep breath. She didn’t want to get so upset at him again. She was trying to suppress that all, even if it was so difficult and the hysteria really started to leak out. He was being honest now. She shouldn't escalate things again towards another proper fight when he was actually talking about it, just because she was upset.

“I love you, Casey. I want you to tell me things like this and not just suffer through them.”

Casey heard what Trisha was saying and did his best not to continuously interrupt her with interjections and arguments that he felt would vindicate him in some way. He wanted to keep arguing the point for whatever reason. Wanted to make himself sound worse, because her trivializing all of it felt like a massive cop out.

Him going through the same process with her just felt natural. Like he was meant to be the good person who was able to talk people through this stuff logically, because he was the one who knew better. Been there, done that, got the t-shirt. His entire position was built on that feeling; of being the one in the driver’s seat, guiding the sheep along the shepherd's path… And she was supposed to be the one he was guiding.

How could he? She wouldn’t respect him now… Not after this. Now he mentally prepared for a life spent never living this down. It was painful, it was frustrating, and most importantly, it was entirely self perceived.
And those perceptions are ultimate. One does not easily look past the reality they create in their own world for the objectivity that lies without.

”Sorry I’m such a hypocrite. I do things for everyone… Things to make people’s lives easier. I just feel like I should do my absolute best to minimize the bouts of stress in your life… I want you happy…”

Trisha frowned as she looked at him, arms tightening around herself as if that would somehow make her less tense. Did he really not trust her? He felt she was that unreliable that he could never lean on her? She understood… Because it was probably true. She cracked under pressure. But she wanted to try.

They were going to be together forever, hopefully… She wanted to be able to look after him just like he did her. Needed to be able to.

“I am happy, Casey. Not all the time- But I'm happier than I've ever been. If this is you when you're bad, then that won't change." It maybe wasn't entirely true. Or at least, it was based on the low standards she had for her life and terrible expectations built from past partners. If they don't shout in your face or try hit you, they're great…

But this was something she could cope with. Nobody was ever going to be perfect… Even if she struggled with his want to be alone, because it triggered her anxieties, it didn't mean she wasn't overall happy. But if he kept trying to push her away and stop her from helping… then it might change and get more difficult…

“You should be able to rely on me. I'm not everyone, I'm your fiance. You already said it… that I'll be here for it. I'm here to support you- not to just be one sidedly cared for! I don't want you to push me away with excuses like ‘I’ll be alright after you shower’ just to minimise it affecting me."

”Well, to be fair… I wouldn’t call the last part an excuse. I was serious. Like, we’re both adults, right? If we can’t put aside our own emotions to get shit done, we’ve got more work to do. I could’ve done that, and we could’ve avoided this argument. But, you wanted to ask questions, so I never got the chance to even try.” Casey replied with a bit of a whine.

In truth, he felt like he could’ve buried it. For her? He already knew he could do anything. But just like he said, she never really gave him the chance to try. Just pushed back. Maybe that kind of comment would be more of a salt rub, as it implied he had given her the chance too… He hadn’t, really. But he also couldn’t see why she wanted to clam up. There wasn’t anything about her that he thought was terrible…

”I can actually hide the emotions I'm feeling… They don’t crawl out and live on my face usually if I have a little prep time. I just… Got caught off guard, y’know?”

Trisha flinched back, feeling like she'd been slapped in the face by his words. It took all of her willpower to not explode in response and escalate it right back into a fight. They were so targeted.

She could hide it too if she was given the time to but he never let her. She wasn't allowed to try. He always pushed, or dragged it out with magic… and she was beginning to accept it was maybe better that way. But it wasn't really fair she always had to drag it up, and when she tried to do the same with him it got thrown in her face. Because she asked questions and started a fight.

He was saying he could do everything she couldn't. He could hide it, he could put aside his emotions, he wasn't reactive and resentful. She knew that, but he didn't need to point it out like that. She was the problem. Always the problem. It hurt a lot, her panicked self hatred easily latching onto what she perceived as blame in his words.

With the angry response buried, there was a sarcastic one on the tip of her tongue. Well I'm sorry for caring. She couldn't say that. She didn't want to ruin things anymore than she already had. Because like he said, everything would be fine if she just left it.

Not that she really believed that.

“I don't think you could've. Not fully. You had time! I sent out a bee first… It would come out eventually." Trisha's face scrunched up, trying to figure out how to say what she wanted to without sounding hypocritical. That holding it in meant it was worse when it came out, even though it was what she always did… she couldn't say shit like that. It was easier to keep suppressing and go along with it, just deal with the panic attacks it caused her down the line.

“If that's what you really want, Casey, then that's fine. I won't ask anymore. You can try your best to hide it… Even though I don't think you can without me noticing." Not without becoming an emotionless robot. That would just be worse.
“If you really think that's better, I won't argue anymore. I want you to want to talk to me, anyway. How much time do you need? You can shower first, I can go sit in the Den until you're ready."

Casey closed his eyes, fingers raising up to grip the bridge of his nose in frustration. This was why he didn’t want to be around anyone. Say things to one end, you’re cold and uncaring, or cruel and callous. Go too far in the other direction, the retaliation becomes spite… He didn’t want either of these situations. He just wanted his bubbly Trisha. Happy Trisha. Yet, here they were.

”I want to talk. To you. That doesn’t mean that I think it’ll help me. It helps more to not have someone stressed out next to me because I’m stressed. Like, what the fuck can I say in this moment? It’s ruined. The morning, the day, the week, month… Because I’m not strong enough to carry it all for one more day? Pathetic. I’m pathetic.”

Her escalation of implied action didn't help. It just made him feel worse, that suddenly because he was having problems, all of hers were somehow amplified. And he was being selfish. And still lying too… Lying about the severity, and her culpability in it. How could she ever believe him saying he didn’t want to leave if he told her that her constant clinging was frustrating? Or worse, how she made him feel like he wasn’t allowed to be his own man?

He hadn’t quite bargained for someone who wanted so much of his time… And she wasn’t even awful about giving it to him, just that-

”Every time I say I have to go somewhere that I can’t bring you, your face tells this whole story. Like you can see something in the future I can’t. Like somehow this is the time I won’t come back to you… Do you know how hard it is to do anything that I think will hurt you for even a second? Have you ever actually seen yourself? The way your eyes sink down, and your lip curls just enough to pout, but not so much that it's obvious? I feel like every time I need to leave, I’m killing you… God, I feel like I’m killing you as we speak! But, it’s all based on this totally untested theory that I’m just gonna fucking abandon you! But I don’t want that! I don’t, and that's why I literally started this by telling you that I don’t want to leave you!

Getting closer to the truth was hard. Because the closer he got, the more it hinged on her getting over what he ultimately thought was a petty trauma. Probably because he didn’t have a life full of loss and rejection quite like Trisha. Or, because he’d had so much brutal loss, totally unable to seek and garner closure from those no longer with them. It was the same for her in that regard… The boy, and the subsequent guilty verdict without trial or sentencing.

”If… You really want to try again, then turn and walk into the bathroom. Shower. Come back out, and I’ll show you that I can do the same.” he finished simply, quietly bracing for the next Trisha tidal wave.

Trisha took a deep, shaky breath, her hands moving from gripping her sides to cover her face. At least then maybe he wouldn't feel guilty because of how she looked.

Everything he said made it feel like he just… Didn't understand. That just because he told her he didn't want to leave her right now didn't mean it wouldn't happen. She loved him and she was trying her best to trust him, but how could she fully when it had barely been more than a month? When every single other time she'd been left behind? It wasn't an untested theory for her. With Casey, yes, but as far as partners- even just people- in her life went… She couldn't just get over it. She'd told him! She'd told him that she might be like this forever!

And she couldn't stand there and talk about how she wasn't just worried about him choosing to leave, but him dying too. Like her being with him all the time would somehow prevent that, instead of pushing him to do crazy things to protect her. The fear of losing his way was equal to him leaving normally now.

“I’m sorry I can't just hide everything. I'm trying, I'm really trying! Do you know how much worse I would've been a month ago? Maybe I'm not dealing with it well, but I'm willing to try! If you told me you wanted to go be alone, I wouldn't stop you, I'd try my hardest to deal with it until you came back. But I'm not just going to wake up one day and suddenly be fine. I told you that it would take a long time… And that I might always be like this. And you proposed to me."

Her shoulders shook a little bit, and she shuffled backwards so that she was actually in the bathroom.
“I’ll get better at hiding it too, so it doesn't hurt you. Because I don't want to hurt you. And obviously honesty isn't important anymore."

Fuck, she needed to stop before she got more mean. She didn't know how to de-escalate without leaving, but she didn't want to just turn around either.
“It… doesn't matter, because obviously I'm not trying hard enough. I'll do better. Can you close the door for me? I don't want to make it any harder for you by showing you my face."

”On what planet is acting like that helpful to either of us?” Casey asked with an incredibly flat tone.

He didn’t like where this was going, but every time he tried to explain himself, she took it to heart and started acting like he was jigging her with a rusty blade.

”Try closing it. I promise, it’ll only hurt as much as you let it.”
And then he turned away to walk back to the computer. Even such a small, relatively insignificant movement came with fresh implications for Trisha to chew on.

In reality, Casey was coming to the conclusion that the only way she’d really have a chance, was for him to truly not baby her. To take the risk that she’d leave, because he wasn’t really worth it… Because he was just a piece of shit. A rag for the military to stain. But he’d try when he could.

After all, part of the process of honesty was becoming comfortable enough to give it freely. They both had to go through that test…

Trisha watched him walk away through her fingers, trembling. She couldn't hold back her tears anymore, but at least he couldn't see anymore… She reached out to hastily pull the door closed, fumbling with it for a moment before it finally clicked shut. At least she didn't have the bandwidth to slam it, because it would just set off her panicking more.

Her shower was a lot longer than she'd originally planned. She had to take the time to try and calm down herself… But it was difficult to stop panicking and crying when she felt like everything was falling apart. It wasn't, it really wasn't, he said he didn't want to leave her… But did he really still feel that way after she was being so difficult? He was the one having a hard time, and she'd only made it worse. She'd just wanted to help… She should've kept her mouth shut. She never made anything better.

But she also knew herself well enough to know it would all come out eventually. She could only shut off for so long. If she could do it eternally, there were a few previous partners she might still be with- albeit unhappily.

She loved Casey. Even when he was like this, she still loved him. She wanted to be with him more than anything. It was why her fears were so amplified, but why she also wanted him to lean on her too.

For now, she'd do what he wanted. Let him have that time to be able to pretend he was fine. Hopefully he'd choose to come to her eventually, and she wouldn't deal with it as badly as she just had.

In the end, it had been at least half an hour by the time she shuffled out in a towel. Standing in the shower so long did a good enough job of flushing her entire face, so the redness underneath her eyes from crying wasn't obvious. She didn't say anything as she made her way up to the loft to get changed, tying her damp hair into a messy bun and pulling on a simple tank top and cargo pants combination. Wearing a bit more than sweats helped her feel a bit less shaky at least, somehow.

Even as she came back down, she was silent. In truth it wasn't that she was coldly ignoring him, she just didn't know what to say. She was nervous. She slipped past into their kitchen area, going into the fridge as quietly as she could. Like she was worried just making too much noise would be the wrong move.

But then she was by his side again, slipping a plate of fruit on the counter beside the laptop. No watermelon or strawberries on it, just in case. She didn't move to hug him, too worried about the reaction, instead just standing there and fiddling with her ring.
“I’m sorry. I shouldn't have lashed out or tried to push you. I love you so… I just want to do what's best for you. So let's try again, please?"

Casey had spent most of the thirty minutes outside, screaming into the hood of his sweater that he enchanted to muffle him. That entire interaction had been totally outside of the realm he was comfortable with his life existing in. He wanted to be the person he preached about… Really, the hardest part was feeling all the little anxieties and knowing that, like any train moving at cruising speed, they couldn’t be stopped on a dime. Breaks had to be applied over time. It was a painful process for the machine… Friction, heat, pressure; it wasn’t a bad metaphor for a relationship.

But it didn’t make it less painful. How was he supposed to take care of things when this is what he was leaving her with? What kind of truth did she want?

I don’t love you less. I love everything less. You just get caught in it.

It sounded horrible, but it was the truth. That life itself was grim, grey and agonizing. And it was his fault for letting her be sucked into it. She could’ve-
Well, if she was suffering without him… Maybe this was a better kind of suffering? Maybe it mattered? Either way, twenty minutes passed before he realized, but she still hadn’t left the bathroom. So, when he came in, his first thought was to knock on the door. To check on her. To protect, like usual… But he’d just be protecting her from himself. How did that make any sense? She probably didn’t even want to talk to him to begin with now…

He made more coffee. Finished cleaning the mess in front of the bathroom door… Rinsed himself off in the kitchen sink with a now-wet towel. New shirt, new sweats- He’d managed to sit back down at the kitchen island just as she was leaving. Like he hadn’t gone anywhere… He tried to give her a big smile as she came out, but she turned away too fast. Nervous, he assumed. Anxious like he was. How would he play it? Crowd her suddenly, and throw hypocrisy in her face? Or let her approach, and risk seeming cold?

He wanted to crowd her. To act like a puppy who knew he was wrong for peeing on the floor, but could only lick its owner’s face in hopes for lenience. But this moment was as much about being honest for him as saving face was. So, taking that she hadn’t seen his smile at her, he took the chance to give it to her again. But, again, she walked past, moving to the fridge. He was gobsmacked until he realized she was cutting up some melon… And then she brought the plate, and started apologizing. How was he supposed to keep a straight face there? Was she goading him? He told her he had a plan, so he decided to stick with it… For better, or worse.

”Uh… Well, I’m not sure what you mean, Babe.” he started, giving her a blank stare so as not to allow acknowledgement to creep into his expression.
”But, if there were something you needed to apologize for, I’d accept it no matter what.”

Because, obviously, this hadn’t happened. That was the plan, right? To take the break, then act like their morning wasn’t ruined? He could do that. He could show her that he could do that. His hand reached out, pulling her close in an embrace that felt normal, if not a little long-winded.

”You slept alright? Ready to do a bunch of computer work?” he asked her, pulling away just enough to be able to look at her… Enough that when he smiled at her, she’d finally see it and not be able to escape it.

Trisha looked a little confused. She hadn't quite got that they were completely ignoring what had happened. It was something she could go along with, even if it didn't reduce her anxiety one bit. But she was used to being in a constantly anxious state. If anything, the last month getting so comfortable with Casey was an exception.

He was smiling at her, at least. She was struggling to accept it at face value, forcing down all the little voices whispering that it was just pretend. She should go along with it. And it wasn't quite hollow. It wasn't really one of those smiles that was just hiding the coldness underneath. She couldn't see anything bad in his eyes.

She just nodded, turning to hug him back, trying her best to be normal about it too. There was still some nervous hesitation, but she wanted to be close to him more than she'd let that stop her.

“Computer work is what I'm used to. I could do it for days… I bet it's the one thing I have more stamina for than you." She managed to lightly tease with a small smile. She didn't bother verbally answering the sleep question, figuring the nod was enough. She had until the nightmare, but she wasn't going to bring that up now. Especially when she wasn't actually just waking up.

“Is it all on the computer? I assumed it'd involve doing more with the bees. Training them and such."

Casey smiled back, assuming that she was probably right about having more stamina for it. But, it was magical… So this specific circumstance may’ve been a bit of a trick when it came to her statement. Taking another piece of melon off the plate, he munched it down before some kind of knowing came to his eyes. Trisha would be able to see the spark of recognition.

”I… I like that you cut my fruit up for me. Nobody else would do that.”

He wasn’t intentionally ignoring her statement, so much as he was lost in what he was thinking. The very first thing that came to his mind was how nice it was that she cared enough to do that. That it wasn’t just some silly peace offering, because she’d done it quite a few times at this point. He knew she’d do anything for him. And it mattered. And he needed her to know it mattered. Standing up, however, he waved his hand at the seat before guiding her into it.

”Now, as far as training bees… They’ll need to learn how to get into the assignment box. Otherwise, it’s all about you and what you do on this computer. ‘Cuz-”

It was opened up to the main page of the software, which had different sections that were clearly for different aspects of the setup. But, in a bright yellow box, there was an enticing button that said “New Formation”.

”-the software is totally in control of the hardware. And there’s a couple different ways of going about this. For me, I can use it to do things like make sure all the guns work and are loaded, that the harnesses are all good to go, shit like that… But you’re the one programming shit. This computer has a sensor meant to pick up bee pheromones. Gin says it’s supposed to be super sensitive, and there’s a whole list of input commands just waiting for a corresponding marker. The harnesses themselves are able to reproduce the command, meaning that you can pre-make entire formations and battle plans utilizing your scent without you actually inputting the commands on the fly.”

Leaning over her, he opened a formation he’d created that had commands in it. They were all duds, obviously, as Trisha hadn’t attuned the system herself, but it gave a good example of what one of these formation documents actually looked like. It seemed to be like some kind of drone-control software, and was set up much like a drone-show software would be, or even a music editing software. A thousand harnesses were being edited with a programmed functionality; this one seeming to be meant to keep the bees at a not-zero aggression level while maintaining an organized phalanx-style gunwall. If each bee was equipped with a rifle, a thousand rifles could exist in a few square feet of devastation; but it was better to keep them relatively spread out. A hundred here, fifty there, each cluster marked for a particular distance away from the controller, a directional orientation, and everything else a mass-incursion of harrier jets would want.

They were effectively set up to be a defensive army surrounding “the controller”, which would ultimately end up being Trisha.

”Now, I’m not a super good teacher when it comes to stuff like this. Gin’s always around, we can ask her how to do something… But, I kind of figured that you’d want to just, y’know, monkey around with the program before we went super hard into getting the bees themselves equipped…”

Telling her about all of this was far easier than telling her about how he’d struggled trying to get even that example together without asking anyone for help. He didn’t think he could deal with Gin’s extra prodding or joking around in that moment.

“Wow." Trisha breathed out, wide eyes switching to a squint as she leaned in to read the document. The interface itself didn't seem that difficult, especially as someone who was used to coding. It took her a bit longer to figure out what the example was meant to do, since she didn't really know military formations. She could picture what was written, but the actual setup and why took a little bit longer.

“Mhm… It probably makes sense for me to play around and figure out which of the input commands I'll really need. It'll take a while to get them all registered." As she spoke she fiddled around, managing to find the pre-made list of commands. It was a lot, because they'd need to be strung together. She was sure she could adjust to put in more specific, longer commands, seeing as often her pheromones blended together in a way that made it difficult for her to parse out each individual bit.

She'd have to try, though.
“Most important first, I guess. I… Don't really know formations or battle plans. I always reacted in the moment to whatever was happening, so I'm not even sure where to start there. I guess your one’s a good start." She pointed to the screen with a smile.
“I’ve never thought of placing them like that. I guess it would be quite hard for me to do in the moment… But I'll need a lot of help figuring out the actual plans, even if I can get them into the software myself. I guess that's why we'll be working together?"

It was relatively easy to lose herself in the work. It was one thing she could do no matter her mood, aside from the depressive periods post university.

Casey nodded.
”At first, I was a little confused too. Then I stopped thinking about the individual bees, or the whole group. Rather, pockets of them essentially equal people. So, you don’t treat a hundred bees like they’re a hundred bees. You cluster them up, and you treat them like, essentially, a dude. A dude who's immune to, like, most forms of combat. Can’t punch the bees, can’t shoot the bees really. Can’t grab the bees- You’d need area of effect, essentially. Stuff that catches and blasts a bunch of bees at once. But, they’re pretty good about that too. We can make a protocol for splitting them up more and more.”

He’d mostly imagined what one could do with a squad of bodyguards if they could float, or become relatively invisible. There were plenty more chances and possibilities, however. Like good ambushes. A hive full of bees with automatic rifles just hanging out in a single tree was a horrifying prospect.

”I figured we’d spend the time now just attuning the system like Gin told me to do. Which will probably be pretty good practice for you using active pheromones, right?”

Trisha laughed softly when Casey suggested treating them like people. It made sense for him, who was more used to commanding people like that… But for her it had always been the bees. Unless she went and read a bunch of books about war strategies that she then had to translate and implement, thinking about them as people didn't help her with what kind formations she needed.

But what he was saying made sense when it came to the bees' uses. Most of their deaths in the past had come from large attacks. One or two getting caught by a hand was nothing.

“Yeah, it'll be good practice. Might take me a few tries for the commands I don't use as often… I might need to test it first before putting it into the system. I don't want to use the wrong pheromone, and then have that used incorrectly in the future." She tilted her head, checking if her earlier panic attack had called any more bees into the house. Thankfully not, there only seemed to be a group of about fifty.

“I’ll get a small group down so I can check each one. I think I closed the Den window, but I'm not sure. I don't want to accidentally call a whole swarm while inputting that kind of command… Again. At least if all the windows are closed they'll just swarm the glass."

As he was standing, it made the most sense for Casey to go check if the window was open. Usually, or at least recently, he would’ve taken a few long backsteps before making for the door to look inside. But, being so hyperaware of what the right thing to do was, Casey was now prone to making basic mistakes and poor decisions. Choices like breaking off immediately and turning to look into the Den, rather than making sure that he was keeping her fully in mind…

They couldn’t live like that. He couldn’t be so actively wrapped up in protecting her. His back had to be a normal image, because his front would be. He had intentions of forever… At least the window was closed, so he didn’t have to disappear fully.

”Yep, all good, Babe. Should I get you a sweater? I mean, I guess they won’t sting you even if they’re mad.” he asked aloud, half trying to fill the dead air between them.

“They’d only sting me if I asked them too." She responded, not seeming any worse for having seen his back. Not because there wasn't that irrational, immediate fear response… But she was doing her best not to let it get to her. The base level anxiety was bearable, she didn't want it to jump above that.

Though she wasn't so great at actually rationalising and dealing with feelings, so much as just suppressing them. She wasn't really in the right state to think about it.

“They shouldn't get mad, but maybe we should set up a mini target. Some of the commands are to attack, and if I give it aimlessly when practicing they'll get confused. I'm not sure what they'll go for." Normally she'd be confident it wouldn't be Casey, with how soaked in her pheromones he was. But the more on edge she was, the more on edge the bees were, which pushed them towards treating everything like a threat.

“There’s a small enough number in here we really should be fine." She continued as she carefully called for them. About ten had been on the plants above them, lazily dripping down, while the rest meandered in the Den until she called for them.

At least inputting that command would be easy. She found it, before looking at Casey with a slight frown.
“How do I actually attune it? Just blast it with my magic?"

As Casey got back to her side, he let his hand down to hold hers against the mouse before bringing her back out into the main menu.

”That section that says ‘Calibration and Attunement’ is a good place to start.” he joked, letting her navigate to it and open it up. There was a gentle click, then a whizz in the computer before a little slot opened up on the right side of the monitor.

”When you go in, it’ll pop the reader open. But it doesn’t activate until you-”
He pointed at the screen, specifically at the word “edit” like it was any other document. The drop-down menu held smaller sections like “Signal Trigger”, “Ammunition Pool”, and “Targeting Matrix”.
”-click on the stuff having to do with signals.”

Clicking the button in the edit tab brought a box up to ask her if she was entering a new trigger, or if she wanted to edit an existing one.

”I only set up the examples based on what I figured people would be useful doing. There’s also, uh, if you just click on new?-”
The screen then made the distinction of asking if she was adding a new solo trigger, or if she wanted to upload a “trigger string.”
”-Gin obviously didn’t know what terminology to go with… But you can essentially upload whole prompts? And, I guess, if you’ve already taken the time to input the individual pheromone triggers, the software will actually detect and map out the prompt based on the signals it can match in the computer. If that makes sense… It’s kind of like automating the process when you’ve got a bunch of time and effort into it.”

Trisha nodded. It did make sense… it didn't seem too difficult, outside of the initial effort of going through all her pheromones and uploading them. There'd probably be some snags there when she had to start thinking about it, because some of that had come naturally to her. But it was work she was willing to do. Anything, really, so that she'd be a bit more useful when they had to actually fight again.

“Automated after I upload everything and train a bunch of bees to get into a specific box." She nodded, selecting a solo trigger. This one was relatively easy… Since it would come through harnesses to a specific bee, she didn't need to worry about calling a specific number for the attunement. After naming it, the screen informed them that the reader was active.

The command had all fifty of the bees she'd already called, in various rest spots across the counter, buzzing towards her again with some amount of confusion. They landed all over her this time, a few rubbing their fuzzy faces and butts on her face. She giggled as she gently moved them to less annoying places on her.

It was smart how it just seemed to register it. Magic, she guessed. As she thought about it more her expression changed, looking towards Casey with some amount of concern.

“Can anyone use this? I know it's not likely, but if someone… stole it or wrestled it away from me, would they be able to command my bees? I know I could manually override them-" What a technical term for her normal pheromones use- “but it'd still confuse them."

He shook his head.
”Your magic should be the only magic that interacts with it without prompting any kind of security protocol. And too much magical exposure without confirmation will melt it down, so… It’s yours. As yours as something can be. I’d be more worried about someone magically overriding my enchantments on the harnesses. As soon as the connection to the system breaks, all my enchants are meant to overload the battery core in each unit. Essentially, they turn into grenades. They’ve got just enough time that whatever bees were harnessed will hopefully have made it out of the explosion.”

They’d thought a lot about that… And that was one of the first systems that Gin had him implement. The connection between the magic and the physical was the hardest to pull off, and he had seriously complex magic being used on the box with all the harnesses. The fact that it was essentially a bee armory, and that each of them could have thousands of real dollars worth of equipment, meant that it was important to keep it all not just secure, but proprietary.

”But, there’s a not-zero chance they don’t. It’s a system that still needs to get stress-tested, to see how much play there is between a security breach and the actual function that follows. If we had a Purple Adept working with us, then the framework for the harness to teleport the bee wearing it back to the box before it detonates would be an option… But, with nobody to assist with the magical application, it’s a stretch.” he continued to explain.

Trisha took a shaky breath, nodding. Obviously she didn't want any of her bees to become living explosions, but there was always going to be a risk to them. She just had to think about the logistics on her end to get the bees out on time.

“Is there a way to make sure they give out a specific pheromone when the connection is broken, or does that depend too much on the system?" she nibbled her lip, thinking of the worst case scenario. Some strong Orange Adept who overrode all of the harnesses, turning them into grenades. No, if it was all of them, she could send a mass command if she reacted in time… If it was staggered? That would be more difficult. If any got caught in the blast, it would momentarily impair her thinking, making it more difficult to get the others out. The more dead, the more difficult it got.

“If it can't, I'll have to practice quick escapes with them… From whatever they're wearing specifically. I'm used to getting them out of magical attacks where possible, and they're somewhat attuned to it too. A fireball coming towards them is hot and dangerous no matter what, so they sense it. This would be all on me, because they won't know until it's too late."

Casey had already thought about what she was asking, and had left room for a drop-switch just like that.
”We can make that happen! It’s a good idea, Babe. Would you want it to just be a harsh burst? Does that affect their reaction time if it’s a much more concentrated chemical? We can probably figure out a way to match the scent of the expanding battery core with the flee pheromone, too. So it’ll work as an analogue failsafe should all else go to shit.” he nodded, patting her on the shoulder in a gentle confirmation.

”Though, just… Don’t get too hung up on this stuff. It’s all implying that something happens where you lose access to the main unit, which you shouldn’t ever. Because it’s meant to run and function remotely… So we can keep it in a safe place until we need to make adjustments. All you’ll need to do is work on a command that lets them know it’s time to go to war.” he finished, hoping that she wouldn’t be terribly worried about the remote possibility of her bees exploding for seemingly no reason.

“I’d rather be prepared than just ignore it. I don't think that's me getting hung up on it." She responded evenly. She was worried about it, obviously, but she was worried about all of it. It was the difficult thing about her abstraction being so strongly connected to her bees. She loved them, but they were also her first line of defence. Other lives that she was sacrificing for her own… It would be easier if she didn't have to risk them every time.

When she had the time, she'd have to try and look into the information unrelated to the bees themselves. Maybe there was a way for her to get stronger so she was less reliant on them.

“Their reaction time is affected by my emotions, so I imagine it being more concentrated might simulate it. I can probably even emulate my own stress if it's a recorded pheromone, if I work myself up enough." She shrugged one shoulder. Though that probably wasn't so sensible now.

“I know it's unlikely it'll happen and they’ll be at risk either way." She continued, reaching out to run a finger down one bee's back.
“As long as there's failsafes… What do you mean by a command like that? One that I put out to activate the preset ones on the computer? Or- Oh, it's probably something I can start from my phone or a smaller device, isn't it? Having it depend on my pheromones to start would be odd."

”Why… Would that be odd?” Casey asked calmly, looking at her as if he’d done something wrong.

The way he and Gin figured, that was the only way to get things started.

”The box also knows and reproduces the command pheromones. So, we figured as long as there was something to detect that you were making a signal, it could be activated remotely! Hence-”

He slid a small box across the island counter. It was rectangular. Very clearly a jewelry box, but unclear as to whether it was a necklace, or something with a band like a bangle.

”-we figured that it had to be stuff you wouldn’t mind wearing all the time. I know, I must look like some wannabe rich asshole handing you jewelry all the time… But this is one of the last ones for now, I promise.” he did his best to smile down at her.

“O-oh, it's fine, you don't look like that! I already told you it's empty gifts I don't like… but I know it's not like that. It's practical, anyway, and- and the last time was my ring. That really doesn't make you look like an asshole. I'm happy to wear anything from you!" She stammered a bit in her attempt to anxiously comfort him, managing to push the crawling panic down to smile back at him. She slowly reached out for the jewellery box, but didn't actually open it.

“I assumed a simple app with some button I press would be easier for Gin to do… Odd was the wrong word, I meant odd because it seemed hard." She backtracked to the other source of anxiety. She didn't want him thinking they'd gone about it wrong. She'd genuinely thought it being triggered by her pheromones would be near impossible if they had the computer somewhere safe… not even thinking about how much magic had gone into making that in the first place.

“I didn't even think of another sensor. Kinda silly, huh, with all of this magical equipment? It seems much safer… And faster. It makes sense now that I understand… Thank you for setting it up like that for me. And for the jewellery."

”You… Like it? Y’gotta open it to know…” he replied very simply, not wanting to seem too pushy.

”It wasn’t super hard to figure out once we knew we could accurately transfer the chemical composition of the pheromones from one sensor to another. Next time we see Gin, you can ask her about the smelly telephone game she was playing if you want. She’d be happy to tell you, I bet; she’s just as happy with the thing as I am… And I learned a lot about computer hardware and software. More about hardware, and about enchanting it to do funny things.”

The entire process of getting the beequipment up and running really put his own hobbies and interests into perspective. The idea that all that made up a gun, in a factual sense, were some precision milled metal bits strapped to a polymer handle with a tube, made it all seem so last century.

”Like, I didn’t know about quantum processing until Gin told me about it as a possibility for running machines as small as the harnesses. Now, I know enough to know that I’ll never understand it. So, that was cool…” he grinned, laughing a little bit.

“I don’t think many people can understand quantum processing. Gin, maybe Cass… ” Trisha smiled in response. It was the kind of conceptual science far beyond her understanding. The mathematics had interested her, but she could barely begin to wrap her head around the simplest parts of it.

“I’m glad you enjoyed it. Maybe one day we can make a dream computer team, you do the hardware and I’ll do the software. Then I won’t have to deal with Cass trying to tear my whole computer apart every time I want something upgraded. You can just enchant it to be better.” She joked lightly, still smiling at him before turning her head towards the jewellery box in her hands.

She was a little nervous about it. She was sure she’d like it, because was preparing to school her expression just in case. As long as it wasn’t gaudy, or something studded in diamonds. The worry only came because he said about looking like a wannabe rich asshole.

But she opened it to reveal a simple enough design, a bracelet made up of pearl sized beads. Each bead had a jet black base, with varieties of golden-yellow to amber swirling through it. As she picked it up she could feel the smoothness inherent in gemstones smoothed down to beads. It wasn’t plastic or anything cheap… But it wasn’t over the top either. It was pretty, and the kind of thing she could easily wear

“It’s really nice, Casey. Thank you. I definitely like it.” She smiled, hesitating a moment before leaning up to kiss his cheek.

Casey was rather impressed with the piece himself. He hadn’t actually looked at it in the box, instead trusting Gin to do what she did best: Overdesign.

”Each sphere’s a part, basically a hardware component of the uh… Well, it’s essentially a functioning device besides the aesthetic appeal. It’s your controller. Reads your pheromones, digitizes it, then sends it to the receivers: Mostly to turn it all on, hence why I mentioned you’ll need to determine a master signal.” he explained happily, moving around her to gently take her hand.

Holding her arm, he pulled the bracelet from its package and wrapped it around her wrist. As he did, there was a very clear signal crawling up between her ring and the new piece, causing it to jostle slightly upon her wrist before locking into place. It wasn’t tight; just stiff. Like it was in on mode.

”As a failsafe, I made sure it went to Nana first, so she could signal-lock it with the ring. Basically, even if someone got ahold of your controller, and could reproduce your pheromones, it still has to search for your ring. Like a car key-fob, as opposed to an analogue key.”

The screen reacted as well, a notification sliding up from the bottom left hand corner that read “Master Unit Active.” Overall, he found it to be an ingenious system that was just another little miracle in their lives… All thanks to the power of magic itself. As she got the chance to admire it on her own wrist, Casey’s arms wrapped around her waist.

”And… I’m sorry too. Obviously the jewelry isn’t a bandage. Neither is pretending. But, we’re both… Doing good? Right?” he asked calmly, his forehead bumping gently into the back of her head.

Good wasn't quite how Trisha would describe herself right now. Managing- even managing to enjoy herself- but not good. Not when her anxiety was just beneath the surface. Today she could cope with. Tomorrow too. But a whole month of pretending? It wasn't going to be difficult without having panic attacks whenever she was alone and could let it out.

But she'd do it for Casey if it's what he wanted… At least she got to be with him. She loved being with him, and the increased anxiety didn't change that right now.

“Yeah, we're both doing good." Trisha agreed, calmly enough that it would only register as a lie if Casey used magical detection on her. She tried not to brace herself for the inevitable ‘I told you so.’

She leaned back into him, closing her eyes for a moment and letting the warmth of his arms around her comfort her. Maybe he really would be able to manage all month, until he felt better. Maybe things would feel a bit different, but it wouldn't escalate to fights like earlier. She should trust him.

“I accept your apology too…" She said softly.
“I’m glad the bracelet isn't a bandage… nice as it is, you know how I feel about gifts to smooth things over. But obviously it isn't, since you already had it, but this is much better anyway."

She meant the hug, leaning deeper into it. She didn't want him to think she was suddenly put off the bracelet at the thought it might be some kind of bandage or apology gift. She knew it wasn't.

“It’s really impressive. Not just that it'll detect my pheromones and connects to the system… That you sent it to Sylvie to get it linked to my ring too. I really appreciate everything you've done for me here. In general too, even all the little things… You make my life better in a lot of ways, you probably don't even realise it." That was all true, said with more solemn calmness than the normal sweet and cute delivery she gave him. She wanted to make sure he knew that, really knew that, not just her trying to get through when they were fighting. Especially with what he said about her being stuck with him.

”I know, Honey Bee.” Casey said simply, acknowledging her genuine feelings.

Of course, she was probably incredibly antsy to say whatever she thought would keep him tethered. Anything to get him to stay. It was a little heartbreaking, because she really was his everything. It was just the unbroken trauma chain, the issues made by issues born of older issues still, that made independence a near impossibility.

Still, he was self aware. At least enough that Trisha’s logic behind her love was an open book.

”I… Wish you wouldn’t talk about it like it's a passing thing. What I do for you, that is… I’m here. So are you. Committed. Dedicated. I love you.”

It did feel a bit like she was constantly teetering toward throwing herself out. It made him even more regretful that he had let this happen to begin with. How could he have lost his strength? How could he have floundered in front of her, and let her see that weakness in turn?

”I swear, Trisha…” he added, holding her just a little tighter.

Trisha tried not to reactively tense, forcing herself to take a deep breath. She twisted herself, doing her best to turn in his tight hold so that she could face him.

“I didn't mean it like that." She said softly.
“I don't think that it's a passing thing. I know you're not just going to stop doing things for me… You won't wake up tomorrow and stop. I just wanted you to know I appreciate everything you've done, but I didn't mean it like it was only a past thing."

She bit her lip trying to not get too anxious about a misunderstanding. Of course she was worried about him leaving. She felt like every argument or ugly little truth about herself that came out would be the last one. But she at least had enough faith in Casey that he'd just break up with her. As terrifying as the prospect was, it was better than a future where he lost his love for her and stopped doing all of those little things for her…

Maybe she did think it was a passing thing, deep down. It was hard to believe the novelty wouldn't wear off. Because eventually she'd become too much, and the love she brought wouldn't be enough to outweigh the arguments and her heavy anxieties. But she really hadn't meant to talk about it like it was in that moment.

She managed to twist around enough so she could properly bury herself into his arms.
“I love you too… I'm always anxious, but I'm really not always thinking you're about to leave me. I promise. I know you love me… I don't want you to think I'm questioning that either."

”I’m… Just worried that one day you’ll have questions. Ones I won’t have an answer for. I’m worried about detaching. And about what it’ll do to you. The good months are easy. But, having the feeling that I didn’t want to be around you? Even for a few minutes?”

He hadn’t exactly intended for the admission to slip out there. But this was tender. They weren’t keyed up for an argument. This was what she’d wanted. He wanted to talk about it how it made sense for him. Which, ultimately, didn’t make any sense in the context of the situation; but Casey was far too removed to worry about that now.

”But I don’t know how to fix it. The shrink said I’m good about it… That knowing the feelings are just feelings is enough, and that so long as I hold my word to things, then even if I’m struggling to maintain the connection, it should be enough to not hurt others over it. But, I still don’t know how healthy that is, and I know I’m not supposed to feel like a failure for struggling… But, knowing how sensitive you are? It’s extra pressure… To not crack. To not buckle. I’ve gotta trust you’ll deal with it. I know you will. Like, y’know, I know we have plans this weekend. I’ll be there. And you’ve gotta know that I don’t wanna be: Not because I don’t love you, or don’t love spending time with you… I just… Everything burns. It all burns, and it's all on fire. I don’t know how to stop that feeling.” he did his best to explain, still holding her tightly.

Trisha tucked her head down and into his chest so he didn't see her frown. She didn't want her immediate upset reaction to push him away and have him clam up again. Because she'd wanted him to talk to her, she just couldn't control her immediate reaction.

Because it hurt to hear that he hadn't wanted to be around her, even if it really had just been for a few minutes like he said. It was exactly the kind of thing that she was worried about. Because if it was a few minutes now, wouldn't it be longer next time? Until eventually he never wanted to be around her? But she couldn't let that panic control her. She'd told him it was something she had to push through so that she'd actually get over it.

She didn't really believe she'd be able to get over it like that, but she knew that she could ignore it for him. It wasn't about her right now, anyway. She could push down the panic and let it out in the small moments she had alone.

“I will deal with it. I promise, I can." Trisha responded with genuine conviction. Would dealing with it be in a healthy way? Probably not. But it wasn't like it would be the first time she managed to push everything down to prioritise someone else. Just this time, there'd be a light at the end of the tunnel. Future good months… As long as there were future good months, she could do that for him.

Even if she didn't entirely understand how he was feeling, she could figure out enough from how he described it. She didn't have any similar feelings of her own to relate to, but she shouldn't have to. It just sounded difficult.

“I don't want you to feel more pressure or like a failure because of me. Like I said earlier… It's not just about me. Me having issues doesn't suddenly mean yours don't matter. I don't want you forcing yourself to things either. I can go alone, I'll deal with making any excuses. I'm used to going to things like that alone-" That maybe wasn't the right thing to say if she didn't want him feeling guilty about it. But at the end of the day, Cass was her friend. All of the big things happening this weekend were because of Trisha's friends. Trisha should be able to deal with it.

“I don't know how else I can help. I don't really understand what that feeling's like… and I don't know if I can help you not detach. I don't imagine so? Not without making things worse… But I can do something like that."

Rapidly grappling with the cognitive dissonance of her feelings was, if nothing else, fun. It was a sick, twisted little hopping sensation in the pit of his stomach. It wasn’t the same one he got before combat, where he knew there was going to be physical danger. Frankly, even he couldn’t explain it. All he could do was feel it, and hope that it was the key to working through this. Maybe he’d be able to muster the feeling again some day, and it’d carry him through to the next calm shore.

So you don’t want me to feel pressure, then you’re gonna say some sad shit about being used to doing things alone?

It may’ve been too much for a lesser person. He could see it now. Why she wasn’t so much a unicorn as she was a silkie. But, there was a reason they were so good at drowning people.

”I’m sure you could, but you know I can do the same. It’s more like… Well, uh… When we were yelling, you mentioned the truth not mattering. It does. It always will. So, the truth is that, just like I’ve gotta have a lot of faith that you’ll get used to our relationship over time, I’ve gotta have a lot of faith in myself, that as time passes, this feeling will have exceptions. Because, you’ve gotta understand-”

He pulled her out just enough to look down at her without filling her face with his hair.

”-that, had it been someone else? Not you? I’d still have this feeling. I’d still be this way. And I’ve never been with anyone else. I literally don’t know what’s going to happen. There’s only one thing that I can sincerely look at and steady myself… And, right now, it’s not technically you. It’s… Lynette. Her plan. And… And that disgusts me… But, I know that if her grasp of the future is as good as she makes it seem, then there’s no way we’re not still together then. There’s no way this doesn’t work… Because if we have a kid? There’s… I just can’t imagine a future where that’s the case, and we’re not together. I wouldn’t ever leave. I’d never, never ever.”

He looked very sad. Incredibly so. Like he’d just crushed a few hundred bees under the mass of his body. It’d been so deeply emotional, that first night… He could see how he’d still been on the upward trend at that point. Early November had been easiest. Some could’ve called it manic. He organized a lot, and got a lot done. Thanks to her. That motivation. What else could he do besides be honest, and show her that it mattered, rather than just telling her.
Besides, she couldn’t stop herself from making him feel guilty: Why should he not indulge himself in a bit of emotional psyche-bombing.

Trisha slipped her hands up from where they were squashed between them to caress his face, unable to do anything but look reactively upset and concerned while gathering her thoughts.

Seeing him so sad made her chest feel tight, little panicked feelings rising towards the surface. She didn't want him to feel that way because of her… Because she still thought that he might leave her. Believed it was more likely than it wasn't. Obviously that would hurt him, just like that thought that he didn't want to be around hurt her. It didn't matter that part of his conviction came from a future Lynette had seen that Trisha struggled to believe in. Foresight was so outside of her reality, no matter how magically tinged it was.

Her own thoughts on that didn't matter right now. If he felt that sad about it, that meant he really loved her right now. He wanted that future, right.

“I- I know you wouldn't, if we have a kid together. I know, I really believe you, I don't think either of us would abandon the other like that." She managed to respond eventually, struggling with confirming something like that while being just honest enough. She couldn't lie and say she really believed they'd make it to there no matter what. He'd know it was a lie…

But she did believe his feelings towards her right now, even if that burning feeling he had was the most dominant.

“I’m worried that maybe there won't be exceptions. Not just because of my own anxiety… But wouldn't that mean I'm not the right one? I don't want you suffering forever." She continued, hands dropping from holding his face to grip his shoulders. She was doing her best to phrase it in a way that wasn't about her anxieties. She was worried she'd never get better too… But that wasn't the focus.

If she was never an exception, it wouldn't make her leave him. She'd cope and struggle no matter what. But was that really fair to him?

“I love you, and I really want that future with you, no matter how hard it is to get there. And I really, truly believe in your dedication towards me. I just…" She trailed off, eyes dropping down. What was she even trying to say? Wasn't she just making them go round in circles?
“I’ll try my best to have faith that future is real, and it'll work out. I know our feelings right now are real… And I don't want to make you feel like I don't. I… I believe that you'll never leave if you have the choice."

It was a white lie, sort of. In her mind, ‘if you have the choice’ included her pushing him to his breaking point… Then he wouldn't really have any choice but to leave, would he?
Hidden 8 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Home > Roquefort Island

The day passed along in quiet, subtle tension. Perhaps they’d talked about things, but ultimately the only thing that was settled between them was that something was aching. Neither trusted themselves enough to return to the comfort of one another in totality. Which had a strange, almost adverse effect of Casey being, frankly, more clingy than Trisha was. Of course, as things went, nothing was said about it. No need to: They both understood. It only added to the ominous air. His head in her lap, rather than hers in his…

But sometime during the night, Trisha’s new bracelet had some spontaneous enchantment issues. Casey determined that there was a great deal of physical interference, essentially basal Lux in the form of electricity, causing the size-modification enchantment to destabilize… Thankfully, Trisha had taken it off her wrist, otherwise it wouldn’t have been clear how the ultimate release of the magic would’ve affected Trisha’s hand.

As it was, one of the opaline beads expanded into its full size, about that of a large computer tower. This rapid expansion and loss of magical connection broke the entire enchantment, sending a shock so great that the last bead lodged itself in the back wall down to the brick when it hit. Thankfully the actual material had been magically grown opal to begin with, and its crystalline structure made it incredibly resistant to impact damage in spite of its hollow center. The edges were still inches thick just to be sure whatever component was inside stayed nice and safe. Though, the liquid coolant line went the way of the other connecting cables, snapping in half and spattering gallons of mineral oil across their bedroom.

At least they hadn’t been sleeping. Just laying there in the dark, staring at the same light-polluted sky above them. Only the moon was bright enough to outshine downtown St. Portwell when they were this close… So, they got it all cleaned up and fixed by the time the sun was up again, and Casey bundled the eighteen soccer-ball sized opals into his truck to bring to the one place he knew he could get it all fixed at once, and probably put back together better.
Though, knowing full well she’d expect him to want to go himself, Casey didn’t just invite Trisha to come with him.

”We’ve gotta go to my Grandparents’ place if you wanna get it fixed to practice more.”

It was a serviceable lie. One she could’ve easily pushed against by just working on getting used to the software in the computer without testing the actual harnesses on the bees. Even working on her own magic would’ve been plenty of an excuse, as she needed to get better at repeating the unique pheromone signature they’d attached to the bracelet and to the computer in the first place. It had to be well within a certain range of deviation, after all, or it’d be too easily recreated.

But Trisha was just as quick to accept it for many of the same reasons he was quick to presume her accompaniment. There was a reason for this to be the back and forth, the expectation of one fuelling the expectation of the other. For now, Casey knew they’d both be able to keep it up… The constantly ramping desire to please being passed back and forth like insecure football. But, when would that break?

For now, they were able to make for the south end of the bay, where the rich people really lived. There was the north of course, where Trisha had lived, and out in the woodland outskirts like the old Vanburen mansion or the Templegrounds. But, here in the south, they were rather gaudy about it. Mostly because this was the type of “We’re rich and we like boats” showoffs who couldn’t help but build the absolute most ridiculously out of place Med-style villa mansions they could.

There was a house for sale. One Casey recognized. Enough homework had to be done on it, routinely of course… Eyes on all members. Greyson included.

”I guess your friend Linqian ain’t keepin’ it.” Casey pointed out the window of the truck as they slowly rolled down the road and further on toward the coast.

The Chateau la Laurier was a bit more of a hike, as they had to take a ferry… But at least the family barge was expecting them, so they didn’t have to wait in line or deal with catching one at any particular time. They’d maintained some level of acceptable smalltalk the entire time, though it was a little more obvious that Casey was physically tired after missing another night of sleep. He figured they’d at least be able to reminisce a little bit more about Trisha’s newfound freedom from that time in her life.

”Should we snag it?” he asked with a giggle.

Trisha slowly looked towards where he’d pointed, eyes squinting at the for sale mansion. It wasn’t the worst in the area, but it was gaudier than anything she’d ever want to go near. She was definitely much more of the lowkey rich person- a lot of her family were. She couldn’t even say it was a made rich versus old rich kind of thing… The Devolas had probably been richer for more generations than the Vanburen had. At least, Trisha didn’t even know who her grandparents on that side were.

“Only if we demolish it and rebuild it as something not horrendous. But I don’t really want to risk the sad jazz filled haunting that might follow.” She managed to joke back, with a slight smile.

She wasn’t as tired as Casey, having at least gotten a few hours the night before. Her mind was incredibly active- with anxiety and stress. The bracelet explosion had been stressful enough, nevermind suddenly being dragged along to visit his grandparents. That had meant making herself look presentable in a much shorter time than she normally liked. It wasn’t really something Casey had to worry about, because it was his grandparents. But she was still trying to make an impression… Not that there were many outside of the slowly expanding inner circle that she’d show her makeupless, home self to.

She knew that there were loads of excuses she could use to get out of coming with him. There was other practice she had to do, and growing bees she had to tend to. She didn’t need to go with him to get it fixed. But she needed to go with him to prove that she was coping just fine right now. She could still deal with his family when things were a bit difficult between them, no matter how much she didn’t want to.

Her hands were clasped tightly in her lap, doing her best not to fiddle with the french braid she’d put her hair in- hiding the mess that it had been in. But she didn’t want to ruin that effort. She was forcing herself to not pull her knees up to her chest like she normally would when more anxious to normal, the main tell being the near constant fiddling with her engagement ring.

“There was no way Linqian was going to keep something like that. She’s always been very practical… That kind of house is the opposite of her taste.” She continued. She didn’t find talking about Sycamore members so bad right now. At least, she’d managed to make some amount of peace with some of them. In the end, Linqian and Greyson had done everything they could to help. Though she knew her and Linqian would never be able to be truly friendly, at least there was some respect now.

She was happy enough to go along with the topic. It was better than silence right now when she was so nervous.
“I was… Kind of surprised she was actually dating Greyson. Her and Britney both. They just didn’t seem like each others’ types.” Outside of the physical, that was.

Casey laughed at the thought. Two women? He’d met others with the same proclivity. He figured one was going to be enough to handle, potential for a daughter in the future even more horrifying given all the quiet implications surrounding that concept. How could Greyson have ever thought he’d be able to cope with what he had planned?

”Well, maybe there was always something between them. Her brother hated him, right? I remember her mentioning that, so- Oh, uh… Unless you meant Linqian and Britney. Then, I wouldn’t really know I only know Linqian, I was too out of the loop to have any real contact with Britney when she was first hanging around the Temple. Then when she left, she really never came back.” he explained, remembering those early days, when some of the listless Sycamites were still trying to find their way, and came knocking at the Temple doors.

Back then, Leon still had so many feelings about all of them. He used to get really upset when people brought it up, even. Nowadays, he was thankful that his brother was cleansed of that. At least, seemingly cleansed. Cass seemed to be helping.

”But, I mean… Yeah, I don’t see how that guy was really anyone’s type. Especially not two smart women. Maybe when you’re smarter than the bullshit, it becomes endearing? I just assumed he’d be super insecure and shit.” Casey continued to casually speculate as the house slowly rolled away from them.

It was another cold one, and rainy too. But with the rain was a predicted “heat wave”. They could expect sixty degrees for a couple of days, which was really just Winter’s way of teasing the Pacific North-West before strangling them with an arctic blast that promised December rain with chances of snowfall.
Perfect Christmas traveling weather.

”Like when we met him at that pizza place. You don’t just jump into acting like that when you’re confident in yourself… Unless you’re really malicious. I can’t fucking tell, is the problem. Was he spineless? Or was he evil?” he asked aloud, not exactly expecting Trisha to have any answers.

“He never came across as insecure… Then again, nor do I in public.” Trisha shrugged one shoulder. She wasn’t comparing herself to Greyson, just realising that there could be insecurities underneath his asshole persona.

Though, he was an asshole whether he was spineless or not.
“He was probably both. Which makes it stranger… Maybe Britney would find it cute, but what I know about Linqian, she’d just scoff and kick him when he was down. They used to always fight then flirt, then repeat, ten years ago- in the kind of way you’d expect them to have sex but not last.”

She furrowed her brow, thinking a little bit too hard about the exact motivations of a dead man.
“He can’t have been all evil. Sure, Linqian would ignore every red flag, but I don’t think Britney would. Her moral compass was… skewed, but far as I remember she always did things for the greater good. Not that I agree with what she did or anything.”

The forced Adjoining… Not a topic she wanted to get into, even if she wasn’t one of the victims herself.
“I’m less surprised Britney and Linqian have ended up close. Maybe they were able to put up with his bullshit because they had each other to go to? Or it wouldn’t have lasted if he was still around.”

Casey shrugged in an oddly cold way.
”Not like it lasted all that long to begin with. Just surprising they both let him do what he did, I guess. I mean, I get that there’s a lot of years of sentimentality between them, but the dude was fucked up.”

As if there was zero irony in Trisha dating someone who was probably more fucked up on a much deeper level. Greyson may’ve been a killer, he may’ve done unsavory things… But Casey didn’t imagine a guy like that being able to do what he did exactly. It’d be hard, at least. He walked around with his fancy gun that Casey’d been commissioned to make, and the armor to go with it. But the guy was ultimately an emulator. A poser. If he hadn’t been, he’d have signed up once the war hit home. Obviously, that didn’t happen.

”I guess my only hope is that the kids all get to, y’know, feel like they’re a family. Their moms’ decision to separate is fine, but the kids shouldn’t suffer over it. I mean, I guess if it’s all they know, there’s no harm done. But, I feel bad from an outsider’s perspective. Which doesn’t matter, it’s their life. I’m… Pretty happy about that. That they Linqian didn’t want to stick around. I like her, but she’s too prickly. I feel like we’d argue.” he shrugged, thinking about more than just the other night at the bar. There’d been a few interactions in the Cannery while they were there that left an awkward taste in his mouth.

“She is! Really prickly!” Trisha was suddenly overly enthusiastic, leaning towards Casey without getting in the way of his driving.

“See, this is why what Leon said was wrong. That we were really similar and should be friends.” Wasn’t exactly what he’d said, but close enough.
“Because if you think you’d argue, obviously we aren’t all that similar.”

She settled back down, puffing up her cheeks like an indignant pufferfish. Sure, her and Casey had argued the night before… But that was different. They only argued about big things, stuff that affected their relationship. Linqian would get pissed at everything. Though she’d been far more muted than Trisha remembered, but it was still different to her… Trisha didn’t always explode. Sometimes she just held onto it.

“I never expected her to stick around after… Though I was a little worried when she got so friendly with Cass. It would’ve been difficult for me if she was around more. Like…” She trailed off, playing with her ring as she continued.
“I was a little worried Leon and Cass might be the next couple she joined.”

Casey laughed aloud in genuine shock. That certainly wasn’t where he expected things to be going, but at the same time, he imagined she maybe had something there.

”I guess that would’ve been the next logical step… But, she’s pregnant! I doubt she’d feel like she could impose like that. Besides, she’s got another brother and stuff, right? Dude’s gonna need her help and shit probably.”

He stopped for a moment, a slight grimace forming.

”Are… Are we bad? For talking about this kind of stuff? There were times in the service we chopped up over other people’s problems without them being there, but in those days it was just because we were always packed together so tight. Now, I don’t know… Maybe I’ve just got a guilty conscience, but it feels… Eh. I don’t know. We don’t need justification for our private conversations. So, I guess I’m just uptight maybe. I started it anyway… So naturally. he shivered.

In truth, it was a little bit of his Mom still in him. Lynette was so quick to be able to make judgements, even if that judgement was hypocritical of her to make. Anything for a little pain. She could pick out the worst in everyone and lay it out on the table like a Tarot. Scary stuff. Only scarier that the perception had nothing to do with seeing into the future: They were just that keyed in. In tune with the subtlest things.

Trisha’s hands gripped tighter together, her body tensing as she strained to not get more anxious, or snap. He had started it… But she’d gone along with it easily. She wasn’t exactly a snoop, but she couldn’t pretend she never gossiped. Hypocritical who hated having her shit out in the open so much… But she was sure people gossiped behind her back too. It made her anxious, but she couldn’t stop it.

Maybe he was right that they were bad people for talking about this kind of stuff. Did she agree? Or did she tell him it was fine, comfort his guilty conscience? She didn’t know which was the better choice.

“I don’t know… It’s normal, I think, but maybe it is bad? Maybe we shouldn’t. I don’t want you to feel guilty because we’re talking like this. I’m pretty sure everyone does it, but I never really thought about it.” Trisha bit her lip, answer coming out a bit of a mix.

“We can move onto something else! Like… Uh…” Forcing conversation was never easy, but she didn’t want to dwell on the whole them maybe being bad people thing.
“The- The party tomorrow! Since it's, y’know… Tomorrow. It’s at the Arcade, right? That’s where Cass wanted it, at least. At least we’ll be able to take a social break by pretending to concentrate on some games.”

Oh great. Exactly what he wanted. A social break with someone. Like she couldn’t find the irony in the statement, he simply let it roll off his back and down the gutter as the feeling of annoyance passed.

”Oh yeah, that’ll be great I’m sure. Uh, how many people are actually showing up for this? Not much of a party if its the four of us and Rey, right?” he asked casually, not wanting her to think he was totally against it. Maybe he shouldn’t have emphasized the particular spot in what he was saying… But he couldn’t take that back now.

Oh, right, obviously he wouldn’t want to take a social break like that… She wasn’t any kind of exception for him like that right now. That was just selfish thinking on her part. He was the one struggling more anyway, so maybe she could just cover for him so he could sneak away alone.

She didn’t say anything about that, deciding to just ignore it. Another added anxiety.
“Uh, Cass invited the girls and Gin, I think? I thought it was going to be some big thing for safety… I guess I missed that it changed back to something smaller?”

Casey’s eyes got wide.

”Oh, God…”

He hadn’t quite remembered that… The other night had been a similar function: Lots of people there, most who didn’t even really know what the party was for, just to make sure any last minute retaliation didn’t feel like such an easy affair. He’d been so wrapped up in himself that the whole plan had been filed away in the back of his mind. But, Leon had been told. Which meant that not only was there a high chance that the place would be crowded with the Temple’s Adjoined and friendly Adepts, but there was a chance that people from outside the immediate area would be coming.

Fellow fighters. Hell, maybe even celebrities. He wouldn’t put it past Leon to make a place like an arcade into a goth-chique dream for a night. He’d talked about wanting to theme it for her, but that was all pending as far as he knew… Only because he hadn’t bothered asking!

”I… Need you to text Leon. Tell him I need to know how many guests are attending the party, because I think I accidentally left him in charge.” he grimaced.

“Oh… Shit… Alright.” Trisha scrambled to pull her phone out, sending the text before talking again.

“There… That’s… Let’s hope he hasn’t done anything crazy?” Who was she kidding, he probably had. It was for Cass, which meant not only that Leon would have gone all out, but she liked crazy. Which meant it could be a nightmare for Trisha and Casey.

“At least he’s not stupid enough to make the whole thing an orgy?” She tried to joke.

”God, not at the arcade at least… I think if it was something super public like this, he’d want to keep it separated. But, if we’ve got the place for the night, there’s a chance he’d use it so they can both schmooze with people he knows. Meaning, we can probably expect-”

Trisha’s phone dinged. Casey’s voice hitched. The whole world could easily collapse as the phone screen lit a small scroll of words like a fire across a hay field.

”210. Need list, already in office.”

“Two… hundred and ten…” Trisha read out loud, shock and dismay clear in her voice. It was a massive number.
“He said the list’s in the office. Do you want me to ask anything else? Like… The actual plans?”

She tried to stick to practical questions rather than panicking. It was something she could manage. She just had to treat it like going to the club. Ignore most of the other people there and concentrate on those she knew. Maybe it would make it easier? So many people nobody would notice if they were gone.

No, Reyna probably would, when she was undoubtedly abandoned by Cass in her excitement to meet as many people as she could.

“It’s… It’s a lot of people, Casey.”

”Yeah, just go ahead and ask him why he hates us. From me, not you; that way you don’t feel like it’s gonna be an argument. He’ll get-Y’know what?”

Casey quickly began to shovel around in his back pocket for his phone before remembering it was in the cup holder next to him. He pulled it out and unlocked it, handing it off to Trisha.

”Call him. Please. I’d rather he hears it from my fucking mouth.” he growled slightly, not intending her as the target but not acknowledging the potential backsplash.

Trisha flinched, quickly scrolling to find Leon’s number. She didn’t think this was a good idea, but what did she do, say no? Then he’d be angry at her. It was difficult enough dealing with him talking like this to her. It only increased her anxiety.

“Alright, I’m calling him.” She said, so he knew she was doing what he asked, doing just that.
“I’m putting it on speaker too, but I’ll hold the phone. I don’t think you should be too aggressive, right, it’ll make tomorrow more difficult, won’t it?”

”I’m- I’m…”
She was actually very right. Because he was about to make an ass out of himself. But, he cleared his throat. The phone buzzed, then clicked.

”Casey?”

”Hey…-” he started, sounding rather deflated.
”-That’s a lot, man.” is all he managed to really say.

He had plenty of jokes, or reasons to scream marked in his head, but ultimately all he could muster was defeat. But, at least it seemed like the immediate reaction wasn’t retaliatory frustration or anything. Actually, it was rather encouraging.

”Well, we already thought about that! So, I went and made sure that the office upstairs would be available. It’s really nice, Ralph’s a nice guy, he said thank you for your service, totally understands that you’d need a place to cool off. He said that he’d even leave you guys a nice wedding present, something on him. We’ve got you, Bro.”

Casey’s eyes welled up and he gave Trisha a look that she would possibly misconstrue. It scrunched up, and on the sleepy Friday morning residential road, totally devoid of traffic, he slammed on the breaks and began to weep openly without making a single sound. It took him more than a moment to get enough of a breath to ask the question he needed to.

”I-is… Is that good for you, Babe?” he did his absolute best to sound composed.

”What the hell? Case, are you okay? Trisha? Is he okay!?”

Was he okay? Trisha wasn’t sure. He’d just started crying. It had been so fast and sudden. Was he upset or touched? She couldn’t immediately tell, and her anxious mind immediately went to the negative. Maybe he wasn’t happy with it? Because… he’d be spending the cool off time with her? But he didn’t need to- no, it was probably something deeper. Because of his service?

There was no point trying to figure it out right now, rather than dealing with the situation. If he was trying to pretend he was alright to Leon, then she’d play along with that.

Even though her heart was pounding in her chest from the sudden stop and her further heightened anxiety, Trisha managed to sound perfectly calm. Calmer than she had before calling Leon. The last thing she wanted was for him to guess something was up with her too.

“He’s okay, don’t worry. He’s really touched by you doing that for him, I think.” She went with the positive guess that her anxiety had discarded, reaching out for Casey’s hand with the one not holding the phone up. She glanced over at him and managed a gentle smile.

“Of course it’s good for me. Thank you for organising that, Leon… I really appreciate it. We both do, obviously.”

”Well… Obviously anything for you two. You’re our people, right?”
”Hell yeah, we love you both!”

Casey nodded.
”I’ll get to that list uh… Later. Thanks, you guys.”

Without giving them a chance to have more of a conversation, he reached for the phone and hung it up without thought. He’d managed to compose his thoughts around the feeling he was having at least. Enough to talk, at least. Enough to keep her in the loop.

”Trisha… If you’ve ever got questions about whether or not you’re good enough to be worthy of my love? Or if you’ve got some kind of question about whether or not you’re worth it? Remember this moment.”

The phone went back into the cup holder, and he quickly reached out to grab her hand.

”Because you just made me better. Because you said what was right, and you knew. And you said it, and I heard you, and I followed you, and you made me fucking better. Because you were absolutely right. I was about to shout at him. And then I thought about you, and about you being here… And knowing Cass was there too? I would’ve looked like an animal. And I never even would’ve bothered to wait for him to say that he did anything like that for us. It would’ve been spit in their faces.”

He looked at her again, and the tears started to well up until he couldn’t hold them in again.

”Why do I want to hurt people I love!?” he started to sob, leaning over the center console to cling to Trisha.

Trisha turned in her seat, wrapping her arms around him to hold him tightly. She didn’t know what to say, because she didn’t have the answer. When she wanted to hurt people, it was always out of resentment. This was completely different. She couldn’t even try to understand the why, she could just hold him and try to offer some comfort.

“I don’t know, Casey… But you didn’t in the end. You could’ve ignored me but you didn’t. So I don’t think you… want to hurt people. Not in some psychopathic way. It’s reacting to things in an extreme way when under duress! You’re not a bad person, even if you feel like you want to do that.” She rambled quietly, rubbing his back gently.

She’d only told him not to be aggressive because the thought of a fight like that made her want to panic. It wasn’t because she was some amazing person.
“You’ll get through this… We will. I’ll say something like that as many times as you need me to, to help you.”

Casey nodded emphatically, head pressed against her. She was right, and right again. He didn’t understand why she didn’t see herself as smarter… If it was really all from things that had happened to her before, then why was it she hadn’t been able to replace those memories? She had plenty of good times… He just rolled from one bad faith to the next. A refused stone, whose only purpose was to be skipped.

”I love you… I really really love you…” was all he could muster. He just sat there for a long few moments wrapped in Trisha’s arms. Not being thrown.

Eventually, he was ready to sit back up, drying his eyes off on his own sweater sleeves.

”I’m a mess. My head’s a mess. I hope Papa has some sick wisdom, otherwise two hundred people are going to equal one heart attack. Were you… Really okay with their solution? I’m certain there’s alternatives.” he offered, not starting the car back into a roll yet.

Had she not sounded alright with it? Or was it because he wasn’t? For her, a room they could hide in to be alone together was enough. It wasn’t perfect in the way that staying at home would be, but it was enough. Like a safety net if she needed it while pushing herself through something she really should be able to handle.

When she was a teenager, and even in university, she’d always seen herself as a social butterfly. It was kind of funny… She’d just been lonely. Now that she had someone, she didn’t find herself having any desire to go to larger events she used to choose to attend.

“I’m really okay with it. It’s more than I expected… But are you? If Max doesn’t have any helpful suggestions, you really don’t have to push yourself and go. I’m sure we can come up with an excuse Cass and Leon will believe. I’d rather that than you have a heart attack.”

”Oh, I’m not having a fuckin’ heart attack, Trisha… It’s just a lot of people who probably know me. They’ll want to talk, and I won’t know what to say. What’m I supposed to say? Hey, thanks for the whole Allied Propaganda Tour fight series? Glad a bunch of officers got to see?” Casey shook his head, knowing that most of those fighters either escaped the war entirely, or got incredibly light tours in exchange for working the prop tour.

It was really the idea of having to be a person that he knew he wasn’t. Playing his brother’s game in this state of mind made him sick to his stomach, dying from seeing all the fake patriots and half-assers spread among his people. They weren’t all Temple members, but they were absolutely all grifters. Relics of the legacy that was Gravity. If only they all knew…

”That’s what nobody ever gets. It’s having to play fuckin’ nice. I know you get it, because you’ve had to do it too. But, *so many people are assholes.* And I can only give a fuck when I’m feeling alright. If I’m not, they all seem so fucking small!” he ranted, taking the turn toward the docks.

Trisha nodded. She did understand, and she always hit a certain point when she couldn't play nice with assholes either. Though she always tried no matter what, or how difficult it was, because the fear of being hated by people outweighed any other struggle. It wasn't exactly healthy to feel like she had to fake it until she cracked, but the alternative was being herself with people she barely knew.

“It’s shit." She answered honestly.
“It’s not like they even appreciate it. It's just expected that you're nice to them no matter how they are… And it sucks you're expected to talk to people just because they want to talk to you. Which is really hard when you barely know them, because it's always surface level and awful. You shouldn't have to give a fuck about them."

She did believe that, even if she rarely pushed people away. Only siblings like Tansy- people she'd been harsh to at a young age before she developed a fake shell, or that had pushed her enough she no longer cared.

“Maybe you can use me as an excuse for that kind of thing. ‘Oh no, my fiance wants to play a game with me, and she's the most important person in my life.’ Or I'll act like the overly controlling wife and drag you away." She managed a tiny giggle at that image. Like she found it easy to throw away the niceties.

“Or we make sure Cass is there as a buffer. She always knows what to say."

”Don’t be silly… I’d never force you in front of me so I can dodge some bullet, physical, social or otherwise. Though, I know you know it’s a nice thought. Considerate of you… Another reason to love you.” he admitted finally, making sure she knew that he thought it was a good thing to do ultimately.

He loved her, and would no matter what. Right now, however, it was equally as important for her to do the things he wanted her to in a subtle sense. Not like he was some taskmaster forcing her to tow the line, but it helped tremendously when she didn’t say things that annoyed him. The cloudy buffer between his emotions and other people’s actions was dissipated at best right now, so all he could do was try to avoid the worst parts of himself.

”And, I mean… Don’t get me wrong… I do know them. Remember, there was a time where I got to meet the people who would come here. Leon’s generation was already on the move: They all competed in world youth tournaments. Only difference was, I also competed in my age division. And won. Bunch of fucking jerks…” he trailed off as if there was more to that moment for Trisha to explore.

Trisha tilted her head, turning to look at Casey curiously. With him moving on, sort of, she couldn’t really push that she wouldn’t be forcing herself in front of him. It was a choice she was willing to make… But if it wasn’t what he wanted, she wouldn’t do it unless he really seemed to be struggling tomorrow. At least he wasn’t rejecting it because he was unhappy she’d even suggested it.

Jerks... Did they do something because you won? I assume they were at least bad losers? Pettily talking shit to you? I know the kind…” She could be a pretty bad loser herself, but she didn’t say that.
“Or… It wasn’t something more extreme, was it? They didn’t all wait for you outside and beat you up?”

In her curiosity, she jumped from a realistic scenario to something that mostly happened in movies.

”Not at once…” he sounded rather distant still, almost clamming up but doing his absolute best to remember what they’d talked about.

”I wasn’t the only one. So, y’know, I can’t be too mad. It wasn’t personal. Or, it shouldn’t have been.”
He was trying to find a way to describe it that wouldn’t sound utterly insane to her. There wasn’t one.

”Whatever competition you win, you get the prize, you get everyone praising you, all the excitement, whatever. Then, first session back at the gym, you take your test. You fight everyone in your age bracket, to see if anyone can beat you. If they do, they take the bragging rights for the competition you won. Because obviously if they beat you now, y’know, they’d have won if they were there. Even if they weren’t.”

Casey’s stories always followed something of a pattern. It seemed that every time he had to explain something from the past, it always pushed as comically close to “worse than you thought” as it could. And then he always had a cherry to top it.

”Get through that, you fight older kids. You keep your social status though, nobody really dogged on you if you lost to someone older except the older person who finally beats you.” he finished, looking rather sour.

”I want you to remember how freely I give this kind of shit up next time you wanna freak out over something shitty happening in your past. I can definitely handle that trauma.”

Trisha tensed, hands gripped tight together. She’d only asked because he’d implied there was something more… She hadn’t realised it was something traumatic until he almost didn’t say anything. And now he was immediately throwing it in her face.

Because he’d been able to tell her out without going through all the panic attacks and shutting down first. Obviously he’d be able to handle her trauma, because he had gone through worse than her. Over and over again… But she wasn’t worried about the actual trauma she had being a problem for him. It was all the past shit that pointed to her being the problem, and all the ugly little things about her it pointed out.

She took a deep breath, shoving down the mixture of annoyance and panic. She was doing her best not to rise to the bait and react to the jab. She needed to not escalate, to prove that she could really handle him being open and honest.

If she gave the wrong response, he’d snap back at her. It’d be worse. Just the thought completely ruined the deep breaths she’d tried to take, becoming shallower and more anxious.

“I’ll remember. You know I’m trying to be more open about my issues, Casey.” She managed to reply, defaulting to a strange politeness. Like she was trying to placate him. It would last if he went along with it, but eventually the feelings beneath the surface would boil over.

“I’m sorry you went through that… That’s really awful. You should’ve been able to enjoy your victory instead of getting beaten up more for it. I didn’t mean to press about something difficult like that.”

”It’s… Fine. I’m sorry I said that. If I had a different tone, maybe you’d feel like I wasn’t questioning your trying status. I’m… Not. Just, y’know, White Lux is nostalgia. It’s how I remember things, like holding onto a moment so I don’t lose the context. I’m sorry.” he replied, totally blowing off her apology about pressing him.

”It was shitty, but, like I said I wasn’t the only one who had to go through it. That doesn’t make it better, just easier for me to stomach. There was one kid, Bryce… Adept’s son, his Dad spent a lot of time with Furio. I’m pretty sure he was trying to kill me: He kept drilling me in the kidney over and over, I had a feeling I was gonna piss kool-aid. Thankfully Dad’s doctor made sure I was good.” he tried to drive his point home about why memory was important for him.

”I feel that moment in every fist fight I have now. It was the first time I knew that something was really wrong with my body, where it was telling me that I should run instead of trying to fight back. I stayed, cleaned his fucking clock. That asshole…” he continued, hoping that if he didn’t dwell on the problem previous, that she’d accept his apology and also simply move on from it. Because he couldn’t kowtow in that moment. It just wasn’t on the table.

Trisha let out a shaky breath, frowning a little. He hadn’t entirely accepted her placating, but he hadn’t pushed back. Just apologised for what he said… That was fine. It was enough to keep the negativity it’d brought up below the surface, to crawl out later.

“Is there a chance he’ll be there tomorrow?” She asked simply, frown deepening. She hoped Leon would at least not invite some asshole who tried to kill his brother in a stupid fight, but she wouldn’t put it past him. If he was there… She was sure there was some way to make sure he ‘accidentally’ got stung by a couple of bees…

“I know it’s in the past, but I can’t believe some kid would go that far. Did you dad just let it happen? Surely there’s rules in boxing about not doing shit like that?” Not that she knew anything about boxing, beyond Cass’ ranting and raving. Most of the time that devolved into her crazy fan life anyway.
“I guess that’s not helpful now. You’ve really been pushing through dangerous things for a long time, haven’t you?”

”Doctor Parko was on duty every single day with my Dad. He didn’t leave without ol’ Parko. Take a punch or two. Take a bullet. It was healed before you complained. He was Green and White, and never missed an ailment. He used to pinpoint my Dad’s micronutrient levels in his body instantly, and tell him what to eat for dinner that night to course correct. He’d conjure fucking fruits like pills. He was nuts… So, Dad never worried about us getting hurt. Parko would fix it.”

There were a lot of dead names… People who, Casey now knew, were people that Lynette couldn’t bully around herself. Andrade had been easy, and Furio did what Clarissa said, which meant whatever Lynette said. Out of all the options, the “Gang of Cosmic Disasters”, anyone who called his Dad a brother… They were all gone. And they were the only people he’d want to talk to. People from back then, who seemed so big when he was so small.

”Dad said we were supposed to learn to destroy. To break things down with our own physicality. We couldn’t do that if we were focused on all the little rules… Because you can’t teach killer instinct.” he explained further.

”But, Bryce being there? No. Bryce… Isn’t with us.” he finished in an ominous tone.

“Oh…” Trisha’s eyes widened, speechless for a moment. All the frustration she felt about how crazy it was that Casey had been taught like that, and that kids were allowed to do that shit just cause there was a magic healer, died down. He wasn’t with them… So he was probably dead.

Casey’s Dad was too. She could guess this Doctor Parko too, from the constant past tense usage. If she started ranting at him about how fucked up that all was, he’d just get upset at her. She didn’t want that. Especially not when it was her being upset over things that happened in his past. It wasn’t like she could change it.

“I’m… Sorry?” She didn’t really know what to say now.
“At least you… won’t have to deal with him tomorrow… God, that’s so fucked up to say, isn’t it? I, uh…”

She fiddled with her ring, frowning.
“I guess I just don’t like thinking about the younger you who got hurt so much because there was a magical healer to fix it all. You still get hurt… I wish I could go back and protect you from all of it. But I can’t… So I guess… I’m glad you told me about it, at least.”

She probably hadn’t been expecting him to laugh, but the uncomfortable reaction was funniest. It was incredibly domestic of her. It was the same response everyone gave him when it came to shit like that, until she said the actual real thing. The one that he would’ve heard another soldier say.

”Only fucked up part is why. I’m happy, honestly. One less mocking face. One less degenerate in the world.” he said very simply, not worried about whether or not she felt the same ultimately.

”I’m… Glad I told you too. You’re not, uh… You’re not bad for thinking that. Just like I don’t really think I’m that bad for saying what I said earlier. I’d save them if need be, but most of the people there… They’re phantoms. Ghosts from the past I just don’t want dredged up. If I gave a shit how they felt about me, I’d be much worse than I am now.” he admitted, not exactly explaining.

He hoped she’d understand given her own track record, but he could never be sure. So, he waited for her reply before speaking again, hoping that she’d ease into the confirmation. He wanted to demask… If that’s what he wanted, then he needed to act natural in front of her. She had to get used to him just talking/ Hopefully, she would.

“Must be nice.” Trisha mumbled, looking down at her hands.
“Not giving a shit about how they feel, that is. Not the whole ghosts from the past thing…”

The unspoken implication was that she couldn’t… Because she really couldn’t. It was like those two girls from high school she bumped into. She’d given too much of a shit about what they thought, when they were nothing in her life anymore. Whenever she met her own ghosts, she always got dragged back to the past with them or got scared it would somehow impact her current relationships if she didn’t act nice.

“I understand, I think. Not so bad that you want to kill them, but you don’t want to see them again.” She continued, glancing up towards him.
“There’s people in my life like that too. I’d probably feel similar at a high school reunion… Seeing them again only makes my life worse. Not that anyone tried to kill me… But I wouldn’t be upset if any of them ended up dead.”

”But you wouldn’t want them dead. You wouldn’t think about it?” he asked her with a rather calm inflection for a question with such implicit menace behind it.

He’d been another dogged assassin of the Temple for far longer than he’d been the Blade. People had died by his hand before. And back then, he felt far differently about it. Had plenty of justifications. Lynette could find reason by the basketful to push this evil little part of Casey into doing horrifying things. The truth was, being a soldier relieved that part. They said every village needed a psychopath, after all. Someone who wasn’t afraid of getting their hands dirty in order to cull the herd of the bad beasts.

”You know I’d make it happen, if it made you feel better… I hope one day, just knowing that brings you some kind of security. As sick as it may be… I’ll happily take the breath of others if it gives it back to you.” he asserted.
In the short distance, the image of the docks was in clear view. Furthest out, a large metal boat with what looked like enough cargo space for a few cars to be kept on it, bobbed wearily in the rough North-Pacific waters.

Trisha barely saw the upcoming docks, too busy staring at Casey. She should probably be disturbed by that kind of statement… But she wasn’t. She didn’t have the means, but she’d do the same for him. If anyone tried to hurt him, she’d gladly hurt them back tenfold.

She cared about other people’s opinions, but ultimately didn’t care about them. Not to the point where she wanted other people dead, but she wouldn’t really care if it happened. She was tunnel visioned on him, and their budding coven and family.

“I know… But if you did that for me, I wouldn’t be able to take it back myself.” She responded, lips pulling up into a slight smile.
“Not that I’d kill them. But I want to be able to ignore them all one day, and not let it get to me. It’s harder to do that if everyone who ever wronged me is dead.”

She glanced away out the front window, towards the docks. She wasn’t particularly happy they were almost there. While being with just Casey wasn’t as comfortable as it had been, it was still preferable to being around anyone else. It just made seeing others more difficult, really.

“You’re right that I wouldn’t want them dead like that. Maybe I thought it when I was at my most hurt, but not because I actually wanted it to happen. But… I like that you’d do it for me, even if I wouldn’t ask. I guess that makes me a little sick too.”

”That’s obviously the part of you that loves me. he spoke simply, not exactly expanding on what that meant for her as he pulled them into the loading ramp for the dock, then onward to the ferry itself. It was just enough time for Trisha to press it if she wanted to.

“What do you mean?” Trisha furrowed her brow, twisting towards him in her seat. That the sick part of her loved him? Because… Of what he was like? Or because of how she acted? She… Knew what he meant, really, but she still asked the question even as she pressed further.

”Do you think that only the sick part of me loves you? That’s stupid. All of me does.”

Casey looked at her with a frown.

”Your boyfriend offered to kill your high school bullies a decade after they mattered. And you know I would. But you don’t shy away? You don’t bat an eye? I just have a hard time imagining a world where there isn’t a little piece of you, or maybe a big piece, that isn’t repulsed by me… Probably because there’s a big piece of me that’s repulsed by me.” he said rather flatly. Yet, he still reached out for her hand as the truck came to a stop in the ferry’s iron belly.

”If it’s all of you, then I can accept that. I know it’s real.” he concluded calmly, looking at her one last time for confirmation, and praying nothing changed in her eyes.

Trisha stared back at him, face scrunched up a little. It wasn’t a soft expression, because she couldn’t drag up that super warm, sappy love when she’d felt like everything was gearing up towards a fight. She looked indignant, almost a little fierce, like she was preparing to push up against him. But there was no disgust, and the love she felt for him was still there. Just it wasn’t so gentle… It was burning.

“It is all of me. And you don’t have to imagine a world like that, because it’s this one. I don’t care about them and I love you. I’d only be upset that it might be something you struggled to live with.”

Maybe more than a little bit of her was sick… She wasn’t sure. While she’d been hurt by so many people in her life, she had spent a lot of the time just drifting. But if she’d been really pushed- or if she’d ended up in much worse situations- maybe she’d have that capacity too. She probably did… She’d already been thinking about hurting the people that hurt him.

And she did have to kill people when fighting the Stygian Snake. People mind controlled by it, but underneath that they were innocent. Maybe it was different, because it was to survive… But she’d do something like that for someone she loved this much.

“I’m not repulsed by you and there’s very little you could do to change that.”

”Good.” was the only reply. It was probably a lot colder than he’d intended, but at the same time, he didn’t feel like there was a great deal to say. He didn’t want her getting any more keyed up over it than she already was, and figured a short and sweet answer that expressed his pleasure with the situation would be more than enough.

Not that anyone came out to greet them on the ferry. Its gate closed automatically, and without really warning them, it began to putter across the waves. Casey pulled the emergency brake to make sure they didn’t do any rolling from the waves. Not that they would… The boat, you see, was just another Tuesday morning masterpiece for the Richoux.

”But we’re still sending 8th Street to prison, right?” he joked, trying to win her back over.

“Why wouldn’t we?” Trisha asked, looking a little confused.
“As opposed to killing them? Obviously. They deserve to suffer living in some shitty prison somewhere.”

Though most people would probably prefer that to dying…

She did tense up, though it wasn’t because of his short reply. Sure, her anxiety had her misreading into a single word answer like crazy, but she was doing her best to not let it get to her. It was a confirmation. She was trying to think of it like that.

It was the ferry starting to move, and her anxiety spiking with it. She was fine with boats, but the choppier the sea was, the more nervous she got… And the more likely she was to get sick. Thankfully it had been clear, if cold, when they went to Misty Island- and she hadn’t been as anxious in the first place. But today was pretty miserable with the rain and the wind. She’d seen how choppy the water was. Fuck, Casey would get upset if she threw up in the car, wouldn’t he?

“How long is the journey, again? Not that long, right?”

”Which part? The boat? Or putting up with my grandmother?” he asked sincerely before deciding to just answer.

”Boat’s probably thirty minutes. We’re headed down the coast and out a bit. Barely in St. Portwell still. But, we could be over there for a few hours at best. If it’s real bad, it’s an all-day thing. Which is why I wanted to bring you… For company.” he asserted, making sure she knew he wanted her there, and wasn’t just bringing her because she’d make a big deal if he didn’t… Even if she would.

Trisha went a little pale at his answer. Both parts contributed to it, really. A whole day with his grandparents would be difficult to deal with when she didn’t really want to see anyone else. The thought of thirty minutes of being swung back and forth, anxiety and nausea increasing until it all spilled out, was more pressing in that moment. He’d probably regret bringing her when she ruined the car. It wasn’t so bad yet, but they were probably still in the shelter of the dock. Maybe it would be alright along the coast, but the further out they got the worse it would get.

At least he had wanted to bring her. Supposedly. It wasn’t an obligation, because he thought she’d get upset at being left behind.

“I’m glad you wanted to bring me, but uh…” She bit her lip. This was stupid, now he was going to get upset that she couldn’t just say it. Because she was embarrassed and it was gross!
“Is there a bathroom on the boat? I might need to… give it more of my company… When we really hit the rough water…”

Casey had been on enough boats to see how seamen’s eyes got when they were ditching port. The ones who needed their daily doses of dramamine, who couldn’t get it right away… He did his best not to smile, remembering all the verbal lashings he’d gotten for taking their problems like jokes meant he wasn’t exactly inclined to sit and listen to more. At least he had good news to give her.

”Oh… Oh, right. When we went out last, it was a decent day. You weren’t worried, I guess. Uh, don’t worry here either. Sylvie also gets sea sick, so there’s no way they’d employ this boat without making sure that wasn’t a problem for our dear, sweet Nana. Just ignore all the water that gets in, it gets flushed right back out.”

This didn’t directly explain that the boat’s profile was magically affected to remain totally deadlocked to a pre-lain track spanning the bottom of the bay and out toward Roquefort Island where the Chateau was. Nor did it explain that, thanks to this positional locking, it was completely immune to listing and tilting… Because it wasn’t actually floating.
This had the side effect of causing great spouts of water to impact the side of the boat and wash up over the side, having nothing else to do as waves besides break against the equivalent of a port shipping pier in the middle of the water.

Big waves usually completely flooded the open belly, so on rainy days, the boat made sure to close its canopy in order to prevent most of the bilge from filling. There wasn’t even a Captain, the ship’s mechanisms entirely based around Big Max’s insane magical inventions.

”If you’ve gotta hurl anyway, just open the door and hurl on the deck. It’ll get washed away with everything else.” he concluded.

Trisha grimaced at that image. She didn’t really want to lean out of the car and just throw up. If she had to, she had to, but it wasn’t particularly pleasant. Thankfully, if the boat wasn’t going to rock like crazy, her nausea shouldn’t be too bad. It was just the anxiety.

“I should be fine.” She managed to relax a little bit, tension slowly easing. The idea of water getting in made her a little nervous, but she’d have to trust him when he said to ignore it. He wouldn’t bring her on some crazy boat death trap… That much she was confident in.

“At least I don’t have to worry about a freak wave capsizing it, and me drowning in freezing cold, choppy waters because I still can’t swim.” She joked, even though it was a genuine fear of hers whenever on a boat in rough seas.

”Anything short of a bomb, we’ll be fine. There’s a big copper cable about sixty, seventy feet below us, and it’s magically holding the boat totally still. Like a weird magrail.” he explained a little further, not wanting to insult her intelligence by overexplaining, but desperately wanting to talk about cool magical technology.

”If you’d feel better, we can cuddle.” he offered, cranking his seat back so there was room for her to crawl over the console and into his lap.
”I’ll even disable the horn, so you can sit your bum on the front of the wheel without honking us to deaf.” he hoped she’d get the joke.

Honking them to… Deaf? Not death- Oh. She started giggling.

“But I’ve always wanted to deafen someone with my ass.” She playfully pouted. The joke helped her get over her hesitation about whether to cuddle him or not… He offered, but did he really want to? But he was doing things to make it more comfortable, and joking about it. It was fine.

She leaned over to pull off her shoes before carefully climbing across the console to curl up in his lap. She immediately cuddled into him, head resting on his chest as her tension eased. She really did feel better here… Much less anxious about external forces sending them to the bottom of the ocean.

“Thanks… I feel safer.” She said softly, enjoying his warmth for a moment.

But her mind was still too active for her to just cuddle and relax… So she easily latched onto something that would actually lead to conversation. It just happened to be exactly what Casey wanted to talk about.

“If the boat’s sort of like a magrail, does that mean we’re actually… levitating? It just looks like we’re floating on the water?” She asked curiously.
“Wouldn’t it have been easier to make a… Magically stable boat, instead of installing a copper cable under the water?”

”Well, technically the cable was already there. It’s the main junction cable out to the southern islands. Pretty sturdy stuff, even if most of it is obsolete now that they… own Roquefort, and all…”

It was hard to remember that, in spite of all Maxwell’s money he made from his career, and how much money the Temple itself was capable of making, somehow Casey’s grandparents managed to meet a level that probably looked familiar to Trisha. There was new money, and then there was old money. Old money came with all the old connections. All the right people cared about that kind of money. James Vanburen had the wealth, but for all that was in their fortune, it was a known fact that he was anomalous. At least, known to people like the Temple, who had a very clear track record of the day that Vanburen Holdings was established.

So, she’d missed all the stuff about connections. People to talk to who could make things happen, like the senator of Oregon who “donated” Roquefort Island to the Church of the New Dawn as part of a lobbying promise made not to them, but to the Temple, whose operations span the state and beyond. A great deal of constituents were Temple adjacent, and when the stewardship of Roquefort came into question, so many phone calls were made between so many different individuals, that it certainly looked like some strange French annexation happening in sleepy St. Portwell. Finding the authorization, or anything before the ceremony that handed over control to the Church, was basically impossible.

Thus, they had an easily sustained magical powersource out there, and had long ago turned their connection to the mainland into nothing more than a convenient pathway for the boat to follow.

”But, yeah. It’s just floating. We could float it a few dozen feet above the water, but then you’ve gotta deal with cloaking it, and dealing with a port that isn’t full of people sometimes. It’s a much easier illusion to present; that it jiggles around slightly. It only does that near shore. Programmed in, essentially.”

It's true, he did want to talk about the magic machines… She could already see a much more dealable grin on his face.

They owned the whole island? She didn’t even know how much an island would cost. Could you just buy an island? She’d never imagined you could off a city like this.

“People are going to start thinking I’m the gold digger.” She joked lightly.
“We don’t own a whole island… I don’t think. If we did, Dad probably would’ve dumped us on it every holiday.”

She wouldn’t put it past Tansy to try to buy an island just to host things, but she probably didn’t have that much money by herself. Ezra was far too sensible to spend so much money on something like that… Unless it was to make it a crazy expensive resort.

Smiling slightly, she switched back to think about the crazy magical boat, latching onto Casey’s enthusiasm.
“Does it always jiggle the same amount, or does it vary depending on what the waves are like? I guess people probably don’t look that closely… I can’t say I’ve ever scrutinised how much a boat sways as it comes into the port, unless I’m worried about what it's going to be like when I get onto it.”

He found himself especially pleased that she was asking questions he had answers to. Questions about the mechanics were easiest to get through, because he knew every single little spell his Grandfather had used to make this boat do what it did to begin with. All the bells and whistles splayed out in front of him, and he could see it all so clearly.

”It knows how choppy things are. Actually, if it’s docked up, it totally disconnects from the line, so that it floats like a normal boat besides the basic anchor point that it uses to stay relatively close to shore. Then once it reconnects, it takes the level of sway, and slowly reduces it until we get out past the initial wharfs. Then, there’s enough treeline that nobody can see us pass the horizon line.”

Grinning, Casey shuffled one hand slightly and went for his phone to pull it out. She could watch him try to start the camera, only for the picture it produced on the screen to be completely blurry. But, as soon as he left the camera, the phone was fine again.

”It also breaks all observational optics. Phones can’t take pictures of it while it's attached to the line, because it outputs a Luxal signal that detects aperture lenses specifically. Scopes, telescopes, binoculars, fuckin’... Big television cameras. Whatever’s got a big ol’ curved lens to take pictures with or see shit far away, it totally fucks with.” he slid the phone back down.

“Wow." Trisha's gaze moved from his phone back up to him, looking genuinely impressed.

She was. It seemed like an insane amount of magic… To her, the amount Casey had and used was already impressive. There weren't many Adepts that strong in Sycamore and all the Adjoined that were struggled to control their magic. So such incredible use of it was still a lot for her to take in. She knew that Sylvie and Max were grandmasters, and when they visited she realised how magic use was just normal for them… But this was a lot. Especially that it broke observational optics.

“That’s amazing. Do they do that elsewhere? Breaking all observational optics? It seems really useful… Well, I guess it's only useful if you're famous and might have stalkers or paparazzi trying to take pictures of you." She giggled a bit. It probably didn't block any magical spying, sadly.

“Are you going to be able to do something like this one day? Is our land going to be filled with crazy magical vehicles to take us all over it?"

”Not quite. I imagined a honeycomb property, like the Temple. But, y’know, built by someone who gives a fuck. Why bother having one big house, when we can have eight or ten little houses, and choose where we wanna be? It just takes creative solutions for other stuff. Maybe even in ways you never considered. Probably because they’ll be problems you never would’ve had without me.”

He wasn’t thinking problems that had to do with fighting. More like “How do we move our food from one home to another without making it a big deal every time?” His own pet solution was distributor pipelines. Press a button, it miniaturizes and locks all the fridge shelves, then slides them out backward into a small pipe that directly transports the locked foodstuffs into the selected fridge.

”Like, y’know, you’re working on something and suddenly I wanna be in a new place? We make a flip-desk. We find a Purple Lux Adept, and we form a pocket inside the desk that you can flip the surface into, and it just pushes it out onto a different desk with the same properties nearby.”

The truth was, he could already do most of this stuff. Unlike her, he didn’t just have a spirit uninclined to inform him of things. He had books. Plenty of books to read about spells, and plenty of time and desire to cram whatever he could into his head.

”But, maybe it would be fun to have, like, a train on the property. For the kids, y’know?”

Trisha smiled at that.
“Only if it looks and acts like one of those old steam trains… They're much more fun, the kind that kids would really love to ride on."

It was nice to think and talk about the future, especially when things felt difficult right now. It helped her remain a bit more stable… Every time they talked about it, she began to believe it would happen more. And she really did believe it was what he wanted as well right now.

Though she didn't really understand the loads of small houses versus one big one. What was the benefit of having so many? There must be something, outside of creative magical solutions to problems Trisha never would've even imagined. But she just couldn't see it… it seemed a bit strange to her. Wouldn't it make all of the houses feel less like home, because they didn't spend as much time in them?

“Why would you prefer more small houses? For… the change of scenery?" She tried to guess a reason, hoping her genuine interest would come across rather than it seeming like she was questioning that desire of his. Or against it… Really, she just wanted to understand. If it would make him happier, she would go along with it. He was her home rather than any actual house, after all.

This question was a lot more difficult to answer, but he still knew it… And in the interest of honesty-

”I never felt like I had anywhere to run as a kid. Nowhere that felt immediately safe and comforting. Say one day we fight… Rather than let uh, Junior or whoever, have to listen to it all the time, why not have another place to go immediately? To retreat, to regroup,and recoup, and think for ten minutes about something that isn’t sad or scary. I had this little picture book when I was little. It was a Professor Sways book. I always liked how he drew everything so colorful, and kind of without detail. The houses and everything always looked so creative. And I wanted to escape into that book. Ever since, I’ve… Had an idea of what I wanted. Part crazy house, part art project… All home. he finished, looking incredibly thoughtful if not a little sad in his expression.

Trisha hugged him a bit tighter. She hoped by the time they had children they'd gotten through most of the issues they might fight about… Or at least have figured out how to do it without fighting. But maybe that wouldn't happen. She wasn't sure how long it would take her to really get through her own issues, and there'd only be so long she'd be able to wait before she wanted to have a kid with him.

She definitely didn't want any children of theirs growing up scared, or not feeling comfortable in their home. She didn't want Casey dealing with that either… Even if it meant they needed to swap between houses, or go to separate places for a short while. Any thought of possible separation tugged at her anxieties, but he didn't want it so they'd have different places to live. Just so that they could both feel safe… Right?

Even if it would make it easier to be separate.

“I’ve never read the book before, you'll have to show me sometime." She said softly. She didn't really remember any picture books she'd had. Probably bulk bought books for all the children in the house of that age… If she thought hard enough, she could vaguely remember shiny covers and a cold feeling. The only person that ever tried to read them to her was one of the Nannies, and Tansy a couple of times. She'd quickly grown out of reading them herself, forcing herself onto books with more words in the hope of getting some kind of attention.

“Home’s never really been a place for me. The closest anything came to it before I met you was the apartment I had with Cass and Diyah… What I mean is, I'm happy for our house to be houses, and to be whatever you want. Anywhere we stay together becomes like a home to me… And I don't want our kids to grow up like either of us. Hopefully they won't have to run, but I want them to have places they can feel safe in. Multiple places, not just one room they lock themselves in, so… The crazy, artistic houses sounds good."

”I hope it’s not a crazy concession… But, when we get there, I’m sure we’ll have another talk about it. One with a lot more concrete expectations.”
He leaned downward, kissing her on the top of her head as his hands slid up to rub her arm.
”But… Other things will happen. Funny Orange Lux contraptions and stuff, yeah. So, maybe get ready for that kind of thing while we’re here? Just for you to see some potential options?” he giggled.

Trisha smiled up at him, shaking her head against him slightly.
“Alright, I'll try my best."
Hidden 7 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Roquefort Island.

Roquefort Island’s various structures loomed in the distance as the boat got closer and closer, eventually arriving at an incredibly well-kept pier structure that the boat easily slotted itself up alongside. Trisha would’ve been able to feel the moment the boat disconnected from its magical line, the entire thing almost immediately starting to wobble and sway again as Casey pulled forward and drove off the side ramp and down the pier toward the dock houses and various facilities. There was also a gate before them, and high walls all around the island that closed off access from just about every point.

It was this gate, and the booth next to it, where Trisha would’ve really been able to see how intricate the island was. At one point, it’d been open to the public as a historic site. Nowadays, thanks to several different ordinances they’d taken out, the Richoux had privatized the island completely. They were more than allowed to put the walls and the gate up, as well as denying entry to anyone uninvited. The gatehouse booth was shuttered closed, and as Casey drove the car up next to it, he whistled sharply out the window.

Without fuss, the gate clicked open and swung wide enough to accept the truck being driven through it before closing again. They were now on a single lane of tarmac, with beautiful but unlit lanterns lining them on either side as they slowly rolled through the property. As there was an event so recently, and the New Dawn was expecting trouble brewing because of the Temple situation, the property itself was rather crowded. Dozens of cars in a lot, and just beside it looked like a makeshift military camp with an equal number of canvas tents put up in neat rows. Fires blazed, and from Casey’s half-open window, they’d both be able to hear music playing and people talking loudly in French.

”Ouiiiiii. Oui Ouiiiiiiii.” Casey practically mocked them, flat affection and lack of accent clearly marking a joke.

Then, there were the actual structures. Some seemed like simple barns or warehouses, but the closer to the actual hill they got, the more they seemed like actual homes that people lived in.

”Some people keep their vacation homes here. We’re close enough to the South-West that people like my cousin Wyno use it as a base of operations for when she’s doing fashion shows and stuff in Cali. But, I’m pretty sure everything’s occupied by the Dawncorps at the moment.” Casey explained casually.

“The Dawncorps?" Trisha questioned, brow furrowing slightly. There were so many names and organisations that she struggled to keep up… Or more like, stopped trying when it came to the broad and strange magical religion.
“Like, your grandparents'... Sect's private army kind of thing?"

She really couldn't remember what the name was for what Sylvie and Max fell under. Casey would probably give her a hard time if he knew she just thought of it all as the Temple, when it really wasn't.

“The island's nice, though the massive wall's a bit intimidating. I suppose that's the point! I'm not sure I'd enjoy vacationing somewhere I can't see past the island, but the interior is really pretty too."

”You’ll love the windows in my folks’ house. They accept the magical signal from the walls, and totally remove them from the scenery when you look out of them. The other houses have that too. I could technically do that with our place, if you wanted. It’d take me installing a few beacons out in our view, but the whole port district could disappear if you wanted that.”

Saying “disappear” like he was going to completely destroy the district and sweep it into the sea would’ve been incredibly ominous if it hadn’t been contextualized by the previous statements.

”It’s just a pain, because the buildings blocking the nicest parts are kind of big and public, and if someone sees me climbing the shit, I’m sure I’ll get some phone calls made for me.” he laughed.

”But, you were right otherwise. Soldiers of the New Dawn. Pulled directly from the French Military, as well as the Foreign Legions. They’re well respected, especially in the EU, since the Order makes up like twenty three percent of France’s sanctioned Adepts.”

He paused for a moment before turning and smiling.

”I… Hate to say that I feel like its necessary for the government to regulate Adepts and magic. But, with the world getting so big now, I feel like its necessary to have a body of laws in place to punish people for not using their magic fucking responsibly. Like, even Emily G. Reed: Her and the stooges will probably get locked away on some bullshit R.I.C.O. case as a gang rather than getting locked up for magical crimes… Even though the magical crimes are way more severe.” he started to babble, his brain holding him hostage as they took a trip down the complicated road of magical regulation between nations.

Trisha nodded in agreement. It wasn't something she knew much about… She was out of touch with the magical world, nevermind law enforcement related to it within their world. From her point of view, there never seemed to be much. It relied on good people with magic getting rid of the bad ones. Like they'd ended up doing with Dollhouse. What little she actually knew about groups that actually enforced some kind of magical rules came from not so pleasant events.

“I agree, though I don't really know how this stuff works. I'm not fond of something like registering magical people or anything, but it makes sense there should be magical punishments for magical crimes." She looked down in her lap for a moment. They were almost there, so what was the problem in saying something he probably didn't have time to pursue.

“There are in some cases, though, aren't there? Some groups that imprison the worst threats across all the universes. My Dad was, uh, part of something like that. Some super multiversal law enforcers… Or maybe more like vigilantes? I don't know. I only found out when someone murdered him because of it. Not that they did anything to help after."

Not having known that particular detail about James Vanburen made him more than a little shocked. Though, the feeling quickly faded as he started the mental math that lead him straight to the answer he thought made most sense:
James Vanburen was a Jumper… A realm-hopper, whose life had probably been long spent doing things that had absolutely nothing to do with having a family or being anyone’s everything. The only real question now was why.

Did he end up here because he was on the run from his own? Did his people get wiped out by some greater entity, and he fled to Shimmer to hide? Trisha was right in that he didn’t have much time to press her, but that didn’t mean he didn’t have an immediate comment that he couldn’t stop himself from making.

”Your Dad was fucking what!? I thought he was, like, some fucking underground kingpin who decided to go legit! What do you mean he was part of some Multiversal knightly order or some bullshit!?” he asked with a great deal of shock as they pulled up the hill and around the bend.

From off the island, this building had been the most noticeable on the horizon. Mostly because it practically rose up from the sea like a pillar of stone. The main house seemed to be less a house, and more a fortress that had, like many of the other rocky coastal islands up and down St. Portwell’s bay, once housed the American Navy and some of its facilities. The outside pier was a remnant of such days, and this austere stonework structure looked to be ripped straight from the pages of a civil war novel, with plenty of openings for cannons and gun emplacements.

However, from that stonework and concrete base, a whole other structure seemed to be naturally growing. The main part closely resembled a two-tone Tudor-style manor house with the cross bracing beams visible between the plaster and stucco finish. But this place also seemed to be utterly bedecked in bronze and brass, with the rear holding the actual tower itself that climbed several more stories up. It was choked by cables, wires, conduit boxes, and hundreds of other connections that ran the total height of it’s span and only disappeared by crawling through the underside of the tower’s bulbous, almost spherical top floor.

If Trisha’s magic was open at all, she’d feel the disruption of this place. This kind of industrial technomagic was as far from the natural world that the Queen came from as possible, and would give any spirit of nature a lasting sensation of depression as the world they were born to was clearly dead in this place.

Trisha reactively shuddered. Since the Queen handed her magic over to Trisha, she'd become more open to these things- though not necessarily on purpose. For now, it was like how she sensed pheromones: something that was always turned on. Though the base level wasn't so strong she was detecting normal magical fluctuations- that would require actual concentration. But this hit like a brick wall of technology, making her feel sick.

At least the Queen was still asleep and didn't need to deal with any of the effects herself.

“I mean… Yeah, Dad was part of something like that, I guess. I really didn't know until he was killed for it, and I only know because I was there when it happened. It's not exactly easy to bring up… I guess having tens of kids with different women doesn't really fit the image." Trisha managed to respond, a bit worried that Casey was upset at her for withholding it. But it wasn't really on purpose… The only effect it had on her life was Adjoining with the Queen thanks to James' artifact collection, and his death.

Two pretty major events, sure… But she still struggled to reconcile the Father she'd known and whatever he'd done in the past. Been still doing while a fair few of the older kids were around.

She tried to smile at him, though it looked more like a grimace. She'd almost prefer they turned around and she had to continue this conversation, rather than going in there.
“Most of his past is still a mystery, honestly."

He’d stopped the truck and turned the engine off before she was done speaking… But nothing could’ve stopped him from letting his jaw slack completely while she totally bypassed everything that she was saying in terms of intelligent consideration. It’s like her brain was either too repressed to see what he saw, or she was actively avoiding it. Either way, he couldn’t not say something. At least he was so stunned that he had a moment to gather himself and consider how best to present this to her.

”Your Father… Isn’t from Shimmer, is he?” he asked with an incredibly stupified look on his face.
”As in… Honey, I… I think that, maybe uh…”

Of course he was the way he was. He spent whatever time he’d had here on Shimmer probably hating it. Entirely trapped as some transdimensional refugee, hiding in a new world without connections… The women, the children, the companies, the industry…

”Well… Don’t you think there’s a possibility that the reason he was so cold is because he’s… From another place? Like, one he always wanted to go back to, but never could!? That maybe he left behind a life that he was happy with, and all of what he did here was just to, like… Protect himself? he finally managed to ask the question on his mind aloud.

Trisha had never thought about it like that. She hadn't really been able to think about the implications of it, because the shock and grief had been too much at the time to start picking through it. Maybe he did have a happy life in some other world he had to leave behind. But it wasn't like anyone forced him to have all those children? Did it really excuse the emotional neglect of her and all of her siblings?

“I don't know… he wasn't cold to all of us. He was doting on Tansy and Sabrina. Maybe he just got bored after a while- Maybe you're right." She frowned, staring down at her hands. Her breathing got a bit quicker, and the nausea was trying to crawl out of her stomach.

“You mean you think… he had all of us just to protect himself? How would that even help? He still died! He died to someone who lived with us for years!" Her hands moved up to cover her face, trying not to really freak out over the information. It didn't change anything, did it? It wasn't like it changed how she'd been brought up. Just her perspective…

“If he was really from somewhere else, and all that was the case… Wouldn't that make me a bad person for hating him so much?"

Casey immediately shook his head.
”I can’t imagine a scenario where that’s the case. It wasn’t like you should’ve felt guilt or anything over how he chose to spend his life. And that includes anything from before you were born. He still could’ve been nice to your mom, or the other women he was with. He could’ve made his life work. But, if he was in a constant state of ‘woe-is-me’, then it was his own fault for not seeing that.”

Having no love for James Vanburen didn’t really change his opinion. He could just as easily sit and make judgement calls about his own beloved father, because he was able to observe the situation at an objective level. Or, objective to him at least. Even reality seemed to have a spectrum of objectivity these days…

”He chose to do the thing a bunch. Really, it just makes me feel like he was experimenting or something. I don’t know… Why have so many kids without any real purpose?

“Ezra said it was about building a legacy, or some bullshit like that, once." Trisha grimaced. That didn't really seem like a good reason to have so many children with different women. He could've done that with one wife… Then again, there were plenty of them who were less than nine months apart.

“Experimenting makes more sense, right?! But how- It's not like he sought out loads of powerful Adepts or anything. He-" She shuddered a bit.
“I guess most of the women he got pregnant were pretty… successful in one way or another. The ones we know about. But why? Does that mean I'm- I was just an experi- Ugh."

She curled forward, clamping her mouth shut as she tried to push down the nausea that was really gripping her now. More than the though her whole birth was part of some asshole's experiment, it was the constant feeling of death pressing down on her from the nearby building. At least the sick feeling overwhelmed the heavy despair that it brought through her connection to the Queen.

Casey didn’t really know the details of his assumptions. That’s why they were purely speculative, and he didn’t invest a great deal of emotion into them. There had been just as high of a chance of her refuting him with evidence as there was of her going along with what he was saying. But, the last reaction?

”Baby? The island doesn’t rock with the ocean, Love, what’s wrong?” he asked, quickly shifting in his seat to let his arms move and brush her hair out of her face so he could look at her expression.

Trisha’s face was full of strain, eyes scrunched until they were almost shut. She took deep, heaving breaths as she did her best to just not be sick. They were going to get closer! She’d have to get used to it… Or figure out how to shut off whatever magic was causing her to be bombarded by waves of technological death.

“It’s the- House.” She managed to get out through gritted teeth. Her hands gripped her knees, knuckles getting paler.
“Feels- Horrible. H- How do I- Mmf, no-”

She was losing the battle with her body, reaching out to hurriedly shove the door on her side open. She didn’t even manage to get out like she’d intended, leaning out to throw up what little was in her stomach onto the tarmac. Thank God she’d skipped breakfast.

Which was perfect timing, as the massive figure of Maxwell the eldest was sauntering his way down the path from the entryway just in time to watch Trisha vomit. The elicited response was actually a little heartwarming all things considered, as Maxwell’s first response was not to become disgusted or judgemental. Rather, breaking from his purposeful stride into an unreal, almost floating jog as he made way for the car like an approaching rhinoceros.

”Mon deux! Trisha!? You suffer from the sea, I understa-”
Casey was quick to cut him off, as he’d already gotten out of his seat and started rounding the truck to Trisha’s side.

”Papa! It’s not the sea, Sir, she said something about the house!” he replied with a frantic look on his face, like he was considering bombing the entire structure just to stop this feeling from taking over Trisha.

Maxwell stared, blank faced for several moments as he tried to connect what it was she meant. At first, he looked back at his home as if there were something wholly ugly and aesthetically unpleasing about it. Sylvie often complained of such a thing, but she never seemed to grow physically ill from the sight of it.

”Uuuuh? But the house, it is not this ugly!”

”What tests are running, what machines are going!?”

”Besides the generator? The McGuffin check, and the autoforge!”

With his White Lux, Casey did his best to feel the magic in the air. Only then did he realize what was happening.

”Ohhhh, it’s the fucking generator! Casey finally blurted out, eyes turning upward to the top of the tower.
”The amount of Orange Lux radiating out of it is fucking… Probably overloading her. Baby? Baby, can you walk? I think we’ll be safer inside!”

Maxwell understood now too, and waived his hand.

”Carry her! Do not ask, if she’s weak then it should alway-”
As the lecture began, Casey was already scooping Trisha up out of the truck and starting to walk forward toward the hill.

”-Yes, yes Papa! I understand, I’m doing it, I’m carrying her! Please, just start gathering the components in the back! I don’t want to be here all day, and clearly neither does Trisha!” he called back.

As they ascended the hill, the feeling was just getting worse. Like death had come again and again for her without success, and it was getting upset.

”Hang on, Honey! I know it sucks, but… The house is full of shielding from the radiation! How’s the Queen, are you both gonna make it for me!?” he practically pleaded down to her in his arms.

“D-dunno, can’t feel- her.” Trisha choked out, her hand covering her mouth to stop anything else escaping. But she’d gotten everything out of her stomach in the first few goes, the retching becoming more painful than anything now.

Her eyes welled up with tears that quickly covered her face, whole body trembling in his arms. Panic was truly clutching her now as they got closer. Like every step towards the house was a step towards inevitable death. Her chest tightened, breathing getting painfully short and her heart beating in an intense staccato. It felt like she was being crushed at all angles by deep hopelessness. She wanted to run, but she had no strength. Panic pheromones spilled out into the air, only to fizzle out and die immediately. Just like she was going, it was coming for her, it felt so angry and empty-

“‘M sorry… Sorry…” She clutched Casey’s shirt, curling into herself against him. She felt awful, her panic only escalating when she realised his distress. She couldn’t even try to like, but she’d be fine, she had to be for him-

But she wouldn’t, she wouldn’t, everything was dead and dying.
It- Feels- Like death, Casey. She moaned out painfully.

He was making the pace, but got to the door finally and had an incredibly hard time getting it open while still holding her. It probably would’ve been quite the shock for him to totally shift her and toss her over one shoulder… But getting inside was an almost instant relief. Ten, maybe fifteen seconds were spent with that inexorable feeling of dread filling her very soul.

”Apparitons are usually attracted to high energy signatures-” Casey started, quickly shifting her back into his arms before starting to rush through the house.

The perspective Trisha was getting didn’t leave room for a lot of observations about the interior. There seemed to be a lot of warm wood, and carved ceilings that had paintings on them like the Sistine Chapel.

”-so I think the Generator up on top of the tower is attuned to a pretty shitty signal. The New Dawn doesn’t keep Aberrations it their ranks, so there’s usually nobody here to worry about this stuff.” he spoke rather calmly, in spite of his rushing as they hit a staircase and started descending.

By this point, everything would’ve felt normal again, leaving Trisha with the chance to protest being relocated by force.

“I’m- I’m okay now, Casey.” Trisha spoke up, not sure where he was taking them and not wanting him to continue to worry. It wasn’t a lie, because the feeling had gone away, even if the panic it had brought up in her took more time to calm down. She still trembled in his arms, breathing just beginning to slow down. But the nausea was gone, and the heavy weight of depression lifted.

She didn’t feel like she was about to die anymore.

“S-Sorry, I should’ve said as soon as I started feeling sick.” She continued, trying to really calm herself down. It was hard when the panic had been just below the surface and the horrible feeling had brought it to its worst.

“It felt like death- Like everything had died and I should have too. Just… wrong.”

Casey hadn’t even known exactly what the signal was. He knew that it was supposed to totally disconnect anything natural from its surroundings, meaning any kind of natural fae Apparition or anything linked to the Deer in concept was shit out of luck. He could only assume that, as one of those kinds of Apparitions, the Queen was just as susceptible to the consequences of the Generator’s very intentional radiation leak.

But he wasn’t exactly worried about the interesting logistics of it. Finally pausing, Casey exhaustedly slumped backward, leaning against the faded black and white mosaic tiles that made the surface of the stairs. His arms flexed, and he squished her tighter into his arms to make sure she could feel him just like he could feel her.

”It’s not real, Trisha… I swear, it’s not real. I’m so sorry… I never even thought about how this place would affect you.” he admitted, embarrassingly so.

“It’s okay.” Trisha whispered back, voice hoarse from throwing up and panicking. But at least her breathing was really starting to even out now, warm safety pushing away the remaining cold fear as he held her tightly.

“I didn’t realise a place could feel like that. I don’t think I would’ve felt it if I didn’t have all of her magic… She buried deeper into me. I dunno if- if it would’ve been worse for us both if she didn’t.” She continued, hugging into him. She could feel the Queen again now… Strangely more than she had since when the baton had been passed a few days before. She’d stirred in response to the signal, only to hide.

But she was there, even if in the process of going back into her restful state within Trisha. She hadn’t abandoned her…

“But I know it’s not real. If it was, I wouldn’t be able to feel you like this.”

Casey could hear the wood in the wall shifting next to him until a pair of lips formed by his head.
”Caseau, this commotion?”

Nana Sylvie’s voice had a hollow sound to it as the wooden lips spoke from the wall. An ear also formed, floating into existence at the surface of the wood like it had been inside the wall the whole time. Casey threw his head back in frustration… There were no private moments in his life. None.

”Trisha’s an Aberration, Nana… The Generator could’ve seriously hurt her!”

There was a pause on the other end, then both the mouth and the ear totally sunk back down into the depths of the wall. Casey half-giggled to himself.

”I… Think she’s upset.” he let the statement hang.

Trisha was glad Casey was holding her so tight, because she probably would’ve jumped out of his arms otherwise. She was still on edge, even as she came down from it, and a voice out of nowhere was unnerving.

“She did ask.” Trisha responded, pressing her lips together. But if Sylvie was upset, that might make things more difficult for them- for her. She still wanted to make a good impression, and she’d done the opposite. Throwing up in front of Max, causing a commotion… It made her anxiety flare back up.

But she didn’t want to put that anxiety on him right now.
“Is she still listening? I… Don’t know how you deal with it. All the magic use and spying all the time.”

Casey could’ve used White Lux to see if there was an Orange signal running through the walls to the microphones near them. But, there was an easier and faster way. Clearing his throat, he bit his lip slightly and cocked his head, then closed his eyes and remembered a thousand smacks to the head as a burst of incredibly vulgar French came out of his mouth.

When there was no retaliation, Casey was satisfied that she was absent. He turned his face back to Trisha, a slight grin.
”You’re used to a bunch of shit you shouldn’t have to deal with. Humans can eat a surprising amount of shit before things get dire.”

Sitting upright, he managed to let go of Trisha enough to pull his glove and begin to trace all the Orange Lux through the house. The layer of metallic shielding on the tower side of the house burned a hole in his vision as he turned his head and got caught in the intensity of the light. He immediately cut the spell channel, clearing his throat.

”God… You should see the magical metal keeping you safe.”
He brought his hand up, pointing and tracing an imaginary line against the wall they were next to, through the house toward the roof.
”It’s all up there. Past the next few walls. I’m glad that it affects Adepts too, at this range. Otherwise, we’d have left, I guess. I’d have brought you home, maybe after leaving the beads here, I guess. Come back and get it when its done or whatever.”

There were clicking heel noises from down the stairs that echoed up them, until little Sylvie was staring up at the two of them half sprawled on the stairs. As she approached, the stairs themselves began to move like an escalator, causing Casey and Trisha to rise up toward the start of the stairs.

”You were supposed to be here at eight!” she snapped, weakly letting one heeled foot tap onto a step as the other followed. She too began to rise in tandem.

”It’s eight thirty, Nana… We arrived here earlier.”

”Here! Here. At Eight! Your lack of time management nearly killed your Fiance: I put the baby to sleep at seven-thirty, and woke it up at eight-o-five, and yet you speak as if-”

She was annoyed! At what specifically, it was hard to tell. She kept talking about babies in terms of sleeping and waking before falling into French again. But, it was very clear that it was Casey’s fault, whatever it was.

Even though it was directed at Casey, Trisha was still hit by the scolding. It wasn’t something anyone would’ve had to worry about if it wasn't for her… At least, she assumed it was something to do with the generator even with Sylvie mentioning a baby.

“It’s my fault we were late. I took too long getting ready, so don’t be angry at Casey, please.” She spoke up, managing to sound calm and confident for all she was lightly trembling against Casey. It technically wasn’t a lie… But they’d only left five or ten minutes late because of her, with the stop when calling Leon adding to that. But if time was so tight, that seemed enough to throw everything off.

It was terrifying for her to say that in the face of someone she wanted to like her, but she cared about Casey more. She wanted to defend him… Especially now.

“And I’m fine! So it’s water under the bridge.”

Sylvie didn’t skip a beat.

”Trisha… You will make a wonderful wife. But Caseau knows things. He should know. You should not. Thus, it is not you who should be held responsible, when he holds the knowledge.” she explained calmly, meeting them at the top of the escalating stairs and reaching out to grip Trisha’s hand in comfort.

”So quick to place the blame upon yourself… I will rock the baby to sleep. Then, we shall walk. Caseau?”

”Oui, Nana?”

She waved her hand, and he instinctively leaned down for a smack for being late. Instead, he got a peck on the cheek from his venerably aged grandmother. It was a little shocking, but he turned his head and quickly gave her the other cheek. Pulling back up, she looked at him and waggled one long, bony finger.

”I am… Teasing.

And then she started to cackle the most intense and caricatured witch’s laugh that Trisha would ever have heard. This ancient woman even tilted her head back, one hand on her belly as she began the short but purposeful clomping steps in her thick clogs.

”Trisha? Come with me to the kitchen… Leave this one to work with his Grandpapa.”

Casey’s frown was present, and he looked down at Trisha.
”I… Do you want to wait a few minutes? Get calm?” he asked her cautiously.

Trisha looked back up at him, trying to search for an answer in his face. For what he wanted, rather than what she wanted.

She didn’t really know. She wanted to go home already. So letting him go get the beads fixed was the fastest way to do that, right? Assuming they’d actually be able to go when it was done. He had said they didn’t want to be here all day while she was throwing up. Hopefully that would hold.

“I think I’m alright… Unless you’re going to be working a long time? Then I need to charge up.” She responded, trying to keep her tone light. She wasn’t calm, but she wasn’t going to be calm. The anxiety was constant at the moment. She could manage it.

”I would not use the battery stations throughout the house. High amperage.” Sylvie absently instructed, assuming just as well that Trisha would want the time Casey was offering. She wasn’t so bold as to overrule him in that regard, and made her way down the long main hall of the house.

Which, now that Trisha was conscious and awake for it, looked incredibly uncanny as a place. Pipes, cables and cords ran across the molding of the ceiling into various places, and beneath them had to be hundreds and hundreds of picture frames. Only half had pictures that Trisha could see, but they all seemed to be of the St. Portwell Richouxs… Max Gravity, Lynette, the kids in various different poses, places and put-ons. A lot seemed like family trips or church events which they’d attended alongside Big Max and Sylvie. The family looked fairly happy. Though, there was a distinct absence of Lynette in a lot of pictures that looked almost empty.

Like landscapes, punctuated by a toddler half way inside the frame of the shot with their hands up. Running toward something. Something that wasn’t there anymore.

Casey had laughed at his Nana’s joke, brushing it off.
”Silly old lady… She thinks you charge up with electricity.” Casey said in a half-lucid tone. The truth was that he was also already tired. That little panic attack had probably been enough to do them both in were it a normal circumstance.

But Trisha needed her equipment fixed. This was for her. If she could stick it out, so could he.

”But, I don’t know how long it’s gonna take. For all I know, Papa may fix it outside. Granted, he’ll have to take it apart again so we can install the new components, but-” he trailed off, letting her mind finish the statement as it wanted to.

”So… D’you wanna sit somewhere? Or, are we just gonna cuddle up in the hall until you’re ready?”

Trisha gave him a small smile, even as her eyes wandered around their surroundings. It was almost cyperpunk-esque… She hoped that even if Casey filled their future home with Orange Lux gadgets, there wouldn’t be so many obvious wires and pipes around. The pictures were cute, if strange in some of them. She tried not to think too hard about it.

“You know I don’t mind where we are.” She said softly, turning her attention back to Casey. She smiled a bit more.
“Did you visit here often as a child? Were there any spots you liked, or anything? I’d like to see that… If not, anywhere quiet will do.”

She glanced towards the long hall Sylvie had gone down again.
“I’m really alright, it doesn’t have to be long if you want to get on with getting the bracelet fixed.”

Casey cleared his throat, looking around before giving her a very serious expression in return.

”Trisha… You’re doing good. I hope you know you’re doing good, but… C’mon. Ten minutes ago you vomited in the driveway and were saying that death was coming. There’s plenty of times we can stick to the plan, but… Stuff like that? It’s big enough for my brain to hold onto. Let it go for a few minutes.”

The truth was, anywhere he would’ve spent time in this house was not a quiet place. The autoforge was an incredible piece of magical technology that he loved staring at all day long, but that didn’t mean it’d be good for Trisha. They hadn’t had the whole place back then anyway. Rather, one of the houses down the road had been a feeler property owned by the church as an entity, kept in holdings and used communally for anyone visiting St. Portwell way back when. He’d been up in this building back then, but it hadn’t had a home-seed planted in the basement then.

He wasn’t worried. The entire house was more or less a quiet space, with all the non-combatant relatives having gone home after the Harvest Celebration. He was more worried about making sure that Trisha knew there were distinctions to be made.

Trisha pressed her lips together, looking back up at him evenly. There was a visible struggle in her expression, as she fought with herself between what felt like imposing or continuing the path she was trying to go down. Not leaning on him as heavily as she had been the last month, because he was already weighed down by so much… But doubling down would only annoy or upset him. What had happened had happened.

Eventually, she nodded, her body going slightly slack as she stopped trying to just hold it together. The trembles came back and she bit her lip.

“I just… As soon as we entered the house, the feeling was gone. So it feels like I should just push through it even though I’m still shaken by it.” She admitted quietly, voice only getting quiet.
“It was so scary. Like everything was cold and decaying. The feeling of the wrongness made me sick… But the despair was worse. It felt like I was cheating death and the closer we got to the house, the more pissed off it got. I haven’t felt something that bad magically since the Stygian Snake tried to get into my head.”

Casey nodded along as she explained it, and he slumped them both against the wall before taking her down so they could both sit on the floor. Calmly, he brushed her hands in his own. Being honest with himself, he would’ve rathered they just got it done and left without having any further issues. If they’d made it back home, maybe she would’ve been okay… But, he’d not missed what she said in her stupor. And now that she was conscious and telling him about it, he knew she probably wouldn’t have made it healthily back home. Maybe she’d have shut down. Maybe she’d have been okay but quiet.

He didn’t want either by the time they got home. He wanted her fine. So, letting her cry it out a bit would be a lot easier ultimately. Thus, here he was, very consciously and purposefully driving himself through his own mood like a plōh through dirt. There was only one option now that he locked in: And that was being a good man to her. Someone who could help.

Besides, if she wanted to bring it up ever again, he already loaded this new bullet into the argument chamber. Another moment where he got to be strong while she leaned on him. Even if he said it was okay. He never could’ve directly understood the pressure she felt over it otherwise, but he didn’t feel like he needed to either.

”Nobody ever told me that’s what the actual effect was. I figured, with you being an Aberration and all, you’d easily bypass the problem. I understand I was wrong… I’m sorry for it. It was a bad mistake.” he admitted his guilt simply and without ego, hoping that would help her along even a little bit.

Trisha frowned, pulling her legs up towards her chest. So he’d known it might have some effect on her… But she still didn’t entirely see how it was his fault. By bringing her in the first place? Or them ending up late?

“It’s not your fault it perfectly targets my Apparition. Because of her connection to nature… It’s why she exists. It killed that, so of course she’d be next. And me.” She shuddered a little, remembering the feeling. But she didn’t seem to be taking his apology and just running with it… She wasn’t looking for an apology. She wasn’t annoyed at him right now, she was struggling with the panic and heavy hopelessness the feeling had brought out in her.

She wasn’t long out of her own depressive period, after all, and then was in a constant state of heightened anxiety right now. She took a deep breath, trying to curb the panic attack that threatened to come out as she thought about it.

“I accept your apology but I’m really not… upset at you. I just don’t know how to get rid of the lingering feeling- because that’s all mine. It isn’t magically hurting me anymore. The Queen’s already gotten past it, so I should be able to as well. But I’m not strong enough... Maybe if I was stronger, it wouldn’t have been a problem. Or I could’ve pushed through it. Instead I’m just scared. Like I’m actually going to die.”

Casey accepted what she meant. That was a much harder process. The way he saw it, there were simply two kinds of people. Those who could wave Death off, unbothered by the nightmare lurking behind the curtain and ignorant of the closeness in which it operates… And those who just couldn’t. He didn’t even see it as a numbness that needed time to build like a resistance. People he’d served with directly had just as many problems, it seemed. It drove them furious. Mad animals to a fault more often than not. Some had to be circulated to the rear… Others could be convinced.

”Are you more… Afraid? Or, ashamed? Are they equal? he asked in a very casual and non-confrontational fashion. As close as he could get, he hoped, without triggering the pain all over again.

Trisha pursed her lips, head tilting forward so she was looking down. She felt both… But was it equally? Really, shame was just a different type of fear. Fear of other people’s reactions and views feeding into her negative self image. She was ashamed she couldn’t easily get over it, but also afraid of the feeling of death being overdue, and ashamed it still lingered when she knew it wasn’t real.

It all fed into each other. A constant cycle.

“They’re equal, I think.” She admitted.
“I’m scared of that feeling and the looming death, which makes me just want to… crawl into bed and never get out. Because it feels hopeless. And I’m ashamed of that, because it wasn’t even real. The depressive feeling was from the magic, and I’m not going to die. But I’m irrationally scared I will, which makes me feel more ashamed. Because I should be able to handle it without worrying I might get… depressed again.”

Though she didn’t think it was a risk in that same way. She probably wouldn’t become as lethargic as she had done. She had no choice but to do things for their survival. And she couldn’t be the one struggling right now. Casey was. The anxiety surrounding everything with him outweighed the depression the magic had dragged back up overall.

”Feelings are real.”

Casey’s words were clear, assertive, and very intentional. Not only was she ignoring the entire concept of individual relativity, which played heavily into this situation, but she was also missing one of the most basic fundamentals of Adeptal magic. The link between the light spectrum, and the emotional spectrum, and everything in between. She was distraught, and that was okay… But, did she really ever realize that there was a whole spectrum of magic based purely around the kind of feeling she was having right now? That some people had to store feelings like these, and keep dredging them up constantly in order to use the same kind of stuff that Casey was happy to use.

”When you feel something like this, it’s real. I discredited what you were going through thinking it would help, but somehow managed to reinforce your anxiety by trivializing your perception.”

He wasn’t happy now. She wasn’t blaming him, but everything she said pointed back toward what he’d said initially. That it wasn’t real. In truth, he hadn’t known whether or not it was actually dangerous. It could’ve been doing terrible things to her mind and body at a cellular level for all he knew. Sylvie and Max didn’t seem terribly worried about it, but did they even know the full extent? For him to say it wasn’t real ultimately put Trisha into a situation where she thought less of herself…

”Can you… Can we try to think about it like it was real? What does that do to you? That, Hell, you could’ve been in mortal peril? And that the feelings you had were your body’s natural reaction to being exposed to that? Your body really actually feeling it? Because, if that’s how it felt… I don’t care whether you’re okay right now or not. Because it was Hell on Earth for however many seconds you were exposed. And that makes it real to me too…” he ultimately concluded, hugging into her tightly.

Trisha's breath hitched, all the panic she'd been trying to suppress flooding back up. If it was real, that would mean she could have died. It felt like she'd narrowly escaped it… She should have died along with all the nature in the area. Her eyes welled up with tears, chest starting to heave up and down. She twisted to press herself fully into Casey, clinging to him like that feeling would come back if she let go.

“I don't want to die, Casey. Not like that, not like death's hunting me cause I cheated it… I've barely lived! I don't wanna lose it all now that I have something to live for." She choked out, doing her best not to fully break down into tears.

“It makes me feel so powerless! Cause I couldn't do anything… I can't protect myself from something like that. And it's terrifying. I didn't even know what was happening and- and there was nothing I could do. I don't want to be powerless… But it feels like I'll always be weak... Because if there's something that can hurt the Queen like that, what can I do?!"

She squeezed her eyes shut, trying to take a deep breath.
“But- But I'm not dead… I c-can cope with the pain, I swear, it's just- just the hopelessness."

There were few things he could help with immediately. If she was having serious troubles like this, especially with hopelessness, there weren’t exactly a lot of cures. But, Casey did have one big advantage against that sort of thing. In truth, the modern Richoux had long foregone the more esoteric aspects of Orange Lux for very practical technological and physical applications. However, that wasn’t always the primary use of Orange.

In days past, the Richoux clan had been a subservient: part of the vast, twisting mire of French nobility, their house was patronized by a greater Noble house, and their Adepts were often utilized for a single purpose. Those spells were still open to him, only he had a great deal of experience using them where other Richoux simply didn’t bother. Part of the oath of their house was that a Richoux was to be like the Sun. The center of everything. Generational trauma, he assumed, from being treated like second class adepts for most of their time in the aristocracy.

Thus, the bolstering magic of Deep Orange, for a typical Richoux, was equal to being put in the back seat. To empower others, and allow them to do the work that a Richoux could do with their own ingenuity and invention, was felt in the same way that an insult was. But, in the Military, there was always room for a little help. For some, the technology- artifacts and otherwise enchanted items -was enough. But, some needed help deeper inside.

And that took real courage. Courage he knew he could muster. The kind of courage that would, maybe, help Trisha break the lingering sensation even a little bit. All she needed was enough to begin turning the tide back into her own favor. All she needed, Casey imagined, was a little help.

And what else was being a couple for?

Taking her hands, she’d be able to feel that he’d slipped one into his glove. It was rough, and almost felt clammy against her soft skin.
”I… Know magic that I think could help. Maybe its not a solution, and maybe you won’t even want to think about it… But, you’ve been around other Orange Adepts. If you’ve ever felt a Bolstering Courage spell, or something like that, you’ll know what I mean when I say that the feeling doesn’t go away. You just… It helps to feel like you can get through it. No matter what.” he tried to explain, hoping Trisha would understand what he was getting at, and not take it like he was trying to rush through her problem.

After all, he desperately wanted to help her. There truly were no ulterior motives at that moment.

Normally, Trisha wasn’t a particular fan of any kind of magic that might play with her emotions. She worried about the influence, and it becoming some sort of crutch… But she didn’t want to be a burden on Casey like this right now. A little bit of confidence would help her get through it so she could just keep going. It would let her be fine.

It was just a shame she couldn’t use her own pheromones on herself without trapping herself in a tiny space the whole time.

“I’ve felt it before… Not often, but I remember. Normally I’d- I’d be put in places they didn’t have Orange Adepts focused on boosting, cause a small dose of my aggression pheromones did that kinda thing.” She explained unnecessarily through her tears. Like she was somehow worried that he’d think she didn’t understand and withdraw the offer, or that she’d been purposefully deprived of it all those years ago.

She took a shaky breath, looking at him with tear stained, panic filled eyes.
“P-Please… I want to be able to get through it. I don’t wanna panic like this right now.”

Casey’s gloved hand warmed up immediately, energy transferring out of it and into her hand that he was holding in it. There was something like a pulse, or more directly a connection opening up for her to accept through her Emotional Field. Once she did, she’d be able to feel the magic spread across her like warm mud in a spa. After a few seconds, Trisha would be able to feel the weight being lifted off her chest. Only, Casey’s spell wasn’t just for courage. White Lux was a truly powerful bolstering force in its own right, and mixed into the Orange, Trisha would be able to hear Casey’s voice.

It was pretty easy to tell that he wasn’t talking to her directly. Especially when memories were being recalled in her own head almost without her prompting. Memories of good times with him. Times over the month prior, in small moments where Casey found himself sitting back and simply admiring her. And, in her mind, these were from his internal perspective. She was able to observe herself from his eyes, sat behind her and turning from the computer screen she was looking at, to the side profile of her gentle smile.

It’d been a game day. She was playing away, enjoying her time with Gin and Ed, and Casey’s brain had wandered just enough to catch a glimpse of her face. She could feel all the warmth coming from him that he hadn’t given her in that moment. Spare love, admiration, and complete infatuation.

I’ll be behind you forever.

That solitary thought had run through his mind, and he used it as the reinforced applicator for the spell. Nostalgia for the little moments, and courage for this big one now. Together, they left Trisha with a wholly different feeling than those old days when she’d been bolstered. They’d all been kids, after all… How could one have so much more courage than the others? Especially in such life or death circumstance, common courage was always in short supply. This, however, came from a near limitless well, built by a man’s self-hatred and reforged into an unbreakable bastion of eager readiness. To face danger, horror, evil… And Death itself.

As the spell spread across her, all the cold fear she’d felt was covered up by warm courage. It wasn’t something she’d experienced before. She’d never felt brave like that. All the feelings were still there, but it was like a balm on her wounds. Her anxiety wriggled underneath it, but she was able to ignore it again. It wasn’t crushing her. Heavy, but manageable.

Her tears started to dry and her breathing evened out, a light blush spreading across her cheeks. It was strange to see herself from his perspective… In a light so different from the one she viewed herself in. He really loved her. Of course he did, she believed it every time she heard him say it and with everything he did for her… But feeling it was so different. Hearing the single unspoken thought.

She really hoped he’d be behind her forever…

For once, she did feel like she could get through it. Really get through it, without worrying about keeping everything to a manageable level to prevent a panic attack. That wasn’t even a risk until the spell wore off. She could worry a little less for now… Ignore it all for a while.

“Thank you.” Trisha whispered as the spell fully settled on her. She managed to smile genuinely at him.
“It’s… much more manageable now. I’ll really be okay. I love you.”

Casey held her close, making sure all the little strings of magic were properly attached to the inside of her Emotional Field like a veil.

”I love you the same… Just remember, this isn’t forever. I don’t want to make it a habit, and I’m sure you don’t want to feel like it is either. But, for now… As long as you need it. As long as it takes for us to be here.”

Contrary to his feelings as of late, Casey felt like he wanted to be there with her in that moment. It was a true want, rather than some obligatory feeling of necessity; because she was so hurt by it. So vulnerable already, and only here because he prompted her to. It… Was. It was a sense of obligation. But, it was one that Casey knew he wouldn’t give up for the world in that moment. And if it was a burden someone wanted, was it really a burden?

To even think of it like that made him sick. Rather than let it affect him, he simply tucked himself tighter into her.

”I’m right here. I’m not going anywhere until Nana comes back.” he stated from behind her mop of hair, voice muffled slightly.

“You’re going to make your Grandmother come get me? All the way back here? Wow, Casey.” She teased, giggling softly. She was more than happy to melt back into him.

Because he had to want to be with her right now, didn’t he? Because she was clearly doing better. He’d cast a spell for that. No more tears, no more panic attacks… Even if it was all still there, it wasn’t as exposed. It would take more than a poke or two to draw it back out, thankfully.

“I really appreciate it… Having you hug me like this helps with the spell. It helped even when I was hit by it. A little bit of your warmth got through the cold death.” She smiled slightly, breathing through the last physical effects of the lingering near panic attack.

“How long will the spell last? Long enough for the bracelet to be fixed? Not that I’d have a problem coming through to snatch you away for a couple of minutes here and there.”

Casey pressed his lips to hers, a playful peck proceeding his squeezing and nuzzling her like she was a human-sized plushie. It was purposeful, like most things he did. The lingering contact would hopefully bolster the spell just a bit further as the remaining tendrils of orange-cream Lux carefully pulled away from Trisha’s Emotional Field.
Examining it for himself, he could see the color of her aura had changed to hold his courage, and it seemed to naturally distribute it to her. Perhaps the Queen understood the spell too, and was working on her own time to take advantage.

”You’ll be okay. It’ll be plenty of time, and if worst comes to worst, you can tell Nana. She’ll be able to refresh all the best parts. Nobody has more courage than Nana. I remember she took a bunch of us to see the Catacombs, and I was really scared and nervous as a little kid. So she enchanted me, to help me get through it. Because I hadn’t Kindled, it was really intense for me: I’ll never forget it.”

He could feel the active fury of the reactor above die down into a sleepy lull, and Trisha would probably also notice the house get just a little quieter.

”Ooh, she finished… Which means the house is working off the power bank. Purple Lux is crazy, because it breaks a lot of rules of physics that are useful for mundane shit. It’s why my Uncle Guimon married into a noble Purple clan: Cousin Hugo is an electrical engineer with a specialty in trans-dimensional power storage. He made the battery bank out of a pocket dimension that's pretty much just electricity.”

He’d never get tired of technomancy, nor the endless applications that bridged the magical world with the mundane. Rather than being beholden to the physical regulations of their reality, new and innovative solutions could be developed in perpetuity. So long as someone had a good idea, and the magical aptitude to make it happen, there’d always be someone who could do what you do in a totally different way.

”Do you want to see the family tree? We have one at the Temple too, but I don’t think you’ve ever been down that section.”

Trisha couldn’t help but let out a giggle at the fact they had a family tree. Of course they did. The Richoux family was like true Nobility of the old in that way… At least they didn’t have the superior attitude. Well, not that she’d felt. She had a feeling the Adeptal supremacy belief was held by them just as much as it was the Temple.

Especially since there weren’t even any Abberations that were a part of the New Dawn.

“Yeah, I’d like to see it.” She smiled at him, though she didn’t move from snuggling into him. She’d take every last bit of that she could get.
“I’m assuming it’s pretty big, since Sylvie and Max have… Thirteen children, right? I bet you have a crazy amount of cousins. Y’know, it’s crazy enough talking about marrying into a noble Purple clan… Is that really such a big thing in the Adeptal world? The majority of the Adepts I’ve met didn’t really seem that way… Y’know, like their family line and the specific Adeptal magic within it was important. I guess it comes more from the descended from old nobility thing more… Right?”

She was rambling a bit in her question, curious in general more than anything. If her Dad had really wanted to produce some kind of child army to protect him, he would’ve married someone from one of those lines… Guaranteed magic. Or perhaps it didn’t matter. Her Adeptal siblings, at least the ones she knew about, were strong enough in their own right.

”That’s purely American. Well, more a modern problem. Not a problem. Just a circumstance of society expanding past the stratification of the age of aristocracy. The uh… The Middle Class kind of killed noble houses in the sense that the magic was no longer easily monopolized. Which is good. It’s been good for families like mine. We always get told stories about how our line came from Charlemagne, but us and every other remaining house says that, so…”

Not that it hadn’t been confirmed based purely on the bias of those remaining old-world families. There were plenty of stories of the legendary Emperor being Spectrum-blooded, and splitting his bloodline into ten families who then propagated across Europe. But, as far as Casey was concerned, the story didn’t add up. There were plenty of Adepts in the old Roman Empire, and just as many in places that had absolutely nothing to do with Europe.

Trisha personally knew a perfect example of Casey’s point: Cass, and her problems with the Shame curse, easily predated European magics by thousands of years. And, further still, the Queen herself, whose domain had stretched far and wide across the planet, had plenty of stories of the old Adeptal tribes held deep within her memory.

Yet, as they made their way down the hall and then down another, Casey stopped and turned to the wall. There, scrawled in ornate letters with the traditional coat of arms including the Imperial eagle and the fleur-de-les, was Charlemagne. Behind him were the faded surnames of dozens of other families and clans, suggesting they were related but not at all the focus of the piece.

”Obviously, that ain’t gonna stop my folks from running with it. It’s a point of pride, even if it’s probably bullshit.” he giggled.

Then, horizontally, the line of succession ran from one end of the hall, down to the other, and then seemed to round the corner again. Along the way, dozens and dozens of names peeled away from the main branch, until the fork in the road came where things got important. Four hundred years prior, a schism clearly split the house Escoffier in two. And while the main line “faded” from the relevant timeline, the new name Richoux was now front and center. And, clearly this was the ultimate extent of either the family’s knowledge, or their interest in record keeping… Because all the names before had been a single line of succession, from one son to the next down from the great Emperor…

But now it exploded. From the name Rollant Richoux onward, the family line exploded into great detail. It seemed the Richoux were never shy about having a bucket load of kids in each generation. And those generations split and split, permutating into every kind of family situation one could think of. Branches built up, only to end abruptly, while others went the way of the beginning, fading into obscurity and thus from the wall altogether. Yet, Casey’s family seemed to remain centered, seemingly never straying from the course.

Casey spent just as much time babbling away about what he knew, and was so willing to drown Trisha’s anxiety in comforting informational dumping that he didn’t notice Sylvie watching the both of them as he enthusiastically pointed from one individual to the next.

”-and so, when the Second Lilywar was ramping up, Hugo Richoux was the first artificer to take up the foundry. The cannons he made are still sitting on the ramparts of the family estate in Lyon.”

”And we fire them all twice a day, to remind those fools across the river that we’re still armed.”

Casey nearly leapt from his skin, turning to look at Sylvie. But, still, he managed a smile.

”Of course… How could I forget?”

Trisha also started, reactively tensing up and stepping closer to Casey. She’d been lost in just letting his words wash over her, even though she wasn’t entirely taking in all of the information. It was a lot, after all. She doubted there’d be a quiz about his family history at the end.

But it was just Sylvie. As quickly as she’d tensed, she relaxed again- to her normal state, at least, with the warm gauze of confidence keeping her afloat.

“Still? Isn’t twice a day a bit excessive?” She asked, turning like Casey to look at Sylvie with a slight smile.
“And all of them? Remind me to bring earplugs if we ever visit Lyon.”

She glanced up towards the massive family tree, glancing across the most recent generations. There were a lot of people in the family… She wondered how hers would compare if she drew it out. She couldn’t get very far with her Dad’s side, though the sheer volume of siblings would make up for it. As for her Mom’s… She knew up to her grandmother’s generation, roughly. There were enough cousins there too, though probably not as many as Casey had.

“There isn’t a strict tradition that every Richoux has to have at least five children, is there? It seems pretty common.” She asked lightly, gesturing to it. Sure, there were people who didn’t, but it seemed more had at least that number than didn’t. Her expression wasn’t particularly serious when she asked, though, like she was worried that would be some crazy expectation put on her.

Sylvie laughed aloud.

”It is purely a religious circumstance. You understand, the Church was not so free and open with contraception in the past!”

Casey cringed slightly at the idea of forcing Trisha into that kind of thing. Obviously, he wouldn’t mind if she did. Though, at the same time, he wondered if he had the mental capacity to spread his love across so many entities. In that moment, for the first time, he really actually considered what Fatherhood was. He knew Papa Max didn’t have good relationships with any of his sons. And his daughters were always his pride and joy… Except for the baby, of course. His namesake. Casey’s father. Which is why they were so close, and so familiar, with his grandparents to begin with. And with there not being a massive pile of them, Big Max and Sylvie bothered to know them, even…

Spending time here was plenty for him to know that he was an exception, not a commonality. He didn’t want that for his kids. He didn’t want them to be exceptions, even if they’d…-
Your kids won’t have Grandparents. None. They’ll never know what you felt. You have to be the one who gives them what they need. There’s nowhere else to go.

”And, obviously, Mom and Dad both wanted a gang of us. I’m fairly certain Mom pushed for another, but-”

”-Ugh! Do not get to me starting about your mother’s sickness. She is a truly vile woman.”

Casey grimaced. He couldn’t disagree. Leaning close, he half-whispered.
”Mom didn’t exactly act modest. She used to dress uh… Pretty provocatively some days. For Dad. For uh… Later stuff.

Sylvie let out an exasperated gag.
”Reprehensible…”

Casey nodded.
”Point being, we won’t have more than we can handle. I’m sure we’re both able to make agreements over stuff like that in an adult way.” he replied as if it were a sure thing they’d be having kids at some point.

Trisha smiled up at Casey.
“I know. I know you wouldn’t push me one way, and I definitely won’t be pushing for loads. I was just worried there might be some ancient spirit upset about it.”

Obviously that wasn’t actually the worry. It was external pressure. Not that there’d be any parents to pressure them, but if they started having children in a few years, Sylvie and Max might still be around. But it clearly wasn’t an issue.

“I’m sure Cass and Leon will have more than enough for all of us, if they stay together. I don’t know about him, but Cass has told me multiple times that either she’ll have loads of kids, or none at all. Everything’s very all or nothing with her.”

She didn’t say anything about the new information about how inappropriately Lynette acted around her children, though she had comfortingly rubbed Casey’s arm after he shared it. It wasn’t surprising, considering they’d had a picture of them having sex in their main room… But it didn’t make it any less disgusting. No wonder he’d been so worried he’d become addicted before their first time.

She couldn’t exactly say she had the most healthy relationship with sex before, but at least she felt it was better now that she was with Casey. So they’d never be like that, and there wouldn’t be any pressure on him.

”It wouldn’t be the first time a Norman has conquered a British coastline.” Sylvie grinned.

”Nana!?”

Still laughing, the old woman put her hand out.
”We must joke, or die. There is nothing between. Trisha? Come… Casey is required in the outer shop: Papa is concerned about some of the internals of your machine. It may be several hours, so I wish for Trisha to be in comfort while the work is done.”

Casey furrowed his brow slightly. That wasn’t something Sylvie usually did. Comfort? Comfort for her was something like locking into work on a piece of jewelry for eight to twelve hours, then getting bored and moving onto a different piece for another six. Sylvie worked. When did she become concerned with comfort?

”Right… Well, I guess I’ll come back in a few hours if we’re not finished, just to check on you. Nana, uh… I’ve woven Trisha’s e-field with a bolster. If you happen to notice it fading, could you-”

She didn’t verbally answer, rather waving him off in a very animated way. He knew what that meant approximately, and squeezed Trisha one more time.

”You’ll be alright. I love you. And, if you want to come see what we’re doing, just ask. She’ll bring you.”

“Mhm, I’ll be alright. Enjoy your tinkering… I love you too.” Trisha stretched up to kiss his cheek before he could get too far away.

She would be fine, especially with the confidence bolster. She would’ve been able to get through this anyway, but it would’ve left her struggling by the time they headed home. At least now, she’d probably be able to keep it up when they left too. Which was good, because she’d already pressured Casey enough with the one breakdown.

“And hopefully none of them explode again… Good luck.” She smiled, before turning to Sylvie.
“Uh, lead the way to wherever we’re going?”

Sylvie’s face was a warm grin, and she tilted her head for Trisha to follow her. She walked at a slow pace, and Trisha would be able to hear the gentle whirring of mechanical bits and bobs coming from under her clothing. She sighed, watching Casey shuffle away and down the stairs to disappear from view. Looking back at Trisha, her hand came up and patted the young woman’s shoulder.

”You’ve felt the Tiger roar. I can feel the Orange bouncing about in your space. Is it not odd, that such a thing can be both vicious and comforting at once? That the same energy which gave you such a fright, now gives you the chance to work through it just the same?” she asked calmly, stepping out of the memorial hall and back into the functioning one.

Rather than head toward where she’d gone to turn the reactor off, she made way for the stairs in front of them, beginning to ascend with what looked like a struggling gait… At least, until she grabbed the railing. Then, suddenly, Nana Sylvie was animated, and her back straightened to take her up a few steps seemingly without trouble.

Trisha watched with wide eyes, following behind her up the stairs. Was there some kind of magical conduit in the railing? She wasn’t sure… Whatever it was didn’t really matter. It was interesting to watch how magic could help in so many ways.

“It is odd… But I find a lot about Adeptal magic odd. All magic, really. The boosting side of Orange Lux is actually the one I’m most used to. There weren’t a lot of Orange Adepts in my old coven, but Leon and this one other boy were the only ones who didn’t specialise in boosting at the time. Well, technically, there was this girl who used her Orange to transform her clothing during combat.” Trisha responded, going a bit off topic.

“It’s quite an extreme difference. But I guess a lot of magic can be like that. Like… Cass could use her magic to heal someone, but she could also use it to break their body until they died.”

”The powers of the Deer are vast and primal. Often sinister in their application. Green Adepts are truly fearsome due to their connection to Joy. Once must take some sick pleasure in whatever magic they cast. It is selfish magic.”

Oh… Clearly the prejudice didn’t quite stop at Apparitions. Though, was this really prejudice? Or was this old-school French attitude? How much of that stereotype wasn’t just a cover for an entire society of people to affirm their biases on a constant basis?

”You lack any formal education, non? As far as the Paranormal, of course. Your Blind education would be irrelevant to my question. Would you care? To be taught? To learn more than your Apparition can offer?”

This was a strange offer, because the amount of information that the Queen stored was vast. It felt quite unlikely that this old woman would have information that Trisha couldn’t get, but… Maybe it was worth it?

”Not today. Not tomorrow… But, we can teach you everything you’d like to know. I’d be honored to tutor again.” she explained as she reached the last step and let go of the rail.

Trisha rubbed the back of her neck, trying to figure out how to answer. Saying yes was the easiest path, but did she want to learn from Sylvie when she already had so much from the Queen to go through. Was there anything she couldn’t learn there? Maybe.

But more than that, it was the mention of formal education. Obviously, it wouldn’t be going to school. It would be tutoring from one person. But that was enough to make her nervous, even with her anxiety more suppressed right now. Formal education meant studying and tests, even if those tests just came in the form of questioning. It meant losing all of her time to an endless grind only to fail at it anyway.

“I’ll have to think about it.” Trisha admitted, as calmly as she could.
“Not because I think it’s a bad idea, it’s a very nice offer… I’ve just got a lot on my plate as it is. I’ll need to figure out if I can handle having more information crammed into my brain.”

She clasped her hands together in front of her, subtly playing with her ring- the nervous tic she’d quickly picked up and that had become her favourite.

“How does formal Paranormal education work? The more I know, the easier it’ll be for me to make a decision.”

Though she was already leaning towards the no, she was far too anxious to settle on that without ‘taking time’ to think. She wanted to learn the things she didn’t know about the Paranormal world, but at the same time Casey already answered all of her questions… And the thought of more than that scared her. Nevermind that there really was so much taking up her time with the training and daily bee larvae implantation and tending.

Sylvie was old enough to know what a hesitant answer meant. She didn’t care to make a big deal out of it, which was probably something Trisha wasn’t expecting. It was just one way she felt there would be a chance to get to know her Grandson’s fiance in a meaningful way. Having also come from outside their family, she knew full and well how difficult it was to get settled into things that one simply didn’t understand. She’d not spent any great deal of time in her early years with a formal education either. No great Witch’s union, or a coven in the hills of the Alps…

Her family had been part of that burgeoning middle class, her own magical blood coming from the deeper European interior. Her father had come from Romania, trading goods from further East and leveraging his own Orange magic to safely and securely move cargo through wartorn regions. She had little to no idea where her power came from, or why so many were so impressed with her level of command and control over the forces within her. Yet, here she was… And she had to get used to all the strangeness that came with a whole world of magic she didn’t know.

”Casseau teaches you, non? He tells, you ask, he explains. It is only formal in so much that we would set aside time for it specifically. After all, there is no university-coven for Aberrations. At least, not to my knowledge.” she admitted with a wry smile as she led Trisha further on to an incredibly plush looking library full of books and shelves with more and more books.

The walls had more pictures interspersed by nicknacks as well, and the entire place did feel about as comfortable as an Oxford sitting room could feel. The leather couches and chairs were large, and looked well used.

“I didn’t realise there were any university-covens at all.” Trisha said in return with a slight laugh. She looked around the library, letting out a soft sigh of relief. She hadn’t been entirely sure where they were going, after all. A library was nice. She’d always liked books, even if she’d spent so many years mainly reading informational ones in the hopes it would suddenly make her grades good enough. But there was a comfort in losing herself in the words, even if it was more boring texts.

She hoped they’d have a nice library in their future home… Or one of the homes. She didn’t imagine Casey would protest, considering they often read in each other's company- or together, sharing a book and reading it out loud.

“I wouldn’t be inclined to go anyway. I did my four years of university, that was enough. But if the tutoring is just some time set aside to learn without any of the other formalities, then I really will think about it. I’d say it would be nice to do when everything calms down, but I assume you’ll be going back to the East Coast then?”

Trisha didn’t sit down, instead drifting towards one of the bookshelves. She didn’t touch anything, just looking.
“This is nice. I might be the one that needs to be dragged away to go home if you let me browse your books.”

Sylvie’s arms swept outward in both directions welcomingly.
”There are books for all ages, and all topics. Entertainment, education… You’re free to read all you want if this is what eases your troubles. I’m no fool… The magic Casey’s used on you is palpable. I’m sure your experience so far has been ill-suited to your hopes.”

She smiled at Trisha, absently swaying back and forth as she watched the relative stranger look around.

”If… You would prefer privacy, that can also be arranged. You needn’t feel as if my presence is a wet blanket. I can become sparse.” she offered quietly, knowing how she typically felt in similar situations.

In truth, if she wasn’t home, she wanted just as badly to be back among her comforts. Little brought her out of her space willingly. And being here in St. Portwell was a big problem already. It was hard to not be in the main workshop, and to have all of her work transferred from there to here was subpar at best. The workstation was out of date, and she wasn’t particularly inclined to make the improvements now that things were going pear-shaped on this coast.

Trisha nodded, her finger carefully trailing down the spine of a leather bound book. Normally her anxiety would hardly let her consider the offer, immediately assuming that taking it would lead to the other person having a worse view of her. But with magical help, she was able to step back and see it as genuine.

Though it hadn’t been long, it was easy to figure out that Sylvie wasn’t an overly social person either. Their first meeting had given a different impression to Trisha, but she was beginning to understand. Sylvie wouldn’t be upset if Trisha asked for privacy, but she also probably wouldn’t push conversation either.

“Honestly, I really don’t mind quieter company if I’m able to read.” She said truthfully. It was a rare experience, seeing as the family library growing up always had someone making noise or trying to annoy the siblings trying to read in peace. Then she’d lived with Cass most of the years through University… But when Cass was out, she could easily spend hours just reading in the living room with Diyah and often a visiting Reyna without it draining her as much as being in a social space normally would.

She turned away from the bookshelf to look at Sylvie again, trying her best to stay relaxed as she continued.
“Actually… I had something I wanted to ask you about. A favour, I guess. Not one I’d expect for free or anything… But it’s for a gift for Casey. I have an idea, but it’s not something I can make. I think I’d need to contribute, but I’m really not sure.”

Sylvie’s face was expressively interested, and she pulled a wheeled chair away from one of the tables in the center of the room to sit in. She wasn’t quiet, so that idea was out of the window. But, at least she could be useful in a true sense. And more work was never a bad thing.

”You would not expect a free gift for my Caseau? I’m not insulted as I am confused: To pay would be for me to take from you, non? And that would take from Caseau in turn. Not because he’s made the currency, you understand… Simply that you share all. And to take from you now, would be to take from him later. In turn, that may take from you again. We ask nothing of family, and give freely.”

It was long winded as an explanation, but somewhat necessary, as she was well aware that the words she used could count just as much as the inflection with which they were said. And she’d hate if someone implied that all of her things were just Maxwell’s. She’d had a stellar career once her designs made it into European jeweler’s cases, and had plenty of time to amass a small fortune in her own right.
After all, magic made pieces that simply weren’t replicable. She could charge exorbitant prices for special clients. Her family just reaped the rewards of such a lengthy and storied career.

“I didn’t want to assume that just because I’m engaged to Casey, you’d make something for free for me. It feels like it would be devaluing your work. But… I’m also not used to family that gives to each other like that. On one side it’s out of obligation, on the other there's no such thing as free.” Trisha admitted, surprising herself a bit with her honesty. Must be the spell… But it wasn’t really the deeper stuff. Just an explanation for why it would be her assumption.

Everything was transactional with her family in St Portwell. Even if Ezra was the one sending her money, she knew it was so that he didn’t need to deal with her. It benefited him. She wouldn’t even think of asking Tansy for a favour, but if she did… No, she couldn’t think about it. The closest to being that would be Sabrina. Even then, Trisha had paid rent when living in her house. Insisted on it, not trusting the offer of a free room.

“I understand what you mean but… If I don’t pay anything, wouldn’t it be more of a gift from you rather than from me?”

Sylvie clicked her fingers against the table for a few moments before turning her head upward and smiling.
”There are philosophical arguments to be had. But, ultimately, the thought is yours. You are the one who put forth the effort of thought to consider his Christmas experience. This year will be the worst for all five of them. For you to consider his comfort, and to love him in that pain? It is your gift, Trisha… No different than if he liked laser discs, and you bought him a pile of laser disks for christmas. You didn’t make them. You just bought them. But, you thought of doing that to begin with, thus, the emotion behind the object is your gift. she did her best to explain simply, and failing to do so in her estimation.

Trisha nodded. It made sense… And it was almost funny. She’d explained to Casey the kinds of gifts she liked- ones with thought behind them, not caring about the financial value, yet here she was worrying that it would be worthless if she didn’t spend money on it. She was too used to that being her worth, along with her body.

“Alright… You’re right. The gift wouldn’t even be a thought without me. Though I’m not sure it’ll be one that’ll help his comfort… But hopefully he’ll like it, at least.” She nibbled on her lip for a moment, trying to figure out how best to explain the idea. There were more worries with that. What if it sounded stupid or worthless?

No, that didn’t matter. She could never be entirely certain, but it felt like something Casey would like. That was all that mattered.

“I want to give him something that allows him to communicate with my bees. I’m not sure how it would work… Maybe an item that can translate his White Lux into pheromone signals, and vice versa. Technically he can give them commands when we finish setting up the new equipment, but this isn’t the same, because that doesn’t let them understand him. I want something to allow free communication. I think they’d see him as an equal, or maybe as the big bee protector. I’m not sure. It’s… Because the bees are such an important part of my life and magic, I want him to be a part of that too. Even if most of what the bees communicate is nonsense.”

Sylvie couldn’t help but clap a bit. It was gentle, and clearly for herself as she became immesurably excited. She liked nothing more than a good challenge, and incorporating Apparitional Magic that was clearly attuned toward natural processes was never easy. She had no clue that there was already an example created that she could pull the spell structure from, so she had no reason to ask Trisha to show her the Princess doll. In her head, this was a brand new problem that her talented Granddaughter hadn’t handled in an incredibly elegant and sophisticated fashion.

As it was, this would still be far different to what Mia had done. It was extending a piece of herself into the artifact…

And then, suddenly, Sylvie wasn’t so excited. Suddenly the prospect seemed a lot more dangerous.
”I… Believe I will need the cooperation of your Patron. I will do my best to minimize such a requirement, but I believe there could be overlap between the required theoretical processes, and… Sealing. she spoke plainly, letting the words come from her mouth cleanly and clearly.

“Sealing? Why would sealing be involved?” Trisha asked, furrowing her brow. As far as she was aware, sealing had one outcome- a trapped Apparition within an object, that sometimes could be drawn from. Then, there wouldn’t be any bees to communicate with in the first place. Not that sealing the Queen could be any kind of consideration.

“I’m… not sure it’ll work then. Neither of us want her sealed, for obvious reasons. She has passed all of her magic and knowledge onto me, but I guess that doesn’t really help.”

”I simply have little experience formatting artifacts to safely interact with Apparitional magic without the intention of it functioning as a vessel for sealing. This does not mean it is impossible, non? Simply, I am uneducated. But, no task is too great for Sylvie Richoux. Mark my words.”

She considered the options she did know, and did her best to think of an intelligible solution to what Trisha was asking for.

”Currently, the biggest consideration is a fragment of the entity’s power, so that it would function as a secondary core of power. Like… A comic book character. Those lanterns. she referenced a particular popular comic book character and the trope surrounding it.

Trisha pursed her lips thoughtfully, trying to dredge up some memory of any kind of superhero comic. Both Cass and Sal read them growing up, and talked a lot about that stuff, but it was difficult to figure out the relevance here.

“I don't really read comics, so I'm not entirely sure who those are… But I've got a rough idea of what you meant. I'm not sure if it's something the Queen would agree to. She was sealed before, so giving up a fragment would take some convincing…" She trailed off, nibbling her lip as she thought about it a bit more.

“It would probably mean the bees would register Casey as… Me or her. Or maybe, some kind of secondary Queen. It would risk them getting confused and not sure who to follow… Or maybe it can be programmed in a way that they'll recognise it as him."

It was more complicated than she expected. Obviously, she hadn't thought it would be easy, but she also hadn't expected it to involve having to give up any amount of actual power. She wasn't sure if the Queen would approve, or Casey in the end…

Sylvie was, obviously, missing a piece of the puzzle that she wasn’t considering. Trisha had even said it herself, yet Sylvie’s bias made it easy to pass up the idea of the usefulness of White Lux in the situation. It was the hue-saturation of Nostalgia, whose observational and connective properties so often allowed one to bridge the gap between Apparition and Adept. It simply accepted and reflected all other colors in the spectrum, amplifying the capabilities of Joint Casting.

And Sylvie definitely wasn’t thinking of this concept in terms of Joint Casting. Thankfully, she was at least self aware enough to admit that she could be wrong to herself. She’d done so much work in her life that she’d learned to naturally assume that her solution wasn’t the best. Just very good and very practical. Finesse was necessary for something like this. It took more thinking, and more planning. But, she also knew it would ultimately be helpful if the Apparition in question was willing to play ball.

”Then I believe we both have research to undertake, non? I will consult Maxwell in private; he usually has elegant solutions where I would use a hammer. What sort of form was this intended to take? A pendant, or… Forbid another ring. Leon, he wears the rings on so many fingers, it is simply gouache. Especially when it is all so elegant in itself! Always remember, Trisha: If a piece is masterful, one should not hide it in between anything. It should stand out on its own, and scream its beauty in solitude. Thankfully, the band you picked out for him is homely. Not that it is not beautiful or meaningful, only that, did one not realize the intricacy of the piece, they would suspect nothing of its value. And, value isn’t… Well, you understand. I insult your intelligence by rambling such.”

Trisha smiled, nodding along. She hadn't actually picked out Casey's engagement ring, but she wasn't going to tell Sylvie that… ultimately it didn't matter. She'd given it to him.

At least the idea of using a fragment of the Queen's power was put aside for now. Trisha was willing to talk to the Queen about what might work, but asking something like that would've been incredibly difficult. Talking to the Queen was already difficult as it was. She felt like she shouldn't disturb her after all the magic and knowledge had been passed over… But she was fairly certain there was nothing in what she'd passed about imbuing a magical object to imitate parts of her ability. So, she'd have to ask.

“I do understand. I haven’t worn many other rings on my left hand since Casey proposed.” She held up her left hand, with the only other ring besides her engagement ring being a simple gold band. Though she was never someone to overload on jewellery in the first place.
“I was thinking some kind of pendant… Something simple looking too. Casey isn't exactly the showy type."

Which made it difficult. She wasn't sure if he'd even want another piece of jewelry. All he seemed to wear were his dog tags and now the engagement ring. She was sure he'd wear anything she gave him, but that didn't mean she wanted to give him something he didn't like.

“Maybe something oval or circular, that matches his dog tags… Without being another one, of course. I'd say it could have a quote or something engraved in it, but I don't have one in mind." She paused, thinking about it a bit more. It didn't need to be made out of metal, did it? Maybe she was thinking too narrowly.

“It doesn't have to be made from metal, does it? Could it be made of something like amber? It looks a lot like solidified honey, which I think would be nice." She continued, wringing her hands together.
“Sorry, I'm not being very decisive. I've only really been thinking about what I want it to do, rather than what it should look like."

Sylvie nodded along as Trisha did her best to describe what she wanted. She liked to think that she knew what Casey’s tastes were, and she believed that something entirely more subtle may be right for him. All five of the children had their ears pierced young, but Casey had been the only boy to keep them open. She liked the idea of ear jewelry, but then wondered if he really liked it nowadays, or if the military forcing them out and the holes closing gave him a case for new feelings.

But she also knew full well that stomping all over Trisha as she tried to think it out would be ignoble and uncouth. She’d be a mean, mean old lady if she didn’t let this young woman accurately express her love through a commission’s concept.

She did, at least, feel incredibly receptive and excited for the use of Amber as a material. It was pleasurable to work with, and oftentimes had magical properties that were only active in the presence of a Luxal signal. She immediately had an idea.

”Would it be morbid to utilize a piece which houses the subjects of your Patron? Not any bees: Ancient bees, long lost to time. From the golden age of her rule. Maybe their lingering essence could bridge the gap we stand across between function and form.” she explained, seeing how Trisha reacted to the idea.

Would that be possible? Trisha herself didn’t have a problem with it, though the Queen might. If the bees were already trapped in amber, then they were long dead. They hadn’t ever been hers either. She was sure the Queen would recognise whatever bee it was hadn’t been killed by them. If it would help… She was willing to try.

“Do you have amber like that? It’s very specific, and I definitely don’t. The best I could get is directions towards where her kingdom once was.” Trisha responded, not against the idea but instead thinking about the practicalities.
“If it’s something we can get, then I think that would work. It would be nice, even, since it's another connection to me… Assuming Casey doesn’t find it morbid. But I don’t think he would.”

For Trisha, at least, a long gone bee trapped in Amber wasn’t all that morbid. Especially not when she’d been implanting bee larvae in human flesh for the last few days. It was the natural cycle of things… Even if her own bees' deaths affected her, she could be practical about it.

Sylvie nodded calmly.
”If nothing else, the Temple of Charming and Graceful Individuals has become a masterful sourcing organization. With many rich Americans in their pockets, they have access to hidden caches, special collections, and private vaults where individuals are happy to donate into their causes.”

She slid a piece of blank paper from a slot in the desk, and a pen flicked into existence between her fingers. There, she began to sketch in pen, with incredible proficiency and fluidity. She didn’t pass over her lines, darkening them or boldening them with pressure of the pen’s fountain tip alone. Such mastery over artistic rendition could only be two things: Years and years of practice and skill developed by a lifetime’s work. Or, magic. It was a much safer bet to assume both were involved.

”Something to go with those tags of his… Could be very subtle.”

Trisha had looked at them enough to know what they were in her head. She also knew that he still wore the rubber edges around them, making them almost outlined by black. He explained the rubber was meant to keep them from clanking together in stealth operations. But, Sylvie was very clearly drawing a depiction of the tags now being lined by amber fittings.

”The gasket… He no longer needs to remain hidden, non? So, we replace the industrial darkness of rubber with the natural, time-tested beauty of crystal amber. Perhaps.” she offered, knowing that Trisha had been more partial to a pendant to begin with.

So she also drew two other designs. A full on pendant with a thick gem of Amber in the center, surrounded by two bees holding it in place as the fixture. And then, a simple bead of the amber depicted as slotting in between the two tags, sitting perfectly center and being simple, but elegant with a single bee resting within.

”These are just ideas of course.” she added, finally sliding the page out so Trisha could see completely.

Trisha glanced across the three designs with visible awe in her gaze. To be able to come up with and draw them so quickly… It made sense, for someone who’d been making jewellery like this for so long. But Trisha was still as impressed as she watched.

The full pendant was mentally rejected first. It was nice, but too much. It was the kind of thing that she’d consider wearing to specific occasions… So if she wouldn’t even wear it all the time, she doubted Casey would. Though it was nice… It was a bit more difficult between the two other ideas. They were both nice, and incorporated into the one thing Casey always wore. Of course Trisha understood why… It would be nice to add something to that.

“I like this.” She pointed to the final design with a smile. In the end, she didn’t want to actually put something on the tags. That felt presumptuous, even if Sylvie was right that Casey didn’t need to remain hidden anymore. She didn’t want to force him to change it.

“It’s simple, and with the bee within it, he’ll always think of me when he looks at it.” She said quietly. Something unobtrusive but pretty in its own right… It seemed perfect.
“I like the subtlety, but it’s also its own piece. It’s… A perfect design, honestly. As long as he doesn’t try to put any rubber around it too, to stay stubbornly stealthy!”

The last bit was meant to be a joke, and she laughed slightly as she said it.

She smiled, taking the piece of paper and marking the design she liked the most before folding it and sliding it into her sweater pocket.

”He is rather stubborn. Like his Father. Always in trouble because of his mouth. He’s so much different now… Would you… Like to see pictures? Sylvie asked, wriggling slightly out of nervousness.

She truly loved her late-blooming grandson. Always had. He’d been an incredibly special little child, with so much introspective consideration that oftentimes it made her feel like she was talking to a little man. She had a few other grandchildren like that… And those, she held in highest regard because she could connect with them early. It didn’t bloom later, or worse, calcify into a near-stranger relationship. But, it wasn’t just that. Casey set himself further apart by his convictions and commitment. He’d always been stubborn. That was her favorite part.

”I have many… If you can keep a secret, I’ll admit that he occupies a tender place in my heart. I kept two cameras active. Usually one was reserved for my favorites. Perhaps this makes me a bad mother as well, but when you have so many, and they have so many… It becomes impossible to remember them all equally. I am no White or Pink Adept, after all.”

“I won’t tell anyone. At least you tried, even if you had favourites.” Trisha responded with a slight shrug. It was more than she could say for her Dad. It wasn’t just that he had favourites… He neglected all beyond the first five or six. Even among the oldest, some just got pressure rather than any kind of love.

“My Grandmother probably doesn’t remember my name, but I can’t blame her for that. The longest I spent around her was when I was twelve, for about a month. That was the only time, so… It’s natural to be closer to the ones you connect with and see more often, I guess. As long as no direct children are neglected.”

Sometimes, she did feel sad about her lack of connection to the majority of her Mom’s side. But she barely had a connection to Maria herself… And from how the single cousin she was in semi-regular contact with made it sound, it wasn’t particularly worth it. Only a few family members were really tolerable. But her memory of her Grandmother was that she’d been nice, and doting, even to the grandchild that was practically a stranger.

“I’d love to see pictures of younger Casey. I’ve barely seen any.”

Sylvie leaned forward, letting one thin hand reach out to Trisha’s. She tried to make it clear in her expression that it wasn’t a pity as much as it was a sense of mourning. She was affected, it seemed, by Trisha’s own truthful admission.

”She remembers your name… You are impressionistic. And very beautiful. You would make any grandmother proud.”
Her thumb stroked the back of Trisha’s hand for a moment before she cleared her throat and pulled away. Her spare hand slid across the table, and it began to shimmer before she spoke.

”Snacks and coffee to the Study.”

At the same time, the lights dimmed, and a projector screen unfurled from one of the walls until it was full size.

”What… Would you like to see? I have baby pictures, I have vacations they made to us in France. I have pictures of him from birthdays, and special moments from the Church. His communion, his early school… Pictures of when he started to grow… I’ve… I imagine I’ve shown my hand.” she grinned in a foolish way.

Truly, he was her favorite. She had a list, but it wasn’t even a contest.

”You must understand, when you meet a baby and feel its spirit instantly… It leaves an impression.” she admitted.
”I always thought he would Kindle very young. Now, I believe that he was simply so capable of containing it all that, well… To react emotionally? He simply could not bring himself. He was stoic. Stern. Very funny to make fun with. Because he would be so resistant.” she described her grandson with incredible fondness in her eyes.

Trisha tried to picture it as best as she could… Little Casey with a stern expression refusing to crack. She couldn’t help but giggle a bit just at the thought. It was so different from the Casey she knew now. He was definitely still stoic, but he’d shown so many emotional reactions around and towards her.

“You’ll have to show me that… I can kind of picture it, but I’m too used to how expressive he can be now.” Trisha smiled, finally making her way to one of the couches to sit down.

“Honestly, I’d like to see all of them. But if you have so many, there probably isn’t enough time.” And she wasn’t sure if Sylvie would be happy to spend hours going through Casey pictures, even if he was clearly her favourite. Trisha would… But she’d also gladly stare at his face for hours without doing anything.

“So if you have any favourites, I’d like to see them.”

While the desk was shimmering, Trisha couldn’t actually see anything on it. That didn’t seem to stop Sylvie from treating it like a touch-screen to a computer. Her bony fingers deftly swept through piles of photographs kept in this magical format, and rather than a projector itself showing them the images, the screen simply pulled them up like it was a completely digital system.

The first picture was of the little boy, hair short and eyes staring with piercing blue up at the camera. His expression was deadly serious, and both his little fists were clearly balled up tight to the white knuckle stage.

”I keep this picture close. I had just asked him- Well… Told him that he was being difficult, and that it was going to earn him a nap were he not able to refrain from these difficulties. He bridled further, and rather than get upset, I… Just took a picture. I told him that I would embarrass him for the rest of his life with it. And then we had a nice nap while Maxwell took the others on the lake.”

The picture turned, and it was the same little Casey in the same outfit, but passed out completely and tucked up against the arm of a couch. She looked at Trisha with wide eyes, the expression clearly translating a cuteness overflow.

”I do feel bad. He has told me of his sleeping troubles after the war. It is a dreadful thing… I can only be thankful that our area was not as badly affected as others, and that we’ve been able to help the surrounding areas rebuild quickly. He spent a year with us after that-”

She changed the picture to a far more familiar Casey, hair still short but clearly only from a couple of years ago.

”We were able to offer the unit a place to stay, and they used our property as a logistical hub.”

It was him in full uniform, walking with a clipboard among a group of other soldiers as they passed through an area full of rubble and destruction. He was clearly pointing, giving orders, and some people seemed to be in motion within the image, blurring away from the center in rapid paces.

”I wound up finding a new level of respect for him. I could see all those qualities I imagined in him as a child.”

Trisha nodded, unable to tear her gaze away from the picture. While the first two had been incredibly adorable, he was very attractive in this one. She imagined it being a candid shot helped, with no need to pose. It was natural… All of them were. It was nice to see something else from that time of his life.

“He impresses me all of the time. He’s… a really great man.” She wasn’t quite sure how to put into words how she felt. Wasn’t sure she could to someone else, aside from Casey himself. It required dragging up her feelings, after all. Because she knew that part of why he was able to stay with her where others hadn’t were those kinds of traits, and the ones that had been solidified as a soldier.

“He’s been sleeping better recently, I think. I’m not really sure what it was like before, but he’s said that being with me helps.” Even if he hadn’t slept the last couple of nights. Neither of them had, and she had a feeling it might continue like that for a while.

“Is there any way I can get that first one? This one too, honestly…” She rubbed the back of her neck, looking at Sylvie with a rueful smile.
“Actually, if I start asking for them now, I’m going to end up wanting most of them, I think.”

Sylvie giggled, nodding her head and patting Trisha’s hand again as her body leaned over to comfort Trisha.
”I shall compile the ones you like most, and ask someone to place them on a serial bus drive for your computer. So you can pick through them as you like. I have done that before, for some of the others. Lynette has one for each child, though I was scolded for the size disparity between the five files. I’m not sure that woman understands equity… She’s more of an equality kind of person.” she grimaced, shaking her head.

And this impromptu photo viewing went on like this for what could only have been described as forever. During, the two women must’ve viewed almost a thousand pictures either directly of, or in some way involving the subject of observation. Their favorite soldier. Sylvie gushed about him more than once, her passion only equal when moments of talking about her actual children came up. At least for them, she seemed equally passionate and ferocious over. She’d spin out into small stories, almost always leading them back to the topic at hand within a couple minutes. It seemed she was a great story teller, if only because she understood how to make them concise and focused on the topic of discussion. Only once or twice did she veer off into a tangent, and that was only on the subject of her least favorite daughter-in-law.

Her utter contempt toward Lynette was clear, and it showed in how she talked about Elise… She clearly had disliked grandchildren in the same fashion that she had those who left good impressions, and Elise seemed to be chief among them. It was, however, easy to see as an outsider that it all stemmed from her similarities to her mother. Which could have easily left Trisha with the impression that Elise’s apparent bid for power toward the vacuum of Lynette’s death was something she disapproved of greatly.

However, those were only small moments. A fully bronze-clad automaton had long since begun to supply them with a steady stream of coffee and buttered breads, which she also had plenty of stories of. This was, in no uncertain terms, where Casey’s love of carbs came from. The little woman was voracious, and probably went through two dozen croissants with a whole stick of butter over the time they’d spent together. Yet, the elder woman felt no bridling or resistance to the time they were spending, so she let it continue until they were finally interrupted.

She’d settled on a picture of Casey with his Father, and both brothers. Trisha would’ve easily recognized seventeen year old Leon, as he looked no different than nineteen year old Leon save for a bit of muscle definition. Max Gravity stood tall over his sons, one hand on Leon’s shoulder while the other came down further and rested on Junior’s face in a loving caress. In between both boys, Casey was beaming, and had a championship belt in his hands that he was holding around his waist. All three boys looked like they’d been competing, with Leon’s face marred by a massive swollen knot around his eye.

And that’s when both Casey and Big Max walked in, casually chatting about something that neither women were privy to. But, seeing them and his picture up on the screen, Casey’s face lit up and he beamed brightly.

”I guess this would be an easy thing for the both of you to do!”

His long strides took him right up behind Trisha, and he kissed her on the head as one hand swept out to present her bracelet to her once again. It was completely fixed, though each sphere now had the addition of metal bands that held each sphere in place slightly. It didn’t diminish the beauty of the piece, but Sylvie did frown.

”The cables were not a sturdy enough binding?” she asked with concern in her voice.

”There is tremendous pressure in between each. I could see few other ways that did not involve more complex magics and reactuating formulae to fit around the addition of new spectrum participants.” Papa Max sputtered out, technical jargon soaring into the air and passing through Trisha’s head with only a vague understanding.

”Mmmm…-” Sylvie hummed in consideration. ”-You are once again a life preserver, Maxwell.”

”Saver, Nana… Life saver. Casey giggled, hands resting on Trisha’s shoulders.

Trisha tilted her head back to smile up at Casey, eyes squinting softly. He’d be able to see the tiredness in them, so used to reading her now. Really, the hours spent with Sylvie had been enjoyable. She liked seeing all the pictures, and hearing stories about him and the rest of her family. She only felt a bit uncomfortable when the stories turned a bit more negative, especially around Elise. But it had been more manageable than she expected.

But it was still draining, spending so much time with someone she wasn’t comfortable with yet. Not that many of those existed. At least it gave her some confidence that she could spend a good amount of time with Sylvie.

“Thank you for fixing it.” She tore her gaze away from Casey to look at Papa Max, still smiling. She slipped the bracelet back onto her wrists, cautiously turning it a few times. It didn’t immediately expand, at least.
“I was worried I’d have to carry around a basketball sized bead all the time.”

Laughing, she went right back to looking up at Casey.
“We didn’t look at too many embarrassing photos of you, don’t worry. Not that I think any were embarrassing… You were cute in all of them.”

There were still a few pieces of bread left, and Casey had reached over to grab one and slide it through the bottom of the butter dish before popping it into his mouth. Both hands were massaging Trisha’s shoulders, doing their best to clear her of any tension.

”Caseau does not take embarrassing photos. Sylvie, did you show her my favorites?” he asked, hand reaching over and patting Trisha on the head like she’d done something correctly.
”And, of course-” he leaned down in that conspiratorial way he did, as if making the moment purely between the two of them in spite of company. ”-I relish in fixing the mistakes of others. Don’t tell Casey this.”

Casey laughed aloud, playfully pushing Max’s shoulder.
”I’m right here, Papa, I can hear you.” he laughed.

”Oh… Right. he grinned back as Sylvie moved her hands around to find one last picture.

And it was, maybe, something that would make Trisha cry. It was the other night, before everything crazy happened. Thanksgiving, with Casey on one knee on the stage, proposing to Trisha.

”This one?” Sylvie asked up.

Max nodded.

”It is the first moment of the best years of both your lives. And in spite of what happened that night, I hope you both cherish this image as much as I do. We don’t know you very well, Trisha… But Casey has chosen you. So, rather than test you or make you to feel uncomfortable in order to temper you, we just hope you will learn to accept our love, and understand that we see what our Grandson does too. You’re worthy of our time and affection.” he explained down to her, the hand that had patted her head now resting on Casey’s hand which sat upon her shoulder.

”We love you both. Very much.”
Sylvie nodded, a familiar expression of a satisfied cat forming on her face.

“Ah-” Trisha reactively welled up, between the picture and what Max said. Her hands moved up to rub her eyes. She didn’t actually want to cry in front of them all.

She hadn’t actually seen any pictures of the proposal yet. She knew Casey had it all magically recorded, but there hadn’t really been a moment to sit down and watch through it with him. They’d been so busy, and she hadn’t thought to ask. So seeing it made her emotional.

Then his words… Had Casey talked to him, or was it just an old man’s intuition? The magical bolstering stopped her from immediately panicking over it, once again able to step back and actually hear what was said.

She couldn’t immediately believe it, but they didn’t seem to have that expectation. Explicitly said they hoped she’d learn to accept their love. It was a difficult thing, because there’d been so little familial love in her life. So to have Casey’s grandparents showing it to her, and for Max to try to reassure her, was overwhelming. Though it wasn’t in a negative way. It was… nice.

“Th-Thank you. I’ll try my best to accept it. I really appreciate it, I- I mean it’s probably obvious, but I really don’t have much present family.” She sniffed, even as she managed to stop the tears that threatened to flow down her face.
“I’m extra lucky to have found Casey. Or I guess, that he found me… I really do cherish him, and the moment in this picture.”

”Things are hard, and easy. Sylvie and I have been together fifty years. She has seen me come home from war, and peace. We have hated each other, and loved each other intensely. Again, I emphasize: This will be the greatest part of your life. The part you spend together.”

And then, of course without her permission, the massive man squatted slightly so he was at her level in the seat, and both his massive arms wrapped around her entirely. It didn’t feel like he was trapping her, but he did squeeze down. And she’d be able to hear the same mechanical whirring from beneath his shirt. One arm’s mechanical parts even clicked slightly, which made the hug a little unsettling until Sylvie spoke up.

”Maxwell… You need calibration. Your arm-”

He nodded, but kept hugging Trisha.

”I am cherishing, my Love… That can wait.”

Casey giggled, patting his Grandfather’s back.
”Papa, don’t crowd her. She’s particular.”

”Exposure therapy is a cure-all.” he retorted simply, but still pulled away and grinned down at Trisha.
”Will you both stay for dinner?”

”Non, Maxwell… Dinner is several hours away.” Sylvie insisted, waving Trisha and Casey along.
”The two of you should feel free to return to your lives. There is no obligation of time between us. This has been most enjoyable for me, Trisha.”

She was really just as exhausted as Trisha, but there was no way in Hell that her pride was going to let her say that aloud. Plus, she wanted more bread. She didn’t want to have to think about what others would eat.

Casey looked between his grandparents, then down at Trisha.
”Home’s probably good… Right?”

Trisha was glad that Casey said it, so she was just agreeing rather than pushing. At least only one of the two Grandparents seemed to push for them to stay in the first place, but she still would have felt bad saying no.

But the hug, small thing as it may be, had only drained her more. While she managed not to tense up like she normally would, even relaxed, she still found it difficult. She just wasn’t used to it… At least, she hoped that was the case, and eventually she’d be more tactile with people who she wasn’t dating. But exposure therapy via Cass hadn’t made a major difference yet.

“Right… We’ve got a lot to get done too.” Trisha agreed, still feeling like she needed to make some kind of excuse. Even if it wasn’t a lie, it wasn’t like they had to rush back. But staying for dinner would be the worst. Things like this she could handle, but she had too many issues around sitting down and eating with other people.

“But this was really nice. I enjoyed myself, even if… things didn’t get off to a great start.” She admitted, smiling at Sylvie and then Max. She had enjoyed it, for all it drained her. Just like spending time with most people did, even if she was very good at pushing through it. There just wasn’t as much of a need to now.

“I’m really looking forward to getting all the pictures I liked… Then I can start decorating our home with pictures of Casey.” Her smile was more playful as it turned back to Casey.

He’d helped her up out of the seat, and the two of them were close now as he made way to grab her hand.
”Oh, you’re getting the collection… Great. I can’t wait to see my bare ass on the wall.”

Sylvie laughed aloud, shaking her head.
”You will learn to appreciate it, my stubborn boy.”

She stood, and slowly made her way over. He leaned down instinctively so she could kiss his cheeks and he could kiss hers. After a little more time of small talk that brought them to the door, eventually Big Max actually bothered to walk them out and down to the truck. Another couple of minutes later, and they were driving back down the road toward the edge of the island, where they’d get back on the boat and make way for the shore again.

Casey didn’t say much at first, but eventually, he looked at Trisha.

”I really love you. I know we’re gonna be able to do this. Even if it’s hard. We’ll do it.” he conceded, not knowing exactly what kind of Trisha he’d be dealing with in this moment.

Trisha nodded, not immediately responding. When she’d gotten into the car, she immediately curled up with her knees pulled up to her chest and her head half resting on her knees. But it wasn’t a tense position like it normally was. She was drained, but relaxed enough. Because it was just them again, even if she was more nervous than normal in those moments.

What happened when they arrived, the panic and the cold feeling of nearby death, was still in the back of her mind. But right now, her love for Casey overwhelmed everything. She’d spent hours looking at photos of him and hearing stories, which only made her miss him more. It didn’t matter how he was feeling, she’d be able to handle it to be with him. For now…

“I really love you too. We will, because we’re together, and we’re used to dealing with difficult things alone.” She responded quietly, head resting on her knees at the perfect angle to look at him.

“I don’t mind that it’s hard, because I get to be with you. Struggling through things together only makes me love you more in the end.” She admitted. Though, she wasn’t sure how it was going to go this time, it was how she felt when it came to all her issues that had reared their ugly heads.

“Did you manage to get advice from Max?”

He shook his head. In truth, they’d spent nearly four hours just sitting and talking. Casey confessed a great deal, including his creeping dread of disconnection. The need to force himself to be the same person who others thought he was naturally. What he’d gotten instead of advice, however, was a long winded confirmation. One that he had, to an extent, been afraid of this whole time.

”No real advice. It’s a problem that some people just have, it seems. Even though he says he’s gone through the same feelings, the only solution was faith. He said God helps him a lot. Which isn’t really my thing, y’know? We talked about it all being silly knowing there’s magic. But, the principle of the New Dawn is that there is a God, and that all the crazy magic around us doesn’t change that. That everything’s intelligently designed, and that the Greater Will is just a part of the Trinity. Y’know, the Holy Spirit.” he shrugged.

”But, he also admitted that he’s been through the same thing. That, when he came home from the first World War, that he looked at everyone differently. Even my Grandmother. He said it took a lot of years to listen to her problems and not get upset by how trivial it seemed to him. But, obviously you look at them today and wouldn’t assume it was like that.” he admitted to her in a calm, quiet fashion.

He figured that too much emotion one way or another would trigger her anxiety, and make it seem like he was either happy about the conclusion, or too upset to deal with it. So, keeping neutral was his only hope.

Trisha furrowed her brow slightly, lips pressing together. It wasn’t great news. She hadn’t expected Max to have some advice that fixed everything, but the solution being faith and just keeping doing what he was doing didn’t sit well with her.

And Casey confirmed one thing she’d thought for the last couple of days- that her problems seemed trivial to him. It was a bit different from the belief that was true that she already held… But, of course they looked that way. Her issues were nothing in comparison to going through a War. The only thing that could come close was the Stygian Snake, and that had been a matter of months, not years. It really wasn’t the same.

Which was why she’d have to do better at not burdening him right now. She could handle her problems herself. She’d done that until now.

“So even if he didn’t give any helpful advice, at least you know that it’s not just you. And it’s something we can work through. They managed it.” Though, a lot of years was a long time. It would be difficult for her to keep a lid on and improve her own problems with that being the case, nevermind if they brought kids into the equation.

But being perfectly honest to herself, she wasn’t sure she wanted to have children until she dealt with her anxiety better. She didn’t want it to end up affecting them.

“Since faith isn’t your thing, maybe you need to find something else? Though… I’m not really sure there’s anything that could replace that. I’ve never been religious myself, so I don’t even know what that feels like. But, uh… Well, I’m willing to do whatever I can to help. I’ll be here the whole time.”

”It’s just… Not real. I have to tell myself its not real, and I have to be the force that drives the boat. I need to be the engine, and the wheels. It… I can’t do this to you. I don’t want to. I just want to be fucking perfect. I want you to look at me and feel safe, not fucking wonder if I even give a shit. It’s not fair to you.” he looked a little sad, but his hand still reached out.

”I have to have faith. Maybe not in God, but definitely in you. And myself. That we’ll both be strong, and we’ll both make it out like they did. I’ve gotta have faith that you believe me when I say I love you. And that your problems aren’t trivial. That the world I live in now isn’t smaller than the one I lived in before.”

They slid back onto the barge, and Casey locked the car again. His arms quickly swept over the console, wrapping under Trisha from both angles and practically tossing her over it into his arms.

”The bad things aren’t real. Not for me. They’re all gone. The war’s gone. Nothing’s more important than you.” he whispered.

Trisha immediately curled up against him, twisting around so she could hug him back.
“But they still affect you and make you feel things… And those feelings are real.”

She took a deep breath. She didn’t want him to take it all onto himself. That wasn’t fair, and it only confirmed her feelings of inadequacy. Because of all her problems, he wanted to push through and deal with his own. He didn’t want to lean on her like she leant on him.

“You don’t have to be perfect. I don’t want you to be perfect. The Casey I love isn’t perfect, but I still feel safe with him. Even when I’m anxious because of something you’ve said, because I know deep down that you’ll still listen to me and protect me. I don’t want the ideal person, I want you. And I want to support you too when you’re struggling with something. Because I can be strong.”

She pulled herself back enough to look up at him.
“Even if you feel like my problems are trivial, and are struggling to hear them… Just don’t push me away. I’d rather you snap at me or get upset. I know you don’t want that, but I don’t want you to clam up. We’re working through this together.”

Though, she knew it was hypocritical of her to say that right now, when she was already mentally minimising her own problems.

Even if he was supposed to just push through, every little contrarian thought he had felt like another failure. Like he was just perpetuating a cycle of pain that he couldn’t force her to participate in. But she didn’t want an escape. She wanted to deal with it…

Only because she feels like she’s not good enough for anything better…

It wasn’t true. It wasn’t real. He railed against it with fire and brimstone, only to sputter out mentally. The engine stalls.

”Your problems aren’t fucking trivial… You deserve someone attentive to them at all times. Not just sometimes. Perfect ain’t flawless, perfect is just right. It’s perfect. The balance. The fucking… I don’t know. I’m just gonna get us both stressed out going over it like this. You don’t deserve it constantly getting thrown in your face either.” was the reply he could muster.

It was hard for him not to think that if she heard all this, she may actually come around to caring about herself. But the truth was, they were more similar in a lot of ways than either realized. Chief among those similarities was this incessant need to please those around them, and not burden others with their problems.

“To most people, perfect is flawless.” Trisha countered gently, taking a deep breath. She didn’t want to get stressed. Like he said, they would just get stressed out if they kept going over it. It was like they were trapped in a loop. But she just wanted him to see that it was fine if he made mistakes.

Even if she never accepted her own.

“I’ll just say… You are still attentive. Like earlier! Even though you’ve been struggling, and after the call with Leon, you were still there for me. You didn’t have to be, because I wasn’t as affected when we got into the house… But you still were. I don’t need that kind of attention all the time… Sometimes we’ll both be struggling, and we’ll just have to silently sit with each other. But we’ll figure it out.”

He couldn’t help but laugh. They weren’t arguing, yet she still got him first. Bringing up his stubbornness, and willingness to handle the business of the future. Of doing for her, even when he felt like this. It was quite the reverse. Now, he had another opportunity to be the person they both needed. So, aware of it, he took it. He didn’t respond again, and simply nodded his head before bending his neck to kiss her gently.

”I love you, Trisha Bee.”
Hidden 7 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Saturday 16th December, around 12.
Cannery Building.

Finally it was here, the big day. Her big day.

Not that Cass was self centred enough to need a day. She would've been pretty happy to just have the small thing she originally planned... But she was a social butterfly. Or more a social wolf! Either way, the more it had been planned over the last week the more excited she got for it.

For the two of them, the last week had been less stressful than it had been for the couple upstairs. Aside from the aftermath of the Dollhouse raid, it had just been mundane ups and downs. Some bickering here and there, some more boundaries set, but it was all the kind of thing they easily moved past. Not that Cass found it difficult to bounce back from even the most difficult things. Overall, it was fun! Leon had actually been around again, rather than spending crazy hours out working on making sure they weren't all going to die in a shadowy explosion. Cass wasn't exactly the clingy type, but obviously she wanted to spend a bunch of time with her boyfriend. Especially being as extroverted as she was!

Which meant today was something she was looking forward to. Hanging out with her friends, meeting a ton of his… It was going to be great.

Reyna was coming earlier, and as the day just crept into the afternoon, she texted when she was about five minutes away. Which meant dragging Leon outside to wait for her. Not that Cass really needed to drag him anywhere, since there was basically no reluctance on his part to go anywhere with her... But she'd still physically grabbed his hand and pulled in her rush to get out. At least Reyna had said when she was leaving too, so they weren't interrupted mid fun- they made sure that was stopped with a couple of hours to spare!

So they were just outside the Cannery building entrance, with Cass bouncing from one foot to the other like she often did. She hadn't really cared to dress up- that would be an effort for later on before the party, when she'd really put some effort in. If anyone was bothered by her wearing just a tank top and small sports shorts, that was on them! At least she wasn't just straight up wearing boxers outside... And it was warm. Fifteen degrees in December was insane for her. Combined with her magic meaning her body temperature ran higher, she wasn't really inclined to bundle up right now.

"-And that's why I'm never drinking Tequila again! Just the smell of it makes me wanna puke!" Cass had been rambling away, animatedly telling Leon a story of a birthday celebration during her university days. Her twentieth, where she was pissed off at the insane laws in this country that meant she still couldn't legally go out drinking. So, obviously, she'd gone absolutely crazy at a house party. She didn't even remember half the night, but from what she did remember, she had some crazy stories. Mostly her doing insane shit. Because somehow sober Cass did have inhibitions, and blackout drunk Cass lost all of them. It was just impossible for her to get that drunk now... Though she tried her hardest to get close during the party last week.

"God, my hangover was awful. I don't even remember some've the funnest bits! Like Rey'll tell you about how I ended up just stripping at one point, and it took her and Diyah to tackle me and wrap me up in a blanket! Also supposedly I pulled out one've my posters of you and started sobbing about- Oh, look, there she is!"

Cass pointed to the car just pulling into the car park with a wide grin and massive wave. Not that she got one back, since Reyna was a safe driver. She was right on time... Probably because she remembered exactly how to get here from the last time. Remembering that, Cass spun away from looking across all the cars to grin up at Leon.

"Sooooo, how d'ya feel 'bout going back to where we had our first date?"

”Dude, that wasn’t our first date. Meeting for the first time never counts, or I’d have had a million first dates and like ten second ones. But, the place we met is pretty cool: There’s a reason we went that day. It’s fun. It’s always been fun.”

Leon had been feeling pretty good about things surrounding his life. Casey was in a bit of a crisis, but when wasn’t he? Leon could deal with that and more, so long as the engine within kept churning. Carnal pleasures kept her happy, and with Cass, every day found some kind of joy in flesh and gluttony. He reckoned they were honestly pretty perfect for one another, and so he treated every new day like it was more and more of a treat. Especially with Cass’ sickness ever-looming over their heads, every day had to be made special in some way.

He’d started working on music again, picking up rhythm guitar from where he’d left off as an Adept. She was great for inspiration: Cass always had something fun going on in her head, and it gave him plenty to feel like singing about. It was a much different tone than what he’d written before. Still heavy, still brash and bold, but hopeful. He’d written so much ominous and foreboding music that lyrics like “Picking up the pieces of a world in flames - You woke me up from the endless pain” seemed like he was writing about flowers and puppies.

And, frankly, he’d been just as excited about today as Cass had been. Not only to celebrate her, but to show her off to all the people she hadn’t been able to meet yet. He’d been getting texts from his own friends all morning: Or, at least their personal assistants. Some people coming to this were generally used to a lifestyle that meant the mundane aspects of their world wound up handled by other people.

Though, Instapeg seemed to be a lot more active in terms of the group of people he considered friends. Real friends, rather than Temple cronies or close family. Cass was getting happy birthday shoutouts on the reels by the handful, from people she’d never met. Carter Druso, Kate Rolans, Sergio Cardonna, and many other massive names in Sports Entertainment. Leon seemed to know everyone cursorily, and those who either couldn’t manage, or couldn’t be bothered to attend, paid some amount of lip service to the happy couple.

Maybe it was a little strange that so many people knew his business, but at the same time, it was incredibly exciting as an experience to be acknowledged by the heroes of Cass’ youth. Leon had been explicitly clear that there were people there he was keeping as a surprise for Cass. He only hoped that it didn’t put Cass’ other normal friends off…
Even the Temple Members who were in attendance were there strictly because of their connection to Leon and his businesses. People who were used to at least brushing shoulders with famous fighters and athletes, in order to maximize the chances that Cass would be the only person in the building fangirling out.

And that was part of her present ultimately. The chance to be around so many people who she’d only dreamed of meeting previously. He hoped it was a good preliminary to what was the actual gift.

”Are you gonna show Rey all your new trophy Reels? You’ve at least gotta show her the one you got from Mercado.” being Mercado Alencia, the Iberian Fear. A Spanish boxer whom Cass had actually met on her own as a younger girl during a meet and greet in Manchester.

Mercado had a great memory in spite of the concussions, and had surprised Cass in his Reel by recounting the event in very clear detail. Clear enough that it was shocking to both of them.

”I dunnnooo- she’s already gonna be dealing with a lotta it later! What if she turns around and just drives off?!” Cass shouted, ever dramatic, with her hands flinging up into the air. Not that she was actually worried about it. Anxiety wasn’t a thing she felt often. Only over very specific scenarios… But she was aware, at least right now before she got insanely excited, that going on and on about that kind of shit could annoy her friends. The whole two of them were able to go- which was pretty decent, considering how spread out across the country they were!

Sal had wanted to come, but he was flying back to Manchester tonight. Which was probably a good thing for her sanity with how competitive he got.

”I guess just that one, cause it’s so cool- I can’t believe he remembered, what the fuck? I mean sure, I was one of the only girls there and, like, one of the youngest too- but there were so many people! God, I just make a massive impression, I guess! On everyone I’m a fan of!” She grinned brightly, nudging Leon with her elbow.

”I am gonna show them all off to Jack when I get home for the holidays… Oh he’s gonna be so fucking jealous! I can’t wait.” She bounced a couple of times in eager anticipation of how jealous her older brother was going to be.

Reyna had parked now, though she was taking her time on getting out. She seemed to be pulling a… Wooden crate out of the trunk of her car? Seemed a bit much for a one night stay.

”Oh, shit, we should help!” Cass was off before Leon could say anything, whether agreement or disagreement, bounding towards Reyna with outstretched arms.
Reeeyyyyyy, lemme take it, I got it!”

Reyna laughed, not resisting as Cass shoved in to grab the crate from her. Otherwise she just had a backpack slung over her shoulder.
"Sure, feel free to carry part of your present."

Ooo- What is it, what is it?!”

"It’s not really a good present if I just tell you- Please don’t shake it."

Leon was happy to take up the burden, ensuring that the box actually didn’t get shaken due to Cass’ rapid saddle movements. One leg up, the other on the ground, just like a cowboy getting up on the horse. He giggled at her excitement, hoping that Rey was more prepared than her other friend. After all, Leon wasn’t dumb. He knew neither Trisha, nor Casey wanted to be there in that capacity. And in their private discussions, Cass obviously would’ve forgiven them both if they said they weren’t coming. But, they were. Thus, having some good balance between the low and the high of the two people (Trisha and Reyna), meant that they’d hopefully have to do a lot less damage control than they would otherwise.

”C’mon, give it over. I don’t trust you not to shake as far as I can throw you. Which… Is probably further than sensible in the case of that joke.”
His hands scooped it from underneath, twisting and peeling the box away from Cass.
”How was the drive, Rey? Get stuck anywhere coming up?” he asked casually.

"It was surprisingly smooth. The most difficult part was getting out of Portland in the first place." Reyna replied with a smile, shutting the trunk and locking her car now that Cass (and the box) were out of the way. She was more than prepared for this level of Cass excitement. While it wasn’t something she’d be able to handle every day, she was fine with it when it happened. Like Cass, her mood wasn’t one easily dampened- though her base state was the complete opposite, normally calmly enjoying herself.

Cass was pouting exaggeratedly up at Leon for taking the box away from her- it was her present! And a chance to show off her incredible strength by easily carrying it in one hand… But it was fine cause she probably would shake it too much and break whatever was inside!

”Hell yeah, I’m glad it was smooth!” She easily swapped from her fake upsetness to grinning at Reyna. Now that her hands were free, she had the perfect opportunity to pull the taller woman into a tight hug. Not so tight it’d hurt, but certainly tight enough that there was no way Reyna could escape it.

Not that she wanted to- she wasn’t Trisha. Rey was happy to hug her back, though she did start patting her after a moment.
"Hey, not so tight. You really have been working on your magic, haven’t you? You didn’t try to crush me last time."

Cass let go, turning her head to Leon to waggle her eyebrows at him.
”Oh, you wouldn’t believe how much I can do now… C’mon, c’mon, let’s get inside! We’re gonna show you where you’re staying the night, then we’re gonna hang out at Lee’s place! Real chill, though! Oh- I’ll show you my place first, though! It just ain’t so big, and he takes up half the couch, so it ain’t the best for hanging out. ‘Specially since I texted Trisha to come join us with Casey! Though she said it’d be a while, cause they’re in the middle of something.”

Thanks to Leon, Cass roughly knew that neither Trisha or Casey were in an amazing place. At least, not in a social place. So why drag them to even more socialisation? Well… She figured maybe they’d be able to enjoy something smaller, and it’d take the pressure off actually coming tonight. Since she knew what Trisha was like. Overly worried about what Cass would think if she didn’t come! Of course, Cass wanted them there, but she wanted them to be comfortable more than anything!

"That sounds good. We can share your present, then. And however much I see Trisha, I’ll be alright with." Reyna said easily.

”Who-Who-Whoa! Who said anything ‘bout sharing it?!”

”Hey, I didn’t ask for a selfish birthday girl. Sharing’s caring! I assume I should bring this downstairs with me? I still need to take down that picture…” Leon replied with a grin on his face.

After all, he didn’t really have company usually. So, putting Genesis into a different room wasn’t something he usually thought about. At least with the spare bedroom free, he could easily tuck it in there and close the door.

”You’re gonna get whatever birthday girl I feel like being, and like it!” Cass retorted, sticking her tongue out playfully at him.

"Assuming downstairs is where we’ll be then yes, it would be best to bring it down there." Reyna answered more helpfully. Though, Cass had no idea what was in the box. It was the less exciting present, in Rey’s mind, though the other one was much smaller.

”Actually, while you’re at it, you should replace that picture with a massive one of me.” Cass added, really doubling down on the joking self centred attitude.

Leon laughed in return, shouldering the box and turning his body.
”I’ll somehow get my Orange Lux back and get it taken care of for you. It’ll be bigger, even. Take up the whole wall.” he laughed, waving the two of them off as he made way for the door and hooked the left down the stairs, leaving the two girls to themselves.

Cass grinned at his back, ushering Reyna over to the lifts. They’d had one of the other apartments on her floor cleaned up for Rey to use for the night… Though not the one Greyson and Linqian used while he was dying. That would’ve been a bit morbid. The other one that wasn’t being used as Cass’ sick apartment.

"It’s good to see the two of you are still doing well." Reyna commented as Cass brought her to the apartment, pushing the door open.

”Of course we are! Did you have that little faith in me?!” Cass pouted, stepping to the side to let Reyna in. It was simply decorated as no one lived in it- all the essentials were there, but not much else.

"After Trisha, you have the worst track record."

”C’mon, it ain’t a fair comparison! You’ve dated like three people since I met you, Diyah’s only dated five, and Sal’s eternally single! But that one boyfriend he did have was kinda weird!”

"I think most people would consider having no nerdy hobbies as being normal."

”Nuh uh. Even Diyah has a nerdy hobby, and she’s the most normal person I know.” Cass shook her head.
”Do you wanna get settled in? I can leave you for a bit, go down and make sure Lee’s getting that new picture of me just right.”

Reyna laughed. She’d dumped her backpack on the couch, rummaging in it to pull out her normal denim jacket, which she slung over her arm, along with a large gift bag.
"No, I’m alright. I’ll have time to get ready for the actual party later, yes?"

”Yup!”

Of course, Cass didn’t want to risk going down while that picture was still there. She’d grown numb to it in the time she’d spent in Leon’s apartment, but that didn’t mean she wanted to subject anyone else to it!

So Reyna got a full tour of Cass’ flat. Not that there were many rooms, but she had plenty to show off- including her dormant but totally alive computer. That actually dragged some kind of shocked reaction out of Rey.

When they headed downstairs, Cass was confident she’d given Leon more than enough time. Even though there were a gazillion locks on the door, he’d managed to leave them all unlocked somehow, which meant she didn’t have to pull out the key she still had for the place. Instead she just shoved the door open and bounced in.

Leeeeooonn, Babbyyy, you better not have opened my present!”

It had been simple enough taking the picture down. It made the safe behind it pretty well noticeable, but he didn’t think anyone coming down would be concerned over it. It was empty anyway: After all, he had another one in a different spot in the apartment. Their Dad had made sure there was plenty of squirreling space, and Clarissa had certainly helped out in that regard with her magic. The floor safe was more of a vault, with a ladder that led down into the blackness. Only, the entry hole wasn’t big enough to fit the painting, thus he’d not bothered storing it down there.

So in Casey’s old room it went, and with the door closed, he was free to mingle about the apartment. He’d gotten coffee made, and had texted Casey to make sure they were still good.

L: All good my man?
C: :(
L: Better down here. You two need space.
C: :(


Leon shook his head at that. He loved Casey, truly… But these moods were the worst. He just locked down, like the world was going to end. It’d been the only point of contention he had felt when the guy lived down there. He didn’t eat for weeks at some points. Just locked the doors, covered his windows, and shuffled furniture around until he was bunkered up. He wondered if Trisha was letting him do that or not. Probably not…

But, Cass’ voice interrupted his train of thought.

”I did! And it’s all over the place! he laughed. As the two of them cleared the hall into the kitchen, he raised his hands innocently.
”Juuuuust kidding!” he grinned widely.

”What’d you think of the digs, Rey? She’s got a nice setup up there, doesn’t she?” he asked, curious to hear her friend’s judgement of the apartment he’d provided her.

"It's very nice. A perfect size for one person, I'd say. It's very cozy, everything fits well without being too cluttered. The small computer corner she has is perfect for her. I'm just surprised you're ever able to drag her away from it." Reyna smiled. She squinted as Leon came into view, aura blindingly bright while she was holding her channeler. She hadn't brought it to purposefully read them, though- it was more a discomfort without having it accessible, and the fact she had some stuff she needed in the pockets.

"I ain't that bad!" Cass protested. Her head jerked between Leon and the unopened crate, trying to decide which to tackle first. In the end she went for Leon, practically launching herself at him. Arms and legs wrapped around him completely as if she was trying to tackle him to the ground- though she didn't actually put much strength behind it, so she obviously wasn't. She leaned in to press a purposefully loud kiss to his cheek.

"I ain't that bad, am I, Babe? You don't feel like I'm aboutta abandon you for technology, do ya?!"

Reyna chuckled, moving towards the couch to lay her jacket over the back of it, letting her actually look at the two of them.
"Now that's a loaded question if I've ever heard one."

Leon gave a wry grin and chuckled aloud.

”Honestly, I don’t mind the days she’s caught in the hole. I know it’s more hyperfixation than it is dedication, but I think her passions get put on display regardless of the cause.”

His arms were wrapped around her, holding her up so she didn’t have to cling too hard.

”Plus, even if the damn thing grew legs and a dick, I think she’d still like me more. It's the fantasy, y’know? I am who I am!” he winked.

”Which is pretty damn awesome! Obviously, I ain’t caught dead dating non awesome people.” Cass laughed, using her new found arm freedom to squish his cheeks playfully.

”Though… I could totally give my computer legs and a dick! I ain’t ever thought ‘bout it, but it’s possible!”

Reyna groaned softly and shook her head at Cass, though she was still smiling.
"Please, hearing it breathe was enough. I don’t need that image."

”What?! Leon came up with it! It ain’t like it’d be anything more than a magical experiment! That ain’t actually something I think I’d be into… Not enough to bother, at least! I’m plenty satisfied there anyway.” Cass grinned, patting Leon’s arm.
”Lemme down, Babe, I wanna open my giiiffttt.”

Leon looked down at her, eyes narrowing.

”Dude, you can get down. You got yourself up here!”

As he said that, he was sure to squeeze around her just a little tighter to tease her.

”I know you can! Don’t be scared of heights!” he laughed.

It was always a welcome moment when he got to get her back for the constant cycle of soft bullying. In tender moments, the facade faded away into two very sweet and sappy people. But, this kind of tender moment was for laughs and giggles. For a little teasing, as Leon felt her starting to wriggle out, and made the effort to take steps away from her gift just to make it harder.

”I know you’ve got this!” he prodded again, starting to really laugh as her strength built up.

”I don’t wanna beat you to the ground in front’ve Rey! We’ll never live it down!” Cass wailed around her own laughter. She was doing her best to pry Leon’s arms to the side to give her enough room to wriggle out, making progress as Green Lux really started to enhance her muscles. But he was still so annoyingly strong! And it was a pain to get out of a grip like this!

”And I don’t wanna go all noodley in front of her either!”

"Do whatever you need to. I won’t judge." Reyna commented from the side with soft laughter, leaning against the couch and folding her arms.

Ugghhhh.”

Cass made a split second decision about which was cooler, before thinking fuck it, and going with the weird option. She got rapidly longer, thinner and floppier until she practically slid out of Leon’s arms. It was like she was made of rubber. She didn’t even bother solidifying herself as her feet hit the ground. Instead she flopped over, wrapping around Leon’s legs completely.

”Now you’re trapped!”

Leon stuck his leg up in the air, both arms sweeping out to present the scene to Rey.

”Look at the absolute control! Not a lot of people can do shit like this with such rapidity, I’m not sure if you know… But, this is pretty impressive. We have a lot of fun pushing her limits!” he explained casually, grinning from ear to ear as he did his best one-legged hop back over to her gift.

”Now, get off! You won again!” he beamed widely, looking down at her unchanged face.

”Heh heh heh, I always win!” Cass cackled, unravelling herself from around Leon’s leg. Her arms hit the ground first, doing a roll towards the box and shifting back to normal on the way. She landed perfectly on her ass in front of it.

Reyna’s eyebrows were creeping closer to her hairline, though she was still laughing over the goofy scene in front of her. It was impressive. Incredibly impressive. She didn’t know many Green Adepts personally, but she knew enough magical theory to understand what went into it.

"It’s very impressive, considering what she was doing a month ago. I don’t think I’ve seen anyone improve that rapidly, though my experience is limited to a few Adeptal families. I’m surprised you’re doing limit testing already."

Cass’ near permanent smile faded for a moment, though thankfully she had her back turned to both of them as she was pulling open the box. She loved how much she could do with her magic, but she’d only improved so quickly because of the fucking curse!
”Well, I’m just that awesome- Ooo, beer! Hell yeah, thanks Rey!”

The crate was filled with a variety of craft beers. There seemed to be a couple of bottles of each flavour, and most of the flavours seemed pretty interesting. Cass pulled one out to start squinting at it. At least the excitement of the present opening outweighed the thoughts of her illness, and hopefully Rey wouldn’t ask too many questions about how Cass had gotten so strong. She’d need to tell her other friends eventually, but it wasn’t exactly a fun prospect.

”They’re from the brewery in Chicago… You seemed to enjoy them when you visited, so I got you a selection when I was back home. Some are even unreleased flavours, since the owner is so friendly with my parents.” Reyna explained.
”Those are the smaller present.”

”Small?! This is a lotta beer!” Cass started rummaging through the box, trying to figure out what she wanted to go first. She twisted her head around to grin at Leon.
”Want one, Babe?”

It made Leon terribly happy that Cass had such attentive friends. Rey’s thoughtful gift from a place they couldn’t easily get to made a good impression on him.

”Absolutely! Thank yooooou!” he sauntered up, kissing the top of her head before peering into the beer crate.

They were packaged nicely! So nicely, in fact, that they hadn’t even really rattled around in the case when he was coming downstairs. He knew there was liquid in it based on how moving it felt, but he figured there was some sealed vat of British tea rather than a bunch of individual bottles. One he picked up because it had a bit more color than the other bottles. Bright orange, in fact.

”Oh fuck, is this carrot?

Turning the bottle in his hands revealed a much different flavor, however.

”Mouth-Smoking Malt? This… Has fucking cayanne pepper in it.

His eyes narrowed down at Cass, then over at Reyna. Then, ultimately, squarely back to Cass.

”She wouldn’t buy this as a joke… The others seem good! So… You must actually…-” He kept his eyes narrowed at Cass, then slowly let the bottle twist in his hand until it was outstretched to Cass. He held it there, assuming she’d either laugh, or do the worse alternative…

”Spicy drink for a spicy gal!” Cass grinned, reaching out to snatch the bottle from him. She flicked her thumb up to flick off the cap, staring back at him the whole time.

Sure, she’d never had Mouth-Smoking Malt in her life! She had no idea why it was in there! But she was absolutely going to take the opportunity to fuck with him again. So long as Rey didn’t blow her cover and out that it was a joke.

Reyna watched, pressing her lips together to stay silent. What had actually happened was she gave the owner a list of the ones she knew Cass liked, and her general taste to fill the box. Obviously, he’d snuck in a few… Interesting ones. But she didn’t want to ruin Cass’ fun- or miss watching her drink it.

”You don’t like your beer so hot it blows your head off, Babe? You’re missing out.” Then she knocked it back, taking a massive swig from the bottle.

Holy shit!

Cass had a good spice tolerance. She also had magic. She’d just underestimated the strength of cayenne pepper infused beer and not bothered magically bolstering her tongue and throat. So they felt like they were on fire. Tears immediately spilled down her cheeks, and she sniffed to stop her nose from running everywhere as her body reacted to the intense spice.

”See? Soooo fucking good, I’m crying outta joy!”

The beer was cursory to the strong pepper that crept into Leon’s nose. His eyes began to water immediately, mouth opening on reaction like a dog on a hot summer day. He didn’t even have to have a sip to know that it was disgusting, and nothing he’d ever want to try.

”Nooooo, nooooooo! No, who the fuck would drink that!? That’s not natural, that’s not even humane! It’s like pepper spray mixed with yeasty- Ugh, it’s like spicy ass! Don’t expect me anywhere near your lower extremities for the next couple days, holy shit!

Unlike Cass, he didn’t have much of a stopgap between his own senses, and the hyperacute sensory depth of Lelou. Only, it was a bit more of a problem that she was stirred by the smell… And compelling him to take a sip.

”Leon… I want that nectar.”
”What!? Nooooo! No, please, you can feel what it’s doing to my-”
”I’ll take the pain. I’ll even reward you! Just… Drink! Drink it now!”

As if it were a machine of its own, Leon’s arm stretched out and snagged the bottle before tucking it up to his lips. His eyes were wide with fear as the wretched liquid poured into his stomach and started to form a hot ball of gas like a baby star. But he could also feel Lelou’s absolute ecstasy over the intensity and newness of this flavor. She loved spicy things. Loved it whenever Leon got the extra hot chicken, or had a particularly good Indian curry. The heat, the pain, the intensity of its foreign and unexplored nuances, all made her incredibly satisfied in even a small moment like this.

When he pulled the empty bottle away and let it clack onto the counter, he had a terribly pained face on.
”And the reward is that you won’t be tortured by Cass drinking it slowly in front of you.”

”Oh God, she lied to meeeeeeeeeeeeee! he whined out, tilting his head back and trying not to throw it all back up.

Awwww, Baby.” Cass’ attempt at sympathy and comfort was massively hindered by the way she was cackling like a maniac. Sure, she’d been upset for a moment when he snatched the bottle away- but she’d experienced Lelou’s sudden limb takeovers enough times now to realise what was going on.

”It’ll be ok! It’ll come out one way or another!” She continued, very unhelpfully. She did hop up onto the counter so she could reach his shoulders, massaging them in an actually comforting action.
”And now you really ain’t gotta excuse to get outta going down there!”

Unlike Trisha, Reyna had gotten to a point years ago where she was unbothered by Cass making comments like that- even if she sometimes still tried to get her friend to pull it back a bit. So instead her attention and response were about something that did actually concern her, something that was clear in her tone.

"Did his Apparition just take over part of his body?"

”Uh, yeah! It happens sometimes- but it’s fine! It’s all good now, ain’t it, Babe? Don’t gotta worry ‘bout any of that shit we told Rey last time, right?” Cass twisted her head to look at Reyna, still massaging his shoulders. The last time they’d seen her, he’d told her about his concerns about going on a rampage and hurting Cass. Far as she was aware, it wasn’t a risk anymore, since they had an agreement. She certainly wasn’t going to get hurt, considering how Lelou treated her whenever she was in charge of the body!

Lelou wasn’t one to be talked about like she wasn’t there. A mouth opened up against the side of his neck, tongue lolling out and whetting its lips before speaking.
”Contrary to your assumption, I actually didn’t take the initiative. He did! Because I asked him to!”

Lelou’s voice echoed out directly solely at Reyna, turning into a devious grin.

”From now on, you are the brewmaiden. And I expect more of such delectable nectar upon your next visit!”

Leon’s face twisted into a grimace.
”Absolutely not! You’re never going to drink that again!”

Lelou scoffed, finally letting a single eye roll to the surface of Leon’s flesh to stare at Reyna.

”Hello, gorgeous…”

Though there was some shock in her eyes, Reyna managed to keep up her calm smile. While she wasn’t used to directly interacting with Apparitions, it wasn’t quite enough to completely throw her off.

"It’s nice to meet you… Lelou, correct? Thank you for the compliment." She somehow managed to brush the strange flirting aside with politeness rather than rejection.
"Unfortunately, I’m not sure how many bottles of that drink exist. I think it was one of the experimental ones, and it seems unlikely it’ll sell."

”Aw c’mon, you’re saying me and Lelou ain’t got good taste?!” Cass gasped.

"No. Just that your taste doesn’t align with the majority."

A second mouth opened on the other side of Leon’s neck.

”Be still your adventurous heart, my little princess. We shall have our nectar yet. Leon!? We must visit the land of Chicago. Throw your human dollars at them!”

Leon shook his head, unable to do anything besides laugh while the intensity of the drink passed through him. It may not’ve been instant, but he metabolized everything fast. The horrible drink was no different.

”You’ll have to forgive us, Rey… There were a few switch-ups since you last left. But, at least you know that uh… Well, she’s getting along just fine with Cass. I think she likes her more than I do.”

”She fucks as if Death is looming, and she can outpace it!” was Lelou’s proud response, eye and mouth staring at Reyna unblinking. The smile seemed, if not evil, tellingly malicious. As if she had plans for everything she saw.
”I would devour humanity were anything to happen to Our Princess.”

At least Leon didn’t have to worry about that sort of thing anymore.

”Just, y’know, what I was saying, Rey? It, uh… We changed the dynamic a bit. Came to a better understanding of what we both want. Cohabitation, as opposed to more of a prison tower setup. Does that make sense?” he asked her, his hand climbing up to his neck and gesturing to it as if that was the evidence of their cohabitation.

It was a very different cohabitation than the main one Reyna had observed. Trisha’s Apparition rarely seemed to speak to her, never mind anyone else. But she knew that each Adjoining was different. Though Lelou was unnerving in her gaze towards her, at least she couldn’t sense any lies in what she said about Cass. Not that she could magically check without being blinded, unfortunately.

"It does. I have limited experience with Adjoined, but I was taught enough to recognise the difference. It seems for the better if there’s no fight for control and less risk to Cass." Reyna said evenly.
"If anything, it seems Cass is safer. Terrifyingly so. As long as she’s safe and happy, I have no complaints."

”Why wouldn’t I be happy? I get the best of all the worlds! And showered with sappy compliments on all sides!” Cass grinned, one hand still massaging Leon’s shoulder while the other went to rub just underneath where Lelou’s second mouth was.

Rey shook her head slightly at that. She didn’t think anyone else could handle this kind of setup, but of course Cass could… She found threats to devour humanity to be sappy.
"Then I don’t have any complaints."

Cass was happy that Reyna was so accepting of it. She was calm and understanding, but often the one that put her foot down when something was out of line or truly concerned her. It had caused some tension between her and Trisha in the year or so after their breakup. But she was always convinced by logic and evidence, at least.

”Good! Cause I’m super duper happy.”

Both mouths let their tongues loll out again, though only one found fingers to lick. Which gave Leon enough cause to take as much control as he could, and seal both mouths back up. Lelou’s laughter echoed in his head as he closed his eyes and shook it.

”It’s absolutely been interesting. But, I can speak for both she and I when I say we’re happy that you came.” he spoke to Reyna between huffs of air as he tried to get the last of the capsaicin oil off his tongue.

”There’s snacks and stuff in the fridge. Lots of cut fruit, my brother loves the stuff. But, we’re all big eaters, so there’s like-”
He waived himself off, shrugging and getting up to slide over to the fridge. Popping it open, he pulled out a few massive fruit trays.

”-Sometimes all Cass and I do now is cook shit. It’s domestic as Hell, and super cute. So, we’ve got this stuff, then-”

Then bread he’d had delivered early that morning, and pastries, and jars of preserves; breakfast without the fuss. There was even a tray of bacon and egg sandwiches that just needed a little reheating. All of which slid out onto the counter and surrounded the box of beers.

”-plenty! Plenty of shit for a few people. I was thinking maybe my sisters would be here too, but I think they’re either still sleeping next door, or aren’t actually there.”

"You'll get to meet ‘em later! They should be at the party… They're real sweet!" Cass was already digging into the food, stuffing a pastry into her mouth. She needed to get back those calories she lost from becoming all floppy, after all.

"You're making me feel a little like a disapproving mother you're trying to introduce to the family to impress." Reyna smiled, moving forward to help herself to some of the fruit. She wasn't a big eater like either of them- she'd seen how they ate at her place- but at least it was lunch time now, so there was no forcing herself to eat out of politeness.

"Heh, well, I'd much rather your approval than my Ma's." Cass snickered.
"But it ain't like that! Me ‘n Lee are just crazy generous hosts, we've been cooking up a storm. Then… Well, you're my only friend coming to this who ain't already met a bunch've the people! So ‘course we wanna make sure you're all comfy and introduced to ‘em… Specially since there's gonna be a shit ton of people for me to meet too."

She shrugged, looking up at Leon with a grin.
"Besides, we’re gonna end up eating most of the food!"

”Not to mention the lovebirds upstairs aren’t uh… Well, they’re not looking forward to going out, that’s for sure. You know Trisha, and my Brother ain’t really one for big parties either. So, you may end up on babysitting duty, and to me, that means a little buttering up is required!”

Leon didn’t exactly do well with “secrets”. Not actual secrets, which he kept a lid on like nobody’s business. But, rather, the stuff he felt was only a secret to the ignorant. Anyone would wind up noticing Trisha’s sourpuss, or the way Casey managed to drown himself in booze within a few minutes of contact with a group of free-roaming people. At dinners and other more organized events, he was usually fine. But, big open spaces full of roiling crowds? Not so easy to convince him that it was a good thing.

Plus, he really did feel like Reyna deserved the heads up. After all, Trisha was her friend! And not just a casual thing either. He knew they’d been together intimately, and that part of Rey’s heart was always going to be with Trisha. It would’ve been difficult letting Casey fold under scrutiny without at least being there at his defence should the need arise. Plus, he’d had the heart to admit that he was doing poorly mentally. That made sense to Leon too, as Casey didn’t have anything buffering his emotions about the coming plans for the end of December.

The end of their world as they’d grown in for so many years. The end of their mother. Every bit of Lelou had issues with Lynette, and she happily bolstered his mind and soul with urging wards that brought a sick kind of desire to him whenever the thought came across. Even now, he grinned from ear to ear as he thought about the ensuing fight, and who would be the ones to stick with her in those last moments. Who would defend her memory after.

Cass nodded.
"Though I'm hoping if they come down, maybe they'll feel alright with saying they don't wanna go! Not cause I don't want ‘em there, just I don't want ‘em to feel obligated to go to something they really don't wanna."

"Trisha isn't the type to admit she doesn't feel up to something." Reyna responded with a slight frown. Last time she visited, Trisha had been doing well. There'd been the incident when they were out but that was just a typical Trisha blowup. She knew that when she got with someone, she became more of a homebody than anything… But at least when they were together, she'd had the ability to deal with all sorts of social events with a little bit of support.

"Normally she can get through these kinds of things as well, even if she doesn't enjoy it. More touchy, but she's surprisingly good at coping unless something else is happening. I'm happy to babysit, but I'm not sure if she'll let me." She looked thoughtful, glancing between Leon and Cass.
"Has something happened? When I last visited, they seemed quite good at supporting each other."

"Uhhhh…" Cass held up her hands, looking at Leon.
"You can explain way better than I can."

Leon didn’t want Reyna to look at Casey like he was wrong for Trisha. She was right! He was an amazing supporter, and if anyone could take and deal with the proclivities that Trisha provided, it was him. That being said, his abilities weren’t foolproof. And he wasn’t always the most patient man: Anyone would know that from how long it took him to propose. You heard about those kinds of relationships in movies, or if they happened in real life, they never ended well.

It was, as he knew it, just another action in a manic episode. There’d been hopes, directly from Casey’s mouth even, that her being in his life was the end of the dry seasons. The end of the pain and fear of loneliness. But, everything he’d told Leon recently sounded like that wasn’t the case… And now the guy was scared. Scared of losing what he knew he wanted, and scared of facing what he didn’t.

So, Leon shrugged.
”Ehhhhh… Casey’s not great all the time. He was always a bit of a loner when it came down to things. As far as I’m aware of, this is his first real relationship. He managed to develop entire disorders before being with a woman. So, that’s probably your ‘something else going on’ that you mentioned. I asked our family shrink, and she says his PTSD probably just exacerbated an undiagnosed case of Bipolar.”

He stopped frowning.
”He’d never physically hurt Trisha. But I know they’re the same in the aspect you mentioned: That neither of them would ever admit they’re not up to doing something… So, if they’re both pushing themselves in an unhealthy way-” Leon trailed off, letting Reyna process his allusion.

Reyna frowned, folding her arms. If they were both doing that, then they'd keep doing it until one of them broke. It had always been difficult with Trisha to get her to admit to anything she thought would disappoint people. Rey only ever succeeded because she could read it with her magic. But she'd seen Trisha bury everything as deep as she could and pretend everything was fine no matter how much someone tried to point out that it was.

At least it gave her a good idea about what state her friend would be in.

"They'll be coming tonight, however they both feel." Reyna said with a soft sigh.
"I'm used to dealing with Trisha, but I can't pretend this doesn't worry me. I trust when you say he won't hurt her physically, and that Cass is a far more fierce protector of her than I am. Of course no person is perfect. But if they push each other unhealthily and not talking about it-"

"It ain't like most of her relationships, honest! They do talk- you should see, Trish has been more open with me too. It's just… Well, a big hurdle for them. Like when the honeymoon phase wears off, except it's timed with Casey's own shit flaring up. But far as I can see, they're still treating each other well." Cass interrupted. She understood why Reyna would be concerned. Not necessarily because she thought Casey was some awful person, just that Trisha had a bad habit of letting herself get more miserable in a relationship without leaving or fixing it. She had low standards. But from Cass' point of view, this wasn't that.

"Like you said, nobody's perfect! But I ain't seen anyone as good for her as Casey, even if he's got this kinda shit going on. It just means we gotta support her too! Cause that's part of the problem, ain't it? She refuses to go to anyone else! At least Casey talks to Leon."

Reyna managed a slight smile.
"I know that better than most. The fact she tells Casey things already indicates they've made progress most of her relationships haven't." She looked directly at Leon.
"Do you also think this is something they can work through? Obviously, there's nothing I can do beyond watching over them tonight… But I'd like to know what I can. Trisha's my friend, after all."

Leon nodded immediately and emphatically.
”If there’s anything I’m sure of, it's what kind of man my brother is. He’s had the chance before. Women have been set up for him, he’s not taken them, and it had nothing to do with whether or not he was manic or depressed. For whatever reason, he chose to go out on a line with Trisha on that Halloween night. I didn’t introduce them thinking this would happen. But, the one thought I did have that night, was that if anyone could deal with Trisha, it was Casey. That’s why I pawned her off on him and evacuated as soon as I could.”

His expression shifted slightly, maybe out of guilt for admitting that he hadn’t wanted to see Trisha at all. But they were working on their problems too! And it was all thanks to the “happy” couple’s continued work with one another.

”And, honestly, if my and her past is anything to go by, then I think she’s made incredible strides in a month alone. If they can make all that progress in a month? Then as long as they don’t absolutely self-destruct in the downtime between, I know they’ll pull through. Just, uh… This month is rough. We’ve also got a lot of personal family stuff happening, we’re kind of dealing with our Mother dying… It’s all a little bit of a crapshoot. Just, not good timing all around. They’ll be totally fine!

And he really did believe that. He meant what he said about knowing Casey, and about knowing that whatever reasoning he had behind taking such a shine to Trisha, it wasn’t done out of impulse. He’d seen the guy low, and he’d seen him high, and in both instances, there’d been a woman somewhere who would’ve wanted to be around him intimately. And he’d never really bitten down. It was always casual, almost effervescent in tangibility. Like he was a cat avoiding company.

He jumped into the deep end with Trisha. It was like seeing a whole new man. Even if that shell was temporary, Leon knew for certain that Casey could and would bounce back. He always did. They’d gotten through what he thought was the darkest points. Over the grimness of his magicless childhood, and over the initial return home with rampant survivor’s guilt and suicidal ideations. He’d had his scares, he’d done the drinking and the sobbing and the angry screaming. He’d reenlisted into the Reserves, found new things to do… They’d gotten him better.

Everything that was left, he figured, would be there forever. He could only hope that it all became numb one day, and that their love would overpower such a dull and ancient ache.

"I'm sorry about your Mother and family issues… But if it's as you say, then we'll just have to be there for her if it falls apart. Though I'd rather avoid any of that self-destruction." Reyna responded with a soft sigh.

"Hey, your negativity's showing, Rey! It ain't gonna fall apart… and they won't self-destruct!" Cass waggled her finger at Rey, before gesturing to herself and Leon.
"That's what we're here for! Y'know, if I smell any self destruction I ain't just gonna let Trisha go through with it… and Lee's the same for Casey!"

Though she knew at the end of the day, Trisha was too stubborn to listen to others. Especially when it came to digging herself into deep holes of anxiety, and pulling all the dirt onto herself so she suffocated. But the progress she'd made so far had been enough that Cass really hoped it would get better… that eventually, she'd actually come to, and rely on other people! Not just Casey!

Reyna shrugged one shoulder.
"If you say so. I'll trust what you say about Casey, at least. In the glimpse I got, he seemed good for her. Into her in a way I haven't seen from anyone else… And it was the same from Trisha to him. That I know better than most." She smiled again.
"There isn't much else to be done anyway. The worst thing would be to try and get involved. Cass did once, and it didn't go so well."

Cass let out a nervous laugh, rubbing the back of her neck.
"She didn't talk to me for weeks… I mean, I did punch her boyfriend at the time! But he was an abusive asshole!"
Hidden 7 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Casey’s eye twitched rapidly, his hand screwed tight to the glove in his sweater pocket as he drilled his mind through the building in order to sit in the kitchen of Leon’s apartment like a termite in the wall with a laser microphone. Of course, they had to be the topic. It’d been nice of Leon to think about them, but the whole thing was starting to get a bit out of control. Casey ultimately had to do some logistical work involving the party late that night, and so a bit of juice ended up being used in order to make sure he’d keep from rotting away another few nights.

It didn’t replace sleep, just amped the focus back up to eleven. Not so different from speed, he figured. -But, whatever Trisha didn’t know wouldn’t hurt her.- Point being that Leon had decided that hour was a great time to have a big brother sit down. Because of course he had to ask about what the call was for. Casey figured he’d get off his back with some honesty, and told him exactly how he felt about being looked after like that. It was incredibly considerate! And in a lot of ways, it made Casey feel like dogshit.

He hated nothing more than being doted on and cause of concern. As soon as it started, the first thing everyone did was start locking their lockers tighter, or just checking on him. Like he wasn’t just another person. Like he was some gun that had to be kept in the safe with the bullets in a separate safe. Like he was nuclear.
It certainly made him feel that way. And, call him paranoid, but here they were. Reyna was fussing over Trisha, Leon had to say the words he would never hurt her physically. Like the distinction needed to be made. Like he didn’t love her. Like it was all bullshit and Trisha needed to be protected by her fucking ex.

They didn’t need people that concerned about them. They were fine!

”Honey Bee?” he questioned, looking down at Trisha with a grim expression on his face.
”We need to be extra good today. Like, stellar. We… Can’t show weakness. Right? We’re gonna be the fucking best, it’s gonna be great, and we’re gonna prove these assholes wrong, right!?”

He was asking her questions from a conversation he already had. Only, it hadn’t been out loud. So, saying something like prove these assholes wrong should’ve been an immediate cause for concern.

“Huh?" Trisha looked up at him, eyes going slightly wide. She didn't want to show weakness, obviously. She wanted everything to appear perfect so she didn't have people asking questions or starting to tell her Casey was just another bad decision she'd made. He wasn't. Things got difficult in relationships, what mattered was that they got through it.

She was already anxious about it all. Her anxiety had peaked again last night, nothing to stop her spiralling when Casey had to go work. She hadn't really slept, with carefully applied makeup doing some heavy lifting when it came to covering the dark bags under her eyes. How could she sleep without him there? But it was difficult when he was there too, because Casey wasn't sleeping either.

So why was he saying this, when she was clearly prepared to do just that? Like she needed to be reminded? But she didn't. She knew she had to act like everything was great, because she didn't want to deal with her friends prodding her, and she didn't want to set Casey off. The only silver lining of the time alone last night was that it let her get some of it out. A breakdown and panic attack before she suppressed it all again. She was absolutely ready to push down all of her feelings.

Apart from the anxiety, obviously. It was every present and the paranoia with it was what let her cover everything else up.

But in the moment leading up to seeing other people, she was more on edge. Now Casey was asking her strange questions. What assholes did they have to prove wrong? What-

“Are you spying on them, Casey?" She asked back, voice pitching up as her panic rose to the surface.
“You said you wouldn't do stuff like that… And it's not helping me. Knowing they're talking behind my back just makes me more anxious."

”But they are! They are! And Reyna thinks I hit you!-”
He paused briefly, sorting his thoughts out and holding up his hands.
”-Or, it was implied! Leon had to say ’Uh, he’d never physically hurt her! ”Can you believe this!? He’s expecting me to just sit there and accept what he’s saying to me when things like that are getting said behind my back!? I’m paranoid for a fucking reason. I’m sorry! But when I’m right, I know I’m right. That feeling saved me way more than fucking once.”

He wasn’t talking loudly, but he was certainly animated, and very clearly frustrated. It wasn’t easy dealing with this sensation at the moment. He was going to be high- That’s simply what the magical drug did. Another forty-eight hours of circadian free living. All at the cost of your sanity. Even if he wanted to go and get his memories scrubbed by a Pink Adept, he couldn’t. The substance in question was Apparitionally sound, and it trapped everything at the direct front of the brain, where you had to keep living in it. Last night was the first night. He hoped it was the only one he needed. Natural sleep deprivation was hard enough, even with his pedigree and previous training. It was a difficult thing to stave off.

This was simply the manifestation of all of the memories being there still. Everything was so fresh. It was all being crammed into the same space.

He didn’t have time to wonder if there was a connection between his frequent lack of sleep in previous years, and a correlation with his sleeping patterns.

He had an argument to start.

”Listen, that type of talk is just how we used to do shit! You can’t just go risk your life in the fucking cold, you need a moment of warmth before it. You need to muster, I thought we would just do that! We can’t do that!?” he asked rather sharply.

Trisha clasped her hands tightly in front of her to hide their trembling. She shook her head, eyes narrowing as she stared up at him. Frustration and panic mixed together in her chest. None of this was helping her. It was only confirming the paranoia she felt about everyone in her life showing her a nice face while talking shit about her behind her back. Of course they did, of course they thought she'd landed herself in a bad situation again.

But surely Cass and Leon knew better?!

“Spying on people isn't mustering! It's not helping! They're not going to kill us… But how does any of this help? It's just going to make us worse when we go in." She argued back, breathing quickening. She wasn't shouting either, but it would be impossible to miss her own frustration and panic over the situation. She'd been doing her best to keep a lid on things, but it was impossible when Casey was acting like this. He was practically forcing her into an argument.

This time, it made her want to run away and curl up into a ball. But she couldn't. They were trapped in the elevator, and had to get out and pretend everything was perfect again. And they were fine when he wasn't listening into conversations he shouldn't be.

“Even if Reyna thinks that, what- What difference does it make? Are you going to go in and shout at her about it? Because now I'm going to be worrying the whole time about what they think… And I was already anxious."

”No, I won’t! I didn’t shout at Leon yesterday morning. I didn’t shout at him last night when he trapped me in my office.-”

In the strictest sense, that he’d taken a seat in front of the desk.

”-And I’m not going to shout at anyone else. I’m sorry. Just… I’m… Fuck. Can… We hug it out, Trish, I’m sorry.”

He really had just wanted to know what they were up against. It was only then that he had the clarity to not think about it like it was an engagement to examine. He wondered if Leon or Reyna knew that they were being watched. He’d cut the spell the moment he couldn’t stand it anymore, and hadn’t looked back.

”Leon came in last night, and he just started talking like he used to, like I’m… Sick or something. I am, but he doesn’t have to treat me like it. I know I am. I can feel it right now. But you’re the love of my life, and on my fucking body and soul I just knew he was gonna act like this. And it makes me sad! That’s all. I wanted some comfort. I didn’t vocalize that. It’s not your fault, so please don’t think it is. I know I’m the asshole. Several times.”

What was, to him, a proper, if not informal, explanation of himself. The truth, just like she’d asked. He gave it freely, and she’d never be able to tell him he wasn’t being honest again.

So long as she didn’t know what she didn’t know.

Trisha took a deep, shaky breath, and gave a slight nod. She shuffled towards him, tearing her hands away from the tight ball they were clasped in to stretch her arms out towards him. To hug it out, like he'd asked for.

She didn't want to argue with him. She was trying not to, trying to just push down her own reactivity so she could help him get through this. But it was so hard when his mood changed so much. She was constantly waiting for an escalation. Then it seemed like it was coming, and he'd dropped back down. It was like she was on a rollercoaster. Her anxiety didn't just calm down like that. It just got worse every time.

Maybe it would be easier if he just went for that alone time he'd wanted when this first start. No… No, she didn't want that. That would be worse, she could handle this.

“I’m sorry too, I just… You know what I think people think about me. So hearing that they're talking behind my- our backs just made me panic. Because now I need to deal with that anxiety, and I know it's real." She bit her lip. It was probably an overreaction on her part, when he was the one being talked about more negatively. At least, Reyna was worried about him hitting her… Which would never happen.

“I understand. He's acting like he knows better than you, and like… We both need to be looked after. But we don't. And I don't like my friends sticking their nose into it either, just because they don't trust me. You don't deserve to be talked about like that… Not when you love me. And I love you."

”I at least appreciate Rey’s position. Please, don’t misunderstand. She’s got plenty of reasons to be protective of you, and she never said anything about you or us really. Leon overexplained shit. But, I also don’t want you to go and blame him, because I’m sure deep down he’s stressed about things too. It’s keeping us all up.”

The sex kept those two perverts up.

Something else he couldn’t say, but desperately wanted to, was that he now felt terribly inadequate compared to last time. He felt like a slathering mess. He was, but even in the paranoia he was a cobbled golem. A great deal of the time he could crack his mouth open just wide enough to appear pleased, and focus his eyes incredibly tight on theirs. Which, if they noticed he wasn’t blinking, may end up being a dead giveaway that something was wrong.

Nothing. Is. Wrong.

And nothing was. Casey’s jaw clenched slightly, and he looked down at Trisha. And he mustered the last moment he could. It was recent, which was nice. If he could string these small, good moments together and keep them tight in a chain at the forefront of his brain, he’d be able to wrangle all the pain in between. He’d be able to stretch. Thanks to her. So he looked down at her, and one arm turned into both arms as the elevator doors slid open into the makeshift garden.

It smelled terribly like weed.
Because it was.

And it made him laugh.

”Holy shit, maybe we should take some of this. I’ll break their room open, that’s where they keep the jars that are done.” he grinned down at her as if offering.

Trisha managed a soft laugh, lips pulling up into something closer to a smile as she did her best to calm down. It was still easier with him there. She still felt safe with him. She was sure she always would, even when things were difficult.

She wasn't entirely sure if he was joking or not. It was a nice thought, though she knew she definitely couldn’t smoke weed right now. If her anxiety was low enough, it helped her relax… But if it was too high, it just made it worse.

“And risk them being in there when you don’t? I don’t think I can handle seeing that.” She giggled. It felt like breaking into the girls’ room was just as risky as breaking into Leon and Cass’... But at least it gave her something else to think about, and talk about. She was calming down now. Back to that paranoid state of normal, where she could act like normal.

“Maybe I should grow some in the Greenhouse. I wonder if it would be any different pollinated by my bees.”

Deep breath one, two, three, and Casey reestablished some baseline normalcy in his brain. Everything started to work again in slow enough motion that it wasn’t like watching eight movies at the same time. He giggled about the thought of pot bees, but he was certain if they had pollen of some kind, it’d be the way the plant flowers.

”Someone in this room’s gotta know. I bet Cass knows. Leon doesn’t seem- Shit, did Reyna get into bees when you guys dated?”

He was taking his time getting through the hall around the little L shaped hall. But the door was already being cracked open. Casey couldn’t tell by whom, but he had to clamp down and stay in that moment. And in the desperate struggle itself, he was somewhat taken out of it. Losing grasp again. It was just like that. A little hook to cast the fish back into a raging river.
What the fuck else could he do? If he noticed the door was opened, he noticed the door was opened. It was simple math!

So he stopped. And as playfully as he could, though his face almost looked wrought with pain, he threw his fingers up to his lips and pressed it between them. After a moment, he let the finger drop, and gave her a conspiratorial look.
”Don’t look now, Queen Bee… They’ve found us.”

Eyes of interest implored her to play with him not just for the sake of their happiness. But for the sake of the collective faces to save. It would all be worth it if everything between them was fine, and what would display that more than being nonchalant and goofy about something that nobody else but your half-wolf brother with crazy ears and his proto-wolf girlfriend with equally freaky hearing would even notice!?

It wasn’t like Trisha was-

God, I love you… Please just go with it!

Leon pushed the door open without much effort. He didn’t really look like he was trying to hide, so much as he’d just begun opening the door as they were approaching the end of the hallway. This kind of erratic behavior was something Leon chose to ignore, as he realized a little too late that his little brother’s powers were working against him today. He’d simply reacted too quickly to the door being open. A reason to be worried, but he put on a brave face.

”Just heard the elevator, man. Figured I’d check to see if the door was locked, and when it wasn’t I just figured, ‘fuck it, I’ll open it for you’.”

He casually waved at Trisha, giving her a grin that read pretty genuine. He was still happy to see them trying. He’d done his best to keep to his and Casey’s agreement about not spying or watching one another too closely. And, had only approached his brother after seeing that a sample of Solution 9 was signed out by him for consumption. He was worried about Casey’s workload, and genuinely wanted him to make for their vacation sooner rather than later.

But Casey’s pride wouldn’t let him cope like that. It had to be on his and Trisha’s terms. Nobody else’s. So, now, thanks to his personal strength, Leon was totally unaware of the conversation that had taken place in the elevator or behind the door, only letting himself hear them once they were within comfortable earshot. No knowledge of their knowledge, or that they’d had a near nuclear meltdown again. Several in the last twenty-four hours.

Only what they felt comfortable giving him.

Trisha looked up at Casey, tilting her head with slight confusion. She wasn’t sure what he wanted her to do, and she assumed the moment was lost now that Leon had just walked out. Had he wanted to play out pretending they didn’t know Leon was there, and joke about something silly? What he said and how he looked at her wasn’t enough for her to go off.

But she still did her best, under the circumstances, turning from Casey to Leon with some playful surprise that turned into a smile.
“Oh! Leon! I didn’t even know you were there.”

Then she looked up at Casey with a wider smile, the lingering anxiety disappearing from her gaze. She really could cover it up if she wanted to. No… When she had to. It just wasn’t sustainable.
“I think he wants to steal our bee weed idea. Do-”

Leeeeooonnn, what’s taking so long, are they-” Cass’ shouted words interrupted Trisha as she practically sprinted out of the door and right into Leon, using his body like a crash mat to stop her momentum. She hadn’t actually been waiting at the door with Leon… Cause it would overwhelm them, and seem like they were actually listening and waiting. Which they weren’t!

Just, Cass had no patience, so such a short time became too long for her. She spun herself around, giving Casey and Trisha a big wave and grin.
”Ohhhh, I see… You were just hogging them! Tsk tsk, I knew that was the real reason you wanted to open the door.”

“We just got here. You’re the impatient one, Cass.” Trisha chided, like she always did when Cass acted silly. Subtly playful, covering up how it was all immediately overwhelming. At least Reyna didn’t seem to have followed. She was actually patient, unlike Cass.

”Heh, guilty. What can I say, I love you sooo much that I just can’t bear to spend any time apart!”

Trisha rolled her eyes, small smile staying on her lips. She shuffled closer to Casey, taking his hand and looking up at him. Her smile widened, gaze softening and filling with love. The feelings shown weren’t fake. It wasn’t something she was putting on for the audience, because she still looked at him like this when it was just them. She still loved him more than anything, and the tenderness was there unless they were arguing.

It was just that in the last few days, she’d been more hesitant. More muted, sometimes. A bundle of nerves, trying not to make the wrong move. Her anxiety was constantly there and constantly visible in her expression, because she just couldn't completely hide it around him. But that was pushed down now so the love really shone through. To be the best and prove them wrong.

“Sorry, Cass, but Casey’s all I need. I get plenty of love from him, so… Save it for Leon.” She said teasingly, still smiling up at Casey.

Casey used both hands to express gratitude and pride. One hit her shoulder, resting on the muscle and rubbing his thumb affectionately into the surrounding flesh in a calm, circular massaging pattern. Being behind her, it was easy for the other to swing around her front, tucking her in around the belly and squeezing her close. He even planted a kiss on the back of her head, pulling up and nodding in agreement with her previous statement.

”I was just mentioning to Trisha how I maybe wanted to smoke a bit.” Casey calmly explained, trying to shake off the fact that he’d magically seen Leon opening the door thanks to some nascent foresight kicking in.

This drug was fucking dangerous. But it didn’t have to be. He just had to make himself calm, and he hoped that getting high in a different direction would balance things out. After all, he didn’t have much else to try. If worst came, he’d just have to level with Leon and spill the beans. But, for now? Operate. Smoothly.

”We can make that happen. Come on! We just broke the fruit plate out.” Leon enthusiastically expressed.
”Oh, did you?” was all Casey could muster in return.

He was too busy attempting to physically bolster Trisha by touch, hoping his clingy affection would translate into confidence for her to feast on.

”Yeah! And? Bread! Sandwiches! Whatever you guys want. Casey, I got a fuckton of that pale watermelon from Lab Three!”

Lab Three was a trek. An annoying slog downtown into a spot where you couldn’t bring cars. They had grow beds in a warehouse, where they made all kinds of transdimensional fruit growing conditions. The pale watermelon in question was from a universe designated “Twinkle”, where the color Red had been completely destroyed by a magical war long ago. Thus, the fruits were all ghastly pale, making them far easier to look at.

Just another instance of Big Brother being “overly” considerate. Of course, he was just being accomodating, but Casey took everything to heart right now. Knowing how annoyed he’d be over getting such a thing from a relatively remote place, it was easy to project the feeling and assume it’d be equally annoying.

Not thinking that Leon just asked someone else to go get it and had it delivered. So, Casey felt doted on again. Made exceptions for.

”You didn’t have to go through the trouble. I would’ve eaten the red stuff.” he replied, shuffling through the door and down the hall to Leon’s side, where Rey was waiting.

He kept Trisha close, like a safety blanket.

Casey's clinginess didn't bolster Trisha's confidence, because very little would right now. But it distracted her and gave her enough comfort to feel like she could get through this. They could get through this. She leaned back against him as much as she could while they were moving.

It was easier when they got through into the main room. Easier, except Reyna was there.

“Hey, Rey. Glad you made it- Wow, Leon wasn't joking about all the food." Trisha struggled with what to say to start, with the words coming out awkwardly. How did she normally talk to Reyna? Or anyone else, for that matter? It was easy with Cass, because she never shut up. And she felt like she had to keep peace between everyone, so that nobody got upset at Casey and he didn't get upset in turn.

Reyna was still leaning against the back of the couch, one hand on her jacket. She smiled at them both, other hand raising in a wave. She would have gone in for a hug, like normal, if Casey wasn't clinging to Trisha like a guard dog. Though Trisha probably wouldn't want the hug, Rey knew that acting normal was the best course of action. Taking what Leon said and using it to understand, rather than bringing anything up.

"Hey, nice to see you both. I wasn't sure if I would… Cass made it seem like you're so in love that you wouldn't want to leave the love nest." Reyna joked easily.

"I did noooottt!" Cass had taken a moment to try to communicate with Leon via interpretive eyebrow movements over how Casey and Trisha were acting. But as soon as she was mentioned, she was jumping right back in.
"I said you'd definitely be here cause no matter what you say you really love me- you want any of these sandwiches?! I can heat em up!"

Cass bounced past Trisha and Casey towards the counter, gesturing to the breakfast sandwiches with a sweeping hand.

Trisha immediately shook her head. The last thing she wanted to do right now was eat. Without Casey to cook and push her towards eating regularly, she'd quickly slipped back into bad habits. No appetite, not bothering to push through it or just forgetting to eat.

"What about one of my birthday beers? Lee already drank the chilli one, so that ain't available I'm afraid."

"Saving us all from watching Cass savour it, I think." Reyna laughed.

Casey grimaced at the concept that was just inserted into his head. Chilli beer?
”Ew, fuck… Was it just fucking bean flavored?”

He only let go of Trisha enough to circulate to the food, which he began to inhale rapidly. Watermelon, watermelon, watermelon- Cold sandwich, unwrapped and devoured in three bites- Watermelon watermelon watermelon again.

”No, like spicy cayenne.” Leon replied, doing his best to mentally translate Cass’ interpretive eye movements while still interacting as normally as possible. Lelou had theories, but they were just theories. Mostly surrounding the robotic motions and actions of the duo of the hour.

It was a little frustrating that Trisha and Casey seemed to still be taking some level of center stage. But, Leon could recognize just as easily that he was just being selfish for Cass’ sake. She wanted Trisha here, and if that was the case, it meant dealing with the two of them acting like this. Which was fine…

Casey, in turn, nodded emphatically.

”That sounds worse, actually. Chipotle beans though? Maybe-”

”-Oh God, don’t tempt the box of wonders. We haven’t looked through all the bottles yet.” Leon shook his head.

”Let’s fuckin’ crack ‘em open then! Cass? Trish? Oh, fuck, sorry Rey- I’m real fuckin’ hungry, how are you?” he paused, licking his fingers and wiping them on his pants before moving over to Rey and giving her a hug. It seemed friendly, at least. And it was; Casey had no ill will against Reyna. He knew she had a reason to worry. It was on him to impress.

Though, he did dangle a strawberry in front of Trisha’s face slightly.

”Y’gotta eat somethin’ Baby.” he cooed.

Trisha pouted, though she reached up to take the strawberry and nibbled on it. She really wasn’t hungry, but if she said no then everyone would worry. Though Cass and Reyna did know that her poor eating wasn’t solely tied to lower periods… It was a fairly consistent issue for her.
“I guess I can have some fruit.”

Reyna watched with a calm smile. At least he still seemed attentive- though there was a chance it was performative, she trusted what Leon had said about Casey not being a bad person just someone struggling. It was something she could easily read if she went back to holding her channeler, but decided not to. Partly because of the blinding light that was Leon, partly to not poke the hive that was Trisha. She’d never liked Reyna doing that.

"I’m good- and don’t worry about it. I’m beginning to get used to this kind of hunger, with how much Cass has already gotten through."

”I only had four pastries while we were waiting!” Cass defended herself, rummaging through the box of beers after not so subtly pushing a tray of sandwiches towards Leon for him to put on and heat up. She was searching for a bean beer, just in case there actually was one… Unfortunately not! But there were plenty of flavours, ranging from more normal to interesting.

She pulled out a few, stretching her hands a bit so she could hold three up to Casey and Trisha for them to choose from. A maple pecan stout beer, a raspberry and watermelon pale ale, and a normal looking IPA.
”No bean beer, unfortunately, but these ones look good!”

“I don’t want to start drinking this early.” Trisha declined the offer with a shake of her head.
“If I do, I’ll spend the whole day drunk.”

"That’s what Cass is going to do, so why not join her?"

”I ain’t! Cause I can’t!”

Reyna laughed, looking over at Casey.
"Don’t worry, next time I’ll bring some Chipotle Bean beer. I’m sure the moment I mention it around the brewer he’ll jump on the idea."

Casey’s eyes lit up instantly. Andrade’s voice echoed in his head for an uncomfortable amount of time, and he finally had a big grin crack across his face. Taking the stout, he gave Cass a little bow.
”Thank you birthday girl!” he smiled.

Unsettlingly, he let the bottle rise up to his mouth, where he hooked the metal cap over his canine tooth and used his free hand to pry the metal open with the tooth as leverage. It was probably going to be a terrible influence on Cass if she caught what happened. Unfortunately, Leon missed it, having twisted himself down to stuff the tray into the oven for ten minutes.

Then he looked at Trisha, pocketing the twisted cap and making way for a glass to pour the heady beer into.
”Babe… We were thinking about mead when Andrade was around. Maybe getting in touch with a brewery like this wouldn’t be a bad idea? When all’s said and done, obviously. Lee, we’re on time with that, right?”

He jumped between conversations, but only because he knew he could have all of them at once. That didn’t make it any less confusing or rude, which Leon could perceive. He picked his torso back up, making a funny face at Casey.

”Yeah… Everything’s fine on our end. What about the mead?” he looked back at Trisha subtly, trying to give her an encouraging smile.

”Just, y’know, different ways to use the honey! It was one of the first conversations she and I had when we met. About, y’know, how much honey she’s always got. Now, we’ve barely got any! The vintage is practically dry, right Honey?” he smiled at her, pouring the beer slow and steady into the glass.

Trisha nodded with her own smile back, managing to not look horrendously anxious as he jumped about topics. Even if she was getting used to his erraticness- in that she expected it- she still struggled with it. Especially something like that, where one moment it felt like his attention was on her and the next it wasn’t. But it was fine. It’d been brought back round.

“It is, but I’ll have more bees soon. So production will go up, and there’ll be more to work with again. Using some for mead or something would be nice.”

"Well, the owner of this brewery would probably be open to collaboration in the future. It’s his passion as much as it’s his job. You don’t specialise all your mundane and magical skills into one thing without that being the case." Reyna smiled, though she was watching Trisha carefully for any signs of being upset. Not at her, but at the topic switch. Though what she could do if her friend did get upset, she wasn’t sure.

”If it’ll get me some awesome mead outta it, I’ll donate even more limbs to the cause! Just ask!” Cass grinned, pulling out a completely different beer for herself. She held up it to purposefully show it off - Birthday Cake flavour it proudly proclaimed.

Trisha’s face scrunched up. That sounded disgusting in a beer to her.

"Why would you have to donate your limbs?"

”Oh! Right! Cause the best way for Trisha to get more bees is to grow ‘em in human flesh. Obviously she ain’t gonna go get a bunch’ve corpses, so I’m providing that flesh! Cause it ain’t so hard for me. It’s good practice, really, so it’s a win-win!” Cass grinned, lifting her beer up to crack open the beer with her teeth alone. It had looked way cooler when Casey did it with his teeth, rather than just flicking it off subtly with strengthened thumbs!

“She volunteered.” Trisha felt the need to explain. She didn’t want Reyna thinking anyone but Cass made the decision.
“But it means I can grow my hive more… I have to make up for lost bees first, but then there’ll be a boost in honey production. It’ll be good for me. I’m trying to get better with my magic. Casey’s been helping me with that… Leon helped me communicate with my Apparition better too.”

Casey was laughing at Cass’ instant pick-up on the tooth popping.
”We all opened ‘em like that. Y’know, sometimes you get a few in a shipment, or a supply. Or you find ‘em in some rubble, miraculously saved.”

Though, he wasn’t wholly distracted by the little story. It was all fresh in the moment, and his social battery was as high as it was going to get. He had to function. Had to. Leon was nodding his head in response to Trisha’s acknowledgement, and he did have something to add, were he not swept off his feet mentally.

”Did you mention magical skills? This is Adeptal brew?” his head pivoted to ask Reyna, half coming out before he fully turned to her.

"I suppose it is. From what I understand, he uses a mixture of traditional methods and Red Lux to brew them. Some are fully magically made, some fully non-magically, most a mixture of both to speed up the process." Reyna explained easily. The owner was essentially a family friend, so she knew a fair amount. He was one of the people who helped them when they first moved to the states, after all.

"So if Trisha worked with him with her honey, you wouldn’t have to hide its magical source. I’m glad you’re able to work on it more, Trisha."

Though Reyna also tried to redirect it back to what else was being said, Trisha just nodded without saying anything. To cover it up, pretending she wasn’t upset at what felt like constant ignoring from Casey, she moved over to pick up and nibble on some fruit. Her mouth was full, so she couldn’t say anything! Not that there was much point, anyway… Casey wouldn’t just ignore her, he’d change the topic to something else. That was fine. She didn’t really want to talk anyway.

As she began to lift pieces of fruit to her mouth, Reyna’s searching gaze caught sight of the ring on her left hand. Normally a more intricate ring wouldn’t cause any reaction, but it was on her ring finger. Perhaps it was a mistake? No, that wasn’t a mistake Trisha would make. She dropped her eyes to look at Casey’s left hand, the matching ring confirming what she already suspected.

"Are you two engaged?" Reyna raised her eyebrows, calm smile not fading. She didn’t sound accusatory or upset, just gently questioning.

Trisha had a bit of watermelon in her mouth, so she just nodded again. She didn’t know if she could answer, as her anxiety started to crawl back out. She’d meant to tell Reyna. She was going to tell all her friends after, but then everything got so busy and she was too depressed to consider it. But now they had to explain in person. What if Reyna disapproved? What if Casey reacted badly to that? What could she even say? She stuffed another piece of fruit in her mouth so she still couldn’t answer.

Casey’s eyes shot back up, then over to Trisha. His grin, cold and somewhat blank until now, suddenly softened in a way that Trisha would be able to recognize immediately. He raised both his hands up playfully after putting his glass down, and slid forward to clasp her face. Planting a kiss on her forehead, he looked down and giggled.

”Yes ma’am! How could I live without this?” he said, tucking his arms around Trisha and waggling back and forth. His head twisted back up to Reyna fully, patting Trisha’s back slowly and gently.

”I know she was keeping a lid on it, but I figured maybe you guys would’ve heard.”

There were magic topics, like a magical brewer to link up with… It was great news, because it meant a solid pipeline for money which Trisha would be able to be in charge of. She’d have independence, and the option to never settle for less. Or, the option to contribute, and do whatever she wanted within the framework of their loving and trusting relationship.

But then there was the relationship itself… Their true connection, which he still had the utmost faith in. And that was the thing he wanted to connect with most. It was the golden link in the chain.

Looking back down at Trisha, he kept that smile burning bright, nuzzling into her. Leon nodded in the background, a laugh escaping from his nose as a simple huff of air. His head turned toward Cass, giving her a knowing wink. He wasn’t sure if Reyna was reading them, or if she was just good at moving things toward a place where Casey would focus. He was hoping at some point that Casey would impose the question; if Reyna was even able to help in the first place, and whether or not she would then be willing to scrub his memories for him.

Because if the blockage didn’t get processed soon? He’d turn into a slathering animal. Leon was sure of that, and didn’t want it getting to that point. Not at all. That’s why he appreciated this singular moment of tenderness, where he clearly found himself able to slow down. There was no question Casey could push himself into moments like that; only whether or not he could do it consistently and not lose the plot in between.

”Surprise, I guess!” he continued, grinning back down at Trisha before squeezing her again.
”I love you! Tell her about it, I wanna hear you talk about it.” he said in a dreamy voice, prompting her onward and not thinking about how he may’ve been putting her on the spot.

When Casey hugged her again, the tension and anxiety threatening to burst out of Trisha simmered back down. She was able to push it back down, melting into him with a soft sigh. She loved him so much, so she could get through anything she needed to. It was just easier when some of his attention was on her, because he was why she was pushing through in the first place.

“I don’t know how to talk about it." Trisha said softly, smiling back up at him. The thought of telling Reyna about it made her nervous. Because if anyone was going to give them a hard time for it being too early, it was her. Cass was easy. The easiest. Nadiyah had just about accepted it, but Reyna? She’d start worrying and prodding. Like she knew better than Trisha… Like she acted when she broke up with Trisha all those years ago.

But Casey said he wanted to hear her talk about it. She could do that for him. She was already ignoring so much of her anxiety for him.

“It’s just hard to put how amazing it was into words. But, uh…” She turned herself slightly to face Reyna while still leaning heavily into Casey, her arms having snaked around him to cling.

“He actually proposed to me first when it was just us… It was really sweet. No ring, because he wanted to get something together. I ended up imagining what I wanted, and he got it out of my hand to send to his Grandmother to make. Then he used that to propose again at Thanksgiving in front of… A lot of people. I’m glad I knew it was going to happen, because I probably would’ve run away if I didn’t.” She giggled softly. It would’ve been even more overwhelming.
“He made a really nice speech… I can’t really repeat it without ruining the effect. But it was perfect. Probably the best day of my life.”

She purposefully missed some stuff out, of course. To her it was romantic that Casey proposed right after an argument, but she doubted Reyna would agree. Then she called it the best day of her life… It would have been if it wasn’t for what happened afterwards.

“I was going to tell you, but we’ve been so busy, I haven’t had time. I also expected Cass to have spilled it by now.”

”Hey, hey, let’s keep focusing on your love rather than my mistakes!” Cass had slipped around to Leon, which meant she smacked him right in the face as she threw her hands up. Accidentally! She immediately rubbed his chin apologetically… She wasn’t super boosted right now, but she was always a little boosted.

She was glad things seemed… Calmer at least. Well, Casey seemed a bit calmer. He wasn’t jumping all around the place, which honestly she wasn’t sure she could judge when she did the same thing. But she wasn’t that bad! She was pretty attentive to the people who needed it, at least.

Reyna watched Trisha and Casey for a moment, finger brushing against her jacket. She couldn’t ignore the pink that lit up her vision, all their other emotions swirling beneath the love filled aura. Even if it seemed a bit dulled on Casey’s side compared to the last time… But what could she say about that? And as a Pink Lux user, she knew emotions fluctuated.

She knew that Trisha was probably expecting her to disapprove. Really, she felt a bit maligned by all her friends there. Trisha and Cass both, seeming to expect her to question their decisions. She just wouldn’t sit silently while she watched someone make bad decisions.

Was getting engaged in a month sensible? Not in her opinion… But whether they were engaged or not, she knew Trisha’s feelings towards Casey would be the same. Thus, the effect of him hurting her or leaving her would be just as devastating. It was better to support and hope than speak out against it and risk Trisha pushing her away. At least, even with whatever was going on right now, Casey seemed good to her. And she was clearly happy.

"Congratulations. That’s a very early proposal… But you’re clearly both happy about it." Reyna smiled at them both.
"I’m glad I found out now, rather than from a text. It’s nicer this way. When do you plan to have the wedding?"

“We’re not rushing… I’d like a spring wedding, but next year would be too early. Maybe the year after. We’ll see.” Trisha responded, looking back up at Casey with a warm smile.
“You only get one wedding, so we want to take our time planning it.”

Casey nodded along, the spark in his eye clearly not as dull as the emotions overall. It was a manic expression in the first place, which could easily be construed as that same passion he’d had up until now. As long as it was obfuscated to Trisha, he figured it didn’t matter what the source was. But, it probably looked a bit strange for Reyna, whom he looked back up at without quite losing the expression.

”I wouldn’t even know what I wanted to do for it to begin with, honestly. I’m sure we’re both banking on something small, but what that actually means is still up for grabs. I’m looking forward to seeing everything that happens in between, anyway.” he admitted happily, head tilting once more to make sure she didn’t react in that attentive moment.

”As long as you guys aren’t gonna force us to go camping or something.” Leon joked, doing his best to keep things airy as he rubbed his face and playfully bopped Cass in the cheek as revenge.

”Oh- That’s a great idea, Babe! A camping wedding would be awesome!” Cass grinned, grabbing his hand playfully. She was bouncing on the spot, making it a little hard to tell if she was also joking or being entirely serious about it.

“I’m not having a camping wedding.” Trisha shook her head, laughing softly. She didn’t exactly have a picture in her head of what it would be like, or a set idea they had to follow, but she knew it wasn’t going to be something like that. She was a little worried Casey might actually agree with what was clearly a joke from Leon.

“Can you imagine trying to wear a wedding dress while camping? It would end up brown instead of white.”

”Don’t worry, I’ll hold up your skirts with my ten arms to stop any of it from getting muddy! It’s my job as your best bridesmaid!”

"There’s already roles assigned?" Reyna raised her eyebrows, managing to tear her eyes away from Casey and Trisha. Mostly Casey, as she tried to parse out his aura. Searching for anything suspicious… But it seemed like a case of pretending emotions were stronger than they were. Not a good thing, but not malicious. Her hand moved away from her channeler.

“No. Cass decided for herself, and she changes her title every few days.”

Cass let out a little cackle.
”I’m settled on this once, cause I’m the best! And it’s my birthday celebration, so gotta do what I say, which means-”

“You don’t get to decide my wedding because we’re celebrating your birthday.” Trisha interrupted lightly.

”I was gonna say another beer for me, but alright!” Cass stuck her tongue out at Trisha, reaching into the box to pull out a random beer.
”Crazy wedding idea aside, camping is fun. I ain’t actually been since I came over to the states.”

”Oh, we gotta run tests first. Trisha’s good outside, but I don’t know about extended periods.” Casey giggled, wagging his eyebrows.
”No point ruining the experience and turning her off of it forever.”

Leon laughed aloud knowing what Casey could do in terms of his magic. It seemed silly to worry about going camping when he could stuff an entire cabin into a pill. She’d probably wind up with internet if she deemed it necessary.

”Don’t tell me you’re gonna subject her to camping? Not when you, y’know…-”

Casey looked up at Leon and shrugged.

”Well, what would be the point of camping if it didn’t have camping in it? Why make it a crazy luxury experience when it’s something that gets you centered back with nature?” Casey asked in turn, biting his lip before looking down again.

”Aw, who am I kidding? Whatever gets you out there. You want a hot shower? Would that be enticing?” he asked Trisha, giggling to himself.

“I’m willing to try camping however it’s meant to be, if it’s with you.” Trisha responded sweetly. She could survive a night without showering, but being somewhere any longer then… She probably would want that hot shower. She didn’t have the constitution to shower cold. But she could probably deal with everything else camping had to offer, as long as it was with him. It wasn’t like she was overly fussy about where she spent her time, or needed to be in the lap of luxury.

“Then… I can ask for that hot shower if I need it. But I do want to try. I’ve never done it, and it feels like something I missed out on. I like being outside and I think I could sleep in a tent… And do whatever else you do when camping.” There were a lot of things she’d missed out on. A lot of time spent inside, in one room. She liked nature and the outdoors, and only appreciated it more now thanks to her bees. She wouldn’t mind a couple of days of the basics.

”I dunno, Trisha.” Cass’ expression turned deadly serious for a moment, almost solemn.
”Unless you get a massive sleeping bag that fits both of you, it’ll be really hard for you to cuddle at night.”

”Oh, well it’s not like I’m trying to stuff her into a foxhole. I like using my canvas tent. It’s a bit of a bitch to put up, but it’s like… A nice room. I’ve got a cot just for me, but they sell bigger ones. Or, I could make one myself. There’s certain luxuries that I think are nice. Like, rainproofing! God, don’t get me started on spending time in China. Where we were, it was raining constantly. I told myself I’d never wanna camp like that again if I had the choice.”

He was encouraged by what she said, at least. It was nice to know that she’d try whatever, and he hoped that what he had to say was encouraging in return.

”We could go to an actual campground, where there’s amenities available. But, I bet you’d appreciate the privacy a lot more if we went somewhere just, y’know, out in the woods.” he reinforced the point, moving to hold her hand.

”Like, if we end up getting some property like I’ve been looking at? Maybe we can spend the first couple weeks camping as we build the first structure together.” he grinned widely.

”Oh! Yeah, Reyna… Casey’s stealing her away to Montana. They’re gonna raise bees and farm flowers.” Leon joked, leaning across the kitchen and poking Casey’s arm playfully.

Casey laughed back, but kept looking down at Trisha to see how she felt about the idea.

Trisha was trying to process the idea of camping for a couple of weeks while building a house, smile frozen on her face. She wasn’t actually sure if she could do that. She’d never been camping! So she really didn’t know. It made sense if they had to build their new home… But it was something she’d really have to think about.

"Montana? The middle of nowhere in Montana, I assume?" Reyna raised her eyebrows, looking at Trisha. It didn’t seem like the kind of thing Trisha would want… But then again, it had always been hard to tell what Trisha actually wanted. Maybe she’d thrive somewhere away from all the people. She’d never seemed to want some life filled with luxury, even though it had been handed to her since birth.

"Well I guess I’ll have to visit loads when you’re somewhere accessible! I never pictured Trisha as the farm type."

“I’m not the farm type… But I’d like to go somewhere quiet. Casey will tend the flowers, I’ll tend the bees!” Trisha said with a gentle laugh. Her expression shifted, smile no longer awkward and uncertain.
“I’ll need a hot shower if you want to camp for a couple of weeks… But can we try going away camping for a weekend first? I don’t want to jump right into the deep end, though I’m sure I’ll enjoy it with you.”

Casey gave a big nod in return, both to Reyna’s assumption and to Trisha’s necessary bar for entry. He definitely would want her there, especially if his theory about camping’s relation to his moods held true. It meant there may be a February trip necessary, and that would probably be a struggle. Something he’d almost have to guarantee a bit of extra luxury in, given how harsh the climate at that time could get.

”Yeah! We’ll go pretty soon. It’ll be cold, we’ll go somewhere snowy. I’ll make sure you’re all bundled up. Hell, I’d put you on a little sled. That’ll be fun.” he smiled half into space, thinking about better days ahead before taking a deep breath and beaming back up at Reyna.

”It’s good you’re an Adept. I’m gonna look into a couple different artifacts from the family collection. My slice of the pie. The hope is that we’ll have a way to make sure our Adeptal friends and family can get in and out quickly. There’s no reason we should ever be totally stranded or isolated. I just want to be able to choose to engage life on our terms. Which, we can both agree on, right Babe?” he asked, pretty sure she was in agreement with that scheme.

“Right. We’ll be able to have peace whenever we want, but we’ll be able to easily have people visit too. It’ll be a nice balance.” Trisha nodded with a smile. She didn’t want to be isolated from the few friends she had… But she’d be happy to move somewhere that was more out of the way. Living in a city was easy, but didn’t exactly bring her many benefits. Outside of places to look for partners, but she didn’t have to do that anymore. It meant they’d only have to see who they wanted to.

She didn’t say anything about the possible cold camping trip. The idea of going camping now was less appealing than in the warmer months… But he seemed excited about it, so she didn’t want to rain on that.

"That’s good to hear. I was a little worried I’d have to travel for a whole day just to visit." Reyna smiled, feeling truly relieved at that. They weren’t planning to just isolate themselves from everyone… Hopefully. He was planning to isolate her, the kind of behaviour that would really worry her.

”Yeah, cause you’re gonna have to visit a lot if me and Lee also end up there… Which is very possible, assuming everything works out! Who knows how things’ll go but, we could all end up nice and cozy in Montana.” Cass grinned.

Reyna’s attention turned to Cass and Leon, brow furrowing slightly. What was with her friends and planning their future with someone far too early?
"Please tell me you two won’t be engaged as well the next time I visit. I’m not sure I can handle that."

”Uh, no! Just cause I might move somewhere with him in the future doesn’t mean we’re gonna get married!” Cass responded fairly bluntly, though she meant soon rather than ever. They weren’t going to rush into things… Though she still wasn’t sure whether she wanted to get married one day or not.

Leon nodded and laughed aloud at Cass’ bluntness, loving how her best qualities always came forward under pressure. It was an incredibly admirable trait to possess, and he was always gonna want that part of her. He didn’t know many other people like that.

Maybe Gin, but that was a completely different kind of relationship. In this context, it was less adorable, and far more attractive. Unable to help himself, he had to follow her over the edge.

”She knows I want a few pups though. We’re still negotiating that.” he grinned.

Which caused Casey to curl back into Trisha and laugh a little too hard at the joke. He still didn’t want to know about their sex life. But, he had to act cool, because he didn’t know how accustomed Reyna was to that kind of talk or behavior. It couldn’t be helped anyway, and at least Leon kept going.

”But, we’re nowhere near done having fun yet. I promised her a world tour. We’re gonna do a bit of questing, if you will.” he grinned widely at Reyna, tossing a playful jab at Cass.

Cass giggled, jerking her whole body to bump him back.
”Yeah, I ain’t even thinking ‘bout settling down or kids or any of that shit till I get my world tour and adventure! While these two skip straight to cozy fantasy, we’re gonna be doing all the cool shit!”

Trisha rolled her eyes at the two of them, not trying to suppress her normal reaction to when Leon and Cass talked like this. At least it was the normal one, and not something more extreme.
“I’ll take my cozy home over travelling around any day.”

Reyna shook her head, laughing lightly.
"That doesn’t surprise me. Honestly, I’d be concerned if Cass wanted to settle down so soon. It would be very un-her. It’s good you're both on the same page."

Then she smiled at all of them. Maybe this would come across as a bit condescending, but she genuinely believed it.

"I’m glad that you all seem happy." Even if there were difficulties for one couple, which did concern her. But all relationships had struggles, it was how they got through it that mattered. Hopefully they would push through it.
"Genuinely. Just a couple of months ago I was worrying about both of you."

”Both?! Trisha I get, but what was there to worry about me?!”

"You spent most of your day sending us memes, and complaining about how boring everything was. It wasn’t very healthy."

”Eh, well, eh- Sure it was boring as fuck, but I was fine!” Cass protested again.

“I was fine too.” Trisha piped up.
“Now I’m just better than fine.”

Reyna held up her hands, just laughing at both of their stubborn denial.

The brothers could only look at one another and shake their heads between one another. There weren’t words they could share that wouldn’t give their mutual suspicions of one another away. It had to just look like a heartwarming family moment! Casey patted Trisha, kissing her on the top of the head.

”You’re such a soldier, Baby.” he giggled, kissing her again before nudging her back toward where his beer was.

”I can see you not thriving in that environment, Cass! It’s gonna be crummy enough when we do need to slow down and get you right.” he moved to her in turn, poking at her as he got closer.

Cass waggled a finger at him.
”Nuh uh, I’m never gonna-” She cut herself off, actually processing what he’d said. He didn’t mean when they got old or any shit like that! He meant cause of her stupid curse, when they wouldn’t be able to do stuff cause she’d been stuck in bed. It was going to be crummy. It would fucking suck!

Trisha was more than happy to let Casey move her towards wherever he wanted to be, as long as she got to stay near him. As she leaned against him again, she glanced between Reyna and Cass. She was happy to put the attention onto Cass rather than her and Casey for a moment, even if it was a little selfish to prod at this topic.
“Have you told her yet?”

"Told me what?" Reyna answered, folding her arms.

”Uh, well, it ain’t really a topic for fun hang outs! Or birthday celebration days!” Cass protested, absolutely not wanting to bring the mood down. It wasn’t that she didn’t want to tell Reyna… She was generally an honest person after all. It was just still something she was processing, so she couldn’t just talk about it happily.

”That makes it sound like I gotta talk about something real bad. I ain’t dying or anything! Just, we’re all having fun, we can talk about it another time!”

”I’ll drink to that.” he said, holding up his glass as he repositioned his other arm to hug Trisha across the front.
Then, he gave her another kiss, and took a big frothy sip. It was delicious.
”Holy shit! This is awesome! Babe, I know you don’t want a lot, but just take a little sip of this. It’s fucking great. We need this guy’s number as soon as we’ve got honey to spare.” he happily stole the show back, just to make sure that others saw how fine they were.

Leon’s forehead beaded with a little sweat, and he grinned down at Cass hoping that Reyna wouldn’t protest to Casey taking things into his own hands. He hadn’t meant to blurt it out, but that was often Leon’s problem in the end. He just said things! He didn’t mean anything by it, only that he was already thinking ahead to those times! About how they’d treat her while they were out and about in the world. Leon couldn’t just put his whole life on hold if he was doing a circuit, or God forbid he was invited to tour at any great capacity.

It was going to be a big part of his life. He was amazed that Cass had kept such a lock on it. His hands moved out quickly, batting at her arms in a teasing way, eyes making sure she knew he was confused and sorry all at once.

Cass batted his hands away playfully, looking up at him with a smile. She wasn't upset at him, and that much was clear in her expression. Fully accepting of his non verbal apology, if a little sad. She was upset about the circumstances… And she really just didn't want to talk about it today!

Unlike Leon, she had been avoiding thinking ahead when it came to her illness. Every time she did, it just made her feel like shit. Because she knew it was going to make things difficult if they were on the road! She'd have to stop and she'd miss out on shit. It would suck ass. So she didn't even want to think about it, to stop herself spiralling into feeling actually gloomy about it. Cause she really was excited for everything else! And she wasn't upset right now.

So she returned fire, poking at his arms before reaching up to hook her arms around his neck. She tugged him forward so he was forced to bend down to her level.
"All good, Babe! I ain't upset." She magically muted her voice, so even this close he should only be able to pick it up thanks to his super hearing. The others would only hear if they were concentrating their White Lux on them.

Trisha reached up for Casey's glass, taking a small sip from it. Her eyes closed for a moment… It was really good. It made her a little upset that she really couldn't drink herself. One beer might be fine, but it risked more, which meant getting drunk. She knew she wasn't going to be a happy drunk tonight… She'd probably be sad, and she wouldn't be able to keep a lid on her emotions like she did now. So she couldn't risk it.

Hopefully Casey would keep letting her have sips of his, so she could at least try whatever he was having.

“It’s really nice. Almost makes me want to supercharge my bees so they'll work harder." Trisha smiled up at Casey, leaning back against him. She didn't particularly like the attention being back on them, but it was fine. At least he was there and present… Being slotted in against him, the warmth of his body against her back, helped. She could almost fool herself that she felt perfectly fine.

“I’ll probably have enough honey next February or March, seeing as I'm supplying Andrade with less for now." Even though he'd moved away, the contracts they had still held- or at least, had been amended. Just without the restaurants, there wasn't much to supply right now.
“We need to refill our own supply, and I want to get my website running- even if it's just small quantities. Then we can get in touch with this guy to make mead. Do you really think he'll be that willing to work with us, Rey?"

Of course the typical anxiety came out. Would a brewery this good really want to use her honey?

"I'm sure he would, especially if he knows it's not just normal honey." Reyna smiled. She glanced over at Leon and Cass, but easily moved on without pushing her. It was Cass, after all- if she said they'd talk about it another time, they would. She wasn't one for hiding things.

"You'll probably have to visit, so he can test out your honey with you there. He's quite the hands on man… The Brewery isn't close to our university, but I'm sure if you made a trip of it you could show that off to Casey."

Trisha nodded at that, head tilting towards Casey.
“That could be quite nice. I did spend four years there… We could make a trip out of it sometime."

Casey nodded in turn, accepting that at some point they’d be going to the midwest whether he wanted to or not. If it wasn’t this, it probably would’ve been something else that brought them into that windy, frozen shithole. He didn’t have a lot of good memories in Chicago. A parade that went tits up, a few presentations from the church as a younger kid, two tournaments following Gravity into the Windy City. He didn’t have anything against it per se, as much as he just didn’t have any reason to suspect it was worth going there.

At least now they had personal reasons. This time would be the charm! She’d show him all the quiet little spots that a bunch of soldiers had no reason to look for.

”Let's go as a family! We’ll pack the girls up, get them the fuck out of here; I think it’ll be great! The estate’s still in charge of the Barrelchest!” Leon exclaimed with a wide smile, thinking fondly about all the good times he had experienced in the Ol’ Chi.

Casey immediately narrowed his eyes, in utter disbelief that they still had property there.
”What the fuck? The Colbys aren’t dead?” was the only question Casey could possibly muster. He remembered Mr. Colby being old when they were kids. Now? He must’ve been venerable.

Leon laughed and shook his head.
”Nah, Senior died a few years ago. You were on your last tour. Rodney actually came back home because of it; said the Army gave him some kind of pass ‘cuz he was the only son in the family.”

Casey frowned slightly, remembering playing with Rodney and Antonio as kids. If Rodney was the only son-

”Where… the fuck did Tony go?”

”Bought a farm, as you guys say. Somewhere over Finland.”

It made sense to Casey. Antonio had always loved planes. He remembered the collection on the boy’s wall. Rodney Senior had been their grandfather, on account the boys’ father was almost always traveling with their dad.

Leon saw his brother become instantly introspective, and looked around the room until he settled on Reyna.

”Sorry! The Barrelchest is a little fuckin’ hole in the wall hotel over there. Up in Lakewood; technically our family owns it, but we really just bought the bills out from the owning family. Rodney Colby, his son is, uh… Alexander Colby.

A name Cass would’ve been foolish not to speak practically in the same breath as Gravity Richoux. Formerly “Coffin Colby”, who became “The Colby Comet” once he’d joined their Father’s team. Old Rodney was a boxer himself, and a captain in the first world war almost seventy years ago, who had won the building around the turn of the century. Much like the Cannery, it underwent renovation from an industrial processing facility into housing for travellers. Now it was a historic site, and they got paid more to let people tour the place than they did hosting guests.

”And so, now his oldest son, J-Rod, we call him, but he’s Rodney Junior after his Grandfather. He’s the guy in charge of keeping it on the up. Since Alex, tragically-” he let Cass explain to the group what happened to poor Comet Colby.

”He got hit by a comet!- Wait.” Cass paused, eyes narrowing thoughtfully as she put two and two together. They knew each other… Comet Colby had been in Gravity’s team, who she knew had magic. They all had magic. They were crazy magic families.

”Wait, he didn’t- It wasn’t a fucking freak meteor strike, was it?!”

Reyna raised her eyebrows. She didn’t know anything about boxing, but she did know that freak meteor strikes tended not to happen very often and they didn’t generally kill just one person.
"It’s a good excuse for a magical death. Did you seriously think it was a comet?"

”Yessssss! Of course I did!” Cass wailed.

Trisha only half listened, looking up at Casey with a slightly tired smile.
“So much for a quiet future trip.” She whispered. Though if they ended up going to Chicago as a big group, the two of them were definitely spending a good chunk of the time alone. Cass could give the rest the university haunt tour.

Casey snorted to himself gently, air huffing out of his nose almost silently.
”It’s not something we have to tell anyone about. It’s a business trip.”

Leon was, thankfully, too wrapped up in relaying the information at hand to Cass to hear Casey’s insistence that they’d be alone.

”Yeah, I always thought it was a pretty wild claim for something so tongue-in-cheek, but I guess that was one of his last wishes. Dude got cursed by some asshole Adept gambler, I guess he wasted a bunch of money, tried to force Alex to fix a fight to get it all back, then tried extorting him when he wouldn’t. Ultimately, Alex beat the fuck out of the guy, but didn’t kill him. So, he cursed him with this crazy withering-”

”-Westergard’s Curse of Seven Moons.” Casey piped up, feeling the need to clarify.

Leon stuck his finger up.

”That’s the one. So, yeah. Seven moons, and you die. The Union spent seven months trying to find the guy, but he went hard to ground, and they couldn’t muster him. The guy showed up at Alex’s funeral in a green suit with a bouquet of clovers.”

Casey shook his head. It was something morbid to laugh at, but he couldn’t help it. That was the kind of pettiness he sometimes wished he could emulate, because it would simply hurt others. It was appealing to lose one’s sense of morality, even if only for a fleeting glimpse of what could be.
He’d spent long enough being exactly who he was without any sort of walls or masks. Active duty affords you that. His position, especially. A lone expert. A specialist. He didn’t have any one home, and went where he was needed. If people needed him, that meant putting up with whoever the Hell he was. And that meant dealing with every dark, depraved joke and sick ideas he happened to get a kick out of that day.

”That pretty much sums up Eustace Westergard. Nine times nine lives, that guy.” he said without sounding too impressed.

Leon just nodded.
”Yeah… Died of old fucking age too, crazy enough. Couldn’t outrun the reaper, thank fuck.”

Oooo it’s good he’s already fucking dead, because he wouldn’t’ve been able to outrun me either!” Cass’ sense of justice was set alight, and she was even rotating one arm like she was about to go into a fight. That asshole! Fucker lost a bunch of his own money then got pissed when someone had morals, and killed him! Goddamn, curses were the fucking worst.

Reyna shook her head.
"Blue Lux often brings out the worst in people. Not all of them, but it’s quite common. We can be thankful it’s the rarest type."

Trisha didn’t really have much to say. She didn’t know the long dead man- obviously- and while his death sounded tragic, it was kind of funny how petty it had been. Over something so small. It would be nice to be that free, and to just not worry about what was right and wrong.

“The one Blue Adept I knew- uh, aside from Andrade- was a bitch. Honestly, that’s probably too nice. She was horrible to everyone, and her magic wasn’t even that useful.” With nothing to say about the situation, Trisha went back to her comfort place- bitching about someone from her past.
“But she always acted like she was better than everyone because her family was rich and powerful Adepts.”

”Oh, fuck, yeah. Not a good woman. Did she…-”

Casey nodded.

”And sent packing. Her and Baksh both, I guess they decided it was time for a vacation.”

Leon breathed a sigh of relief. He may not have liked either of those women, but anyone who had to die to Dollhouse and their ill-conceived machinations, died for something that never should’ve happened in the first place. Anyone left was alright in his book. So, bygones could be bygones. Still, he wasn’t above a little shittalking.

”It’s a tough magic to wield. Obviously, she wasn’t the type for diligence besides consistently acting like an ass. But, being depressed all the time has got to wear on the soul.” Leon tried to relate, veiling a dig with a commentary.

Casey shook his head. Having known a few Blue Adepts besides Andrade himself, he’d seen how devastating a true Curse Master could be. Andrade was purely unique thanks to his dual Adepthood. Black and Blue are an obviously horrifying combination, but pure blue was a far more subtle nightmare. It wasn’t about what a curse could do instantly. It was about what it could do over time. What the capacity for those feelings were inside the Adept, and how they learned to apply their sorrow beyond their own body.

”Think about the fact that there’s only a couple of kinds of magic that linger after death. Out of all of them, most require rituals, or some kind of anchoring to a magical point.” Casey spoke from Cass back down to Trisha, avoiding Reyna as he didn’t want to assume she didn’t know this already.
Taking a sip of his beer, he held it back down to see if she wanted another sip.

”But, uniquely, Orange and Blue Lux have the distinction of lingering after Death. For whatever reason, they’re naturally persistent. So, a good Orange, or Blue, Adept… Which, if I remember correctly, Sloane was both? Can weave spells that can withstand the test of time. We can look at most Artifacts, whose influence is almost always either Apparitional in nature, or made of Orange Lux artifice. Or, ancient curses… Like-”

”-Like Matthew’s Marching Feet!” Leon immediately took over, making sure Casey didn’t go anywhere near the more sensitive curse in the room.

”God, right. That shit’ll drive you nuts if it holds.” he looked at Reyna, raising his eyebrows as if to ask her familiarity.

"I know of it." Reyna nodded. Her family definitely wasn’t like the Richoux in terms of their wealth of magical knowledge, but both sides came from long and relatively pure lines of Adepts. Knowledge was passed down, and small magical communities always found. So she knew enough.

"It sounds like the worst case of tinnitus you could get."

Trisha pursed her lips, before reaching to take another sip of Casey’s beer. She was following the conversation, but she didn’t really understand what it had to do with what she’d said about Sloane. It already sounded like Leon was defending her, so she really hoped Casey wasn’t. He probably wasn’t, right? He was just taking the opportunity to talk about something he enjoyed discussing.

”Wait, tinnitus- it ain’t something that makes you just constantly march?” Cass obviously knew very well how ancient curses persisted. She was fucking stuck with one! But this Marching Feet one sounded very different.

Trisha tilted her head down.
“What does this have to do with Sloane? Do you think it excuses what she was like?”

”Oh, that she didn’t stand a fucking chance, yeah. Not really an excuse-”
”-But it does explain a lot, yeah. She’s like… Constantly stuck between wanting to be a badass and being in a total self-absorbed depressive state. Like, we all deal with shitty moments, but try balancing those two feelings constantly. It didn’t surprise me that she wasn’t very helpful back then, and it doesn’t surprise me now.” Leon finished, shrugging his shoulders.

”I won’t hold it against her. I just hope she doesn’t go pointing herself at whatever and using her magic lightly. Hell, if I were ever going to encourage someone to Sever for the sake of their own mental health, it’d be fucking Sloane Farris. My God! He shook his head, an absent smirk crossing his face.

”Wow! Tell us how you really feel, Lee.” Casey giggled, looking down at Trisha.
”I never bothered much with her files. Was she really that bad, Babe?” he asked her.

Trisha nodded, managing not to glare at Leon for what very much sounded like defending a shitty person thanks to Casey’s attention landing back on her. Because she was fine enough that she could handle something that really shouldn’t upset her so much. She’d said she’d be patient with Leon, which meant being patient with him excusing people like that.

“She was. Half the time she had as much personality as a rock, the other half she was being the most judgmental bitch imagineable. She’d criticise everything and everyone. It was like she thought she was the only one that could do anything.” Trisha scrunched up her face in displeasure. The two of them had clashed a fair few times.

“Normally she’d be hiding with all the other ‘smart’ kids, who organised things over the radios. But there were a couple of times she came out… I ended up with her once. She spent the whole time criticising us, and she blamed me when she ended up getting stung during a fight because she was trying to fend off a monster with a useless cursed item! I saved her life and she ripped into me rather than being thankful.”

For anyone that knew Trisha- which was everyone in the room- it would be obvious why she disliked someone like Sloane so much. Her lacking self confidence couldn’t take many blows, so harsh criticism was incredibly difficult for her to deal with. The way Sloane delivered her ‘hard truths’ was so similar to how Maria did too… Completely unempathetic.

Casey nodded and gently patted under the arm he was holding around her.
”Well, good news is that by the time she’s back here full time, we should be cleared out. And you’ll never ever have a chance in Hell of seeing her again.” he mused, sounding chipper about that at least.

Leon nodded.
”Yeah, that’s honestly been a blessing in disguise. I’ve spent a lot of time thinking about other places I’d settle in if I didn’t have a foot bolted down to this city. Now’s the time to unscrew the last few fasteners.” he proudly added to Casey’s point.

The two of them exchanged nods, and Leon looked down at the box of beer before starting to rummage through for one he found interesting as opposed to one that a monster was interested in.

Trisha looked up at Casey before nodding. He was right… They’d be gone by the time she was back. Trisha never had to seem any of them again. She was done with Sycamore, aside from Leon- who hardly counted at this point. They had more connections than just a dead coven.

“None of us will have anything tying us to this city anymore… Which will be nice.” She agreed. Though, technically the things that had tied her down externally were gone now. It was just Casey, and waiting for the Temple to collapse and be done. Thanks to him, she had the confidence to leave her own family… Or at least, stop relying on them and staying here because it was easy. And with ‘Father Wolf’ dead she was safe to go wherever she wanted to.

”Ooo, I’m an expert at unscrewing shitty place fasteners! Lemme get my hands in there!” Cass joked, holding up her hands as her nails grew into claws, as if she was going to slice through his foot. She wasn’t, obviously, but it was for the effect of it!

Though, it had been different for her… She’d left while she still had plenty back there. But it also hadn’t been a crazy cult where leaving was like dying!

Reyna laughed lightly.
"You’re great at doing things like that through brute force, sure, Cass. I’m not sure that counts as being an expert."

”Uh, yeah it does! When have you seen me do that kinda shit anyway? I ain’t- Oh! Was it when I punched Naima’s brother and told him to get the hell outta her life!”

Reyna just nodded.

”It worked out, though! She even lived with me for a few years.”

“She broke up with me, though.” Trisha complained.

Cass laughed awkwardly, rubbing the back of her neck. That had been entirely unrelated to the brother punching incident, the timing just happened to line up enough that she chose to take the blame… For Trisha’s sake!

”Oh, that Naima… Geeze, Cass, where haven’t your fists been at?” Leon playfully asked, putting his hands up like he did whenever they were sparring; open and ready for her to punch at.

Casey shook his head, looking up only for a brief moment before turning back down to Trisha. He couldn’t help but wonder why on Earth it mattered whether or not that person broke up with her. A million different things he could’ve said went through his mind before he settled on just squeezing her a little tighter. It was the only option that wouldn’t have ultimately sounded snide or otherwise like bait for a fight.

”It’s pretty funny, honestly. How you always seem so ready for action, even when you always settle things pretty humanely, Cass.” he offered an insight instead, smoothing his desires out with distractions.

”Oh yeah, I only punch people who really deserve it!” Cass nodded enthusiastically, making an exaggerated swoosh sound with her mouth as she punched Leon’s open hands. She didn’t do any extra magical boosts like she normally would when they sparred- cause they were inside and not sparring! She didn’t want to risk accidentally getting too excited and breaking the countertop or something.

”I always try to talk it out first! But if it ain’t working, the fists gotta come out!”

"Apart from when she’s drunk." Reyna countered.
"Then, she goes for the fists first, and I would be the one cleaning up the mess."

Trisha nodded in agreement to that, though she didn’t look up at her friends. She was too busy leaning back into Casey, her arm hooking round his, like she was trying to merge with him. She wasn’t upset- at least anymore than she had been the whole time- but the mention of another ex had set off her anxiety a little. Her own reaction outing that the person was an ex had set off her anxiety! Sure, Casey had said multiple times that he didn’t care how many people she’d been with, but that didn’t mean she should risk rubbing it in his face. Eventually he could decide he’d had enough of it, and deserve someone that didn’t have such a tarnished history.

”Heyyy, don’t act like you also step in and try to sort this kinda shit out! Just you always use your words instead of fists, and you’re real good at it- Anyway, point is! I punch people who deserve it! Hard! And it’s almost always men cause, no offence, they’re mostly likely to be aggressive, sexist assholes.”

”I’ve always found it to be a wealth-distributed demographic.” Leon offered as an idea.

One that Casey scoffed openly at.

”Please, it’s one hundred percent an individual basis. It’s totally-”
He stopped, biting the bottom of his lip before swinging the cup in his hand about gently.
”-totally subjective on all fronts. Coming from our modern military, there’s rich people and poor people. Men and women. Nobody’s got a decent thing to say about anyone else as a group. But, if you ask them who their favorite people in their lives are, I bet you’ll get a healthy mix of people of all kinds.”

Leon pouted his bottom lip out.

”Oh no, he’s been hitting the internet again.” he mocked.

Casey scowled back.
”Just… Giving my unsolicited opinion, clearly.”

Trisha frowned, subtly tensing. She wasn’t happy that things seemed to be escalating, and Casey’s tone set off her anxiety. He wasn’t about to explode, was he? What happened to acting fine? She wasn’t sure if she could deal with him and Leon fighting.

”Whoa, whoa!” Cass waved her hands in the air vaguely between the two, as if she could cut the growing tension with them. She certainly hadn’t meant for this to happen with the comment!

”I wasn’t saying all men are aggressive assholes, or that all women are perfect not-assholes! Just that my experience is that I gotta beat up men the most, cause they do shit to my lady friends… Of course it’s an individual thing. Sorta. There’s societal shit there, but we ain’t getting into that here!” She continued, doing her best to damage control before either Leon or Casey got more annoyed at the other.

It was such a silly thing to fight about. Well, maybe not silly, considering the societal effects- but right now, it wasn’t important.

Clearly I gotta healthy mix of people in my life! I mean, hell, there’s more men in there. And one of the worst for everyday sexism is my own Ma!” She bounced a bit, throwing out something kinda personal in her attempts to cool things down. Not that she kept things that hidden, like Trisha did.

She then reached up to pat Leon’s arm.
”It ain’t an unsolicited opinion, Casey. But whatever Leon was gonna say ain’t unsolicited either. Clearly there’s some different opinions, and that’s fine. I was just making an observation and all, I wasn’t tryna make it seem like a fact.”

"It’s probably not a topic to dwell on. Can’t say it’s a particularly… Fun one." Reyna commented, very subtly inclined her head towards Trisha, who was still silently trying to melt into Casey and not have a panic attack. It was subtle- an increasing tension that only Casey would be able to feel since he was so close to her. It didn’t look much different to how she’d been moments before after grumbling about her ex. She was doing her best to keep it hidden.

But Reyna had gone for her channeler again, and could see the fluctuations around Trisha’s Emotional Field.

Casey wanted to argue about things. He didn’t want to sit silently and let people bowl his opinion over without recourse. He certainly didn’t want to yield when he felt he was absolutely correct either. But, he knew just as well that doing so wouldn’t be very good for showing them all that they were fine. He could keep a lid on it. He even thought his reaction hadn’t been particularly bad! Maybe a little snarky, but who wouldn’t be like that in the situation he was faced with?

Most of all, he could feel Trisha bridaling, and knew that there wasn’t any way forward through that mire that didn’t involve her getting more stressed out. Did she hate his opinion? Was it more that? Or more that she thought he was going to start an argument? Either way, he didn’t want to feel scorned by her. He didn’t want the separation between them to widen in the space between true love.

But they were all treating it like it was an inevitable explosion. Like something awful was going to happen just because he got a little mad. They couldn’t handle him being upset. Clearly because they were afraid of the two giants in the room getting into some sort of shouting match. They were brothers, for God’s sake. Cass had siblings; had she never had an argument with them that was over ten seconds later? They were taught to not hold grudges like that.

Leon could easily read his little brother’s twisting face. It was the same one that the frustrated toddler used to get when his favorite hammer toy got taken away because he was hitting Junior with it. The look that almost seemed threatening if it wasn’t attached to something so adorable. He still saw Casey that way so often, it was hard not to want to baby him.

”We’re all good! I’m good, at least-”
The oven timer went off for hot sandwiches, and Leon bent back down to pull the tray out as Casey’s head twisted from Leon and Cass, to Reyna, then back to Trisha.

”Was I giving not good vibes?” he asked openly.

”You both were! I ain’t dealing with you two getting all shouty at each other today… You can punch anything out at a gym later!” Cass responded, making sure to spread the ‘blame’. Not that she was blaming either of them. Sure, she wouldn’t have been as worried if she didn’t know Casey was in a shit place right now… But even in a good place, the two had issues before. Like that crazy time in the store where Casey pulled rank! Sure, they hadn’t outright fought, but shit had been tense.

It wasn’t such an easy thing to answer for Reyna, whose focus had mainly been on Trisha. If she mentioned that she could see the increasing panic, Trisha would either panic more or double down on being perfectly fine. She’d become incredibly fake- neither was something Reyna wanted to happen.

"A little. I figured it wasn’t the time… And I’m afraid I’m a little too used to stopping my younger brother’s from fighting. Perhaps that feeling slipped in." She ended up settling on as an explanation.

At least with things calming back down, Trisha was able to as well. She didn’t actually respond to Casey verbally, instead half shaking her head and turning around so that she could properly hug into him. She was just so on edge right now. A slightly harsher tone set off her anxiety… Because she was constantly waiting for another fight. She shouldn’t be. She should trust that he’d really be able to manage. But he kept almost starting fights with her.

It was difficult, because each time the base level her anxiety went back to was higher.

After hugging him for a moment, she spoke up quietly.
“I was just worried Cass might try to punch you.”

”Aw, Trisha, don’t slander me like that! I said I punch assholes. So I’d only punch either of ‘em if they really started acting that way!” Cass let out a joke huff, already going for the hot sandwiches, fingers wriggling as she reached for them fresh out the oven.

Suddenly, he really did just want to go back upstairs. How could he allow himself to be baited into a conversation, then feel like the bad guy for holding back even though he’d done everything he could? It really wasn’t good enough… And if it wasn’t good enough around this group of people, how was it ever going to be good enough in a big party full of people? So, rather than protest further, Casey simply took what they’d said to him, and decided to shut the fuck up altogether. It was a lot easier just not saying anything than it was accidentally overexplaining and then covering for it in the end.

He hugged Trisha just that little bit tighter, energy changing slightly around her as she’d be able to feel him lose a little wind in the sails. At least Leon didn’t skip a beat. Picking up a couple sandwiches for himself, he pointed down at the hotplate full of them.

”Want one? There’s vegetarian and vegan options as well.” he offered to Reyna, as if having the variety was going to convince her where she otherwise wouldn’t have been.

”Better be quick or I’ll eat ‘em all!” Cass added, stuffing one right into her mouth like an absolute animal. It didn’t even bother her that it was hot.

Thankfully Reyna was used to Cass’ horrendous eating habits, so the sight of it didn’t destroy her own appetite. She smiled.
"I’ll have one… That should be enough for me. I don’t need the extra fuel."

Trisha, obviously, didn’t plan to eat anything more. She concentrated on Casey, hands moving up to rub his back as she looked up at him with gentle concern. It wasn’t because of how she reacted that he was feeling down, was it? Assuming that was how he was feeling. Certainly less energised than before. It probably wasn’t just her. It was probably everyone. Not just her. Because if it was just her, he wouldn’t be hugging her like this.

“Do you want one? A sandwich?” She asked softly.

”No thank you.” he replied in an equally soft, if not distant tone.

He was trying to figure out excuses that wouldn’t be excuses to run back upstairs and lock himself away out of embarrassment. His cheeks were getting warm, and he couldn’t tell if it was that, or frustration. Either way, his appetite certainly wasn’t there anymore, and he’d put the beer down on the counter to back up slightly and lean against the fridge.

Trisha followed his slight move back, though hesitantly. She was clearly beginning to clock out of the surrounding conversation too, tunnel visioning on Casey. She wasn’t sure what to do, though, or what he wanted. He was the one who’d come into this feeling so strongly about pretending to be fine… Not that she didn’t want to either. She hated people figuring out something was wrong. But if he was dropping the act a bit, what did that mean? Should they leave, but how?

Reyna glanced at the couple as she pushed off the back of the couch she was leaning against, choosing not to use her channeler to read them. The temptation would just lead to wanting to fix something she couldn’t fix.

"Before I get my hands greasy… Do you want your main present, Cass? Seeing as Trisha’s here too." Reyna said, reaching for the gift bag she’d brought down with her and holding it up.

Cass’ eyes widened and lit up at the same time, half a sandwich hanging out of her mouth. She tilted her head back to quickly gobble it down.
”There’s more?!”

"I did say the beer was just part of it." Reyna laughed, moving forward to hold it out towards Cass. Cass wiped her hands on her shorts before bouncing over to take the bag with an excited grin.
"This one’s from me, Trisha and Diyah."

And Casey.” Trisha spoke up slightly. She had paid for half of it, after all. Her original plan had been to get Cass a joint gift from her and Casey, but when Reyna suggested getting something all together it had made things easier. It meant they could get her something quite valuable as well.

It was a pretty big bag, and Cass pulled a pretty hefty, wrapped box out of it. It was small enough to fit in a backpack, but pretty decently sized. She didn’t wait to rip into it, letting out an excited gasp.
”Holy shit, no way! You- How did you know the best fucking brand to get?! What the fuck!?”

"Because I listen to you." Reyna smiled.

Cass grinned, holding up the box that she’d been clutching to show it off. It was a soldering station. A very nice one at that. For most people, it was an odd gift. But for Cass, who loved playing around with circuits and all sorts of shit, it was great.

"And I was concerned you’d burn your apartment down if you kept using your old one. Which you said multiple times was old and starting to smell bad whenever you used it."

”It wasn’t that bad… But this is amazing! Thank you!” Cass wanted to hug all three of them, but figured that Trisha and Casey probably didn’t want that… At least, she couldn’t tell. So before getting to the thankful hugging, she spun around and shoved the box towards Leon.

”Look, Babe! Now it’s gonna be so much easier to make funky mini computers that I then blast with my Lux! And I bet I’ll stop burning myself everytime I solder shit!”

Leon looked down at the machine with a confused but discerning eye. The box had a decent display of what was inside, and he leered down at it to compare it with the tool she’d been using thus far. It was definitely higher quality, he could tell just by the sheer weight of it, and the fact that he couldn’t hear or feel any rogue play between the components within. Everything was solidly built and fitted together like a glove.

”She says it ain’t bad, but she can turn her super nose off. Honestly, I’m grateful for a gift like this.”
He looked up at Rey, then the happy corner couple.
”Thank you guys. We’ll both get some use out of it. Babe, is this the one that doubles as a wand?” he joked, turning the tender moment into something pervy.

Casey was already having a hard time dealing with being pointed out. He’d barely had anything to do with the gift. Trisha asked him if it was fine, he said yes. It wasn’t his gift. Frankly, he hadn’t gotten anything for her. Not intentionally, but just out of ignorance. He wasn’t a gift person at heart. He suddenly feared having to remember an anniversary, or some other special date that didn’t happen to fall on a major holiday. Birthdays escaped him more than anything else. It only made it harder to remember Trisha’s birthday, because her birthday wasn’t actually on a Holiday! He’d never in a million years remember if it was before Christmas or after!

Still, he patted Trisha’s arm as if to encourage her celebration with them so neither of them seemed like they were trying to bring the mood down intentionally. But, he was straining. It was harder being made to seem like he was a part of something that he wasn’t… Like it was some kind of pity.

”It can be if you’re brave enough!” Cass cackled, grinning up at Leon and waggling her eyebrows.
”Or crazy enough!”

"You’re welcome. Honestly, I’m glad it really was the right one. Though I’m not dealing with any returns if you decide to use it for something like that." Reyna said with a light laugh.

It was difficult for Trisha to insert herself, even as Casey encouraged her. Normally she’d roll her eyes at the current pervy turn, but that wouldn’t really be celebrating. It was pretty far from acting excited. But she wasn’t sure how to get excited. She was overthinking how to act so she seemed normal. Not too much, and not too little. She could do it, she’d said she could. Especially since Casey wasn’t saying anything. She had to cover for them both.

“I want my money back if you do that.” Trisha intoned drily, shifting around so that she was facing everyone else again without moving away from Casey. Then, she smiled.
“I’m glad you like it. I’m also glad it’ll save your nose, Leon… My senses are normal and it was bad enough when I lived with Cass.”

”Don’t lie, you’re just glad that I ain’t gonna accidentally burn this building down now!” Cass teased with a bright grin.

“If I was worried about that, I would’ve thrown away your old one when we lived together before.”

”Whoa?! Did you hear that? Trisha thought about throwing away my precious soldering iron!” Cass gasped, clutching at her chest jokingly.

”I’ve certainly thought about crying while having to smell it. It lingers. Even when you used it hours ago, I can tell you used it. The smell of plasma and chemical changes. And the alloy of whatever tin and other bullshit they use in the actual solder.” Leon continued, adding to the visceral description of Cass’ hobby.

”If you’re attached to the old one, leave it up in my office one day. I’ll do something special with it for you.” Casey quietly offered, knowing what nostalgia and sentiment could do for the human soul.

Of course, what he meant he’d do with it wasn’t clear, so Leon had to make the joke in turn.
”I swear to God if that thing comes back on its second life as an actual vibrator-”

”Why the fuck would I make-”
The tone in his voice was immediately harsher than it had to be, and he stopped on a dime to pivot away from the attitude.
”-There’s a lot of things it could be that don’t have to have sex involved. I’m sure I can come up with something more creative.”

”Alright, I’m just making sure. I don’t think I could handle it.” Leon replied, brushing over Casey’s initial reaction thanks to his quick retraction and instant deescalation.

Uh huh, sure, you couldn’t handle it… But it was the first thing you thought of! Suspicious.” Cass waggled her eyebrows at Leon, teasingly nudging him. She turned to Casey with an incredibly bright smile.
”I’d love it if you could do something with it! I’ve had it since I was… Uh, fourteen I think! Over ten years so, yeah, I’m pretty attached! It’s like my baby. My inanimate, hard working baby.”

Trisha looked up at Casey silently, a mixture of care and concern she couldn’t quite hide. But he’d, once again, pulled himself back down. She shifted her arm slightly so she could grasp his hand, gently squeezing it, expression turning into a smile towards him. She was trying her best to support him, which meant a positive reaction when he managed to push through… Right?

“That’s a really sweet offer, Casey.” She said softly.

Cass nodded, getting more excited as she thought about it.
”Would you be making it into like… Some kinda nice thing to display? Or something I could use for something else?! Oh- I guess you said you’d come up with something creative, so you still gotta figure that out?”

”It could be anything.” he replied simply, not outright acknowledging Trisha, but squeezing her hand several times when she praised him, with his chin coming down slightly to brush against the top of her head.
”It just feels weird. Obviously, they all knew something you’d appreciate. I’d rather do something that actually feels like it's from me.”

Leon nodded his head, keeping his frown from reaching his face as he realized what Casey meant. Trisha’d been kind enough to rope him into the group gift, yet he still pushed against it. Like being shoehorned into a group wasn’t enough. He hoped that was purely because he meant it, and not just because of how he was feeling. After all, doing something because you felt obligated, like making a gift for someone when you were perfectly welcome to be included in a group gift, seemed like a slap in the face to those bringing you along in the first place.

As far as he knew, it wasn’t like Casey had made any kind of huge deal about Cass’ birthday. He hadn’t even seemed to be making a big deal out of Trisha’s… Though, he assumed that was more because of the timing. Their grand escape was the birthday present neither of them wanted, he bet.

”So, if you can think of anything before I go around messing with it, speak your mind.” he added finally, looking back down at Trisha finally and kissing her forehead again from behind.

”Ay ay captain!” Cass jokingly saluted him.
”I’ll have a think and let you know! I can grab it and get it up to you, uh… Well, not today! Don’t wanna trigger Leon’s poor nose.”

She reached up to pinch Leon’s cheek teasingly, grinning at him. She wasn’t really reading into things enough to think about the whole group gift thing, too excited about getting her precious old soldering iron made into something new.

The other two women did notice it. Reyna wasn’t upset, because Trisha was the one who asked for Casey to join. It being a four way split, technically, had allowed them to buy such a nice one… But if he wanted to make Cass something more personal too, she understood.

"It’ll become something that smells better for everyone’s sake, I hope." She said lightly.

Trisha was a bit more upset about it, though she didn’t show it. If he’d wanted to do something, he could have said no. She hadn’t forced him to contribute… She’d assumed that because it was her friend, it was her job to ‘organise’ it anyway. Even if Reyna was the one who organised it in the end. But she couldn’t let herself get upset at him. Not right now. It was such a silly thing too, and it really was sweet that he wanted to make Cass something… She just wished he didn’t have to act like the group gift was something he was forced into. It made her feel thoughtless.

“Don’t give it to him too soon, or I won’t see him for a few days.” She tried to joke, smiling up at Casey.

Leon grinned away, knowing that nobody could quite top what he had in mind when it came to gifts. But, Casey’s mastery of Orange Lux and extensive skill as a craftsman gave Leon plenty of reasons to trust that it was going to be great. He was just thankful that the guy was always willing to work no matter what. It made everything else a little easier to accept.

”Or, you could give it to me right now and it could be done by the end of the day.” Casey replied sharply, hand gripping slightly on Trisha’s arm as he thought for a moment that he found an escape plan for them that didn’t look totally desperate.

”Oh sure! I can go get it just now- Don’t wanna lose whatever idea’s forming in your head.” Cass winked at Casey, as if she was assuming he wanted to do it right now because he had some amazing idea rather than wanting to escape. She wasn’t stupid, so she knew… It was so fucking obvious! But, they’d seen both of them. It’d even been quite nice! So if they wanted to leave, that was fine by her.

“Wouldn’t it be easier for us to come up with you?” Trisha said, making it clear she planned to leave too. Just in case they expected her to stick around herself… But she couldn’t do that.
“Unless you’re worried about leaving Reyna alone with Leon.”

”Oh, nah… I’m afraid of leaving Leon alone with Reyna! All the shit she can tell him!”

"I’m already remembering the worst incidents to share." Reyna played along with a smile.

Leon did his best to smile it off as Casey left his glass of beer and everything. He was already wobbling around with Trisha trapped in his arms, making breakneck speed for the elevator exit.

”Casey? You didn’t want to stay and smoke?” he asked, trying to sound casual.

”Well, you know it’s gonna be a long night anyway. This’ll give me something to look forward to. Trisha, you’re- It’s good, right? You were… The bees…?” he tried to think of an excuse that didn’t make it seem like he wasn’t fleeing. Of course, he didn’t want to force Trisha out of time spent with Reyna, but she’d also said a million times that she’d rather be with him than anywhere else. So, it was only natural she’d be coming back up with him. She even made it sound like that, and suddenly he was thinking about why he was putting her on the spot!

”Who am I kidding, of course you are.” he managed an actual smile and a giggle at her, patting her on the shoulder.
”We will be upstairs, Reyna. If you wanted to visit, neither of us are gonna tell you that you can’t, I don’t think. You’re spending some time here, right? You’ll get the chance.” he added, making it sound like they weren’t going to be at the party later.

"I’m here until tomorrow afternoon… I’ll make sure to visit before I leave. There’s a few things I need to give Trisha anyway." Reyna smiled good naturedly, eyes flickering from Casey to Trisha. She didn’t protest their leaving, especially since it seemed to be a mutual decision.

“Sure, that’d be nice.” Trisha responded, even though the idea of having to host someone for however briefly tomorrow sounded awful. But it was Reyna. Her close friend… Who’d unfortunately seen her at low points she’d rather no one see her at. There were worse people to see then.

“And I’m good, you’re right… I also need to check the bees. Make sure they’re growing well.” She tried to cover up Casey’s half nonsense talking, forming it into an actual excuse for her to leave that wasn’t just ‘I’m attached to the hip with my fiance.’

With them hurrying out so quickly, Cass only had a moment to worryingly grimace at Leon. She patted his arm.
”Keep Rey entertained, alright! I’ll be back soon.”

Leon leaned forward and caught her on the back of the head with a kiss before letting the two of them walk out and up the stairs. He turned to Rey immediately with a frown.

”Well? Not so great for an impression, I guess.” he said calmly.
Hidden 7 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Monday 18th December. Late Evening. Home.

In the end, the party wasn’t a pleasant experience for either Casey or Trisha. Casey got so drunk he nearly started a fight with a boxer over some teasing, which only set off Trisha's anxiety over the whole event. Thankfully, Leon was around to settle it before it became an actual fight… But he couldn’t stop the near fight the couple had when they got home.

But it didn’t happen again. Things calmed down, and went back to the uncomfortable normal. Sunday was spent recovering. Silently pretending they were both fine, with Trisha briefly seeing Reyna before she left only to scamper right back to Casey. She was getting more and more jumpy with every day. But she still didn’t want to be anywhere else but by his side.

There were some good moments on Sunday too. Quiet moments where they managed to enjoy each other's company, and things felt more normal. The kind of moments that let Trisha feel like they could really get through this.

Then Monday came round, and Casey actually had to go to work. Something that Lynette wanted from him. What, he didn’t know.

Which left Trisha alone. She hadn’t spent more than a few hours without him since they dealt with Dollhouse, aside from some times when she was ‘asleep’. Even then, he’d been in the same building. And this time she didn’t know what he was doing. It could be anything. He could be in danger and she couldn’t do anything.

It made her incredibly anxious, to the point she couldn’t actually do anything. She tried, turning on the TV to try watch something, before swapping to her laptop to do some work, before picking up a book to read. None of it kept her attention. Her panicked thoughts always caught her. Each one came with a worse scenario, all of the anxiety she’d been suppressing coming up to the surface.

What if he didn’t come back? What would she do?

In the end, the only thing she could vaguely do was clean. It was never something she’d found comfort in, but it was better than curling up into a ball of fear on their couch. Maybe it would make Casey happy too. Most of it was her own mess tidied- makeup strewn about their bathroom, clothes she’d considered wearing and forgotten to put away. But she wiped down the surfaces in the bathroom and kitchen too.

But there wasn’t enough to do, because Casey still kept the place practically spotless. So she ended up back in the Den, the door left wide open so she could see the main door, getting more and more anxious as she waited.

And she would’ve waited a terribly long time. The kind of time that really makes one sweat, constantly refreshing their awareness of time as fifteen minute increments pass like dough through wire mesh. Each labored minute spent in anticipation of something only extended the waiting time into the smallest portions of calculable passage. Seconds dripped on in the quiet, crashing against the pool of what was, their last echo being the ripples left behind to join the batch before and be swept away by the batch after.

Waiting was never worth it. Not this kind of waiting. Not the kind that let every possibility run through one’s head to crash over the ramparts and flood the keep with nightmares. This wasn’t right. No call, no break, no information. To embarrassed to go downstairs and ask, or to see if anyone knew anything. Why bother? He always comes home. And he had. It’d been a couple of hours even. Leon had left with Cass. Blowing off the steam of the night. It made sense, though he was far more pragmatic about it than Casey was feeling now.

The Halcyon office had been full of people Casey considered friends. Igor Rasmussen, Jada Cartwell, Davis Ferraro… Gin. His head was bolted in a single direction thanks to his knees. He was forced to stare forward, body being held tight and rigid as he didn’t want to move. Couldn’t, frankly. All he could possibly think about was wanting to trade. Trade it all for them to have another chance. He never could’ve expected this to have been the outcome, after all. He thought they’d wind up onside, with those who wanted to escape this cycle.

Lynette had used Project Eden’s research against them. Told them that if they wanted to continue into the future, changes would need to be made. They’d need to do more. They were smart people. Book people, just like the Portal Lab. Academic Adepts searching for the answers to ancient secrets and new world problems. But they were still Adepts, and other Supernaturals too. Aberrations abound. Everyone working toward returning Shimmer to the Eden it once was.

And working on ways to make Lynette immortal. Or ways to hex those who would threaten her. Or making new machines to torture the Adepts outside their circles. When he first saw the evidence, he assumed it was purely out of fear for their existing projects. That they maybe felt they wouldn’t be supported in the future if the architect of their designs was no longer helming the endeavor.

He had no way of knowing in that moment that she’d put them up to it almost a year ago. It was a slow, secretive conversion of purpose… And it totally aligned them both emotionally and ideologically to her whims.

Rather than allow their work to bear fruit, however, Lynette’s true plan was far more devious. In her radicalization of Project Eden, Lynette set up an intimate level of control over the group as a whole. Every string tug saw the entire group jumping at what she told them to do, and gathering them all in the Halcyon office had been the easiest step.

The harder job was convincing Leon and Casey that they were now a threat that needed to be eliminated if they wanted to see their own futures become reality. That if they didn’t go and stop Project Eden now, they’d be too late to prevent Lynette’s ascendence. The brothers found themselves mired in a very real trolley problem then… And Lynette once again got her way. The purpose was manyfold, and planned with such diligence that she impressed herself.

Force the pain upon her murderers, and embed the memory into them. Make sure they never forget the feeling of betrayal. Force Leon and Casey to kill friends and loved ones to ensure that their ultimate goals could still happen. Force them to destroy others for the sake of an ideal. Leave them with that for the rest of their lives, that the guilt and pain would fester.
But, the problem for Casey and Leon was very real. In truth, they were left with no other choice but to destroy Project Eden, and in doing so, kill all living members. Lynette purposefully gathered them in the tight, magically trapped facility, and directed her weapons to the fray.

And Leon could still live with himself. Lelou helped a great deal, but it was never going to be a spotless transition. Doctor Andy had only just recently made herself a massive help in Cass’ life. She was responsible for ensuring that they were all set up to deal with Cass’ sickness when it came, and her team as a whole had been pivotal in ensuring Leon had comfort in those first weeks after adjoining.

For Casey, there were people like Roger Wiers, Peter Maize, Valerie Cook and James Atkins; all people responsible for magical equipment that he never could’ve made solely on his own. Then, the impromptu teams responsible for the influx of supporting technology for Trisha! All headed up by…

He still tried to get her face out of his head. Every time, emotion welled up to the point that he found himself shouting and sobbing. He couldn’t see her face without seeing Trisha’s. Seeing them happy… Listening to her little voice playing on the other end of Trisha’s headphones. He was immediately transported to a time when they were children. Gin and Igor were arguing. They couldn’t have been more than ten year olds. Casey stepped between them, warding Igor off. He remembered Gin’s sweet disposition.

I wish you were my big brother!

She could’ve fought back. He didn’t just hesitate in that moment, he flat out paused. She had every opportunity for Jekyll and Hyde to manifest and pummel him into the ground. She didn’t… Tears filled her eyes, and all she did was raise her hands out to him. He should’ve stopped… He should’ve ended it there, and thrown the gun down. He should’ve run to her, and comforted her, even if that meant dying. Even if that meant she ripped his fucking head off: It would’ve been good. Better than what he did.

Better than murdering his friend Ginara in cold blood. Better than watching her body splinter open into a million chunks. Better than her soundless reaction. He didn’t have an Apparition to tell him everything was going to be okay. Things weren’t going to be okay.

The only consolation he had was that he could leave Trisha with the gifts that Gin had given her. The mini-generator making her bee habitats in the greenhouse was still online. The big manual had even been opened on a nearby laptop, as if they knew he’d be there to claim it. It all packed onto a dolly, and moved easily from place to place. They’d really thought of everything…

He’d cried so long he didn’t even think to change out of his dark jumpsuit. Even if he’d thought about it, he wouldn’t have changed. Didn’t feel like he deserved it, or anything. No food. No comfort. He made himself sick. And worse, there was another problem that needed to be taken care of now.
He didn’t know what else to do, after all. There weren’t a lot of options, and he couldn’t see the yellow brick road ahead. In his mind, what was coming next would be best for everyone involved.

And even now, the ring on his finger pulsed its warning. That there would be Hell to pay if he went through with what he was thinking… He crossed the roof silently, head twisting to look at the greenhouse structure before turning to look at the house from a distance. He could see through the dark into the main area, then past it into the dark hall. But he couldn’t see into the Den without magic. So, he stood there outside in a quiet standoff with the half-closed door, hoping that Trisha was just fucking asleep so he wouldn’t have to do this right now.

Unfortunately for him, Trisha wasn’t asleep. How could she sleep? She was struggling to sleep right now as things were, nevermind when he was out. For so long. She’d been waiting for so long.

Where she’d ended up perching meant she could see outside, even if he couldn’t see her. It wasn’t a good view, but she could see the shadowed figure approach thanks to the front being made of glass. She didn’t need to actually see his face to know it was Casey.

But why wasn’t he coming inside? Why was he just standing there? Had something happened? Was he worried he’d wake her up? No, that had never been a problem. Why was he hesitating.

It only made her more anxious, but she did her best to suppress it. She had to go back to how it had been- keeping it underneath the surface for both of their sake. He was alive. He was alive, that was what mattered.

Trisha slipped out of the Den, reaching out to turn on the hall light, and then the light of the main area as she reached it. She couldn’t handle moving in the dark right now… She needed everything on her side right now anxiety wise. She could see Casey more clearly now, her brow furrowing in concern even as raised a hand in a wave and tried to smile. She hesitated for a moment before moving towards the door, hoping he’d actually come inside before she actually reached it.

He didn’t. He stood stark still, one hand in a pocket while the other dangled at his side. His hair was terribly matted, clumped, and looked half-damp. She’d have recognized the jumpsuit quickly as what he always called “Workwear”. When she got close enough to actually open the door, he could see her face with terrible clarity. Every single worry line on it. She was actually worried about him. She still would be after he told her. Even after he said what he had to say. But, that was fine. She’d worry. Then she’d get over it. Because ultimately, she’d have to understand. She was ill, not utterly depraved, after all.

He turned away, then hard pivoted on the foot to turn back. Because he told her he’d never really leave her. He wasn’t going to. She was going to leave him. And he was going to make her.

Trisha’s breath caught in her throat as he turned away, then back again. Confusion joined the worry in her eyes. She was close enough now that she could see him completely. If he was dressed like that, it meant… There was a high chance he was sent to kill people. It wasn’t the first time it had happened. The aftermath of the last two times hadn’t been good, because she hadn’t known then she hadn’t been supportive enough. But this time was different. She would be.

But why wasn’t he coming inside?

Clamping down on the nerves wreaking havoc across her, making her feel like throwing up, she reached out to open the door.

“Casey? Are you going to come inside? It’s cold out there…” She said simply, not wanting to push about what had happened yet. He’d tell her. She had to trust that.

”Don’t be dumb, Trisha.” he said without any great deal of emotion. Just dead words into the air.
”You don’t want me in there. I don’t even want to hear it.”

His face was illuminated by the lights inside, leaving the expression of abject pain and horror clear as daylight. He almost cowered from the light, and was the whole reason he felt the impulse to turn away. Having nothing to do with shame, of course…

”I just wanted to tell you. We have the hives downstairs. Nobody’s left to take care of the machine. Decide where you want to keep it. Stay as long as you need to find another place to be.”

What? What? Trisha gripped the door handle tight, breathing quickening. Her body felt ice cold, and it wasn’t because of the temperature outside. What was he saying? The hives were downstairs… Why? That meant that- Oh no. Had he killed- Had he had to kill-

She trembled, her concern for him and whatever had happened only adding to the panic crashing into her. Because it was more than just that. He was talking about another place. For her. Why would she need another place? Was this it? The moment she’d always known would come, that she’d feared so much?

But she’d always thought it would be because of something she did. Maybe it was. Maybe he’d reflected, and realised she wasn’t worth doing all of this for. She wasn’t.

Even though she was shaking and struggling to breathe, she managed to speak without stammering.
“Are you breaking up with me?”

I said I don’t want to hear it.
His voice echoed across the roof as he became rather stern. He’d never say the words. That was part of the agreement, after all.

And he didn’t want to break up. But he knew if he told her what happened, things were over no matter what. They’d become friends. Gin truly held Trisha in high regard. The image of her arms outstretched to him for help hit him square in the face again, and in the lingering space was Trisha’s own horrified expression.

”Because it’s that! That, that… Face! Why!? Why, what makes you think I’m right!? Why the fuck do you think you can stick around when I’m… This? he vaguely waved his arms up and down his body.
”Fucking disgusting! Less than an animal! I’m fucking evil, Trisha! Do yourself a favor and just fucking run!”

He didn’t start sobbing, but within an instant he absolutely was crying. Tears streamed down, and his nose began to leak in equal parts.

“No! No, no! I’m not going anywhere. I’m not!” Trisha shook her head, a sliver of realisation dawning on her at the same time her panic escalated into a full attack. Each breath was a struggle, overwhelming panic crashing down on her. Her right grip on the door kept her upright even as her limbs grew weak.

He did want her to leave. He wanted rid of her… Because he thought he didn’t deserve her. But he did. He did! She didn’t care, she didn’t care what he did- because she knew he wasn’t evil. He didn’t kill people for no reason. He didn’t. She wasn’t going to let him do this. She wasn’t leaving. She’d never leave. Never, ever.

“You’re not evil, Casey! You’re not. I- I know you’re not, no matter what you’ve done! I’m not fucking running. Because I love you. I’m not going anywhere, I don’t care, you can’t just tell me to run and expect me to do it. Because I won’t. I won’t. I’m not leaving you.” She wanted him to see what she saw.

And she wouldn’t be the one to leave. Never. And even if he tried to break up with her, she’d still fight for it until he’d thrown her out. Because there wasn’t anything else after this.

”I’m not… Doing this with you. You don’t understand. You really don’t.”

He stepped forward once, then again.

I. Killed. The Light!

His face loomed down at her, staring with cold, dead eyes far past her head and onto the soul inside.

”You love something I’ll never be able to be. Because I’m not a man. I’m not an animal. I’m a weapon. Everything I get pointed at dies. And there’s no room for love in that. And there is no such thing as love for something like me. And if you weren’t so hurt all the time, you’d agree. I’m not even here. I haven’t been present in so long.”

What he said ignored all the good of the previous month. Every moment he did feel good and connected. And he’d done this before as well! Earlier, he’d managed to take it. But, they weren’t as close… They weren’t-

”I… See her face. And then its gone! Trisha! It’s fucking gone! She’s dead! Dead, and I fucking killed her because I had to! Because she would’ve… She couldn’t…”

Maybe she even knew. They’d never hidden talks from her. Figured she’d be there with them in the end. Poor Gin. Sweet Gin. Caught in the middle of something she had no reason to be… Because Lynette wanted her cake, and to eat it too.

”She’s your… She loved you. You don’t even get it! You wouldn’t even let her fucking hug you! What, some fucking computer game… She loved it! Any time she could spend with you… It’s gone… Fucking gone! he turned away again, hands collapsing atop his head in anguish.

Even if she’d guessed, hearing it was another thing. Hearing Casey so destroyed by it. And he thought he was evil. A weapon. A weapon wouldn’t care! They’d enjoy it, they’d move onto the next- But he didn’t see that. And she didn’t know how to make him see that. How the fuck could she comfort him while he was trying to push her out of his life?!

“Then maybe I’m evil too! Because I didn’t let her hug me! I was a shit friend! And I’m less fucking upset than you are.” She was upset. It was horrible. She liked Gin, she expected Gin to still be there… But she was being torn apart by so many emotions at the moment. So much panic and anguish.

“You don’t get to decide my feelings, Casey! I love you. I love you even if you killed her. And I’m going to keep loving you. Even if you break up with me. Even when I’m miserable and have no fucking hope left- Because you’re not a weapon. I don’t care if you think you are. You’re not.” She took a deep, heaving breath.

“I can’t bring her back. I can’t even comfort you, because you won’t let me! But I’m not leaving.” She wanted to beg him to stay. To break down and panic and clutch at him in the hope he’d take pity. That’d come. She didn’t think she could last much longer. But for now there was anger there too, as much as there was panic.

“You can think whatever the fuck you want, but you can’t decide my feelings. And you can’t change the past month! You can’t erase my feelings.

”You lie, you lie, you lie so much you don’t even realize when you’re doing it! You do it to yourself, you do it to everyone else. You sit you say you can do it, you can be fine, but we’re both fucking liars! Don’t worry, I’m guilty too! Lying to everyone, that I can be what they need… She reached out to me like I was gonna help her, Trisha! You can’t even fucking imagine that! What the fuck went through her mind!? She loved me! She loved us! Together! There’s not even enough of her to bury and you want me to worry about how the fuck you feel about things!?”

This was the crux of it all. How could he ever ask her for comfort when this sort of stuff was what occupied her mind? Casey felt that this was a justifiable moment for him to show her just what he meant.

”We’re not fucking strong enough for this! Neither of us! You’re fucked, I’m fucked- I told you, take all the time you need. But, I’m not going back in that fucking house. I’m not getting your hopes up. You’ll be lucky I don’t kill myself by the end of the month.”

His left hand twisted to his right and tried to peel the ring off his finger. In the same instant, a surge of electricity stronger than anything he’d felt in a long time hit him like a sack of bricks, driving him to his knees with a yelp.

Trisha didn’t know what to do. What could she say, when he didn’t care about how she felt. Did he even care about her anymore? Had that been enough to ruin everything? She wanted to scream at him, she wanted to beg, she wanted to comfort him. Even as he got hurt trying to take his engagement ring off.

“You said you wouldn’t leave me. You promised. And I really fucking believed it.” Her voice was quieter, choked up by panicked gasps and sobs. He was never going to see. It was only him. There was nothing after this for her. She knew. She’d been with enough people to know when it was right. What would be the point now? To just go back to her miserable world, withering away in a room in her sister’s house? She’d had nothing left. Nobody.

She couldn’t bear the thought of him leaving. And she couldn’t bear the thought of him dying either. Leaving her alone one way or the other.

“Then just-” kill me too. She couldn’t say that. Because until he was out of her sight there was hope, no matter how slim, or how much it hurt. But there wouldn’t be if she said something like that.
“You won’t fucking care if I rot away up here.”

She’s nuts. She’s crazier than I am. What is this shit?

Casey’s mind wandered idly through the pain as his hand twisted around the ring to try and give it another yank. This time, rather than a yelp, it elicited a whole scream in pain as the inside of the ring began to twist and bite into the flesh and knuckle of Casey’s finger like a thumbcuff. That, of course, allows the copper diodes a better passage to deliver the maximum voltage. Now he was unavoidably on his knees in front of Trisha, head pressed to the brick at the front stoop.

”What… The fuck do you want from me? Are you sick? You… Want to hear? About all the awful things? Then sit there and tell me that you won’t look at me any differently than you did the night you met me!? The night I was okay, and it wasn’t this!? You can’t possibly be fucking serious Trisha, because if you’re fucking serious, there’s no fuckin’ turning that off! And I don’t think we can fucking do it! Not right now!”

He looked up at her, and tried to get up… But the ring was fully active now, and it had all the information it needed to put him in lockdown for his behavior. He’d agreed to this, and the only way he was going to be rid of it was to disenchant it.
But that would open a whole different can of worms if he even tried. At least the pain was something to focus on that made him more infuriated than dealing with what Trisha was saying.

”You are sick. If you think I’m worth your time. Like I’m not here to just make your life worse. Do you realize what being with me curses you to? What you’re fucking doomed for? How many times can we fucking do this-” he was going to continue but the ring hit him hard enough that he curled up like a cooked prawn and let out another scream of anguish.

Trisha dropped to her knees too, unable to stay standing as the panic attack fully clutched her. Her body kept the door open, and she leaned towards Casey even as she sobbed and struggled to breath. She wanted to help him, she wanted him to not be hurt like this- but she couldn’t. Her hands trembled in front of him, outstretched without touching him.

“I told you I was fucked up. I told you. I want to be with you! I don’t care what that curses me to. Because it hasn’t been a curse to me. I was miserable. I had no one and no hope. Nothing gave it to me until you… And I can’t go back to that. No matter how stupid you think it is, compared to everything you’ve dealt with- There’s no one else for me.”

Her hands fell to the ground, as she curled forward with heaving breaths. Maybe it wouldn’t matter. Maybe she’d panic herself to death here.

“I want you. All of you, good and bad. I’ll sit through it all. I will. I can do it. Just don’t… Don’t leave me.”

The ring wouldn’t let him speak now. Wouldn’t let him say anything that wasn’t what it thought was the truth. Real truth, reading directly from Casey’s own White Lux. No hiding it. His muscles spasmed without direction as arms crawled him closer. He was in the doorway now, comfort only coming in the resolution that he’d speak the God honest truth.

Through ragged breaths, he began to crack up.

”What… World do I d-deserve… Anything? For what I’ve done? I should… Just be dead too. Or, p-put on display. Pluck my eyes out. My tongue. Let them grow back and do it again. For this…”

He didn’t know how to forgive himself, clearly. How could he ever accept the forgiveness of others if not by accepting it within first?

”I… You can’t fucking comfort this. And that’s always going to make you feel worthless. You can’t fucking live with that.” he said through tears at her feet, the ring chomping back down again.

“But I can.” Trisha choked out, trying her best to sound vaguely strong. Near impossible panicking like she was. But it wasn’t like he was doing any better.

“I’ve always been- felt worthless. But I’ve never felt like I might be worth something until you. Y-You’re talking like that’ll make me feel worse than I already feel! But I won’t. And I’ll keep trying. Maybe one day I will help. Like you’ve helped me… Because you deserve me. Even if we’re both fucked up. I know you do, you deserve to live, you deserve so much- and I’ll make you believe it.”

She was speaking like she thought they’d still be together, even though everything was telling her that wouldn’t be the case.

“I hate myself. I’ve lived with it my whole life. But I was starting to not because of you. I can live with it, I will live with it. But with you maybe it’ll get better.”

His entire mind railed in the moment as he couldn’t possibly fathom how she was feeling like this in response to the information.

”If… I waited until the early morning for Cass to come home. And I went down there. And I fucking killed her with my own hands? Would you be this persistent? What if I’d just beaten Reyna to death in Leon’s apartment the other day after hearing how worried she was about you!? What if I went along with every little invasive thought that popped into my head on a daily basis!? Would you still try to rationalize it with me!?”

His whole face was twisted with pain, both physical and mental, as he looked up at her and tried to understand what she felt so that he could actually try feeling something that wasn’t this overwhelming sense of self hatred.

”You’re not inside my head! And I don’t know how to help you understand that! That… That I love you, and… I don’t fucking want this for you! So why are you so fucking persistant!? Why don’t you fucking… Care? I don’t fucking understand!”

“I do care! I care about you. I care that you hate yourself because you did something that you had to. What evil weapon would be sobbing on the doorstep trying to push away his fiance because he thinks she deserves better?! I care, but I care more about how it’s destroying you!”

Even through her tears and crippling panic she managed to look down at him. Her eyes were filled with desperation and panic, but also determination. Even as each breath felt like she was swallowing glass, and her hands and feet began to feel numb.

“And you haven’t. You haven’t killed Cass or Reyna. You don’t go along with every invasive thought. Thinking something doesn’t make it real! You’re talking about something I know you’ll never do! Because you haven’t yet… But you believe that thinking it makes you evil. I think it makes you strong because you resist it. You struggle through it.” Her hands clenched into fists painfully, nails digging into her palm in an attempt to feel enough pain to bolster herself through this. But she could barely feel it.

“You’ll tell me that I don’t know, but I don’t. I know you won’t. And I know I want this for me. I want the man who loves me and makes everything better for me, even when it’s difficult! Even right now I still want that!”

She wanted it, but he wasn’t really giving that to her. He just couldn’t. Not at the moment, at least. But the pain in his finger was starting to sear his brain as electricity shot across him with every contrary thought that crossed his mind. It was getting exhausting, to the point that he knew he was going to pass out soon. Either he’d end this, or the damn ring would…

A Richoux wouldn’t back down just because things are hard. You beat the problem down until it’s flat.
There’s no shame in standing back. A man knows when to admit defeat should it spare the troops. That is a quality of leadership, Caseau.

He curled up tighter, half-consciously dragging himself further into the house while crowding around Trisha’s feet. He didn’t say anything this time… Just started to sob completely, the cold air still blowing in. He didn’t want to deny the comfort, but couldn’t figure out how to feel besides undeserving. Unable to accept.

”She w-was always Lynette’s… F-fa-favorite… God… I’m… So fucking empty… She di-di-did this… And I… God damn me… Trisha!? Wh-h-how… Why!? Why the fuck is it l-l-like-” he wound up caught in a wave of emotion, carried off again.

Trisha dropped down, curling forward and over him. Her face pressed into his back, constant tears soaking into his jumpsuit. She didn’t actually hug him, because she was terrified he’d push her away again. That he’d still leave. She wasn’t going to stop being scared of that… Not for hours, probably.

“I- I don’t know, Casey. I don’t know.” How could she know, when he hadn’t even finished what he was saying? But even if he did, she probably wouldn’t.
“I’m sorry. I’m so sorry that s-she keeps torturing you like this. Y-You’re not the one that deserves to feel like this. You’re not.”

”I am! I am, I do, she fucking hates me! All that effort, Leon gets to walk with a clear conscience because he’s got this fucked up sense of justice, and I get to be the one who lives with Gin’s-” he couldn’t finish the sentence, opening back up into a mournful wail as he started to pound the ground with his fist next to Trisha.

”-Her… Little face! She fucking still loved me! In that moment, she saw my face and she didn’t run! She didn’t cry, she didn’t do anything, because she fucking knew! And… How am I supposed to deal with that!? What the fuck!? Why!? She… Could’ve fucking run! And I could’ve stopped! I could’ve, but I didn’t, because for a split second there was a world where she… Defended Lynette… Even though she put her there herself! It’s her fault, and I suffer!” he shouted loudly.

“It is- It’s her fault. N- None of this would happen if it wasn’t for Lynette. B-Because people want to defend her- And she could t-tell them not too. But she doesn’t! Instead she makes people suffer… She’s the evil one, Casey. And s-she’s trying to destroy you, b-because she can’t let go and-” She took in a heaving breath, whole body shaking. He knew, he knew Lynette was the source of it all, but he still hated himself, didn’t he? Of course he couldn’t deal with it… He’d had to do something horrible.

“I wish I could take it away from you. I know I can’t! B- But- If- If- She still loved you… If she knew… Maybe she wouldn’t blame you…”

She knew. She knew. She knew. The laptop. The screens covering the machine.

There were other things too. Like how oddly quiet it was. How little they really fought back. Some got brazen, maybe they panicked. Maybe the plan had always been to let the brothers do what “had to be done.” Like they were building a pyramid, but didn’t get done in time, so they were just buried in limestone bluffs with the old king. Maybe it was possible she’d even told them, and that they all just… Understood. That they said yes to Lynette, and left it all at that.

And she knew why they’d do it. Gin was smart. She was odd, and she never worked the way people expected her to, but that’s always how geniuses were. And she was a genius through and through. Whatever her reasoning was, she welcomed the end with open arms. And all he could think of now was a world where he dropped the gun, and held her. Just cried then and there. Refused to play the game any further, and let her into his life. Saved her…

”God… I… Fuck! Trisha… I fucking-”

He couldn’t fathom putting a whole sentence together, letting his voice trail back off into more sobbing as the breakdown took its course. It was wholly unclear whether or not he’d make it out of this one, but at least for the moment he wasn’t telling her that she’d be leaving.

Obviously, Casey didn’t ever want that to begin with. But, even now, he couldn’t imagine a world where she didn’t look at him like he saw himself. Like scum on top of a puddle in the city.

Trisha shuffled forward a bit, finally hugging him as best as she could. Her arms wrapped around him tightly, trying to offer some kind of physical comfort even when her whole body was in the throes of a panic attack. She was trying to breathe deeper, trying to get herself through it while she helped him get through this, but she just couldn’t.

All she could do was hold him with trembling arms, whispering out attempted comfort and condolences.
“I’m sorry… I’m here… You’re not- it’s not your fault…”



Thankfully, a pattern had long ago revealed itself between the two of them. As with the last conflict, it was only a matter of time before things cooled back down enough that they could be handled properly. Enough, at least, that there was time to start it back up in earnest. He’d long searched for positions that would prevent Trisha from clinging to him, and found that there were no lengths she wouldn’t go to in order to make him feel like she was a new fleshy weighted blanket.

At least he’d come inside completely.

”Listen-” he spoke ominously after having been relatively silent the last fifteen minutes.
”-I’m… We’re not… Nobody’s leaving anyone. Alright? But, I… Can’t live with the dancing. The compulsion to baby you, or protect your feelings, needs to go. Especially if you want me to feel like you… Really don’t think I’m a monster. Because if you’re so sensitive about shit like what I’m doing or how I’m feeling, how can I ever believe you’re not thinking about how I am and what I’m like all the time?”

Twisting in her arms slightly, he made motions that forced her to slide off of him.

”And I’m… Never gonna be honest in turn. Because I’m constantly trying to spare your feelings, when clearly you don’t want them spared. You’re sick. I’m sick. We’re both honest… So, I honestly need to be alone. I needed to be alone last week, and I made a bad judgement call. One I’m not gonna make again.” he spoke sternly, looking down at her from puffy red eyes.

“I told you…” She whispered, doing her best to appear as if she’d even vaguely calmed down in the past fifteen minutes. She hadn’t. She was still panicking. Because how could she really believe that he wasn’t going to leave when he’d just tried to. How could she stop having a panic attack when she still felt like it was going to happen.

She also needed to prove that she could handle it.

“Last week. I s-said I can’t get better if you- pander to my anxiety. I wanted you to tell me how you felt. I didn’t want to spend a week worrying about when you’d snap.” She wasn’t trying to start an argument, but trying to show that this was what she’d tried to say when they first argued. She didn’t want to be apart from him. But she didn’t want him to constantly prioritise her over himself. Because they were together.

Even if now was the worst time for him to decide that he needed that alone time.

“I know I’m sensitive, b-but I’m trying not to be. I can’t get better if you do always spare my feelings, s-so… I guess… I’m just agreeing. We’re together, which means we both support each other. Y- You don’t just support me. S-so if you need to be alone, you need to be alone… You just need to tell me… And I need to deal with my feelings and get better.”

Casey just closed his eyes in return, like what she said had been terribly painful for him to hear. In reality, it was more annoyance aversion. The idea that she couldn’t just say okay, or even remotely try to make it seem like she was stronger in the moment. Everything inside just came back out onto the plate. Ironically, something he’d asked for…

”I just… Have a lot of things on my mind. A lot of things that I don’t know how to deal with. But, I know that you doing your best to placate my feelings isn’t gonna help me. This all hurts. And I need to live in it, or die. And nothing’s killed me yet, so…”

He turned his body fully, moving to the bathroom and getting a towel, then upstairs to their room to shuffle around for some basic home clothes before coming back down.

”I… Wish nothing more than for there to be something you can do. Something that changes how I’m feeling. But life isn’t like that all the time. I’m sorry.” he spoke to her calmly and quietly before leaning down and planting a kiss on her head.
”I’ll be right downstairs. No further.”

“Alright.” Trisha just nodded simply. What else could she say now? Be honest about how anxious it made her feel, even if she still wanted him to go get the time he needed? He’d just feel like she was proving his point that she couldn’t handle it. It would be selfish, in the hope it would make her feel a little bit better.

She could handle however long it would be, even if she kept feeling like this. Like he was leaving. She’d been more prepared last week. Because she really was beginning to believe he wouldn’t leave by choice. Then he tried to make her leave. She couldn’t tell him, but it had shattered the confidence she’d started to build. She’d just have to try build it again.

“I hope you manage to feel a little bit better. Just take all the time you need.”

Though they were meant to be going away on Friday… It would be fine. If he still needed to be alone then, he could go camping near wherever they were staying, and she’d just… Live with it.

He wasn’t sure what he expected, but it wasn’t utter submission. He thought about keeping it in, but if they were being honest-

”It’s… Confusing how gutting this is. You just rolling over like this. You’d think I’d just want you to deal with it, but now that you’re trying, I just… Know it’s all hollow.

He turned then, letting greyness fill the void between the both of them as he walked toward the door and out. Away. Like he said he’d never do. But all promises could be broken. He still needed the time if anything was going to get done. He had to force himself again. To decide what he wanted. If he had to go back and maintain the course, or if he meant how he felt about her leaving. About not thinking that she’d deal with this. And he looked out toward the edge of the roof, thinking about how nice it would-

His head turned back to Trisha one last time, then he made way for the door, letting it slam closed behind him, and leaving Trisha to fend for herself in that dark night.

Trisha waited until he was out of sight, before turning around and dragging herself back into the Den. At least all the pillows and blankets were still there, so all she had to do was crawl onto the couch and curl up. She’d get through it… Even if she didn’t believe he’d actually come back.


Tuesday 19th December. The Temple.

The dark halls of the bunker structure built under the grounds of the Temple of Charming and Graceful Individuals yawned ahead of Casey as dead eyes stared forward. His feet clicked against the stone floors, and each step felt heavier than the last as he forced himself onward. Nobody was meant to be here today… Lynette was upstate, doing some last minute preparations with Elise. With Project Eden gone, this place was mostly empty. Devoid of life and energy, he could sense the path that it took on a constant basis. The fact that it was hiding now meant it knew there was a Tiger on the prowl, and that it had to avoid being seen or it would be at risk.

Just like the others. Just like so many others. But, he needed to see it. He needed to know it was there, and to hear it… And to ask it for what it gave others. What they couldn’t comprehend or understand. Twisting, weaving from hall to hall, Casey was almost at a running heat by the time he made it to the end of the Baub wing, and smack into a sheer face wall.
But he knew it couldn’t be a wall, and quickly found the electrical signal attached to the switch. Pulling it, the wall swung open into a staircase that brought him further into the Earth. Damp blackness. Deep, dark, then… Candles. Everburning candles lighting the way forward and down a spiral that seemed to go on forever.

Until it was there. Really, really there in all the horror Casey couldn’t have imagined. Pinned to a stone throne via swords through the hands, knees and chest, and bound in time’s unrelenting grip just like the body of Alizee Altiere, was the body of Maxwell Alexander Richoux IV. Gravity Richoux. Casey stared now at the face of his father for the first time in many years. He’d never forgotten it, but now it felt like he could reach out and touch him. He couldn’t… The time barrier would’ve ripped him apart if he tried.

But he could feel his life crumbling. He wanted to hug his Father. He wanted to hear that he’d done a good job, and that all the fighting wasn’t for nothing. That all he was doing now would be worth it later. He needed love. He needed confidence from someone who he sought it from, not who would’ve given it to him no matter what. He needed to be better in that space for her, and for himself.
And at the feet of his Father’s corpse, he wept. And he prayed and begged for forgiveness.

And in the darkness, now that nobody else was around? Absolution heard his cries. And through his tears, he could feel his Emotional Field being prodded. It was the first time the creature had ever bothered to search this one, finding its familiarity suddenly tantalizing. It found itself mournful in return.

”D-dad… Daddy… he practically regressed to childhood. To the feeling of comfort which came often after the proverbial whip. The phantom hand on his back brought a chill down his spine. The world faded in turn, until only he and the presence remained.

And he turned to find a boy. And that boy looked like him. And he was that boy, staring back at himself. And one smiled while the other’s face twisted in sadness.

”Aw, c’mon, Casey… You know I hate seeing you like this.”
”Likewise…”

Max looked back behind Casey, at the corpse he’d left long ago.

”You’re alive, Kid. And she’s great! You gonna go fuck all that up?”
”She doesn’t know what she wants.”
”You think you want one that does? That knows what she wants? Look at me!”

Casey’s sadness bubbled back up into rage. A rage that Max could feel, and Absolution did its best to quell in turn

”Ancients above, Casey… You’re burning. Don’t let this be us. Don’t leave it all behind because it hurts.”
”Did she really make you…?”

There was a pause. It did its best to decipher its own existence before shaking its head.
”I was tricked. Not forced. Nobody can force you to do anything, Casey. But, you can be tricked.”

And he wept again, as he felt the truth in those words crash against him. That he, just like his father, was easily manipulated.
”It makes a good soldier out of you. It would’ve done the same to me… I knew that I had to get away from that life. And ran smack dab into your Mother…”

”I… Miss you so much…”
”Honor the life you’ve been given… And be ABSOLVED


Wednesday 20th December. Home.


It had been a difficult two days for Trisha. It took long enough for her to stop panicking after Casey left, the attack lingering long into the morning. The only small blessing was it exhausted her enough that she fell asleep for a few fitful hours.

She hadn’t slept since. It was a struggle to tear herself from the couch after that nap… But she didn’t know when Casey would come back. If he found her there, still in such a bad state, it would all just come crashing down again.

If he even comes back.

So she worked. It was the easiest thing for her to do when still so on edge and trying not to fall off the cliff back into a depressive stupor. She’d forced herself to do it so often. Even after fighting the Stygian Snake, when every night was filled with nightmares, she’d still spent every waking hour studying.

It was a bit harder to get into it when the only work she had right now was related to the honey business. Something she knew she wouldn’t be able to keep up without Casey in her life. But after a few hours of trying and failing, she managed to actually get into coding the website she’d been putting off starting for weeks.

Once she got into it, it was easy to lose herself in it. It didn’t stop her from thinking and worrying, but at least it was a distraction. Something to do on autopilot, something filling up her mind enough to stop her having more breakdowns. Even if she forgot to eat, something she’d planned to force herself to do just to pretend to be coping.

A whole day, and then night, and then into the next day- she worked on the website, with the only break being the occasional toilet trip or when she got so thirsty she couldn’t ignore it. At least she was making good progress here. Even if Casey didn’t come back, or he came back and had decided he wanted her to leave again… She’d have this. It didn’t make her feel much better. But it was a tiny success.

She could even use it to prove to Casey that she’d been fine. Even if a perfectly fine Trisha wouldn’t need to distract herself for every single hour… Would’ve been able to enjoy herself, even. But she was coping. Not having a panic attack. Doing something. It was good enough.

Casey didn’t come home with any great fanfare for Trisha to hear. Nor were there cheers or bright lights that heralded the arrival in turn. He’d spent the morning getting everything he needed to come back here. To resolve this situation once and for all, with the strength of something he never thought he’d get back. It’d all been inside him, of course. All in his mind. He knew that all the Apparition did was its best. But, it’d seen him. And these were the memories it left him with. And the feeling that lingered was something new that he’d not felt in a lowpoint like this.

He liked to think that it wasn’t the same as going to get help from some Pink Adept. That the Apparition only did what it said on the box… He’d never know for sure. His hair was pulled back away from his face, and he was dressed in clothing that he hadn’t taken when he left. And in tow, he had a laptop, which he gingerly turned over in his hands as he walked down the hall and stood in the threshold of the doorway to the den. His face was full of some emotion easily misinterpreted as anxiety.

Though there’d been no fanfare, Trisha had heard the door when it opened. There was a strange conflict of both relief and anxiety in response, leading to her not immediately leaving her spot. She was relieved he’d come home… But what if it was just to tell her he still thought she should leave? What if they just argued again, and it kept cycling around.

Her worrying gave him plenty of time to get down the hall. She pushed her laptop away, stretching up from the awful hunched over position she’d been working in. She turned on the spot to face Casey.

He didn’t look cold like he had before. Or angry. Anxious, maybe? Over what? What he had to say? What she’d say? But it wasn’t the worst expression, it probably wasn’t bad, he probably wasn’t going to make her leave-

“Welcome home.” She said quietly, voice slightly hoarse from lack of use over the last two days.
“How are you feeling?”

Casey shrugged with a nod as a primary response. Mostly because he’d expected her here, but also to at least acknowledge her question rather than just ignoring it.

”A way I don’t know how to describe.” he admitted simply, taking a step forward before letting his knees fall onto the couch. He folded his legs under his body, swinging them over the other side of the lounger.

”Am I interrupting anything?” he asked with quiet observation. He needed to, after all.
”If not, I’d… Like to talk. And to apologize.”

“You’re not.” Trisha shook her head, eyes widening slightly. She reached out to close her laptop lid. Something done to fill the time couldn’t really be interrupted, even if it was useful in the end. She hadn’t been in the middle of anything complicated anyway.

She was doing her best to appear calm. The dark bags under her eyes couldn’t be hidden, but at least she didn’t look like someone who’d been crying recently… Because she hadn’t since she managed to pull herself out of her panic attack. Since then, she’d managed to distract herself with work each time she felt like she might.

That he wanted to talk made her nervous. But he also wanted to apologise… So he probably didn’t want to talk about breaking up, right?

“I was just working on my website… But I wasn’t in the middle of anything with it. Just tidying things up. So… We can talk.”

He nodded, slowly reaching for her hands. On his own, his ring still sat, clean as it had been, meaning not only did he still feel positive about the relationship, but he had to get to a point where the ring knew he’d take it off and put it back on in order to be cleaned. His thumb ran across the back of her hand as he cleared his throat.

”To start, I wanna say: The best parts of me chose you. So, if the best me is the one that wants you, then it’s you or bust. That being said, I… I really need you to tell me whether or not you’ve done any thinking about where we left off. Because that’s all I’ve done. And I’ll be honest, I wasn’t alone the whole time. People came, and they asked questions, and so did I. And I really… Consulted anyone I could. But, I realized you… Probably didn’t have anyone you felt like you could go to.” he frowned.

Trisha nodded. She didn’t. She knew in a way that was her fault… Because she didn’t like opening up to people. And she really didn’t know who she could go to that would actually help. Cass, maybe… But she was too involved. It would make things more difficult.

“I’ve been thinking. Alone. I don’t know how I’d be able to not think… I’d need to cut my brain out, I think.” Maybe a bit morbid all things considering, but her thoughts never really turned off. Even when she was trying to code as a distraction. She still thought about it over and over again… It just gave her something to do to stop herself spiralling completely. To pretend she was going to be fine even though she struggled to believe that.

She hadn’t come to any resolution, like it seemed that Casey might have. Because she didn’t know what kind of Casey would be coming back. How could she prepare? Or even think of solutions when he said she couldn’t help him? She’d thought about solutions, had thoughts she wished she hadn’t had, and come back to the same place again.

“Cass did message me. But I didn’t talk to her… She’s dating Leon, after all.” She bit her lip. She wasn’t sure what the point was here. She could only guess.
“Is that… Part of what you want to talk about?”

Casey shook his head in turn.
”N-no, no… I… Just wanted to know what it was you thought. Honestly, without us sparing one another. I’m not looking for a fight, I don’t want to wind you up. I just… Am genuinely curious about what your takeaway from all this is.”

He needed to know that she wasn't totally blind to his faults. But, even as he said what he was saying, he realized he was trying to spare her, and bit his cheek before speaking quickly in response.

”I wanna know if you… Can understand where I was coming from. Not in some sadistic way, just, a part of what I thought about was a way to try and explain to you how I perceive myself, and why I think that the feelings I have make more than just a little sense.” he admitted wholly, realizing that it could just as easily sound like he was just trying to explain things away completely.

He knew he still had to accept responsibility for his actions. The only difference now was that at least he could do it proactively.

Trisha dipped her head, staring at her lap rather than him as she tried to decide how to respond. She had thought about it. She’d thought about a lot. But she was still parsing through it, trying to figure out how she really felt. And she had to fight the urge to give the answer she thought he wanted.

“A bit. I understand why you’d struggle to feel good about yourself after what you did, and why you’d worry about being with me.” She nibbled on her lip. She was still nervous. Because his feelings included the feeling that she should leave, right?
“I don’t think that means I needed to leave. I struggle with that even if I can understand a little bit of why. But- But it’s like you made the decision for us. I understand why you thought you had to. Because you feel like you’re dragging me down into some horrible life… But it also feels like you don’t trust me because of it. I-”

She frowned, going beyond just answering the question. But she should just try and say it, shouldn’t she?

“I thought about it a lot. You feel like you’re evil because you’ve done horrible things. You think I deserve better. I understand. But I don’t think you’ve tried to understand me. Not my anxiety. That I want to be the strong one when I have to be. I don’t want someone who’ll just protect me while asking nothing of me. And it makes me feel- feel like you think I’m just something that’ll easily break. I’m not.”

Nodding, Casey let his head fall slightly. She wasn’t wrong in her assessment; that it was hard for him to put himself in a place of empathy for her when he’d made his world out to be such a vastly different place.

”I’m a little hurt you don’t think I’ve tried. I did. I was. Still am, when it turns out neither of us are terribly strong. Just brave, both of us. We want the same thing. To be the backbone the other is missing. And we can still be that and both come to the understanding that we’ve got a lot of work to do. We both break easy. Lots of cracks and chunks missing as is.”

He took a deep breath, moving his face to look back at her.

”But, you love me. And I love you. And you were right before, when you said that was real. It’s not something I could ever undermine on purpose. I knew Gin her whole life. I was four years old when she was born. We were at the hospital there. I held her. Mel taught me how to do up a diaper for a girl, so that I’d be able to help Mom out when Mia was born… It was Gin! And I… Just felt like, if you were in my shoes? You’d hate me. On no other planet would I expect you to accept me knowing I can do that. How could you ever feel safe?” he questioned, clarifying his feelings as best he could.

Trisha furrowed her brow, mulling over how to explain how she felt.

“I… Probably would have those feelings if I was you. Because I already dislike myself for less, but… I do accept you, even knowing you could. And you’re right, that part of that’s probably because I’m sick too. But I can also see the whole picture. I can see everything you’ve done for me, why you felt you had to do that, and how horrendous it made you feel. I didn’t mean to invalidate how you felt then… But I do feel safe with you. Some of it is because of what else I see, some of it’s a gut feeling.”

She bit her lip, still not quite looking at him.
“It’s like… How I view myself. Maybe it’s not a fair comparison, because the reason probably just seem silly to you now. But you can see everything beyond that while I focus on that one thing. It’s the same for me towards you.”

She was able to talk about it like that because she wasn’t quite stuck in the mire of self hatred. Lingering panic and anguish, but blaming herself entirely for what happened was a stretch even for her. She knew he hadn’t wanted her to leave because of her... Not entirely.

“I don’t think it was right. I don’t think she deserved to die, or anything like that- but I also don’t think you wanted to kill her. At least, that’s how it looks to me.”

He closed his eyes slightly, nodding as she spoke. He knew she understood what it was like to not feel good enough. But-

”If we’re both sick, how do we have a life where we invite happiness in?”

Pausing for a moment verbally, he immediately shook his head in response.

”No, no, that’s… We’re… Both forgiven. Absolved. I… Lynette’s out of town. I went to see my Father. Where she really keeps him. And he was there, and I met with… With the Apparition. I asked questions I didn’t have the chance to ask before.” he admitted calmly.

”He knows. He says that… Jekyll communed with him. That there’s a high chance she really did know. That’s-”

He turned backward, pulling the laptop out.

”-why she had this open. To the first page of the instruction manual for the whole hive-world diorama machine. Page one. Not fifteen, not five hundred… One.

He opened the laptop, and the PDF was sitting on the desktop in plain view. It didn’t even lock when it’d been closed, meaning whoever used the laptop was either a psycho, or had made some changes before leaving it where it was.

”I can only hope that he’s right. That she, and the others who seemed ready to die, really did know. And came to peace with it. Because ending all this crap will be that much better.”

Trisha shuffled a bit closer to look at the laptop screen, before finally properly looking up at him.

“I hope so too. It still wouldn’t make it fair… But at least they would’ve had peace. Not many people get to do that.” She said quietly.

She paused for a moment, hesitantly shuffling a bit closer again. She wasn’t sure if she could bring it back to them after he’d said that. But she had to, didn’t she. Even if they’d been absolved as he said, they still had to resolve everything between them. At least, figure out where to go. Because she wanted to try rather than pretend to be fine.

Even if it was difficult.

“It will be better when it’s all ended… But until then, we’ll need to keep struggling for our peace. And we’re going to… Try aren’t we? Really try. I-” She bit her lip.
“I don’t want to go back to how it was before… When we were pretending everything was fine, that is. Not before when everything was good, that was fine. Even if we’re forgiven that doesn’t mean we can just not do anything. I- I want to talk about it. I really want to try and be honest about it, even though that still terrifies me.”

Shaking his head in response, Casey tried to find the words to use when it came to the feeling of trying again.

”I’m scared. I don’t know how the fuck I’m supposed to face your friends after the other day, never mind now. Knowing how it looks… I’m fucking ashamed. I’m still ashamed here and now, whether I understand that I’m forgiven or not. You… Know how you feel about being strong and all that? I’ve got the same feeling. And I’ve been incredibly weak this month. It’s shame. And I don’t know how to come back from that, or expect anyone to trust that I ever could. Because not everyone forgives.” he admitted strongly, shaking his head with his words.

“I can’t- Obviously I can’t get rid of your shame, even if I want to. Saying you don’t have to be strong doesn’t help, because it wouldn’t help me, so…” She frowned, carefully reaching out for his hands.

“I’m scared too. I’m always scared about what people will think… So I understand that it’s going to be hard if people don’t trust you like that. But I do and- and I’ll be here with you. Even if I’m weak too, and I can’t fully support you like I want to. We’ll work through it together as much as we can… That’s what I want… Even if it’s slow. I just-” She bit her lip.
“I don’t know. Saying nice words doesn’t help, does it? B-But if we don’t try, what else can we do?”

Casey nodded his head. It was clear in his face that he agreed.

”That’s what I really wanted to come into this with. That, y’know, whatever you want to try, we will. You did what I asked, and so far it hasn’t worked. All I can do is try my hardest. For you. And for us. And, y’know, stick it to ‘em. When we look back, we can say it’s something we worked out long ago.”

He hoped. There was no direct guarantee, but he knew there probably wasn’t anyone else he was even close to being willing to try with.

”I don’t know what to do to make it better either. Nothing else to do besides, I guess… Asking for things as bluntly as I can.”

He paused, mustering his courage.

”For right now, I feel like I can’t ask anything. Because I took our trust and I killed it in a fit of rage. So, frankly, I’m at your mercy. In my opinion. he admitted as best he could hope to at the moment.

Trisha frowned, looking a little sad. She didn’t want him to feel like he was at her mercy… But she understood. And she should be honest in turn. Because she really wanted to try as hard as she could.

In a way, it was showing that she still did trust him… Because she was still opening up.

“I’m not going to lie… I am going to struggle to believe that you won’t leave me. I was beginning to really trust it… but it was fragile.” She hung her head slightly. Because it meant she’d taken steps backwards. She couldn’t entirely blame him, because it means the trust was easily broken. But she’d never ever had that trust before. Of course it was fragile.

“But I don’t want you to baby me because of that. I want you to comfort me if I need it, I want help- but not protected. Because I felt like that and- and look, I’m here. After two days apart…” She let out a shaky breath.
“I want to try… something that’ll mean changing for us both… Well, that makes it sound like something groundbreaking. I mean… I want you to ask for things bluntly like you said. Like, if you need alone time. But I want to be able to say ‘that’s makes me feel anxious, but alright’ without it making you think that I can’t handle it, or you’re doing something horrible. That’s just one example but… Like that. That’s what I came up with while thinking…”

Casey nodded his head again, patting her hand and waving his own in a rhythmic fashion.

”Right! Like that… Which brings me to my earlier point, uh… She’s dead soon. I hate to keep beating the horse here, but that’s got a lot of different feelings behind it. I’m certain you get that. And I don’t need to begin to explain to you how that makes me feel, or what I’ve had to make happen to ensure that it will. All that’s left is us leaving. It has to happen. So, there’s no escaping our vacation, and I’m gonna do my best to relax. But, I’m gonna be sad. And I’m gonna seem distant, maybe. But, ultimately, I want to go. And I want to be there with you.”

He bit his lip in anticipation, shaking his head and clearing his throat as he came back to the point.

”But I’m gonna need… Something. I have no idea what it is. I don’t. I wish I did, but I can’t conjure what I need to feel better about things. It’s like a knot that I can’t uncinch. It makes me feel worse about everything, but I can’t help being stuck in it. I’m standing in tar.”

He leaned in closer, practically crawling into her lap.

”I did miss you. Just because we were away from one another by choice doesn’t mean I didn’t miss you very badly. I knew if I had that time away, I’d get that feeling. Because I’ve been getting that feeling every time we were apart more than a night at a time last month. And instead of trusting my instinct and putting your feelings at risk, I jeopardized our entire relationship. I… Love you so much.” he added, looking up at her with a calm expression.

”I never meant for this to happen. But it did. And I’ll make it up to you. It can’t be right away. So I need your patience. I need your best on my bad days. And I’ll take yours in return.”

“I’ll be patient… And I’ll try my hardest to make sure you get my best on those days. I love you and I… really missed you too. A lot.” She leaned forward, arms loosely wrapping around him. She was still a bit nervous, even when he was the one that had closed the gap between them. She didn’t want to push and be clingy when he didn’t want that.

“We’ll try and figure out what you need… And even if we can’t, that’s alright. We’ll just keep dealing with it.” She had her own things that she didn’t know how to just fix, even if the effect on them wasn’t as major. Like her depressive episodes. It had been fine between them, but she never knew how to get herself out of them. It just happened.

But things felt better. She still felt anxious, because she couldn’t just get rid of that. Not after what happened. But they’d talked. Were talking. There was an understanding they could move forward with. That was good.

“For the vacation… It’s fine if you’re sad and distant, as long as you want to go. Just- my actual birthday… If you’re feeling bad, we might have to… Spend it apart.” It wasn’t something she wanted to say after promising to be patient, and hearing him talk about how much he missed and loved her. But it had been part of her thoughts. Another worry.

“It’s a bad day for me. I’m going to be anxious and upset. It’ll be worse if we set each other off. I’d rather… spend it how I always have.”

Casey shook his head, frowning widely as he tried to think of a world where he didn’t want to try.

”And if I try, but fail? What could I possibly do to recover from that? I’m so fucking scared. I don’t want to hurt you. It’s fucking killing me! I want you to feel like you can always count on me, because if you can’t, what makes me different or better than anyone else? What makes you like me?” he frowned.

”Then, obviously, you feel the same way dealing with me! You don’t know what I like about you, but there’s a billion things I can think of! So… We’ve gotta accept things between ourselves like that. I’ve really gotta work on it…”

Trisha nodded.
“We both do… I could start listing everything I like about you, if that’ll help?” She smiled slightly, a hint of playfulness in her eyes.

“Like you’ve done for me before. And if you try but fail… It’ll just be even harder the next year. You’ll have to try again. It won’t… Be the end of the world. It’s already a bad day for me…” It would end up worse if she had hope that it would be better, then it wasn’t. But she couldn’t easily say that without making him more scared.

“I do want to spend it with you, because just that would make it better. But I’m worried that if I’m in a bad mood, and I’m snappy, we might fight. I just don’t want to fight.”

He hugged around her legs, head nuzzling against her for a bit of comfort. It was easy to think that they wouldn’t fight, but what the fuck was the point of being together if they didn’t have special moments like that locked down? December twenty-sixth. Hell of a day to be born.

”Let’s not think about Christmas this year. Like, at all. We’ll just skip it. This year, it’s just your birthday that’s important. What do you think of that as a change?”

If it was just one day, he figured he could dedicate that entirely. Especially if it meant that he could have Christmas to do whatever. Whether she wanted to go out or not, he figured they were close enough to some prime hunting grounds that he could head out and just stalk. No time to qualify for a tag, after all.

“That sounds nice.” She said softly. It did, even if she was still worried about it. But if he was suggesting that, it must mean he thought they could make her birthday work. Christmas wasn’t a day she’d ever enjoyed either, but it wasn’t such a personal pain. Just another shitty family holiday.

“I’ve never really been fussed by Christmas. It’s like Thanksgiving… Another day I was forced to be around my family. I don’t care about celebrating it… Especially since I don’t have to be with them.” Though the Vanburen Christmases had dramatically reduced in size, it wasn’t more manageable when the one person always there was Tansy.

She leaned forward to kiss the top of his head, words muffled.
“Thank you… For being willing to do that. Oh, but… I’ll still be allowed to give you a present, won’t I?”

Casey shook his head in return, doing his best to blow past the initial feeling of wanting to please her in order to get to how he really felt about the matter.

”I’d rather you didn’t… But, it’s pretty late to tell you no if you’ve already got something planned. I… Guess I hate being fussed over as much as you do. It’s hard. I hate feeling like people are doing things for me, or because I’m involved in some way. It sucks. Being singled out.”

Even though this wasn’t the same case. It’s not like she was overly fussing in regards to the circumstance as much as he was overly sensitive toward the circumstance. It didn’t help that he was still jumpy like that, but they’d get through it.

”I shouldn’t say that I’d rather you wouldn’t. I’d feel better if we could focus on you, because it makes me feel weird telling you that we’ll focus on your birthday, but you still want me to get things. I guess I want to make you feel like a princess.”

Trisha nodded. She understood… Because she felt the same when it came to days where she’d want to focus on Casey. Not just his birthday when it came, but his bad days. It was a similar thing. Even if she didn’t feel like he had to focus solely on her, he said he wanted to. She didn’t want to deny him that.

It was just difficult when it was a gift she actually wanted to give him. Christmas was just the excuse for it, really.

“I can hold onto it, if you’d prefer that. I don’t mind… It just might be difficult to explain to Sylvie, but I’m sure I’ll find a way. And… Well, it could be useful. But I don’t want to give you a gift when you don’t want it. Especially not when I’ve talked about struggling to receive gifts too.” Though for her, it was gifts that felt obligatory. Not from a place of care.

“But it could be useful… What if it’s not a Christmas gift? Can I just give it to you, or will that feel the same?” She asked with quiet consideration.
“It would… sort of be for me too.”

Casey nodded his head and chuckled slightly as he thought about all the different holidays and days dedicated for special things.

”I wish I was better about them, but… It’s honestly a miracle I remember your birthday at all. I was thinking about that the other day. That I’d only ever remember our anniversary because it's on a holiday. And I feel like an idiot because of it. And I get worried you’ll think I don’t love you because I forget or something stupid. I hate the feeling…” he frowned, doing his best just to not tear up over it.

Trisha leaned forward to hug him again. It was difficult to hear that he might forget her birthday… Because it had been forgotten for so much of her life. But it wasn’t because he wanted to. He wanted to remember and do something for her. She could remind him. She could get through the anxiety it made her feel.

“I know you love me. It’ll hurt if you do ever forget on the day but… Now I know, so I’ll make sure to remind you. Just my birthday and our anniversary matter anyway…” She pulled back a bit, lips curving into a gentle smile.
“I guess we’ll just have to make sure to have our wedding on a holiday too. Maybe Easter? Oh, no, that changes doesn’t it. What other spring holidays are there… Valentine’s day? April fools day?”

Surprisingly, Casey nodded with a warm smile crossing his face. It was a day he was usually fond of: The rain, the melting snow, the new life blossoming from the ground wherever it could. Even the snap chills that shocked everything back into their holes. Those were often the best nights. And, it meant they would be able to skip the bullshit of the otherwise uselessly obtrusive day.

It was a little more bittersweet now, however. One of the biggest pranksters was gone. And she would’ve loved this being the plan. He didn’t really expect her to touch that nerve, and recognized immediately that it’d been a casual mistake. One he so easily made too. He tucked his head down slightly, but Trisha would’ve been able to see the sunshine that lingered from his initial impression die a rapid death as he moved.

He had to contemplate whether or not he could think about that right now. Maybe Easter would-

”G-od… Y’know, that little jerk made April First a fucking landmine day. Never knew what Gin was gonna do! F-f… Eh-m… That’ll probably be a good day. For me to remember. I usually paid attention to it, since, y’know I’ve always been pretty jumpy. Pranks don’t go over well. I figure you’re in the same boat? So, it’s great for us. We can ask people to be serious on our wedding day, and when we’re home alone we can just be romantic.” Casey did his best to stay positive, in spite of the fact that he was very clearly weeping once more. Not hard like before, but the mourning in his voice was clear once again.

Even if he could accept that she knew what was coming, and that she knew there was more at stake than herself, Casey had to grapple with exactly how much he loved her. When they were little, Gin was the first third wheel with Mia and Eddie. She was so close to the family, and Lynette loved her mother so dearly, that there were few times in his earliest memories that they weren’t there. Gin and Ed both understood Casey’s plight. They missed the early boats just like he did. Only, they stuck around. He probably would’ve become an Aberration too, if he hadn’t scrambled away to the only other option he had.

In a way of its own, that was guilt. A different kind of survivor’s guilt. And now it really stung, but all Casey could do was take heart where he could.

”I thi-i-nk… In a few years. It’ll be fine…”

His hand reached down to his pocket, pulling his phone out and sliding it toward Trisha without really looking up.

”N-ow that I’m… C-can you, p-pl-ease delete m-my texts with… With he-r and I-Igor? The-re’s a g-group chat a-and them bo-o-th individually… I c-can’t…”

Trisha nodded, silently taking the phone from him. She kept a hand over his, her thumb gently rubbing the back of it, while she worked his phone with the other. She knew his password, so it was easy to get into it. She navigated to his messages, deleting the individual messages from them both. When she came to the group chat, her brow furrowed slightly. Unread messages?

It was a simple link to a document filled with usernames and passwords. She had no idea what they were for… But she made sure to save the link in his phone before deleting the group chat too. Then, she removed their contacts.

“There you go. There was a document they left you, with usernames and passwords… I’ve saved it so you can look at it later.” Trisha said softly, handing Casey’s phone back to him.

At the same time, she moved forward, hesitating for a moment before wrapping her arms around him. If he didn’t want the physical comfort, he’d push her off… Probably. She didn’t know what else to do, after all. There was nothing she could say.

She probably looked cold to him with her lack of reaction. She hadn’t known Gin anywhere near as long as Casey did, but they’d become good friends in the last two months. She was sad… She just wasn’t the type to cry or scream over this kind of loss. The only time she had was with Martin, and that had been more the circumstances surrounding it. Maybe she was broken for that… Maybe she didn’t know how to grieve.

“We don’t have to think about the wedding date now… It just came to mind. We’ll see if it’s manageable when we get around to planning that kind of thing.” She continued gently, not wanting him to think she was upset at him for his sudden drop of mood again when she’d been talking about something that, to her, was positive. She wasn’t.

“Is there anything else I can do for you right now?” She meant practically, really. Like with the texts.

”W-what kind of wedding…? Y-you probably want the le-least obtrusive wedding we could, huh? N-nobody fussing over you?”

The question was simple, but at this point, he really did want to think about something that was positive. It was, and he knew Gin thought as much. She’d jokingly asked to get married with them more than once, and to Casey privately, she admitted that she wanted to be their flower girl. Which he’d have been more flattered by if he’d thought for one second they weren’t going to have the chance.

He knew to cherish a lot more things that were out of his reach now. It was a terrible sting. He’d not left business unfinished with anyone in the Portal Lab. But, Halcyon had so many faces he knew intimately… So many voices he heard daily. Missing them all now was a nightmare that he wouldn’t escape fully for quite some time. That face… That-

ABSOLUTION

Casey shuddered gently as he tuned back into Trisha’s voice.

“Mhm, you’re right… But I’m not going to avoid being fussed over if Cass is there, and she will be. Even if I don’t invite her.” Trisha said with a soft laugh, holding Casey and rubbing his back comfortingly. It was strange that trying to be here for him like this, focusing on comfort and talking about something positive, was helping with her own anxiety. Probably because he was still there, and wasn’t pushing her away.

“I want it to be small, obviously. I could fill a whole wedding hall with University acquaintances, but I don’t want that. I just want it to be people I’m- we’re- close to. I don’t know if I’d even do bridesmaids, because I feel like everyone I invited would end up as one.” It was a little sad to think of how few people she had in her life. Her four friends were the only ones she’d be inviting, since everyone else she was growing close to were part of Casey’s life too. Her friend group had been bigger, with a consistent group of ten of them, but she’d lost contact with the rest since graduating.

“We’ll put a no family ban and make Leon come as Cass’ partner, and Mia and Ed come as Hari’s.” She joked.
“I actually… Have a cousin I might want to invite. But I’m not sure if I can. If I pay for her to fly over, the whole family over in the Philippines will hound her about it for years. They’ll probably try and hound me too.”

She didn’t mean to bring possible family drama into it, it was just where her train of thought went. It was so small compared to everything else that was happening… So petty.

Casey nodded along as best he could while Trisha went over what her ideal was. In the end, he could only laugh about everything he’d expected.

”It’s s-so dumb now… Thinking about what I imagined as a kid. Mum made us watch their wedding later on. Lee was a baby. Big goth wedding, the Hunters were there, her tribe was there. The Richoux. I always thought I’d get that too. That there’d be a billion people on my side no matter what. I still want that. But, I’d probably turn into a mass murderer in the span of a weekend if we did. I’m not sure I’d cope at all.” he admitted through what sounded like incredibly frustrated tears.

”Fuck I wish we weren’t both like this… I wish that being around those people hadn’t ruined my brain forever.” he admitted, more in reference to the military than his own crazy family.

Trisha tilted her head. Did he just mean his family? Probably not, seeing as there was a variety of socialness in his siblings. Aside from Mia, the other three seemed adept at large social events. So it was probably a combination of that and the people in the military.

She had met some of them when they went for him to get officially discharged. Friendly enough, but she could tell it was just surface level. They didn’t have much of a filter like Casey, but were curter than him… She could see why that would change how he viewed large groups.

“I’m sorry we probably won’t get that.” She said softly, though she knew it wasn’t exactly her fault. But even if Casey could tolerate such a large event, she wouldn’t want it. Maybe if her whole upbringing had been different… But she felt like with a normal upbringing, she’d be more likely to be shy. Her family made her dislike massive groups, but she’d also forced herself into large social situations in pursuit of friendships or fleeting relationships. If she had a small, happy family she probably would’ve been content not exploring much outside of that.

“I’d say maybe time around other people will make your brain a little more tolerant of large events but… Even if it did, I don’t think anything would make me want a big wedding. Even if I had this massive group of people, I just… Don’t see how I could be so close to that many that I want them to share such a special day with me… Though I’d compromise, obviously.” Not that she felt it was likely to be a problem.
“It’s not even a specific wedding trauma for me… Honestly, we’re maybe lucky I want to have a wedding with other people at it at all. I’ve been to enough weddings for a lifetime.”

Clearing his throat, Casey thought about why he felt like he wanted something more showy.

”I feel… So dumb sometimes. Being jealous of Leon. The other night… The way he just… Was talking to everyone. I got so mad. He looked so happy, and I just… Hated it.” he spoke softly, embarrassed by the words alone.

”For a second, I wished that I could do what he was doing. Then, the next one, I was just pissed off that he felt okay. Like it was fun for him. And like he was taunting everyone, with how happy and excited he gets. But, it’s real. It’s just him, y’know? And I’m the evil one… I’m hateful, and I want to rub it in people’s face. Tell them that their shitty little worlds are full of garbage.”

He gritted his teeth, looking up at her.

”When you went to the bathroom? That third time, after I made the comment about the olives that didn’t go over well? I was talking to this woman, and she tried to get all fucking empathetic, and tell me about how her grandson passed away out East… And I just wanted to tell her, y’know, ‘I don’t give a fuck lady! Your son’s lucky! He doesn’t have to deal with you anymore!’ But, y’know, y’can’t say shit like that and I just looked at her and… Fucking stuck my tongue out at her. Didn’t answer, didn’t say anything, just stuck my tongue out until she got uncomfortable and walked away.”

Casey’s face was full of terrible shame and apathy all at once.

”Because I just couldn’t deal with it. She was just droning on and on, and her son probably died an awful death. And I couldn’t possibly bring myself to care how that made her feel! Because, y’know, the kid’s fucking dead! He’s been dead for like four years now! But it’s her kid, and she’ll never forget him! But, fuck, y’know? Y’know how many kids I saw die horrifically? Fucking… Done the killing? Everyone always tries to relate through pain, but the real pain’s taking the life in front of you, it’s-”

Stopping himself short, he looked at Trisha fully with his bottom lip pouting before crawling back into her lap. Positive. Positive.

”-D-do you want us to share vows?” he tried to move on.

“Hmm?” Trisha’s eyes widened slightly, feeling like she had whiplash from the topic change. It was difficult to hear him get like that… She wanted to tell him that she was glad he wasn’t like Leon. Because if he was, she wouldn’t like him like this. But he was talking about one of Leon’s good qualities. She understood… She was jealous of Cass too, sometimes. At least they weren’t related, so there was no chance she could’ve ended up like her.

What could she say about the second thing as well? She didn’t think he was wrong to act like that… But it probably wasn’t what he wanted to hear. And she didn’t understand. Couldn’t, when she hadn’t gone through it. She wanted to try and put a balm on it all and say that it was alright for him to be like that, but who was she to say that? If he wasn’t happy about it, her telling him it was alright would just make things worse.

“Do you mean now, or at our wedding? I’d like to share vows then… It would be nice, I think. Not just doing the traditional ‘in sickness and health’ and all that, but something we both write.” She seemed to move on with him, before backtracking a bit. She couldn’t just let go of everything he’d said.

She leaned forward to press a kiss against his head, hugging around him.
“Also… You’re not evil. Maybe hateful in that moment, but not evil. Your feelings came from a place of pain, after all.”

So far, he hadn’t put forth any particular vibes that he wanted her gone. She could probably feel him lean into her just a little bit more when she did get close. He wanted the touch. That was comforting. The talking right now was too, at least. But, it was hard to avoid wanting to fight over how he felt. There was a gut reaction that came with being told what he was or wasn’t. There was more than enough trauma with the topic as a whole, and feeling like Trisha was feeding into that made him anxious.

”It feels evil. But, everything’s gonna feel evil right now. Talking about our future feels evil, even though I know it isn’t. It… Makes me wanna fight about it. So, I’m… Not fighting you. And I’m not pushing it either. I’m gonna verbally accept that you’re being good to me, and accept that in a normal mindset, I’d agree with you. And that I wouldn’t judge someone else for feeling the way I do.”

He cleared his throat, one hand reaching up to take Trisha’s in a desperate way.

”I love you… Thank you f-for being here.”

Trisha nodded, managing to understand what he was getting at. He couldn’t agree with her right now… It made her anxious that she said something that made him want to fight, even if he wasn’t going to. It meant she’d said something wrong without meaning to. She just had to be more careful and learn from it. Especially for when he was having really bad days, and probably wouldn’t be able to stop himself.

“I love you too. Of course I’m here.” She managed a smile, squeezing the hand clinging to hers. She couldn’t say she was in a good place, but she wasn’t as close to panicking as she had been for the last week. Because he was here and he wasn’t pushing her away… It would be harder when he needed more alone time, or wasn’t so affectionate. But he was here right now. Even though she really hadn’t thought he would be. It had felt like it was all over-

“I don’t want to fight, so I’ll try not to say something like that right now.” She continued, head tilting so she was resting her cheek against the top of his head.
“I, uh, appreciate you saying all’ve that. It helps me understand without making me more anxious.”

She really did, and she could be honest about it. So he felt appreciated. It was a lot of honesty today. Maybe because she’d been so scared he’d be gone. She was always able to be honest in those moments… She didn’t want to go back to that. If forcing herself to talk really helped, she would. Could. She was here. He was here. They were both here.

“You didn’t answer the questions about our vows… N-now or at the wedding?” As she spoke, Casey would feel a wetness against his head, and she sniffed. With the way her voice immediately wavered as well, she knew she couldn’t hide her sudden tears.
“S-sorry, nothing you said, j-just thinking about things… I’m alright.”

Casey nodded his head gently, only looking up at her when he realized there were tears to go along with the sniffle. But, he had to trust that she was being honest.

”I meant at our wedding, yeah… W-what’s got you bothered, Honey? I know, I’m kinda putting a lot on you here… I don’t mean to, it ain’t- Well, I… It’s alright, y’know? I’m here talking. So are you! You can, you can, your problems aren’t small because they’re mine too, right?” he did his best to offer her that kind of comfort. That same kind of codependent comfort that he’d been there to give her before…

“It’s because you’re here.” She sniffed, removing one arm from around him to wipe her eyes. She then shook her head, realising the immediate response made it sound like him being there was a bad thing.

“I- I mean, I’m relieved. I was so scared that you wouldn’t come back. I- I really thought you wouldn’t, or you’d try to make me leave again and- I- I know we already talked about it. I just think it-it’s hitting me now. L-like it really hit me when you said ‘thank you for being here.’ And- and I’ve been trying to suppress it all, s-so maybe this is just it all coming out. I d-dunno. I was so scared.” She trembled slightly, breathing through a heavier sob. It was like the floodgates had opened… But she didn’t feel as horrible as she had in the aftermath of him leaving that evening, when she’d suffered hours of panic attacks and breakdowns.

“I th-think I just need to cry it out… Maybe…”

Casey didn’t move any great deal, rather just holding her as tightly as he could from that position. He was happy to double as a comforting stuffed animal for the moment as he nodded along gently.

”It’s alright, Honey… We can both do it. Okay? I’m… I’m here. And I know how wrong it was, what I said. How I felt. It… Hurt you. You deserve to feel sad too! B-but, be as strong as you want, y’know? It’s… It’s gonna be alright no matter what! I’m not goin’ anywhere!” Casey quietly wept, shaking his head as he turned to look upward.

He did his best to smile, but at the same time couldn’t even come close to hiding that he was crying too. Part of it was elation. Part was frustration at himself. But either way, there was no getting around it in this exact moment. They could only be together with that feeling caught in the middle.

”I l-love you!”

“I love y-you too.” Trisha choked out around her sobs, curling forward and around him. She was relieved as much as she was still scared. Because what if she really did lose him… What if next time it was real? She loved him so much, and that truly terrified her. She couldn’t imagine ever being with anyone else.

She was sad about it. It had hurt her, and hit so many triggers that she had. It hurt more because it was him. She didn’t hold it against him in any resentful way, but her confidence had been shattered. It meant her anxiety around abandonment was closer to how it had been when they met… That made her sad too.

But he was here. He was here, and she could get it back. She’d made the progress in the first place. He said he’d make up for the hurt when he could. It was alright. It really was alright.

“I’m alright… It’s really alright.” She spoke again after minutes just crying and hugging into him. Her voice was still shaky, but the tears were beginning to stop. It hadn’t lasted long, at least. It left her feeling strange. Relieved but still anxious at the same time. But when wasn’t she anxious? Only when both her and Casey were at their best.

“If you’re not going anywhere… Are you staying today? Or do you need more alone time?” She tried to ask as calmly as she could, not wanting to imply that she was taking it to mean he’d always be there. But at this moment he wasn’t going anywhere, right?

“Obviously, I’d like to spend the day with you. But if that’s too much… Some of the new types of bees will be… born today. I’d like to show you them, at least.”

Every little instance reminding him of his mistake drove him crazy. It wasn’t her fault, but she was painfully in his face about it in spite of everything. But, she was asking out of genuine care. It was the same as others who tried to give him similar courtesies that he took as insults. The other night, even; at Cass’ party. He’d only gotten angry in the first place because he felt like he was being condescended to. But, the “culprit” had only been asking genuine questions. He’d never once known that guy to condescend to anyone. The smile had been joy, that after so many years he was seeing Casey again.

And he’d ruined that over a personal perception. Over seeing smugness where happiness lived. He’d done the same thing before. He’d maybe even do it again! He couldn’t trust himself enough to begin imagining that she could. So, at least he wasn’t shocked about her wanting him close.

”God, even if I fuckin’ hated you, I’d want to be around to see the bees today. I did a lot of mental pushing last night, especially with how we’re gonna be going away soon. It’s really just, y’know… Down to the guilt I’m still feeling. Like you said, maybe she did know. But even if that’s the case, that’s just fuckin’ tragic. And part of it wishes we were here to see it all through, because I want revenge. I don’t think a little camping trip is gonna take me away from that. Only focusing on you will, I’m assuming. We’ll put the theory to the test this week. Right? I’ve… Well, I…-”

He paused, starting to choke up a bit again as he considered what he was about to talk about. He did feel like a monster, but he’d had the thought of distracting himself after talking with Norm a few hours after the raid. And Trisha was the only thing he could possibly be distracted by. So he let his imagination run wild with things to do in the area they were headed. There were local shops, a brewery, and plenty of natural surroundings. It was supposed to snow around Christmas, so there was a good chance they’d be able to rent some machines.

Maybe just one… He didn’t imagine Trisha really handling one of those big Ski-Bidi snowmobiles. Even he didn’t care for them a great amount, but out on a frozen lake, they were incredible.

”-I f-fucking… Made a bunch of plans for us. Not so many, but… Something we can do just about every day. I left your birthday open for whatever you want, if that’s okay? If you… Y’know, can think of anything? I’m sure you’re just like ‘Oh lets just stay in’ but, I can honestly just tell you where we’re goin’ and you can find something you wanna do. We’ll even go back to fuckin’ Denver if there’s something there you wanna do.”

Casey was right that her first thought was just staying in. But it would probably be better to do something. Even if it was just a small trip, something to get them out and make it different from most of her other birthdays. It would be nice to do something. Though, she would have to take a look at what there was nearby to decide.

“I like that you’ve made plans for us. It’d be nice to do something on my birthday too. Where are we going? I can start guessing since you’ve mentioned Denver, but you’re making it sound like it’s not close… ” She said, looking thoughtful.

She hoped he was right about his theory that focusing on her would help distract him. It felt selfish to hope, but it would be better for him too. Better for them both. Hearing that stopped her from getting tense for the word hated being used, even if it was in an if statement. He didn’t hate her. And her being a distraction was a good thing, because it meant he enjoyed time with her enough that everything else faded away. There was no need to get anxious about if it didn’t work out, and she wasn’t enough.

“I need to know anyway, because I need to pack. I’ll… Need to start doing that today, I think. We’re going in two days and I take so long to decide what I need… Unless you want to watch me, you’ll have to tell me what we’re doing too. Or at least, what kind of clothes I need. But, uh, yeah… If I know where we’re going I’ll look for something for my birthday too.”

”I can magic your wardrobe in your pocket, don’t… I’m not going crazy for this. Maybe I am. I want to just use my magic. I don’t want to try too hard for this. Take whatever bag you want, I’ll hook it up to the dresser upstairs. We teleport into Denver on Friday Morning. We check into the resort at two in the afternoon, which gives us enough time to stop at the Frozen Bull on the way out to Mannard. It’s the nearest big town to a piece of property I want to look at, and the Frozen Bull is the local diner. We went once, between when I finished Basic for the Army and shipped back out with the other Supernaturals. I remember it being awesome, and if we’re gonna be living near there, I’d like for them to see my face.”

Casey had pulled his phone out, and had started to twist in Trisha’s arms so that she could see his screen. He’d been looking at the map, and pulled it out to stretch the distance out to their entire trip. Fourteen hundred miles. Twenty hours of driving. But focusing on Denver itself, there was a two hour trip between the areas, punctuated by a world of lush forests and protected wildlands. Their destination was a town in the middle of the Rockies. Some of the highest peaks in America, there were few places Casey could think of more peaceful than being up there.

”It’s definitely gonna be cold. So, we’ll dress warm. We’re getting dropped off at the airport, so we’ll get our return tickets then, and get set up with a rental car for our time. I’d kinda like to keep what I’ve got planned for out there as a little bit of a surprise, but I’m not just attracted to this place because it’s out of the way. There’s plenty of magic out there for us. People who’ll understand without prying.” he added, hoping that she’d be excited with what she heard well enough.

Trisha peered over at his phone, watching as he showed where they were going and where they'd be travelling. Once he was done she reached out to zoom in on the surrounding area, looking around where they were staying. Aside from the small town, there was no civilisation for miles. But there were various natural landmarks. It looked nice. Peaceful.

“I’ve never been to the Rockies. That sounds nice." She said, smiling softly down at him. She realised that was pretty obvious after she said that… Because she'd told him she really hadn't travelled. She'd only been to Chicago for University, and the Boston area when staying with her mom.

She stopped looking around the map to lean her face closer to his, smile widening. She was excited, around all her anxiety. It would be their first holiday together. Just the two of them, with less directly around them to impact their moods.

“Alright, I'll let you keep your secrets." She teased, rubbing her nose against his before pulling back a bit.
“I’ll make sure to bundle up warm and be ready for anything. I trust you, I know you won't drag me on anything I wouldn't want to do… like a two day intense hike up a snow covered mountain. Otherwise, I think I'm willing to try anything. With you. And the diner sounds nice. It'll be good to know somewhere local for the future."

She looked back at the map.
“I’ll find something I want to do for my birthday. I'd say something simple like a birthday picnic somewhere that looks nice, but I feel like it'll be too cold for something like that."

Nodding, she continued to ask.
“What kind of magic are we talking about? Just other magical people? Or… Is that one of the things you want to keep a surprise?"

There was a reason they’d made their way out to this little town all those years ago. The crew he’d tacked himself onto in Basic were a group of Adepts all enlisted from and living in this same town. Most people, he found, who came from small towns tended to besmirch their childhood homes, relegating them to the category of uninteresting or downright traumatic. Which made Mannard unique in a rather abstract way to Casey: These guys had nothing but good things to say about the place.

Contrarily, they seemed ecstatic when they’d been approved for a furlough back home. Excited enough that they accepted Casey’s request to come along, and showed him that the town itself was more than it seemed.

”From what I was told, a few different Covens bought properties independently before the township was established. When they came together, they decided to just hook up together permanently. Because of where it is, and how it’s got pretty much nothing, normal people don’t go out there and settle down. Five or six hundred people in the whole town, and the only non-magical people are the ones who just don’t kindle. And nobody forces them to, or makes them leave if they refuse. They take care of their neighbors, defend their properties from roving Apparitions, and only a few still bother going to Church on Sundays… Which I think is still comforting? To me, magical people going to normal church is… Pretty cute.” he admitted, talking about the town before refocusing.

”That being said, I wouldn’t worry about the quality of your bundling. I can compensate no matter what. Winterizing clothes was a basic skill to learn. I had to do the opposite in Africa, so I got used to insulating both ways.”

“So I don’t have to wear so many layers I turn into a ball?” Trisha giggled softly, one arm curving out around her to imitate the shape. It was nice that she didn't have to worry much about mundane things in that way- packing and dressing perfectly for the weather. Though she didn’t want to just rely on Casey’s magic.

“It sounds like an interesting town. I’m surprised anyone could go to church after knowing about magic but… I didn’t believe even when I was a kid who didn’t know about the magical world, so I guess I’ll never understand. It is pretty cute some of them still believe.” She nodded.

Was that why he was thinking about property nearby too? Because there’d already be a magical community within travelling distance? She assumed he wasn’t thinking about living in the town. He’d talked about getting a large bit of land and everything. But she could understand wanting to be nearby, even if the thought of such a large magical presence made her a bit nervous. That was just her shitty experience talking, though. Very little good experience with magical groups.

“I’m looking forward to seeing a magical community like that. I guess a community like that at all… The whole taking care of your neighbour thing too. Where I’m from, the neighbours compete to have the most well maintained lawn.” She shrugged with another laugh.
“It sounds nice… They’re not going to be too nosy about visitors, are they? I guess they can’t be if they have a resort nearby… How does that work when there’s non magical visitors? Uh, hypothetically, I assume you don’t have the answer to that.”

Casey laughed as she recognized the chance for him to not know the answer.

”I mean, the visitors are more than likely out there for peace, right? The main resort is strictly for mundanes, and then there’s other places where Supernaturals can at least stretch our legs. Usually, the rule is that our community yields to greater society, right? It’s only in cities like ours where the magical community starts to become predatory. Because space and resources are so tight, there’s just reason after reason for us to take and take. But out there? Everyone’s got what they need, pretty much. No need to fight. No need to be super nosy.” he did his best to extrapolate the thought process as to why they weren’t worried about Blinds.

”Though, I think some of them do still get into wars over whose property is better maintained. But, it’s a point of pride thing that you participate in. Not, y’know, some small scale socio-political warfare scenario wrapped up in friendly ‘competition’.” he added, sarcasm dripping in his voice.

Trisha nodded with a laugh. It was hard for her to imagine, honestly. Her whole life had been filled with friendly ‘competition’. From competing for their Dads attention, to Tansy’s constant attempts to steal their partners, to the comparisons with her much smarter cousin back in the Philippines. It was everywhere in her life, and most of what she’d witnessed. Even in high school… With all the cliques. She only escaped it somewhat in University.

“Mmm, so they don’t all secretly hate each other? That sounds nice.”

”Woah, don’t get ahead of yourself. I’ve got no clue about their secrets. he giggled, hoping that their secret world of internecine warfare wasn’t the case.

“You don’t? What use are you then? I wanted all the town gossip.” Trisha joked with a little mock gasp, giggling with him. She curled forward, pressing her face into his hair and rubbing back and forth.

“If the main resort is Blinds only, where are we staying? Do they have a special magic proofed building?”

”There’s three. The property’s like eight-hundred acres, so… They’ve got the main building out front for all the normies. They’ve got the event space building out-”
He paused for a moment, pulling up the website for the place which had its own property map. Pointing at a large field, there was an equally large octagon surrounded by other triangle shaped structures. Clearly the simplified design of a sun.

”-here. It’s a main stage, and a covered concert hall basically, with concessions or other shit in the outer buildings. They’ve got drapes and barriers they can set up that are seriously crazy magic, and will like… Block sound, and vision. Anyway, there’s that. Then,-”

He moved the map to another large facility by a lake further on the property.

”-this is the secondary building for visitors. Payment is a lot more flexible and tailored to the visitor, since they’ve got staff who edit the rooms at a pretty rapid pace. You can get something cheap, and they’ll put you up in a broom closet, or you can get something luxurious. I think there’s a hundred and fifty permanent residents there, staff not included. But, I figured that wasn’t what we’d want. So,-”

He kept scrolling past, to the other side of the lake and further on into deep woods. There was a road, at least, that seemed to climb a hill until the trees thinned. Along the way, little structures dotted the road, set back sometimes hundreds of feet into the woods. Finally he settled on one whose driveway started in a rocky clearing, curling around the bend of a hill and disappearing into some of the thickest woods around it. The map said there was a cabin in there, but one couldn’t see it from the overhead view the map provided.

”-I kind of went for the same idea as when we stayed on the island last month. Private, out of the way space. You can’t tell from the angle, but the person I talked to on the phone said this cabin’s the best, because it’s on an overlook where the treeline cuts off. So, you can basically see clear across Eastern Colorado. The windows are all magical too, so you can do things like zoom in. It’s… A two story cottage, fully furnished. Magical connection to amenities, everything’s totally on demand. You’ll be able to access the internet and everything in the case we’re stuck doing nothing for a day.” he joked.

“Oh, good, I’m not sure I can survive without the internet. I’m practically addicted.” Trisha responded sarcastically, with a smile. It was good to know, though. It meant she didn’t have to bring loads of books to fill any time… Especially if their sleeping, or lack of, continued.

“That sounds really nice. I like how out of the way it is. We don’t have to interact with other people unless we want to, but it sounds like we’ll have plenty of space too. I hope they have a nicely placed bathroom, so we can enjoy a hot bath with an even nicer view again. Or just relax with a book looking out at it. It sounds… pretty perfect.”

She leaned forward again to press a soft kiss against his lips, before smiling warmly at him.
“Thank you for organising it all… I did it a while ago, but I appreciate it. I’m looking forward to it.”

Casey nodded, returning her gentle kiss and nuzzling her as he accepted the praise. They were both good at planning, thankfully. Anything they ever did in their lives together would, at least, be organized.

”I can show you pictures they sent me of the inside.”

Maybe she’d forget, or maybe Trisha would take heed that he did not verbally agree that he was looking forward to it. He was, but not in the same way Trisha was. He couldn’t. He could look forward to little tender moments, the fabled golden chain of memories meant to carry him to the next good time already bent and torn at previous links. He could hope that the plan went off without a hitch.

But, was he looking forward to leaving when there were ulterior motives to it besides celebrating Trisha’s life? No! Did he feel like he deserved even an ounce of the happiness that he’d probably inadvertently experience from simply being in that place with her? Absolutely not. But he’d be there… And he’d do his best not to rob either of them of the pleasure that they’d be able to find, or the comfort they’d be able to take, all the way up in the mountains.
Hidden 6 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Morning, Thursday 21st December. Home.

The rest of the day was spent relaxing as best they could in each other’s company, aside from when Trisha went to oversee the birth of her new bees and tend to the still growing one. Their emergence from the flesh tendrils wasn’t particularly pleasant, so it made most sense for her to do that and then show Casey some of the new ones.

She had come out of the greenhouse to much more stuff in their main room than there had been when she’d left. Equipment that Casey had dragged up from downstairs in her short absence, and more still once she was back. It wasn’t a fight but it did take Trisha a little while to accept half their main room becoming his makeshift workshop.

It meant he was there with her, technically. In the house. Even if it made things noisier… It wasn’t like she could complain when she had her bees.

It was a double edged sword when it came to the already arduous task of getting to sleep. Casey wasn’t much in the mood for it, and Trisha wasn’t going to drag him to be when she reluctantly went up. Exhaustion was catching up with her, after all. The sound of him tinkering just down the stairs was comforting in that it let her know he was still there, but at the same time the strange sounds made it difficult to drift off. Not just strange, but loud. At least she wouldn’t have found it easy anyway, without him there next to her.

She’d eventually drifted off, still looking at something on her phone, just before the sun started to rise. The couple of hours she got weren’t restful, but at least the nightmares were less intense. When she woke up it was still early… Eight AM, read the clock on her phone in front of her face. She unwrapped her arms from around Princess, made as big as she could get, to sit up with a gentle groan.

Before she actually got up, she picked up her phone to sort out a couple of things. Replying to Cass for a start, who’d messaged yesterday afternoon about a chill gathering her and Leon were having in his flat tonight. A lowkey celebration before she went back to England for Christmas, and the two of them went away. She’d emphasised in the text multiple times that it was just a chill thing, and that they were welcome but her and Leon would get through a bunch of shitty Christmas movies either way.

Casey had gotten something similar from Leon. The decision between the two of them had been they’d see how they felt today, and Trisha finally replied to Cass saying as much. It was difficult not to feel pressure… And she did actually want to go, even if just for a little while.

Then, the next thing was more important. Sylvie had let Trisha know she could get Casey’s present to her whenever she wanted… By some magical means, Trisha assumed. While the last few days would’ve been perfect if she wanted to keep it a secret, she hadn’t exactly been in the right state of mind. And it wasn’t going to be a secret anymore. So, she sent a message to ask for it this morning.

Then she got up, fumbling in their wardrobe for one of Casey’s sweaters to pull on over her pyjamas. Going downstairs meant dealing with it getting louder. But it was alright. It was his way of staying around. She’d rather the noise than be alone.

“Casey?” She spoke up as she came to the bottom of the stairs, shuffling towards the kitchen and trying to get into his line of sight at the same time. She wasn’t sure if he could hear her, after all.

She spoke up a bit louder.
“How do your grandparents normally send deliveries?”

Casey’s makeshift workshop consisted of whatever he could get within the confines of the fireproof curtains he’d set up later on the previous day. With a few of them miniaturizable, it was a bit more than he expected once he managed to requisition some open-style shelving units that magically clung to the walls through the fireproofing. It was a cacophonous noise scramble consisting of echoes from all throughout the spectrum of metalworking. Grinding, polishing, milling and carving, stamping- The various processes of weaponsmithing were on display all at once.

Casey was wearing a long leather apron and thick black goggles, staring down at a plasma torch blasting a piece of metal while he mashed it against an anvil with a dark black hammer. Trisha’s voice almost didn’t penetrate the noise. But, a voice in itself was new enough for him to take heed. Looking up toward the only place he expected it normally, he saw Trisha trying to talk to him and pulled the goggles off. As if he were somewhere in the void of space, he simply released the goggles where they were, allowing them to hang midair in wait for his return. Most of the automated machines continued to run, though the torch did cut out.

”Huh?” he asked turning his head and cupping his ear, not entirely trying to be rude, but certainly being curt for it being their first interaction in several hours.

Trisha pursed her lips, but managed to not look too upset. Or get too upset. It was difficult when she was so tired, but she was interrupting him. “How do your grandparents send deliveries?”

”Oh! Shipping stuff! Probably the Pigeon Force. Max makes brass birds with little ramjets in them. They can really shake a tailfeather. Why, what’s coming? Did you tell Nana we were leaving for Christmas?” he asked her in return, twisting his body out of the leather gloves and apron before approaching her more directly and hugging around her.

”I wonder if Leon’s going over there. Shit, I wonder if they’re even gonna do anything this year! It’s… Pretty big. Maybe they’ll send a whole flock of them.” he giggled, looking out the windows in anticipation.

Trisha let out a soft sigh, arms wriggling under his to hug him as she relaxed into him.

“I didn’t specifically say we were going away, though she might’ve guessed when I said when I’d need this by… It’s, uh, your not Christmas present. It’s something I asked Sylvie to make, and I’ve asked for it to be sent over this morning. She said before delivery would be quick so… I was curious about that. Maybe there will be a whole flock, if she’s realised we’re leaving.”

Casey took a deep breath as he felt her relax, only realizing after the fact that he could’ve affected her anxiety by not seeming terribly chipper. It’s not that he wasn’t. Contrarily, he felt alright that morning. Especially having his workspace up here. It was nice to take a break and walk into his own kitchen.

His duties as Blade were essentially finished. An unceremonious way to end the esteemed position, but so many things were unceremonious. Life didn’t always imitate art. But, it meant he was suddenly listless again. He’d need things to do. Especially since they’d still be living in the Cannery for the foreseeable future as the siblings went about ensuring that their mother’s misbegotten flock all got their just desserts.

What kind of life would they have for the next few months? Would he get better? He didn’t know… But if there were days like this, maybe he’d be better off than he thought. It was just incredibly difficult from moment to moment, and he wished with all his heart that it wasn’t so.

”Well… If it hasn’t already gotten here? I’d say we’re in for a surprise. C’mon… Let’s go, uh… Maybe start getting ready to go downstairs. I need to get everyone else’s gifts too.” he offered Trisha his hand, motioning toward the bathroom.

Close to an hour later, the skies filled with the echoes of microjets filling the neighborhood before it all got incredibly quiet… Then the roof started to experience an incredible pelting as machine after machine, no bigger than a baseball each, tumbled from the sky and hit the roof with precision like that of a professional airstrike. Coming outside, the two would be greeted by a literal flock of brass birds, clockwork movements prying their beaks from the roof’s tar and positioning themselves into a pattern.

Three very simple words, and one incredibly Max-style sentence: The birds fanned out finally, to form “Ho, Ho, Ho!”

Casey held Trisha in his arms and giggled as the birds tutted about. It was comforting, and menacing all at once. The deadly precision that his Grandfather could control these things pailed in comparison to the implication of their being so many. That there really would be no Christmas. That they expected war… Still, he took a picture of it and sent it to Leon before waving his hand.

”Down! Down with all who are not Caseau’s!”

Many of the birds quickly lifted off and zipped down the building. Five birds remained, and Casey grinned at Trisha.

”Oh? Two from each person, one for each from each… But, there’s an extra? Whose that from I wonder?” he prodded before holding his arm out. The mechanical birds rushed him, climbing up and allowing Casey to bring them inside with them.

“Santa, obviously. Did you not read the message?” Trisha managed to joke, even though the sheer quantity of mechanical birds that had landed on their roof was overwhelming. The landing itself would’ve been terrifying if she wasn’t expecting it thanks to Casey’s explanation. The brass creatures themselves were interesting… So realistic.

As they headed back inside, she subtly called a small number of specific bees- from her original hive, especially good natured ones. A good first test. They buzzed out of the greenhouse and landed in her hair before she closed the door behind them.

She moved close to Casey, staying at the side that didn’t have the birds on it. She knew they weren’t actual birds, so they weren’t going to try and eat her bees or peck her, but she was still cautious.

“I can’t believe they used my delivery as a cover for a gift drop.” She joked again, smiling at him, then looking at the birds and their goods with curious interest.

And their goods were little neck pieces tied off to their bodies, which slipped down their backs and looked like they formed equally small pouches. Casey quickly set about unclipping them, and with his hand still covered in his channeler, he proceeded to grab ahold of the packages within and pull them out into the light.
Each turned out to be actual Christmas gift boxes, just like one would see in an old movie with the bows and bright, fancy designs on them. Four of them were stacked together, joining Casey’s other boxes containing gifts for their little family. The girls would be there at some point if they weren’t already, though he hadn’t checked himself. He figured they’d all open their two gifts from Max and Sylvie as a big group. He could guarantee everyone downstairs got their own set of two, since that was always the tradition with Max and Sylvie’s celebrations.

Casey’d been told of a fabled time where the first grandchildren all got spoiled rotten. But, once the amount of Grandkids equaled the amount of birthchildren, the compromise was established and remained unbroken since.

”Well, it certainly worked out.” he smiled, scratching one of the birds behind its metal neck.
”I bet you weren’t expecting to get anything from them, were you?” he asked, wagging his eyebrows at her.

“I wasn’t.” Trisha easily admitted, shaking her head. She didn’t even get presents from her own family, she hadn’t expected any from his grandparents. They’d only gotten together a couple of months ago! Sure, they were engaged, but it was still… Unexpected. Nice, but unexpected.

“Your grandparents are very generous.” She said softly as she moved to pick up the one delivered gift box kept separate from the other four. Thankfully they’d labelled them, otherwise it would be impossible to tell them apart… Then again, that was what it was like for all presents.
“With their actions and kindness especially. I actually… Tried to pay Sylvie to make your gifts, but she wouldn’t accept that. She said they ask for nothing from family, which is strange to me. But nice. Anyway, uh- happy early Christmas? Or… Happy I love you and wanted to get this specific thing made for you?”

She held out the gift towards him with a smile.

Casey looked down at the box, expression warm as he picked it up and rolled it in his hands slightly. It was light, but he could practically taste the magic inside.

”Oh, so you don’t want to save it for the big exchange downstairs? I-”
He paused a moment, realizing that she was starting to be crowded by bees.
”-can’t… Imagine why! he joked slightly, waggling the package again.

”Couldn’t bee related to anything we’ve got a common interest in, right?”

Mayyy-bee.” Trisha giggled, clasping her hands in front of her and blushing a little bit as he took a guess before even opening it. She didn’t mind, though. The surprise wasn’t important, just that it was something he liked.

“If we do it now, you can test it out before we go downstairs… We probably have time. I don’t want to bring too many down with me, since food and more people will end up a disaster.” She smiled, reaching up to gently knock over a bee crawling up her neck. The little creature fell onto her back on Trisha’s shoulder, legs waggling for a moment as she gave off little huffy pheromones before righting herself.

It was funny how most of them had little personalities. Nothing major like larger animals had… She was fairly certain it was because of the magic imbued in them by her and the Queen. They weren’t intelligent, but they acted closer to pet rodents than they did insects with very strict tasks to follow.

With him still not opening it she pouted playfully.
“Don’t make me wait… I want to see if it works.”

He grinned, making her wait just a hair longer before his head moved down to kiss her again. Casey’s eyes were warm and alive thankfully. It seemed like he was all there today. Noticeably different from the end of last night when he asked to begin bringing his stuff up. His hand popped the lid of the box off, and he looked in to find one of his Grandmothers’ company’s jewellery boxes sitting suspended inside. He plucked the little box, and with it came a piece of paper stuck to the bottom.

Trisha and Casey- Please thank Mia for her brilliant assistance, and consult her with any complications. I must admit, this challenging piece was much needed to mend broken bonds of my own. I love you both dearly. -Nana

Casey’s eyebrows climbed up, and he narrowed his eyes. Mia? Sylvie had pretty strong feelings about Mia and the other girls. So, this was good news. It meant neither of them were letting their hurt feelings get in the way anymore.

And so he popped the box open. Inside, the little amber disk no bigger than a dime sat cradled in black velvet. On the inside of the cover was a little picture of the disk sitting between two dogtags as a stopper, and Casey’s eyes immediately welled up as his gloved hand shot for the chain with his tags. They came around his head and off his neck faster than Trisha’d ever seen him take them off, and he was unclipping the brace to let the chain accept a new inhabitant.

One tag slid off the chain, and he tucked it into the little amber disk’s center hole to let it slide all the way back down. It only took him a moment to make the adjustment entirely, but once it was done, he and Trisha would both be able to catch him staring deeply into the golden jewel. Its insides were only marred by its single inhabitant: A spindly, long-legged bee that looked like it was trying to bridge the evolutionary gap with a hornet. And as he stared, tears fell from his eyes like raindrops.

”Trisha!? You’re kidding me! It’s… It’s so fucking gorgeous! What… You… It’s fucking magic as shit, Jesus! What’s it meant to do!?” he turned his head rapidly.

Trisha’s whole expression had lit up as she watched him open it and immediately put it on the chain. She’d been a little worried about it being an addition to something important to him… But it was clearly the right decision. It was gorgeous. She hadn’t actually seen the piece, only the original design. It had turned out so much nicer than she could’ve imagined. The bee within the amber evoked a strange, primal memory within her mind… Not hers, but the Queen’s. A memory of a time long gone. The wistful pheromones that gently leaked out of her had the bees on her shoulders rolling about.

She reached out to wipe away his tears with a warm smile, eyes creased into joyful crescent moons.
“I’m really glad you like it… Try channeling your White Lux through it. I assume that’s how it’ll work.”

She didn’t quite answer the question - but she wanted him to experience it. Hopefully, it would be a good experience. At the same time, she bolstered the bees with her own pheromones. It energised them, with some of them wiggling their little butts while others started crawling over her. And they were absolutely bombarding her with their pheromones. Like little excited cries, some curious about what was going on. One was even asking where the fruit was in her own little bee way.

For a long moment, Casey tried to figure out how he was supposed to get a channel into such a little thing until it finally clicked that he had to take his glove off. This little amber ring was, amazingly, a perfectly capable and already attuned channeler which readily accepted his magic as easily as he accepted channeling through it. Before he could do what Trisha was hoping for, he was already paused in shock.

Shocked by the fact that his trusty glove was no longer necessary.

”Oh, holy fuck! he almost grimaced, a look of shock splitting his face as he clutched the neck piece and watched the autolaithe crank up to full speed as the other machines gently rerouted their energy intakes toward the new channeler. It was rather shocking, and only became more so as the intended side effect also began to take hold.

Trisha’s eyes widened, even as she took a moment to fully register what was happening. She wasn’t an Adept, after all. She’d never needed a Channeler or experienced what it was like to use one. But she’d seen him take his glove off, but the machines kept going- one even got faster. He wasn’t showing any signs of wildcasting… So…

“Is it… Functioning as your Channeler?” She asked, clearly shocked herself.
“I- I didn’t realise that’d happen.”

At the same time, one of the bees on her shoulders was getting especially passionate as the autolaithe cranked up and got louder. She started buzzing, waving her front arms and seeming to be… Trying to assert dominance on the machine from a distance?

Casey could feel the different bees almost like he could feel a typical presence in the room. They made themselves like solid structures, each one now more like a foot-by-foot cube hovering around. And Trisha herself was an incredibly noticeable geometric pattern in the center of reality, like honeycombs layered inside themselves a thousand fold. He could hear the little bee, not just feel its discontent with the autolaithe…

So, he did what felt natural, and tried to comfort it. Staring directly at that spot where he imagined the bee as a cube, the new Channeler began to leak out a communicative pheromone encouraging the bee’s confidence and ensuring its safety all at once. He didn’t answer Trisha directly, but did absently nod his head as he felt the new sensation of spells he wasn’t casting simply existing because of him.

Trisha could sense the pheromone coming from the amber disk. It was strange, sensing it from something that wasn’t a bee… Different, though she recognised it intimately. It mimicked her own, after all. It was exciting. A whole new world for the two of them- and the bees- opening up.

Unfortunately, the pheromone Casey sent didn’t quite have the effect he’d wanted. Mostly, the surge in confidence led to the little creature thinking she could take on the noisy, light scented machine. It did comfort her, in a way, but it also led to her preparing to ‘defend’ her Queen. Though Trisha was quick enough to realise what was going on, one hand moving up to catch the bee as she tried to fly off.

“Not a threat, it’s not a threat.” She giggled, before looking at Casey with a bright smile.

Now that he’d given off actual communication, the bees realised that the large bee their Queen really liked smelled different. The pheromones she’d soaked him in were still there, but there was more another, new pheromone among it. They were confused by it, but also curious- this small group was among the more confident of her original bees, without being aggressive.

The majority of them flew over to Casey all at once. Some confidently landed on him, wiggling their bums at him, while others buzzed in front of and around him, trying to suss him out. They were all blasting him with greeting pheromones. It was like a combination of friendly hellos and requests for him to identify himself.

Trisha watched carefully- though she was mostly sensing the pheromones they were giving off.
“I’m not sure how they’ll view you when they properly recognise the pheromones. They might see you as an equal- like one of them- or as a more important bee that they should listen to.”

Casey was locked in a bit of shock as he tried to get over how big they all felt. It was like getting jumped on by a bunch of good sized dogs with how much mental space each cube took. And in his head, it felt a whole lot different than he imagined it felt for Trisha. These little girls were loud! And they had identities, if only through some basic self-distinction signal that he was commonly picking up in the form of different single-word callsigns. Names like “Dart”, “Flash”, “Split”, or “Cool” rolled through his head until he managed to passively assign the names to the boxes.

It was only once he could distinguish them at all that their massive space seemed to get smaller and smaller, until they really were bees again. Then, it was off to the races. He was intelligent enough to pick up on and imitate the components of their myriad of signals and salutations with which he was now being bombarded. With the rapid knowledge, a lot of the things that were included in the bee knowledge he’d taken were suddenly contextualized. Not only would this help him in a personal way, but he knew in that moment that it’d help him come to understand and relay her powers that much better.

Trisha would be able to feel his signals manipulating by the moment, rapidly shifting until he beamed out his own introductory signal at rapid pacing. Soon, the space around him was filled with one simple message.

I am Friend. Friend is Safety.

There was a moment of confusion from some as they seemed to echo Friend? Friend?. But they recognised the word safety, and his unique pheromonal scent was familiar to them. Not one they knew, but familiar.

Now they were excited. A new protector! The ones that had been circling him properly landed on him, absolutely blasting him with happy pheromones. One even landed right on his face, her little antenna prodding at his face in an extra greeting. It was a lot of noise without much content from them- the kind of pheromones Trisha had grown used to parsing through in her time having the bees.

Though there was some confusion about what friend meant. They were bees with a strict hierarchy, after all. It was a little more complicated in the realm of magical bees, which gave Trisha a little wiggle room to assign Casey a role between her and them. One they would listen to without ignoring her for.

Knight.

The direct translation was a simplification of an overly complicated pheromone marker indicating a specific type of bee. Or perhaps, something closer to a bee spirit. They were long gone bees imbued with enough of the Queen’s magic that they grew to the size of half a human, while taking on more humanoid characteristics. Like the Queen’s true form, but these were made to be her direct bodyguards- or the bodyguards of her Princesses. They were relatively unique, in that they weren’t quite bee anymore but they weren’t quite Apparition either.

But it was a good fit. She was the only one above him in the pecking order, seeing as she was an Apparition that could create more to fill the role of Princesses.

The bees immediately understood, growing even more excited. And underneath their excitement, they were practically begging for his attention. Not only that, but they were asking for a path to tasty nectar. Guidance, like as the important Friend-Knight he would know where the best flowers were.

And he did! Every chemical shout and cry was a new sensation bombing down into his mind as he looked back and forth toward each and every little bee. White Lux made it far easier for him to keep track of them, heightening his senses and opening himself up to subtleties that spread out from each source independently. But the call to be led and directed was hardly subtle. The cacophonous outpouring, overwhelming in its own sense, didn’t actually die down until he figured out how to change their signals up and reproduce them himself.

White Lux once again came into play, and rather than simply telling them that they’d all be fed soon, he tried something strange. Pushing a good memory, he began to channel a futuresight spell that showed the observer the future of the caster’s choosing. It was simple, but as it converted outward into magical bee pheromones, he wondered if their brains were even complex enough to handle foresight. Still, the future he conjured was very real, if not a little bit of time off. One where they were all downstairs, eating fruit together. Friend and his Friends. And Mom of course. She’d have to be there.

If successful, it was a strong enough spell that Trisha would also be able to perceive the future he was projecting, if only through the veil of her Emotional Field.

Trisha’s brow furrowed slightly as she sensed the strange pheromones, taking a moment to parse out the image. But for her it was clear. Not quite an actual image, because she didn’t visualise pheromones. They were like a sixth sense for her but… She could perceive it. It was odd, having a sense of understanding of a future he was trying to show without really seeing it. Fruit, friends, happiness.

On the other hand, the noisy bees’ couldn’t understand it. They were smarter than normal bees, but not enough to handle foresight. Strange pheromones and strange images that came with it led to them being perceptibly confused. Not only did their confusion radiate off them in pheromones, a group of them flopped onto their backs and flailed their legs around in the air. One that perceived it the most tried to eat fruit that wasn’t there, sticking out her proboscis and tickling Casey with it.

But they didn’t seem distressed at least. Just incredibly confused.

“Now I have to bring them down with us.” Trisha giggled softly, as the pheromone future stopped playing across her senses.
“I did promise Cass I’d show her some of the new ones when I had them… Though I don’t want to end up the centre of attention if I bring any of those.”

”That’ll be fine. You’ve got an extra layer between us to distract them. Cass’ll get super excited, and I’ll swoop in with my brand new gift, so she’ll be too distracted to ask you a bunch of questions and shit. I wanna show off, actually.”

Casey did his best to correct his mistake by shaking his head and making way for the fridge. It didn’t have a lot left because of how close they were to leaving, but there was always going to be something sweet and fruity in the fridge as long as he was around. Pulling a pair of peaches from the produce drawer, it didn’t take him long to start splitting the thing up into tiny pieces for each of the several dozen guests who were now doing the crazy dance. This command, he figured, would be much more direct. Friend has food. Friend is pointing at food. There’s food for everyone. It’s awesome.

The bees didn’t need much encouragement. The ones on their backs flipped back round, and the whole group swarmed from Casey onto the little pieces of fruit. They immediately started to devour it contentedly. As they ate, their pheromones were much less noisy- at least they weren’t in Casey’s space and directing them at him. They just let out little contented signals in the air.

“You should show off. You’re a natural.” Trisha smiled at him, her eyes shining with warmth. She was glad he’d taken to the gift so well. There were a lot of ways it could’ve gone, and she was great at focusing on the possible negative outcomes. But none of them had happened in the end. And he was right that Cass would be excited enough about the new bees and seeing what his gift did… Trisha wouldn’t have to deal with everyone’s focus being on her.

“These ones will share your pheromone signal with the others in their hive, so they’ll recognise you. I’ll have to identify you to the other Hive, and I’m not sure if the new types share information with the honey bees.” Trisha continued. She’d split the original hive out into two of the environments, putting a smaller group into a second a while back. The new honey bees she’d gotten- enough to make up for those lost and more, as she’d gotten efficient at growing them- were added to that hive. Her new bee species- Steel Bomber Bees and Soldier Bees- were with them too, though they didn’t keep to a hive in the same way. She had a small group of yet another species- bigger, more robust and buff bees with spikes on their abdomen that specialised in crushing things- that would emerge by the end of the day. Those were the group she was least sure about of the new ones she’d made, which was why she’d left them till last.

There were so many different types of bees she could make, and they’d made a list between them of priorities. But even with that, she’d barely scratched the surface. At least the Soldier Bees were made from honey bees, and she’d quickly figured out how to implant honey bee larvae as quickly as possible. A thousand in an hour by the end of the first day, and she was only getting faster. The Steel Bombers had taken more work, as had the Buff Crushers.

“I’m really glad you like it. I know there’s the laptop, but that’s only predefined commands. I thought it’d be useful if you could command them on the fly… And more than that, it’s another thing in my life I wanted you to be a part of. The bees are such an important thing in my life, and I wanted you to be able to communicate with them.”

Casey nodded emphatically. In truth, the only reason they really needed the computer system at this point was to go through the equipping of the bees as a mechanism. With Trisha’s awakening, and this new development on the ethereal side of bee communication technology, Casey figured there probably wasn’t any real reason to use the directory system except in the case that they were fielding an overwhelming number of bees.

”You bring up a good point, actually. Have you had time to think about how controlling a lot of bees would go? Because if you think at some point you’d be able to handle dealing with a literal fuck-ton of them, we’ve pretty much outgrown the box thanks to your new open line to the-”

Bee-kashik Record…

”-Well, whatever it is the Queen knows. If you study how she handles mass numbers, chances are you’d be able to direct them better through magic than technology.”

Trisha nodded.

“I haven’t studied that yet… But she used to have millions. I imagine I’ll be able to handle a lot, as long as my brain can, and that’s bolstered by the Queen’s magic now, right? Though we’re not at numbers I can’t control yet. I’ve got almost eighty thousand honey bees, which was the largest number I had while fighting the Snake, and only a couple of hundred of the other two.” She spoke matter of factly for a moment, eyes losing a bit of emotion as she focused on the practical side of the current bee situation. She still thought the box might be useful, in case she panicked under the stress of a fight. But if she panicked and her pheromones went wild, would they really listen to the pre-programmed commands or Casey?

She bit her lip, pushing that thought down. She wouldn’t panic when the stakes were that high. It had only occasionally happened when fighting the Stygian Snake, and she’d been much younger with worse control then.

Instead, her mind turned to something else.
“Can you turn it off? Reading their pheromones, I mean. They can be quite noisy… I meant for it to be something you chose to read rather than always on.”

Casey laughed, realizing that she didn’t quite understand how their family’s magic worked. Which made sense, because the entire Tribe were not normal kinds of Adepts. His gut reaction was to just tell her that he could, because by technicality, he could do something similar to shutting it off. But, for him, and as something designed with Mia’s help, it’d never be fully off. They’d all been taught circulatory channeling, where the only time they weren’t engaged in casting a low level sensory-enhancement spell was when the circuit was broken by a lack of channeler.

Now that this new object was always going to be against his chest, he’d have to re-learn how to contend with compartmentalization. Which, he imagined, would begin to help with how loud the bees were.

”I’d have to take it off! It’s like glasses, kind of. You get reexamined, things are worse, suddenly you’ve gotta get used to a new magnification to see the same old shit you always have. I’ll be fine; and I’d want to get used to hearing a lot of them anyway. It may be useful to me if you could get more, honestly.” he thought, understanding that he’d probably feel a bit overwhelmed by how crowded things would be, but also understanding that they were bees, and not stupid mewling apes breathing in his vicinity and laughing while touching one another’s faces and hands and-

”It would. There’s gonna be times where there’s a lot of them! I’d rather bee used to the noise when it comes. I got used to bombs dropping. No shellshock for me, thank God.”

Trisha let out a soft, breathy laugh, clasping her hands together and looking a little uncomfortable. Not because of him, but because she hadn’t realised it would be like that. She should’ve told him what it did first and asked! Now he couldn’t take it off… Because it was his Channeler, wasn’t it? If he took it off, he couldn’t use magic. She hadn’t meant to curse him with constant noise. She wasn’t sure how he saw the pheromones either. It was probably quite different to how she did. For her, it didn’t overwhelm her other senses. Though it could overwhelm her if there was enough, especially emotionally.

“Are you sure? How many more? They’ll be curious, and probably swarm you. They’ll be blasting you.” She asked, rocking from the balls of her feet to her heels. Maybe she shouldn’t doubt him. He had gotten used to bombs, like he said. But it wasn’t doubt! She just knew what it was like. It wasn't actual noise, like the buzzing. It was just constant, because they were always communicating with each other. Simple things, normally. She was used to tuning them out. But they were her bees, and it was her magic.

“It will be the noisiest they get. They’re always giving off pheromones, but often it’s simple communication between them. You learn to pick up only the important signals, and get used to the constant pheromones. But… I really didn’t mean for it to be a constant thing. I know you’ve said you’ll be fine, but I’m sorry you’ll have to get used to them.”

Casey shrugged, knowing that this is what he’d had bee suits made for.
”When we go downstairs, we’ll stop at the Greenhouse and go inside. I’ll just get saying hello over with, and I’ll get one of the bee suits out of storage. So long as they don’t cook me to death, we should be great.” he concluded, taking a slice of peach for himself.

”Unless you’d rather not, obviously. We can save it for another time: I’m not trying to force you into anything you don’t want to do!” he explained gently.

“We should do it today, since we’re going away tomorrow.” Trisha responded, managing to relax a bit and nod. She wasn’t that worried they’d hurt him, but it was better to be safe this first time. Then, they’d know who he was and she wouldn’t have to worry at all.


A short while later, the two were headed downstairs to the basement apartment. The quick visit to the Greenhouse had gone well. The honey bees had swarmed Casey just like Trisha had expected, but with her guiding them, they quickly got used to this sort of new Knight-Friend maybe bee. At least the Soldier Bees were more chill- more intelligent than the honey bees, they were calm and generally stuck close to Trisha when she was around no matter what. The Steel Bombers, on the other hand, had been a bit of a worry- but they were friendly, if overly excited. It was surprising how little difference iron fiber fur made when it came to them swarming a person. The danger was when they weaved those fibres into something more solid. When not acting aggressively, they were just like heavier, slightly rougher bumblebees.

Trisha had brought a small group of bees out with her. Around thirty honey bees crawled on both her and Casey, with two Soldier Bees sitting on her shoulders. Their sleek bodies make them look more like hornets, though they were larger than the majority of hornets you’d find too. Around five centimetres from head to tail, they looked both regal and naturally intimidating with their elongated jaws and sharpened sting. There were two Steel Bomber bees with her too, though the fuzzy creatures had crawled into her comfortable emerald wool jumper to tumble around.

“I’m a little worried about what Cass might have gotten us.” Trisha commented as the elevator neared the bottom floor, most of the short journey down spent in comfortable silence. She was glad they were able to have that again, even if it was just while they were both feeling a bit better. She leaned against Casey, letting the bees move between them as they pleased.

“We’d always do a small potluck before everyone left for the holidays, and she did these ‘funny’ gifts. Some years were awful. I’m worried she’ll decide to get us some inappropriate couple gift this year.”

Casey was busy fiddling with his new good natured friends. He’d found the Bombers to be just a bit more ditzy than the actual Honeys, which made them that much more endearing. Like puppies he could talk to, “Friend” was more than willing to impose himself upon them. Several signals Trisha could’ve felt would’ve translated out into what could only be described as rolecalls. Casey would exert the signal, and the Soldiers would give instant responses, followed by the myriad of typical workers…

Then the two metal bumblers…

It was almost comical how lackadaisical they were, and he wondered if it was more because of how distracted they were by Trisha’s sweater than their lack of reflexiveness. They seemed to have some kind of tactile obsession, perhaps a fixation for softness where their lives were spent as reverse pincushions.

”Well… There’s a chance that Leon’s discouraged her from doing that in lieu of how we’ve been acting lately. I can see that being a possibility.” he admitted, shrugging his shoulders and returning his full attention to the situation at hand.

They were almost down, so he also bent down to pick the still-wrapped gifts up in order to bring them through the hall.

“True… There’s only a fifty percent chance she’d actually listen, though.” Trisha responded. Though if Cass got them some horrendous sex toy or sexy outfits, Trisha could just throw it in her face- literally. It would hardly hurt her. But she did hope there wouldn’t be anything like that… As much as she said otherwise, she trusted her friend that much.

Just not entirely. There’d been some awful ones during their University years.

As the elevator stopped, Trisha took a deep breath before shuffling out. She was looking forward to this. It would be nice. But it was difficult to stop her anxiety from ticking back up again. A lot had happened since she last saw Cass and Leon, nevermind the girls.

Thankfully she didn’t have anything to carry, her gifts all small enough that she’d fit them in one gift bag on Casey’s stack. It made it easier for her to walk while the two Bombers were playing inside her sweater, probably slowly tearing it to shreds from the inside. It was a nice one too… But it was fine. Their enjoyment of it was cute, and they were good enough at ensuring their metallic ‘fur’ lay flat whenever they hit her.

“I’m going to need to get a whole bunch of wool sweaters to wear just around these guys, so they don’t ruin my nicest ones.” She commented, looking up at Casey with a smile. As if protesting that comment, one peered her little head out. Her forelegs clung to the neck of the sweater, fuzzy metallic body rubbing against it even more enthusiastically.

“Though, I like how playful they are. I’d find it strange if most of the new bees were calm.”

He found that a little odd. Why wouldn’t they be calm? They didn’t know anything else but an artificial life between her and their hive. They were practically newborns! Outside stimulus, he figured, was the only reason they’d have for freaking out… Like the sweater!

”Maybe we could line part of their hive with wool? I mean, there’s no fire hazards around anywhere, and they don’t seem to cause enough friction to burst into flames. So, why not give them places to cuddle up and roll around? There’s even a chance that they’re so instinctively attracted to it that they teach one another not to wax it up. Or, maybe they just rub it so much that anyone who does try waxing over it just gets their work ruined?”

Intentionally, he dragged himself slightly as he exited the elevator. He knew for a fact that this was going to be a lot more awkward for him than anyone else. Sure, he and Leon worked things out privately like they always did, but still: Facing Cass after almost ruining her birthday bash by bashing one of the birthday besties’ honored guests was not his intention. And it was incredibly embarrassing to be doing so so quickly. He knew she wasn’t the type to judge like that, but he still carried the shame. It wouldn’t be easy, but he hoped that Cass would be quick and open with her affection like usual. Anything else, he wasn’t sure how he’d take it.

Her disliking him, or worse, being afraid of him for some God forsaken reason, would really hurt. But, he only had himself to blame, right?

Trisha hung back with Casey, moving intentionally slowly when she noticed he was too. She could guess why… Well, it wasn't even a guess. He'd told her about how he felt when it came to facing other people, both after what happened at the party and then at Halcyon. She couldn't take his hand like she wanted to since he was carrying the large bundle of presents in his arms. So instead she just reached out to rub his arm comfortingly, without verbally acknowledging his hesitation.

“That’d be a good idea. I imagine the honey bees wouldn't choose to put wax on it when they have plenty of empty space elsewhere anyway… Wool isn't ideal for making any kind of comb. They'd normally only move into stuff like that if they ran out of space, which isn't a risk!" She said with a smile, gently tapping the steely girl peeking out. She wriggled away back into the wool sweater to play.
“Especially since there aren't many of these ones yet. They could all fit in one sweater. Maybe I'll just donate this one and call it a day. Or maybe it can be your Christmas gift to the girls… Some wool lining."

She glanced towards the door they were slowly approaching now. No one had come out yet, like last time… Though, she hadn't texted Cass to say that they were on their way down. Her friend had seemed incredibly chill with the whole pop down anytime thing… And it felt like maybe there'd be less of a fuss if they just turned up. Maybe.

“Hopefully no one else is wearing wool, though. These two might get too excited."

Casey could easily feel Trisha’s tender acknowledgement of his anxiety. That was exactly the kind of thing he needed, thankfully. He wanted Trisha’s love and tenderness without feeling smothered. He hadn’t had the chance to fully explain yet, how he sometimes got cuddle anxiety when she was the one doing the hanging. How on the good days, it was fine… But the bad days, she just felt like a body. Too much like any of the bodies he’d held dead in his arms, or over his shoulders, when things were at their worst. He would at some point, but he feared the potential of overreaction.
Which explained his own clingyness. If he was doing all the smothering, she had to use all of her muscles and strain back against him in order to cuddle back. She was alive again, and not in a “painful flailing” fashion either. Just slow, purposeful movement.

Just like this arm rub now. He smiled down at her, and he tilted his head down to plant a kiss on the top of hers.

”That’s an easy win. If they could all fit in one sweater, I’ll get ‘em ten. There’s crazy Army surp that’s available still. I can get a crate of wool pullovers, frankly, we could let them go crazy with it.”

As he got to the door, he was about to start kicking it like he was knocking, then stopped himself and closed his eyes. He didn’t want to be intrusive, and really didn’t want to seem like he was in a bad or aggressive mood. Today was relatively level, even if the level was still low. Besides, they’d said “come down whenever!” So, he figured they were allowed to just walk in without getting assaulted by naked people or some other known potential situation.

”Can you get it, Honeybee?” Casey asked, doing his best to be cute.

“I supppoose.” Trisha jokingly groaned, smiling cutely back at him. She leaned up to press a light kiss on his cheek, before going to knock.

Anxiety aside, his arms were full. It made sense that she knocked, with her hands being free. Or… Could they just walk in? With the whole come down whenever, they might’ve made it easier for them, right? Something to avoid that awkwardness of forcing someone to come get the door for you.

Though she’d already knocked- albeit not that loudly- she went to push the door open rather than waiting. It had been unlocked, which was nice. She shuffled forward, holding the door open to let Casey in too.

Before she had a chance to say anything, there was a sudden shift in the bees. Not all of them. The Soldiers on her shoulders were still calm, and her old honey bees happily settled on her or their new friend. It was the new ones, including the two tumbling around in her sweater.

They were suddenly blasting out excited pheromones and before Trisha could react, the two Bombers and about half the honey bees shot down the corridor and further into the apartment.

Ahhh, no, girls, you can’t! It’s hot! I’m cooking, it ain’t for bee consumption yet-” Cass shouted loud enough that it’d be impossible to not hear her.
”Huh?! I know I’m so hot even bees recognise it, but now ain’t the time to cling!”

Trisha stared wide eyed after the bees, before looking up at Casey with some amount of confusion. She hadn’t sent the bees to Cass… Sure, they could get excited, but normally not like this. The only time any had acted like this was when Casey had fruit for them… Or this morning, when he started communicating with them.

But they weren’t attacking. They were excited. So… It was probably fine. No need to panic! There was probably just something that smelled nice in the kitchen.

“I guess I should go rescue her?” Trisha said quietly to Casey, though she wasn’t rushing after her bees.

Casey’s eyes narrowed at the situation. There wasn’t any immediate explanation for their behavior, but he recognized the possibility almost right away.

”Well, they’re not eggmakers, are they?” he asked ominously as he walked through the door.

Before Trisha could answer, Casey was walloped from behind, wind nearly knocked out of him as two thumping footsteps turned into a spider monkey wrapping around him and squeezing tight. At least she didn’t feel dead…

”Where the Hell have you been!?” Mia’s voice echoed from behind both of them.
”I texted you six times, and you never answered once!”

Casey grimaced at Trisha, then closed his eyes with a frown.
Honesty, honesty, honesty-

”Too embarrassed to answer. I wanted to let things cool down bef-”

Mia’s arms squeezed harder with that surprising Richoux strength naturally built into her lanky frame. Casey choked out slightly as the air started to be compressed out of his lungs.

”I can’t blame a triceratops for doing what it does. You’re like an elephant in a room full of mice. I just love you.

Still frowning, Casey nodded and gave Trisha a smile as he used the packages to urge her into Leon’s side of the apartment. For the moment, it was only Cass in the kitchen, with Leon somewhere else for the immediate moment. He figured they’d split the current “opposition”.

Trisha did twist around slightly to look at Mia with a smile. Even though she’d quite literally pounced on them- well, Casey- it would be rude to not greet her.

“Hey, Mia. It’s nice to see you.” She said simply, before going along with Casey’s gentle package nudge to move into Leon’s side and the large, main room there.

Cass had moved away from the stove and the variety of things she seemed to be cooking. Some kind of vegetable medley, a thick looking sauce, and what looked and smelt like mulled wine. All four of her hands were thrown in the air as the honey bees clung to her, the two Bombers going absolutely crazy crawling all over her goofy Christmas sweater. Antennae had popped out of her head, but it wasn’t actually helpful- she could sense their pheromones but couldn’t really understand them!

Trriiissshhhaaa, why do your bees suddenly adore me?” Cass playfully wailed as Trisha entertained, though she was laughing away as the bees crawled over her.

Trisha furrowed her brow as she concentrated on the pheromones they were giving off. It was difficult to tell, until the two Soldiers bowed towards Cass and gave their own pheromonal greeting. Ah.

“They recognise your magic, I guess. They were all born from your… Well, y’know. So they recognise you.” She was surprised by it. The limbs Cass provided must’ve been saturated in her magic for them to recognise her like this when she wasn’t giving off any pheromones.

Ohhhh... So you recognise your other Ma, huh?!” Cass grinned, going to rub one of the Bombers on the back- and getting nicked on the finger as the spiky girl rubbed back. It healed immediately, so it wasn’t an issue. Not quite so distracted by the bees now that she knew what was going on, she turned to properly face the couple as they came in.

”Hey Trisha, Casey! Glad you made it- I’d hug you both, but I don’t wanna squish the bees!” She was incredibly enthusiastic in her greeting, like always, though there was no leaping at them like she’d wanted to with the small group of bees all over her. Just in case! After what happened at her party, she’d had some pretty choice words she’d wanted to hit Casey with… But Leon had worked shit out with him. If he said it was sorted, it was sorted for her too.

”You’re gonna have to wait till they get bored of me… But get comfy! There’s loadsa drinks in the fridge, or if you wait a lil bit there’ll be some nice mulled wine. We got a shit ton of snacks and fruit and shit too- though my lovely kitchen assistant ain’t here to get ‘em out for me.”

At the mention of kitchen assistant, Casey felt the weight climb off his back and down to the floor. As Mia brushed past him, she passively leaned her head against Trisha’s shoulder for a brief moment.

”Hi Sissy…” she said to Trisha with something of a pouty voice.

In truth, she knew they were both probably still feeling down. It was all she could do without making the assumption that she’d be making Trisha uncomfortable. Hell, she was pretty sure this little gesture of sisterly love would probably be too much, but she couldn’t help herself. It was nice that at least Cass wasn’t so stingy with her love. She intended to move away, assuming she’d need to make herself as scarce as she could in avoidance of the inevitable discomfort.

Before Mia could move away, Trisha turned towards her- hesitantly, but she didn’t pause much as she actually went to hug Mia. It was a loose hug, a bit stiff, but it was one mostly given by her own choice.

It was partly because she could hear Casey’s words echoing in her mind from their fight.
You wouldn’t even let her fucking hug you!

He’d been right. She’d barely let Gin have or show any of the affection she’d wanted to- because she wasn’t used to it, and was letting herself slowly get used to it. Eventually, she thought there’d be a day where she’d be better with it. She’d never be like they were, but at least she’d not dislike it. But Gin wasn’t here anymore. So… She wanted to try harder. It wasn’t a natural way for her to show her affection towards anyone but her partner, but she did like Mia. So she should do her best to show it in the way everyone else but her did.

Mia froze, like there was some sort of creature at the door. Not that she was actually in any kind of fear; it was a complete and total shock to her. The idea that she felt the return, and nobody else had prompted for it, was simply not what Mia was used to at this point. It seemed unnatural. She took a hail mary guess that she wasn’t feeling good about the latest problems either.

How close the End was.

So, she lingered a moment longer. Long enough to show Trisha what a real hug from someone who wasn’t Cass or Casey really felt like. She fully turned to face Trisha, her tall frame bending and letting both arms slip under Trisha’s and squeezing slightly.

”This is a really nice gift. Thank you.” she whispered before turning her head slightly.

”I’ll get it all in a sec, Ass-ass!”

She didn’t even begin to imagine that hearing someone else giving her best friend a pet name that seemed so casual may actually have an emotional effect on Trisha. She never could’ve imagined that Trisha may feel some kind of creeping insecurity over all the time spent around the girls, and whether or not Trisha would feel like she was being replaced.

But Casey thought about it as he moved toward the spot where the family Christmas tree had always been set up: Right behind the couch, with a big black curtain framing it from the rear to prevent the light from outshining the television set. There were the other gifts from his grandparents, and plenty of other packages to pick and pluck through. This was the girls’ Christmas too, after all. Nobody expected to have the time for it on the actual holiday.

”I think I can take care of both your problems, Cass.”

He moved to the fridge, and before he’d even opened it, he was sending the signal for the dinner bell to the bees. The first thing he pulled out was the massive tray of fruit. Casey had to laugh. He didn’t know how these two idiots found the time for all this chopping and domestic housework, but it was incredibly amusing to be looking at a cartoonish amount of sliced fruit.

Cass had even gone through the trouble of making flowers and other designs out of it. He almost felt bad as he eyed what he assumed was a watermelon poinsettia.

Almost. Letting his magic radiate, he set the fruit platter down and pulled open the clingfilm, leaving it fully accessible to the bees.

The honey bees didn’t hesitate, immediately buzzing away from Cass and descending onto the fruit. The ones still on Casey and Trisha did too, joining their new sisters in fruit devouring. The Bombers took another moment to rub their fuzzy asses on Cass’ sweater before following. It left only the Soldiers on Trisha’s shoulders still.

”Whoa, you’re giving off pheromones now too?! Did Trisha sting you with some radioactive bee juice?!” Cass laughed, shaking her arms now that she was bee free. She turned for a moment to give everything under stir, before doing just what she said she’d do- going in for the hug. Casey was closest, so he got the Cass jump and squeeze first. Awfully similar to how Mia had jumped on him…

Trisha managed to not get any tenser as Mia hugged her back- to be expected- even as the anxiety crept in. Her and Cass had gotten so close so quickly… It was the same with all of the girls. Obviously it made Trisha worried. She knew Cass was someone who could easily have loads of friends in her life. But eventually she’d realise Trisha wasn’t really worth it, wouldn’t she? The worries were only stronger after the near breakup. She should be glad Cass got on with everyone so well. She was!

But it also meant she wasn’t needed. Cass had integrated into the family easier than she had… If something really did happen between her and Casey, Trisha would probably lose all of it.

It wasn’t Mia’s fault. So, Trisha managed to keep herself at the same awkward level she’d been when she initiated the hug. That wasn’t bad. Just uncomfortable.

“Why is your first assumption something like that?” Trisha asked. She paused before she followed Casey into the room properly, even as Mia let go. She lowered her voice even though Cass could probably still hear- but she wanted to let Casey show off the gift, rather than just outright saying what it was.
“Thank you too… For helping with Casey’s gift.”

Hopefully Cass was equally distracted by Casey’s own pensive whispers. At least enough that she could somewhat ignore the conversation on the other side of the room.

”I’m… Not making today sad or anything. I just haven’t apologized to you directly yet. I’m very sorry for how I acted and for the things I said the other night. And, I hope after we left, you guys got back on with it and I didn’t ruin the mood entirely. I’m… I’m ashamed and, uh…-”

He paused trying to look for the words while he clung to her tightly. He felt like an animal, even a few minutes after it happened. In the cab ride back, drunk as he was, he felt like a beast. Like some untamed boar.

Mia certainly wasn’t listening to her brother at the moment either. All she heard was the gratitude in front of her.

”-You may not realize, but… That was the second gift you gave me. Uh… Nana and I, y’see… Well… She’s never been thrilled with me. But, Papa called, and asked if I had any insight about it! The piece I mean. When I explained that I’d already worked with the Queen’s frequency, they asked me out to the island… I spent the day with Nana, and showed her how to work with it like I did with Princess. We actually managed to use some pretty crazy Purple Lux machine to backtrace the pheromones that the bee in the amber produced, and those let us directly tap the magical frequency. She… Actually apologized to me. Because she’s said some nasty things to me in my life…-”

Mia’s eyes were filling up with tears rapidly. Thankfully, or maybe it was more of a hope: Not all Richoux were crybabies. Just these ones. Because at the same time she was tearing up, so was Casey as he tried to explain just how sorry he was to Cass.

”-and I really want to just drive home that it’s real warm to me. Things have just been so fucking hard lately, and she and I are both down, which is alright and I know we’ll work through it. But, its so hard to focus inwardly on our own mental health, and it just gets harder to do for people outside. It makes me feel real stupid, like we should’ve just taken your offer and stayed home. I thought I was trying really hard, and it was more like I was a briefcase bomb.”

”It’s alright, dude, I forgive you for all’ve that. Sure, it was pretty shit! But it didn’t ruin the mood- gotta do a lot more than that. I mean, I did have to deal with Lee’s apologies and anger after- but anyway! He said you guys hashed it out, so that’s good enough for me.” Cass said after Casey finally stopped babbling, patting his back as she did so.

”I appreciate the apology, but there ain’t any grudge holding here! Just do me a favour and, y’know, like you said ‘bout taking my offer… Just say if you ain’t up to something! Wayyy better that way, and I ain’t ever gonna hold it against you. You ‘n Trisha both really gotta work on that… It’s water under the bridge! Hopefully it ain’t gonna happen again, but if it does, we’ll just deal with it all again- I might just beat you up a bit this time.” She laughed, so she was probably joking.
”We’re basically family, after all! So I ain’t gonna hold hard times against ya- even if I don’t hold back ‘bout telling you what I think was fucked up and shit, y’know?”

Unlike Cass, Trisha was a bit more unsure about how to respond to the emotional Richoux she was dealing with. She really didn’t feel like she could take any credit for that. When she’d asked Sylvie to make a piece for Casey, she hadn’t thought about Mia being involved. It made sense but hadn’t been the intention. And she barely knew what their relationship was like… Though she maybe could’ve guessed with how Sylvie talked about Elise.

She understood what it was like to hear nasty things from a family member. More than she’d like to admit, really. Older siblings, younger siblings… Her Mom. She’d probably be elated if she got anything close to an apology from Maria.

“I’m… Glad. I really don’t think it’s a gift from me because I didn’t know, but- I’m glad it set up an opportunity for you two to talk. And for her to apologise.” While she was struggling with what to say, she reached out to awkwardly pat Mia’s arm. There was so much she could say, but that required revealing more about herself. Should she? Could she?

“I know what it’s like to have family who isn’t the nicest to you. N-Nothing on that level, not where truly nasty things are said- But I understand a bit. So I’m happy for you because… Well, I don’t think you deserved whatever feelings she had towards you before…”

Mia immediately shook her head in agreement, hands coming up to practically push the tears back into her skull. She’d always been a lost goose trapped between two worlds. Never native enough to relate to her Mother’s family, and never Richoux enough for her Father’s. Big Max wasn’t particularly cross with any of his grandchildren, and his namesake’s children were all far closer than the others.
And that’s probably why Sylvie’s feelings were so strong as well. Proximity, time spent, and being able to see the concept of Mia’s future slowly fall away.

After the Emancipation trip, when the three girls had gotten home, Sylvie had been the first one to send a formal letter condemning Lynette’s choice to allow her daughter and the other two back into the fold. After all… Ed was her granddaughter too. Aletta L’matise was born Aletta Richoux, and was probably the most neglected of the pair’s children being the absolute youngest and a girl. When the Emancipation came for the throuple, both Ed and Mia became clean and open about their relationship, and when they returned with a freshly Aberrated Ed, all leeway fell into an abyss.

”Well, y’know, you’re only allowed to be a gay drug addict if you’re useful to the clan… It’s still a little bittersweet, but hopefully its the door to something better. For me and Ed both… She went too. We all had a cry, I think. It’s typical of you… To redirect thanks. It’s not the first time you’ve done it in front of me. It’s okay, obviously, because I’m really hoping that deep inside, you can feel my love and that I’m coming from a real place.”

She didn’t say such a statement with a great deal of emotion. She had come to recognize that Trisha had a few robotic habits, and hoped that having a little bit of a mechanical vibe herself would put Trisha somewhat at ease. She spoke with an incredibly matter-of-fact tone, and didn’t hesitate to gag Trisha with another hug, which was more like a quick peck.

”And I don’t mind keeping it up as long as you need me to. And one day, we’ll be at Sylvie’s funeral together. And when I slap her stupid dead face, you’ll love me enough to back me up when shit comes apart. I’d bet money on it.” she grinned.

Casey had heard the last few moments, and grimaced as he thought about how Trisha could possibly react to everything Mia said. It was, after all, not exactly something nice or comforting to do… To point out what she felt was one of Trisha’s flaws… Or, was it said as a flaw? Was it an insult? If he couldn’t tell, he didn’t know how Trisha would fair. He patted Cass’ arm with the back of his hand, throwing his finger up to his lips before pointing at the two.

Cass’ eyes widened slightly and she cautiously, silently, leaned to the side to peer past Casey at Trisha and Mia. Her ears perked up, practically listening for any emotional distress or snappiness in Trisha’s response. She didn’t want any fighting today, after all!

Trisha did tense up, not returning Mia’s brief hug as her hands gripped into the fabric of her jeans. What did she mean it was typical of Trisha? She just didn’t feel like she deserved the thanks. It wasn’t like she’d done anything. Her reacting the way she didn’t wasn’t because she thought Mia’s feelings were insincere.

It made Trisha feel like it was yet another person judging her for- and scared of- how she reacted to things. She wasn’t sure she could say she loved Mia yet- because she truly didn’t know what familial love was like. But she was her as a friend… And while she liked Sylvie too, she wasn’t exactly on the side of the grandparent who didn’t accept a young grandchild. She had too much experience of family judgment herself.

It was hard not to react when it felt like Mia was calling her cold. Like she didn’t feel things because she reacted the way she did, but also that some act needed to be kept up to keep her happy… She really didn’t know what to say that wasn’t getting upset. She hated this kind of thing being pointed out.

But she also didn’t want to ruin the day. It was a real fight with herself to push through it, but how everyone would react if she snapped would be worse.

“There won’t be any of that in the future.” She got out, incredibly stiffly. In the end, the only way to not get upset was to not actually respond to anything Mia said about her flaws. She knew she had them. She didn’t need it brought up.
“The having to be useful thing. You’ll always have a place with us.”

Mia smiled, giving a simple nod. Casey, in turn, gave a brief look at Cass that screamed “Oh shit.” before starting to make his way toward the two of them.

”I just… Want you to feel like you deserve the gift I have for you in return. Because I didn’t have a lot planned before that trip. And when we left,- Ed and I, I mean -I just… Started thinking more and more about how you make me feel. Not to mention, uh… Well, I’m really not gonna have many friends in a few weeks, here. Already losing some.”

Casey managed to step in close enough that it didn’t seem awkward for him to jump in.
”Mimi…” he said with a rather exhausted voice.
”We can’t be doing this to people, bud.”

She frowned at her brother before wincing.
”I’m… A fu-”

Casey pushed forward, pulling his little sister into a hug.
”I’ve learned over time that we’re misery spreaders. It’s as natural as breathing. Juuuuust take it easy, and enjoy our early Christmas without starting arguments about who deserves what.”

Mia palmed her face, gently slapping her forehead a few times. Thankfully, right around that time, the others were swaggering back in from the side hall entrance. Ed was first, and had no singular clue about what was happening, but she was wearing a hilariously vulgar ugly Christmas sweater. It had Santa holding a black cat in his hands, with the words “Pussy or Coal, you decide.” in bright green bubble letters.

”Oh, heyyyyy guys!”
Though, she was pretty quick to notice Mia’s forehead gripping.
”Baby giiiiirl? What’s wrong now, is the holiday getting to you?”

”You know damn well what’s getting to me!” she snapped a reply, avoiding making it sound so harsh that she’d be considered rude while still getting her point across.

Ed pursed her lips and nodded.

”Yep, yeah… Fair, fair.
She seemed good enough to brush it off herself, however, waving at Trisha and Casey as the other two made more formal introductions.

”Hi you guys… Cass said you may come down, so we uh-”

Leon was proudly waving more grocery bags.

”Pretty sure I said ‘Lets go get s’mores stuff and use the fireplace.’ Just saying.” Leon proudly announced.

”Yeah, yeah, you’re the guy with all the big ideas, we get it!” Cass teased, bouncing towards him with her arms out to take at least one grocery bag off him. Mostly cause it’d be more efficient for them both to unpack them.

Trisha was glad, for once, that the space filled up with more people. It meant she could mentally step back for a moment, taking a deep breath and pushing through any upset she felt. Because no matter what Mia said, if there was some big gift for her she probably wouldn’t feel like she deserved it. Especially not with what she had to give everyone… But if she said that, it would end up an argument like Casey said.

He’d stepped in and given them the chance to stop it being an argument, and then everyone else was here now… So there was no point going back to it.

“Hey everyone.” She said simply, managing to relax her body a bit again. At least there wasn’t obvious tension held in her shoulders. She did glance at Mia, giving her a slight smile she hoped read as everything being alright.
“I haven’t had s’mores in a long time… Are you planning to have them before actual food?”

”Well it ain’t like it really matters for most of us, does it? Turkey and roasts are gonna take a couple hours, anyway… Cause I’m making sure they’re cooked real nice. Really, it’s whatever everyone wants!” Cass shrugged.

Leon laughed aloud.
”Come come, Trisha… You know as well as I do that everyone in this room could eat half a horse by themselves. Of course we’re making s’mores now. And later.”

Hari had waddled a couple bundles of packed wood over to the hearth, setting them down before she pulled her jacket off. It was a much more PG sweater, though still sporting some seriously ugly printing. It was all from Santa’s Halloween, a stop motion movie that got made when they were all kids, and a favorite of people their age for both holidays involved.
It even had the scene where Santa and Rudolph win the hot cocoa contest against Jack Frost. Casey loved it every time she pulled it out.

”There it is! My favorite fucking sweater, ugh… You didn’t wear it Halloween!” Casey blurted out as he pointed at Hari.

”I did! Just, after we got to Mary’s place.”

Casey’s face turned to a grimace.

”Ugh… It better have been washed.” he stuck his tongue out.
”I wish they made that shit in my size. I could buy a small one and size it up, but every time I’ve done that, it gets super disproportionate. The arms turn into sails.”

Leon plucked a fruit off the plate before seeing a couple of silvery-grey bees hanging around and absolutely shredding a cantaloupe piece with their razorblade rear ends.

”Oh, shit, Trish! New bees!?” he pointed down at them with excitement.

Trisha nodded, smiling. The excitement was nice, even when she didn’t want to be the centre of attention. She still wanted to show them off.

“They were born just yesterday. Those two are a type me and Casey have been calling Steel Bombers. Their fluff is metallic, and they can solidify it into armour. They’re very friendly, though.” She explained, glancing at Cass.
“I’m glad you noticed, because Cass didn’t.”

”Hey, I noticed when they slammed their spiky butts into my face!” Cass protested with a laugh. She’d been about to force Casey to give his opinion on her ugly sweater, but with the topic turning to bees she stopped before she said anything. She was very visibly pulling it out though to show the full text.

This year she’d gotten something new, discarding her old, vulgar ways for something nerdier. It showed santa in a computer screen with text underneath it that read:
He’s making a database.
He’s sorting it twice.
Select * from contacts where behaviour = “Nice”
SQL Clause is coming to town!


”You missed it, Babe… They swarmed me when Trisha and Casey came in, cause they recognise their other Ma! Ain’t that cool! Not that I could understand any of the shit they were blasting at me.” She let go of her sweater, pointing finger guns at Casey.
“Also- can’t you just, like, get a small sweater and Orange Lux it up?! Or does that shit not work.”

Casey nodded at Cass.
”That’s what I meant! Watch, uh…-”

Casey spun, kissed Trisha, then sprinted off toward the other side of the apartment, raising Mia’s alert flag and causing her to rush after him.

”No, Casey, don’t! Use on-”

As their voices became muffled, Leon was busy observing the metal bees. Casey had talked about them briefly, and about his plans to network assassin bees that could remotely reduce their target to hamburger by simply existing. He let a finger out toward the distracted little ones, brushing it just like Cass and finding the exact same experience of skin shredding.

”I’ll bee damned. Do they make honey still?”

Casey ran back out from the other hallway, holding up what was clearly a woman’s small shirt. Only then did he notice Cass’ ugly sweater as he got closer, and narrowed his eyes.

”Computer stuff, right? I mean, I can’t really laugh at it if I don’t get it, but it definitely fits you. Now, watch!”

The magic… Always with the magic tricks. Casey was hopeless in focusing on anything else fully, and got to use his new channeler for the first time in front of everyone. Leon and Cass would now be able to smell a sweet, honeyed scent as Casey’s magic transferred through his hands to the shirt. As he pulled, the fabric stretched like he grabbed the corner of a desktop window. In doing so, the entire shape began to pull and tug out of whack. By the time the shoulders were the right size, the arms may as well have been tanktop arms. The openings were wide enough that Cass would’ve been able to slip her whole body into them.

”This is how it comes out naturally. Arms basically shrink, because I can’t figure out how to do it all accurately and separately. It’s just a weird medium, and shirts are a weird shape. There’s basically nothing in nature that’s commonly shaped like a human torso, right?”

”Godamn, if you wore that, you could fit Trisha in the sleeves and carry her about!” Cass cackled as she stared at the ridiculous looking garment. It looked ridiculous. Like the kind of shit some crazy shaped alien would wear.
”I suppose magic really doesn’t fix everything… Damn, you get some kinda magic scent when Trisha injected you with radioactive bee juice and made you Bee-Man?!”

While Cass didn’t always pay attention to small details, she definitely wouldn’t have missed if Casey smelled sweet every time he cast something.

“I told you, I didn’t inject him with anything.” Trisha pouted, attention moving from Casey’s cute excitement- at least he seemed excited- to answer Leon’s question.
“These ones don’t produce honey. Not really… They can still collect pollen and nectar and store it, but not in the same way honey bees do. It’s more like a snack left in the fridge for later than something they’re storing. If I tried to gather it, it would be more of a sweet liquid- and there wouldn’t be very much of it. They don’t overproduce either. They’re a lot like bumblebees, honestly, just… Made of metal.“

"They're fucking cute! Shame they're lil finger shredders." Cass grinned, bouncing away from Casey and the oddly shaped shirt to go back to the stove. She didn't want anything to burn! Though she made sure to bounce up to smack a drive by kiss against Leon's cheek as she went past.

“They’re actually quite good at flattening it if they expect it. If you make sure to stroke from head to stinger you can avoid it. If they couldn't, we probably wouldn't be here, because Casey would'ce had to rush me to hospital from them slicing open my stomach."

Leon was happy to return the favor with a driveby ass slapping, massive hand cupping the whole cheek on entry. He could smell the magic in the scent of Casey’s spell as deeply as he could smell Trisha’s constant reeking. It wasn’t her fault, and it wasn’t an unpleasant scent at all. Honey was delicious, and Trisha’s product was especially so. He’d not ever managed to get close enough when they were kids, but then he ultimately wasn’t sure she was even trying to make honey then. For all he knew, she didn’t do much of anything: It’d never been his first choice to hang out with her. Not until these days, anyway… Even though Casey had made an ass of himself, she pulled it together and wrangled him when it mattered most.

It was a moment of respect, not embarrassment, that he perceived. At least for her. Casey… Well, he still felt like Casey deserved a big sack of coal for Christmas. But, instead, there was magic radiating around his neck. Strong St. Portwell Richoux magic. An orange creamsicle, now featuring Trisha. His eyes wandered to Casey’s neck, and both Leon and Lelou honed in on a surprising new piece of jewelry tucked between his dogtags.

Well, I’ll be damned a second time.
Beezard. It smells like Nana a bit too.
It’s jewelry, is it not?

”Ah, yeah… They’ve got this thing about soft surfaces, I guess. Wool… I’m gonna get some surplus sweaters from the Reserves, and staple them in a big patch on the Bomber hangar wall. After all, if they’re not making honey, is it really a hive? They’re bombers. They live in a hangar.” Casey grinned widely, doing his best to shrink the shirt back down to normal..

”I’m sincerely trying to figure out whether or not you’re dumb for that joke.” Ed responded almost immediately, an equally big smile splitting her face as she tried her best to hide it.

”You’re jealous it didn’t leave your mouth first.” Hari laughed, letting her head tilt forward knowingly toward Ed, who only laughed harder in response.

”I’d confirm or deny, but either way, I’d have to kill you.”

Leon was still utterly transfixed by Casey’s new necklace… It was a channeler! And he had no idea how Casey converted so quickly. Maybe there were issues with it, but-

”Did you… Get rid of your glove? Leon asked calmly, head tilting as he approached his brother to get a better look at the necklace while Mia snagged her ruined shirt out of Casey’s hands.

Casey nodded, face tightening slightly.
”You never got used to losing channelers, did you? It took me a few gloves before I finally realized ‘Oh, I should enchant this!’. So, I know what the process is for forcing a swap. Plus, Nana used Mia’s help. And Mia loses her hat every couple of weeks.”

”I’ll get better about it next week… Where is my hat? Mia’s brow furrowed, looking around playfully before smacking the top of her own head where the beanie was hanging from and giving a funny look.

”Well, really impressive work all around I guess. Is it your bee Trisha? Lelou tells me it isn’t, but maybe you’re doing shit she doesn’t know about.” he redirected back to the Beestress herself.

Trisha shook her head, watching everyone else with a subtle expression of fond amusement.
“It’s one of the Queen's. An ancient one… So it'll be from long before I was born. It would be a bit morbid to use one of mine."

She'd moved towards the plates where her bees were gorging themselves, reaching out a finger. One of the Bombers waddled towards her, rubbing her little face against her finger without cutting it.

"Can you help me change my channeler?! I'd love it to be something that ain't my bones!" Cass twisted around from where she was aggressively stirring the thick, red sauce. The sweet cranberry smell from it was a bit overpowered by the mulled wine she was making, but it smelled pretty good!

Trisha wasn't sure if Cass was expecting a laugh to that, or any positive reaction. Probably, it was Cass… she wouldn't want them to be sad in response. But she didn't really know how to react positively to it, so she didn't entirely react to it.

“It isn't just his channeler." She said cryptically, looking over at Casey with a smile.

"Ooo, is that why he smells like you?! It is also like a collar to show ownership?!" Cass joked, bouncing around the kitchen to pull out a big serving spoon. She brandished it in the air.
"Also, who wants mulled wine?!"

”I do, but you’ve gotta suck the alcohol right back out of me. I just want to taste it, since you made it and all… But, after the other night, I’ve decided I’m pretty much done with alcohol.”

Casey’s statement was less of a guarantee, and more of a hope. A goal to set, and to stick to as long as he was on his own. It wasn’t good that he wanted to drink. And it really wasn’t good that he didn’t have a grip on it when he felt that way. Good days, like early November, had been far easier. And he accepted that he’d allow himself the luxury so long as he could control himself.

But, right now? He didn’t want to deal with it. And he really didn’t want to cause a bunch of problems because of his selfish wants.

”Forever? That’s strong, dude.” Leon replied simply, stowing away his instant doubt. After all, it wasn’t healthy for him to be instantly skeptical. Even after what happened, Casey didn’t deserve that doubt and negativity. He needed reinforcement. He needed people to stand with him…

”I’ll uh… Do the same.”

He couldn’t have expected Casey’s reaction.

”Don’t. It’s… Embarrassing. You can handle it, and it’s more embarrassing being made to feel like I’m the cause of an exception. So, please… Drink as much as you can fit. Cass deserves to have all the bowls and plates emptied, so she knows that it was a good job all around. I’m honestly sorry I even mentioned it.”

Hari, of all people in the room, had been in enough people's brains to know what this kind of emotion was. Which is why it was pretty impressive to hear Casey verbalizing it, instead of bottling up and hiding it. Most of the time, people hold back to keep from offending others, or to stop themselves from throwing things back in the face of people who care.

”I’ll drink to that!” Hari said, stepping forward with confidence enough to cover Casey, rather than egging Leon on by taking some big moral stand.

The big man’s face was shocked up until Hari stepped in, as he simply couldn’t come to terms with what Casey was saying. That… People supporting you is embarrassing? As a thought, he couldn’t understand it. Who didn’t want the people around them to relate and participate? Embarrassed people, apparently…

And then a memory hit him. He was fifteen. It was his first youth tournament in the Juniors, rather than in the true youth division. Other older kids, teens, and young adults up to the age of eighteen. He was too tall to box in his age divisions, so he’d almost always participated in open tournaments. Now, he was old enough to go to the official stages, and beat on other kids…

And he lost. This eighteen year old, a foot shorter than him, built like a beer barrel on legs… Because of his height and weight, Leon’s bracket put him up against other heavyweights. And this dude punched like he had pneumatic pistons in his arms. And after he hit that mat, and got back to the hotel room, he remembered Gravity sitting him down on the bed to talk.

And he fucking hated it. Because he didn’t want to hear about his father’s first loss. He didn’t want to hear about how it was inevitable, and that he just had to work harder from now on. He didn’t want to hear his father try to relate. All he wanted was for the guy to shut the fuck up and leave him alone with his misery.
And in remembering this, he realized too that his brother was simply inside that headspace. Not healthy, not happy, but the embarrassment was a fact of life. If it was so touchy, then Leon would simply do as his brother said, and enjoy himself like he usually would.

”Alright, Case… I’m sorry, man!”

Casey didn’t hesitate to slide over to his brother and hug around his arms tightly.

”It’s done out of love, right? I get it. It’s just rough, right?”

Leon nodded, hugging him back before they both let go and Casey was able to return to Trisha’s side. He figured he’d wait until the others got theirs before going in with Trisha. His head turned back to Cass, and he smiled as Leon and the girls started to crowd around with their little mugs.

”Now, Cass… Watch! Watch, and smell.”

As he said that, he released a recalling burst of pheromones that called the collective bees back toward him and Trisha, and he held out his right arm before giving a more implicit directive signal for them to identify his arm as the most welcoming platform around. All the while, the baseline signature that rang out between all the bees was his personal identity in their language. Every little command was underpinned by that signal, telling them all directly that “Friend says-”.

In this case, it turned out to be something like “Friend says there’s something interesting on his arm, and everyone should check it out.”

The bees were a bit slow on the uptake. The honey bees had finished gorging themselves and were lying around in various states of rest, while the Bombers were getting full too. It took a moment for them to react and climb to their little legs, before ascending in an unspectacular and slow flight towards Casey's arm. The whole group landed and started milling around, looking for the ‘interesting’ thing he'd mentioned. Some started to give out disappointed buzzes when they couldn't find anything, while others just plopped their full asses down with the intention to continue their rest on him.

"Holy shit! You speak bee now- cause've the necklace?!" Cass shouted excitedly, antennae poking out from her curls again. She could sense the pheromones coming off Casey before the bees went over to his arm- and while she couldn't recognise what they said, she could guess.

"That's so fucking awesome! A channeler, and a bee translator… Fuccckkk it's so cool!"

Even in her excitement, she managed to stop bouncing long enough to safely spoon out generous portions of mulled wine to Leon and the three girls. As the spoon tilted, Cass also leaned in with a grin- giving each of the girls a friendly kiss on the cheek, and Leon a less friendly one right on the lips. She only didn't go all out cause Trisha and Casey were in the room…
"That's payment for all my labour!"

“Now he can tell them to do things when I'm feeling too lazy to." Trisha joked, managing to ignore how affectionate Cass was towards everyone and leaning her body against Casey for a moment with a smile up towards him. Another small gesture of comfort without saying anything- she was glad he'd made the decision not to drink, even though she knew it wasn't an easy one to make and follow. Nevermind telling everyone. Whenever she was at her worst- her loneliest, at least- it was difficult not to just turn to something like that.

“You can have some of mine, Case." She said softly.
“Then you'll only get a sip or two before I possessively hold onto it."

The Bombers had quickly grown bored now that there was nothing interesting to see, and they weren't so comfy on Casey's arm. So they lazily moved over to Trisha, crawling back into her wool sweater to crawl around a bit. Hopefully they'd settle down soon- she wasn't sure if she could deal with them playing in there all day.

“You need to be able to carry me back upstairs later anyway." She continued playfully- though she didn't plan to have more than a mug or two of this. Nothing else alcoholic.
“Me and the bees, since they've already decided your arm is their bed."

Casey shook his head in response, turning into Trisha and curling around her in a hug. He didn’t want to go into an immediate tirade about her immediate acquiescence to enabling him. Even a sip or two, he felt, was completely disrespectful to himself and his goal. It undermined everything he’d just said…

But he couldn’t act mad at her. It was hard to remind himself that she was coming from a place of love, and that all she wanted was to comfort him a little bit. And, he’d openly admitted that he wanted to. But, there was also a person there who could enable him in a very mechanical way. For Cass, it was as simple as a spell. So, he really couldn’t get mad either.

The arm still holding the bees stayed outstretched as he spoke softly in Trisha’s ear.
”Better none than a little. Especially if it’s good. The Devil tempts with love and all that.” he kissed her temple.

”Maybe we can find a bottle or a jar for her to put some in. Next time we’re both feeling better, we’ll crack it open. Can you accept that compromise?” he asked as even-toned as he could.

Trisha nodded, tilting her head to look up at him. Her face scrunched up a bit, but it was more out of confusion than anything. He was the one that had originally said he wanted to taste it… So she'd assumed he wanted a little, even though he'd said he was pretty much done with alcohol. She understood when he said it would be tempting if he had any, at least. And he didn't seem upset with her.

“I just thought you wanted to try some." She responded quietly. She didn't feel like there needed to be a compromise. It made it seem like she was forcing the drink on him… But she wouldn't shoot down his suggestion.

“Alright, we can do that. If they don't have any jars, I have plenty upstairs for the honey." She acquiesced, pursing her lips slightly. The way he phrased it made it sound like he thought she shouldn’t drink either, talking about when they both felt better. He probably didn't mean it that way, but… it was better to ask than feel anxious about it.

“Am I allowed to have some? I only want a mug or two."

”As much as you want! Just, y’know, when I said that I… Immediately thought about how nice it would be to go bobbing for apples in that boiling pot of wine knowing full well there aren’t any apples. So, I kind of decided in a split second that none is better than a little. I’m sorry, I know it’s probably a pain in the ass.”

He hadn’t. He knew what his first thought was, but he also knew that the fragile pane of stained glass that was their collective emotional strength couldn’t take it like that. The only lie was that it was his first thought, and as long as it stayed in his head until he could clear it away with a little sleep, it’d be alright. She didn’t need to hear everything.

”Oh, we’ve got jars. Leon piped up, only after having pushed for the much more intimate face sucking that the two were used to. After all, Leon didn’t really see their prudishness as anything he had to worry about.

They were adults. They’d bitch, or they’d close their eyes. Either way, nobody could tell him the apartment wasn’t his, nor that the building wasn’t his. He’d kiss his girlfriend how he wanted, as long as she was equally willing. Regardless, his face now free of suction, he moved to a distant cabinet and began pulling out different sized jars. Small, medium, large, and massive.

”Just depends on how much we’ve got, and how much you want. Though, maybe wait until it cools a bit. Uh, Baby, should we maybe like jar the extra and then boil the jars again? I really don’t know why people do that when they jar stuff…” he looked from Casey to Trisha, who had experience with jarring and canning… Mostly jarring, he assumed, but maybe canning too.

“It creates a vacuum. If you do it long enough, you don't need to sterilise the jars before either." Trisha explained quietly. It was something she knew how to do- and had done manually for years. It had resulted in her accidentally scalding herself a fair few times as a teenager… But she'd perfected it now. Well, gotten better at putting stuff in boiling water without hurting herself.

As she explained, she turned herself so she wasn't directly facing Casey without having to put any more distance between them. She didn't want to move away when he'd hugged her… While they'd talked about things much more, she was still cautious about being too clingy without him initiating it. But she wanted to make sure he knew she wasn't upset by him not wanting to drink or anything. She certainly didn't think it was a pain in the ass… But the conversation had already moved onto jarring of all things. So all she could do was offer physical closeness and comfort like she had until now.

"Oh, Babe…" Cass' satisfied little smile turned into something wider and more wicked.
"We ain't jarring anymore than they wanna take away. That extra is for me to drink after this portion! And the next! There's enough to give ‘em a medium jar away, but I ain't parting with anymore than that. There ain't really extra."

At least, not when she was around and could drink everything she'd made with it barely affecting her. To punctuate her point she waved her own mug, which she'd downed more than half of already- even though it was still scalding hot.

"Lemme just move this, then we can set some shit up to jar boil or whatever." She continued, picking the pan with a shit ton of vegetables sizzling away in it. She already had a big glass dish waiting for them- cause they'd get a little time in the oven before they were ready. She was just working around the age old problem of all Christmas meals- not enough oven space! Even if this oven was huge, she was cooking for giant appetites.

It left a free burner- seeing as the others were taken up by the mulled wine itself (which she totally could've moved too, oops!), the simmering cranberry sauce and a massive pot of boiling potatoes.

"Uhhhh… No idea how to actually jar shit, though. I ain't ever had leftovers like that!" She admitted, throwing her hands up. Then she pointed to all the other stuff she'd been tending to.
"Honestly, this sauce'll be good in a couple of minutes, then I ain't gotta watch anything for a while! I was hoping to get to s'more making and present exchanging then! Unless, y'know, we gotta eat before that, then I guess I'll just have to impatiently wait!"

“I can jar it… But we probably should wait for it to cool. So there's time." Trisha said, almost happy that she could do something to help- even if it was a task that had only come up so her and Casey could have some to take back with them for a later date.

Casey nodded along, making sure to reaffirm Trisha by actually establishing the contact that he knew she constantly craved. He wasn’t sure if it was some kind of ape reaction, or if he was feeling nostalgic and able to dredge up the love, but he really wanted to hug. He wanted to gather everyone up and just be together… Even if they pissed him off on accident, not that it’d happened quite yet. Ashamedly, the closest he’d come was Trisha, or maybe Mia after she said what she said to Trisha.

He’d at least gotten to say something to the latter as they’d slipped off to the other side of the house together. It was quick, but she knew that she’d hurt him a little by saying stuff like that to Trisha when they were all in the state they were in. Obviously, she wasn’t doing much better, the poor girl. So, he did all he could to be empathetic and understanding…

Especially when he wasn’t sure if she knew what he’d done.

It brought the guilt back, but he’d pushed it down hard and stamped on its head. Trisha would hear about it again later… About how he felt like a monster, and that she should’ve been there with them in spite of everything. But, for now, it was just translating into the search for genuine tenderness.

Hence, it was easier than it had been to deal with the clinging overall. And, his strategy seemed to be working. He felt the occasional hesitation to be overly physical with him… And he just hoped that she’d be able to make the not-so-consistent transition between his moods into a much easier situation for herself as time passed. The same hope gave him cause to imagine a world where he also made things easier for her by just not having crazy mood tumbles… But, he wasn’t sure it was going to be possible.

Hope. Hope would always be there.

”I mean, is food an option? You know we’ve been fucking struggling the past few days, Cass.” Ed piped up.

”Seriously. I mean, we’re not very good quitters. Thank God Andrade left us with enough salt and other shit to kind of ween out of the Oblivium, but… Andy said it could take fucking years before our digestive systems are right again.” Hari included.

It was an ironic thing to say in regards to the three of them quitting. In truth, they all gave up easily. But quitting something was a whole other ballgame. Especially when you were quitting something you didn’t want to quit. For her, the junk was as simple as casting a time-release spell on herself. Three hours of bliss in the poppy fields could easily be dulled by a Pink spell. Hell, she could take a fifteen minute romp if she chose.

But no spell could quell the absolute gluttony required to satisfy an individual with an Oblivium dependence. It was a magic effect, after all, and required a great deal to dispel for even a moment. The only choice was human willpower, and she still had things easier than the actual Richouxs… They’d been eating the stuff since they were kids.

”It took me a year of being in the service to detox completely. The Doc even said it was an incredibly advanced case, and that he was impressed by the speed I adjusted to living normally.” Casey explained, having been the only one of them to successfully come off of the stuff before making a slippery slope back toward it in the last couple of months.

”Did he leave you with any of the flour from Luminous?” he asked Leon directly.

He nodded in return.
”Yeah. Lelou likes it, because it reminds her of home.”

Trisha didn't say anything, concentrating on schooling her expression to not look too concerned when Casey asked that. He'd said Andrade had left him with enough to last a few months, and that she didn't need to worry about it… But him asking Leon if he had any made her worry. Was he running out already? What would they do if he did before he had time to get used to something else that could replace it? It wasn't like she could do anything about it either, considering she could barely cook.

"There ain't so much of it left, though! I made that sourdough with it, remember? And then I used it for some've the Yorkshire puddings today… not all of ‘em, of course… Oh, and one of the foccaccias." Cass piped up, not feeling any of the same worry Trisha did- after all, she didn't know as much about Casey's food struggles.

She'd been trying to use a little here and there for Lelou, but it was difficult when the Wolf Queen was gluttonous and immediately demanded Cass make something else with it after devouring a loaf of bread.

She spun around towards the girls, shooting finger guns at them.
"As for you three… Proper Christmas meal ain't gonna be ready for a couple of hours but don't worry, I thought of that!"

She bounced over to the fridge, pulling out a massive, circular dish and putting it onto the counter. It was a large triple chocolate cheesecake… One of a few desserts she'd made over the last few days, when she went a bit crazy about it. She grinned.
"Who says we gotta eat in the right order?! Oh, but also-" She was back into the oven to pull out another big tray of steaming Macaroni cheese.
"There's this too! Don't worry, I'm awesome, so obviously I'm prepared."

Honestly, she'd been trying to figure out some way to help the girls. Unfortunately, it didn't seem like she could magic away the Oblivium in their systems… Maybe if she took it all into herself, but that would probably be worse all around with her disease. So instead she'd settled on making a shit ton of calorie dense foods to at least alleviate it, making sure to have plenty to eat today while maintaining an actual ‘traditional’ Christmas meal. Plus, she'd need to eat plenty extra too.

Out of everyone, Casey was clearly the first to go for the tray of macaroni. Absently, however, he may’ve dragged Trisha along to be first in line for that had Leon not given him a frown and a knowing glance. One that said “Really?” He was hungry, but he immediately got what Leon was trying to get at in the silence. They were basically starving in comfort as their magically mutated stomachs decided their hosts were more delicious than the mundane foods they stuffed down their gullets. It was hard to avoid, and once again he had to wonder if his own dip-in and dip-out had anything to do with the mood crash.

There were so many factors… So many different things to consider, that he was starting to wonder now if maybe Trisha was the cure he hoped she’d be… And that this particular point in time was just the bottleneck of his life… Without Oblivium, without the Temple, without any great responsibility, there was a glimmer of hope that he’d be truly free. And he wanted it terribly; far more than he wanted a bit of mac and cheese.

”Is everyone cool with splitting the time? We’ll do s’mores, and everyone can open our favorite duo’s gift before they make the great escape tomorrow morning. That way, if they don’t-”

Mia elbowed Hari in the ribs, giving her a look of frustration.

”Whaaaat!? I’m just saying! Cass already said, there’s no fuckin’ pressure dude. If I can’t say something casually, that puts a lot more-”

”-I like the idea. All parties can choose their own desired engagement periods, and if it so happens that you guys end up chilling upstairs afterward, that’s alright. At least we got to let you guys open your gifts and we get to open ours from you. Are you both alright with that kind of exception?” Leon asked calmly, smiling.

Casey did his best not to react first, simply looking down at Trisha to gather any kind of confirmation he could.

Trisha pressed her lips together. She disliked having exceptions made for them as much as Casey did. It felt like her issues were being dragged out and focused on, which she hated. But at the same time, still being around for the actual meal didn't appeal. She didn't enjoy sitting down and eating with larger groups, especially when it felt like there was some kind of pressure. It dragged up all those memories of shitty family meals.

“I don't want anyone to feel hungry for our comfort." She said, gesturing to the food that Cass had just pulled out.
“At least eat that first… We came down because we want to spend time with you all, but I suppose it's alright to make that kind of exception in case we get tired. We'll stay as long as we can. Casey wanted to open the gifts from Sylvie and Max together too."

She glanced up at him, meeting his gaze and managing a smile. Hopefully it was an answer he was alright with… It gave them some flexibility. Even if they both wanted to try and stay, it meant there was less pressure to. Hopefully.

"I got super serious gifts for everyone that gotta be opened at the same time! First, preferably!" Cass said, spinning around and throwing the hand not holding a spoon in the air. She caught Trisha's disgruntled, suspicious gaze as it fell onto her, giving a wink in return.
"Don't worry, it ain't matching sex toys this time!"
Hidden 6 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

The protein dense food was distributed, and Trisha managed to get herself a mug of mulled wine. The necessary presents were collected and Cass corralled them all over to the massive couch. Unlike their big green one, which was great for them but less friendly for having people over, Leon's setup was much more open with plenty of space for everyone to sit and talk easily.

Though Cass still chose to plop her ass down on the floor like a weirdo. Then immediately jumped back up when she realised she wanted to give some of her presents out first!

Trisha at first chose a corner spot, before thinking better and shuffling just to the side of it. It would give Casey the choice… He always shuffled to their corner of their sofa after all. It just meant she wouldn't have anything to lean into if he started feeling less affectionate- but he seemed to be happy with hugging right now. So it shouldn't be a problem. She pulled her legs up onto the crouch to cross them, putting her little bag of gifts in front of her.

"So- Let's get started! The most important part of doing gifts with me is everyone gets something silly." Cass grinned, before starting to hmm and haw over her pile of gifts. She glanced between the girls, and Trisha and Casey. Who to give them to first? Eventually, she made her decision, pulling up three horrendously wrapped presents. It was like she'd taken a whole roll of sellotape to them.

"This one's for you, Hari!" She tossed one over with a grin, knowing it couldn't hurt her. It was just a t-shirt, after all! With only two left, she waved the one in her right hand towards Mia and Ed with a grin.
"I really struggled to decide which of you to give this to… But here you go, Ed!" That package went to her.
"And Mia!"

Casey had, as Trisha seemed to actively make his way for him, clambered into the corner spot that had coincidentally been his favorite childhood seat. It was the right hand corner, closest to his old bedroom, and an easy escape for him in those days when escape was needed most. He remembered plenty of opportunities to tuck and climb backwards to the solid floor whenever Elise decided to cop an attitude with Lynette.

The girls seemed fairly excited about being chosen by Cass first, and Mia felt around the crumply paper into the soft interior.
”Bro, is… Is this a fucking shirt from that website we were looking at the other day?” She asked with a loud laugh.

Ed didn’t hesitate in ripping hers open. Holding it up revealed the front to everyone else, as she realized quickly that she’d unfurled it the wrong way. The text caused quite a stir for Leon and Hari, who were both actively looking while Casey was cuddling his face into Trisha’s shoulder and missed it.
In big white letters on an otherwise black t-shirt, “I <3 my Lesbian Cousin.” was written with the heart being rainbow patterned. It was the only shock of color on the damn thing, and Leon nearly spat his mulled wine out as he began to cackle like a madman.

”Who would even make that fucking shirt!?” Mia groaned, holding her hand out in an axe-like chopping motion.

Ed finally managed to turn it around, looking for a second and laughing aloud, only to surpass Leon’s cackling as she peeled through the layers of the joke. For most people, the entire thing would’ve been an incredibly uncomfortable callout. But, not these girls. And thankfully, not Cass either.

”Fucking kudos, Cass. I think you’re the only person whose balls are big enough to make that joke.” Hari laughed a bit more calmly, ripping the paper for her shirt.

Which quickly revealed a theme, as she made sure to open it to herself first and look at the front. Similarly black, this t-shirt had a more intricate design of an old fashioned woman sipping tea in a dress with a bow around her waist, looking upward with a smirk. Around her, the phrase “Allergic to nuts because I just like girls.” wrapped around both hemispheres of the image.

”Dude, I’m the only one who doesn’t just like girls!” she laughed in response, shaking her head.
”You were so close!”

Mia saved hers for last, shaking her head and leaning into Cass playfully.

”She’s a lying hoebag. Never seen a lick of straight porn in your browser history.”
And as she spoke, Mia opened the final gift between them, and showed hers off before looking at it.

This one was much more intricate, with a dozen pictures of cats wearing shocked or otherwise confused faces. In massive pink letters, the phrase “LESBIANS EAT WHAT?” highlighted the cats. Now, even Casey was laughing as his attention had been fully drawn. He wasn’t proud of the first thing that came to his mind, and so did his absolute best to keep it in without getting too comfortable with his base nature.

”Damn, it’s like a choose your fighter screen.” he joked instead, pointing at the shirt.
”I’m the orange one on his ass when I realize lesbians eat pussy.”

Mia laughed in turn, finally spinning the shirt to look at it squarely. The grin that formed across her face was warm, and she tightly embraced Cass.
”Thank you Sissy… It’s super fucking cute.”

”Thank you times three! You knocked it out of the park.” Ed added genuinely.

Cass was letting out little cackles the whole time, happily hugging Mia back. She was glad they went down so well! Not that she'd been super worried… But the one for Ed could've been too on the nose. But at the same time, she felt she knew the girls well enough to know it would be taken well.

"You're all welcome, glad you all like ‘em! This kinda thing is my specialty! Cause, y'know, the massive balls and all." She winked at all of them with a grin, before shooting a finger gun at Hari.
"I'm sorry, Dude, is this an awful time to come out as biphobic? Cause, y'know, it's entirely dependent on who you're with! That's why that's why that shirt is totally correct, and we're all super duper straight."

She gestured to herself, Leon, and Trisha, sticking out her tongue.

Trisha had been quite happily cuddling Casey while gently giggling at each t-shirt reveal, suddenly dragged into something that actually was yet another insecurity of hers. But it was Cass. She was clearly joking! Sure she'd been with a way more even split of genders than Trisha ever had, but it wasn't like she'd erase her own identity like that.

“I’m getting a straight pride one, then?" She managed to joke rather than getting upset, turning in towards Casey with a teasing smile.
“I can see the resemblance between you and that orange cat, Babe. You're both cute."

"Oh man, you guessed it." Cass laughed, throwing her hands up.
"You'll see- Oh, but first! I, uh, also got one for Ren! I mean obviously she can't wear it but I figured she could like replicate it, and honestly if you adjust it back to the original it'd totally fit any of you three anyway-"

As she rambled, Cass searched through her pile, before pulling out one of two unwrapped t-shirts. She'd been unsure if she should wrap this one, or even bring it out here but- fuck it.

She unfurled it in front of the girls with a wide grin. It was another black shirt, with a strange combination of a tank, a bald eagle and George Washington holding a lesbian flag, with an explosion in the background. It had clearly originally said ‘I may be gay but at least I'm not British', but Cass had crossed out the gay bit with fabric paint and wrote above it so it read ‘I may be a ghost but at least I'm not British'.’

Serenity had been absent as she usually was. Where she went, or what she did in her spare time was a mystery to all but the trained master of the building, who knew she simply spent her time lounging between the floors and otherwise existing in a small flower bed on the side of the building. It was where she kept her poppies, though the winter usually brought her in more. Ed had to summon her forth directly, practically waking her from a nap in order for her to see the shirt.

By the time she arrived, Ed had passed all the info Serenity needed, holding it out and having the ghost float up from the floor into the shirt in a single swoop.

”But… Wot if oi was Bri’ish?” she asked aloud, perfectly imitating Cass’ accent as she grinned sweetly.
”Watch this, Auntie Cassie…”

The friendly ghost wriggled through the shirt, pulling away from it and revealing her own incorporeal form was now wearing the same shirt. Ed pointed at it, hyping her up.

”Yessss! That’s our girl. Good job, sweetheart! You did it perfectly!”

"Hell yeah, it looks great on you!" Cass grinned, flashing the ghost girl a thumbs up. It really did… She'd replicated it perfectly! It was super impressive, honestly.

"Now you can match your Mums… Well you could match ‘em anyway, but now you can match ‘em with a super duper Cass gifted t-shirt!"

”I can only recreate stuff I see in person! So, whenever we go out, I like to make new clothes. But, this is special ‘cuz it's a gift!” Serenity intoned with great joy in her voice.

Mia giggled up at the floating ghost.

”You’re getting the spirit right, Honey Bunny.-” she spoke before leaning in toward Cass.
”The whole gift thing still hasn’t quite hit her.” she giggled.

Cass laughed back, grinning up at Serenity.
"Even if it ain't, she's still being super cute about it! D’aw, kids are just the cutest."

She honestly wanted to reach up and pinch Serenity's cheek, but knew she couldn't. Instead she gave each of the girls another hug, before bouncing back over to her present pile. Even though it had all just been carried over and dumped on the floor, it was easy for her to tell what were the silly gifts and which were the serious- because most of the serious shit was hard cubes that she'd never mistake for a t-shirt. It was just finding the right ones- Aha! Easy.

"Next upppp, the most sickeningly sweet couple." Cass waggled her eyebrows at Trisha and Casey, coming over with two gifts wrapped in what would've been an adorable bee themed wrapping paper if she wasn't so awful at wrapping gifts.

Trisha looked at it with a slightly furrowed brow. While what Cass had given the girls wasn't as bad as what this kind of gift had been in previous years, she was still a little worried.

"Y'know it was super hard to find something that wasn't sexy or sexist! So much shit about being trapped or owned!" Cass couldn't help but ramble before they'd even opened them.

That did make Trisha worry a little less, at least. It shouldn't be something too sexual. Not that it was a problem, because she didn't have to wear whatever it was- but it would be a waste of a good piece of clothing. Assuming it was also a t-shirt. It sure felt like it.

She carefully tore into it, furrowing her brow further in confusion at the t-shirt she pulled out. Black, as seemed to be the theme, with a goofy cartoon fried egg on it. The text said ‘I couldn't if I fried.’ It made no sense and she had no idea how to react, so she looked over to Casey.

”Is it sexist if I’m a little possessive? I wouldn’t say own, but…-” Casey responded absently, furrowing his brow at Trisha’s shirt before ripping and pulling his own.

Similarly, the long strip of cartoon bacon seemed to be longing for its eggy companion, stating “Don’t go Bacon my heart.” It was even reaching out in a longing fashion, its two little stick arms beckoning the egg toward him. He stared at it for a lot longer than he probably should’ve, thinking about all the fried meat he’d ever seen. How bacon was fleshy, and even this cartoon somewhat repulsed him as it so troublingly resembled a strand of sinew hanging from a missing limb.

Still, it was a gift. And he couldn’t let Cass’ good humor or generosity go to waste. He turned his head, looking at Trisha’s egg, then sliding his own shirt closer so that the matching pair could be observed in proper positioning.

”I’d say you did what you set out to do, at least. It’s funny. I like that he’s kinda running toward the egg. Makes me wonder if he’s sad or hungry.”

”Geeze, dude… You’re always adding to stuff like this.” Leon giggled softly.

”What do you mean?” Casey returned, brow furrowing.

”Why would you say he’s sad, he’s just presenting the words like that.” Leon shrugged, pointing at the bacon.

What Leon was trying to figure out, is why Casey seemed to be projecting on what he thought was a perfectly innocent vibe, making it stick out in a more real and less fantastic fashion. He felt it diminished the gift if Casey saw “sadness”, rather than neutrality or better.

Trisha didn't think that either side of the breakfast t-shirt pair looked like they felt anything at all. If anything, beyond the goofy cartoon-ness they looked soulless like only a basic cartoon could. She thought it was kind of cute overall, mostly because it was a matching pair. Her free hand moved to rub Casey's thigh comfortingly, holding her egg t-shirt with the other.

"He also said it looked hungry! Which is obviously the case! It wants to eat the egg, if you get what I mean." Cass waggled her eyebrows as if anyone would miss what she meant. She really wasn't bothered by Casey reading into it like that, but obviously she wanted to lighten what felt like a mood drop. He found it funny, and that was good enough for her! After all, this wasn't her real gift, although she'd also put a lot of effort into it.

“Really? Now you've made it sexual." Trisha groaned.

”Eggnant.” Mia said loudly, causing the other two to both smack her head with their shirts and forming an overall uproar.

”Sunny side up is not for fertilizing.” Leon giggled, turning to Cass and wagging his eyebrows.

”You’re all terrible except for Trisha.” Casey laughed, adjusting his arm around Trisha and rubbing her shoulder.
”Still, thank you, Cass. We’ll wear them both tomorrow when we check into the resort.” he laughed aloud.

"You better send pictures then! And don't go getting eggnant this early-"

Cass! Stop!" Trisha actually raised her voice, though it was clearly out of embarrassment, her face having gone bright red. She twisted towards Casey to hide her face.
“You’re right, they're all terrible."

Cass was cackling away. Both Mia and Leon's jokes had hit the spot, and it took her a moment to stop laughing. She wiped away tears from her eyes before dramatically pointing at Leon. Her lips curved up into an incredibly teasing smile, eyes narrowing playfully.
"As for you, Babe… I prefer you with no shirt on at all!"

Leon didn’t bother hesitating, shrugging his shoulders and reaching back to pull his shirt off. Shirtless Leon, after all, wasn’t anything new or shocking he figured. And, as none of the trio made any big deal of it, he simply leaned back on the couch and swung his arm over Cass.

”Well, merry Christmas! We don’t even need matching shirts, you just have to take yours off too.” he grinned back at her, sticking his tongue out playfully.

This behavior felt eerily similar to someone Casey knew. Maybe he was just reading too far into it, but seeing Leon and Cass sitting where they were, he was transported back in time. Gravity, no shirt, arm around an otherwise scantily clad Lynette. Cartoons were on. Neither were paying attention. Too lost in one another to worry about Casey or Junior being there. Suddenly, the couch felt sticky. Moist. Like he was in some kind of dream he couldn’t get out of, he shook his head and moved to kiss Trisha on the top of her head before shifting up and back like he’d done a million times.

”Anyone need refills?” Casey asked calmly, doing his absolute best to mask the passing discomfort with action.

But as he’d stood, Trisha would’ve felt the strain in his hand as he raised up. It was a strange thing for him to have been hit with, but he realized long ago that he was never going to be able to control what his triggers were when they happened. He could only control how he responded. Here, at least, it was something half way decent… At least, as long as Cass didn’t start snapping about him not being dismissed. He figured she wouldn’t, but if it happened, he could see himself screaming and maybe running away in fear.

Anything else, after all, would come out as aggression. And he wasn’t sure if he wanted to yell at Leon for acting like their Dad either. Frankly, that playful whimsy was still one of Max Gravity’s best traits, even if it led to some serious parental ignorance on his part. Casey ultimately admired the connection, but struggled with the memories it subsequently dredged up.

”More wine would be nice, if you don’t mind pouring it? If not, I-”

Casey moved over to their side, holding out his hand for the cups. At least Mia seemed like she had little more interest in the scene before her than he did. Hari looked up at him and frowned.

”Dude, are you sure? Like, I get what temptation is, man-”

Hari elbowed Ed.

”We just talked about-”

Ed threw her hands up, nodding before taking her cup and also handing it off to Casey. He smiled in return, hanging the mugs from his fingers with one hand and running his hand across the trio’s faces in a playful slap-line. Leon hadn’t realized there was a connection between his shirt coming off and Casey getting up, so he held his finger up.

”The case of Cass’ birthday beers are in the chiller? Can you grab me any random one?” he asked, turning his head to look up at Casey with the tender smile of a concerned older sibling.

Casey nodded in return, smiling back.

”Only if you promise to get a shirt on by the time I get back. Trisha Bee? Cass l’Ass?” he let the referential questioning hang in the air, ready to take on all orders.

Trisha shook her head, though she did shuffle over a bit to reach out for Casey's free hand. Just to grasp it for a moment and squeeze, looking up at him with a warm smile. She didn't know why he was suddenly a bit tense, though she could guess something had triggered some memory for him. Leon stripping, maybe? Or was it the t-shirts from Cass? The what didn't really matter right now, because she wasn't going to say anything about it. That would just be drawing more attention to him… So she could only be there if she needed him. Even if it was difficult to stop herself getting tense in turn at him moving away from her.

But it wasn't anything she'd done. And this was definitely the kind of thing she'd promised him she'd get better with.

“I’m not done yet, but thanks." She said softly, legs curling up towards her chest as she shifted back towards the space he'd left. She continued with a playful smile.
“I’ll send you back up to get my refill when I want it."

Cass was pretty busy trying to strip the rest of Leon's clothes off with her eyes, only so she could resist the urge to go for a good grope. It definitely wasn't appropriate with present company, but it was so hard to resist when his muscular chest was right there. At the same time she was going to pull off her goofy jumper to play along with the joke- She was wearing a sports bra underneath, after all! It wasn't that inappropriate! She wasn't a prude anyway.

But Casey's question grabbed her attention. Her head snapped over towards him, then down to her empty mug.
"Yes please! Thanks, Dude, you're a lifesaver- I would've been so mad if I went for a drink and there wasn't anything there!"

She patted Leon's arm before bouncing up and over to Casey to hand over her mug, just to make his life easier. She grinned brightly, not thinking too deeply about his move away or the comment about Leon putting a shirt back on. It all seemed good spirited.

"Don't worry… He'll just have to wear the t-shirt I got him!" She winked at Casey, before bounding back over to plop her ass beside Leon. She didn't give him much chance to get his arm back around her before leaning forward to grab another gift, twisting around and slapping it right against Leon's chest. Mostly so that she could use the parcel as a cover up for getting a little grope in with her other hand.

"While I think the less clothes you're wearing the better!" Cass giggled, sticking her tongue out at him.
"Obviously I still got you one!"

Leon had expected a shirt, obviously. So, it wasn’t any problem ripping the package open and sliding it on without even looking at what was on the front. Frustratingly, the shoulders were a little tight. But, he was also built like an upside down pyramid… It was expected that an open-order t-shirt wouldn’t fit with 100% comfort.

It was on regardless, however. And, having not looked at it, he instead looked toward the reaction of others to gauge how silly it was overall. As it turned out, it had to be hilarious. The throuple collectively broke down within the time it took them to read the text…

Depicting scenes of various wolves and werewolves, with one howling up at a full moon, the phrase “Hide your wife / The Alpha is here.” flanked the otherwise hilariously goofy set of images. One werewolf had a fedora on, tipping it forward while another sat on the ground in contemplative reflection.

Finally, he looked down at it himself, only to shake his head and stare in disbelief as the laughter echoed around him.

”God, I feel like a dildo would’ve been less embarrassing! I can’t imagine what horrible thing you got to-”

Looking back up, he could only stare in shock as Cass had quickly shifted herself into her own new shirt…

Cass was cackling away as she spread her arms to show off her own ‘matching’ t-shirt. It was incredibly similar to his. The main differences were that it had an image of an actual wolf on it along with the goofy muscular werewolves, and not one but three moons. There was lightning crackling all across it, making it even more dramatic and stupid looking.

It even had the exact same phrase on it. As far as Cass was concerned, wives needed to be hidden from her too!

”What d’ya think, Babe? Perfect, ain’t they?” Cass grinned, wiggling her eyebrows at him. She was absolutely in her full gremlin mode, with the most teasingly demonic expression on her face.

”Or were you expecting the opposite?! Something like ‘breedable omega-’”

“Oh my God, Cass, keep your kinks to the bedroom.” Trisha interrupted. She was laughing enough at the ridiculousness of their wolf t-shirts that she wasn’t as harsh as she often was when Cass started boundary crossing… But she wasn’t just going to sit and listen. It did make her feel like her and Casey had gotten off lightly. She had a moment of sympathy for Leon, which quickly fizzled out. He’d chosen to date Cass, after all.

”Well, clearly it ain’t! Cause, y’know.” Cass pointed down at her t-shirt, sticking out her tongue.
”I am the Alpha.”

Trisha groaned, shaking her head as she looked away from Cass’ wicked grin towards Leon.
“She has gotten you the most embarrassing one… But, she would manage to find a dildo that’s worse.”

Had. Though it wasn’t a story Trisha wanted to offer up unless she was pressed.

”I’ll be honest, if I was gonna get you one, it’d be something like that scene from Triassic Land 3, where the kid’s hiding behind the counter and the alien dinosaur is creeping around the corner. Except, like, a werewolf is hiding and it's just a normal chick stalking him.” Leon admitted, looking down at his before looking back at hers.

”Hide your monsters, the Nightmare Fucker has arrived, I don’t know…”

Mia and Hari were both leaned into Ed, laughing their asses off with intensity as the latter simply stared in cool examination. Having gained her composure, Ed was simply enthralled by just how cringy these two dorks could get. Leon had never been one for sharing ideas like that, and was usually more of a doer than a teller. Maybe he was just sure there wasn’t a shirt like that.

Yet.

”Oh, certified Monster Fucker, or something. We can do that. Hell, it should be Cass depicted too. And make her like as human as possible for the contrast.”

”Right! Uh, still-”
He leaned in, kissing her on the cheek.
”-Thank you, Baby. I do like it. I’m sure it’ll stretch where it needs to if I wear it a lot.”

Casey didn’t love what he was hearing, but as he came back, he could see Cass’ version and just grinned.

”Christ… Thats unethical.” he said with a shaking head as drinks were passed back around and he took up his spot next to Trisha once more.

”What d’ya mean unethical?! No werewolves were harmed in the making of this shirt!” Cass cackled, kicking her legs a little bit even as she settled back down with her refilled drink in hand. As much as she ever settled down, that was. She had done her t-shirt handing out duties, at least, which led her throw a bunch of limbs over Leon as she pleased. She assumed her serious ones for Trisha and Casey wouldn’t be next, after all.

”Or are you worried ‘bout the wives? They ain’t safe ‘round me whether I wear this or not. But don’t worry, I ain’t gonna steal yours.”

She winked at him and Trisha with a bright grin.
”Not for lack of trying!”

Trisha just shook her head, shuffling closer to Casey and leaning into him now that he was back. Not that he’d been gone long. She just always missed him when he wasn’t there, and was going to make the most of the moments he was happy to be close right now.

”But-!” Cass jabbed a finger teasingly at Ed.
”I am human! I look super human! So if it’s depicting me, of course it should be human?!”

“I don’t know. I feel like Leon’s been maligned here, just because he turns into a werewolf occasionally. You do far more freaky transformations far more often.” Trisha piped up.

”Whoa, are you hearing this?!” Cass reached up to pinch Leon’s cheek, tugging it. Her eyes widened like she’d just heard the cutest thing ever.
”You two have come so far! Trisha’s choosing you over me!”

“I’m just being honest.”

Leon bowed his head slightly toward Trisha, cracking open his beer and lifting it at her.

”When it’s right, it’s right. Thanks, Trisha.” he giggled.

Casey had come back with a bowl of macaroni and cheese for himself, and had spooned several shovels of it down his gullet by the time he had the errant thought of offering Trisha a spoonful. Staring at them, Mia frowned and cleared her throat before looking at Ed. Ed looked back quizzically, shrugging her shoulders.

”He’s trying to feed her…” she grumbled.

”Yeah?” Ed replied with a sarcastic grin.
”And?”

Mia frowned again, and Hari twisted her body to look from one to the other. Her smile remained, and even brightened as she began to chuckle to herself.

”Gosh, don’t you know?” she asked Ed, shaking her head jokingly.

”Well, go get more and I’ll feed it to you, I don’t know!” Ed laughed aloud now, shaking her head completely before her arms stretched out to wrap around Mia and make a grab for Hari.

Connecting the circuit, Hari wrapped around the other side of Mia, and the three hugged into one another, their new shirts all in their laps. Upon release, Mia actually did get up to get some more food, but not before moving to the tree and passing out a couple of gifts. One to Trisha and Casey, and the other to Cass and Leon.

”From our trio, to you couples. Uh… I know that, y’know, life is really shitty kind of? At the moment? But, I really… We really take a lot of solace in being together with you guys. In whatever capacity. These are more sentimental than useful, but I hope you guys all agree on nice places to keep them.”

She planted a kiss atop each head, from Leon all the way down until she reached Trisha, then turned her back and made way for what was left of the tray.

Cass' fingers started wriggling immediately, going right for the gift. She paused before ripping right into it, looking up at Leon with a grin.
"I can open it, right?!"

Not that she waited for a confirmation.

Trisha looked away towards their own, not wanting spoiled if they were similar. She still had a mouthful of macaroni cheese she'd been slowly chewing, which she swallowed before speaking softly to Casey.
“Why don't we each unwrap it from opposite ends?"

Not that it mattered much in the end, because it wasn't a massive thing to unwrap. Opening it revealed glass nodules strung on a chord, reminiscent of fairy lights. There was something different in each one. Mixtures of herbs, stone powders, some even had jewels. Trisha leaned forward to peer at each, though she didn't have the knowledge to figure out if any had actual meaning.

She didn't entirely understand the meaning of it. But Mia had said it was sentimental rather than useful… If she was honest, she liked that. She liked that it had clearly been put together with care and with thought for who it was being given to. Looking over at the one Cass was holding up with a grin, they both clearly had different contents within the glass orbs. It was a genuine gift. The kind she really wasn't used to.

"This is fucking awesome- did you three make it yourselves?!" Cass asked with a wide grin, carefully handing it over to Leon so she could bound over to the two still on the couch. They both got pulled up into an incredibly tight hug and lifted up into the air. Mia would get the same treatment when she came back around.

"It's so pretty! I love it!"

Trisha nodded slowly, taking her gaze away from the gift and looking towards the girls. Her smile was soft and genuinely warm.
“Thank you. It's really nice. I like that it's sentimental. I can see the care that's been put into it, which really… Means a lot to me, honestly."

”Back in August, I took a glassblowing class. I’m pretty proud to say that there wasn’t any magic used in the making of them.” Hari explained with a wide grin.

”Well… There was, but not in the actual formation of them. One of our friends played furnace while she blew the glass out. It was fun, though. That was back a couple weeks ago, I think a few days before Thanksgiving, y’know?” Ed added, extrapolating on what Hari had said.

”We had to be a little sneaky about getting the ingredients. Some of them are pretty personal.”

Mia’s voice echoed across the room as she purposefully laughed aloud.

”Understatement of the fucking year.” Ed intoned in response, shaking her head.
”Tell ‘em, Mimi.”

Mia laughed again in a slightly more nervous tone. But Leon cleared his throat to speak, so she let him go in order to avoid the embarrassment.

”I’m guessing the center bulbs are Union Charms?” he asked aloud, staring into the string of glass.

Both girls on the couch nodded, and Leon smirked before turning to his contemporaries.

”Then Mia must’ve been the one to get our hair and fingernails…” he narrowed his eyes playfully.
”That is pretty embarrassing!”

Mia bridled as she made her return with her second big bowl.

”Can you not ruin the moment?”

”Hey, there’s no shame in… Y’know… Stealing your family’s keratin byproducts for a traditional purpose. At least you’re not trying to curse us with them.” Leon laughed, mostly brushing the idea off.

But, now Casey was watching Trisha closely. He didn’t respond himself, not wanting to make her feel like if she had a complaint, nobody would care. He would. He didn’t love the idea that someone was stealing hair off his hairbrush without him knowing, but like Leon said: She was family. She wasn’t going to use it in a curse or anything… But Trisha’s privacy…

Trisha's lips pressed together as she stared downwards, first at the centre charms and then at her own hands. More specifically her nails, as she stretched her fingers out. Her brow furrowed slightly. How? Hair was easy, but she tended to file her nails rather than cut them. So how did they… Wait, that how didn't matter. How had Mia gotten all that stuff without Casey knowing? And from where?

Had she snuck into their home to collect it? It was uncomfortable to think about. The 'traditional' purpose or whether it was used for a curse or not didn't really matter to her. Collecting stuff like that was invasive! It wasn’t normal among family. At least she didn't think it was. No, it definitely wasn't. This wasn't something her family was weird to not do.

"Whoa, I was wondering why I woke up with a bald patch one morning!" Cass joked, easygoing as always. Though it wasn't such a major privacy breach for her, since she'd spent enough time in Leon's apartment that there'd be plenty of hair and nails alike to collect. Especially when she tended to just cut stuff off after magical growth.
"You did me a favour cleaning up some've the nail ends I left lying around!"

Her easy acceptance left Trisha feeling more conflicted. Was she the weird one for being unhappy about it? And that aside, it was a gift they'd put so much effort into. They'd made all of it! Could she really complain when she hadn't made any of hers? It would just make her feel worse in the end.

“I’d rather not have known. It's uncomfortable." She mumbled, quiet enough that just Casey should hear (while forgetting about the sharp eared duo). It conflicted with everything she’d said about wanting honesty- but this was different. It wasn't something between them, and suddenly she had to deal with her displeasure in front of a group where she didn't want to ruin things. She didn't know what she could say that wouldn't be an outright lie, or upsetting. Because she knew Mia would get upset, and Leon would probably get annoyed at her for making a big deal out of it.

It was better not to say anything else at all. She managed to relax her hands, putting on a half smile and leaning her body towards Casey.

”I’m glad you noticed, Cass. I was kind of worried the balls would be too annoying, so… Y’know, one here, one there. Sometimes they’d just bring me back, like, some dust bunnies. Other shit. Most of it is easy, since just about everyone’s got long hair. It just kind of falls, so it’s like a strand here and there.” she explained further, not hearing Trisha’s protest.

”You made something to do it?” Casey asked aloud.
”Like, you weren’t digging through our trash or anything?”

Mia shook her head.

”I kind of thought about asking… Should I have? she asked nervously, looking at Trisha and frowning slightly.
”I’m… I’m sorry.

Leon shook his head.

”You… Did what came naturally, and tried to be as unobtrusive as possible. But, y’know, uh…”

Of course Leon had heard Trisha’s comment, since he was paying attention. He had a bad feeling just about as soon as the girls started talking about it. But, obviously, the three of them couldn’t help but hide the mutual disappointment in the mood shift from their brothers. Leon looked to Cass in a quick glance, hoping that she had some solution that he hadn’t thought of.

Cass was a bit stumped for once. She understood why both sides were upset… And she also knew that both sides were fragile enough that it'd be difficult for her to say something that didn't leave somebody upset! Really, it depended on how Trisha reacted. Maybe doing damage control after that wasn't ideal, but she had no idea what to do now!

Trisha frowned, not quite meeting anyone's gaze. She hadn't said anything loudly to avoid this. But she just couldn't control her expression enough to appear perfectly fine with it, could she? The fact that it wasn't Mia herself was a small comfort but it was still… Weird. How could she say that, though?

At least her anxiety was strong enough right now that it clamped down on any immediate snappy reaction she might've had. She honestly wanted to just run away. Because it was her fault the mood had dropped. She was ruining everything again. Why would anyone want to be around her when they were always so worried about how she'd be, of course they expected her to get annoyed, no wonder Casey-

“It’s fine. It's just…" Trisha managed to say, forcing down the panic crawling up her throat. Her back was stiff and straight, and her hands clenched in her jeans. She didn't even lean further towards Casey for comfort, worried that in that moment he wouldn't give it.

“It’s normal for all of you. It's not normal for me. So it's a little uncomfortable… Next time, please ask-" Though even just the use of her hair in something made her uncomfortable.
“But- but that doesn't change how much the gift means. I still like it."

That was true, at least. She hadn't gotten many gifts as thoughtful as this, weird use of hair and fingernails aside.

"Yeah! It's all done now, and it ain't like you were being intrusive! It's just a case of different expectations, I think!" Cass jumped in, moving closer to the girls so she could physically jump in if any looked upset. She could get what Trisha was trying to say, and went on to try to elaborate on it.

"Any discomfort is outweighed by all've the effort you put in! Cause clear there weren't any bad intentions, and you were just doing something that felt normal. Now we know it ain't for everyone, but that's alright. It's clearly a gift you've put a lot've effort and love into. That really ain't diminished by this! It's so fucking personalised and sentimental, God, it's like a lil piece of each of you! Honestly, I'm really touched by it! I'm sure Trisha is too, and I'm sure deep down inside she's really happy about it! She just ain't gonna sit like me and get all sappy ‘bout it cause she's a-" Cass cut herself off with a laugh, about to call Trisha a tsundere.
"She's her."

Trisha frowned a bit at Cass, but it softened as she turned towards the girls. Then she nodded. Cass did explain it better. That she could be upset about something while still feeling more positive over it than anything else.

Mia shrugged, head bobbing from Ed to Hari with a hard to read expression. Whatever it was, she turned back to Trisha with an understanding nod. She’d put her bowl of food down, and seemed reluctant to go back to it with the moment hanging. But, after everything they’d gone through so far, and knowing everything that would come after, Mia did her absolute best to throw herself into high gear.

”I did think. Next time I try ignoring an instinct, I’ll think twice. Valuable lesson… I’ll… Well, can I make it up? Obviously, it’s a Christmas gift, and I know you said you still appreciate it, but… Y’know, it’d make me feel worse if it was something that made you feel uncomfortable. I seem to keep… Fucking up a little bit. she intoned in a rather matter-of-fact tone. It wasn’t like her to get like this…

But, she’d been practicing something. A little trick of foresight and manifestation. A White Lux boon that she wore like a mantra across her Emotional Field. Long neglected, a new set of strong memories brought a nostalgia that couldn’t be beat by sights and feelings still tangible in their world. She could hear the echoes of the ancient muse spanning across time.

”Hey… Don’t panic. We’ll get her next time.”

”I don’t know how, obviously. But, y’know… If you think about it, and it’s something you decide you feel strongly about, there’s no shame. Blind gifts are blind gifts. Hit, or miss.”

Casey cleared his throat, but found himself choked. His mind was unwilling to make the decision, knowing that two fragile coils could once again clash against one another. At least Mia seemed to be taking it well enough. No tears. It didn’t feel like an exception to him. It was something he knew Mia would do, because it did come from a place of personal pride. The girls all worked hard on what he understood as a Love Link. Two, even. Almost matching, yet he could see where the inspiration in each came down to the flora that anchored the chain inside of both end nodules. Honeysuckle, goldenrod, and witch-hazel, followed on the other side by pine, oak and redwood sticks and greens.

”I… Would put it in my office, or whatever my personal space was. I’d find a place to put this, far far out of the way of Trisha if it made her uncomfortable… But, honestly, Mia? I can’t possibly get rid of this…”
He looked at Trisha, wide eyed and surprised at the words coming from his own mouth.
”Baby… You mean it? You’re alright with it? I’m… Really sorry. But, I’ve gotta make sure it’s kept safe. It’s us. For better, and for worse.” he did his best to explain, holding it in his hands furtively, as if it could be ripped away at any moment.

“Why is everyone acting like I’d want to get rid of it?” Trisha asked quietly, hands trembling slightly. That wasn’t what Casey was asking. He was asking if she was alright with it, but then he went on to apologise and talk about having to keep it safe. It felt like he was worried she was going to grab it and throw it on the floor. She wouldn’t. Even if she didn’t understand what it was where Casey clearly did, she could feel the love the girls had poured into it.

“I’m uncomfortable that my hair and nails were collected without me knowing. But I’m not-” She bit her lip, feeling wildly misunderstood. Even if it was her fault for not explaining… But it was hard to. She looked over towards Cass, who had seemed to understand before.

Cass honestly had no idea what Trisha wanted to say now. But her friend was looking to her for… Affirmation? Comfort? Something like that! So she flashed a warm smile and nodded encouragingly. Hopefully she wasn’t encouraging Trisha to say something that’d just cause more upset.

“I like it. I really like it! I don’t care that it has that stuff in it, I just can’t pretend I’m alright with how it was obtained-” She was dwelling too much on that negative. They knew, they knew that she wasn’t happy about that invasion of privacy. It really was just about that. Her eyes got a bit watery. Why was she the one getting emotional? Oh, she’d had a whole mug of mulled wine. That was enough to push her into being a bit more openly emotional, wasn’t it?

“I don’t normally like gifts! Because they were always so impersonal. Something like this is the opposite of that. So of course I like it, I- I really really do, I’m sorry I made you think any different. I just don’t know how to show it, and I’m not used to things like this. I want to put it somewhere we can both see it. It doesn’t make me feel uncomfortable. It-” Her voice trembled slightly.
“Makes me feel loved.”

Mia’s head and face seemed to perk up with great interest, eyes peering at Trisha with what seemed to be a bright beam of light.

”I do. We! We love you! And it’s not intuitive, because yeah it hasn’t been long. And we’re definitely not like people you’ve ever spent a lot of time around. So, stuff’s gonna be weird and messed up. But, the same love is the love that’s just… Y’know-”

She paused for a moment, hands gripping like she was trying to find something intangible within herself.

”-that’s where that kind of offer comes from! I have enough love that I want to make what I give you better for you. It’s a purely unconditional offer for any potential improvement you may feel is attainable. It’s, I guess, just a hypothetical. Which is why, y’know, I would directly ask you about it.”

Casey knew that Trisha’d been talking more about him, and what he’d said than the offer that Mia was making. It wasn’t a bad offer in its intention, of course… And, again, he knew for certain that it wasn’t an offer made out of exception. Mia would do the same for anyone she felt that way about, which was… Far enough from an exception as it included what he imagined was a decently sized list of people.

”Well, I mean… Ultimately, there’s nothing to be done, is what she’s getting at. Right, Honey? Not in a bad way; it’s happened now and I think the sentiment is understood. I’m sorry about, uh… Like, escalating the feelings you were having. Both of you. Obviously, the only thing to take away is the lesson you already acknowledged! If your gut says you’re doing something wrong, listen and double check!”

Hari and Ed had remained mostly silent, giving reassurance through contact and the occasional nodding that had to be done in the interim. It was mostly guidance for Mia’s emotions to climb off of, Hari’s Pink Lux forming a light connection with Mia’s White Lux to dredge memories in a more vivid fashion and establish a better wall of nostalgia. She was remembering plenty of times where her gut had told her to do something she didn’t… And plenty where she did. Each was a curated memory like the last, and each one retained the magic of a moment.

”Then I’m just glad you like it. And, obviously, I hope that the feeling of appreciation continues to overrule any other negativity that may linger… It is supposed to be a good charm, even if the magic in it isn’t Luxal. Apparitional magic can work in mysterious ways. I hope it dredges up a spirit of love for all of you when you look at them.” she conceded, nodding along and finally dredging up an actual smile, rather than a stern look.

Trisha nodded, reaching up to rub her eyes. At least she hadn’t outright started crying. That would’ve been embarrassing. It was from frustration more than anything, but she didn’t enjoy getting too emotional, even if everything had worked out this time.

“I’m sure it will.” She said softly, managing a smile.
“I, uh, much prefer weirdness from a place of love than something normal that… isn’t.”

Even with the whole weirdness of hair and fingernails being used in it, it really was one of the nicest gifts she’d gotten. It was far nicer than the expensive but soulless gifts she’d gotten growing up.

She tilted her head up towards Casey, finally relaxing her body back against his.
“And it’s alright, you were just trying to help. And it’s your gift too… You’re allowed to have feelings about it.”

Cass let out a very gentle sigh of relief, plopping back down beside Leon now that she didn’t feel like she was going to have to tackle hug someone to stop them breaking down.
”Well, it ain’t really a Christmas celebration without some tears! Though I’m used to ‘em happening ‘cause of present related fist fights!”

“I’m not crying.” Trisha intoned.

”Sure, sure you ain’t.” Cass stuck out her tongue teasingly. She then pointed down to her and Leon’s.
”Just as importantly… Which flat is taking custody of ours? We ain’t technically living together like those lovebirds are.”

Leon pushed air through his pursed lips in a scoff.
”You need as much magic as you can get. I’m sure it’ll look great on the wall over the TV, or maybe by your fleshputer.”

”Fucking abominable!” Casey laughed aloud, clearly joking as he leaned closer to Trisha and squeezed. He hoped she could feel the ”Good Job!” tucked inside of it.

”It’s horrifyingly awesome… Have you named it yet? It’s practically a pet at this point.” Ed added, causing Leon to go a little green in the face.

”Sometimes I hear it smacking its lips when she’s been using it too long. I swear, it’s like… About to speak sometimes. I’m getting ready for it to start screaming.” Leon smiled and leaned into the bit, knowing full well it wasn’t that bad.

”If it was gonna start screaming, it would’ve done it at some’ve the things it’s been forced to witness.” Cass cackled, sticking out her tongue at Leon and waggling it for good measure. She was still figuring out what she could and couldn’t do with her biological computing magic, but she was pretty sure she’d need to choose to give it a mouth. Which would be pretty hilarious for a joke one day… Maybe April Fools next year…

“You’ve given her ideas.” Trisha recognised the glint in Cass’ eyes a little too well, managing to catch it even as she enjoyed cuddling her whole body into Casey.
“She’s definitely going to make it scream now.”

”Whoa, don’t out me like that, Trisha! I mean, I would never ever subject my lovely, delicate minded boyfriend to a screaming computer. You’re slandering me.” Cass grinned, one arm wrapping around Leon while the other hand caressed his face.
”Don’t worry, Baby… I’ll make sure Cassandra the Second never screams around you. I’ll give her a good telling off for smacking her lips in your presence too.”

”God, now I’m uncomfortable.” Mia joked, having definitely not been uncomfortable just a few moments prior.

”About what fucking part?” Leon asked in turn, casual nature glossing over a hidden shock and confusion that hardly manifested beyond stunned and slack-jawed staring.

Out of the throuple, only Hari seemed to be having a rather sick laugh at the others’ expense.

”Put a ball gag in the processor cooler fan.” she quietly gritted her teeth in a reserved cackle.

”You people are fucking sick bastards. I can’t believe you.” Casey blushed.

The group laughter filling the intimate space was hopeful, and seemed to clear the air of the tension once again, at least on the surface. Casey nodded his head in response to Leon’s furious shaking in turn.

”Just… Get rolling! More presents, you… Goon.” Casey urged.

”Whoa, who you saying that to? I ain’t the one suggesting gagging Cassandra the Second!” Cass cackled.
”Though… I guess I can pull out my serious gifts, cause they’re related!”

Related how? Trisha tilted her head, lips pressing together. Probably related to computers, not the ball gag joke. Hopefully.

”I only brought over Trisha and Casey’s… But if we’re doing everyone’s right now, I can grab yours too!” She gestured to the girls, before patting Leon’s arm with a grin.
”I ain’t got anything serious to give you yet, Babe… Cause one ain’t appropriate with company, and the other’s kinda in the wrong company!”

She waggled her eyebrows. Sure, she could’ve gotten her brother to send the thing she’d also gotten him to pick up for her, but it just seemed easier to bring it back with her later. And Leon would get a gift around Christmas… Just not here!

”Well, anyway, first! Here you go, Trisha! For my bestest friend in the whole wide world.” She leaned over to hand Trisha a square gift, which was somehow wrapped as shoddily as the t-shirts. There was so much tape on it that it took Trisha a while to get through it.

It revealed a cardboard box, which she opened. Inside was a small, black box and a power cable, along with a few other wires. She picked it up to inspect it. There was an on button, and a bunch of ports on it… But she had absolutely no clue what it was. There wasn’t any kind of screen.

”It’s a mini computer! You’ve complained ‘bout how your laptop ain’t all that good, but it’s a hassle to go down to your office to use your desktop. I bet you ain’t gonna wanna do that much now, so- I put this together! You can plug it into your laptop and it’ll, like, sorta take over? But you won’t lose all the shit on your computer. It’s kinda like having another processor and shit… Anyway, it works! I made sure of it, and you won’t have to worry about shit crashing on your laptop.”

“Is it alive?” Trisha couldn’t help but ask, turning it around in her hands.

”A lil, but not like my computer is. I used some magic to like, link shit up where it was gonna be hard with actual parts. That’s how I managed to cram so much into something so small and portable! But it ain’t gonna be noticeable.” Cass explained easily.

Trisha nodded, before a smile replaced her confused expression. She looked at Cass warmly. It was nice. Another gift made from the heart and with a lot of effort.
“Thank you. I really like it. I was worried I’d have to try and fit a desk up in our house, and it’d only get more cramped. This solves that.”

”Hehe, you’re welcome!” Cass grinned. Before Trisha could decide whether she wanted to go in for a hug or not Cass had bounced up and pulled her into one anyway. A tight squeeze that was reciprocated lightly.

Then, Cass grabbed the last two gifts from the pile that had been at her feet. The smaller of the two was held out to Casey with a grin. It was a box shape like Trisha’s, but a fair bit smaller.
”And this is for you, Casey! Well, technically this other one is kinda more for you than it is Trisha, but it’s technically for both of you!”

Pursing his lips, Casey plucked the terribly wrapped package from Cass’ grasp, immediately going for his pocket knife which he almost always kept. The Blade. For the moment, it wasn’t anything more than a tool, and he kept its form small for the task at hand. Splitting the tape, he peeled open the small cardboard giftbox.

Inside was a little case, and inside that were a pair of digital earplugs. Cass didn’t give Casey a chance to react before she started explaining.

”They’re earplugs that properly adjust to the surrounding sound, and muffle however much you want. Like I’d do with my own magic! Though I didn’t add any enhancement just, y’know, sound negation. It’s something my older brother complains about a lot- struggling with crowds and loud noises and shit, but then the earplugs he’s got mean it’s hard to hear anyone he’s with! You can get a bunch’ve settings with these… Like it can cut out everything else aside from people speaking directly to you, or it can just muffle it. Again, a lil alive, but not much!” Cass nodded, before being struck with a realisation. She slapped her forehead.

”Wait, shit- White Lux enhances your senses too, don’t it?! These are probably useless!”

Casey laughed warmly in turn, popping the buds into his ears around the same time Cass was doing her explaining, knowing full well that he’d happily use such a thing over his own magic.

”It’s pretty straining work! So, these are perfect. They’ll be perfect for outdoor shooting too, since they’re nice and subtle. Compact. I have a pair of enchanted tacs in my kit, and I’d been meaning to crank a new design out too, so… You’ve saved me a lot of time and effort. They’re Green Lux? Tell me about it, like… Do they just know what I want? That’d be pretty awesome if that was that case.” he asked warmly, knowing full well that the mechanical intricacies played a massive part in his appreciation for them as a set of artifacts.

After all, Green Lux artifacts were often strange. He presumed this would be no different.

”Nahhhh… That’d be cool, but it’d have to shove a nerve through your ear and into your brain. That’s, like, super intrusive! I mean, it’s something I can do if you want it, but right now it doesn’t know that.” Cass grinned, raising a hand to her right ear as if she had one in herself.
”There’s a little dial in the right one you should be able to move. You’ll feel a bit’ve resistance at four points, for the four settings! The first reduces any noise above a certain level to something manageable. The second muffles background noise only, the third blocks background noise, fourth blocks everything- so full noise cancelling! There’s also a dial on the left, which works with mode two and three and adjusts the range. Roll up for a larger range, down for a smaller one. This determines the distance at which it starts just muffling everything.”

She rambled on, hoping he was understanding it a bit… She could answer questions at the end anyway.
”The modes and some’ve the noise suppression is mostly mechanical. I basically took apart a pair and redid all the wiring. The Green Lux comes into determining what’s background noise. Cause it acts a bit like an actual ear would to figure out what sound is what. It should be in mode two right now- so muffling background noise. So if I do this!”

She started clapping loudly, the noise loud over her talking. Casey would feel a subtle, odd tingling at his external ear- like it was being brushed by a few tiny, soft feelers.
”It should muffle my claps, and you should still be able to hear me talk. Can you? I tested it a bunch, but I’ve got Green Lux, so I ain’t sure how much of it was me adjusting for it! If there’s any problems I can probably fix ‘em… Also, y’know, any questions, just ask!”

Casey was smiling like a little kid for once, eyes wide as everything became singular in the nifty new gadget they were playing with. Cass had done a terrific job integrating the technology into its magical components as she had, and a gentle honeycrisp scent crept up around him as his own magic poked and prodded the spell’s structure. Organic components, connected to circuitry at the most basic of levels with a crystalline lattice allowing the transfer of energy like living fibre optic cables.

He found he could even turn the dial beyond “one”, and began his reply while entirely deaf to his own voice. This setting was far more useful for gathering external memories without the influence of one’s own bias. For a brief moment, he wondered if she knew just how useful a thing she’d really done.

”I think they’re perfect. Enhancing my sensory perception is like running up a hill, and after a long day of doing it, I start to cramp. I’ve dabbled in enchanting military ear protection devices, but- Well, there’s this distinction, between enchanted items and true Artifacts. Not all enchanted items are artifacts? Right? So, most enchanted items need to be used by an Adept, because they need a source of Lux to be powered. These? Nothing. They’re perfectly self contained, they work of the battery, you’ve got the funky energy-to-light thing going on that Green and Red Lux can do… It’s… Thanks, Cass. Seriously. I… I mean, I’m stoked about them.”

And then he turned to Trisha and beamed with pride as he pulled them out and wiped them off with his shirt before handing them to Trisha. Pausing his hands, he made sure to turn it back to a sensible range before she actually took them.
”Check ‘em out. It’s pretty intense! God, you guys are both so creative and talented…”

He didn’t spare a glance over at his sister, but his magic practically lashed out at her Emotional Field in a spiritual lovetap. The kind of kiss on the head that said “You’re included too.” It was necessary, as he quickly realized he’d not given quite the same reaction to their gift in spite of his emotional, even passionate defense of the trinket.
But, in saying “you guys”, he included Trisha too… Even if she didn’t have much time to make anything crazy… The honey took a while, after all.

Trisha popped the earbuds in, expression one of interest. It was amazing how many background noises there were that she didn't particularly notice until they were drowned out. It was pretty nice, actually. Maybe something like this would help with her anxiety in crowds… But she couldn't exactly ask Cass to create another pair for her when she already had a gift. Though she wouldn't need anything as fancy, as she didn't go shooting or have her own enhanced senses. Only a sixth bee sense.

“They’re really impressive. I don't know how you think of these things." She said with a smile, holding them back out to Cass. Her gifts were completely different from the girls', but both had clearly had so much care put into them. Casey was right about them being creative and talented. She glanced at Cass, then the girls with a gentle laugh.
“It feels a bit like a really good craft fair."

It made her not want to give out anything she'd brought. She really wasn't creative or talented like they were. There wasn't anything she could make to give as gifts… Only honey, but she didn't have much of that left. And she handed that out to everyone all the time. But her gifts felt so soulless in comparison. Maybe she could pretend they were just extra gifts, because she hadn't finished the real thing? But then what would she do… Learn how to make something? Hope that she was good enough to do that? It'd just end up worse.

"Aw, thanks! I'm really glad you like ‘em! It makes all the back pain worth it!" Cass joked, grinning at Casey brightly.
"Well, the only thing that actually suffered was Leon's nose from my old soldering iron… But it was real fun to make ‘em! Cause I really got to combine my magic and tech skills, y'know. It's pretty fucking great to make shit people'll actually use, rather than more crap I'll keep in boxes."

She nodded. It probably wouldn't come as a surprise that her gifts for the girls were similarly tech-y items… Only Leon escaped that. Sort of.

"Oh- This one ain't so exciting, but I think it's cute! For you both, but I feel like Trisha's gonna feel like it ain't a few pages in." Cass laughed, holding out the third parcel she'd brought.

Hard again, but this time it was a more flat square. Trisha let Casey open it, seeing as he had the pocket knife and she'd struggled so much to get into her gift. It revealed a plain black, spiral bound square book. Opening it revealed that it was some kind of scrapbook Cass had put together for them.

The photo on the front page was of their proposal. It was a surprisingly nice one, considering it was obviously taken by Cass based on the angle.

"You can replace it with a nicer one if you wanna! I used photo pocket things for everything, so you can just slide em in and out." Cass commented.

Trisha smiled, reaching out to flip to the next page. Across the double spread were various photos of the couple that Cass had clearly subtly taken. Another from the engagement when Casey had lifted Trisha up. There was one from the Sycamore celebration party, where the two of them were drunkenly lost in each other with no care for the world around them. There were a few other shots of them like that from various gatherings, though none quite so egregious- just the two of them looking at each other, talking or giggling, not paying much attention to their surroundings.

“This is really cute." Trisha said softly, smiling. Though she changed her mind as she flipped to the next page.

It was filled with pictures of just her from their university days. Not just any pictures… These ones were all embarassing. There was one of her drunkenly asleep on their flat couch, leaning against Cass' shoulder with her mouth half open. Another of her drunkenly ranting about something. One of her so deep in her studying she clearly hadn't noticed Cass sneaking into her room. She looked an absolute mess in that one, hair shoved up onto a bun with strands falling all across her face, textbooks and paper strewn everywhere as she nibbled on her pen. Then there was one she remembered Cass taking… And she'd told her to delete it! She was curled up in an armchair, glaring at the camera with her whole expression scrunched up in grumpy indignation.

“Cass… Really?"

Casey only needed to take a few seconds of looking at Trisha’s pictures before his face became bright red and he bumbled into her like a giant bee. He was still holding the book on his lap, but his torso had twisted and spun to a point where Trisha could feel him almost picking her up off the couch.

Not that he said anything… His actions spoke a lot louder than words ever could. Clinging tightly to her, he kissed her spare hand and nuzzled his head into her before finally coming to words.

”Nobody asked- I do have goofy pictures from my service! They’re just like these! W-we’ll text Nana, and she’ll send the bundle over! We can pick through them, and put equally embarrassing ones in for me! That way you’re not singled out here… It’s like, y’know, where we were versus where we are!” he exclaimed in defense of Cass’ choice to put embarrassing pictures into the gift.

”God, two knockouts! Cass? You’re on a roll, dude!” Casey added with great enthusiasm, finally looking back up at Trisha.

Trisha let out a few quiet grumbles, cuddling into Casey as fervently as he did to her. It was impossible to hide her own blushing… She'd hoped that by having no loving family or embarrassing childhood photos she'd avoid something like this. Of course Cass was doing all the legwork to make up for it!

"Hehe… What can I say, I'm that great." Cass cackled, grinning.
"Obviously I didn't ask cause then it'd ruin the surprise… But a lot've it's actually empty! I stuck down a bunch've photo pockets in what I thought was a nice layout, figuring you guys can go ham and fill the rest up as you get more pictures. Embarrassing ones of Casey included!"

Trisha nodded slowly, coming out of her embarrassed state to smile softly at Casey.
“I’d like that. To go through your goofy pictures together and pick some out. It's only fair that I can flip between pictures of us and cutely embarrassing pictures of you too."

Though saying that was admitting the ones of her were cute. Maybe they were to him… She hoped they were to him… But they were extra embarrassing to someone who tried so hard to show a certain image to people.

"I'm just sad I don't have any embarrassing childhood ones of you." Cass jokingly groaned.
"Oh, but you should turn the page! There's more!"

Trisha wasn't sure if she wanted to turn the page, when she could just keep staring at Casey instead. But she felt Cass' gaze burning into her head so… She turned her head down towards the collage book, turning to the next page.

It was more photos of Trisha… But a much younger Trisha. Fourteen year old Trisha. Her brow furrowed as she looked at the pictures from the Sycamore Tree coven period that she'd never seen before.

The first one was her squatting down sorting through medical supplies, her expression filled with seriousness. There was one of her with the Rich Clique, talking to Lin at the side while the rest of the group laughed over something. Seeing that made her feel a bit sad. Another was hard to tell if it was a fight or training- she was facing off against another Sycamore member, directing her bee swarms against her spiders. Lisa… It was training from what Trisha remembered. Because it made sense for the two people with bug swarms to go against each other. Then another one of just her, in a forest with her arms up saying something to the bees surrounding her. It was a bit blurrier than the others.

Cass would never admit it, but that one had actually been a picture of Linqian that just happened to have Trisha in the background… But she'd done a great job editing it!

“How did you get these?" She asked softly.

"Uh, y'know Linqian's ex- Bianca! The fed- technically owes me and Leon, but anyway! Linqian happened to mention she got a bunch've pictures with disposable cameras then, so I got in touch and got all the ones with you in ‘em!" Cass grinned.
"There's a bunch more, but uh… Well, I had to check with Leon to make sure I didn't put in any with people you hated! There's one of the two of you, actually, but you're clearly yelling at each other so I figured you wouldn't want that one."

Leon couldn’t help smiling dumbly at the picture in question, his sharp memory recalling it in vivid detail. She’d just been herself at a time nobody needed her to be… An easy mistake when one’s entire life was spent in that mode of existence.

”We knew there were some people interested in documenting what we were doing. There’s other pictures too. A lot, actually, from the Temple archives. Mom’s personal collection, for the Sycamore records. I wanted to talk to you about what to do with a lot of them, but… Not now, obviously. When they’re in our hands, we’ll do our best to figure it out together.” Leon explained calmly, shrugging his shoulders in vague embarrassment as he thought about the strangeness that was his mother’s habitual recordkeeping.

So many pictures taken in secret through magical apparatuses… Especially mind-to-print machines, taking remote images from her mind and directly imprinting them onto sheets of paper. They were incredibly clear images, most taken from his waistline as the spell observed from a belt buckle or pocket level. Others were like specters standing at attention in forestlines just beyond reach. Ghastly images of teens in bloody combat. Screaming. Dying.

It wasn’t for Christmas…

Casey, however, did his best to give a positive spin on it… He looked into Trisha’s eyes, and smiled gently.
”I… Guess you’ve got that much, at least. Thank goodness people were watching you somewhere.”
His mind drifted only for a moment, to that hazy memory of her face… Spying on them in his own adventure… Trying to see a world he could only grasp at vaguely, and seeing in her the beauty he saw now.

He wished he’d had that picture.

“It’s nice to have some." Trisha admitted with a gentle smile back at him. While the idea of Lynette having all of these sneakily was uncomfortable, she liked these ones that Cass had picked out. And maybe there would be some nice ones in those ‘records’. She imagined there'd be a lot of bad ones too.

“It’s a shame most of my teenage photos are sneakshots from that summer." She half joked, more self deprecating humour than anything else. She didn't know what else to say to it that wouldn't end up negative. There may have been people watching, but they'd never stepped in to help. It made it feel empty.

She glanced over at Leon.
“Thanks for wanting to decide with me what to do with them. I'm… happy to do that when we get them." Though she didn't think it was going to be an easy decision, or an easy task for either of them.

Her eyes moved back to Casey, forcing her mind back to something more positive. They squinted teasingly.
“It’s a shame you didn't take a picture that time you saw me back then… Then you could've put it in a locket or something, and pulled it out when the time was right."

Casey nodded back pretty well instantly.
”I was just thinking that…”

Leon’s eyes opened widely, and in a telling stare between the two of them, his bottom lip began to quiver.
”Well… I mean… Maybe you two would be surprised by all the shots Mom managed to get. Again, when the time’s right.”

Casey had imagined there was a strong possibility that she piggybacked off of him in the same way she had done everyone else. Why else would he have made it to where they were without some kind of guiding fate? She could follow those sorts of things easily, and know exactly when to place an incantation on someone else that enabled her remote viewing ability. So, maybe it shouldn’t have been such a shocker. It was more shocking that Leon had bothered looking through them…

”When did you get a peek at that stuff?” Mia asked from the other side, hoping to fill in the tension a little.

”Weird quirk of the rules. I was always Sycamore first, so I always had access to the collective record of events from the Temple’s perspective. Because I was part of the founders, my rank in that coven superceded my rank in the Temple.” Leon explained.

Hari nodded along.
”Same reason I still have all the case files with my Dad, and the Chicago Steadfast.”

Mia nodded in return.

”Still, that’s really cool Cass. That makes me want to get one together for the three of us. We’ve got so many pictures of our own between us.”

Trisha managed to resist rolling her eyes at Leon talking about his Sycamore rank. A good chunk of people were ‘founders’, if you counted everyone there the day the pact was made underneath the Sycamore tree. She hadn't been, but people like Linqian had been… And nobody had treated her like she was some kind of rank above. Within the coven, Leon got that treatment because of his cousin. Other people who were viewed as having ‘authority’ were just smart or domineering.

"Oh hell yeah, you definitely should! I can help if you want… I gotta bunch of supplies leftover, at least! Plenty of photo pockets and shit! You just gotta get an actual book to put em in. When I was figuring out what to do, there were even ones where people put a bunch of cute stickers and shit… I considered getting some bees ones, but I ain't that kinda creative. If I started sticking other things in it'd look a mess." Cass smiled enthusiastically at Mia. Though it was her first time properly putting pictures together in some kind of nice format, she was quite the photo hoarder and loved to look through them… So of course she was going to encourage the throuple to make their own cute little photo scrapbook!

“I’m glad you didn't draw anything in it." Trisha teased lightly. She decided not to comment further on Lynette's Sycamore photo collection… Or the shots she may have managed to get from that first time Casey saw her. It was cute if it was a photo he'd snapped, but more creepy when it was his Mother taking them from some bug she'd planted on him. Especially if she'd known then.

"Hey, you just don't appreciate my artistic talents!" Cass cackled. With her gift giving done, she finally bounced away and back over to sit next to Leon.

“She draws like a teenage boy. She insisted on putting stuff on our fridge in our university apartment, but it was all badly drawn boobs and dicks." Trisha giggled in explanation to Casey, leaning into him.

”Dude, classic. Props.” Ed immediately giggled like a child, throwing her fist out to bump Cass’.
They had the kind of sense of humor that was way too close to one another to be a coincidence. Like they were cut from the same cloth, or something.

Mia shook her head, being stretched over for the fist bump to happen and being stuck in the middle of it.
”Leon? Any gifts for the duo bound for the East?” she asked, trying her best to redirect away from the two perverts being pervy.

”Uh… Well, yeah. I mean, kind of. I’m-”
He turned to Cass, dredging up a problem he’d been having for the better part of a week. With everything happening, he’d definitely slacked off and not thought about the imminent yuletide cheer necessary in gift sourcing. Sure, he could use vast wealth to acquire material goods they wanted from things they liked, but what made it any more special than something they could go and get themselves? Both were set… So, sentiment came back into the picture. What could he possibly do?

”It’s sort of… I don’t know. It feels weird to give as a gift, because it’s not really something you can hold. Or, even really much of a gift as it is like… The gift of security? I guess? Peace of mind? It’s probably a gift for everyone here, really.”

He twisted back, pulling out a few small boxes and handing one off to each person.

”May you all feel a little safer at night, knowing that the past is truly behind us.”

Casey’s brow furrowed, and he opened his little ring box first to find… A tooth. A large, yellow-brown feline tooth. Pulling it from the setting, he found it poked through a patch of fur that’d been tanned on one side into taught leather. If it’d been any other creature, this would’ve been a terrible gift… But, everyone in that room received a claw or a tooth, and everyone knew what’d happened.

Kane and Abel were no more. Wherever Leon had relocated them for the short term, it’d been secure enough that he’d managed to go through with what none of them expected he’d go through with… He’d put an end to the nightmare maker. Modferrad: The Piper of Pain, Prince of the Shimmer Wampus, was seemingly no more.

Casey looked up at him, a blank expression filling his face as he tried to find words. Words that were sucked up as Mia’s far more visceral reaction overtook her. She practically leapt across the couch into her brother’s lap, sobbing as Ed made her way not far behind. Hari, who had avoided a great deal of their traumatic childhood spent with the beast, hung back and simply stared down at the morbid little trinket.

For Casey, seeing the others happy about it was enough to call this another good gift. He only had to turn to Trisha to gauge her own reaction to the subtle yet powerful news.

Trisha's own initial reaction was muted as she stared down at her claw. Her eyes narrowed slightly, and her bottom lip trembled subtly.

She'd been lucky, really. It had only truly tormented them on the bad nights. The worst had been the first time when it almost killed Casey… Other times, it had been difficult to tell if it was the cat or just nightmares of her own making. It being gone wouldn't rid her of her insecurities and mundane nightmares. But they wouldn't have to worry about that. There wouldn't be some supernatural horror bringing up all of the fears she tried to bury deep down. Thank God. Especially when one of the nightmares it had shown her almost played out in reality.

And it wouldn't be able to hurt Casey again.

“I’m glad it's gone." She said, quiet and simple. Her head turned up towards Casey, trembling lip turning into a slight smile. She reached out to grasp at him, curling in towards him with a slight tremble.

Even with the good news, it made her remember everything it had shown her and told her. From attacking Casey, to him leaving her, to him dying in front of her. It felt silly to feel anxious over something that was now gone. She'd hadn't even grown up with it. It had just been so excited to eat all of her pain. It had said everything that happened would be her fault…

“I’m really glad it can't torment anyone any more."

"It's lucky Leon decided to end it, cause if he hadn't I would've killed it myself! And then it really would've been screaming for mercy!" Cass had a typical Cass reaction, getting all violently riled up and mock punching in front of her. She did then turn to put a comforting hand on Ed's back, then moved it to Mia's.

The two girls didn’t really stop crying for what seemed like a few minutes. Casey knew he didn’t need to jump into it himself, considering they were all cuddled up with Leon and Cass. Instead, he took the chance to give himself a moment to introspect over the creature’s reign of terror. It was nice to know that Leon had taken it upon himself to make things easier in the coming days. After all, the cat probably would’ve accepted some sort of bargain from Lynette had she been desperate enough to seek it out. They’d done so before… Secret accords, deals for influence and knowledge…

Wampus were dangerous creatures. He imagined the fight hadn’t been easy, even with a free Lelou. Or, maybe it was? Maybe-

”Did it put up a fight?” he finally asked, voice cracking more than he’d intended it to.

Leon nodded in return.

”Closest I’ve ever been to letting Lelou have her way. Turns out, there’s a form beyond what you guys saw at Thanksgiving. I hope I never have to go there again. She’s been tired since.” Leon responded calmly, giving Casey and Trisha a solemn smile.
”I love you guys. I’ve got a bigger plan, too. But, it’s for life after this. For now, this is all I had on short notice.”

Casey nodded, looking back down at Trisha.
”I’m glad too… We’re all gonna be alright. I’m glad… That it didn’t have a bigger part in your life.”

”And it’ll never ever get to hurt our children. Never. That bullshit, and that pain, ends with us.” Leon said with conviction, hand rubbing his little sister’s back as she clung to him in painful tears.

”I’d die killing it again before it got near the children of anyone here.” Cass dramatically declared, though her conviction there was as genuine as Leon’s. Sure, maybe it was a bit over the top to throw her life into it, but she knew what that thing had done to all the Richoux as children. Assuming she and Leon did have kids together, she’d definitely protect them with her life against something like that.

Trisha nodded slowly. She never would have let it near their future children, whatever she would’ve had to do to stop it. But it wasn’t a problem anymore… They didn’t have to worry about that.

There wasn’t yet another external force trying to break them either. It might have succeeded, if it had long enough with her. The short period she’d dealt with it had been bad enough. It was easy to widen cracks that were already so deep, after all.

She couldn’t admit that here in front of everyone. How glad she was that it wouldn’t have a chance, and how little faith she had in her ability to not fall back into the depths of her issues with just a little bit of pressure. She had made steps forward in spite of it, Lynette and her own family trying to make it difficult. But she’d also repeated the same behaviours because of them too. It was hard to really feel like she’d improved. It wasn’t solid, at least.

“If it had… Well, it didn’t. It’s fine now.” She whispered incredibly quietly to Casey in the end.

“There’ll be a lot of pain that ends with us, I think.” She said louder, to everyone. A solemn and positive thought all at once. It was a little bit of hopefulness which was difficult for her to voice, because it meant thinking she could do it too.
“Not- Not just cause’ve stuff like this. None of us had… Great childhoods. But I think we’ll all do better.”

”Amen…”
”Amen.”
”And fuckin’ how! Casey exclaimed in emphatic agreement. His arms became animated, body warming all at once as he squeezed happily into Trisha.

”This world’s better because we’re together.” he added, watching as Mia’s torso twisted to open up a slot in the cuddle puddle.

”W-would you guys please come hug me? Y-you can skip your g-gifts if you hug me!” she cried, as if offering for the others to keep their presents was doing them a favor.

Casey laughed, standing up and holding Trisha’s hand.
”Only if you want… But, I’ve gotta.” he sat, waiting a moment for Trisha’s choice.

Trisha only considered it for a moment before nodding. It was just one hug… Well, the second of the day. But she was trying to do better with that, and joining wouldn’t make things worse for her. Just momentarily uncomfortable.

She stood up, tugging Casey gently towards the pile. She went directly in to hug Mia, hoping that Casey would slot in around her so it minimised just how many people could get their arms to her. She was too sober to really be in a group hug.

“You’re still getting your present, though.” She said quietly, though she could’ve taken the out to not give out what she felt were comparatively shit gifts. But of all of them, the one for the girls felt the closest to anything sentimental.

”Awwww, this is so nice! I wish we could take a picture! I’d print out a massive version of it and put it on my wall. Ooo, it could replace a certain weird ass picture!” Cass exclaimed, one arm having reached out to tug Hari the last little bit into the group hug.

It was a nice moment. Even Trisha had to admit that, even though she wasn’t a fan of physical contact like that. But it was nice to know that everyone was there for each other… They loved each other.
Hidden 6 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Of course, the moment could only last so long before Cass ruined it. Not entirely on purpose. Just, she was stuck at the bottom next to Leon and could barely reach anyone! So, of course, she grew a few more limbs and stretched them all out to make sure that she could hug everyone. Even if it meant noodling them around people… It was filled with love! Not creepy at all!

“... Cass, did you just touch my ass?”

”That’s yours? Oops, I thought it was Ed’s! Should’ve known, too much meat there-”

”Common mistake. Squeeze harder.” Ed managed to joke from beneath most of the pile at this point.

Hari had managed to slot into the other side of Mia, arm twisted underneath Trisha and letting her be near the top of the group so she didn’t feel trapped. Only Casey’s arm wrapped in behind her, keeping her safe and secure in the moment as they all enjoyed one another’s company. Eventually, Mia was the first person to call it all to a close.

”God… Can… Can we sit later? And-” she asked, pulling up to look Leon in the face.

He nodded in return.

”Anyone who wants to see what happened will be able to see the Recollection. Just ask. But, again… Let’s save that. There’s still gifts, and I want some smiles. And a picture, I think. We can arrange a picture.”

Once more, the smell of honey filled the air. There was a metal clicking, ticking, then the snapping of something before a flash went off. As the group fully broke up, a couple more flashes came from the mantle above the fireplace. A cellphone, standing on the crab-like structure of its own safety case, was taking pictures autonomously. A true testament to Casey’s magical prowess, he’d easily called upon the warmth of Christmas that he’d experienced throughout his life, causing the phone to come alive with his commands. And those commands were simple… Capture the moment.

”Gotcha covered, Lee.”

Leon nodded, smiling up at the phone and waving. It did a wiggling response.

”Dude… I really wish I had gotten into making things. Like you guys do… The little constructs and stuff? Like, Mia, I- uh, Trisha, block your ears if you don’t wanna hear about this, but like, what exactly did you use to get our hair and stuff, Mia?” Leon asked with rapt interest as the group slowly dispersed back to their seats.

Casey quickly looked at Trisha, arm sweeping around her shoulder with one hand tucking over her ear in case she wanted to avoid the cursed knowledge.

Trisha tilted her head into Casey’s hand, one of her own going up to cover her other ear. Not that it really blocked out voices, but it let her muffle it all a bit. She closed her eyes like she was going to have a quick nap through the conversation.

”We were watching an anime, so that was the inspiration… Uh, they’re little coins. Dime-sized, with the, uh… Crab legs. Like Papa taught us. They had bristles inside, and they’d rub into whatever they found. Easier to get yours and Cass’ because you guys are messier. And that’s all I’ll say about it.” she explained, not relishing in it anymore than she had to, as she’d understood the previous conversation’s issues easily. There was no glory in rubbing Trisha’s nose in it.

Casey couldn’t help but narrow his eyes.
”There’s no finger nails in ours then… Neither of us trim them in a way where we leave any behind.” he commented openly, knowing full well that Trisha’s process was meticulous, while his was far more primal.

She shrugged her shoulders.
”They ground everything up. I didn’t know what I was getting. The command was to find Keratin, and they did. I just… Figured whatever was gonna be in your guys’ homes was yours. So, yeah, it’s probably just hair. It all works the same.”

Casey gave an expression that told her he was impressed. However she’d managed to get them into their apartment, he had to give their subtleness props. Though, he had been doing his absolute best to cut back on utilizing his powers in the interim, at least while at home.

”Neat… I think.”

”Pretty fucking awesome in my eyes!” Cass exclaimed, throwing up all six of her arms. She hadn’t pulled in the extra ones from the group hug yet.
”But… I’ve lived with Trisha! I know she’s just as messy as me- more, sometimes! So I completely reject that we’re messier! Unless love’s made her into a neat freak!”

She looked intently at Trisha, who raised her eyebrows.
“Hmm?”

”I know you heard me.”

Trisha dropped the hand she had covering her ear now that they’d moved on from the hair collection.
”Casey’s the ‘neat freak.’ He tidies up after me.”

Ohhhhh.” Cass grinned, one hand saluting Casey.
“You’ve taken on a difficult task, but someone had to do it.”

“I’m not that bad.” Trisha playfully pouted. She really didn’t think Cass had a leg to stand on with how messy she was. Sure, Trisha did it out of laziness while Cass did it because she forgot about something she was doing, but it was still messy!

”Hmm… Well… I won’t put Casey in the hot seat by asking him if that’s true or not!” Cass laughed. All six arms folded, one finger on the top set tapping against her bicep.
”Now we’ve given you all your presents, it’s only fair you give us ours.”

Trisha turned her head away from Cass and towards Casey, so at least he’d be the only one to see the hesitation and growing anxiety in her expression. She was nervous enough about gift giving- unsurprising for someone as anxious as her- nevermind after everything that had been given out up until now.
“It’s kind of hard to follow up on Leon’s, though.”

Leon put his hands up in a warding fashion, waving the thought off.
”Intent is intent. I just figured we’d do our absolute best to put the past behind us however we can.”

”Any gift that doesn’t make us all cry is probably welcomed at this point. I’m hoping yours is fun!” Mia admitted aloud.

The other girls nodded, with Ed and Mia exchanging very subtle looks. Casey patted Trisha’s arm.
”You want me to go first?” he asked her quietly.

Trisha shook her head. It would be worse if she went last, because then it might be a disappointment to end everything. Honestly, it would have been easiest if she went first, but that ship had sailed.

“As long as expectations aren’t too high… I’m not so used to gift giving. We’d always do a secret santa during University, so it was only one person to think about. Last year I didn’t even have anyone to give something to.” She admitted what was a bit of a sad fact. While she hadn’t given anything, technically she had gotten a gift- if relationship self help books from Tansy as a purposeful jab counted.

With that said, she did her best to not pre-emptively apologise for what she had to give. Laying her insecurities out like that wouldn’t benefit anyone, after all. They’d just get annoyed.

“First of all, there’s the expected. Doesn’t really feel like a Christmas gift since I give it away all the time.” She managed to push down her anxiety to laugh, as she handed each person a mini jar of honey. There could only be about one ounce in there. Though to anyone who looked at it closely with a magically attuned eye, it glowed softly- more than her normal honey did.
“Though it is the last of what we have until we come back and I harvest more, so I guess it’s more valuable because of that!”

”Aw man, I’m gonna have to ration myself!” Cass groaned jokingly, grinning at her little jar of honey. Trisha’s honey really was the best.

“There’ll be plenty more in a week.” Trisha smiled as she went back to her little gift bag. Which one did she do first? The one she felt was the worst, or the best? Maybe start positively.

She pulled out an envelope, handing it over to the girls.
“This is for all of you.”

Ed reached a hand out to meet Trisha’s, taking the envelope and bringing it into Mia’s reach so she could be the one to open it between them. Mia’s finger slid up under the lip of the envelope, sliding between the paper and opening the way for her to pull out the internals.

Inside was a fancily designed voucher on cream paper with dark green cursive text. A luxury stay at the Woldoff Lodge. The same hotel her and Casey had stayed at on the date she organised. It had no date on it, so clearly it wasn’t a booking for a specific day. Instead there were simple instructions for how to use it when booking. All three of their names were printed neatly after the ‘for’, so it was clear Trisha hadn’t tried to hide it was a gift for three.

Admittedly, they wouldn’t have questioned anything she wanted. Woldoff Lodge didn’t normally do vouchers like this. They had the normal where you could get a voucher for a certain amount off a stay… but Trisha hadn’t wanted something like that. She wanted to treat the girls to a night away, whenever they wanted it. It was a rare occasion where she did lean on her name. Her Father had bailed the place out not long before he’d died, so they were willing to give a Vanburen special treatment.

She’d still paid the full price for a night in the fanciest room, with dinner and breakfast included. She’d just had to ask them to make a new voucher just for her.

“It’s one night stay in their nicest rooms, or two if you want something simpler. The voucher doesn’t expire for two years… But even if you don’t use it by then, I can easily call them and ask for it to be extended.” She explained calmly, hands clasped tightly in her lap to cover up her nervousness over how they might react.

There were glances exchanged between the girls as they parsed out a group consensus without words. The immediate feeling was mostly from Mia, whose Richoux upbringing had totally numbed her to this kind of gift. Ed was excited for anything, and had no trouble saying something with gratitude aloud.

”Damn, this’ll be great like… Sometime next year? While we’re traveling, or whatever. We can fall back on a night at the Woldoff, or, like you said: A couple, if we slide into a cheaper room. That works.” she grinned, knowing full well that they weren’t done living like they were homeless quite yet.

There was a draw to transience between them. A wanderlust that still needed sating.

”Actually? You’re so right. We’re gonna wait until we really fucking need the break. And then, we’ll all melt in a hot tub for a night. Rest our weary bones.” Hari cooed, leaning into Mia and practically looking over her shoulder at the piece of paper.

With encouragement on both sides of her, Mia finally gave a big smile and nodded.
”It’s great utility. Thank you, Sis!”

Casey smiled between them, hoping that Mia’s gratitude was true, and not just a peer pressured response.

Trisha managed to smile back at them all, though she could tell the reaction was lukewarm from Mia especially. Why wouldn’t it be? It probably felt so much more impersonal. Especially when she’d managed to get something so nice for Casey… But she couldn’t get everyone bee necklaces, could she? To her, something like this wasn’t a bad gift- she’d put in effort, and tailored it to the recipient. She’d not been confident in it, but she hadn’t been so anxious until everyone else started pulling out hers.

It probably made her look like a rich girl who was just throwing money at them. Like she’d always felt her family treated her… But it wasn’t the same, they never thought about what they gave.

“I’m glad you like it. I figured a night somewhere where you don’t have to worry about anything would be nice… But I didn’t want there to be any pressure by booking anything, or something where you’re expected to make up the rest of the cost yourself. So I asked if they’d do something like this.” She managed to respond calmly, smiling like she’d realised her initial anxieties had been for nothing.

She wasn’t going to put that on them, or risk dragging the mood down. Maybe later with Casey… No, probably not. It was a small thing anyway.

“Next year I’ll do something completely different.” She continued, fiddling with her bag without pulling the next gift out. She wasn’t so worried about Cass’, mainly because it was Cass. Leon on the other hand… But she smiled and even tried to make a joke.
“Cass clearly got the Christmas gift theme memo when I didn’t.”

”Oh, nah! I’m just skint as fuck!” Cass waved a hand in front of her.

”We’re just… Not used to receiving nice things like that, Trisha. Dad a-”

Casey raised his hand, warding Leon off the topic.
”-Don’t take the bait.” he said, looking at Trisha and turning his head further so the others couldn’t see him speak. Obviously, if they heard, he couldn’t do a lot about that… But, doing his best to prevent their observation, he spoke quietly to Trisha.

”Sweetheart… The gift’s fine. Saying something like that just… Puts people in a position where they’re forced into assuaging an anxiety that isn’t real.” he tried to explain simply and cleanly.

Leon obviously heard him, though now the girls were forced to consider whether or not their reactions bled too blue. If the lukewarm reception was really that clear, it meant they had to deal with the consequence of action beyond that.

”I mean, it definitely is great utility. As it stands, we’ll probably walk into that bitch looking like three wise hoes, so it’ll be nice to have a guaranteed in, so they can’t try to deny our business.” Mia explained aloud, turning the attention back to them.

”That’s the God honest truth, Trisha. You don’t know how depressing things can really get until you scrounge up enough cash for a night’s stay in a crummy motel, just for them to deny you entry because of how you look. We spent a lot of nights outside with money in our pockets because we couldn’t get showered and clean our clothes without the use of the facilities included with the rooms.” Ed explained, hoping that the reality of Trisha’s gift’s usefulness wouldn’t fly under the radar.

Leon, of course, saw what Trisha saw. Because he wouldn’t have been able to hide his own dissatisfaction. But, the girls were far easier to please as a collective, and they could easily find a use for anything they got. They were good, kind, and typically warm people who had no problem accepting whatever came into their lives with grace and good will.

”And, restricting ourselves so we’re not able to just magically rizz up the clerk at the front desk blows. But, that was part of our rules then. It’ll probably be part of the rules again later.” Hari finished.

Trisha just stared at Casey for a few moments with a small frown, processing everything that was said. The throuple speaking up stopped her from making excuses to him at least. She hadn’t meant it like that. It was meant to be a joke… But clamping down on her reactive defensiveness, she understood that it didn’t come across that way. It was her anxiety slipping out even if she tried to not let it.

“I didn’t mean to do that. I’ll try not to again.” She said very quietly to Casey. She couldn’t promise she wouldn’t, but she could at least confirm that she’d try. Keep trying until she really recognised how what she was saying affected other people. She reached it for his hand, shifting to look back towards the group, speaking louder.

“I understand. I didn’t realise that utility meant it was positive in that way… I didn’t mean to imply I thought you were ungrateful or anything.” She said, fingers playing with Casey’s.
“Honestly, you could walk in naked and covered in mud, so long as they see my name on it. Even though it’s been ten years since dad saved the place, they still treat my family like royalty. Normally I don’t like using the family name for things… But I think it’s alright for stuff like this, right? I might as well use it for some amount of good.”

Though when she decided to give them this, it wasn’t them looking homeless that she was worried about but rather them being a lesbian throuple. Seemed stupid in hindsight, because they could’ve just pretended to be friends.

“Uh, anyway, what I’m trying to say is… I’m glad you do like it and it’ll be useful. That’s what I wanted in the first place.”

”We’re glad to have it, and we definitely appreciate the long lifespan of it.” Mia returned simply, doing her absolute best not to rush to the other end of the couch and cling to Trisha for confirmation.

Casey simply placed a hand on Trisha’s thigh, gently rubbing with his thumb to try and shore up her emotional status. He nodded at the girls, then at Trisha.

”See? One down… Not so hard.” he grinned, leaning in and kissing her cheek before waving along.
”What’s next?”

It had been emotionally difficult, but she guessed that was only because she was anxious. That made plenty of things difficult. Far more difficult than they should be! She’d been getting better with it too, but the last week-

Definitely not the time to think about that. She smiled and managed to relax, leaning into Casey for a moment before going back into her bag.

Caaassss is what’s next.” She laughed lightly, leaning forward to hand another envelope to Cass.

”Ooo, am I the gift? So true but I ain’t yours to give away- Wait!” Cass waved the envelope beside her ear as if it would tell her what it was.
”Is it a gift card for Nasty Drake?!”

Trisha hit Cass with a deadpan stare, holding her hand back out.
“On second thoughts, I’ll take it back.”

No way! It’s my gift!” Cass cackled, leaning back and jokingly kicking her legs as if to ward Trisha off. As she did she tore the envelope open, grin widening.
”Oh hell yeah!”

The card she pulled out was jet black, with all the details written in elaborate white text, mimicking something that’d be written a hundred years ago. Another voucher, but one that Cass was clearly fucking elated over. She waved it at Leon.

”This is for a tattooist back in San Fran I’ve wanted to go to the whole time I lived there! I just couldn’t justify it cause it’s so fucking expensive… Cause she’s so good, y’know. Worth the price! But I ain’t rich. Holy shit, Trisha- how did you know.”

Trisha hit her with another deadpan ‘seriously’ look which quickly broke into a smile.
“You’d moan about it every couple of months.”

”Awwww, you really do listen to me!”

“Obviously I do.” Trisha said simply, rather than protesting like admitting to being a good friend would kill her for once.

Cass’ practically beamed, before pointing to Leon.
”So… His gift is a Nasty Drake gift card, right?”

What was her obsession with making a sexual joke out of everything? Obviously, Trisha was used to it… But she also knew Leon didn’t need a gift card to anything like that! He had a sex dungeon of a bedroom!

It did mean she couldn’t put off the final gift any longer. Leon had been the hardest for her. He was as rich as she was… Probably more, considering there was family wealth and his own. What could she get him that he didn’t already have? On top of that, she didn’t really know him that well. Sure, she’d not know the girls for long, but she felt like she understood them a bit more. It was difficult for Leon, since their relationship had been so negative to start with. It made it difficult to give him something specifically tailored to him, even if her last two gifts weren’t in quite the same way the handmade ones were. It had still been specific to the people she was gifting them to.

“His gift was introducing him to you. What else does he need?” Trisha jokingly waved Cass off.

Leon shrugged, nodding.
”Honestly, pretty good gift. I’ve honestly never been so satisfied. Life’s hard, but I genuinely look forward to spending time with her.” he explained with a warm tone in his voice.

Still managing to smile, Trisha leaned forward to hesitantly rummage in her gift bag.
“Honestly… I got you two things, because the first thing didn’t feel like it was big enough. But the second one isn’t really… Well, that doesn’t matter. I think the original one itself will be fine.”

She handed him an actual wrapped gift, though it was small. Small enough to fit in the palm of his hand, though he had very big hands, so it wasn’t a fair comparison. His finger easily pressed through the paper and shredded an opening for him to slip the contents out of.

Inside was a photo album, just big enough for one standard sized photo per page. Probably unsurprisingly, it was filled with photos of Cass. A wide variety, from a few nice shots to an incredible amount of goofy ones. Not only was Cass goofy all the time, but she pulled faces whenever someone pointed a camera at her too. A good amount were from their University days, which Trisha had collected from all their friends- but there were childhood ones too.

“I swear I didn’t copy Cass, even though it looks like I did.”

Honestly, the idea hadn’t entirely been her own. It came about when Sal messaged her to complain about Cass not gaming with him one night because she was busy. After letting him complain about her ‘stupidly sexy boyfriend’ for a bit, Trisha had then said about her Christmas gift struggles. Sal had suggested something like this, and helped provide a lot of the pictures.

Of course, Cass was trying to muscle her way in to see, which made Leon work extra hard to keep it away from her as he wanted to be the one to selfishly experience the gift he’d been given. After all, when he opened it and saw that face staring back at him from the past, he could only blush and grin. There were obviously a few years between them, but it was completely full of sentiment in his eyes.

There was a few pictures that were of her and some of their other friends, probably so hammered that whatever night it had been was foggy at best. And then, as he was pushing up off the couch to avoid a secondary assault for supremacy of the little album, his face lit up like a Christmas tree.

”Ohhhh! Cass! Trisha!? Where’d you get pictures like this!? Did you, like, find these on her old socials or something? Cassie, Baby, look!” he finally held it out to her, showing off the final pictures in the album.

Both pictures showed a teen Cass, a similar age in both. In the first she was dressed in a put together boxing kid. A tank top and big, baggy shorts in black, purple and gold. The gold was clearly a self addition, painted on top to match Gravity’s boxing kit. She’d even straightened her hair, though it was quite frizzy in this one. Then the other was a similar, but slightly better put together, ensemble in grey, white and red. She’d clearly improved on her hair straightening too when she dressed up as Timberwolf… In both she was making dramatic punches with a wide, goofy grin.

Cass’ mouth fell open as she stared at the pictures speechlessly. All her fighting spirit dropped as her face turned a deep shade of crimson.
”Oh my God, Trisha, where the fuck did you get these?!”

“I have an in with a certain childhood friend.” Trisha giggled. Revenge was sweet, after all, even if that revenge was embarrassing past photos enjoyed by boyfriends.

”Sal, that bastard, selling me out! What the fuck! This is so embarassing!” She did seem genuinely, though good naturedly, embarrassed. It was a rare state for her to be in… But it was her dressing up as her now boyfriend. And his dad! Of course she was embarrassed!

”Oh my God, Babe, I never thought you’d see these. Thank fuck we’re dating, cause the girlfriend side is stopping my fan side from self combusting outta horror!”

Leon shook his head.
”He never taught me to cringe at fans. I feel a genuine connection with anyone who wants to support me, inside or outside the ring. This is just another instance of having an awesome fan. I mean, look-”

He pointed at the picture of her in his father’s ring gear. Mia quickly got up, leaving Hari and Ed a chance to slide into one another with the former swinging her legs up into the latter’s lap for some cuddling as Mia remained distracted.

”Dude! That’s the Mantis Sports limited run! The one they did for that Halloween one year, as like… Dad’s tenth anniversary for the first Dominance World title! Your parents must’ve loved you, I’ve tried to get that a few times for charity stuff, and it’s like… Never worth it! Collectors love them, and they hoard them!”

Leon’s eyes narrowed, his advanced senses easily parsing out the pixilated details in a way that Mia simply couldn’t.

”I… Don’t-”

”I wish it was the real thing!” Cass cut Leon off, though not entirely on purpose. She was just excited to talk about it and complain about how difficult the real thing was to get, quickly getting over her embarrassment.

”I made ‘em myself! Looks better in the photo than in real life, honestly… Well, I ain’t got ‘em anymore, but back then! They were a lil crusty by the end of the night… But yeah, good spot, honestly, I’m glad I got ‘em accurate enough! I spent ages copying the Mantis Sports one… I did try to convince my parents to ‘invest’ in the real thing, but they didn’t think me promising to not eat for a couple of years was enough to justify it!”

Though she hadn’t seriously asked for them from her parents… The price was practically a year's salary for her Dad. Like Mia said, not worth it!

”It’s crazy how expensive that shit is. I wouldn’t mind if they were sitting with fans, but fucking collectors- ugh, they’re the worst!”

Leon’s eyes closed in satisfaction as he internally patted himself on the back. Of course he spotted the difference, but he was also just happy she responded the way she did. It was great to have someone so open and free of the social anxiety that the other women in his life were so prone to.

”Haha, yeah… Collectors… Awful.

He knew there was a matching set somewhere… In one of the many storage sites, either upstairs, or in a different building somewhere else. It was all capital, after all. If ever there was a hard time that needed to be overcome by a bit of gain, he knew he had potential. Credit, credit, credit.

”We’re his kids, dude… I think it’s a little different that our family keeps a set, isn’t it?” Mia asked with sincerity in her voice.

Leon laughed back, rolling his eyes and looking at Cass.
”When I find it, I’ll let you put the real one on. You can walk around in just the robe.

Mia groaned, shaking her head and bringing her hands up to cover her ears as Leon’s head tilted back and he laughed wildly.
”That’s fucking great… Thank you, Trisha! Leon exclaimed, a wide smile on his face.
”You said there was a part two?” he asked, not exactly remembering in the haze of excitement.

Trisha was incredibly glad that somehow she’d managed to do really well with one gift, even though it was the one she’d been least sure about. But she hadn’t realised in advance that those were the kinds of gifts everyone actually liked… She did now. She’d have to think harder for next year.

“Sort of. I got it because I felt that one… Wasn’t as expensive as the others.” She managed to admit painfully. There was a conflicted struggle when it came to gift giving. She hated expensive gifts with no thoughts behind them, but at the same time her whole life had been filled with money equalling value. So many people only wanted her for it too.

“It feels like it diminishes this one, but if you still want it? It would let you get a tattoo with Cass without having to pay for it.”

”Oh hell yeah, we can get matching tramp stamps.” Cass laughed, incredibly bouncy thanks to Leon's offer for her to wear the real one. That would be so awesome! Not that she’d actually sully it by walking around in just the robe… Mostly for poor Mia!

”Hey, I won’t pass up the opportunity. It just means we can tip a buckwild amount. Make that shop’s week.” Leon accepted as graciously as he could.
”That’s real sweet of you, Trisha. I’ll get your name tattooed in smaller print near Cass’, so-”

He was quickly thumped in the head, causing laughter across the couch. He paused for a moment, giggling before bowing his head more graciously.
”Seriously. Thank you. We’ll make the most of the offer.” he added formally.

“Just don’t get my name tattooed. That’ll be thanks enough.” Trisha said, honestly more comfortable with the first thanks than the more formal one. She pulled out the last envelope to give to him so he had it.
“But, you’re welcome. I’m glad you’ll use it… And liked the photos.”

”Great minds think alike, as they say.” Cass laughed, grinning widely at Trisha.

She just ducked her head, shaking it slightly. At least their ideas had been a bit different. Cass’ was a nice scrapbook for the two of them, while Trisha just gave Leon as many photos of Cass as she could fit in one photo album.

”Oh, you thought I meant with the photos? I mean with getting your name tattooed, cause I’ll also- Okay, I’ll stop!” Cass threw her hands up as Trisha glared at her, before anyone decided to give her a thump to the head too.

With all of her gifts given out Trisha was able to relax more, leaning in towards Casey with a warm smile.
“I guess it really wasn’t so hard in the end. The anxiety wasn’t real, like you said.” She said softly.

Casey patted her thigh as he took a deep, comforting breath. If only anxiety worked so simply, that she’d just be over it suddenly. Chances weren’t low, they were non-existent. But, she was satisfied for the moment, and that was enough for Casey to be happy in turn.

”It’s as real as you let it be, Honey… Good job.” he said quietly in return, gaze passing over to Leon.

He noticed, and smiled widely as his body twisted.

”I’m terrible at giving gifts. They’re usually boring and uninspired. So, this year hasn’t been any different.” Leon explained, sliding out a box as long as Trisha was tall, and sliding it over to Casey and Trisha.

He handled it with one hand, which gave the illusion that it was light. But Trisha would find that it was anything but. Probably a hundred pounds spread out over both their laps.

”I had someone make these. I think they came out awesome. You may need help rolling them out. Cass? Can you-” Leon motioned to Cass with his hands, making the shape of a square with his arms to indicate what he was asking.

Thankfully she’d been there to see them get wrapped, so he hoped she’d get what he wanted. After all, long cloth pieces like these needed support.

"Got it!" Cass was already up and ready. She squatted in front of them with her arms out like she was ready to catch something.

Trisha tilted her head in confusion at Cass' posturing and the sheer weight of the box on her legs. It would be painful if it wasn't how they were balanced on Casey's side. But it was still enough that she wanted to open it quickly and get it off her lap.

“I thought the cat killing was your present?" She asked as she got to work opening the box.

Inside was what looked like a… Rolled up rug? Maybe? A thin one. Nicely woven threads. It was clearly something big.

"Unravel it into my arms, Trish!" Cass grinned, wriggling her fingers.

So Trisha did with Casey's help, and ultimately Cass' as she walked backwards and held it up for them to see. It wasn't a rug like Trisha had first guessed, but a tapestry. It depicted a Bee Woman standing tall and regal, with a golden crown shining on her head and more bees gathering around her. The added bee features were enough to obscure any defining facial features, while it was still clear it was inspired by her.

Even clearer as Cass helped roll out the second one. A Knight in shining armour inspired by bees, with a long sword held up in front of him. Even that shone with a honeycomb pattern. A helmet covered his face, but it was just as clear this was meant to be Casey.

“Wow, I…" Trisha trailed off, not sure what to say. She was stunned. They were beautiful, with more details becoming obvious the longer she looked… But also insane. A tapestry.

“I think you have a different idea of boring and uninspired, Leon… They're beautiful. Makes me feel like we need to build a castle to hang them up in."

”I mean, we will! I’ll make sure that there’s plenty of places for stuff like this.” Casey expanded, looking up at Leon to see what he had to say.

”I’m a liar too. It’s crazy.” he laughed, having gotten his own subtle joke out before moving to get some more gift bags.

Obviously, he couldn’t get through a time like this without spending a bit of money. And magical craftsmen didn’t work cheap just because they could make this easily. For the girls, matching tiaras that fitted together in order to activate an apparitional spell. This allowed Serenity to wear the entire ensemble like a crown for herself. The group seemed happy about it, though Mia did mention something about it being totally impractical.

Then he looked at Casey as both he and Trisha were rolling their new art back up.

”And then, Casey and I worked together for Cass’ gift. So, Cass? It’s really his gift. I just-”

”I never would’ve had the contacts to make this work like it does without Leon. He’s the resource guy.”

Leon shuffled a bunch of stuff off of the biggest box under the tree, sliding it out and pointing down at it with both hands before hoisting it up onto the counter.

”I’m gonna go out on a limb and say this is actual artifact-level craftsmanship.” Leon expressed confidently, tapping the box. Having gotten their art back in the box, Casey kissed Trisha’s cheek and stood up next to Leon.

”I think it’ll help you a lot. Uh… A few people were supposed to be here this Christmas, who helped make this possible. Pay them a little mind whenever you use it.”

The cardboard box wrapped in bright, shiny green and red paper waited tantalisingly for Cass’ hands.

"Don't mind if I do!" Cass grinned, wriggly fingers going straight for the paper and tearing it off. The external plain box didn't give much clue as to what was inside, so she quickly got through that as well.

"Holy shit! Is it a 3D printer? A really fucking massive 3D printer?!" Cass was immediately all over it trying to figure out how it would work. If it was Artifact level, it had to have something awesome about it. There were no labels… Oh, there was a little instruction paper!

Plug USB into laptop, download instructional PDF.

Well that was alright she could investigate it later.

"Where's the filament go? I ain't see any external feed?" After she inspected the whole thing she bounced back round to the two brothers with a massive grin.

"Thank you so fucking much! This is awesome… I won't have to order a bunch've my shit anymore!" She jumped up to grab Casey in a tight hug first, arms clamping around his neck.
"And… Don’t worry. I’ll definitely keep those people in mind when I use it.”

Leon pointed at the top of it lazily.
”Whatever you do with it, be gentle. It’s delicate.”

Casey was being squashed, straining against Cass’ strength before finally wriggling away with a hand pressed down atop her head.

”For the good of everyone, seriously. If you misalign the runes, the portal will invariably explode either this way, or the other way. And we don’t want to gamble with it exploding on our end, because you’ll probably wind up crushed by random bullshit.” Casey explained, opening the hatch and sticking his head through to look up at the aperture and extruder.

”Baby… You can forget about soldering with this badboy. You can forget about a lot of things, honestly. Because this bugger right here? Not only does it print with over a hundred different types of materials, including plenty of rare earth metals and other shit you need for computers, but it does it without input! No silly spools of filament, no stripping plastic bottles for free supplies: The external feed is fully internal, and housed around a pressurized material portal linked into a White Lux BUS block that can call up individual materials.”

”It’ll even print layers of different materials in the same build. Totally customizable in the software. Gin was so proud-”
Casey paused, not being able to hide the sadness in his face.
”-that… She was making one for herself. Bigger, more materials… It’s still half-finished.”

He and Leon both patted the machine like it was a dear friend.
”But, we know for sure this one’s up to snuff. So, merry Christmas.”

”Yeah. Merry Christmas, Cass. From the last of Eden.” Casey finished, wiping a tear away.

Cass smiled brightly at them both. There was no sadness in it beyond the hint of solemnity in her eyes. She understood how much something like this meant… The pride of someone now tragically gone.

”I’ll make sure to give it all the appreciation it deserves. And treat it gently!” She nodded.
”And the instruction pdf will be perfect reading for my flight home tomorrow.”

It was amazing she didn’t need any filament or anything else to fuel it… Though Leon’s mention of her forgetting soldering with it was just a dream. She enjoyed soldering as much as she enjoyed the final creation, so she sure as shit wasn’t going to swap to just making everything with this. But it would let her make so much more funky stuff. Only the board was made solely out of plastic, so all the other components would use the cool multi-material printing!

”Maybe I’ll get started tonight- Wait, no, I’ll definitely miss my flight if I do that! Oh my God, I’m going to have to wait.” She quickly swapped back to her normal goofiness as the moment slipped past. She wasn’t one to dwell… At least, not at times like this. She’d gone through her fair share of grieving in the past and getting stuck in it, but she was always going to be the light in a room.

Trisha watched silently with a slight smile, though her gaze had quickly moved from the gift and Cass to Casey. It was warm and loving, like she could support him from a distance… But also watching for any spiralling. Not that she knew what she could do if it happened. Comfort him. But the gift was really nice. Perfect for Cass.

”I’m gonna have to shuffle shit around in my apartment again… I’m starting to run outta space.” Cass continued, before grinning up at Leon.
”You’re gonna have to practice parkour, Babe, cause you’ll need to start stepping over shit to get through my place.”

”It wouldn’t be much of a gift if I didn’t let you do whatever you wanted with it. I’m mentally prepared. I think…” Leon giggled, swinging an arm around her and pulling her tight.

Casey, meanwhile, kept staring at the machine for a few moments more. He wanted to pat it, and to hear that voice echo back at him.

”And then we’ll all die!

He laughed, shaking his head gently.

”It definitely sucks to transport. That was really the only crux. I promise, Cass, we tried to fit it onto a keychain. Just, the math didn’t really math. Shrinking the whole thing pretty much guarantees that the portal inside shrinks to match instead of staying relative in size like other things do. So, it basically starts spewing hot plasma from the pressure and heat the nozzle creates at that size. It’s really fucking dangerous.” Casey laughed to himself, shaking his head as he thought about the horrifying moment they found that tidbit of information out.

Meanwhile, he was moving to the tree, pulling out the box he’d brought for the girls. Trisha had seen what he’d packed in there, and had already heard his long winded explanation of what was going on in there. More wizardry, obviously. Stuff he was incredibly proud of. As he handed the box down to the girls, he turned his head to wink at Trisha as he let Cass finish oogling and appreciating before redirecting the attention.

Cass was absolutely itching to get started with her new printer, even though she knew she couldn’t. Both because it would be rude, and for the reason she’d said earlier- she’d miss her flight home! Plus she was going to miss Leon, so she’d rather spend the whole night with him… It was just so tempting! And there! And awesome!

She wriggled against his side as she stared at it, one hand grasping his shirt and tightening like she was trying to control herself. Which she was… And she was more than happy to redirect her attention as there was moving, tearing her gaze away from her gift with a grin.

Ooo, another Casey gift! Open it, open it.” She jokingly chanted, swinging her whole body round to give the girls her full attention.

Trisha giggled quietly, smiling back at Casey. She knew what this one was, but she was equally as interested in watching it get opened… She knew how proud Casey was of it, so she really hoped he got a good reaction out of it. One that he’d be happy with.

“Yeah, better be quick, or Cass will jump in and do it for you.” She joked.

”Yeah, I’m a fiend for things with shiny wrapping, especially if there may be teh-”

“No spoilers.”

”Well, I don’t actually know what’s inside!”

Mia shook the box, and the three girls took equal turns passing it around before setting it between themselves and digging in. It was heavy too, though not in the way that a massive double-tapestry set was. Mia took point as the tape splitter, and the three of them very neatly peeled the wrapping paper from the box in a single sleeve. In another moment, they had the box open and were pulling things out slowly.

Olive drab was the theme here, maybe… A backpack, and pulling it out revealed it was stuffed full of things. Components, equipment, stuff that one could only put together in such a fashion magically. The girls looked up at him wide-eyed with smiles on their faces.

”I wasn’t here when the three of you made good your escape the first time. I live with a lot of regret, and… That’s definitely one part of the mosaic. So, now that I am here, and I know you guys are planning on roughing it again once all this is over, I decided that I wasn’t going to let you go without knowing you’ll always be safe and sound.”

”Dude… Is this all orange-packed gear?” Ed spoke up as she turned a tightly wrapped roll of something or another in her hands. It felt like a propane canister, it was packed so tightly…

”Right. Mia’ll be the key to your guys’ stuff. You’ve got a full canvas tent there, with an easy setup incantation. The poles all form in place, you guys’ll just need to lock everything down. It’s even weighted, so you don’t need to worry about it blowing away.” he replied.

”Holy shit, it’s even got a shower?” Mia asked, holding up a plastic-looking bag.

”Yeah, so it’s gravity fed. Meaning, you’ll need to dump from the top. But, it’s got its own heating element, so the water will be hot from start to finish no matter what you dump in it. I recommend a waterfall, or a bigger basin that you can just let water flow into it from. So, it’s an infinite warm shower.”

”Dude, you’re so awesome… You know just how much we wanna rough it! Like, just enough friction!” Hari smiled, glancing from Mia to Ed, then back to Casey.

”Oh, I didn’t even think about how you kind of had to hold back to get it all like this. It’s all so thematic. But, like… You could probably fit a house on a dolly, right?” Ed asked curiously.

”Sure… I mean, the luxury camping trip for Trisha is already planned. So, I don’t wanna spoil what she can expect too early.” he grinned, looking back down at Trisha.

“Mhm, I want to be surprised by just how luxurious you can make it." Trisha smiled back at him, eyes squinting happily.
“Though I did say I'd try normal camping too! Just maybe with a shower…"

"Holy shit, that's awesome!" Cass had wriggled out of Leon's hold, bouncing over to stand behind the throuple. She leaned forward to look at each piece they showed off, grinning widely as she did. He really had made sure there was enough there for them to be safe without making it the same as having a house you could travel with…

She'd talked to the three enough to know what they wanted when all of this was over, and they were really free. Of course hearing they wanted to rough it had her big sister instincts getting all worried, but she also totally got it! Her own wanderlust wasn't quite so extreme in that she was happy to become essentially homeless… But she sure didn't want to settle down in one place either.

Something like this really helped with the worries she'd had- nevermind their actual brothers!

"Ooo... is there room for four in there, girls? Maybe I'll have to abandon Lee and crawl into your awesome magical extendable tent." She joked, leaning forward to swing her arms around them from behind.
"I'll even hold up the big shower tub!"

”The cot is big enough for the three of you. It blows up, so you’ve got air and structure support. But, the tent itself is big enough for twelve on the floor. That doesn’t mean you should be throwing parties, just-”

He got glares from all three of them, telling him in no uncertain fashion that he was off the mark. Which was fine- As their older brother, he was never not going to worry. Even with all this stuff, it was nerve wracking thinking that they’d be out in the middle of nowhere without anyone to count on but themselves… He’d been so busy lately, he didn’t even have the chance to check on them normally, however. Thus, he considered that maybe things wouldn’t be so different.

”Well, Cass is family, so obviously she’s allowed in the tent. I’m sure we can squeeze an extra gap in the cot.” Hari winked.

”Incorrect, the cot will explode on contact with a fourth person.” Casey replied flatly, causing the others to start laughing loudly.

"It's got fucking inbuilt anti-orgy protection!" Cass cackled, tilting her head back as she imagined a cot that would explode as soon as a fourth person got in. It was a crazy image, she even added a goofy little cartoon of the four of them being blasted off.

"Don't worry, girls… I can change my biology enough that it doesn't register me as human! Then I'll still be able to squeeze right in, nice and snug, without blasting us off to space." She grinned, wiggling her eyebrows.

“You’re making bold assumptions that Casey didn't add specific explosive measures to account for that." Trisha intoned, tone just as flat as his as she played along with his joke to push it a bit further.

”There are zero anti-Cass protocols that can be put into place without a broad risk to the health and safety of those around her. Frankly, she’s got me by the hair.” Casey shrugged his shoulders, causing Leon to laugh even harder.

”You’re lucky it’s just the hair…”

Laughing as he grabbed the last box for Trisha, Leon realized that he was being skipped over, and frowned.

”Am I chopped liver?”

Casey just nodded in response, smug smirk forming across his face as he handed the small box off to Trisha.

”I’m… Not sure how you’ll take this gift. I thought it was cute when I first got it, but I keep psyching myself into thinking you’ll hate it. I’m sure you won’t, but… Well… I love you. Here.” he said calmly, taking a seat next to her again.

“Why would I hate anything that's from you?” Trisha responded softly as she turned the box around in her hands.

She’d be disappointed if he started handing her expensive gifts with no care for whether she was actually interested in it… But she knew he wouldn’t do that. As long as he’d thought of her when he got her something, she knew she’d like it. Even if it wasn’t something she normally liked… Because she was starting to like a lot of things she hadn’t before thanks to him. She let herself enjoy things she would’ve found embarrassing before.

Not wanting to make him wait long, she neatly unwrapped the box. Inside was an amber-yellow journal, colour similar to her bees’ stripes. On the front it had the sappy quote ‘I Bee-lieve in love.’ She flipped it open just to check the paper itself. It was nice and thick, with dots grids that journals often seemed to have. Not that she’d ever kept one herself, but she’d seen plenty of nice ones before in her endless social media scrolling.

It was incredibly cheesy. With the quote, it was the kind of thing that she would have cringed at under certain circumstances. Not this one. It was cute, and was so Casey while being for her. Right down to the little bee pun. And it meant more to her than just the surface level sappy meaning. Because before Casey, she’d thought she’d never find anyone that loved her. She hadn’t really loved anyone in that way herself.

“It’s really cute… Thank you. I love it. Just like I love you.” She turned her head up to smile adorably up at him, finger tracing the front quote.
“I even read this in your voice, because it’s the exact kind of thing you’d say. So… I like it. It’s special.”

It was a simple way to describe it, but hopefully he’d understood what she meant. Even if he didn’t, it was fine, because he’d know that she really did like it.
“I can use it to keep track of all of my bee logistics… Or the honey. Or maybe as an actual journal. There’s a lot I could do with it. Thank you.

She leaned in to gently kiss him.

He was ecstatic about her reaction, leaning in to be kissed in an equal fashion, smiling as her lips met his cheek and spinning quickly to plant one right back. He hadn’t wanted her to think it was a suggestion, or some kind of subtle hint that she should write her thoughts down. And he really didn’t want her to think that he was going to use it to spy on her… These were, of course, images that he got in his own head. No guarantees that she’d have ever thought any of it, but he couldn’t imagine a world where she didn’t.

It was just so human to feel that way… To put such leaps of logic together.

Leon was doing his best to peer at the front of it, finally reading the words on the front of the little leather booklet and smiling as Cass’ hands tugged backward on his skull. He figured the only way to get her to stop was equal force, and flung his hands backwards to grab cheeks in both hands. The ensuing struggle only lasted a few moments before he was buckled over laughing, leaving the happy couple practically alone as the room’s focus shifted in several different directions.

”I was worried you were gonna take it the wrong way, honestly. Thankfully, you have plenty of ideas for it. So, I’m really glad. It’s the only gift that doesn’t have any magic.” he admitted, shrugging his shoulders.
”I guess love’s a magic. It’s got that.”

“It certainly feels magical.” Trisha responded cutely, eyes squinting warmly at him.
“And I have you for magic anyway. If I want it to float in front of me for some reason, you can enchant it on the fly.”

Though she was more than happy to have a non-magical gift. It was a gift that meant something, even if it was simple itself. Of course she wouldn’t take it the wrong way… Though she wasn’t entirely sure what he meant by that? That she’d get upset because it seemed worth less? No, he knew her well enough to know that wasn’t a problem. It must be that she’d think… Oh, that she should write her worries down instead of talking about them, or something like that.

“I’m just happy to get something filled with love from you… Too happy to be anxious about it.” It was funnily one of those situations where her past experience of backhanded gifts meant she could recognise a real one. This time, at least, that won over any anxiety.
“I love you so much.”

”Man, I gotta high tolerance, but it’s getting suffocatingly sappy in here!” Cass popped their personal little bubble with a loud laugh. She was still clinging to Leon like a backpack, but she’d stopped trying to playfully wrestle with him for now. After all she’d clearly won.

”Well… There’s one set of gifts left that we have to get through.” Leon directed, presuming that he could at least counter the prudishness with equally anti-sap sentiment.

”Yeah, y’know I’ll be honest? Did not expect to get a gift from her.” Ed noted openly, shaking her head as she leaned over the couch to start gathering the small, watch-sized boxes sent from Nana Sylvie to each of them by name.

”I bet they’re practical. Something we’ll get use out of.” Casey had also grabbed the boxes for he and Trisha, and handed hers off before taking his in both hands.

Leon made sure to prop Cass up on the edge of the counter as he handed hers behind himself, taking his in one hand and sliding his thumb through the paper.

”Secret agent watches?” Hari asked quizzically.

”That would be pretty dope. Alright, everyone on three?”

One, two, three! Cass shouted almost immediately, right back into her self chosen role of loudest in the room. She shuffled herself back a bit so she was properly perched on the counter, legs swinging as she tore into the perfectly wrapped gift.

”Oh- Whoa!”

Trisha was a little slower with her unwrapping, Cass shouting before she really got in. Inside was a simple jewellery box, which opened to reveal a rope bracelet. Hers was dark green with an emerald toned jewel bead at the centre. It almost perfectly matched the most prominent green gemstones in her engagement ring, but it was glowing just a bit brighter. As she pulled it out she could feel that it was vibrating too.

”Is it a massage bracelet?!” Cass asked as she also picked hers up and held it for everyone to see. It was crimson red with a darker jewel bead- but it seemed strangely bright around the dark base colour.

Trisha shook her head, even though she didn’t know why it was vibrating. She assumed it wasn’t that.
“It’s probably something smarter than that. Right?” She looked up at Casey, assuming he could check it to figure out why it was vibrating. It wasn’t exactly a comfortable wear if it would always be like that.

Mia’s was a bright rose quartz that had a bright, pale shine coming from within. She held it up and cleared her throat before causing it to shine brighter, then disable itself. Casey gave an approving nod, and the scent of honey wafted as he disabled his as well, its molten interior cooling down to a shimmering orange tigerseye.

”Oh… These are… Callstones. That’s a little difficult for a few of us.”

Casey furrowed his brow, looking down at Trisha’s as it was still causing his stone to vibrate in a very subtle directional way. But, he wasn’t the one piping up to explain things.

”So, basically… You’re telling it you’re alive. It’s just connected to your Emotional Field, and it’s looking for a little signal bump. So, just feel it, and reach out to it. I guess, spare it a good thought.” Mia so casually spoke, making sure everyone heard her when she mentioned having a good thought.

Leon let Lelou’s field crawl into the polished jet geode, causing it to flare an intense red in the middle before fading away into a more matte finish. Leon nodded, feeling satisfied with the amount of effort required to check in.

”Casey and I can key into them, change the check-in times… They’re set for once in a twenty-four hour period right now. Otherwise, I guess they’re meant for us to keep in touch with one another, so that we know we’re all okay. She… Let me check them to make sure, when I was over there.”

“How do they let us know everyone’s okay? Will they all turn back on if someone doesn’t give it a good signal?” Trisha asked curiously, staring down at her still glowing and vibrating gemstone. She wasn’t paying enough attention to Casey’s to realise it was also still subtly vibrating.

”The vibration’s gonna have to be stronger if it expects me to check in once a day! Sometimes I lose days to whatever I’m into, and there ain’t anything weak dragging me outta it.” Cass commented as she concentrated on hers, easily figuring out how to turn it off. After all, her head was full of good thoughts, and her magic was fueled by them! So it wasn’t so different from channeling.

Trisha was having a slightly harder time. She was improving with her magic since the Queen had passed over all the knowledge, but it was still a lot for her to handle. Often when she tried to ‘channel’ or send magical signals, she ended up blasting the air with pheromones unwillingly which could affect everyone around them. Maybe it wouldn’t be such a bad thing if it ended up the calming pheromones, but she’d rather do this check in thing without it.

But she really wasn’t sure how to give it a little signal bump. It was difficult for her to find where it was connected, even. It wasn’t like when Casey connected to her Emotional Field… The only Emotional Field communication she was used to. The field had been more the Queen’s until recently too, and the sudden full control made things difficult.

“How-?” She asked quietly, not actually voicing the full question as she glanced up at Casey and then towards Leon. It would be obvious without having to say the whole thing, right? Her stone was still glowing.

Leon smiled gently, taking a deep breath while his face turned rather thoughtful.

”Ed? What would you say that connection feels like?” he turned his head toward their other Adjoined contemporary, taking a glance and seeing her pale white opal in a dull matte finish.

”I would say, it feels like I’m being nagged by Sylvie.” Ed admitted with a laugh as she shook her head and looked away.
”I guess it feels like Nana. It feels like… Judgement, and… Love? So stupid, God, I wish I could give you something more concrete.”

Leon pursed his lips and shook his head. Looking at Trisha like he had all the answers, he leaned in close.

”The sound and vibration is annoying. The feeling on your emotional field is where that annoyance is. It should feel like peanut butter and soft bread stuck to the roof of your mouth. And when you acknowledge it, and basically tell it to go away, it ends. It’s like a goofy little sprite.” he explained openly, very confident in his answer to Trisha.

”And, if it doesn’t work, I’ll just get it for you, Love.” Casey intoned quietly, kissing Trisha on the top of the head in a comforting fashion.

“Thank you… Though it’ll be a pain if you have to do that every day.” Trisha responded softly, tilting her head towards Casey with a slight smile. If it was some kind of check in system, she’d have to learn to do it eventually. It was just a bit embarrassing with everyone around them… And everyone else had managed to do it.

Even Cass had done it so easily, and she’d had magic for so much less time. Though, it felt like Adepts often had an advantage when it came to these things. Their Emotional Field was entirely theirs after all.

What Ed said didn’t help much, because Trisha didn’t know Sylvie enough to be able to find something that felt like her on her emotional field. But the combination of ‘judgment’ and what Leon said helped. She had to close her eyes to block out everything else as she searched for it. She could feel a light scratch as she concentrated, and carefully responded to that connection. A good thought. That was easy right now at least, her eyes opening again to stare up at Casey.

As she stared at him, her expression growing increasingly sappy, the gem finally started to dull back to its normal, dark green state. Now it perfectly matched that stone in her ring, and the annoying vibration ceased as she felt the poking on her emotional field go away.

“Phew… I’m glad I managed to work it out. This kind of stuff is still strange to me.” She said.

Cass nodded in agreement to that, even though she’d sorted it quickly.
”I’m glad it ain’t such a big presence, cause if it was I would’ve punted it away! That’s what I do to anything I don’t recognise that touches my Emotional Field… But it kinda all feels a bit physical to me. Fucking funky how that works.”

“I feel quite detached from mine.” Trisha admitted.

”Me too… Sylvie doesn’t know me very well, despite how long I’ve been around. So, there’s no big thing anchoring it to me like there is for the others. At least, I assume that’s what’s going on.” Hari replied matter of factly, shrugging her shoulders.

”Cass is probably a weird exception, since she’s got no channeler filtering things for her. More or less, a classic case of unfair disadvantage. Not your fault, Babe.” Casey hugged her tightly, standing slowly.
”And I’m glad you got it. At least I’ll usually be with you in case you can’t muster it one day.” he stretched his hand out, offering to help her up off the couch.

Trisha wasn’t sure why Casey was suddenly standing, but she took his hand to pull herself up with him. Did he want to leave now? She could ask, but she’d just go along with whatever he did anyway.
“That’s true… Now that I know the feeling, I think it’ll be easier. I know what I’m looking for even if I’m not really anchored to it.”

Though she was surprised it was difficult for Hari too, considering her Pink Lux. She assumed that checking over your own emotional field would be easy as a Pink Adept.

”Yeah, I can feel it in my boonnneeess. It ain’t a fair comparison! I’m like, super OP. Got nerfed by the whole ‘could turn into a crystal by lux infecting my blood thing’, but otherwise ultra OP!” Cass nodded enthusiastically, before putting her hands on her hips.
”Are you guys leaving?! Or just doing some couple standing stretches?”

Casey looked down tentatively, then back up and around.

”I… Guess I just saw the gifts were done, and my brain said we were done.” he replied, a genuinely confused look crossing his face.

His gaze fell back on Trisha, and he frowned slightly.
”Did… You want to stick around?” he asked calmly.

Trisha looked up at him, tilting her head. She honestly didn’t mind at the moment. But if he’d automatically gone to leave, that meant he wanted to, right? Even if it wasn’t an active thought, some part of him wanted to go back home. She wouldn’t mind doing that, honestly. This had been nice but she could feel her social battery depleting.

Instead of immediately answering him, she looked over at Cass.
“How long until the actual meal is ready?”

”Probably like… Fifteen mins?”

Trisha nodded, looking back at Casey and squeezing his hand.
“Then… Probably not. I’m still not really comfortable eating in larger groups, and I’m more likely to actually eat a proper meal if we go back home.”

It was mostly true rather than being an excuse. She really wouldn’t be able to eat much with all of them around, and she’d not been good about making sure she actually ate recently. It really would be better to give herself the best chance to eat something today.

”I understand… You guys want some to take up with you? Just bung it in the oven for a lil longer and it’ll be good!” Cass asked, not bothered at all by her deciding she wanted to go. She’d said it was a chill thing, after all! She was just glad to see them at all.

The girls gave up a collective frown before standing and making way toward Casey and Trisha. The two had presents they needed to package back up to bring upstairs, which Casey started to do as soon as he got the okay, but was interrupted by pretty immediate hugs. Maybe Cass wasn’t thinking about it like the others were, but this was the last time they’d see each other with their family as it was. Next time, things would be totally different as far as their surrounding environment was concerned.

Mia especially wanted to cherish this last moment with her brother. After all, there was no telling whether or not she’d still be there next week. They could all die, and Lynette could be waiting here for Casey and Trisha with evil in her heart… She hoped that wouldn’t happen, but knew that the explicit chance couldn’t be avoided. So, her arms wrapped around Casey extra tight, with Ed and Hari surrounding the two of them and fully binding Casey tightly between them.

”We love you guys.” Mia said, head twisting in the middle toward Trisha, imagining that she was in the middle with them too… But, the sentiment would have to do for now.

”Yep! Love you like crazy. Uh… Should we call you and let you know how things go?” Ed asked with genuine curiosity in her voice.

”Yeah. Just send a text, I think. Let me know what kind of mood we should expect on return. Obviously, I’m not predicting dancing and parties, but I’d like to be able to breathe a little bit.” Casey replied, explaining his own expectations.

”Unless you object, I’d prefer keeping you actively updated. That way, if there’s too long of a break in communication, it becomes an unspoken warning.” Hari added, face becoming slightly grim.

Casey rubbed both of their backs, forehead pressing into Mia’s and nuzzling her gently.

”You three are sweet. Just make sure Leon’s supported, and that the connections you’ve built with people are still strong. The only way things go smoothly, is if we maintain the healthy relationships we’ve cultivated thus far.” he explained, head twisting to look at Leon.

”Jonah will be in contact with you later tonight. Don’t pass out any more info than he asks for… It’s gonna look real fishy when they start showing up, but we’re going to need friends in the coming days.”

Trisha would recognize the name Jonah. When she and Casey took the trip for his discharge, Jonah had clearly been what amounted to Casey’s best friend. They didn’t seem particularly clingy or affectionate toward one another, so much as they acted on just about the exact same wavelength when it came to action. There had been several insecure instances of Trisha watching the two men have an entire discussion in their heads without speaking, leading to subtle conflict resolution and synchronised actions without intention. It seemed like they were connected in their brains…

In truth, the black-hood mercenary group Casey had subtly woven together that weekend was packed full of people he’d served with and trusted. No matter how badly St. Portwell destabilized with the disappearance of the Temple, they’d keep his people safe. They’d help. They’d keep the peace.

Leon nodded in response, a little sad that the two of them were so quick to leave. But, he also understood Casey had a harder time with the dinner table than the rest of them did. All the freakouts had really stuck with him all these years. Leon couldn’t be upset at it ultimately, and simply accepted what his brother was saying. He wasn’t thrilled about the outside forces being invited into the insular magic scene of St. Portwell. He had his own designs, after all. Subtle ones, unapproved by Elise, but that didn’t quite matter. He just hoped that his own actions wouldn’t be seen as fishy in return.

”Did you end up getting that lady soldier to-”

Leon’s grin widened as Casey narrowed his eyes and leered at his brother.

”-Cass is going away, and you’re asking about another woman?” Casey replied with suspicion in his voice.

”I can ask! Nothing was set in stone, I-”

”Utterly ridiculous. I’ll let you and Cass figure that one out when she arrives with the others.”

Leon just laughed, throwing his hand around Cass.
Are we open like that? Lelou’s one thing, but-”

”Save your hound dogged horniness for after we’ve said our goodbyes to our brother? Pig?” Mia snorted at him insultingly, still clinging to Casey and not wanting him to go.

Yet, he patted Mia on the shoulder and released the tension of hugging from his body to begin receding.

”It’s alright, Mimi. We’ll have plenty of time later.” he nodded assuringly.

Trisha nodded as well, trying her best to give Mia- and the other two girls- what she hoped was a comforting smile. She'd have to be blind to not see the tension and sadness. She knew that no matter what, things would be different when they came back. Even if it was the best outcome… They all still lost their mother or mother figure. Even if she was an awful one, it wouldn't be easy, nevermind dealing with the aftermath. Trisha was glad they wouldn't be there when everything happened, but it also meant it was completely out of their control. They could only plan and hope.

At least she hoped, and Casey clearly planned. Getting people he trusted from the military into the city was far more useful than anything she could offer right now.

“We will. We'll be back in no time, and all be in the same building again." She said calmly. She couldn't guarantee it, but she really hoped it would be the case. And Leon would still be here. He wouldn't let anything happen to the girls unless something had already happened to him first.

"I better get all've this loving before I go away!" Cass laughed, not dragged down at all by the general sadness in the air. She wasn't worried. In fact, she was confident that things would be fine. What would manage to kill Leon, after all? And-
"I ain't away as long, though. Just five days… And you can't even wait five days, huh?!"

She reached up to grab and tug at Leon's cheek, sticking her tongue out at him. She was obviously teasing… For a start, they'd already talked about this, hadn't they? When they made shit official? And again after Thanksgiving?! She was under the impression they'd already agreed they were open like that… But it was fine! No point making a big deal of it.

"Go live out your dreams while I'm gone! Just leave some for me, y'know-"

“Mia already said to save it for later. Are you really going to ruin the moment talking about that?" Trisha interrupted, half exasperated and half amused. It was incredibly Cass to go back to a topic that had been cut off with the implication they talk about it privately. She for one didn't care what they did, but she also didn't want to know!

"Well I didn't want you two going off and worrying I was being thrown to the side. Which is impossible, by the way!" Cass grinned, waggling her eyebrows. At the same time she wriggled away from Leon and bounced towards the leaving couple. Trisha didn't get a chance to react before Cass had clamped onto her.

"I'll miss youuuu. I expect at least five texts a day, or a call! That'd be better!"

“You’re acting like we're the ones dating." Trisha grumbled good naturedly, hugging Cass back.

Having been released by one group, Casey did a bit of gathering before Leon moved in to help.

”D’you guys mind if I help bring some stuff up? All this and food; unless you’ve got an enchantment, it’s gonna-”

A strong honey wafted up as Casey snagged one of the empty gift bags. Tilting the tapestry roll end into the mouth of it, the entire thing slid in like a glove before Casey began to put the other gifts that couldn’t be carried into it as well. He grinned at his brother, shaking his head.

”-Oh, Buddy… I’m like a circus clown. How about you just help Cass with the food.”

Leon pushed forward, smiling and shaking his head in return as he embraced his younger brother.

”I love you, you ass…”
”Love you too. Hold down the fort and stuff. I’ll be back as soon as possible to help wrangle people's attitudes.”

They pulled away from their hug, and Leon nodded before turning and poking Cass.

”As for you, you’re the goddamn energizer bunny… How can you get me used to something, then-”

Casey cleared his throat loudly.

Cass let out a little snicker, sticking her tongue out at Leon before looking over at Casey and making a zipping motion across her lips.
Goooo pack up some food. We can talk ‘bout my energy when the two prude princesses are back in their tower.”

She grinned teasingly, letting go off Trisha to bounce forward to give Casey a quick hug. She didn’t linger, knowing the two probably really wanted to get going by now.

”Enjoy the food. And… Merry Early Christmas! Hopefully we’ll all spend it together on the day next year.”

Casey squeezed back, happy that she seemed to always be exactly who she was. There was no lasting ill will over anything, and it was relieving to say the least.

”It’ll at least be easier!” Casey replied, pulling away and looking at the girls.

”And don’t go crazy once everything starts getting weird. It’s not some invitation, right?”

Hari nodded openly, speaking up first.

”I’ve got you. Everything’ll be fine.” she smiled and nodded.

Satisfied, Casey waited as Leon put together a pan for them to bring upstairs, and looked at Casey sarcastically.
”How’ll you handle the metal pan full of hot food?” he asked with a smirk.

Casey looked his brother up and down once before shaking his head and moving to get a single paper towel out of the roll. There was another strong scent, and he simply grabbed the pan from Leon before twisting to guide Trisha out of the room.

”Goodnight means goodnight. So, goodnight, family.”

The resounding reply left a warm feeling as the duo tipped back into the hallway headed for the elevator. Casey gave Trisha a calm smile.

”That worked a Hell of a lot better than I thought it would, I can’t lie.”

“I did give them an actual reason. It’s hard to protest something like that.” Trisha smiled back at him, eyes creasing slightly. She felt relatively relaxed for once. It had been nice, though she was glad to be going back home. Casey seemed calm. Hopefully the rest of their evening would be peaceful too.

“It wasn’t even really an excuse. I wouldn’t have eaten anything if we stayed.” She shrugged one shoulder.
“But you’re right… I expected at least Mia to protest. Maybe Leon too.”

Only one thought of reasoning crossed Casey’s mind as he considered why they hadn’t protested so much…
”We were raised by the Queen of guilttrips. I guess it’s finally time to settle down and break some cycles like that.” he finally smiled back at her, shrugging his shoulders before leaning in to kiss her.

His mother… The queen of guilt, and of shame… He wondered then about if he’d see her again, or if their last interaction had been an incidental final interaction. She was growing more and more withdrawn as the month trailed along, and at this point, Casey was expecting the worst. That he’d never see her again, and that there would be no sense of closure between them.

Which would prove to be a gravely incorrect presumption.
Hidden 5 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Several hours passed, and it was dark by the time the ringer on Casey’s work phone went off. He’d thought of shutting it off, but there was also a chance for things to start early, and he wanted to be available from all angles in case someone needed to contact him. But, as he and Trisha were in the middle of decompressing in total silent darkness in the back room of their home, the loud jingle went off and scared the Hell out of him. Nearly jumping out of his skin, Casey stared at the phone with hateful eyes. He didn’t even have to look down at Trisha to know there was tense expectation surrounding this situation.

After all, he was done, wasn’t he? No more work like that… Yet, the phone was ringing and interrupting them. And worse? He reached down to pick it up and answer. There was an immediate pause, and the vague silhouette of Casey’s face turned downward in frustration. Another moment passed, and he hung up the phone before clearing his throat.

”Honey… I think I’ve gotta go for a little bit…” he said quietly, something akin to sadness filling the statement as he shifted in the seat.

“Why?” Trisha tried not to panic. She really did. And she didn’t want to sound accusatory, but the single word just slipped out.

She didn’t want him to leave… But especially not when she didn’t know why. It could be like Halcyon Labs again. It could be something else dangerous. It could be something simple. But she didn’t know, and her mind immediately went to the worst, because it was his work phone. Why else would he be called on it now if it wasn’t an emergency? Or some horrendous job Lynette was forcing him to do right before they left.

It was too difficult to suppress her anxiety around him leaving and her fear that he’d get hurt or die. She promised she’d do her best to deal with the former, but it wasn’t easy when it was so suddenly like this.

She didn’t move, just staring up at him with wide eyes, hands moving to subtly grip her sweater. She spoke again, trying to sound as calm as she could. She really didn’t want him to think she was trying to start a fight. She wasn’t. She just wanted to know. Had to.
“What for?”

He didn’t want to worry her. He didn’t want her concerned or upset, but he really didn’t want to miss this chance. It’d be the real last chance, if everything went correctly. Yet, the words necessary weren’t coming out properly.
Ultimately, he could only look at Trisha with a sad face, and he stuck both his hands out to the side, prompting her to come hug him.

”M-mom… Wants to see us.” he spoke quietly, lip quivering.

“Oh…” Trisha frowned back at him, though she quickly shuffled forward to hug into him.

It was an answer that didn’t really help any of her fears. It only eliminated the emergency option. Seeing Lynette could still mean being forced to do something horrible for her. It still involved Lynette.

“Us like all of you? Why?” She asked softly, before shaking her head and hugging him tightly. She didn’t want him to go, but she couldn’t stop him. She shouldn’t, because it would be his last chance to say goodbye. It would be selfish to keep that from him, even if it was because she was scared he’d have to do something he didn’t want to or would be in danger. If she’d been given the opportunity to talk to her Dad before he died, she would’ve taken it, and there was barely a relationship there in the first place.

“S-sorry, I shouldn’t push you.” Not when he was clearly sad about it. Of course he was. She could deal with being a bundle of intense anxiety until he came back safely. She could, but she was also trying to be honest.
“I’m just nervous… That something’ll happen and you won’t come back. N-not cause you don’t want to, because you can’t. I’m worried you’ll get hurt a-and I don’t want that.”

”I don’t know, Baby… Probably just wants to take the last chance to make sure we all know how terrible we are. I don’t know…”

He just kept holding her, hands squeezing around her shoulders from behind as he fully engulfed her in his arms. She’d be able to feel him gently shaking.

”If… The five of us are together, and she wants to hurt us? It’ll have to be mentally. Because she won’t be able to hurt Leon and I.” he replied, trying to sound as confident as he could.

Obviously, it wasn’t true. Maybe Leon would’ve been quick to overpower her, but if she was at her absolute best? She’d almost certainly be able to pick them off and cause a great deal of pain by doing so. His strongest confidence was that she didn’t have the same number of people behind her as she once did… So, at least they wouldn’t be collapsed in on by an army.

He shook his head again, clearing his throat.
”It’s… A stupid thing to do. To go, and to play her game. But, if it’s the last chance I’m gonna see her? I have to. And, I need you to do something for me too…” his voice warbled gently.

”Hari, Ed and Cass will still be here. I need you to spend the night down there with them. At least until we get back. Because if something happens, you all need to be together for safety.”

Trisha’s frown deepened, her head tucking in against his chest to try hide her face. But she couldn’t exactly hide the way she tensed or how her hands gripped onto him tighter.

She didn’t want to, just like she didn’t want him to go. She’d have to put on a brave face and act like she wasn’t horrendously anxious. Suppressing her panic was always exhausting… But she wasn’t comfortable letting it all out in front of anyone else. Even if she’d slipped up before and probably would again, especially in front of Cass.

Maybe she could just go into Casey’s old room. At least then she’d still be downstairs, but she’d also be alone. Because she couldn’t say no if it was for her safety. Even though she didn’t really want to be safe if the worst happened to him.

“Only until you’re back. Then we’ll come up here together.” She agreed eventually, tilting her head back up to look up at him with an anxious frown.
“I don’t want you to go, but I know that’s selfish… Because I understand why. Just- Just- Will you take a bee? Or a couple? Send them back to me if something happens- or even if it doesn’t and everything’s fine, just so I know. Please?”

Casey tucked his head slightly, kissing against the top of Trisha’s head before pulling away slightly more. He wasn’t hugging her anymore, but his hands were still holding onto her arms.
”Of course. As many as you want. I… Just, if it’s fine, I’ll most likely be back before the bees can arrive home. But, yeah- A few bombers, so we know that if the worst happens, they’ll be durable enough to make it home safe.”

He pulled himself up off the couch, holding Trisha’s hands now.
”And yes, when I’m back, we’ll come right back up here for as long as we can.”

Trisha nodded, gripping his hands tightly. It helped alleviate her anxiety just a little bit that he’d take some of the bees. She wasn’t sure what she’d do if they got to her… But she’d figure that out.

“Alright… Thank you for taking them.” She glanced away towards the side of the couch, where a few of the bomber bees were sleeping. She’d given up her wool sweater from the day to them, dumping it to the side and letting them play in it before they got tired. She sent out a gentle waking command to get them moving.

“I hope nothing happens and you also get whatever closure you need. But I’ll be here for you after if it affects you badly… I love you.”

Casey pulled her up and hugged her into himself again, shaking her gently and taking a deep breath.
”I love you too, Trisha… So fucking much. C’mon, let’s get your bag. That way if you need to make a quick getaway, you’ll have some clothes. Don’t worry, when we come back, I’ll take all your stuff back up so you don’t need to carry it. C’mon.” he repeated, tugging her along.

”We’ll probably use the portal on the office floor. We’ll be able to take it back just as easily if everything’s fine.”



The Temple itself was cold and dark. There was still a hole in the roof where Ruby had blasted her plant magic, with reinforced vines still growing in a thick cluster that was getting longer and wider. It was starting to crawl across the ceiling too, curling around one banner’s fixture or another and causing them to hang at an angle that gave the impression they were being possessive. Leon, Casey and Mia had all come here together, and had agreed to keep one another safe no matter what happened.

There was a hope that it was going to be Lynette’s concession; that she’d call all of this foolishness off, and they’d maybe have a chance to fix all the worst crap she’d forced to happen. Leon’s biggest concern was the Aberrational community, who were only growing more radical as their leader and her testudine companion began their yearly brumation process. Suddenly, cool heads were at a premium around people like Walderman or Felicia. Walt was… Vehement. Not even someone like Ed, whom the guy was close as any sibling to, couldn’t dissuade him from at least pushing the notion that they shouldn’t give in for free.

Casey was far more worried about making it home to Trisha than any of the consequences that could result in the action of the coming days. After all, his entire part to play in this was to be absent. They weren’t trying to encourage lawless behavior among the ranks, so much as it was the symbolic abandonment of the institution they’d been raised in. People who would usually tow the line under the threat of “The Blade” and the edifice that surrounds that position. Furio had been a boogeyman for years: A mad cap that would go off for things that seemed plain illogical…

Until, of course, it became clear that he’d had some sort of reason to be suspicious, at least. It was basically every time, with an impressive track record over twenty years. Few but Casey and Lynette knew it was never random. Lynette habitually blabbed to Clarissa, who in a panic would immediately sick Furio on whomever Lynette had a bad dream about that night. Obviously, trusting the woman who can see the future meant his seemingly random acts of violence would be justifiable to the community within the Upper Crust.

But if people weren’t afraid of that power anymore? If they were allowed to actively avoid Furio and Clarissa, rather than being forced to engage them out of reverence or traditional respect? Suddenly the people who would do something if they could, just did. He was a lot more in favor of letting people like Walderman, or even Theo, get a piece of revenge they deserved.

”Took you guys long enough! Did you forget what the accelerator looked like, Casey?”

Junior was sitting up at the head of the congression, ass on the pulpit with his legs swinging like he was a big toddler.

”I did enough rushing to bullshit in the Army, Max. Enough rushing for a lifetime.”

”I guess it’s just convenient that you all live in the same building. It’d be morning by the time you got here otherwise.”

”I smell Elise, but I don’t see her.” Leon spoke up, far more interested in rushing than anyone else was. After all, he only had so long with Cass. Whatever this was didn’t compare to pelvis shattering sex, and probably wouldn’t even compare to a pelvis-shattering accident in terms of fun levels.

He was expecting frustration. Frustration, and grief. Mia, on the other hand, had fallen in line behind Casey and Leon, hoping their massive frames would block her from having to see her closest brother. His was never a face she wanted to see.

”Seals smell Elise and go crazy. I’m surprised you aren’t barking up the salmon tree.”

Junior’s vulgarity knew no bounds. He’d happily say whatever the first thing that came to mind was, and if he thought for a second that it’d hurt someone’s feelings, he said it out loud with pride.

”That’s your big sister, pondscum. Show a little courtesy.” Casey snapped, having slowly separated from Leon to saunter a bit further into the building. He’d already washed the place in his magic, and found nobody around them trying to form an ambush.

”She could show a little courtesy by washing!” he laughed.
”What’s the deal with all the women in our family being filthy? You, me, Leon… I mean, sometimes I take two showers a day! But, fucking dirtball over here? Mimi, when’s the last time you saw falling water that wasn’t from the sky?”

She ignored him like he wasn’t there, but still clung to Leon vaguely in an attempt to be as hidden as she could be.

”Max… Give it up. Please? For five minutes?” Leon pleaded, hoping that there was even an ounce of humanity left in his brother.

Junior tilted his head back and laughed sharply.

”Four minutes and fifty nine! Fifty eight! Seven! Six!-” he chided back, voice hitching on five until he couldn’t hold it anymore.
”Fffffffffffffff-fuck you, Leon. You’ll see me dead before I stop calling these women out for their nasty lifestyles. I mean, come on, you’ve got an open hole into your body, you’d think-”

”Ehem!?”

Junior jumped out of his skin so badly he nearly fell off the pulpit, catching himself just in time to prevent catastrophic collapse, but still sliding off the wood pylon and onto his feet.

At the top of the stairs that lead down into the maze beneath the Temple, Lynette and Elise both stood in stark contrast to one another, yet side by side like two halves of the clock. Elise was dressed for the weather, her long white and green coat covering her pajamas that she’d been in when Lynette woke her up with this. She’d been the first one here, and had been there a significant amount of time longer than the others. She looked tired, worn down, and very frustrated.

Opposite her, Lynette looked as she always did. Hair perfectly combed, dressed in a dark black and purple gown that looked part Asian, and part European monk. Her face was fresh, and eyes wide with what Casey recognized as mischief. It wasn’t his favorite sign, and felt like a physical manifestation of her ever-increasing level of mania as things got closer to the proverbial end.

”Play all you want when we’ve concluded, Max. Leon, Casey, Mia? Welcome. Come. All of you. We’ll speak in the innermost sanctum.”

”I’m not stupid.” Casey piped up immediately, protesting the idea of being trapped underground in a magically protected stone box.

But Leon’s hand reached out, grabbing Casey’s shoulder. They had to have one another’s back.

”I agree with Casey! Why would I go down there with you? How could any of us trust you?”

Of course, Junior didn’t hesitate. He made way for the stairs the moment Lynette told them where they were going, and didn’t stop walking to wait for anything. He’d already stirred the pot enough that anything he said would get a rise out of the others, which was satisfying enough as a button to be able to press. Anything else would have to be saved for the basement…

As he brushed past her and Elise, Lynette gave a small look to the three nervous people, eyebrows raising up and down in a taunting fashion.
”At least someone around here trusts their mother.” she replied before turning and following him down.

Elise scoffed as Lynette descended, and quickly made way for her remaining siblings.
”As far as we’ve gotten, she wants to work out the will. But she’s being stubborn about everything. So, come on. Lets just get this shit over with so we can all go home and not be here. Please…”

Casey gritted his teeth, but wasn’t the first one to speak.

”This doesn’t have anything to do with what Dad left us, does it E?” Mia asked, voice sounding not only fearful, but desperate.

”No…”

”Then I’m not doing this! I’m not, there’s no point, I won’t let her or Max make me feel like this anymore. I don’t care what she’s leaving behind, I don’t care about what she wants to say, and I’m done getting hurt every single time I open up even a little! It’s over!”

She was already turning and making way for the door when Elise stopped her.

”You’ll miss Dad…”

Leon and Casey’s gazes met one another quietly, and in an instant they both understood that neither was experiencing shock. In a single nod, they wordlessly confirmed to the other what they suspected, and looked at Elise in tandem with the expectation of finding the same nervous understanding.

So now, it was only new to one person… And she didn’t turn around immediately. Leon could smell the saline-like compound of tears building up, and Casey looked for the immediate tell of panic in Mia’s left hand, which trembled as two knuckles crooked and bent her middle and ring finger toward her palm. It was subtle, but he’d seen it a thousand times now.

”Dad’s… Dead.”

”Do you want to spend your entire life not knowing?”

There was another pause. Mia slowly turned, and tears were streaming from her face… But she wasn’t sobbing. Just staring with burning fury.
”You’re sick for this.”

”Unless I’m telling the truth.” Elise replied calmly, eyes scanning to her two brothers who clearly knew. Leon was the first to pick up the slack, moving to Mia and taking her hand tightly.

”Come on, Lilly Mimi… Come on. We’re here.”

Casey looked to Elise, who looked back with equal intensity.

”We’re all with you. Not to hurt you… To help. I… I’ve done some awful things to you too… Jealous things. I can’t make up for it unless you let me start. I’m begging you.”

Suddenly, Casey understood the situation… It made him nervous… But he didn’t want to vocalize what he was thinking for fear of causing panic to spread. The sole consolation was that, if Lynette got her way, none of them would even remember why they were mad in the first place…



The five siblings were gathered in the Inner Sanctum, where Leon and Casey had both given strong speeches advocating for a new generation, and an end to the oppressive nature of the structure around them for good. Each kneeled upon the front stage, cushions beneath their legs being the only comfort therein. It was easily apparent that they were configured in a pattern, with Casey recognizing the alchemical symbol of Venus being vaguely referenced in chalk on the floor.

Which made being in the circle at the top rather awkward for him… Like he was being targeted… But, he couldn’t guarantee that this was part of what he thought it was. After all, Lynette revered Venus as a powerful aspect of White Lux. The femininity, and the lunar aspects; all esoteric perceptions that somehow or another drove her image of what reality was, and what reality would be.

In front of him, serving as the center of the cross, was Junior, while Elise and Leon took the east and west points. That left Mia at the front, totally exposed and unable to see the person who made her most nervous in the room, even though she had to deal with the fact that he was right behind her. The only solace she could gain was that she knew Casey was behind Junior, and he’d stop anything from happening…

Which meant she only had to contend with their mother, who was staring directly at her, rather than looking anywhere else. The room had been silent for a few minutes now as the five of them simply sat and steamed in their own thoughts while Lynette fiddled around with whatever book she was messing with. But, now it seemed she was ready to speak.

Her eyes first turned to Elise.
”I think I made my mind up about the last thing.”

”Oh, good. I’m so glad you decided who gets your fucking sex toy collection, you freak of a woman.” Elise replied with frustration.
”An hour over silicone that none of us want.”

”Speak for yourself… That’s Gravity Richoux’s sex toy collection, how much do you think it’ll sell for to some collector? Like Leon’s freaky ass girlfriend!” Junior piped up.

”You’re fucking disgusting Max. Cass would never buy something like that.” Mia did her best to sound strong, which was fine except for Leon’s snicker.

”No, no… I hate when he’s right, but if Cass just saw that as something to buy and had no context for the background, I feel like she’d buy it in a heartbeat.”

Lynette laughed aloud.

”Which is why its yours, Leon. I’d rather it all get used than-”

”Can you please skip this!? Put it in writing, or none of this matters anyway! I’ve been telling you that for the last two weeks! It all needs to be fucking signed and notarized!”” Elise snapped, very clearly sick of hearing about silicon dong.

Lynette kept laughing, loving how prudish some of her children turned out to be.

”Christ… When we were raising you kids, I assumed that being open about sex would even you all out! If I knew you’d wind up embarrassed like a bunch of Gregorian Monks, I would’ve locked you in a box until you were an adult.”

”It doesn’t occur to you that your kids don’t want to hear about their mom’s sexual exploits? It’s a step below incest!”

”You and Cousin Eddy know plenty about that!”

Mia’s hand swept up to slap her own face and cover it in embarrassment. She wasn’t sure why she opened her mouth there, like she was practically inviting the insult. Lynette’s face pursed in genuine surprise and impression all at once, brows waggling sarcastically.

”He’s kinda right, Mimi… Swing and a miss, I’d say. Casey? You’re awfully quiet, love…”

”The pretense doesn’t fool me, obviously. If there’s anyone here whom you’ve given too much to, I’m the one.” Casey said calmly, not worried about most of the faffery surrounding the situation at hand.

Lynette nodded, smiling.

”Well, just like I knew when you were a child… As soon as you Kindled, you were my favorite. I knew you’d be perfect.”

”You knew I’d be compatible.”

She picked both hands up, palms out flat like she was weighing two options.

”Po-tay-to, po-tah-to. Same spud at the end of the day. At least you being a prude makes sense.”

Leon cleared his throat.

”Does this have anything to do with your will, Ma? Actually? Or did you just gather us all here to get one last look at the collection before check-out comes?” he asked, tone changing from something light to something far more frustrated and confused.

”Why on Earth would I bring you down here to talk about my fuckin’ will, Leon? Are we all suddenly dumber now that we’re not constantly playing Spy vs Spy vs Spy?” she asked harshly in return, the notebook in her hand hitting the podium she was at.

”So then what’s the fucking point!?” Mia snapped, clearly shaking at the head of the pack. Casey wasn’t close enough to comfort her, but Leon reached out, leaning forward and placing a hand on her left shoulder. At first she jumped, but looking behind her showed her who it was that was touching her, and she let him proceed with a feeling of love at the back of her mind.

”Everyone knows, but only one has all the pieces put together.”
Producing a long piece of cloth from under her robe, Lynette held it steady as if there was something wrapped within.

”Thankfully, God is good… As usual. In His Will, even my enemies who plot against me are inadvertently my greatest supporters.”

Unfolding the cloth, the black and silver shimmer of metal gave way to a sight that none of them expected… Suddenly, even Junior had reason to be concerned.

”W-wait… Ma? That’s not what I think it is, is it!?”

She grinned wider, and peeled back the rest of the cloth to reveal a beautifully shaped and sculpted chef’s knife, its cutting edge gleaming in an otherworldly fashion.

”Wait… No! He… He relinquished that to me! Where did you-”

”He gave you a knife. Sure, it’s got some pretty unique entities sealed away inside. But this one? This one’s different. Lynette replied with a deep grin.

Leon tried to move his knees off of the cushion, only to find himself suddenly trapped below the knees by some imperceivable force. His struggle caused Mia to panic, and Elise to begin channeling her own spell in a desperate Wildcast, as her channeler was rooms and rooms away from her.

”Ah-ba-baaaaah… No magic!”

Lynette’s hand holding the knife flicked forward, and the blade sung out across the room with a loud pop before bursting through Elise’s chest. She coughed, choking rather than screaming as she grasped at the open wound.

”Oh, holy shit!?” Junior exclaimed, not expecting that to have happened. It was an incredible shock, only magnified by the response that it got from Mia.

Her scream was that of horror and desperation mixed with abject hatred for all of existence as Lynette simply twisted her own hand and recalled the knife in a puff of black smoke.

”See- Daddy made this one! It’s a genuine Richoux Artifact: The Butcher of a Thousand Beasts.”

Elise struggled against the pain, surging forward until her forehead was pressed against the floor and she choked for air. The knife had totally ruptured the left lung, causing it to pool until it couldn’t anymore and forcing it to leak into the chest cavity in turn. She’d die very soon if there was nothing done…

Casey had his channeler, having received it earlier that day in a form that would just about always be with him… But he was more than amazed to find that as he attempted to gather Lux, he received nothing. It was only then that he realized how intricate this binding circle was, as every single inch of its makeup had been carved of miniature runes of Lux Hoarding. And he was in the center of it… The chances were, they were put in the sections that they had been strictly because of the fact that each section was formed out of different runes to prevent them all from taking immediate action.

”Casey? Aren’t you glad you’re the favorite now? You know what’s coming, right? You should be thrilled that you’re the only one who will walk out of here!”

This had not been what he expected. He imagined that she’d utilize Absolution’s innate powers of forgiveness to plant a justification in her children as to the nature of her plan… A reason for all of them to forgive her, and hopefully enough that they’d all agree to let bygones be bygones! A reason for them to all get on the same page, rather than…

”You’re sick! No! No, no, you’re fucking evil!”

”Five people with the same blood should be enough to guarantee my passage. The Lord told me so. Five in blood, and the essence of an apology.”

Behind her, the massive mural wall began to slide and scrape against the surrounding stone, falling back and into a couple of waiting slots as a metal thumping sound echoed from the cavernous hallway behind it.

”Elise! Eliiiiiise!” Mia screamed, doing her best to try and leave her part of the binding only to have the parts outside the boundary begin to burn like a thousand razors were being dragged across her flesh at once.

Leon was doing his best to transform, or to do much of anything, but there was the familiar feeling of the Leash’s sealing effects causing him to lose track of both himself, and Lelou in spite of her violent trashing against the structure within him. Junior had heard five people, but trying to do the math when Casey was supposed to be able to leave drove him to a fervent panic like a rat trapped in an overturned can. His head spun to face his older brother.

”You!? You’re the one!? You fucking loser!? No, no! Mommy, no, don’t, please! I thought-”

”Shut the fuck up! Daddy’s home at last!”

Slowly, surely, the form revealed itself as it stepped through the threshold of the newly opened passage. Most of it was covered by some kind of armored suit, which Casey instantly knew was doing the work… This was a show. This wasn’t real… But the sheer fact of the moment was that it was working… Not on him, but on everyone else it had to work on…

Mia’s scream of abject horror filled the area with such an ear shattering cacophony that even Leon came back to his senses long enough to look up and see… The pale, grey, mummified face of Maxwell Richoux III: Gravity, no longer bound to his timeless form within a stasis bubble. The suit which carried the near-corpse aloft began to kneel. And Lynette let her free hand run through the dry, cracked remains of her husband’s hair, looking down at it with a smile.

”None of you will appreciate the expertise that’s led to this moment… Coaxing the soul of a living being into Ascension is not easy. But, it is rather rewarding! Absoluuuuutiooooon?

From the body, and the suit surrounding it, the most eerie pale blue glow began to get brighter and brighter. Unbidden to the pageantry, Casey’s head swivelled to Elise. She was still moving, and still struggling…

”Lees!” he snapped, shortening her name and pushing the sound through gritted teeth.
Thankfully, her head snapped around to meet his gaze, bloodshot eyes screaming for oxygen.

She was met with a beautiful sight. Sliding across the floor until it hit her in the thigh was a thin green straw trapped in a plastic wrapper… Having nothing but a bad feeling about coming here, there was no way the dedicated soldier would ever leave home unprepared. As Elise scrambled for the package, Mia’s screaming and Lynette’s own hubris kept their actions concealed while the latter focused on her ritual.

With each call, the apparition known as Absolution became more and more apparent. Its massive frame resembled their father’s almost exactly how they remembered him last, though it completely lacked any visible arms. Rather, fins; something like a ray, or a skate, bulged from either side and made the entity look less like a man, and more like the hood and face of a massive cobra snake. Atop it’s “head”, a crown of burning glass formed a steaming ring that hissed and sizzled like water brushing against a lava flow.

”Ab-so-lu-tion…” it burbled from itself, neither mouth nor gills moving to produce the syllables.

”God you’re an ugly ghost, Max…” Lynette intoned with calm observation.

”Ab-so-lu-tion?”

”Of course, I forgive you…”

Her hand wrapped around Max’s mummified face, slowly dipping down until their mouths pressed together. Casey could only watch in horror as the hand still brandishing a knife plunged into the space between the armor and his father’s head. He’d been under the impression that his father was dead… So this was something even more horrifying that he hadn’t bargained for mentally. The tail connecting Absolution to Gravity began to splinter, like bow strings ripping apart from friction. They frayed, popped, and all at once, the Apparition before them was free.

At the same time, Elise felt the refreshing agony of Key Lime Pie in its most concentrated form literally dragging her blood back into her veins as the coagulation process did a complete hundred and eighty degree twist. At the same time, almost so quick that the blood didn’t have time to crawl in, her lung was dragging itself back together under its own power. Mia’s screaming was relentless, but very quickly drowned out by the howling of physical agony that came from Elise’s deeper contralto voice.

And that brought everything screaming to a complete halt. Lynette spun upon hearing, twisting her head back to stare at Elise who simply shouldn’t have been screaming like that. And in the same moment, the smooth transition she was supposed to make that would’ve bound Absolution to the Butcher’s knife, simply didn’t happen. Lynette stared, slack jawed, before realizing all too late that Absolution was running. At least, he was…

”DADDY! I’M SORRY! HELP ME!”

Leon was still practically catatonic, with Lynette having focused most of the power in the binding to preventing Leon’s apparitional powers from freely manifesting. Which made it far too late to swap the polarity and prevent what came next. The fishlike movement of Absolution took it darting toward Elise.

”NO!”

The moment Absolution dove through the barrier surrounding Elise, the entire binding circle began to crumble… Lynette’s feet mashed against the stone beneath her, taking her toward Elise with the knife held ready to plunge… But it was too late. And for the first time in some time, Lynette realized that she’d chosen the wrong vision to trust. It was a complicated vetting system, after all… Not everything was going to be right… But most of the time, she believed in the fifty-fifty shots that she was presented with.

After all, Elise had so much pride in her magic! Being a White Witch seemed to be every bit of Elise’s personality, from the aloof nature she carried herself by, to the way that she was always looking ten steps ahead. But this? Pure desperation. And then there was her little outlier. The only child she knew she couldn’t lay a finger on. Why wouldn’t he throw as many wrenches as he could?

It was her fault for not just killing the girl. Her fault, that she’d simply raised her “mini-me” to be too strong. Too good at seeing the future… Because that’s what she’d been channeling. That’s what the knife had interrupted. She saw just far enough to move, so that the knife would miss bursting through her heart. It wasn’t some kind of Orange-

All five children were gone. In the blink of an eye, they’d been tucked into a massive blue blanket and whisked away… Lynette knew where, but she wasn’t going to get there in time to make a difference.
All alone, Lynette turned her head to stare at her husband’s corpse. There was a moment of brief pause… Then with a single scream, she drove the knife into the skull, twisting once, twice, until like the stem of a tomato, the fifteen-year decayed husk gave up. The spine buckled, snapped, and the paper thin flesh ripped up until she had the head on the end of the knife…

And then her teeth sunk into it like an apple…



Outside on the main ground of the Temple property, the five of them found themselves sat outside of Gravity’s tomb. The only mausoleum with a completely enclosed coffin, nobody had ever asked any questions about why Max’s body wasn’t fit to be displayed… Obviously, because the story had always been that he’d just disappeared. There’d never been a body to take care of.

Now, all of his children understood why. And among them, his Apparitional Spirit clung to its new host with fear and terror in every fibre of its being. Elise flung herself at Casey immediately, hugging into him and sobbing uncontrollably. And Mia was right behind her, both of them suddenly clinging to him like he was the warm little center of everything.

He’d had a gun as well, and thought that this would end in the culmination that would be their final fight. He’d been so ready, even while Leon had insisted that they’d be fine. It was enough of a shock that even he had to cling to his apparitional partner just to feel right.

As for Junior? Shocked and confused didn’t begin to describe what’d happened. But he knew that his Mother had just about killed him along with his siblings, like they were all in the same basket… She’d told him that he was special! So, why was Casey suddenly the favorite!?

”F-fuck this! Fuck you, and you, and you two Aberrant freaks! I… I hate you! You all made her do this! She wouldn’t be this desperate if you assholes didn’t go around laughing about her dying like she’s some comic book villain! She’s out Mother!”

”Shut up, shut up, shut-”

Leon’s body moved like lightning, elbow bashing Junior's face and dropping him to the ground before following up to begin pounding his youngest brother’s into the ground like he’d wanted to for so many years. But before he could, Casey was there… His arms scooped under Leon’s pulling him back as much as he could against the strength of the Wolf of Gluttony.

”Don’t! Don’t, Leon, or it’s- You’re better than this!”

From the side, Mia’s body mashed into Leon. Then Elise, and the power of Absolution’s blue blanket that forced them all further away. It was only a few dozen feet, but the distance was enough for Junior to get up and begin running.

”I hate you! I hate you all! You’ll fucking suffer for this, I swear!” he screamed, sprinting off toward the Temple and leaving those remaining in a pile of comfort…

They knew this was still hostile territory, however, so the jumbled assortment of apologies and affirmations could only live so long before they had to rush back to a vehicle. It was a no-brainer that they’d all return to the same place, with Elise’s strength almost completely drained from the adjoining process. It was only through sheer force of will that she’d been able to muster anything at all, and with the threat now re-engaged upon their peace, the plan’s timetable seemed more pertinent than ever. Something had to be done soon, or they’d all wind up as part of a sick, sick plan.

Casualties in the war over an innocent woman’s autonomy, and a couple’s ability to live in peace without the mistakes of the mother returning to haunt her son, and his children after.
Hidden 5 mos ago Post by FernStone
Raw
GM
Avatar of FernStone

FernStone One Again Addicted to Pepsi Max

Member Seen 2 days ago

Act Three-Two

Trisha and Casey had spent weeks fending off the sleeping fairy, so what was a few more hours of driving and enjoying Trisha’s confident company. She’d done well enough after he got home and spilled his guts again, and this morning, he was feeling nothing if not resolute. The confidence that brought at least gave him the ability to impress calm, and even satisfaction as they rolled down the I-84 in comfort.

This new truck was very luxurious. There was a lot of room; enough for Casey to have spread the back seat flat and laid all their stuff out for Trisha to access. Co-piloting an eighteen hour drive was hard work too, after all! While he had to focus, it was her job to entertain. She could easily do it, as he was so locked in from the latest dose that there was no chance of him easing off the road even a little bit. He didn’t need a lot to be entertained.

It’d been three hours, and snacks had been opened up. A playlist had already been washed through… And yet, they hadn’t even left Oregon. They were close to a state border, of course, but not the one they were heading to, as Washington loomed to the North while they buzzed East toward Idaho. Casey chugged down the last few sips of a sugar free energy drink, slipping the empty can into the trash bag they’d set up before leaving. At this point, he figured they were so blended into the rest of the highway traffic that he’d be able to set the car into magical autopilot.

Trisha would be able to smell strong honey, and without saying a word, Casey slipped his hands away from the wheel to let the car steer itself. He still had to guide it visually, so it was really just a trick to drive without his hands, but that was better than not. It gave him enough agency that he could pull out one of the grocery store sandwiches they’d gotten early that morning. Steak, cheese and egg. The browned up steak in the bun, covered with cheese, wasn’t something he usually went for, but smelling it now made his mouth water, and he took a massive bite out of it without hesitation.

Finally, he looked at Trisha, then down at the sandwich before looking back at the road.
”These are actually pretty good. I’m glad I bought a few. Have you looked at places along the route you may want to stop for dinner at?” he asked calmly, smiling as he took another bite.

“Mhm. I've noted down a few along the stretch we should be in over the dinner hours. I wasn't sure when we'd actually be hungry, so I figured it'd be best to find some at different spots. It's a mix too, so if we feel like something specific at the time, I should have a place written down. They all sound nice, so I'd be happy to end up in any." Trisha replied with her own smile. Choosing a dinner place wasn't the easiest for her, considering she tended not to care about what she ate when she forced herself to have something. But she'd been able to narrow it down with a set of criteria: good reviews, casual and easy to access.

She hadn't expected them to be driving, rather than taking a plane or even teleportation. But it made sense when she thought about it. It was completely in their control- they weren't tied to specific times or dependent on other people. And if Casey could use his magic to help him drive- though it was impossible to not feel a little nervous with his hands off the wheel- then it was a little less taxing on him. Though she had offered to take at least a turn at being the driver, which he'd declined.

So she was able to relax, outside of her navigation, music and entertainment duties. None were really a problem. Talking to Casey was easy, especially when he seemed to be in a decent mood. For her, it being just the two of them was enough for her to relax. It didn't matter the location… She loved any time they spent together. The meeting with Lynette last night, and Trisha comforting him through the aftermath, had at least seemed to resolve some things. There was no more hesitation about going away… So she really hoped they'd be able to enjoy this. If she was honest, she was really glad to be leaving the city for a while. She felt calmer already being away from it all.

She was trying to decide what music to put on now to fill the background silence. The first playlist had been easy- something she'd made in advance from songs she liked, and songs she knew Casey liked. After that was a bit more difficult. Her music taste was boring, or nonexistent maybe. She liked listening to music but had often defaulted to purely instrumental music, classical purely for its ease of listening while studying. Her horizons had only expanded in university when she listened to what her friends liked, and figured out what she liked from that. It was the same whenever Casey played music he enjoyed to her now.

In the end, she chose a playlist Cass had sent her a while back. It'd probably be fine. Warm guitar filled the car, followed by more intense drums.

“Cass sent this one to me. She promised there wasn't anything too heavy… Maybe you're alright with really heavy music, but I just don't enjoy when they start screaming. I don't understand it." She explained lightly, twisting around to find a sandwich she'd picked out. She wasn't actually that hungry, but if Casey was eating one she should try to as well. It was the only way she'd get back on top of actually eating proper meals. A schedule.

She bit down on the chicken salad sandwich she'd gotten, nose wrinkling immediately. It really wasn't that good… The vegetables were watery and almost wilted. The chicken was fine, but there wasn't much flavour to it. But it was food, so she'd eat it.

She nibbled away at it, looking over at Casey and then at the sandwich he seemed to be enjoying much more.
“Can I try a bit of yours? Just a bite… I wouldn't be able to eat a whole sandwich like that."

Pinching the sandwich, Casey twisted his arm and held the chunk out toward Trisha with a smile. He hadn’t been looking at her face when she took a bite of her own sandwich, but he didn’t have to see her to know that she hadn’t liked it. She wouldn’t have asked for any of his if she did…

”There’s like six or seven of these in the bag if you like it better. Feel free to pick at one instead; I’ll get the chicken salad if you don’t want it.”

He was at least used to eating whatever slop they could come up with in the Army. After the war, the food got a lot better, but being out in the middle of nowhere meant K-Rations. Cans, little packs of candies, cigarettes… Shit every good soldier needed, but not always what one wanted. Better than nothing for sure; a sentiment that he could feel looking down at that chicken salad with a single bite through the front.

”I packed a couple books. I figured you’d pick one, and I can read it to you while we’re relaxing. I’m pretty sure the cabin’s hot tub is outside too; did you check the weather? I think we’re gonna hit snow in Idaho somewhere, or Wyoming. South of Yellowstone. I’m hoping there’s no serious issues, but I did pack up a few blankets and pillows in case we need to spend the night here in the car.” he explained, thinking about the logistical necessities ahead.

He was looking forward to dinner, even while eating a breakfast sandwich. Surely they’d be close by the time dinner was rolling around, given they practically said “screw it” around six that morning. There was no sense sitting around, after all. Not when there was nothing left to do or say or feel. Casey had honestly felt better around the St. Portwell city border. Getting on I-84 always felt like an escape, as it was the same highway that took him north toward Oregon. If he and Trisha hadn’t been so Hellbent on getting as far as possible from St. Portwell, Oregon may’ve wound up being a choice destination.

But, it was still too close to his elder sister’s personal domain. He knew there’d be no comfort without total separation from the land. It simply had to be done; distance had to be made in order to know what that absence would really mean. He knew it well enough, because he’d made it happen. The Military had, if nothing else, allowed him to feel that separation truly. To be his own person where he’d lived so drawn to a group otherwise. Responsibility, and a sense of self worth that he didn’t get from magical people. That his Mother would never be able to give to him fully…

“I’ve been checking our route, rather than the weather specifically. Watching out for warnings and closures and the like. Bad weather's part of that… But we're looking fine for now, any snow obviously isn't heavy enough to stop travel. I'll let you know if anything changes." She responded after enjoying the bit of his sandwich he'd given her. It was much nicer than hers, but also too much this early… Hers really wasn't bad. It just barely had any flavour at all. She could force herself to eat at least half of it.

So she kept nibbling on her own, taking a few more bites before speaking again.
“At least we've got plenty of room in here if something happens. We could probably make a nice bed in the back if we needed to."

She didn't seem to have any problems with the idea of being stuck in a truck overnight. She didn't, really. It was better than the one time she'd ended up stuck overnight in Cass' car during a trip they'd taken with Sal one summer… At least the truck had plenty of room, and Casey had brought blankets and pillows. Cass' car was small and there'd been nothing to make it more comfortable.

“Though getting there and sliding right into a hot tub tonight sounds much more appealing." She continued with a warm smile towards him. She really was looking forward to that… And the whole trip. Being away. She was visibly more relaxed now that they were really away from the city. The perpetual anxiety was still there, but it seemed to be more dormant than it had been the last month. Since Thanksgiving…

“Though I imagine you'll be too tired to read then, so we can save that for another day. But that sounds really nice too…" She paused, looking over at him with curiosity. A little question blooming in her mind that she easily asked now that they were more relaxed together.
“Why do you like reading to me so much? Not that I mind, I enjoy just listening but… I was just wondering if there's any reason for it?"

”I’m a crappy reader!” he laughed, eyes staring out at the highway as they barreled on.

”I always had trouble with it as a kid. Never came naturally, I don’t know why. Visual things made sense, doing things with my hands made more sense… But, books? Instructions? If they didn’t have pictures, I was always hopeless. But, I ended up getting taught to read aloud, and…-”

He paused for a moment, a memory from the past flashing his brain in a wave of heat. It was a warm spring day. Clarissa’s hair had been tightly braided then, flush to her scalp and hanging down like a bundle of cables from her head down to her waist. She had a book in her hand, but she wasn’t just reading to them. She was acting. The motions in the book, the expressions, like she could see every little thing going on, and painted the world out with her words and her movement.

”-I guess I realized it was a lot easier to tell what was happening when I used my whole body to try and imitate. That’s why I pause so much, and we laugh so much about it… Because I’m trying to contort into the picture I see in my head. You really help me out with understanding. I mean, it would help even if you just sat and listened, but… You get into it with me. And that’s special too. So, I like reading to you for all those reasons.” he gave her another solemn, vaguely satisfied glance as he munched another bite of sandwich.

Trisha nodded, understanding dawning across her face as he explained. While she didn’t have the same experience, she got what he was saying. She liked learning something like this about him… deeper than what had just seemed like a cute, maybe goofy activity.

“I get into it because it helps me too. I don’t have any problems with reading or understanding the words… But I can’t really visualise it. It’s why I tend to read more realistic novels, because it doesn’t seem as important. But when you’re reading and trying to act it out, and I get involved, it really helps me see it. I still enjoy reading myself, but it is more fun when you do it. Like you fill in the missing piece there.” She admitted herself, with a soft smile.

It wasn’t really on the same level as struggling to read. That was the kind of thing that got you held back in class. But she’d never really had that imagination growing up- an ability to play make believe, or picture what she was reading. That combined with learning magic was real had completely turned her off something like fantasy as a genre, and made others less interesting anyway.

“I guess we make up for each other's weaknesses.” She continued lightly, putting what was left of her sandwich back in the box it had come in. She’d managed to eat almost half of it, at least.
“Nobody ever really read to me growing up… The nannies used to read a book to us in groups before we were sent to bed, but I refused to join in as soon as I was old enough to say no. So it’s extra nice to have someone read to me now, especially if it helps you out. I’m basically getting my own private play from the man I love! So it’s special for me too. More special now I know why you do it.”

Casey smiled back at her, shifting his sandwich hand and wiping it off on his pant leg before reaching across and taking her hand in turn.

”You’d think admitting to not being able to read well would be more embarrassing than a lot of other stuff, but… Well, I guess now I have plenty of evidence that says I can read fine. It’s something I’ve basically overcome, right? I do need to hit a dictionary sometimes, but plenty of people need to do that. Not so embarrassing when I’ve done so much work to fix it.”

He could recognize the irony plenty. His earlier problems and attitudes, especially surrounding his own condition and how it affected others, was the perfect example of a problem that needed time to be worked on. Just like reading, surely he’d be able to patch things up between himself and the people surrounding him by the sheer power of will that he had. He’d find some other technique, or refine the idea of the golden chain of moments, and he’d come through for Trisha and Leon, and Cass, and his other sisters…

”Lots and lots of work. At least there won’t be anymore nights like the last couple weeks. A chance to heal instead of letting the wound get split open again and again.” he added calmly, nodding at her with solemn confidence.

”We’re definitely gonna make a day of going to see one of the ranches that I’m interested in buying out in Colorado. And I did do some talking with Greyson before he passed away, about what I should invest our money into and stuff like that. He even hooked me up with another person in the Midwest who I guess worked for him. Said he’d be able to get us started with moving our money around? Which, I guess just means, like, investing it into stuff?” Casey shrugged questioningly.

Trisha frowned a little bit at that. She didn’t want to immediately doubt Greyson, especially not when he was now dead… But he’d been a criminal! The way that was phrased rang too many alarm bells. She wasn’t exactly experienced in investing, but she’d suffered through enough lectures from Ezra about how to avoid getting scammed or worse. Because then it would reflect on the family name.

“It might be… But it sounds like something that would be offered to criminals to ‘clean’ their money. There’s a chance Greyson didn’t tell him that we’re not like him, or the guy just assumed.” She said evenly, holding onto his hand a bit tighter. The more she thought about it, the more likely that seemed.

“Unless you mean… Greyson said that? I’m not sure, but moving our money around just sounds suspicious to me. Rather than investing. It doesn’t need moved anywhere. Maybe we should talk to someone else as well? Who isn’t connected to a mafia member. Or, I guess, maybe check with Leon first?” Trisha bit her lip, before shaking her head.
“Sorry, I don’t want to make a big deal out of it… I’ve just never invested myself. My share of dad’s money is handled for me, and I get a certain amount monthly. But I was taught a lot about scams and the risk of getting tied to criminal activity- Because, y’know, it’d affect our reputation. So I guess I’m paranoid because of that.”

She squeezed his hand, taking a deep breath. No money had been moved yet. They just needed to be cautious about it, and not just do what someone suggested.
“I’d really like to go and see one of the ranches you’re interested in together. Even if I don’t have much to say about which is better, it’s for our future so… It’ll be really nice to see it. It’ll make that future together feel closer.”

She didn’t say it, but it would make it feel more real too. She knew it would be if they survived the coming months. But it was still difficult, even with Casey saying there wouldn’t be anymore nights like there had been recently. She trusted him, she really did, but it was difficult to completely believe. Not until there’d been a few weeks without any nights like those… A month or two more without him wanting to break up again. She had to see it to really be confident in it herself. She loved him enough to try her best to fight through her anxiety, and it would be easier if what he said was true. Then she could heal as well.

The grin of mischief splitting Casey’s face only started to open half way through her thoughts about using a dead mobster’s financial advisor. By the time he had a chance to concede his joke as just that, she was already onto the ranch. That, at least, was something he could feel genuine joy and excitement toward.

”I have a hard time believing you won't have anything to say. Sure, not much, but I bet we’ll see some kind of vista or landscape, and it’ll take your breath away. We’ll find a place that we both connect with, even in the dead cold.” he asserted.

Without touching the wheel, the vehicle listed into the next lane in order to let an impatient person pass them by. It was a fairly nice, old style American muscle car replica that the company had recently revived and tossed into an exorbitant price bracket. It was fast, loud, and overpriced, making Casey scoff at it without even bothering to toss his hands up on the wheel. It barely mattered at that speed, as the other driver wouldn’t even have the chance to look over.

”I’m amazed I never got into cars. I guess guns take up the niche. Junior wound up interested in automotive, but pivoted into computers after Dad gave him a righteous lecture about taking Temple cars apart. I can’t blame him there, since it was always so easy to miss out on Dad’s points when he got like that. Old Man’s point was just to put the cars back together correctly. Junior heard ‘Just don’t.’ I guess.”

Trisha snickered softly at that. It didn't surprise her that someone like Junior couldn't see the nuance behind being told not to do something. Even if it was obvious, she felt like he'd take the rejection and go onto do something else out of spite.

Not that she was much different… No, it wasn't the same. She gave up because she felt like she wasn't good enough at something.

“Probably worked out in the long run, so we don't have to worry about our cars being tampered with. At least with computers we have Cass' expertise to balance it out." Trisha commented, gaze following the car speeding away down the highway. That was the kind of driver she hated when driving herself. They acted like anyone else on the road was an inconvenience or an obstacle.

“It’s a good thing you're not super into cars, because you probably would've gotten upset the first time you saw mine. At least me knowing nothing about guns is expected. Not that I know nothing about cars, I just don't really care beyond having one to drive." Trisha shrugged. It was part of why she'd just pestered Ezra to give her one… And her inability to save her allowance at the time.

“I’ll need to replace it when we move, though, to something that can handle driving in the middle of nowhere. Something small but sturdy, I guess… I can't expect you to drive me about everywhere in this. What if you're off digging a hole, and I get a sudden craving for some chocolate I can only get in the nearest town? I can't really expect you to run back home and drive me.” She giggled gently, not even thinking hard about the future she was talking about as she leaned back and looked at him with warm eyes. One where they could happily spend time apart.

”We’ll find something with all wheel drive for you. I can winterize vehicles pretty well; at least the tires and stuff. I’ve tried a lot of different solutions to keep wheeled stuff from getting stuck in snow or ice.”

And that wasn’t a joke either. He’d been in plenty of moments where magic could’ve helped make driving a little easier, yet it always seemed so much harder in practice. He chalked it up to his unfamiliarity with auto components, leaving him questioning the overall integrity of anything he touched while leaving behind overall underpowered spells to do jobs they weren’t capable of. At least each new instance was a little easier.

”Speaking of that, we usually don’t have a lot of snow sticking in St. Portwell… Are you gonna be okay in a place where the shit turns to ice as thick as a car?” he questioned her, smirking as the crappy conditions crossed his mind.

“You don't think I'll be able to handle it?" Trisha asked back jokingly, with an exaggerated pout.

She hadn't really thought about it that hard. It was where Casey wanted to go, so she was happy to follow. Driving in those kinds of conditions would be difficult… She probably just wouldn't. But she was sure she'd adapt to it eventually. She was more of a homebody than anything anyway, so if it was really awful she'd just stay inside.

“I’ll be okay. It'll take some time to get used to and I probably won't want to drive in that kind of weather… But otherwise I'm sure I'll be able to handle it. If I somehow can't, I'll just copy actual bee queens and hibernate for the winter." She joked again.
“I guess we'll see how I cope this holiday. But I'm not really worried… I enjoy being inside enough that I could hibernate for a whole season. And I know you'll do everything you can to keep me comfortable anyway. You can pull me along on a sled so I don't fall on my ass constantly trying to walk on car thick ice."

Casey was eternally grateful that the bees had their own wintering system worked out. That didn’t stop him from wanting to make sure they were okay, however, so the underground winter terrariums were probably still on the menu. He only wished there were still people from EDEN to consult when the time came… But, he had all the time in the world to figure things out himself, so he was confident it’d work out.

”You keep talking about hibernating, and there may be a bear onesie in your future.” he grinned at her.

Letting the back of his seat fold backward, Casey pulled himself away from the wheel and patted his lap for Trisha to crawl across the center console into.
”Careful of the shifter, and my line of sight.” he instructed gently.

Trisha nodded, shifting around in her seat and carefully climbing over. The moment she was in his lap she curled up against him, making sure her head was tucked in under his- though it wasn't hard to stay out of his line of sight with how much smaller she was than him.

“I’ve already got a bee onesie, and bees do hibernate. What would I need a bear one for? You should get a bear onesie and hibernate with me. Then we'll be matching." She giggled softly, cuddling into him.
“Since bears eat honey, so bears and bees go together. Sort of. Either way, it'd be cute. Then we can cuddle up in a warm house for all of winter."

It was a cute image, even if hibernating for all of winter was unrealistic… though she wasn't being serious about that. The bear onesie, though? She was pretty serious about that bit.

“We can definitely find one your size. They go way up, cause they’re easy to make for any size I think.” She babbled a bit, unlocking her phone in her lap. It was on the app she’d been using for music, where she was half searching for podcasts too. It wasn’t normally her thing, but there was probably something that they’d both enjoy to fill some of the time.

But right now she seemed to be on a mission, the idea put into her head as she swapped to a web browser. She did pause, tilting her head back to look up at him.
“Would you wear something like that? Or would it be… Too cute?”

”It’s not, Honey… I’ll be your Honeybear. You can be my Babybee. And we’ll absolutely maul anyone we don’t like together.” he grinned back down at her, rubbing her arm and shoulder as she settled in completely.

”Just, y’know, make sure you get a couple of wolf ones too. We don’t want anyone feeling left out.” Casey winked.

He was already feeling so much more relaxed. There were only a few people who could make his life Hellish right now, and a normal suspect was totally discluded because she’d never been in his car! They were safe traveling.

”D’you want to travel like Leon and Cass? Like, when we’re free… We could get an RV or something, and just make this full time…”

Trisha fell into a thoughtful silence rather than immediately answering. Did she want to do something like that? She actually had to think about it, because she knew answering with ‘if you want to’ was a cop out. There’d always been a picture in her head of what she wanted eventually- the idyllic home, loving partner and children. So naturally she wanted to jump right to that. But they didn’t necessarily have to.

“Not like them, no. I think I’d get pretty sick of living in an RV after a few weeks. I know you could magic something so we wouldn’t have to worry about storage or anything, but it doesn’t really appeal. It’d be complicated with the bees too. I can keep them happy enough through Princess, but we’d need to circle back to wherever their hive was every couple of months. It would be stressful.” She replied eventually, before smiling slightly.

“I’d like to do something shorter. Maybe just a month or two. I’d like to go overseas too… I’ve only ever been to the Philippines once and never anywhere else . Honestly, I’ve already been mentally planning our honeymoon. I figured we could do some big overseas holiday for that. But… I’m definitely not like Cass. I don’t want to be on the road for long. I know that I want to settle down with you, and do trips around it. Though a bit of travelling before we really properly settle could be nice.”

Casey raised an eyebrow at the concept of a Honeymoon. That was definitely something he’d been remiss in considering, since he figured they’d have a lifelong position to do things like travel to their hearts content. Even with kids, he knew they’d make it out. It took half of a village to do it with the Richoux clan when he was younger… They traveled with everyone that surrounded them. Furio and Clarissa, Andrade, Andy, plenty of other Temple staff, not to mention his Father’s employees who were there to work and study under the pressure of Gravity specifically.

He’d never seen anyone get stressed out over arrangements, and the one time he traveled with Leon recently seemed similar in vibes. Leon kept it tighter, but that still meant twelve or fifteen people spread out between a few hotel rooms. If it was just Casey and Trisha, he idly wondered how many kids they could handle.

”Oh, that’s a good followup question-” he praised himself before continuing.
”-Do you want the kids to grow up with the culture? Filippino, I mean… I know you said you’ve only been once, but that doesn’t mean we can’t make up for all that lost time. I’d definitely like to wait to visit France until I know the majority of the trip will stick with them meaningfully. And, well, I’m not exactly sure the tribe’ll be welcoming me with open arms after this weekend, so I’m thinking I’ll let them explore that aspect on their own.” he explained, detailing his ideals openly.

Trisha felt like Casey had maybe skipped verbalising a few thoughts, because the followup question seemed like a pretty big jump to her. Sure, she’d mentioned that she’d only been to her Mother’s home country once… But otherwise she’d been thinking about the near future. The next year, a bit beyond that with the honeymoon. How did he get to their children and how they’d bring them up culturally?!

“How soon are you planning to get me pregnant?!” She blurted out, not quite able to clamp down on her confusion over the jump to actually answer his question.

Casey frowned slightly, not knowing how to reply.
”Fuck, I don’t know, how soon do you want to be pregnant!? What do you mean!?”

“Definitely not in the next year, probably not for a few- It’s just I was talking about travelling after everything’s done, and right after our wedding, and you suddenly jumped to talking about the kids like you thought there’d be at least one there already. Like we can’t visit France ever until they're old enough to decide.” She looked up at him, brow furrowing slightly.

“I misunderstood, didn’t I?”

Casey shook his head.
”N-not about that last part? I literally wouldn’t bring them. I wouldn’t go to Europe with little kids who can’t appreciate what I want to show them… At least not, y’know, home. There’s a lot of significance to our family in that country, I wouldn’t waste a trip just to hang around. That’s for, like, Greece. Somewhere in the Med.”

The part he was missing was that she didn’t automatically feel the same way. Or, if she did, she didn’t immediately reciprocate.

”Unless, that’s… The wrong way to think about it? Is that too much like my Dad maybe?” he asked nervously.

“No, no.” Trisha shook her head immediately, not wanting him to think he’d said something wrong.

She didn’t have the same connection to the Philippines, because she didn’t have the same connection to her family. She tried to stay in touch with the culture and maintain her ability to speak the language because it was important to her. She loved her Mom, but there’d been no being brought up in it. The trip only happened because it was Maria’s legally bound custody time, and she needed to go back.

“I don’t really feel the same, but I don’t think travelling that far with little kids would make sense anyway! They won’t remember anything, and it’d be a lot of stress with the long flights when we could go somewhere closer- but I meant just us. Before we have any children together. We jumped from travelling next year to travelling with kids, which confused me.”

She did her best to explain where her confusion came from, and that it wasn’t his want to not bring any future children of theirs to France before they were old enough. She wouldn’t push for something like that. She probably wouldn’t want to take them to the Philippines until they were a similar age, though it was more out of practicality.

“It made me think you wanted kids before we even got married. But I’m really fine with not bringing them somewhere so significant when they’re too young. That’s not a problem. I don’t think it’s wrong to think that way.”

His frown only grew wider.
”Oh… Like, you want to go places. And see things. Before… I’m such an idiot. his face turned red, and Casey tucked it into his collar before clearing his throat and popping back out to keep watching the road.

”It’d be ideal if we went to places that I didn’t spend a lot of time killing people in, but that’s basically unavoidable. I kind of did that to me, huh?” he asked, frown lingering.

”I guess that feeling makes me hesitant. Makes me think that I’d only want to tough it out like that for the sake of our kids, I guess… But, that’s not true ultimately. You’re worth it.”

It was harder to be transparent about this kind of thing. His reluctance to go and see places that had been full of pain for him personally. Everywhere had been affected by the war… But could he go back to the Pacific? Could he see the jungles, the Chinese coastline and travel down around the Korean Peninsula to see that bloody strip of sand? And, what of sand? He figured he may cry if he ever saw the Pyramids again.
The horrors…

”So, I guess… Where first? Abroad, I mean.” he offered, trying to push the thoughts out of his head as the enchantment on the vehicle wavered slightly.

Trisha looked up at him with a little frown, watching him carefully. He didn’t really look like he wanted to go abroad. He had just said he was hesitant but she was worth pushing through it… But she didn’t want him to force himself through something so difficult. She probably should’ve thought about that before bringing it up. But she really hadn’t planned to talk about international travelling until they got closer to their wedding, because it was mainly on her mind for their honeymoon.

And if he felt it would be too difficult they could go somewhere else.

“I was mostly thinking about Europe, honestly. There are so many countries in a continent not that much bigger than here. I’d really love to travel between them… But it doesn’t have to be soon. I’m not really someone who needs to travel like that. Maybe it would be nicer to wait. We’ll have plenty of time.” She responded.

She didn’t want to push him and ask if he was really comfortable with the possibility. Not when he was driving.

“I didn’t really have any specific countries in mind, honestly, because there’s so much to see over there. I’d like to go back to the Philippines too, and bring you with me. I’m not close to most of my family, but I’d like you to at least meet the one cousin I keep in touch with. Maybe my Grandmother too. It would be nice to go there at least once before we have children because… Like you, I wouldn’t want to bring them over when they’re small. Not really because of anything sentimental, more the opposite. Either we avoid my family completely, or we have to deal with them- and I don’t really want my children to deal with that so young. They can be… Judgmental. But avoiding them completely is difficult too. Though I’d like to bring them up with at least what connection I have, and teach them Tagalog- but going over is a completely different thing.” She rambled a bit in her attempt to direct the conversation back towards what she’d originally directed it away from.

But it was better than focusing on any feelings Casey had over the War right now.

It was then he realized that, in spite of feeling better being around her, his attitude hadn’t really improved much. His mood had picked up, but beneath it, he still found himself to be the person he didn’t want to be.

”It’s… A damn shame we don’t live in a more innocent world. Still, I did want to go back to the Philippines too. I told myself I’d try my hardest when everything was better… For me. Not, like… Obviously some scars last longer than others, and they paid a heavy toll for freedom. Brave motherfuckers.”

He was doing his best to avoid Europe. Having spent so much time there, and having seen the worst of what the word Atrocity really meant, he wasn’t keen to be there. He’d done a lot of helping after, as well, with the Relief Corps. His Orange magic made him an incredible helping hand in construction and development, after all… And he found the wounds there to be equally deep. People were happy, of course, in a strange sense. Things were over. But, there was so much bitterness remaining. So many people he talked to all had the same question on their minds.

All this? For what?

He couldn’t answer for the evil in man’s heart. He could only weep for the loss of life’s adolescence.

”Where were you thinking for the Honeymoon? he let the question linger, seeing where the dart would land.

“Somewhere warm, and near the sea.” She replied without really giving a specific answer immediately. It had been her original plan- to start, at least. If they went overseas, they may as well visit the nearby areas of wherever they ended up. But she hadn’t really had a specific place. A favourite, maybe. But considering he’d mentioned wanting to go back to the Philippines and not Europe… It probably wasn’t going to happen. Which she didn’t mind.

“I’ve thought about a few places… Since it’s the kind of thing we’d decide together. Greece, Bali, the Maldives, New Zealand- though it’s not that warm. But there’s a lot of places I’d like to go. I guess rather than warm and near the sea, I mean somewhere scenic where we can choose to just relax or go out on adventures. I’d like to visit a few places in one area, I think. But… It’d be our honeymoon. I’ve just been thinking about it because I’m excited.”

She did her best to not get more worried, hugging into him. His mood didn’t seem to be crashing or anything, even though something traumatic had been brought up. Not directly, but she was sure it’d brought up enough thoughts for him.

”D’you think it’s too cliche for us to go to, like, Mexico? Or some place down in South America? Or, is that where your family vacations usually were? I think visiting the deep south pacific would be cool. I was in Hawaii for a little bit, but New Zealand or Australia would be pretty cool.” he conceded, knowing he had people he could look up in both countries.

He wasn’t sure if the fresh water in the South Pacific was different from what they got up North, but it seemed like everyone on that side of the world fought like they were entranced. There was a battle fervor among those hot blooded people born and raised down in the beating sun… He owed a couple Aussies his life, at least.

”Hell, maybe one of the smaller islands? I hear they’ve been getting a lot more traffic to those old revitalized resorts and shit like that. Andrade was talking about getting down there and laying low.” he admitted, not thinking about how it may’ve turned her off that there was any chance of seeing Andrade Salamente in the near future.

Trisha bit her lip, trying to clamp down on the giggling his question about family vacations elicited. What family vacations?

“I don’t really want to bump into Andrade- or anyone we know- on our honeymoon, but that would be nice if we know he won’t be on the same one. Honestly, I’d be happy to go anywhere nice with you… I’d just prefer to go somewhere out of the country where we can do things together. So we can really celebrate our marriage and relationship.” She looked up at him with a small, soft smile. It was a romantic thought… But it was why she wanted it to be more than just going to a different state.

“New Zealand, Australia, one of the smaller south pacific Islands… They’d all be nice. Even South America, if you’d really rather not cross an ocean. I’ve never been, by the way.” At that, she couldn’t help but let out a small giggle. Even if she was a bit more nervous than she had been before they talked about this, she wasn’t at all upset. He was fine with some of the places she’d suggested, and even added some of his own.

He wanted to go on a honeymoon with her. That was what mattered most.

“That one trip to the Philippines is actually the only time I’ve left the States, not just gone overseas. Mom doesn’t really do holidays, and Dad didn’t want to bother with all his children no matter how much help he could hire. He’d just throw money at one of the resorts in the state once a year, and dump us there. So even South America would be new to me.”

Casey’s face became emphatic disgust. For all his theories about old man Vanburen, nothing really redeemed that kind of behavior in his eyes. Maybe his mother had kept them all close because she was a megalomaniac, but he could still confidently say she’d been present. And, at least in his memory, definitely made it seem like she wanted to be present too. She had her moods, her own distant periods, and times where she wanted to make her problems others’... But, she loved them.

And so did his Dad. There was no question about that after last night. Elise’s new condition would hopefully help her smooth the transition of things out with the actively splintering Outer Ring and Aberration factions suddenly drawing sand lines in the early hours of the dawn.

”I hate that all that was taken from you. Your whole childhood, basically. All that warmth, all those good feelings… Maybe someone would feel worse for me, that I got as much of the stick as I got the carrot… But, ultimately, I’ve got good memories that people can’t just take away from me. Your folks just… God, it’s really discouraging. But, y’know, it does make me want to get there with you even more. I want to make your world brighter. Brighter than I do now, even.” he rubbed around her back and shoulder before pulling her in tightly.

“I’d like that. I’d really like to see more of the world with you… Even if it sucks that I never went anywhere growing up, I’m glad you’ll be the one I get to do it with. You’ve already expanded my world a lot.” She said quietly, curling in against him. She didn’t want to get sad about her childhood, not while they were on the way to their first holiday together. But it was inevitable in a way. Especially as her birthday creeped closer, and that horrible hope that her Mom would at least acknowledge it this year.

“I resented them a lot growing up. I resented a lot of my siblings too. The feeling was stronger towards Dad, because at least Mom was sort of there when I visited her over the summer. But whenever I went back to school after the holidays, everyone assumed I’d been on some expensive holiday abroad because of our money. I’d always lie and make something up about how we spent the whole summer in Australia, or travelling Europe, rather than admit I’d spent the whole summer on the East Coast again studying in my Mom’s house.” She continued, letting the feelings tumble out.

“If I’d asked, Dad would’ve sent me anywhere. He sent one of my sisters to boarding school in France because she asked, and another to England. But that would’ve been going somewhere alone. It wasn’t exactly a family holiday, or because he cared emotionally. He probably thought doing stuff like that was caring.”

Casey shrugged, not wanting to force his feelings and opinions back onto her. Especially when none of them were good to begin with. He could feel however he wanted forever; it wouldn’t change the reality that had been her situation then. He could only help her toward a better future. A future for them both.

”I love you… We’ll do better together. I know we will.” was all he could muster in response to the unfortunate nature of the circumstance.


Another nine hours of driving, and dinner time rolled around.

They ended up in a small, cozy diner in a town just off the highway. It was the closest place on Trisha's list for where they were that they could actually sit in- the other place she'd noted down being a small Chinese that only did takeaway. They'd both agreed they wanted to get out of the truck and stretch their legs, so the diner it was.

It was snowing, though not so heavily it was a problem for driving on the highway. It only became more obvious as they pulled off, streets becoming smaller until they reached the outskirts of the town. The diner clearly catered to travellers like them, being just a bit outside of the town itself with a reasonable sized parking lot. The snow was lying thicker here, resulting in Trisha bundling up before they made the short trudge from car to diner.

The long travel had been surprisingly fun for her. She stayed engaged aside from a few hours in the middle where she fell asleep, so comfortable curled up in Casey's arms and just managing to scramble over to her own seat before drifting off. She woke up from her nap with renewed energy, chatting for a bit before finding a podcast to put on that sounded interesting. It was about ridiculous or weird stories from history, and ended up fun for both of them.

Especially when they'd start theorising whether the weirdness of certain events was because of magic, and what kind of magic it would've been.

The inside of the diner was cozy and warm, relatively quiet even at this time. There were only a few other groups inside, and they’d been shown to a quiet booth in the back corner by the friendly waitress on arrival. She took their immediate drinks order, before leaving them in peace to peruse the menu.

“This is nice. It’s quieter than I expected, but I like that.” Trisha commented, beginning to strip off the too many layers she’d put on for the brief walk in the cold. Her nose and cheeks were flushed from the frigid air suddenly turning warm, made more obviously as she pulled off her scarf and hat to reveal less red toned skin. She realised it had been overkill to put on her thick down jacket and a second jumper as she took them off… But she’d rather put on too many layers than too little.

Removing the extra layers left her looking much more normal, with just her original navy wool jumper for warmth.

She glanced around before looking across at Casey with a smile. They were far enough away from other people that they should be out of earshot until the waitress came back with their drinks… Which meant she could ask about something that had popped into her mind as they got settled.

“That podcast got me thinking… Well, what we were talking about did… How many historical figures had magic?”

Casey hadn’t bothered bundling up himself, the same sweater he’d worn through the whole journey still clinging to him now as they stretched themselves out in the booth seats. Though, watching her waddle around with so many layers on was cute enough that he didn’t even offer to enchant her single jumper to make it warmer. It was far more adorable to let her get all those clothes on and off… Which, he thought for a moment, made him a sick person. It was like torture, except with layers of clothes.

But she was also used to a life mostly bereft of magic. Someone doing something without the supernatural assistance of Adeptal life seemed like cruel and unusual punishment probably wouldn’t think twice about just doing what needed to be done. Maybe they would, and the ensuing laziness would change their intention into something more accommodating… But, Trisha was better than that! She just did what needed to be done, and in turn, Casey got the treat of watching his beloved turn into a coat-covered marshmallow.

And now that they were relaxed and warm inside, she was asking about magical history! He hadn’t done the best in his studying long ago, but Lynette had a wealth of knowledge that he’d been able to pull from and muckle through over the past couple of months. Not just anecdotal knowledge either; one of White Lux’s greatest tricks was the ability to read, receive, and store Recollections for later viewing. All it took was coming into contact with a willing seeder, and suddenly one could witness hundreds of years of history with incredible clarity and detail.

”I’m pretty sure the number is less than you think, but still a surprising amount. My thing is: How many organizations have been run by supernatural individuals overall? Because, like, you don’t need to have a hundred thousand adepts under your thumb to feel powerful, right? You just need to know how to project your own strength as, like, one Adept. Like your Brother, for instance. Not exactly a guy who will be studied in the history books, but he’s definitely an Adept, and he’s definitely influencing large groups of people, even if it’s only in an employment thing.” Casey tried to parse out the concept, floating it across to Trisha for the return examination.

Trisha frowned thoughtfully at that. Was Ezra’s success down to his magic? It had probably helped, but she couldn’t really make a judgment on that without knowing exactly what he could do. He was an Orange Adept, but there was a variety of things that could mean.

Was her Father’s success also down to his access to a myriad of Artifacts? It probably didn’t help with the business running itself, but his story from what she knew wasn’t one of rags to riches. He’d turned up with plenty of money already to start the Vanburen enterprise. That money was probably obtained on his magical travels.

“You’re probably right… He probably wouldn’t be so successful if he didn’t have his Adeptal magic. He took what Dad was doing and has grown it exponentially. I’m sure he would’ve done well without it, because he was basically raised to take over, but probably not to the degree he has.” Trisha admitted.
“I can’t even say he was definitely as smart before he kindled, because I don’t know when he did! And he’s fourteen years older than me, so he probably had magic before I have solid memories. But he always seemed like he knew everything.”

She knew Ezra was just an example that Casey had brought up to explain what he meant, and she maybe focused in on that a bit much. But it was always a bit easier to focus on the example rather than the wider picture.

“Orange magic can be used on people to do more than just boost their magic, can’t it? It can boost generally, right? Could it be used to, I don’t know, boost productivity? Could he be doing something like that?”

Shrugging in return, Casey nodded calmly and took a sip of his drink at the same time.
”Well… It’s generally Abstraction boosting. But, it can be used like that in strenuous circumstances, or combined with other spells. That being said, I… Don’t really think your brother’s success has anything to do with his magic… I didn’t say that. My point was more like, uh…-”

He paused, hands shuffling slightly as he tried to parse out an explanation before coming back into the conversation. Then he grabbed the salt and pepper shakers, and started to fiddle with them for another few seconds before snapping his fingers and looking up again.

”-Look, I know it’ll sound crazy, but it’s the idea of the Illuminate, and shit like that, right? You’ve got a relatively small group of people at the heads of power structures. They’re making decisions, doing what they want to, and trying to manipulate the world into a direction that will benefit them! So, suddenly, normal people live in a world that favors people like us… And all it takes, well… People like your brother! Industry tycoons, Investment brokers, second or third-tier politicians who run big counties or major cities… People who won’t end up with big sections in the history books end up being the ones who make shit happen. So, rather than how many famous people- Well, I guess you said historical figures, right? Do you consider someone with minimal public presence but maximum private influence to be a historical figure?” he wound up leaving the topic open for her to return.

“Uh, well I was mostly thinking about people in history books. The kind of people I’d know the name of.” Trisha admitted, rubbing the back of her neck as she thought about it.
“I guess people with large influence are historical figures, just hidden ones. The kind of people who changed the world without making a big name for themselves… That is part of history.”

It did sound a bit crazy, because she struggled to see how someone like Ezra had been influencing the world like that. But there had been the Elite, who’d tried their best to influence the magical landscape of St Portwell while also having enough money to affect any major city decisions.

“It’s a bit hard to imagine because the influence is hidden. It doesn’t really feel like the world has been changed to favour people with magic, but rather they already have a natural advantage over people without it. But… I guess you’re saying the people with magic have always had influence over the world? And that it’s probably affected how things have ended up more than I’d think it has?”

Casey nodded emphatically.
”That’s exactly right. How could we know a world that wasn’t made for us when it’s been that way thousands of years?”

Shifting, he leaned forward slightly and gave a wide-eyed expression.
”You have someone close to you in your life who probably remembers a time when things were better for her kind, right? I don’t see any big Apparitional kingdoms or empires being run currently. We don’t worship spirits and idols like we’re in Sumeria, or have home-team ghosts. At least… Not that we hear about! And, like, that’s honestly fascinating. Like, even the War… So many countries started producing supernatural task forces, you’d think they were made for the express purpose of showing up in those dire hours. Like… Big coincidence! he finished with a conspiratorial laugh.

Trisha tilted her head, looking a little confused. She knew a bit about ancient history thanks to the Queen’s memory- a time before humans expanded, when she had her own kingdom. That was destroyed when she was sealed… No, she was sealed to destroy it so the people could have the land. So in her case it seemed clear cut as to why she wasn’t worshipped anymore. Strong enough Adepts took her down, and human kingdoms took her place.

But she wasn’t entirely sure what he was getting at when speaking about the War.
“Do you mean most countries already had… Some kind of secret supernatural task force? Like something… influencing things behind the scenes?”

He nodded again, a bit less enthusiastically now.
”Really, I think that the war never ends. And that’s honestly from experience. Hell, you’ve been told: While you guys were fighting the Stygian Snake, adults in the Temple were just fighting other covens! Like, killing them! If that doesn’t scream ‘endless war’, I don’t know what does. It’s… Tiring. And scary. And, honestly, thinking about stuff like that just motivates me to stay strong. To stay in practice, so that the next big flareup that the secret rulers of the world can’t hide doesn’t catch me off guard. I’ve been soft once. That changed. Now, I can be ready.”

It was a bit depressing to think about, even though Trisha tried not to show it. That even when they’d escaped the current situation and gone somewhere quiet, there was always a risk there’d be some magical war somewhere that’d reach them. She’d already known there was always a risk of something like the Stygian Snake happening again, but adding onto that humans and their petty issues… It wasn’t fun to think about.

She reached across the table for his hands, managing a bit of a smile.
“At least we won’t be seeking it out. Our coven isn’t going to fight others. We’ll defend if we have to, but we won’t be seeking fights out. But if there’s ever anything that threatens our home, or country, or the world… Another big flareup, I guess we won’t be able to avoid it. But it won’t just be you this time. I’ll get stronger too. I already fought a multiversal threat as a teenager, I’m sure I can stay prepared for anything else that might happen.”

She hoped it wouldn’t happen, but it was better to be realistic anyway.
“We’ll escape the war as much as we can, at least.”

Casey took Trisha’s hands more tightly, and for a moment his gaze lingered on those hands between his. He wanted nothing more than to heal, so that he could protect her. She was everything. If nothing else, she was his everything.

”You’re damn right… And if push comes to shove, we’ll live so far in the wilderness, they’ll need lidar scanners on drones to find us. And then I’ll just do it better. We’ll be alright. I know I keep saying it, and that we should just make it happen, but it’s such an abstract thing, y’know? I kind of have to keep saying it.”

He thought back to how they handled things when the going got tough back in the worst days. All you could really do was dream of better times when you’re covered in sand, or snow, or mud, and you can barely feel your fingers because you lost the energy to maintain your clothing’s enchantments. He wasn’t sure if the behavior made her anxious, but the way she reached out, and her affirmations, gave him good enough suspicion.

”I’m… Sorry. I hijacked your topic. Actual historical figures who were Adepts? Genghis Khan. One hundred percent.” he nodded, trying to shift the topic for both of their benefits.

”He’s responsible for the largest strain of Adepts on the planet. I think something like seventy percent of Red Adepts owe their ability to tap into magic to the great Khan. Dude was prolific.” he went on to explain.

Trisha stared at him for a moment, before giggling. It was such a tonal shift, and a crazy piece of information to drop. She wasn’t even that surprised… It kind of made sense that a guy who had so many children was an Adept. Maybe it was part of why Red Adepts were one of the most common, from what she knew… A wild thought.

“Of course he was. Does that mean most Red Adepts I know are probably his descendants?” She let out a soft laugh, wriggling her fingers in his as she easily followed his topic shift.
“Linqian’d probably blow up if someone told her she was probably related to him… Hmm, I don’t think any of my Adeptal siblings are Red. That would’ve been kind of funny, because Dad really was copying him. He just wasn’t an Adept himself, so he didn’t pass on anything there. Probably a good thing.”

She hummed thoughtfully.
“So if Genghis Khan hadn’t had so many children, Red Adepts would probably be super rare?”

Casey shrugged.
”I don’t know, if I’m being honest. Some of the eggheads in Eden seemed to think that there was a natural way of things, and that there are checks and balances for the amount of Lux in the world. They’d probably tell you that if it wasn’t him, there’d be some other genetically prolific individual from history responsible for Red’s profusion.”

It was certainly something to think about. Not exactly an experiment that they could conduct ethically, for obvious reasons. Making new life in a permanent fashion just to take that life away was morbid and cruel, matched only in its misery by doing it the natural way and leading a child’s life to the same outcome. Others had very recently had impetus to do such things, and now they were buried in war debt, and trials were still ongoing to determine culpability.

”Do you know how many different Apparitions that’ve been recorded who are analogous with Santa Claus?” he giggled, offering up a new angle on the concept.

That one doesn’t surprise me.” Trisha giggled back.
“Some of them are made from strong beliefs, aren’t they? When you have whole countries of kids believing in Santa Claus… I guess it probably makes an Apparition every few years. I’m surprised there aren’t more Jesus Apparitions kicking around- or maybe there are? That would, uh, directly conflict with the Temple’s religion, wouldn’t it?”

Casey morbidly giggled.
”Why do you think hunting and eating them is such a popular idea? It’s basically free magic; the fact that they can be distilled back into some kind of physical form is the miracle at that point. Y’know, eating of the flesh and blood, all that?”

Making a playfully grossed out face, Casey shook his head and leaned back.
”I think some Apparitions are probably not meant to actually exist. Accidents, I guess. That makes it difficult to consider what to do about them. Obviously, they’re dangerous in the same way that packs of stray dogs are dangerous. And, usually, the solution is the same. Except, rather than getting euthanized, an Apparition usually gets put in a cup, or a stick of metal… Something mundane. But, aren’t they wasted like that? Like, why… I don’t know, sometimes it’s easier for me to come around to my family’s way of thinking. It’s the same with my Grandparents, and their generation. The New Dawn is famous for its Hunts.”

Trisha pulled a face at that. The whole eating Apparitions thing had never sat well with her. Not because she thought most Apparitions deserved to live- dangerous ones certainly didn’t. But eating something so filled with magic just seemed wrong. It made her uncomfortable even without knowing the negative side effects… And those made her feel worse about it.

“We’re definitely not doing anything like that in the future. Well… Hunting them is fine. Sealing, even if it seems like a waste. But we’re not hunting and then eating them. Especially not with everyone coming off it now- I mean, is it even possible without someone like Andrade? It must be, if your Grandparents and their generation did it, but-” She grimaced a bit, before shaking her head. She didn’t want to sound too negative and upset him, and she didn’t really think he was suggesting that they go back to some traditional Apparition eating… Hopefully.

“I know that’s not really what you’re suggesting. Just because you can understand it doesn’t mean you want to keep doing it… I hope? The trade off for that extra magic just doesn’t seem worth it.”

”My family’s had this vassal family attached to us for hundreds and hundreds of years. Gourmands. Andrade apprenticed to them in the beginning, thanks to his Blue Lux. Father sent him there before he brought him back, and that was the trade. He’d become our family’s Gourmand, and our family would make sure he became what he did. Maybe a devil’s deal, but he seems to have gotten out of it relatively scott free.”

He didn’t answer the question of eating them at first. Because, frankly, he liked the boost. They didn’t have that kind of thing in the military, obviously because of how difficult it was to source. If they’d been able to make it happen easier, Casey would’ve bet dollars to donuts that they’d have made a Gourmand program of their own. They wound up with plenty of raw material after all: Plenty of sealed up Apparitions go into the United States’ war vaults, when they could’ve been eliminated entirely and served as a Platoon’s dinner in the same breath.

Deaths could’ve been avoided, had everyone been at a higher overall baseline.

”My point being that, well, even if I wanted to have a stockpile of that stuff, it’d be too difficult to meet and trust someone to do all our cooking for us. It’s very delicate work, and the kind of person doing it is usually not the kind of person who is easy to be around consistently. Andrade was a rare exception, where the depth of his sorrow was balanced out by the apathy of his Black Lux… He only gave a manic shit about what he was interested in, and anything else was an utterly soulcrushing facade. A true sociopath.” he giggled.

”Speaking of food… What are you getting? he asked, glancing over at the menu again.

“Oh- I don’t know. I haven’t even looked at the menu!” Trisha managed a small laugh. She’d been so busy unwrapping herself then asking him questions that she’d forgotten about why they were here in the first place- to eat.

At least she could relax again knowing it wouldn’t be easy to turn their future ranch into some Apparition processing factory. Not that she’d just sit idly by if Casey really wanted to… But he wouldn’t. Even if it was easier, she hoped he wouldn’t. Though she couldn’t control what he ate, and they’d already had plenty of fights over that, she wasn’t going to let that kind of stuff near their future children.

“You’ve made it difficult now by mentioning Andrade… He may be a sociopath, but he was a really good cook too. Even if I don’t want to be near him because of his Dollhouse involvement, I do kind of miss being able to just go to one of his restaurants together. It’s hard to beat… I don’t normally want to eat either.” She half complained with a smile, swaying her head from side to side as she actually looked down at the menu.

“So now I have to pick something thinking about that.” She playfully pouted at him.
“I’ll probably just get a burger. It’s easy, and I won’t have to worry about getting hungry for the rest of the journey.”

It was an incredibly practical reason to choose something to eat, but it was very her at the same time.

Casey giggled as she talked about missing Andrade’s cooking. For everything else, he’d miss that. That, and feeling like Andrade actually cared. Even if he hadn’t, they had cared about him. Andrade’s lack of connection couldn’t possibly take away the sunshine that was how Casey, Leon, and the whole batch of kids around them felt toward that guy. He was closest to them in age too, hanging low between a young teen Leon and the near-fourty year strong Gravity.

He’d been everything you wanted in a cool Uncle, or closer still, the oldest brother. Aloof, sometimes distant, but always scheming up a way to make everyone smile. Too bad he had to live with the idea that it was all purely performative, while the rest of them got to look at the moments with genuine tenderness.

”Well… You don’t mind if I chow down, do you? I’ve… Been eating those sandwiches all day, but I’m still so fucking hungry. I really didn’t think it was that bad, but I guess I dipped into the sauce a lot heavier than I was realizing. Of course, you’re right again… We’ll make sure to keep Gourmandary out of the home. Apparition friendly. I’ve got a niece who’s an Apparition. I’ve got friends who are Apparitions. I can’t be living my life like that, right?”

He looked around rapidly before looking back at Trisha.

”I haven’t even looked in a mirror. How is it?” he asked before opening his mouth wide to show off blotchy, almost mold-looking dark webs spidering across the roof of his mouth. Some were in the slow process of melding together like cow spots on a pink background.

Trisha reactively grimaced, eyes narrowing in concern.
“I don’t know, it looks bad to me, but anything that isn’t just pink seems bad. There still is pink… I guess there’s not more black than pink yet. It’s like a smudged spider’s web.”

She gripped her menu tightly. She hadn’t realised it was that bad either. She wasn’t exactly looking in his mouth very often, and he’d said he was mostly just eating food made from otherworld grains. She didn’t realise he was using so many Apparitional products… He hadn’t told her. Probably because he knew she’d freak out and be against it. Obviously.

“This isn’t really something I want to be right about. I selfishly don’t like it because of how it affects people… You mostly. That’s why I got so upset when I first found out about it. Because it hurts you and you end up reliant on it, or hungry like this-” She cut herself off, shaking her head.
“Sorry, you don’t need a lecture. You can eat as much as you want, I don’t mind. I just want you to be more comfortable, so get however much you think you’ll need for that. And… It’ll go away, won’t it? It isn’t as bad as when you had to get off it before?”

”Definitely. If there’s pink, it’s not bad. I had a black tongue! Can you imagine doing that to a child who can’t even use magic? I was like a foie gras’d liver…” he giggled, shaking his head again and pulling away.

Casey finally picked up the menu in earnest, figuring he could probably get a lot for the road, and maybe let Trisha drive now that she’d had that nap a few hours ago. He could technically drive from any seat, but it was becoming strenuous on his brain to maintain magical control. But, he didn’t let the frenzy for food cloud what else Trisha had said.

”Hey: I really love you. With you even just, like, acknowledging that it could feel like you were lecturing me, it takes a lot of the anxiety over it off of me. Because, like… You know I know you care. And you’re still willing to accommodate me. I hope I do the same for you.”

Trisha nodded, a proper smile blooming across her face.
“You do. You do plenty to accommodate me and my anxiety and all the funny triggers I have from my upbringing.”

She didn’t pull up a proper example, because it wasn’t really necessary. There’d been so many times… Though for her, sitting with her through any kind of panic attack was already accommodating her. So few other people would do that with her, and there were even less she’d let something like that out in front of. Maybe Cass, and Reyna once upon a time.

“Letting you eat loads doesn’t really feel like accommodating. Even saying it’s me letting you sounds controlling… But it’s not like I hate watching you eat. I just don’t get that hungry myself, but I’m not one of those girls who sees a massive amount of food and freaks out. Well… You obviously know that.” She waved a hand in front of her.

“I’m glad… That you noticed, though. Because it can be hard for me to… realise when worrying becomes lecturing. But I’m trying.”

He nodded back, pushing up against the table and trying not to knock over their drinks. He let his torso crane outward, and he planted a kiss squarely on Trisha’s lips before slipping back down into his seat.

”You’re doing a swell fucking job, Queen Bee. We’re definitely doing better than we were last week… That’s all that really matters.”



By the time they were arriving in Mannard, it was well after dark. Of course, Casey’s plans had pretty much all fallen apart earlier in the week. Between when he’d booked everything and now, there’d been a crop of arctic storms sweeping down from the North and dipping well past Oklahoma. He’d booked a flight: Cancelled. The teleportation to the airport: Cancelled due to inclement intercoven warfare. A fully enchanted mobile wardrobe: Cancelled due to lack of motivation. As it turned out, not having a Purple Lux Adept to bounce spells off of made stuff like that a lot more difficult.

And the last two hours of their trip had gone from fine to Hellish in terms of the weather’s effects. The snow was coming down in whole Frosty-fulls, complete with coal eyes and carrot noses hitting the ground like paratroopers dropped into the fray. And worse, it was dark. The kind of dark that you just drove off a cliff in. Thankfully, the roadway they were on was set well within a set of woodlands, and either side had ample trees to prevent vehicles from tumbling down the sheer cliffsides further back. By the time they were reaching the resort, it was almost one in the morning, and Casey took a deep breath as they pulled into the heated parking lot of their destination.

The public explanation was that they used a nearby hot spring and geyser system to pump hot water under the lot, keeping it black, dry and free of any ice buildup. In truth, it was a magically enchanted tarmac, which Casey could feel the Lux radiating off of the moment they stepped out of the truck to head toward the main building. Of course, this wasn’t where they were staying. They were staying out back, or at least that was the plan if nothing else went awry. But, check-in was check-in, and Trisha had called earlier to check everything ahead of time.

With overnight staff on hand, they offered their services freely. A friendly and chipper duo checked the two of them in as “Select” guests, and activated the roadway lights that would lead them up the hill and into the forest toward their cabin. The facility was impressive to say the least, however: The insides held everything a small town would need from a grocerette to a library, entertainment areas, and all the standard guest rooms accommodated on the second and third floors above them. While they didn’t need food, Casey did take ten or so minutes to buy a bundle of fresh fruit from the duty free grocer before they both clambered back in the car to make the ascent.

When they came in, the pathway up the mountain had been snowed over, but with magic, the snow had been cleared away in the time it took them to check in. It made it even easier to tell where to go, as the automated path-finding system cut a line straight and clear up to their destination. Which, as both would quickly find out, was more beautiful than the pictures did justice to.

Its frosty pale roof hid black asphalt tiling that protected the sturdy, squat-bodied log stack cabin. Two floors, and a balcony opening up from the inside loft space that served as the bedroom not unlike their own at home. And it was warm. Not just physically due to the heater within, but aesthetically, and somehow, emotionally. Casey radiated with a nostalgia he never had as he backed into the driveway of the cabin, being sure to pull the e-brake to prevent rolling or slipping on the hill. Thankfully, the magic extended into the driveways, clearing the path easily.

Inside was rustic Americana and cabin chic, with hidden luxury scattered across the place in some of the most unexpected corners. If one caught the eye of the furniture’s brand, or recognized it from a catalogue, they’d quickly realize that there were no expenses spared in the decoration of this place. A modern kitchenette combining the frontiersman aesthetic with modern luxury gave birth to a beautiful six-burner range atop a claw-foot design that gave it an aged and venerable feeling. A massive television, tucked into a recess in the wall that made it feel like just another window sandwiched between two massive, curtain covered standing panes.

And the loft area was plush, soft as one would want the place they sleep. Goosedown blankets cover the magically enhanced foam mattress that actively contours to one’s body as they relax to sleep. Its shape stretches, forming its own pillows and allowing the sleeper to mold it to their needs like an amorphous sack of air. There’s plenty of room to set their clothes into drawers and cabinets, and the bathroom is located just off the stairs with a standing shower big enough to accommodate them both at once. It was actually quite like the setup in Leon’s shower, with several showerheads creating a cascade effect.

As they entered with bags in hand, Casey set everything he could down onto the dining table, finding a large welcoming gift blocking his way.

”Shit, uh-”

Rather than have Trisha move the gift, he just dumped everything he had onto the floor in a couple separate heaps.

”-what’ve we got here?” he asked curiously, ushering Trisha closer to the table so they could both look at the gift basket and read the note attached.

Welcome Trisha and Casey: We hope that you enjoy a truly white Christmas with our family and friends here at (insert resort name I can’t remember). These gifts aren’t from Santa: They’re from us!

Inside the gift basket was more fruit (go figure) as well as some more fun items. Two santa hats, a bottle of champagne, peppermint candies, a pre-made charcuterie board wrapped up tightly, as well as an envelope reading “Plans for 12-24”. Casey grinned at the envelope.

”Oh my God, they really hooked it up!” he dangled the envelope in front of Trisha.

Trisha shuffled in behind Casey, with her own suitcase in tow. They just had too much stuff for him to insist on carrying it all, and she felt that her suitcase really was her own responsibility. Sure, it was only packed so full because she'd had to panic pack when he ended up not enchanting a bag to connect to their wardrobe… But she was still the one who felt she needed to be prepared for just about every scenario. Just throwing in too much had been faster than making the decision of everything she wanted to wear at the time too.

There was another, smaller suitcase of hers still in the truck. But this was a special one, carefully packed with hibernated bees. She wasn't so bothered about leaving it out there for a night, because they could tolerate all conditions like that as long as the suitcase wasn't crushed. Sure, she had Princess to give her direct access to any of her hives… But if something happened, the magical plush would become a chokepoint for getting as many bees through as she could. Having a whole group hibernating and ready to activate with them, mainly bombers and soldiers, made her feel more relaxed without having to deal with bees spending the whole holiday treating her like their safe spot. Just in case.

As she came in behind Casey, she looked around the place with wide eyes. It was perfectly cozy. Big enough they had plenty of space but not so big it felt empty, with all the amenities they'd need. The couches that she could see looked incredibly comfortable, and she only imagined the bed out of sight upstairs would be the same. She itched to explore and unpack before settling down, but Casey drew her attention to the gift basket waiting for them on the table.

Leaving her suitcase behind near the door, she easily moved forward to slot in at Casey's side. Her lips pulled up into a smile as she read the note. If today was anything to go by, it'd definitely be a white Christmas… The snow was already lying thick. She wasn't sure if it was possible for it to get more white outside than it already was. Her smile widened as she looked over the gifts. The Santa hats were a little goofy especially if they weren't actually celebrating the day, but the rest was very nice. Especially the Champagne… She could already imagine them cracking it open and relaxing in the hot tub with a glass. Assuming Casey would have one. If not, she'd just enjoy it all herself.

“Hooked up what?" Trisha didn't get distracted by relaxing thoughts for long, easily swept up in Casey's excitement and the letter dangled right in front of her eyes. She smiled up at him, her eyes shining with curiosity. Plans for the 24th… It was obviously something he'd organised, but what? What could it be that it ended up in an envelope? Was it going to be a schedule, or tickets to something? Maybe something she wouldn't even be able to guess.

She reached up to try snatch the envelope from him, playfully giggling.
“Am I allowed to open it? Or do I need to wait till the day?"

Casey grinned down at her, letting the envelope drop into her hand as she reached out and nodding with enthusiasm.

”Sure, go ahead. I took a chance and figured you’d be a lot happier without your own. I’ll let you figure out what you think our day consists of.”

Opening the envelope and dumping it out into her hand, Trisha would find herself in possession of a single key with a black rubber sheath covering the bow. Imprinted on the rubber was the logo for a popular racebike brand, Delta Estuary. Though, driving a motorcycle in this weather probably wasn’t what was happening…

Trisha held the key up between her fingers to let it dangle in front of her eyes, narrowing her eyes at the logo. She… Didn’t recognise it. She was sure she’d seen it somewhere, but it wasn’t bringing up any memories. Something she’d seen in passing, maybe? It was obviously for some kind of vehicle, but that wasn’t really helping.

She furrowed her brow, trying to guess based on the tiny clues he’d given her. That she’d be a lot happier without her own. Something fast? Possibly dangerous? Like a race car? That didn’t make sense, though, unless there was some kind of track nearby that miraculously escaped the snow.

“We’re…. Going on some kind of fast vehicle?” She eventually admitted defeat, looking up at Casey with wide eyes. She didn’t look any less excited, though, even though she had no idea what the key was for.

Casey’s excitement was palpable as his nodding turned into frantic stimming. One foot to the other, the massive man bubbled with anticipation.
”Yep! Fast as Hell, and they maintain the ski trails around here so there’s practically snow highways. We’re going to a picnic… At Blue Rock Ranch… The property I wanna look at. I made an appointment with the owner, and the resort agreed to set up the facility for us. There’s gonna be a warm tent, we’re gonna eat, and dance, there’s gonna be someone playing and singing live for us. A fire, hot cocoa… And it’s all gonna be out on a lake. he bent down and squeezed her tight.

”And? If we get this property one day? It’ll be our lake. It’s not huge, but it’s entirely encompassed by the property bounds… All ours. he repeated.

Wow.” Trisha whispered. She didn’t know how to put how it made her feel into words. It was just so much. Such a perfect, thoughtful date he’d organised for them. She was filled with warmth, cheeks flushing slightly, and excited giddiness had her swaying slightly in his arms. She hugged him back, looking up at him with wide, shining eyes filled with love.

It didn’t feel possible to tell him just how happy she was about it. Maybe she should take a leaf out of Cass’ books and yell ’holy shit’ a few times. But it wouldn’t be a very her reaction.

“A small lake is still a lake… I’ve never owned a lake.” She giggled, lips splitting into a wide, sappy smile. She practically glowed with contentment, leaning up to kiss him gently.

“That sounds amazing. You putting in all of that effort for me- for us- I don’t know how to describe it… It kinda makes me feel like I’m falling in love with you all over again. But I’m already so deep, I don’t think there’s any further to fall!” She grinned, wriggling with happy excitement.
“Definitely the right decision to get only one fast moving… Snowmobile? I’d drive so slowly we’d miss everything.”

Twisting her so that she was facing forward with her back against his front, Casey threw his arms in front of her like he was holding a set of handlebars.
”Instead, you’re gonna fit just like this in front of me, and you’re gonna get to watch the speedometer!” he giggled madly to himself, head tilting down to kiss the top of hers.

”And you’re gonna be safe. We’ll have a great time, and I think you’re really gonna enjoy it. Even if you get a little scared. I’m pretty sure they actually left it up here, like out back I’m pretty sure there’s a little shed with it and a bunch of gas. So, I’m probably gonna take it out at some point tomorrow if you wanted to see if you like it.” he added, hoping that she’d not feel like she had to. It was, after all, something he’d set up a little selfishly.

A reason to see the property and ride a snowmobile after all these years made putting in the effort that much sweeter.

Trisha leaned back against him, nodding. She knew she was going to get scared- probably terrified. Considering how she’d felt about the rollercoaster… But that had them going much higher off the ground and upside down, and she just couldn’t trust it. Maybe something like this would be better? She at least trusted Casey not to do something crazy that’d get them both badly hurt.

“I’ll try it tomorrow… You can do a short lap somewhere and drop me back off if I don’t like it. Then on the twenty fourth I’ll just close my eyes and concentrate on how great it is to be with you- But I’m sure you’re right that I’ll enjoy it, even if it’s scary. As long as there aren’t many dangerous obstacles we can crash into, and we don’t end up too high off the ground… It’s just moving really fast. It’s probably safer than driving on the highway.” Though she didn’t really want to be thinking about what was safer than what.

“I’d like to try with you. I trust you, at least… Just don’t do anything too crazy when it’s the two of us. You can do that without me on it with you.”

Letting go of Trisha, he patted her arms and gave her one more kiss before moving to start putting stuff into the fridge.
”We won’t go any faster than we would in a car.” he grinned to himself deviously, knowing how scary a hundred miles an hour on an open-topped machine roiling between your legs actually was. But, if she took it well, that was great!

”Now… Hot tub? Or, do you just want to uh… Well… Are you tired? I’m a little cooked, but we could probably squeeze a few more hours out of the night.” he asked, still sliding things onto shelves and into drawers in the fridge.
”I figured, if you wanted to, you could probably go see about getting it turned on and stuff. I’m honestly not sure if they’re magical, or what… But if the water’s frozen, we’re fucked.” he laughed.

“I’ll just take a big stick and chip my way through it.” Trisha giggled in return, motioning up and down with her arms like she was hitting ice with a stick.

She honestly didn’t feel tired at all, but she knew that was because she’d had a nap earlier- and she’d been surviving on naps for the past week. She’d inadvertently trained herself to feel awake a good long while after one, even if it would be healthier to just go to bed.

But a nice soak sounded really nice. It would be relaxing too… Maybe something they both needed before trying to sleep.

“I’m not tired, but I could sleep if you wanted to turn in. You are the one who’s spent most of the day driving.” She half pushed it back to him. Not because she didn’t want to make the decision, but more that she didn’t want him ‘squeezing’ more hours out if it meant he was really pushing himself. Especially when he’d been sleeping even less than she had been.

As she said that, she dragged her suitcase over to the bottom of the stairs, before tilting her body all around to look around the cabin.
“Where is the hot tub? Outside? I assume I don’t have to go out the front door and around, we’d freeze before we even got there- oh!”

As she was looking near the staircase she spotted it- the back door. At least she assumed it was the back door. It was tucked away enough behind it that it wasn’t exactly obvious unless you got the right angle.

“Found another door! So, uh, I guess I should go try turn it on?” Even though she’d said she was fine with going to bed, her excitement did get the better of her in the end.

Stepping outside, Trisha would find a spacious deck covered in string lights that fill the relatively small area with a warm glow. There are chairs and a table, a grill, and a propane fireplace ring that was begging to be lit. And as for the hot tub, which was a massive ordeal that looked to be some kind of extended model, it was built into the side of the cabin and laid flush with the deck boards so that it practically clung to its surroundings.

There was a little light next to a panel, and beside that was a remote clearly meant to be brought down into the tub in order to control it in comfort. There was also another panel on the opposite side that read “Sauna”. Wherever that was wasn’t clear, except for a little note that read “Below Deck” on the remote included with it.

And then there was the view itself… Trisha would be able to, just like Casey had told her, look out and off this mountainside they were perched atop, and naturally see the world flatten out ahead for miles and miles into the dark. Down to where one could see remnants of civilization. A highway, the road beneath, the town center with streetlights and what could maybe be cars beneath them.

And the sky, thankfully for a brief moment, was completely clear. And high above her, the celestial heavens stretched into eternity as the light pollution of civilization was washed away. Nebulas crossed, and double crossed, creating wild paintbrush strokes of color in the black canvas of nothingness.

And it was beautiful…

Trisha was immediately distracted by the view, staring out at it with wide eyes and a slightly slack jaw. It was stunning. She’d never seen anything like it… While there were nice areas surrounding St Portwell, there was nowhere this high. Then the clear sky above. Having lived all her life in cities, seeing so many stars and colours that weren’t an artificial orange tinge was breathtaking.

She was only able to drag herself away from it because she didn’t want to enjoy the view for too long without Casey. She turned, shuffling towards the hot tub panel. Thankfully that was very simple, and the hot tub wasn’t frozen over, so she had it turned on in a moment.

“We don’t need to get any ice picks out, Babe!” Trisha called as she made her way back inside, automatically searching for Casey again.

“It’s beautiful out there. I really can’t put it into words… If I didn’t love you so much, I might’ve stayed outside and never come to get you.” She giggled softly, knowing that wasn’t an actual possibility. If she’d stayed out for too long, Casey would’ve come out by himself looking for her.

Casey had finished with the fridge between Trisha heading out and coming back in, and had proceeded to start bringing bags up the stairs to the loft. Which could’ve ended badly, as he made the mistake of laying his back flat on the magically enchanted bed. It gave him a little tinnitus, which meant he’d probably not be able to sleep with his channeler on unless he got used to the interference of another Orange Adept’s spells near him. But, right now, it didn’t even seem to matter…

So, Trisha’s voice almost didn’t find a reply. But, Casey managed to pull himself out of the mire and jolted upright.
”You’d freeze to death if you didn’t come back at some point. Or, you’d boil like a lobster in the hot tub.” he laughed from upstairs.

”Are we bothering with bathing suits? They left us towel sets up here… They didn’t get folded into animal shapes, but they’re pretty nice towels.” he informed.

“I feel less bad about using them if they aren’t all folded up.” Trisha giggled as she made her way up the stairs. She looked around for the towel sets, smile widening when she realised they were nice and matching… Not in the both being plain white way. One was dark blue with powder blue embroidered snowflakes along the bottom edge, while the other was powder blue with dark blue snowflakes.

Looking away from them she smiled at Casey, making her way to him with her hands outstretched for his.
“They are nice… And I guess we don’t need to bother. Normally I wouldn’t be comfortable going naked in an outdoor hot tub, but there’s no way anyone will be able to see us. Though it’s not like my bikini covers up all that much in the first place. It’s just more socially acceptable- but it doesn’t matter when it’s just us.”

She couldn’t swim, so obviously any swimwear she had was much more geared towards looking nice rather than practicality. She only ever wore that kind of stuff on summer beach trips, or for rarer occasions she found herself in a hot tub or a sauna.

“Are you sure you want to go sit in it? We can always save it for tomorrow, it wasn’t hard to turn on.” She looked up at him inquisitively. Though she didn’t know he’d almost fallen asleep in her absence, she was still thinking about all the driving he’d done. He hadn’t slept the last two nights either.

“It’ll be worse if either of us falls asleep in it. Well, I guess you can carry me out… But I can’t do the same for you.”

For once, Casey even looked exhausted. His eyes were creasing, and even his grip was weak. His head stared up at her for a few moments, longer than he usually would in this scenario, only to slowly look down and back. Far enough to look at the bed… His face became a grimace, a frown splitting his expression before he finally spoke.

”I… Don’t want to miss a second of being here with you. I won’t sleep until you’re ready.” he explained, hoping she’d understand the sentiment. No matter how badly he wanted to sleep, it meant losing her to the milky twilight of slumber, and that alone was tragic to him…

So, he stood up, pulling his shirt off and grabbing one of the towels off the bed after releasing her hands, before completely stripping and wrapping the towel around his waist. Not like they hadn’t seen one another naked, but unlike Leon, he felt like the nudist existence was inherently lascivious in this circumstance. Like being naked was some analogous expectation for sex… But, to him, it was just a lot less energy spent than digging through the luggage, putting a new pair of shorts on, having to dry them after the fact…

”There’s bottled water in the fridge. I’ll get us both one so we don’t dehydrate like raisins.” he said, leaning down and kissing her on the cheek before hiking the towel around him and waltzing back downstairs.

“Alright! I’ll meet you down there.” She smiled at his retreating figure.

She wasn’t going to push more if he really wanted to get in with her. She understood what he meant by it… She’d push through all manner of things for a few more seconds with him. Maybe it was unhealthy, but she really didn’t plan to stay up much later. A couple more hours, maybe. As far as she was aware there was nothing they had to wake up for tomorrow, so they could have a nice long lie in.

It took her a little longer to get ready than he did. She decided to remove the minimal makeup she was wearing- purely because she didn’t feel comfortable without any outside- so that they could just slide into bed after. Then she stripped and carefully tied her long waves into a tight bun, not wanting to get any in the hot tub. It’d be a pain to deal with if it got wet, and she didn’t want to be fishing out her hair later.

She came down with her own towel deftly wrapped around her chest. She wasn’t having any of the same thoughts as him- sex was far from her mind. She just didn’t want to traipse outside completely naked.

“Have you looked outside yet? The sky’s beautiful… We could probably spend the whole time picking out stars. Not that I remember much about which constellations are what.”

Casey was hovering by the door looking out into the sky beyond. He could see edges mostly, the lights on the porch and the lights inside both washing out the fidelity of the constellations above. He’d never done a lot of stargazing… Space wasn’t exactly his thing. It was horrifying enough knowing their world was filled with magic and monsters. Never mind what nightmares could be out there… But, he knew that the look of it was always going to be majestic.

”Yeah, it’s a little muddled by the light in here… And, there’s a big plume of steam constantly rising up, so that may impede. But, it’s good too; that hot tub is gonna feel awesome.
Waiting for her to get a bit closer, he nodded his head toward the door.

”Anything else before we go? You want some ice cream?” he smirked, the joke hopefully being self-evident.

“Oh yeah, it’d be perfect for in the hot tub.” Trisha giggled.
“It’d be like an extreme sport… Can we eat the ice cream before it melts?”

Squeezing past him, Trisha made her way outside and towards the hot tub. It was steaming nicely now, and she could feel the warm steam wafting over her as she got closer. It looked heavenly.

“I’m so excited… I haven’t been in a hot tub in so long. The last time was just before I graduated, after final exams. We did this celebratory trip and Cass found this cabin in some mountain in Wisconsin. It was nowhere near as nice as this one, but it did have a hot tub- except eight of us were squeezing into it. There wasn’t enough room.” She grinned at Casey, loosening her towel with one hand while picking up the remote with the other.

“It wasn’t very relaxing… Though that’s anything involving Cass. This is much nicer.”

There was a second where the noise of Casey’s feet impacting against the deck made the entire world around them echo into the darkness. One, two, three- Then silence as Casey soared up over the bannister keeping the deck sides safe. Like a caber through the air, Casey fell the twelve or so feet into a near two-foot thick mound of snow piled up on the flat ground below the cabin’s deck.

The cold air, and the subsequent rush as he had to dig himself up out of the pile, not only woke him up but cooled him off significantly. This was something the Richoux tribe picked up from Dad, who’d learned it spending his early winters nestled in the family compound in the French Alps. The shock of going from cold, to hot, then back and forth, was quite the rush, and always made relaxing in the end feel so much better. It was purely habitual now, though he’d made sure to ask how much accumulate snow they’d gotten when they were checking in. It was the only reason he was confident enough to blindly hop off of a second story deck.

He was a Cascicle by the time he muckled up the stairs, looking at Trisha with a huge smile.
”There’s a sauna down there!” he laughed as he playfully grabbed around Trisha with his cold body before dragging her into the hot, bubbling cauldron.

On feeling the hot water, Casey didn’t say anything else… Just let Trisha drift slightly while still holding her hand, and in turn he released the longest and most exasperated sigh of his entire life.

Trisha gave a small struggle as Casey grabbed her, very much not wanting to freeze with Casey- as much as she loved him! But their destination was the hot water anyway, meaning she only felt a moment of iciness before being engulfed by the water.

As she drifted from him, Trisha tilted her body so that her feet touched the bottom of the tub. Just to make sure it really was shallow enough to stand in… It looked it, but it could’ve been deceptively deep. She still couldn’t swim and didn’t want to be saved from nearly drowning in a hot tub. That’d be embarrassing.

“That get it all out?” She asked quietly, turning her head towards Casey with a smile after he’d finally finished one of the longest sighs she’d ever heard. She lightly swayed their joined hands in the water, trying to decide if she wanted to sit or go back to floating. She’d already gotten her hair wet when she got in so she let her body float again with a soft sigh.

“I can’t believe you just jumped off the deck. I was too shocked to do anything… There’s going to be a Casey shaped dent in that snow now.” She managed to giggle gently about something that had initially scared her. He hadn’t given her any warning, after all. But he was fine, and she trusted he wouldn’t just throw himself off decks without knowing it was safe.

“Did it make getting in that much nicer?”

Casey nodded calmly. He’d drifted into one of the human shaped slots, and with the exhale, depressed enough air out of himself that he settled in to anchor Trisha so that she didn’t drift too far away. With his arms up around the sides, and his head tilted back against the rim of the tub, everything felt great… Even the snow melting into his own loose bun atop his head.

”It’s pretty great. One of Dad’s old workout things was to do an ice plunge, then do a session in the sauna. He’d do it probably fifteen or twenty times after an intense workout, or especially the day after a fight. Leon hates it, so he refuses to do shit like that. But, me? I don’t know, maybe I’m a sicko, but I think it’s the bee’s knees. It shocks your system, internally works the muscles, gives your heart a jolt… Plus? I’m a little more awake now.”

He had enough time now to really examine the tub. He’d dipped them both into what could be considered the shallow end, with the “deep” end not looking incredibly so. It was compact, obviously, but more like a compact pool than a tight space like usual hot tubs. There was a section dedicated to massage jets, which had its own panel located in that space, while the deeper side seemed mostly devoid of bubbles and meant for doing just about what Trisha was doing. Probably the more social end of the pool, for those groups who took twenty people and all rented out the cabin piecemeal.

It had been a pretty penny… Not every vacation had to be like this, he figured, but if he’d lived like some of his cohorts in the Army lived, he never would’ve been able to make this happen.
She would’ve.
It felt odd in that moment, that there could’ve been a world where he had to okay everything with her… Or, okay some kind of budget…

”God… I’m glad we get to be here. And I’m grateful for everything that lets us do cool stuff like this. Together. he spoke softly, letting his extrapolated thought turn into an open reflection for Trisha to apply her own sentiment toward.

“Me too.” Trisha smiled in return, using his hand to gently tug herself over to the side beside him. She slotted in easily next to him, head lightly brushing against his arm behind her.

There was a lot to be grateful for that had led them to this. Their meeting, the people around them, his willingness to go away for her birthday… Their ability to both afford it. While she hadn’t paid for any of it, she gladly would if he asked. But at the end of the day it would all become their money. Right now they both did things for each other, and there wasn’t much need to worry about it.

“I’d be happy anywhere with you… But the luxury really does make it extra special. Especially after everything we’ve had to deal with.” From Thanksgiving until now it really had been nonstop. Even in the leadup to Thanksgiving, with Casey having to do so much organising and her dealing with the possibility of her Mom being there. They’d barely had a break. Wouldn’t for a while after this either.

“It’s nice for me not having to worry about something like this. The fancy vacation, that is. I haven’t had many relationships like this- I mean both friendship and romantic.” She quickly corrected, leaning a bit more towards him.
“It always goes one way or another. People who just expect me to spend all my money on them, or refuse even a little. Like Cass- she’d absolutely refuse to let me help her pay for trips we went on. Must be difficult for Leon, since he seems the kind to throw money around…”

She trailed off, shaking her head and smiling.
“That sounds like I’m just complaining… I don’t mind it, really, but it’s nice we can both organise these things. Eventually it won’t even matter, because it’ll all be ours.”

”World domination, now?” he grinned and giggled, knowing that wasn’t what she meant.

”I don’t think you’re complaining. I think you’re just talking about an observation you had, and I can appreciate how it would get frustrating. I… Just had the thought, actually. About if I was broke.”

He looked up at the stars, seeing what she meant earlier. They really were beautiful out here. It reminded him of the Alps as he saw it. The same vibe. There’d been Army training done in places like this too. Alaska, or the desert down south… Places where life hadn’t the time nor need to inhabit completely with artificial light. But, looking back down at her, he found an equally beautiful picture in his view.

He found her picturesque. The kind of beautiful you’d see in a movie, except it wasn’t artificial. Biology shaped that face, and those eyes… The nose, the ears that framed the face, her thick dark hair, or the way her skin grew so soft beneath the nape of her neck…

”It made me feel insecure for a second… I’ve had the chance now, for you to get to know me. And you genuinely love me. So, I know that if you suddenly had to pay for our lives, you still would. Because you like me like that. But, I guess we never would’ve met like we- Well, I guess we could’ve still met like that. But, if I’d taken you home to a cardboard box, y’know? Would you still have wanted to cuddle up? Or, y’know, let me decimate a group of bees?” he asked calmly, unable to hold in a giggle as he thought about the absurdity of life itself in that moment.

“Well that’s a bit of an absurd example. A cardboard box…” Trisha’s nose wrinkled, looking up at him with a small laugh.

“But… Yes, I probably would’ve. I’d still have cuddled up to you and let you roll on my bees and become your girlfriend. I probably wouldn’t have moved into the cardboard box with me… But you took me back to it in that scenario. You didn’t realise I was rich and turn around and demand I pay for a night in a luxury hotel. We could still date… I wouldn’t need luxury dates. And I would’ve still fallen in love with you, and then I might’ve gone ‘hey, I’ve bought us an apartment, leave your cardboard box and move in with me.’ I don’t want to be taken advantage of, but I want to help the people I like… That kind of thing, I guess.”

It was difficult to explain without feeling a little bit selfish. Because why would she let a boyfriend of hers live in a cardboard box while having her own nice room in a fancy house? But there was always some nuance… A difference between her paying for an average meal for a date, and her having to bankroll someone’s entire life.

“Reyna didn’t have a lot of money when we were together, and it wasn’t a problem. I just… have… bad taste…” She admitted quietly.
Had. I have good friends now… And most importantly you.”

Casey nuzzled his head against hers, kissing her a couple times for good measure.

”Each other. We have each other. And nothing’s gonna take that away from us. It’s fate… And it’s a good one. Even if you don’t believe in stuff like that, it’s certainly not a bad thing that we’ve been brought together like this.”

Glancing back up at the sky, he only took a moment before turning his eyes back toward her.
”Everything beautiful up there, is right here. All the bright color, and the sparkling majesty… They’re all right here on your face. You wear it so well, Trisha…” he cooed, still holding her tightly as the world around them steamed away.
↑ Top
© 2007-2026
BBCode Cheatsheet